Project Gutenberg's Church History, Volume 3 (of 3), by J. H. Kurtz
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
Title: Church History, Volume 3 (of 3)
Author: J. H. Kurtz
Release Date: March 17, 2016 [EBook #37404]
Language: English
Character set encoding: UTF-8
*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHURCH HISTORY, VOLUME 3 (OF 3) ***
Produced by Jon Ingram, Richard Hulse and the Online
Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
┌────────────────────────────────────────────────────────────────┐
│ │
│ Transcriber’s Notes │
│ │
│ │
│ Punctuation has been standardized. │
│ │
│ The Table of Contents has been updated to agree with the │
│ headings and subheadings of the text. │
│ │
│ The † symbol next to a date was not defined in the text. It │
│ appears to mean approximate year of death. │
│ │
│ Characters in small caps have been replaced by all caps. │
│ │
│ Non-printable characteristics have been given the following │
│ transliteration: │
│ Italic text: --> _text_ │
│ bold text: --> =text=. │
│ │
│ Italics have been dropped on leading alpha characters (a. b. │
│ c.) to improved readability. │
│ │
│ This book was written in a period when many words had │
│ not become standardized in their spelling. Words may have │
│ multiple spelling variations or inconsistent hyphenation in │
│ the text. These have been left unchanged unless indicated │
│ with a Transcriber’s Note. │
│ │
│ Many names appear with multiple spelling variations. The │
│ most common form used has been added in brackets following │
│ alternate forms to facilitate document searching. │
│ │
│ Latin words and quotations are regularly italicized in the │
│ text. Italics have been added to words missed by the printer. │
│ │
│ Footnotes are numbered consecutively through the 3 volumes │
│ and are identified in the text with a number in brackets [2] │
│ and have been accumulated in a single section at the end of │
│ the text. │
│ │
│ Transcriber’s Notes are used when making corrections to the │
│ text or to provide additional information for the modern │
│ reader. These notes are not identified in the text, but have │
│ been accumulated in a single section at the end of the book. │
│ │
└────────────────────────────────────────────────────────────────┘
CHURCH HISTORY.
BY
PROFESSOR KURTZ.
_AUTHORIZED TRANSLATION FROM LATEST REVISED EDITION BY THE_
REV. JOHN MACPHERSON, M.A.
IN THREE VOLUMES. VOL. III.
_SECOND EDITION._
London:
HODDER AND STOUGHTON,
27, PATERNOSTER ROW.
MDCCCXCIII.
BUTLER & TANNER,
THE SELWOOD PRINTING WORKS,
FROME, AND LONDON.
CONTENTS.
THIRD DIVISION.
(Continued.)
SECOND SECTION.
CHURCH HISTORY OF THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY.
I. Relations between the Different Churches.
§ 152. EAST AND WEST.
(1) Roman Catholic Hopes.
(2) Calvinistic Hopes.
(3) Orthodox Constancy.
§ 153. CATHOLICISM AND PROTESTANTISM.
(1) Conversions of Protestant Princes.
(2) The Restoration in Germany and the Neighbouring States.
(3) Livonia and Hungary.
(4) The Huguenots in France.
(5) The Waldensians in Piedmont.
(6) The Catholics in England and Ireland.
(7) Union Efforts.
(8) The Lehnin Prophecy.
§ 154. LUTHERANISM AND CALVINISM.
(1) Calvinizing of Hesse-Cassel, A.D. 1605-1646.
(2) Calvinizing of Lippe, A.D. 1602.
(3) The Elector of Brandenburg becomes Calvinist, A.D. 1613.
(4) Union Attempts.
§ 155. ANGLICANISM AND PURITANISM.
(1) The First Two Stuarts.
(2) The Commonwealth and the Protector.
(3) The Restoration and the Act of Toleration.
II. The Roman Catholic Church.
§ 156. THE PAPACY, MONKERY, AND FOREIGN MISSIONS.
(1) The Papacy.
(2) The Jesuits and the Republic of Venice.
(3) The Gallican Liberties.
(4) Galileo and the Inquisition.
(5) The Controversy on the Immaculate Conception.
(6) The Devotion of the Sacred Heart of Jesus.
(7) New Congregations and Orders.
1. Benedictine Congregation of St. Banne.
2. Benedictine Congregation of St. Maur.
3. The Fathers of the Oratory of Jesus.
4. The Piarists.
5. The Order of the Visitation of Mary.
(8) 6. The Priests of the Missions and Sisters
of Charity.
7. The Trappists.
8. The English Nuns.
(9) The Propaganda.
(10) Foreign Missions.
(11) In the East Indies.
(12) In China.
(13) Trade and Industry of the Jesuits.
(14) An Apostate to Judaism.
§ 157. QUIETISM AND JANSENISM.
(1) Francis de Sales and Madame Chantal.
(2) Michael Molinos.
(3) Madame Guyon and Fénelon.
(4) Mysticism Tinged with Theosophy and Pantheism.
(5) Jansenism in its first Stage.
§ 158. SCIENCE AND ART IN THE CATHOLIC CHURCH.
(1) Theological Science.
(2) Church History.
(3) Art and Poetry.
III. The Lutheran Church.
§ 159. ORTHODOXY AND ITS BATTLES.
(1) Christological Controversies.
1. The Cryptist and Kenotist Controversy.
2. The Lütkemann Controversy.
(2) The Syncretist Controversy.
(3) The Pietist Controversy in its First Stage.
(4) Theological Literature.
(5) Dogmatics.
§ 160. THE RELIGIOUS LIFE.
(1) Mysticism and Asceticism.
(2) Mysticism and Theosophy.
(3) Sacred Song.
(4) ---- Its 17th Century Transition.
(5) Sacred Music.
(6) The Christian Life of the People.
(7) Missions.
IV. The Reformed Church.
§ 161. THEOLOGY AND ITS BATTLES.
(1) Preliminaries of the Arminian Controversy.
(2) The Arminian Controversy.
(3) Consequences of the Arminian Controversy.
(4) The Cocceian and Cartesian Controversies.
(5) ---- Continued.
(6) Theological Literature.
(7) Dogmatic Theology.
(8) The Apocrypha Controversy.
§ 162. THE RELIGIOUS LIFE.
(1) England and Scotland.
(2) ---- Political and Social Revolutionists.
(3) ---- Devotional Literature.
(4) The Netherlands.
(5) ---- Voetians and Cocceians.
(6) France, Germany, and Switzerland.
(7) Foreign Missions.
V. Anti- and Extra-Ecclesiastical Parties.
§ 163. SECTS AND FANATICS.
(1) The Socinians.
(2) The Baptists of the Continent.
1. The Dutch Baptists.
2. The Moravian Baptists.
(3) The English Baptists.
(4) The Quakers.
(5) ---- Continued.
(6) The Quaker Constitution.
(7) Labadie and the Labadists.
(8) ---- Continued.
(9) Fanatical Sects.
(10) Russian Sects.
§ 164. PHILOSOPHERS AND FREETHINKERS.
(1) Philosophy.
(2) ---- Continued.
(3) Freethinkers--England.
(4) ---- Germany and France.
THIRD SECTION.
CHURCH HISTORY OF THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY.
I. The Catholic Church in East and West.
§ 165. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH.
(1) The Popes.
(2) Old and New Orders.
(3) Foreign Missions.
(4) The Counter-Reformation.
(5) In France.
(6) Conversions.
(7) The Second Stage of Jansenism.
(8) The Old Catholic Church in the Netherlands.
(9) Suppression of the Order of Jesuits, A.D. 1773.
(10) Anti-hierarchical Movements in Germany and Italy.
(11) Theological Literature.
(12) In Italy.
(13) The German-Catholic Contribution to the Illumination.
(14) The French Contribution to the Illumination.
(15) The French Revolution.
(16) The Pseudo-Catholics--The Abrahamites or
Bohemian Deists.
(17) ---- The Frankists.
§ 166. THE ORIENTAL CHURCHES.
(1) The Russian State Church.
(2) Russian Sects.
(3) The Abyssinian Church.
II. The Protestant Churches.
§ 167. THE LUTHERAN CHURCH BEFORE “THE ILLUMINATION.”
(1) The Pietist Controversies after the Founding of the
Halle University.
(2) ---- Controversial Doctrines.
(3) Theology.
(4) Unionist Efforts.
(5) Theories of Ecclesiastical Law.
(6) Church Song.
(7) Sacred Music.
(8) The Christian Life and Devotional Literature.
(9) Missions to the Heathen.
§ 168. THE CHURCH OF THE MORAVIAN BRETHREN.
(1) The Founder of the Moravian Brotherhood.
(2) The Founding of the Brotherhood.
(3) The Development of the Brotherhood down to
Zinzendorf’s Death, A.D. 1727-1760.
(4) Zinzendorf’s Plan and Work.
(5) Numerous Extravagances.
(6) Zinzendorf’s Greatness.
(7) The Brotherhood under Spangenberg’s Administration.
(8) The Doctrinal Peculiarities of the Brotherhood.
(9) The Peculiarities of Worship among the Brethren.
(10) Christian Life of the Brotherhood.
(11) Missions to the Heathen.
§ 169. THE REFORMED CHURCH BEFORE THE “ILLUMINATION.”
(1) The German Reformed Church.
(2) The Reformed Church in Switzerland.
(3) The Dutch Reformed Church.
(4) Methodism.
(5) ---- Continued.
(6) Theological Literature.
§ 170. NEW SECTS AND FANATICS.
(1) Fanatics and Separatists in Germany.
(2) The Inspired Societies in Wetterau.
(3) J. C. Dippel.
(4) Separatists of Immoral Tendency.
(5) Swedenborgianism.
(6) New Baptist Sects.
(7) New Quaker Sects.
(8) Predestinarian-Mystical Sects.
§ 171. RELIGION, THEOLOGY, AND LITERATURE OF THE “ILLUMINATION.”
(1) Deism, Arianism, and Unitarianism in the English Church.
1. The Deists.
2. The So-called Arians.
3. The Later Unitarians.
(2) Freemasons.
(3) The German “Illumination.”
1. Its Precursors.
(4) 2. The Age of Frederick the Great.
(5) 3. The Wöllner Reaction.
(6) The Transition Theology.
(7) The Rationalistic Theology.
(8) Supernaturalism.
(9) Mysticism and Theosophy.
(10) The German Philosophy.
(11) The German National Literature.
(12) Pestalozzi.
§ 172. CHURCH LIFE IN THE PERIOD OF THE “ILLUMINATION.”
(1) The Hymnbook and Church Music.
(2) Religious Characters.
(3) Religious Sects.
(4) The Rationalistic “Illumination” outside of Germany.
(5) Missionary Societies and Missionary Enterprise.
FOURTH SECTION.
CHURCH HISTORY OF THE NINETEENTH CENTURY.
I. General and Introductory.
§ 173. SURVEY OF RELIGIOUS MOVEMENTS OF NINETEENTH CENTURY.
§ 174. NINETEENTH CENTURY CULTURE IN RELATION TO CHRISTIANITY
AND THE CHURCH.
(1) The German Philosophy.
(2) ---- Continued.
(3) The Sciences; Medicine.
(4) Jurists; Historians; Geography; Philology.
(5) National Literature--Germany.
(6) ---- Continued.
(7) ---- Other Countries.
(8) Popular Education.
(9) Art.
(10) Music and the Drama.
§ 175. INTERCOURSE AND NEGOTIATIONS BETWEEN THE CHURCHES.
(1) Romanizing Tendencies among Protestants.
(2) The Attitude of Catholicism toward Protestantism.
(3) Romish Controversy.
(4) Roman Catholic Union Schemes.
(5) Greek Orthodox Union Schemes.
(6) Old Catholic Union Schemes.
(7) Conversions.
(8) ---- The Mortara Affair.
(9) ---- Other Conversions.
(10) The Luther Centenary, A.D. 1883.
II. Protestantism in General.
§ 176. RATIONALISM AND PIETISM.
(1) Rationalism.
(2) Pietism.
(3) The Königsberg Religious Movement, A.D. 1835-1842.
(4) The Bender Controversy.
§ 177. EVANGELICAL UNION AND LUTHERAN SEPARATION.
(1) The Evangelical Union.
(2) The Lutheran Separation.
(3) The Separation within the Separation.
§ 178. EVANGELICAL CONFEDERATION.
(1) The Gustavus Adolphus Society.
(2) The Eisenach Conference.
(3) The Evangelical Alliance.
(4) The Evangelical Church Alliance.
(5) The Evangelical League.
§ 179. LUTHERANISM, MELANCHTHONIANISM, AND CALVINISM.
(1) Lutheranism within the Union.
(2) Lutheranism outside of the Union.
(3) Melanchthonianism and Calvinism.
§ 180. THE “_PROTESTANTENVEREIN_.”
(1) The Protestant Assembly.
(2) The “_Protestantenverein_” Propaganda.
(3) Sufferings Endured.
(4) ---- In Berlin.
(5) ---- In Schleswig Holstein.
§ 181. DISPUTES ABOUT FORMS OF WORSHIP.
(1) The Hymnbook.
(2) The Book of Chorales.
(3) The Liturgy.
(4) The Holy Scriptures.
§ 182. PROTESTANT THEOLOGY IN GERMANY.
(1) Schleiermacher, A.D. 1768-1834.
(2) The Older Rationalistic Theology.
(3) Historico-Critical Rationalism.
(4) Supernaturalism.
(5) Rational Supernaturalism.
(6) Speculative Theology.
(7) The Tübingen School.
(8) Strauss.
(9) The Mediating Theology.
(10) Lutheran Theologians.
(11) Old Testament Exegetes.
(12) University Teachers.
(13) The Lutheran Confessional Theology.
(14) ---- Continued.
(15) ---- Continued.
(16) Reformed Confessionalism.
(17) The Free Protestant Theology.
(18) In the Old Testament Department.
(19) Dogmatists.
(20) Ritschl and his School.
(21) ---- Opponents.
(22) Writers on Constitutional Law and History.
§ 183. HOME MISSIONS.
(1) Institutions.
(2) The Order of St. John.
(3) The Itinerant Preacher Gustav Werner in Württemberg.
(4) Bible Societies.
§ 184. FOREIGN MISSIONS.
(1) Missionary Societies.
(2) Europe and America.
(3) Africa.
(4) ---- Livingstone and Stanley.
(5) Asia.
(6) China.
(7) Polynesia and Australia.
(8) Missions to the Jews.
(9) Missions among the Eastern Churches.
III. Catholicism in General.
§ 185. THE PAPACY AND THE STATES OF THE CHURCH.
(1) The First Four Popes of the Century.
(2) Pius IX., A.D. 1846-1878.
(3) The Overthrow of the Papal States.
(4) The Prisoner of the Vatican, A.D. 1870-1878.
(5) Leo XIII.
§ 186. VARIOUS ORDERS AND ASSOCIATIONS.
(1) The Society of Jesus and Related Orders.
(2) Other Orders and Congregations.
(3) The Pius Verein.
(4) The Various German Unions.
(5) Omnipotence of Capital.
(6) The Catholic Missions.
(7) ---- Mission Societies.
§ 187. LIBERAL CATHOLIC MOVEMENTS.
(1) Mystical-Irenical Tendencies.
(2) Evangelical-Revival Tendencies.
(3) Liberal-Scientific Tendencies.
(4) Radical-Liberalistic Tendencies.
(5) Attempts at Reform in Church Government.
(6) Attempts to Found National Catholic Churches.
(7) National Italian Church.
(8) The Frenchman, Charles Loyson.
§ 188. CATHOLIC ULTRAMONTANISM.
(1) The Ultramontane Propaganda.
(2) Miracles.
(3) Stigmatizations.
(4) ---- Louise Lateau.
(5) Pseudo-Stigmatizations.
(6) Manifestations of the Mother of God in France.
(7) Manifestations of the Mother of God in Germany.
(8) Canonizations.
(9) Discoveries of Relics.
(10) The blood of St. Januarius.
(11) The Leaping Procession at Echternach.
(12) The Devotion of the Sacred Heart.
(13) Ultramontane Amulets.
(14) Ultramontane Pulpit Eloquence.
§ 189. THE VATICAN COUNCIL.
(1) Preliminary History of the Council.
(2) The Organization of the Council.
(3) The Proceedings of the Council.
(4) Acceptance of the Decrees of the Council.
§ 190. THE OLD CATHOLICS.
(1) Formation and Development of the Old Catholic Church
in the German Empire.
(2) ---- Continued.
(3) The Old Catholics in other Lands.
§ 191. CATHOLIC THEOLOGY, ESPECIALLY IN GERMANY.
(1) Hermes and his School.
(2) Baader and his School.
(3) Günther and his School.
(4) John Adam Möhler.
(5) John Jos. Ignat. von Döllinger.
(6) The Chief Representatives of Systematic Theology.
(7) The Chief Representatives of Historical Theology.
(8) The Chief Representatives of Exegetical Theology.
(9) The Chief Representatives of the New Scholasticism.
(10) The Munich Congress of Catholic Scholars, 1863.
(11) Theological Journals.
(12) The Popes and Theological Science.
IV. Relation of Church to the Empire and to the States.
§ 192. THE GERMAN CONFEDERATION.
(1) The Imperial Commission’s Decree, 1803.
(2) The Prince-Primate of the Confederation of the Rhine.
(3) The Vienna Congress and the Concordat.
(4) The Frankfort Parliament and the Würzburg Bishops’
Congress of 1848.
§ 193. PRUSSIA.
(1) The Catholic Church to the Close of the Cologne
Conflict.
(2) The Golden Age of Prussian Ultramontanism, 1841-1871.
(3) The Evangelical Church in Old Prussia down to 1848.
(4) The Evangelical Church in Old Prussia, 1848-1872.
(5) The Evangelical Church in Old Prussia, 1872-1880.
(6) ---- Continued.
(7) The Evangelical Church in the Annexed Provinces.
(8) ---- In Hanover.
(9) ---- In Hesse.
§ 194. THE NORTH GERMAN SMALLER STATES.
(1) The Kingdom of Saxony.
(2) The Saxon Duchies.
(3) The Kingdom of Hanover.
(4) Hesse.
(5) Brunswick, Oldenburg, Anhalt, and Lippe-Detmold.
(6) Mecklenburg.
§ 195. BAVARIA.
(1) The Bavarian Ecclesiastical Polity under
Maximilian I., 1799-1825.
(2) The Bavarian Ecclesiastical Polity under
Louis I., 1825-1848.
(3) The Bavarian Ecclesiastical Polity under
Maximilian II., 1848-1864, and Louis II.
(4) Attempts at Reorganization of the Lutheran Church.
(5) The Church of the Union in the Palatine of the Rhine.
§ 196. THE SOUTH GERMAN SMALLER STATES AND RHENISH ALSACE
AND LORRAINE.
(1) The Upper Rhenish Church Province.
(2) The Catholic Troubles in Baden down to 1873.
(3) The Protestant Troubles in Baden.
(4) Hesse-Darmstadt and Nassau.
(5) In Protestant Württemberg.
(6) The Catholic Church in Württemberg.
(7) The Imperial Territory of Alsace and Lorraine
since 1871.
§ 197. THE SO-CALLED KULTURKAMPF IN THE GERMAN EMPIRE.
(1) The Aggression of Ultramontanism.
(2) Conflicts Occasioned by Protection of the Old
Catholics, 1871-1872.
(3) Struggles over Educational Questions, 1872-1873.
(4) The Kanzelparagraph and the Jesuit law, 1871-1872.
(5) The Prussian Ecclesiastical Laws, 1873-1875.
(6) Opposition in the States to the Prussian May Laws.
(7) Share in the Conflict taken by the Pope.
(8) The Conflict about the Encyclical _Quod nunquam_
of 1875.
(9) Papal Overtures for Peace.
(10) Proof of the Prussian Government’s willingness
to be Reconciled, 1880-1881.
(11) Conciliatory Negotiations, 1882-1884.
(12) Resumption on both sides of Conciliatory Measures,
1885-1886.
(13) Definitive Conclusion of Peace, 1887.
(14) Independent Procedure of the other German Governments.
1. Bavaria.
2. Württemberg.
3. Baden.
(15) 4. Hesse-Darmstadt.
5. Saxony.
§ 198. AUSTRIA-HUNGARY.
(1) The Zillerthal Emigration.
(2) The Concordat.
(3) The Protestant Church in Cisleithan Austria.
(4) The Clerical Landtag Opposition in the Tyrol.
(5) The Austrian Universities.
(6) The Austrian Ecclesiastical Laws, 1874-1876.
(7) The Protestant Church in the Transleithan Provinces.
§ 199. SWITZERLAND.
(1) The Catholic Church in Switzerland till 1870.
(2) The Geneva Conflict, 1870-1883.
(3) Conflict in the Diocese of Basel-Soleure, 1870-1880.
(4) The Protestant Church in German Switzerland.
(5) The Protestant Church in French Switzerland.
§ 200. HOLLAND AND BELGIUM.
(1) The United Netherlands.
(2) The Kingdom of Holland.
(3) ---- Continued.
(4) ---- Continued.
(5) The Kingdom of Belgium.
(6) ---- Continued.
(7) ---- Continued.
(8) The Protestant Church.
§ 201. THE SCANDINAVIAN COUNTRIES.
(1) Denmark.
(2) Sweden.
(3) Norway.
§ 202. GREAT BRITAIN AND IRELAND.
(1) The Episcopal State Church.
(2) The Tractarians and Ritualists.
(3) ---- Continued.
(4) Liberalism in the Episcopal Church.
(5) Protestant Dissenters in England.
(6) Scotch Marriages in England.
(7) The Scottish State Church.
(8) Scottish Heresy Cases.
(9) The Catholic Church in Ireland.
(10) The Fenian Movement.
(11) The Catholic Church in England and Scotland.
(12) German Lutheran Congregations in Australia.
§ 203. FRANCE.
(1) The French Church under Napoleon I.
(2) The Restoration and the Citizen Kingdom.
(3) The Catholic Church under Napoleon III.
(4) The Protestant Churches under Napoleon III.
(5) The Catholic Church in the Third French Republic.
(6) The French “Kulturkampf,” 1880.
(7) ---- Continued.
(8) The Protestant Churches under the Third Republic.
§ 204. ITALY.
(1) The Kingdom of Sardinia.
(2) The Kingdom of Italy.
(3) The Evangelization of Italy.
(4) ---- Continued.
§ 205. SPAIN AND PORTUGAL.
(1) Spain under Ferdinand VII. and Maria Christina.
(2) Spain under Isabella II., 1843-1865.
(3) Spain under Alphonso XII., 1875-1885.
(4) The Evangelization of Spain.
(5) The Church in Portugal.
§ 206. RUSSIA.
(1) The Orthodox National Church.
(2) The Catholic Church.
(3) The Evangelical Church.
§ 207. GREECE AND TURKEY.
(1) The Orthodox Church of Greece.
(2) Massacre of Syrian Christians, 1860.
(3) The Bulgarian Ecclesiastical Struggle.
(4) The Armenian Church.
(5) The Berlin Treaty, 1878.
§ 208. THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA.
(1) English Protestant Denominations.
(2) The German Lutheran Denominations.
(3) ---- Continued.
(4) German-Reformed and other German-Protestant
Denominations.
(5) The Catholic Church.
§ 209. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC STATES OF SOUTH AMERICA.
(1) Mexico.
(2) In the Republics of Central and Southern America.
(3) Brazil.
V. Opponents of Church and of Christianity.
§ 210. SECTARIANS AND ENTHUSIASTS IN THE ROMAN CATHOLIC AND
ORTHODOX RUSSIAN DOMAINS.
(1) Sects and Fanatics in the Roman Catholic Domain.
1. The Order of New Templars.
2. St. Simonians.
3. Aug. Comte.
(2) 4. Thomas Pöschl.
5. Antonians.
6. Adamites.
7. David Lazzaretti.
(3) Russian Sects and Fanatics.
(4) ---- Continued.
§ 211. SECTARIES AND ENTHUSIASTS IN THE PROTESTANT DOMAIN.
(1) The Methodist Propaganda.
(2) The Salvation Army.
(3) Baptists and Quakers.
(4) Swedenborgians and Unitarians.
(5) Extravagantly Fanatical Manifestations.
(6) Christian Communistic Sects.
1. Harmonites.
2. Bible Communists.
(7) Millenarian Exodus Communities.
1. Georgian Separatists.
2. Bavarian Chiliasts.
(8) 3. Amen Community.
4. German Temple Communities.
(9) The Community of “the New Israel.”
(10) The Catholic Apostolic Church of the Irvingites.
(11) The Darbyites and Adventists.
(12) The Mormons or Latter Day Saints.
(13) ---- Continued.
(14) ---- Continued.
(15) The Taepings in China.
(16) ---- Continued.
(17) The Spiritualists.
(18) Theosophism or Occultism.
§ 212. ANTICHRISTIAN SOCIALISM AND COMMUNISM.
(1) The Beginnings of Modern Communism.
(2) St. Simonism.
(3) Owenists and Icarians.
(4) The International Working-Men’s Association.
(5) German Social Democracy.
(6) Russian Nihilism.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLES.
INDEX.
THIRD DIVISION.
(Continued.)
SECOND SECTION.
CHURCH HISTORY OF THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY.
I. Relations between the Different Churches.
§ 152. EAST AND WEST.
The papacy formed new plans for conquest in the domain of the Eastern
church, but with at most only transient success. Still more illusory
were the hopes entertained for a while in Geneva and London in regard
to the Calvinizing of the Greek church.
§ 152.1. =Roman Catholic Hopes.=--The Jesuit missions among the
Turks and schismatic Greeks failed, but among the Abyssinians
some progress was made. By promising Spanish aid, the Jesuit
Paez succeeded, in A.D. 1621, in inducing the Sultan Segued to
abjure the Jacobite heresy. Mendez was made Abyssinian patriarch
by Urban VIII. in A.D. 1626, but the clergy and people repeatedly
rebelled against sultan and patriarch. In A.D. 1642 the next
sultan drove the Jesuits out of his kingdom, and in it henceforth
no traces of Catholicism were to be found.--In Russia the false
Demetrius, in A.D. 1605, working in Polish Catholic interests,
sought to catholicize the empire; but this only convinced the
Russians that he was no true czar’s son. When his Catholic Polish
bride entered Moscow with 200 Poles, a riot ensued, in which
Demetrius lost his life.[445]
§ 152.2. =Calvinistic Hopes.=--=Cyril Lucar=, a native of Crete,
then under Venetian rule, by long residence in Geneva had come
to entertain a strong liking to the Reformed church. Expelled
from his situation as rector of a Greek seminary at Ostrog by
Jesuit machinations, he was made Patriarch of Alexandria in
A.D. 1602 and of Constantinople in A.D. 1621. He maintained
a regular correspondence with Reformed divines in Holland,
Switzerland, and England. In A.D. 1628 he sent the famous Codex
Alexandrinus as a present to James I. He wrought expressly
for a union of the Greek and Reformed churches, and for this
end sent, in A.D. 1629, to Geneva an almost purely Calvinistic
confession. But the other Greek bishops opposed his union
schemes, and influential Jesuits in Constantinople accused
him of political faults. Four times the sultan deposed and
banished him, and at last, in A.D. 1638, he was strangled as
a traitor and cast into the sea.--One of his Alexandrian clergy,
Metrophanes Critopulus, whom in A.D. 1616 he had sent for his
education to England, studied several years at Oxford, then
at German Protestant universities, ending with Helmstadt, where,
in A.D. 1625, he composed in Greek a confession of the faith
of the Greek Orthodox Church. It was pointedly antagonistic to
the Romish doctrine, conciliatory toward Protestantism, while
abandoning nothing essential in the Greek Orthodox creed, and
showing signs of the possession of independent speculative power.
Afterwards Metrophanes became Patriarch of Alexandria, and in
the synod, presided over by Lucar’s successor, Cyril of Berrhoë,
at Constantinople in A.D. 1638, gave his vote for the formal
condemnation of the man who had been already executed.[446]
§ 152.3. =Orthodox Constancy.=--The Russian Orthodox church,
after its emancipation from Constantinople and the erection of
an independent patriarchate at Moscow in A.D. 1589 (§ 73, 4),
had decidedly the pre-eminence over the Greek Orthodox church,
and the Russian czar took the place formerly occupied by the
East Roman emperor as protector of the whole Orthodox church.
The dangers to the Orthodox faith threatened by schemes of union
with Catholics and Protestants induced the learned metropolitan,
Peter Mogilas of Kiev, to compose a new confession in
catechetical form, which, in A.D. 1643, was formally authorized
by the Orthodox patriarchs as Ὀρθόδοξος ὁμολογία τῆς καθολικῆς
καὶ ἀποστολικῆς ἐκκλησίας τῆς ἀνατολικῆς.--Thirty years later
a controversy on the eucharist broke out between the Jansenists
Nicole and Arnauld, on the one side, and the Calvinists Claude
and Jurieu, on the other (§ 157, 1), in which both claimed to
be in agreement with the Greek church. A synod was convened
under =Dositheus of Jerusalem= in A.D. 1672, at the instigation
of French diplomatists, where the questions raised by Cyril
were again taken into consideration. Maintaining a friendly
attitude toward the Romish church, it directed a violent
polemic against Calvinism. In order to save the character of
the Constantinopolitan chair for constant Orthodoxy, Cyril’s
confession of A.D. 1629 was pronounced a spurious, heretical
invention, and a confession composed by Dositheus, in which
Cyril’s Calvinistic heresies were repudiated, was incorporated
with the synod’s acts.
§ 153. CATHOLICISM AND PROTESTANTISM.
The Jesuit counter-reformation (§ 151) was eminently successful
during the first decades of the century in Bohemia. The Westphalian
Peace restrained its violence, but did not prevent secret machinations
and the open exercise of all conceivable arts of seduction. Next to
the conversion of Bohemia, the greatest triumph of the restoration was
won in France in the Revocation of the Edict of Nantes. Besides such
victories the Catholics were able to glory in the conversion of several
Protestant princes. New endeavours at union were repeatedly made, but
these in every case proved as fruitless as former attempts had done.
§ 153.1. =Conversions of Protestant Princes.=--The first
reigning prince who became a convert to Romanism was the
Margrave =James III. of Baden=. He went over in A.D. 1590
(§ 144, 4), but as his death occurred soon after, his conduct
had little influence upon his people. Of greater consequence
was the conversion, in A.D. 1614, of the Count-palatine Wolfgang
William of Neuburg, as it prepared the way for the catholicizing
of the whole Palatinate, which followed in A.D. 1685. Much was
made of the passing over to the Catholic church of =Christina
of Sweden=, the highly gifted but eccentric daughter of Gustavus
Adolphus. As she had resigned the crown, the pope gained no
political advantage from his new member, and Alexander VII.
had even to contribute to her support. The Elector of Saxony,
=Frederick Augustus II.=, passed over to the Roman Catholic
church in A.D. 1697, in order to qualify himself for the Polish
crown; but the rights of his Protestant subjects were carefully
guarded. An awkwardness arose from the fact that the prince was
pledged by the directory of the Regensburg Diet of A.D. 1653 to
care for the interests of the evangelical church. Now that he
had become a Catholic, he still formally promised to do so, but
had his duties discharged by a commissioner. Subsequently this
officer was ordered to take his directions from the evangelical
council of Dresden.
§ 153.2. =The Restoration in Germany and the Neighbouring
States= (§ 151, 1).--Matthias having, in violation of the royal
letter of his predecessor Rudolph II. (§ 139, 19), refused to
allow the Protestants of Bohemia to build churches, was driven
out; the Jesuits also were expelled, and the Calvinistic
Elector-palatine Frederick V. was chosen as prince in A.D. 1619.
Ferdinand II. (A.D. 1619-1637) defeated him, tore up the
royal letter, restored the Jesuits, and expelled the Protestant
pastors. Efforts were made by Christian IV. of Denmark and other
Protestant princes to save Protestantism, but without success.
Ferdinand now issued his =Restitution Edict= of A.D. 1629,
which deprived Protestants of their privileges, and gave to
Catholic nobles unrestricted liberty to suppress the evangelical
faith in their dominions. It was then that Gustavus Adolphus of
Sweden, in religious not less than political interests, made his
appearance as the saviour of Protestantism.[447] The unhappy war
was brought to an end in A.D. 1648 by the publication at Münster
and Osnabrück of the =Peace of Westphalia=, which Innocent X.
in his bull “_Zelo Domus Dei_” of A.D. 1651 pronounced “null
and void, without influence on past, present, and future.”
Germany lost several noble provinces, but its intellectual
and religious freedom was saved. Under Swedish and French
guarantee the Augsburg Religious Peace was confirmed and even
extended to the Reformed, as related to the Augsburg Confession.
The church property was to be restored on January 1st,
A.D. 1624. The political equality of Protestants and Catholics
throughout Germany was distinctly secured. In =Bohemia=,
however, Protestantism was thoroughly extirpated, and in the
other Austrian states the oppression continued down to the time
of Joseph II. In =Silesia=, from the passing of the Restitution
Edict, over a thousand churches had been violently taken from
the evangelicals. No compensation was now thought of, but
rather the persecution continued throughout the whole century
(§ 165, 4), and many thousands were compelled to migrate, for
the most part to Upper Lusatia.
§ 153.3. Also in =Livonia=, from A.D. 1561 under Polish rule,
the Jesuits gained a footing and began the restoration, but
under Gustavus Adolphus from A.D. 1621 their machinations
were brought to an end.--The ruthless =Valteline Massacre=
of A.D. 1620 may be described as a Swiss St. Bartholomew on
a small scale. All Protestants were murdered in one day. The
conspirators at a signal from the clock tower in the early
morning broke into the houses of heretics, and put all to death,
down to the very babe in the cradle. Between four and five
hundred were slaughtered.--In =Hungary=, at the close of the
preceding century only three noble families remained Catholic,
and the Protestant churches numbered 2,000; but the Jesuits, who
had settled there under the protection of Rudolph II. in 1579,
resumed their intrigues, and the Archbishop of Gran, Pazmany,
wrought hard for the restoration of Catholicism. Rakoczy of
Transylvania, in the Treaty of Linz of A.D. 1645, concluded
a league offensive and defensive with Sweden and France, which
secured political and religious liberty for Hungary; but of
the 400 churches of which the Protestants had been robbed only
ninety were given back. The bigoted Leopold I., from A.D. 1655
king of Hungary, inaugurated a yet more severe persecution,
which continued until the publication of the Toleration Edict
of Joseph II. in A.D. 1781. The 2,000 Protestant congregations
were by this time reduced to 105.
§ 153.4. =The Huguenots in France= (§ 139, 17).--Henry IV.
faithfully fulfilled the promises which he made in the Edict of
Nantes; but under Louis XIII., A.D. 1610-1643, the oppressions
of the Huguenots were renewed, and led to fresh outbreaks.
Richelieu withdrew their political privileges, but granted
them religious toleration in the Edict of Nismes, A.D. 1629.
Louis XIV., A.D. 1643-1715, at the instigation of his confessors,
sought to atone for his sins by purging his land of heretics.
When bribery and court favour had done all that they could do in
the way of conversions, the fearful dragonnades began, A.D. 1681.
The formal =Revocation of the Edict of Nantes= followed in
A.D. 1685, and persecution raged with the utmost violence.
Thousands of churches were torn down, vast numbers of confessors
were tortured, burnt, or sent to the galleys. In spite of the
terrible penal laws against emigrating, in spite of the watch
kept over the frontiers, hundreds of thousands escaped, and were
received with open arms as _refugees_ in Brandenburg, Holland,
England, Denmark, and Switzerland. Many fled into the wilds of
the Cevennes, where under the name of Camisards they maintained
a heroic conflict for years, until at last exterminated by an
army at least ten times their strength. The struggle reached
the utmost intensity of bitterness on both sides in A.D. 1702,
when the fanatical and inhumanly cruel inquisitor, the Abbé
du Chaila, was slain. At the head of the Camisard army was
a young peasant, Jean Cavalier, who by his energetic and skilful
conduct of the campaign astonished the world. At last the
famous Marshal Villars, by promising a general amnesty, release
of all prisoners, permission to emigrate with possessions,
and religious toleration to those who remained, succeeded in
persuading Cavalier to lay down his arms. The king ratified
this bargain, only refusing the right of religious freedom.
Many, however, submitted; while others emigrated, mostly to
England. Cavalier entered the king’s service as colonel; but
distrusting the arrangements fled to Holland, and afterwards
to England, where in A.D. 1740 he died as governor of Jersey.
In A.D. 1707 a new outbreak took place, accompanied by prophetic
fanaticism, in consequence of repeated dragonnades, but it
was put down by the stake, the gallows, the axe, and the wheel.
France had lost half a million of her most pious, industrious,
and capable inhabitants, and yet two millions of Huguenots
deprived of all their rights remained in the land.[448]
§ 153.5. =The Waldensians in Piedmont= (§ 139, 25).--Although
in A.D. 1654 the Duke of Savoy confirmed to the Waldensians
their privileges, by Easter of the following year a bloody
persecution broke out, in which a Piedmontese army, together
with a horde of released prisoners and Irish refugees,
driven from their native land by Cromwell’s severities, to
whom the duke had given shelter in the valleys, perpetrated
the most horrible cruelties. Yet in the desperate conflict
the Waldensians held their ground. The intervention of the
Protestant Swiss cantons won for them again a measure of
toleration, and liberal gifts from abroad compensated them
for their loss of property. Cromwell too sent to the relief
of the sufferers the celebrated Lord Morland in A.D. 1658.
While in the valleys he got possession of a number of MSS.
(§ 108, 11), which he took home with him and deposited in
the Cambridge Library. In A.D. 1685 the persecution and civil
war were again renewed at the instigation of Louis XIV. The
soldiers besieged the valleys, and more than 14,000 captives
were consigned to fortresses and prisons. But the rest of the
Waldensians plucked up courage, inflicted many defeats upon
their enemy, and so moved the government in A.D. 1686 to release
the prisoners and send them out of the country. Some found their
way to Germany, others fled to Switzerland. These last, aided
by Swiss troops, and led by their own pastor, Henry Arnaud, made
an attack upon Piedmont in A.D. 1689, and conquered again their
own country. They continued in possession, notwithstanding all
attempts to dislodge them.
§ 153.6. =The Catholics in England and Ireland.=--When James I.,
A.D. 1603-1625, the son of Mary Stuart, ascended the English
throne (§ 139, 11), the Catholics expected from him nothing
short of the complete restoration of the old religion. But
great as James’ inclination towards Catholicism may have been,
his love of despotic authority was still greater. He therefore
rigorously suppressed the Jesuits, who disputed the royal
supremacy over the church; and the bitterness of the Catholics
now reached its height. They organized the so-called =Gunpowder
Plot=, with the intention of blowing up the royal family and
the whole Parliament at the first meeting of the house. At
the head of the conspiracy stood Rob. Catesby, Thomas Percy
of Northumberland, and Guy Fawkes, an English officer in the
Spanish service. The plan was discovered shortly before the day
appointed for its execution. On November 5th, A.D. 1605, Fawkes,
with lantern and matches, was seized in the cellar. The rest of
the conspirators fled, but, after a desperate struggle, in which
Catesby and Percy fell, were arrested, and, together with two
Jesuit accomplices, executed as traitors. Great severities were
then exercised toward the Catholics, not only in England, but
also in Ireland, where the bulk of the population was attached
to the Romish faith. James I. completed the transference of
ecclesiastical property to the Anglican church, and robbed
the Irish nobles of almost all their estates, and gifted them
over to Scottish and English favourites. All Catholics, because
they refused to take the oath of supremacy, _i.e._ to recognise
the king as head of the church, were declared ineligible
for any civil office. These oppressions at last led to the
fearful =Irish massacre=. In October, A.D. 1641, a desperate
outbreak of the Catholics took place throughout the country.
It aimed at the destruction of all Protestants in Ireland.
The conspirators rushed from all sides into the houses of the
Protestants, murdered the inhabitants, and drove them naked and
helpless from their homes. Many thousands died on the roadside
of hunger and cold. In other places they were driven in crowds
into the rivers and drowned, or into empty houses, which were
burnt over them. The number of those who suffered is variously
estimated from 40,000 to 400,000. Charles I., A.D. 1625-1649,
was suspected as instigator of this terrible deed, and it may
be regarded as his first step toward the scaffold (§ 155, 1).
After the execution of Charles, Oliver Cromwell, in A.D. 1649,
at the call of Parliament, took fearful revenge for the Irish
crime. In the two cities which he took by storm he had all
the citizens cut down without distinction. Panic-stricken, the
inhabitants of the other cities fled to the bogs. Within nine
months the whole island was reconquered. Hundreds of thousands,
driven from their native soil, wandered as homeless fugitives,
and their lands were divided among English soldiers and settlers.
During the time of the English Commonwealth, A.D. 1649-1660,
all moderate men, even those who had formerly demanded religious
toleration, not only for all Christian sects, but also for Jews
and Mohammedans, and even atheists, were now at one in excluding
Catholics from its benefit, because they all saw in the
Catholics a party ready at any moment to prove traitors to their
country at the bidding of a foreign sovereign.--The Restoration
under Charles II. could not greatly ameliorate the calamities of
the Irish. Religious persecution indeed ceased, but the property
taken from the Catholic church and native owners still remained
in the hands of the Anglican church and the Protestant occupiers.
To counterbalance the Catholic proclivities of Charles II.
(§ 155, 3), the English Parliament of A.D. 1673 passed the =Test
Act=, which required every civil and military officer to take
the test oaths, condemning transubstantiation and the worship
of the saints, and to receive the communion according to the
Anglican rite as members of the State church. The statements
of a certain Titus Oates, that the Jesuits had organized a plot
for murdering the king and restoring the papacy, led to fearful
riots in A.D. 1678 and many executions. But the reports were
seemingly unfounded, and were probably the fruit of an intrigue
to deprive the king’s Catholic brother, James II., of the right
of succession. When James ascended the throne, in A.D. 1685,
he immediately entered into negotiations with Rome, and
filled almost all offices with Catholics. At the invitation of
the Protestants, the king’s son-in-law, William III. of Orange,
landed in England in A.D. 1688, and on James’ flight was
declared king by the Parliament. The Act of Toleration, issued
by him in A.D. 1689, still withheld from Papists the privileges
now extended to Protestant dissenters (§ 155, 3).[449]
§ 153.7. =Union Efforts.=
1. Although =Hugo Grotius= distinctly took the side of
the Remonstrants (§ 160, 2), his whole disposition was
essentially irenical. He attempted, but in vain, not
only the reconciliation of the Arminians and Calvinists,
but also the union of all Protestant sects on a common
basis. Toward Catholicism he long maintained a decidedly
hostile attitude. But through intimate intercourse with
distinguished Catholics, especially during his exile
in France, his feelings were completely changed. He now
invariably expressed himself more favourably in regard
to the faith and the institutions of the Catholic church.
Its semi-Pelagianism was acceptable to him as a decided
Arminian. In his “_Votum pro Pace_” he recommended as the
only possible way to restore ecclesiastical union, a return
to Catholicism, on the understanding that a thorough reform
should be made. But that he was himself ready to pass over,
and was hindered only by his sudden death in A.D. 1645, is
merely an illusion of Romish imagination.[450]
2. King Wladislaus [Wladislaw] IV. of Poland thought
a union of Protestants and Catholics in his dominions
not impossible, and with this end in view arranged the
=Religious Conference of Thorn= in A.D. 1645. Prussia
and Brandenburg were also invited to take part in it.
The elector sent his court preacher, John Berg, and asked
from the Duke of Brunswick the assistance of the Helmstadt
theologian, George Calixt. The chief representatives of
the Lutheran side were Abraham Calov, of Danzig, and John
Hülsemann, of Wittenberg. That Calixt, a Lutheran, took
the part of the Reformed, intensified the bitterness of
the Lutherans at the outset. The result was to increase
the split on all sides. The Reformed set forth their
opinions in the “_Declaratio Thorunensis_,” which in
Brandenburg obtained symbolical rank.
3. J. B. =Bossuet=, who died in A.D. 1704, Bishop of Meaux,
used all his eloquence to prepare a way for the return of
Protestants to the church in which alone is salvation. In
several treatises he gave an idealized exposition of the
Catholic doctrine, glossed over what was most offensive
to Protestants, and sought by subtlety and sophistry
to represent the Protestant system as contradictory
and untenable.[451] During the same period the Spaniard
=Spinola=, Bishop of Neustadt, who had come into the
country as father confessor of the empress, proposed
a scheme of union at the imperial court. The controverted
points were to be decided at a free council, but the
primacy of the pope and the hierarchical system, as
founded _jure humano_, were to be retained. In prosecuting
his scheme, with the secret support of Leopold I., Spinola,
between A.D. 1676 and 1691, travelled through all Protestant
Germany. He found most success, out of respect for the
emperor, in Hanover, where the Abbot of Loccum, Molanus,
zealously advocated the proposed union, in which on the
Catholic side Bossuet, on the Protestant side the great
philosopher =Leibnitz=, took part. But the negotiations
ended in no practical result. That Leibnitz had himself
been already secretly inclined to Catholicism, some
think to have proved by a manuscript, found after his
death, entitled in another’s hand, “_Systema Theologicum
Leibnitii_.” Favourably disposed as Leibnitz was to
investigate and recognise what was profound and true
even in Catholicism, so that he reached the conviction
that neither of the two churches had given perfect and
adequate expression to Christian truth, he has apparently
sought in this work to make clear to himself what and how
much of specifically Catholic doctrines were justifiable,
and to sketch out a system of doctrine occupying a place
superior to both confessions. In this treatise many
doctrines are expressed in a manner quite divergent from
that of the Tridentine creed, while several expressions
show how clearly he perceived the contradiction between
his own Protestant faith and the Romish system, amid all
his attempts to effect a reconciliation.
§ 153.8. =The Lehnin Prophecy.=--The hope entertained, about
the end of the seventeenth century, by Catholics throughout
Germany of the speedy restoration of the mother church
was expressed in the so called =Vaticinium Lehninense=.
Professedly composed in the thirteenth century by a monk
called Hermann, of the cloister of Lehnin in Brandenburg,
it characterized with historical accuracy in 100 Leonine
verses the Brandenburg princes down to Frederick III., of
whose coronation in A.D. 1701 it is ignorant, and after this
proceeds in a purely fanciful and arbitrary manner. From
Joachim II., who openly joined the Reformation, it enumerates
eleven members, so that the history is just brought down to
Frederick William III. With the eleventh the Hohenzollern
dynasty ends, Germany is united, the Catholic church restored,
and Lehnin raised again to its ancient glory. Under Frederick
William IV., the Catholics diligently sought to prove the
genuineness of the prophecy, and by arbitrary methods to extend
it so as to include this prince. Lately “the deadly sin of
Israel” spoken of in it has been pointed to as a prophecy of
the _Kultur-kampf_ of our own day (§ 197). The first certain
trace of the poem is in A.D. 1693. Hilgenfeld thinks that its
author was a fanatical pervert, Andr. Fromm, who was previously
a Protestant pastor in Berlin, and died in A.D. 1685 as canon
of Leitmeritz, in Bohemia.
§ 154. LUTHERANISM AND CALVINISM.
The Reformed church made its way into the heart of Lutheran
Germany (§ 144) by the Calvinizing of Hesse-Cassel and Lippe, and by
the adherence of the electoral house of Brandenburg. Renewed attempts
to unite the two churches were equally fruitless with the endeavours
after a Catholic-Protestant union.
§ 154.1. =Calvinizing of Hesse-Cassel, A.D. 1605-1646.=--Philip
the Magnanimous, died 1567, left to his eldest son, William IV.,
one half of his territories, comprising Lower Hesse and
Schmalcald, with residence at Cassel; to Louis IV. a fourth
part, _viz._ Upper Hesse, with residence at Marburg; while
his two youngest sons, Philip and George, were made counts,
with their residence at Darmstadt. Philip died in 1583 and
Louis in 1604, both childless; in consequence of which the
greater part of Philip’s territory and the northern half
of Upper Hesse with Marburg fell to Hesse-Cassel, and the
southern half with Giessen to Hesse-Darmstadt.--Landgrave
=William IV.= of Hesse-Cassel sympathised with his father’s
union and levelling tendencies, and by means of general synods
wrought eagerly to secure acceptance for them throughout Hesse
by setting aside the _ubiquitous_ Christology (§ 141, 9) and
the Formula of Concord, while firmly maintaining the _Corpus
Doctrinæ Philippicum_ (§ 141, 10). The fourth and last of
those general synods was held in 1582. Further procedure was
meanwhile rendered impossible by the increase of opposition.
For, on the one hand, Louis IV., under the influence of the
acute and learned but contentious Ægidius Hunnius, professor of
theology at Marburg, 1576-1592, became more and more decidedly
a representative of exclusive Lutheranism; and, on the other
hand, William’s Calvinizing schemes became from day to day more
reckless. His son and successor =Maurice= went forward more
energetically along the same lines as his father, especially
after the death of his uncle Louis in 1604, who bequeathed to
him the Marburg part of his territories. These had been given
him on condition that he should hold by the confession and
its apology as guaranteed by Charles V. in 1530. But in 1605
he forbad the Marburg theologians to set forth the ubiquity
theology; and when they protested, issued a formal prohibition
of the dogma with its presuppositions and consequences, and
insisted on the introduction of the Reformed numbering of the
commandments of the decalogue, and the breaking of bread at
the communion, and the removal of the remaining images from
the churches (§ 144, 2). The theologians again protested, and
were deprived of their offices. The result was the outbreak
of a popular tumult at Marburg, which Maurice suppressed
by calling in the military. When in several places in Upper
and even in Lower Hesse opposition was persisted in, and the
resisting clergy could not be won over either by persuasion
and threatening or by persecution, Maurice in 1607 convened
consultative diocesan synods at Cassel, Eschwege, Marburg,
St. Goar, and soon after a general synod at Cassel, which,
giving expression on all points to the will of the landgrave,
drew up, besides a new hymnbook and catechism, a new “Christian
and correct confession of faith,” by which they openly and
decidedly declared their attachment to the Reformed church.
Soon Hesse accepted these conclusions, but not the rest of
the state, where the opposition of the nobles, clergy, and
people, in spite of all attempts to enforce this acceptance
by military power, imprisonment, and deposition, could not
be altogether overcome.--Meanwhile George’s son and successor,
=Louis V.=, 1596-1626, had been eagerly seeking to make capital
of those troubles in his cousin’s domains in favour of the
Darmstadt dynasty. He gave his protection to the professors
expelled from Marburg in 1605, founded in 1607 a Lutheran
university at Giessen, and made accusations against his cousin
before the imperial supreme court, which in 1623, on the basis
of the will of Louis IV. and the Religious Peace of Augsburg
(§ 137, 5), declared the inheritance forfeited, and entrusted
the electors of Cologne and Saxony with the execution of the
sentence. These in conjunction with the troops of the league
under Tilly attacked Upper and Lower Hesse; the Lutheran
University of Giessen was transferred to Marburg, and Upper
Hesse, after the banishment of the Reformed pastors, went
over wholly to the Lutheran confession. Maurice, completely
broken down, resigned in favour of his son =William V.=, who
was obliged to make an agreement, according to which he made
over Upper Hesse, Schmalcald, and Katzenelnbogen to =George II.=
of Hesse-Darmstadt, the successor of Louis V. In consequence
of his attachment to Gustavus Adolphus in the Thirty Years’
War the ban of the empire was pronounced upon William. He died
in 1637. His widow, =Amalie Elizabeth=, undertook the government
on behalf of her young son William VI., and in 1646, after
repeated victories over George’s troops, made a new agreement
with him, by which the territories taken away in 1627 were
restored to Hesse-Cassel, under a guarantee, however, that
the _status quo_ in matters of religion should be preserved,
and that they should continue predominantly Lutheran. The
university property was divided; Giessen obtained a Lutheran,
Marburg a Reformed institution, and Lower Hesse received
a moderately but yet essentially Reformed ecclesiastical
constitution.
§ 154.2. =Calvinizing of Lippe, A.D. 1602.=--Count Simon VI.
of Lippe, in his eventful life, was brought into close relations
with the Reformed Netherlands and with Maurice of Hesse. His
dominions were thoroughly Lutheran, but from A.D. 1602 Calvinism
was gradually introduced under the patronage of the prince.
The chief promoter of this innovation was Dreckmeyer, chosen
general superintendent in A.D. 1599. At a visitation of churches
in A.D. 1602, the festivals of Mary and the apostles, exorcism,
the sign of the cross, the host, burning candles, and Luther’s
catechism were rejected. Opposing pastors were deposed, and
Calvinists put in their place. The city Lemgo stood out longest,
and persevered in its adherence to the Lutheran confession
during an eleven years’ struggle with its prince, from A.D. 1606
to 1617. After the death of Simon VI., his successor, Simon VII.,
allowed the city the free exercise of its Lutheran religion.
§ 154.3. =The Elector of Brandenburg becomes Calvinist,
A.D. 1613.=--John Sigismund, A.D. 1608-1619, had promised his
grandfather, John George, to maintain his connexion with the
Lutheran church. But his own inclination, which was strengthened
by his son’s marriage with a princess of the Palatinate, and
his connexion with the Netherlands, made him forget his promise.
Also his court preacher, the crypto-Calvinist Solomon Fink,
contributed to the same result. On Christmas Day, A.D. 1613,
he went over to the Reformed church. In order to share in the
Augsburg Peace, he still retained the Augsburg Confession,
naturally in the form known as the _Variata_. In A.D. 1624,
he issued a Calvinist confession of his own, the _Confessio
Sigismundi_ or _Marchica_, which sought to reconcile the
universality of grace with the particularity of election
(§ 168, 1). His people, however, did not follow the prince,
not even his consort, Anne of Prussia. The court preacher,
Gedicke, who would not retract his invectives against the
prince and the Reformed confession, was obliged to flee from
Berlin, as also another preacher, Mart. Willich. But when
altars, images, and baptismal fonts were thrown out of the
Berlin churches, a tumult arose, in A.D. 1615, which was
not suppressed without bloodshed. In the following year the
elector forbade the teaching of the _communicatio idiomatum_
and the _ubiquitas corporis_ (§ 141, 9) at the University of
Frankfort-on-the-Oder. In A.D. 1614, owing to the publication
of a keen controversial treatise of Hutter (§ 159, 5) he
forbade any of his subjects going to the University of
Wittenberg, and soon afterwards struck out the Formula of
Concord from the collection of the symbolical books of the
Lutheran church of his realm.--Continuation, § 169, 1.
§ 154.4. =Union Attempts.=--Hoë von Hoënegg, of an old Austrian
family, was from A.D. 1612 chief court preacher at Dresden,
and as spiritual adviser of the elector, John George, on the
outbreak of the Thirty Years’ War, got Lutheran Saxony to
take the side of the Catholic emperor against the Calvinist
Frederick V. of the Palatinate, elected king of Bohemia.
In A.D. 1621, he had proved that “on ninety-nine points the
Calvinists were in accord with the Arians and the Turks.” At
the Religious Conference of Leipzig of A.D. 1631 a compromise
was accepted on both sides; but no practical result was secured.
The Religious Conference of Cassel, in A.D. 1661, was a well
meant endeavour by some Marburg Reformed theologians and
Lutherans of the school of Calixt (§ 158, 2); but owing to
the agitation caused by the Synergist controversy, no important
advance toward union could be accomplished. The union efforts
of Duke William of Brandenburg, A.D. 1640-1688, were opposed by
Paul Gerhardt, preacher in the church of St. Nicholas in Berlin.
On refusing to abstain from attacks on the Reformed doctrine
he was deposed from his office. He was soon appointed pastor
at Lübben in Lusatia, where he died in A.D. 1676.--The most
zealous apostle of universal Protestant union, embracing even
the Anglican church, was the Scottish Presbyterian John Durie.
From A.D. 1628 when he officiated as pastor of an English colony
at Elbing, till his death at Cassel in A.D. 1640, he devoted his
energies unweariedly to this one task. He repeatedly travelled
through Germany, Sweden, Denmark, England, and the Netherlands,
formed acquaintance with clerical and civil authorities,
had intercourse with them by word and letter, published
a multitude of tracts on this subject; but at last could
only look back with bitter complaints over the lost labours
of a lifetime.[452]--Continuation, § 169, 1.
§ 155. ANGLICANISM AND PURITANISM.[453]
On the outbreak of the English Revolution, occasioned by the
despotism of the first two Stuarts, crowds of Puritan exiles returned
from Holland and North America to their old home. They powerfully
strengthened their secret sympathisers in their successful struggle
against the episcopacy of the State church (§ 139, 6); but, breaking
up into rival parties, as Presbyterians and Independents (§ 143, 3, 4),
gave way to fanatical extravagances. The victorious party of
Independents also split into two divisions: the one, after the old
Dutch style, simple and strict believers in Scripture; the other,
first in Cromwell’s army, fanatical enthusiasts and visionary saints
(§ 161, 1). The Restoration, under the last two Stuarts, sought to
re-introduce Catholicism. It was William of Orange, by his Act of
Toleration of A.D. 1689, who first brought to a close the Reformation
struggles within the Anglican church. It guaranteed, indeed, all the
pre-eminent privileges of an establishment to the Anglican and Episcopal
church, but also granted toleration to dissenters, while refusing it to
Catholics.
§ 155.1. =The First Two Stuarts.=--=James I.=, dominated by
the idea of the royal supremacy, and so estranged from the
Presbyterianism in which he was brought up (§ 139, 11), as
king of England, A.D. 1603-1625, attached himself to the
national Episcopal church, persecuted the English Puritans,
so that many of them again fled to Holland (§ 143, 4), and
forced Episcopacy upon the Scotch. =Charles I.=, A.D. 1625-1649,
went beyond his father in theory and practice, and thus incurred
the hatred of his Protestant subjects. William Laud, from
A.D. 1633 Archbishop of Canterbury, was the recklessly zealous
promoter of his despotic ideas, representing the Episcopacy,
by reason of its Divine institution and apostolic succession,
as the foundation of the church and the pillar of an absolute
monarchy. Laud used his position as primate to secure the
introduction of his own theory into the public church services,
among other things making the communion office an imitation
as near as possible of the Romish mass. But when he attempted
to force upon the Scotch such “Baal-worship” by the command of
the king, they formed a league in A.D. 1638 for the defence of
Presbyterianism, the so called Great Covenant, and emphasised
their demand by sending an army into England. The king, who had
ruled for eleven years without a Parliament, was obliged now
to call together the representatives of the people. Scarcely
had the Long Parliament, A.D. 1640-1653, in which the Puritan
element was supreme, pacified the Scotch, than oil was anew
poured on the flames by the Irish massacre of A.D. 1641
(§ 153, 6). The Lower House, in spite of the persistent
opposition of the court, resolved on excluding the bishops
from the Upper House and formally abolishing Episcopacy;
and in A.D. 1643, summoned the Westminster Assembly to
remodel the organization of the English church, at which
Scotch representatives were to have a seat. After long
and violent debates with an Independent minority, till
A.D. 1648, the Assembly drew up a Presbyterian constitution
with a Puritan service, and in the Westminster Confession
a strictly Calvinistic creed. But only in Scotland were these
decisions heartily accepted. In England, notwithstanding their
confirmation by the Parliament, they received only partial and
occasional acceptance, owing to the prevalence of Independent
opinions among the people.--Since A.D. 1642, the tension between
court and Parliament had brought about the Civil War between
Cavaliers and Roundheads. In A.D. 1645, the royal troops were
cut to pieces at Naseby by the parliamentary army under Fairfax
and Cromwell. The king fled to the Scotch, by whom he was
surrendered to the English Parliament in A.D. 1647. But when
now the fanatical Independents, who formed a majority in the
army, began to terrorise the Parliament, it opened negotiations
for peace with the king. He was now ready to make almost
any sacrifice, only on religious and conscientious grounds he
could not agree to the unconditional abandonment of Episcopacy.
Even the Scotch, whose Presbyterianism was now threatened by
the Independents, as before it had been by the Episcopalians,
longed for the restoration of royalty, and to aid in this
sent an army into England in A.D. 1648. But they were defeated
by Cromwell, who then dismissed the Parliament and had all
its Presbyterian members either imprisoned or driven into
retirement. The Independent remnant, known as the Rump
Parliament, A.D. 1648-1653, tried the king for high treason
and sentenced him to death. On January 30th, A.D. 1649, he
mounted the scaffold, on which Archbishop Laud had preceded
him in A.D. 1645, and fell under the executioner’s axe.[454]
§ 155.2. =The Commonwealth and the Protector.=--Ireland had
never yet atoned for its crime of A.D. 1641 (§ 153, 6), and
as it refused to acknowledge the Commonwealth, Cromwell took
terrible revenge in A.D. 1649. In A.D. 1650 at Dunbar, and in
A.D. 1651 at Worcester, he completely destroyed the army of the
Scots, who had crowned Charles II., son of the executed king,
drove out, in April A.D. 1653, the Rump of the Long Parliament,
which had come to regard itself as a permanent institution,
and in July opened, with a powerful speech, two hours in length,
on God’s ways and judgments, the Short or Barebones’ Parliament,
composed of “pious and God-fearing men” selected by himself.
In this new Parliament which, with prayer and psalm-singing,
wrought hard at the re-organization of the executive, the
bench, and the church, the two parties of Independents were
represented, the fanatical enthusiasts indeed predominating,
and so victorious in all matters of debate. To this party
Cromwell himself belonged. His attachment to it, however,
was considerably cooled in consequence of the excesses of
the Levellers (§ 161, 2), and the fantastic policy of the
parliamentarian Saints disgusted him more and more. When
therefore, on December 12th, A.D. 1653, after five months’
fruitless opposition to the radical demands of the extravagant
majority, all the most moderate members of the Parliament
had resigned their seats and returned their mandates into
Cromwell’s hands, he burst in upon the psalm-singing remnant
with his soldiers, and entered upon his life-long office of
the Protector of the Commonwealth with a new constitution. He
proclaimed toleration of all religious sects, Catholics only
being excepted on political grounds (§ 153, 6), giving equal
rights to Presbyterians, and offering no hindrance to the
revival of Episcopacy. He yet remained firmly attached to
his early convictions. He believed in a kingdom of the saints
embracing the whole earth, and looked on England as destined
for the protection and spread of Protestantism. Zürich greeted
him as the great Protestant champion, and he showed himself
in this _rôle_ in the valleys of Piedmont (§ 153, 5), in
France, in Poland, and in Silesia. He joined with all Protestant
governments into a league, offensive and defensive, against
fanatical attempts of Papists to recover their lost ground. When
Spain and France sued for his alliance, he made it a condition
with the former that, besides allowing free trade with the West
Indies, it should abolish the Inquisition; and of France he
required an assurance that the rights of Huguenots should be
respected. And when in Germany a new election of emperor was
to take place, he urged the great electors that they should by
no means allow the imperial throne to continue with the Catholic
house of Austria. Meanwhile his path at home was a thorny one.
He was obliged to suppress fifteen open rebellions during five
years of his reign, countless secret plots threatened his life
every day, and his bitterest foes were his former comrades in
the camp of the the saints. After refusing the crown offered
him in A.D. 1657, without being able thereby to quell the
discontents of parties, he died on September 3rd, A.D. 1658,
the anniversary of his glorious victories of Dunbar and
Worcester.[455]
§ 155.3. =The Restoration and the Act of Toleration.=--The
Restoration of royalty under =Charles II.=, A.D. 1660-1685,
began with the reinstating of the Episcopal church in all the
privileges granted to it under Elizabeth. The Corporation Act
of December, A.D. 1661, was the first of a series of enactments
for this purpose. It required of all magistrates and civil
officers that they should take an oath acknowledging the royal
supremacy and communicate in the Episcopal church. The Act
of Uniformity of May, A.D. 1662, was still more oppressive.
It prohibited any clergyman entering the English pulpit or
discharging any ministerial function, unless he had been
ordained by a bishop, had signed the Thirty-nine Articles,
and undertook to conduct worship exactly in accordance with
the newly revised Book of Common Prayer. More than 2,000 Puritan
ministers, who could not conscientiously submit to those terms,
were driven out of their churches. Then in June, A.D. 1664,
the Conventicle Act was renewed, enforcing attendance at the
Episcopal church, and threatening with imprisonment or exile
all found in any private religious meeting of more than five
persons. In the following year the Five Mile Act inflicted
heavy fines on all nonconformist ministers who should approach
within five miles of their former congregation or indeed of any
city. All these laws, although primarily directed against all
Protestant dissenters, told equally against the Catholics, whom
the king’s Catholic sympathies would willingly have spared.
When now his league with Catholic France against the Protestant
Netherlands made it necessary for him to appease his Protestant
subjects, he hoped to accomplish this and save the Catholics
by his “Declaration of Indulgence” of A.D. 1672, issued with
the consent of Parliament, which suspended all penal laws
hitherto in force against dissenters. But the Protestant
nonconformists saw through this scheme, and the Parliament
of A.D. 1673 passed the anti-Catholic Test Act (§ 153, 6).
Equally vain were all later attempts to secure greater liberties
and privileges to the Catholics. They only served to develop
the powers of Parliament and to bring the Episcopalians and
nonconformists more closely together. After spending his
whole life oscillating between frivolous unbelief and Catholic
superstition, Charles II., on his death-bed, formally went over
to the Romish church, and had the communion and extreme unction
administered by a Catholic priest. His brother and successor
=James II.=, A.D. 1685-1688, who was from A.D. 1672 an avowed
Catholic, sent a declaration of obedience to Rome, received
a papal nuncio in London, and in the exercise of despotic power
issued, in A.D. 1687, a “Declaration of Freedom of Conscience,”
which, under the fair colour of universal toleration and by the
setting aside of the test oath, enabled him to fill all civil
and military offices with Catholics. This act proved equally
oppressive to the Episcopalians and to Protestant dissenters.
This intrigue cost him his throne. He had, as he himself
said, staked three kingdoms on a mass, and lost all the three.
=William III.= of Orange, A.D. 1689-1702, grandson of Charles I.
and son-in-law of James II., gave a final decision to the rights
of the national Episcopal church and the position of dissenters
in the =Act of Toleration= of A.D. 1689, which he passed with
consent of the Parliament. All penal laws against the latter
were abrogated, and religious liberty was extended to all with
the exception of Catholics and Socinians. The retention of the
Corporation and Test Acts, however, still excluded them from the
exercise of all political rights. They were also still obliged
to pay tithes and other church dues to the Episcopal clergy
of their dioceses, and their marriages and baptisms had to be
administered in the parish churches. Their ministers were also
obliged to subscribe the Thirty-nine Articles, with reservation
of those points opposed to their principles. The Act of Union
of A.D. 1707, passed under Queen Anne, a daughter of James II.,
which united England and Scotland into the one kingdom of Great
Britain, gave legitimate sanction to a separate ecclesiastical
establishment for each country. In Scotland the Presbyterian
churches continued the established church, while the Episcopal
was tolerated as a dissenting body. Congregationalism, however,
has been practically limited to England and North
America.[456]--Continuation, § 202, 5.
II. The Roman Catholic Church.
§ 156. THE PAPACY, MONKERY, AND FOREIGN MISSIONS.
Notwithstanding the regeneration of papal Catholicism since the
middle of the sixteenth century, Hildebrand’s politico-theocratic
ideal was not realized. Even Catholic princes would not be dictated
to on political matters by the vicar of Christ. The most powerful of
them, France, Austria, and Spain, during the sixteenth century, and
subsequently also Portugal, had succeeded in the claim to the right of
excluding objectionable candidates in papal elections. Ban and interdict
had lost their power. The popes, however, still clung to the idea after
they had been obliged to surrender the reality, and issued from time
to time powerless protestations against disagreeable facts of history.
Several new monkish orders were instituted during this century, mostly
for teaching the young and tending the sick, but some also expressly
for the promoting of theological science. Of all the orders, new and
old, the Jesuits were by far the most powerful. They were regarded with
jealousy and suspicion by the other orders. In respect of doctrine the
Dominicans were as far removed from them as possible within the limits
of the Tridentine Creed. But notwithstanding any such mutual jealousies,
they were all animated by one yearning desire to oppose, restrict, and,
where that was possible, to uproot Protestantism. With similar zeal
they devoted themselves with wonderful success to the work of foreign
missions.
§ 156.1. =The Papacy.=--=Paul V.=, A.D. 1605-1621,
equally energetic in his civil and in his ecclesiastical
policy, in a struggle with Venice, was obliged to behold
the powerlessness of the papal interdict. His successor,
=Gregory XV.=, A.D. 1621-1623, founded the Propaganda,
prescribed a secret scrutiny in papal elections, and canonized
Loyola, Xavier, and Neri. He enriched the Vatican Library
by the addition of the valuable treasures of the Heidelberg
Library, which Maximilian I. of Bavaria sent him on his
conquest of the Palatinate. =Urban VIII.=, A.D. 1623-1644,
increased the Propaganda, improved the Roman “Breviary”
(§ 56, 2), condemned Jansen’s _Augustinus_ (§ 156, 5), and
compelled Galileo to recant. But on the other hand, through
his onesided ecclesiastical policy he was led into sacrificing
the interests of the imperial house of Austria. Not only did
he fail to give support to the emperor, but quite openly hailed
Gustavus Adolphus, the saviour of German Protestantism, as the
God-sent saviour from the Spanish-Austrian tyranny. For this he
was pronounced a heretic at the imperial court, and threatened
with a second edition of the sack of Rome (§ 132, 2). At the
same time his soul was so filled with fanatical hatred against
Protestantism, that in a letter of 1631 he congratulated the
Emperor Ferdinand II. on the destruction of Magdeburg as an
act most pleasing to heaven and reflecting the highest credit
upon Germany, and expressed the hope that the glory of so great
a victory should not be restricted to the ruins of a single
city. On receiving the news of the death of Gustavus Adolphus
in 1632 he broke out into loud jubilation, saying that now “the
serpent was slain which with its poison had sought to destroy
the whole world.” His successor, =Innocent X.=, A.D. 1644-1655,
though vigorously protesting against the Peace of Westphalia
(§ 153, 2), was, owing to his abject subserviency to a woman,
his own sister-in-law, reproached with the title of a new
_Johanna Papissa_. =Alexander VII.=, A.D. 1655-1667, had the
expensive guardianship of his godchild Christina of Sweden
(§ 153, 1), and fanned into a flame the spark kindled by his
predecessor in the Jansenist controversy (§ 156, 5), so that his
successor, =Clement IX.=, A.D. 1667-1670, could only gradually
extinguish it. =Clement X.=, A.D. 1670-1676, by his preference
for Spain roused the French king Louis XIV., who avenged himself
by various encroachments on the ecclesiastical administration
in his dominions. =Innocent XI.=, A.D. 1676-1689, was a powerful
pope, zealously promoting the weal of the church and the Papal
States by introducing discipline among the clergy and attacking
the immorality that prevailed among all classes of society.
He unhesitatingly condemned sixty-five propositions from the
lax Jesuit code of morals. Against the arrogant ambassador
of Louis XIV. he energetically maintained his sovereign
rights in his own domains, while he unreservedly refused
the claims of the French clergy, urged by the king on the
ground of the exceptional constitution of the Gallican church.
=Alexander VIII.=, A.D. 1689-1691, continued the fight against
Gallicanism, and condemned the Jesuit distinction between
theological and philosophical sin (§ 149, 10). =Innocent XII.=,
A.D. 1691-1700, could boast of having secured the complete
subjugation of the Gallican clergy after a hard struggle. He
too wrought earnestly for the reform of abuses in the curia.
Specially creditable to him is the stringent bull “_Romanum
decet pontificem_” against nepotism, which extirpated the
evil disease, so that it was never again openly practised as
an acknowledged right.--Continuation, § 165, 1.
§ 156.2. =The Jesuits and the Republic of Venice.=--Venice was
one of the first of the Italian cities to receive the Jesuits
with open arms, A.D. 1530. But the influence obtained by them
over public affairs through school and confessional, and their
vast wealth accumulated from bequests and donations, led the
government, in A.D. 1605, to forbid their receiving legacies
or erecting new cloisters. In vain did Paul V. remonstrate.
He then put Venice under an interdict. The Jesuits sought to
excite the people against the government, and for this were
banished in A.D. 1606. The pious and learned historian of the
Council of Trent and adviser of the State, Paul Sarpi, proved
a vigorous supporter of civil rights against the assumptions
of the curia and the Jesuits. When in A.D. 1607 he refused a
citation of Inquisition, he was dangerously wounded by three
dagger stabs, inflicted by hired bandits, in whose stilettos
he recognised the _stilum curiæ_. He died in A.D. 1623.
After a ten months’ vain endeavour to enforce the interdict,
the pope at last, through French mediation, concluded a peace
with the republic, without, however, being able to obtain either
the abolition of the objectionable ecclesiastico-political laws
or permission for the return of the Jesuits. Only after the
republic had been weakened through the unfortunate Turkish war
of A.D. 1645 was it found willing to submit. Even in A.D. 1653
it refused the offer of 150,000 ducats from the Jesuit general
for the Turkish campaign; but when Alexander VII. suppressed
several rich cloisters, their revenues were thankfully accepted
for this purpose. In A.D. 1657, on the pope’s promise of further
pecuniary aid, the decree of banishment was withdrawn. The
Jesuit fathers now returned in crowds, and soon regained much
of their former influence and wealth. No pope has ever since
issued an interdict against any country.[457]
§ 156.3. =The Gallican Liberties.=--Although =Louis XIV.=
of France, A.D. 1643-1715, as a good Catholic king, powerfully
supported the claims of papal dogmatics against the Jansenists
(§§ 156, 5; 165, 7), he was by no means unfaithful to the
traditional ecclesiastical polity of his house (§§ 96, 21;
110, 1, 9, 13, 14), and was often irritated to the utmost
pitch by the pope’s opposition to his political interests.
He rigorously insisted upon the old customary right of
the Crown to the income of certain vacant ecclesiastical
offices, the _jus regaliæ_, and extended it to all bishoprics,
burdened church revenues with military pensions, confiscated
ecclesiastical property, etc. Innocent XI. energetically
protested against such exactions. The king then had an assembly
of the French called together in Paris on March 19th, A.D. 1682,
which issued the famous =Four Propositions of the Gallican
Clergy=, drawn up by Bishop Bossuet of Meaux. These set forth
the fundamental rights of the French church:
1. In secular affairs the pope has no jurisdiction over
princes and kings, and cannot release their subjects
from their allegiance;
2. The spiritual power of the pope is subject to the higher
authority of the general councils;
3. For France it is further limited by the old French
ecclesiastical laws; and,
4. Even in matters of faith the judgment of the pope without
the approval of a general assembly of the church is not
unalterable.
Innocent consequently refused to institute any of the newly
appointed bishops. He was not even appeased by the Revocation
of the Edict of Nantes in A.D. 1685. He was pleased indeed, and
praised the deed, and celebrated it by a _Te Deum_, but objected
to the violent measures for the conversion of Protestants as
contrary to the teaching of Christ. Then also there arose a
keen struggle against the mischievous extension of the right
of asylum on the part of foreign embassies at Rome. On the
pope’s representation all the powers but France agreed to
a restriction of the custom. The pope tolerated the nuisance
till the death of the French ambassador in A.D. 1687, but
then insisted on its abolition under pain of the ban. In
consequence of this Louis sent his new ambassador into Rome
with two companies of cavaliers, threw the papal nuntio in
France into prison, and laid siege to the papal state of
Avignon (§ 110, 4). But Innocent was not thus to be terrorized,
and the French ambassador was obliged, after eighteen months’
vain demonstrations, to quit Rome. Alexander VIII. repeated the
condemnation of the Four Propositions, and Innocent XIII. also
stood firm. The French episcopate, on the pope’s persistent
refusal to install bishops nominated by the king, was at last
constrained to submit. “Lying at the feet of his holiness,”
the bishops declared that everything concluded in that assembly
was null and void; and even Louis XIV., under the influence of
Madame de Maintenon (§ 157, 3), wrote to the pope in A.D. 1693,
saying that he recalled the order that the Four Propositions
should be taught in all the schools. There still, however,
survived among the French clergy a firm conviction of the
Gallican Liberties, and the _droit de régale_ continued to
have the force of law.[458]--Continuation, § 197, 1.
§ 156.4. =Galileo and the Inquisition.=--Galileo Galilei,
professor of mathematics at Pisa and Padua, who died in
A.D. 1642, among his many distinguished services to the
physical, mathematical, and astronomical sciences, has the
honour of being the pioneer champion of the Copernican system.
On this account he was charged by the monks with contradicting
Scripture. In A.D. 1616 Paul V., through Cardinal Bellarmine,
threatened him with the Inquisition and prison unless he agreed
to cease from vindicating and lecturing upon his heretical
doctrine. He gave the required promise. But in A.D. 1632
he published a dialogue, in which three friends discussed
the Ptolemaic and Copernican systems, without any formal
conclusion, but giving overwhelming reasons in favour of the
latter. Urban VIII., in A.D. 1636, called upon the Inquisition
to institute a process against him. He was forced to recant,
was condemned to prison for an indefinite period, but was soon
liberated through powerful influence. How far the old man of
seventy-two years of age was compelled by torture to retract
is still a matter of controversy. It is, however, quite evident
that it was forced from him by threats. But that Galileo went
out after his recantation, gnashing his teeth and stamping
his feet, muttering, “Nevertheless it moves!” is a legend
of a romancing age. This, however, is the fact, that the
Congregation of the Index declared the Copernican theory to
be false, irrational, and directly contrary to Scripture; and
that even in A.D. 1660 Alexander VII., with apostolic authority,
formally confirmed this decree and pronounced it _ex cathedrâ_
(§ 149, 4) irrevocable. It was only in A.D. 1822 that the curia
set it aside, and in a new edition of the Index (§ 149, 14)
in A.D. 1835 omitted the works of Galileo as well as those
of Copernicus.[459]
§ 156.5. =The Controversy on the Immaculate Conception=
(§ 112, 4) received a new impulse from the nun =Mary of Jesus,
died 1665, of Agreda=, in Old Castile, superior of the cloister
there of the Immaculate Conception, writer of the “Mystical
City of God.” This book professed to give an inspired account
of the life of the Virgin, full of the strangest absurdities
about the immaculate conception. The Sorbonne pronounced it
offensive and silly; the Inquisition in Spain, Portugal, and
Rome forbad the reading of it; but the Franciscans defended
it as a divine revelation. A violent controversy ensued, which
Alexander VII. silenced in A.D. 1661 by expressing approval
of the doctrine of the immaculate conception set forth in the
book.--Continuation, § 185, 2.
§ 156.6. =The Devotion of the Sacred Heart of Jesus.=--The
nun =Margaret Alacoque=, in the Burgundian cloister of _Paray
le Monial_, born A.D. 1647, recovering from a painful illness
when but three years old, vowed to the mother of God, who
frequently appeared to her, perpetual chastity, and in gratitude
for her recovery adopted the name of Mary, and when grown up
resisted temptations by inflicting on herself the severest
discipline, such as long fasts, sharp flagellations, lying
on thorns, etc. Visions of the Virgin no longer satisfied her.
She longed to lavish her affections on the Redeemer himself,
which she expressed in the most extravagant terms. She took the
Jesuit =La Colombière= as her spiritual adviser in A.D. 1675.
In a new vision she beheld the side of her Beloved opened,
and saw his heart glowing like a sun, into which her own was
absorbed. Down to her death in A.D. 1690 she felt the most
violent burning pains in her side. In a second vision she saw
her Beloved’s heart burning like a furnace, into which were
taken her own heart and that of her spiritual adviser. In a
third vision he enjoined the observance of a special “Devotion
of the Sacred Heart” by all Christendom on the Friday after the
octave of the _Corpus Christi_ festival and on the first Friday
of every month. La Colombière, being made director, put forth
every effort to get this celebration introduced throughout the
church, and on his death the idea was taken up by the whole
Jesuit order. Their efforts, however, for fully a century proved
unavailing. At this point, too, their most bitter opponents were
the Dominicans. But even without papal authority the Jesuits
so far succeeded in introducing the absurdities of this cult,
and giving expression to it in word and by images, that by the
beginning of the eighteenth century there were more than 300
male and female societies engaged in this devotion, and at last,
in A.D. 1765, =Clement XIII.=, the great friend of the Jesuits,
gave formal sanction to this special celebration.--Continuation,
§ 188, 12.
§ 156.7. =New Congregations and Orders.=
1. At the head of the new orders of this century stands
the =Benedictine Congregation of St. Banne= at Verdun,
founded by Didier de la Cour. Elected Abbot of St. Banne
in A.D. 1596, he gave his whole strength to the reforming
of this cloister, which had fallen into luxurious and
immoral habits. By a papal bull of A.D. 1604 all cloisters
combining with St. Banne into a congregation were endowed
with rich privileges. Gradually all the Benedictine
monasteries of Lorraine and Alsace joined the union.
Didier’s reforms were mostly in the direction of moral
discipline and asceticism; but in the new congregation
scholarship was represented by Calmet, Ceillier, etc., and
many gave themselves to work as teachers in the schools.
2. Much more important for the promotion of theological
science, especially for patristics and church history,
was another Benedictine congregation founded in France
in A.D. 1618 by Laurence Bernard, that of =St. Maur=,
named after a disciple of St. Benedict. The members of
this order devoted themselves exclusively to science and
literary pursuits. To them belonged the distinguished
names, Mabillon, Montfaucon, Reinart, Martène, D’Achery,
Le Nourry, Durand, Surius, etc. They showed unwearied
diligence in research and a noble liberality of judgment.
The editions of the most celebrated Fathers issued by
them are the best of the kind, and this may also be said
of the great historical collections which we owe to their
diligence.
3. =The Fathers of the Oratory of Jesus= are an imitation
of the Priests of the Oratory founded by Philip Neri
(§ 149, 7). Peter of Barylla, son of a member of parliament,
founded it in A.D. 1611 by building an oratory at Paris.
He was more of a mystic than of a scholar, but his order
sent out many distinguished and brilliant theologians;
_e.g._ Malebranche, Morinus, Thomassinus, Rich, Simon,
Houbigant.
4. =The Piarists=, _Patres scholarum piarum_, were founded
in Rome in A.D. 1607 by the Spaniard Joseph Calasanza. The
order adopted as a fourth vow the obligation of gratuitous
tuition. They were hated by the Obscurantist Jesuits for
their successful labours for the improvement of Catholic
education, especially in Poland and Austria, and also
because they objected to all participation in political
schemes.
5. =The Order of the Visitation of Mary=, or _Salesian Nuns_,
instituted in A.D. 1610 by the mystic Francis de Sales
and Francisca Chantal (§ 157, 1). They visited the poor
and sick in imitation of Elizabeth’s visit to the Virgin
(Luke i. 39); but the papal rescript of A.D. 1618 gave
prominence to the education of children.
§ 156.8.
6. =The Priests of the Missions and Sisters of Charity= were
both founded by Vincent de Paul. Born of poor parents,
he was, after completing his education, captured by
pirates, and as a slave converted his renegade master
to Christianity. As domestic chaplain to the noble family
of Gondy he was characterized in a remarkable degree
for unassuming humility, and he wrought earnestly and
successfully as a home missionary. In A.D. 1618 he founded
the order of Sisters of Mercy, who became devoted nurses
of the sick throughout all France, and in A.D. 1627 that
of the Priests of the Missions, or Lazarists, who travelled
the country attending to the spiritual and bodily wants
of men. After the death of the Countess Gondy in A.D. 1625,
he placed at the head of the Sisters of Mercy the widow
Louise le Gras, distinguished equally for qualities of head
and heart. Vincent died in A.D. 1660, and was subsequently
canonized.[460]
7. =The Trappists=, founded by De Rancé, a distinguished canon,
who in A.D. 1664 passed from the extreme of worldliness
to the extreme of fanatical asceticism. The order got its
name from the Cistercian abbey La Trappe in Normandy, of
which Rancé was commendatory abbot. Amid many difficulties
he succeeded, in A.D. 1665, in thoroughly reforming the
wild monks, who were called “the bandits of La Trappe.”
His rule enjoined on the monks perpetual silence, only
broken in public prayer and singing and in uttering
the greeting as they met, _Memento mori_. Their bed
was a hard board with some straw; their only food was
bread and water, roots, herbs, some fruit and vegetables,
without butter, fat, or oil. Study was forbidden, and they
occupied themselves with hard field labour. Their clothing
was a dark-brown cloak worn on the naked body, with wooden
shoes. Very few cloisters besides La Trappe submitted to
such severities (§ 185, 2).
8. =The English Nuns=, founded at St. Omer, in France, by
Mary Ward, the daughter of an English Catholic nobleman,
for the education of girls. Originally composed of English
maidens, it was afterwards enlarged by receiving those of
other nationalities, with establishments in Germany, Italy,
and the Netherlands. It did not obtain papal confirmation,
and in A.D. 1630 Urban VIII., giving heed to the calumnies
of enemies, formally dissolved it on account of arrogance,
insubordination, and heresy. All its institutions and
schools were then closed, while Mary herself was imprisoned
and given over to the Inquisition in Rome. Urban was
soon convinced of her innocence and set her free. Her
scattered nuns were now collected again, but succeeded only
in A.D. 1703 in obtaining confirmation from Clement XI.
Their chief tasks were the education of youth and care
of the sick. They were arranged in three classes, according
to their rank in life, and were bound by their vows for
a year or at the most three years, after which they might
return to the world and marry. Their chief centre was
Bavaria with the mother cloister in Munich.--Continuation,
§ 165, 2.
§ 156.9. =The Propaganda.=--Gregory XV. gave unity and strength
to the efforts for conversion of heretics and heathens by
instituting, in A.D. 1662, the _Congregatio de Propaganda
Fide_. Urban VIII. in A.D. 1627 attached to it a missionary
training school, recruited as far as possible from natives of
the respective countries, like Loyola’s _Collegium Germanicum_
founded in A.D. 1552 (§ 151, 1). He was thus able every Epiphany
to astonish Romans and foreigners by what seemed a repetition of
the pentecostal miracle of tongues. At this institute training
in all languages was given, and breviaries, mass and devotional
books, and handbooks were printed for the use of the missions.
It was also the centre from which all missionary enterprises
originated.--Continuation, § 204, 2.
§ 156.10. =Foreign Missions.=--Even during this century the
Jesuits excelled all others in missionary zeal. In A.D. 1608
they sent out from Madrid mission colonies among the wandering
Indians of South America, and no Spaniard could settle there
without their permission. The most thoroughly organized of
these was that of =Paraguay=, in which, according to their
own reports, over 100,000 converted savages lived happily
and contented under the mild, patriarchal rule of the Jesuits
for 140 years, A.D. 1610-1750; but according to another well
informed, though perhaps not altogether impartial, account,
that of Ibagnez, a member of the mission, expelled for advising
submission to the decree depriving it of political independence,
the paternal government was flavoured by a liberal dose of
slave-driver despotism. It was at least an undoubted fact,
notwithstanding the boasted patriarchal idyllic character of
the Jesuit state, that the order amassed great wealth from the
proceeds of the industry of their _protégés_.--Continuation,
§ 165, 3.
§ 156.11. =In the East Indies= (§ 150, 1) the Jesuits had
uninterrupted success. In A.D. 1606, in order to make way
among the Brahmans, the Jesuit Rob. Nobili assumed their
dress, avoided all contact with even the converts of low
caste, giving them the communion elements not directly, but
by an instrument, or laying them down for them outside the
door, and as a Christian Brahman made a considerable impression
upon the most exclusive classes.--In =Japan= the mission
prospects were dark (§ 150, 2). Mendicants and Jesuits opposed
and mutually excommunicated one another. The Catholic Spaniards
and Portuguese were at feud among themselves, and only agreed
in intriguing against Dutch and English Protestants. When the
land was opened to foreign trade, it became the gathering point
of the moral scum of all European countries, and the traffic in
Japanese slaves, especially by the Portuguese, brought discredit
on the Christian cause. The idea gained ground that the efforts
at Christianization were but a prelude to conquest by the
Spaniards and Portuguese. In the new organization of the country
by the _shiogun_ Ijejasu all governors were to vow hostility to
Christians and foreigners. In A.D. 1606 he forbad the observance
of the Christian religion anywhere in the land. When the
conspiracy of a Christian daimio was discovered, he caused,
in A.D. 1614, whole shiploads of Jesuits, mendicants, and
native priests to be sent out of the country. But as many
of the banished returned, death was threatened against all
who might be found, and in A.D. 1624 all foreigners, with the
exception of Chinese and Dutch, were rigorously driven out.
And now a bloody persecution of native Christians began. Many
thousands fled to China and the neighbouring islands; crowds
of those remaining were buried alive or burnt on piles made up
of the wood of Christian crosses. The victims displayed a martyr
spirit like those of the early days. Those who escaped organized
in A.D. 1637 an armed resistance, and held the fortress of Arima
in face of the _shiogun’s_ army sent against them. After a three
months’ siege the fortress was conquered by the help of Dutch
cannon; 37,000 were massacred in the fort, and the rest were
hurled down from high rocks. The most severe enactments were
passed against Christians, and the edicts filled with fearful
curses against “the wicked sect” and “the vile God” of the
Christians were posted on all the bridges, street corners, and
squares. Christianity now seemed to be completely stamped out.
The recollection of this work, however, was still retained down
to the nineteenth century. For when French missionaries went
in A.D. 1860 to Nagasaki, they found to their surprise in the
villages around thousands (?) who greeted them joyfully as the
successors of the first Christian missionaries.
§ 156.12. =In China=, after Ricci’s death (§ 150, 1), the
success of the mission continued uninterrupted. In A.D. 1628
a German Jesuit, Adam Schell, went out from Cologne, who gained
great fame at court for his mathematical skill. Louis XIV.
founded at Paris a missionary college, which sent out Jesuits
thoroughly trained in mathematics. But Dominicans and Franciscans
over and over again complained to Rome of the Jesuits. They
never allowed missionaries of other orders to come near their
own establishments, and actually drove them away from places
where they had begun to work. They even opposed priests,
bishops, and vicars-apostolic sent by the Propaganda, declared
their papal briefs forgeries, forbad their congregations to have
any intercourse with those “heretics,” and under suspicion of
Jansenism brought them before the Inquisition of Goa. Clement X.
issued a firm-toned bull against such proceedings; but the
Jesuits gave no heed to it, and attended only to their own
general. The papal condemnation a century later of the Jesuits’
accommodation scheme, and their permission of heathen rites
and beliefs to the new converts, complained against by the
Dominicans, was equally fruitless. In A.D. 1645 Innocent X.
forbad this practice on pain of excommunication; but still
they continued it till the decree was modified by Alexander VII.
in A.D. 1656. After persistent complaints by the Dominicans,
Innocent XII. appointed a new congregation in Rome to
investigate the question, but their deliberations yielded no
result for ten years. At last Clement XI. confirmed the first
decree of Innocent X., condemned anew the so called Chinese
rites, and sent the legate Thomas of Tournon in A.D. 1703 to
enforce his decision. Tournon, received at first by the emperor
at Pekin with great consideration, fell into disfavour through
Jesuit intrigues, was banished from the capital, and returned
to Nankin. But as he continued his efforts from this point,
and an attempt to poison him failed in A.D. 1707, he went to
Macao, where he was put in prison by the Portuguese, in which
he died in A.D. 1710. Clement XI., in A.D. 1715, issued his
decree against the Chinese rites in a yet severer form; but
the Franciscan who proclaimed the papal bull was put in prison
as an offender against the laws of the country, and, after
being maltreated for seventeen months, was banished. So proudly
confident had the Jesuits become, that in A.D. 1720 they treated
with scorn and contempt the papal legate Mezzabarba, Patriarch
of Alexandria, who tried by certain concessions to move them
to submit. A more severe decree of Clement XII. of A.D. 1735
was scoffed at by being proclaimed only in the Latin original.
Benedict XIV. succeeded for the first time, in A.D. 1742, in
breaking down their opposition, after the charges had been
renewed by the Capuchin Norbert. All the Jesuit missionaries
were now obliged by oath to exclude all pagan customs and rites;
but with this all the glory and wonderful success of their
Asiatic missions came to an end.--Continuation, § 165, 3.
§ 156.13. =Trade and Industry of the Jesuits.=--As Christian
missions generally deserve credit, not only for introducing
civilization and culture along with the preaching of the gospel
into far distant heathen lands, but also for having greatly
promoted the knowledge of countries, peoples, and languages
among their fellow countrymen at home, opening up new fields
for colonization and trade, these ends were also served by
the world-wide missionary enterprises of the Jesuits, and
were in perfect accordance with the character and intention of
this order, which aimed at universal dominion. In carrying out
these schemes the Jesuits abandoned the ascetical principles
of their founder and their vow of poverty, amassing enormous
wealth by securing in many parts a practical monopoly of
trade. Their fifth general, Aquaviva (§ 149, 8), secured from
Gregory XIII., avowedly in favour of the mission, exclusive
right to trade with both Indies. They soon erected great
factories in all parts of the world, and had ships laden
with valuable merchandise on all seas. They had mines, farms,
sugar plantations, apothecary shops, bakeries, etc., founded
banks, sold relics, miracle-working amulets, rosaries, healing
Ignatius- and Xavier-water (§ 149, 11), etc., and in successful
legacy-hunting excelled all other orders. Urban VIII. and
Clement XI. issued severe bulls against such abuses, but only
succeeded in restricting them to some extent.--Continuation,
§ 165, 9.
§ 156.14. =An Apostate to Judaism.=--Gabriel, or as he was
called after circumcision, =Uriel Acosta=, was sprung from
a noble Portuguese family, originally Jewish. Doubting
Christianity in consequence of the traffic in indulgences,
he at last repudiated the New Testament in favour of the Old.
He refused rich ecclesiastical appointments, fled to Amsterdam,
and there formally went over to Judaism. Instead of the biblical
Mosaism, however, he was disappointed to find only Pharisaic
pride and Talmudic traditionalism, against which he wrote
a treatise in A.D. 1623. The Jews now denounced him to the
civil authorities as a denier of God and immortality. The whole
issue of his book was burnt. Twice the synagogue thundered its
ban against him. The first was withdrawn on his recantation,
and the second, seven years after, upon his submitting to a
severe flagellation. In spite of all he held to his Sadducean
standpoint to his end in A.D. 1647, when he died by his own
hand from a pistol shot, driven to despair by the unceasing
persecution of the Jews.
§ 157. QUIETISM AND JANSENISM.
Down to the last quarter of the seventeenth century the Spanish
Mystics (§ 149, 16), and especially those attached to Francis de Sales,
were recognised as thoroughly orthodox. But now the Jesuits appeared as
the determined opponents of all mysticism that savoured of enthusiasm.
By means of vile intrigues they succeeded in getting Molinos, Guyon,
and Fénelon condemned, as “Quietist” heretics, although the founder
of their party had been canonized and his doctrine solemnly sanctioned
by the pope. Yet more objectionable to the Jesuits was that reaction
toward Augustinianism which, hitherto limited to the Dominicans
(§ 149, 13), and treated by them as a theological theory, was
now spreading among other orders in the form of French Jansenism,
accompanied by deep moral earnestness and a revival of the whole
Christian life.
§ 157.1. =Francis de Sales and Madame Chantal.=--Francis Count
de Sales, from A.D. 1602 Bishop of Geneva, _i.e._ _in partibus_,
with Annecy as his residence, had shown himself a good Catholic
by his zeal in rooting out Protestantism in Chablais, on the
south of the Genevan lake. In A.D. 1604 meeting the young
widowed Baroness de Chantal, along with whom at a later period
he founded the Order of the Visitation of Mary (§ 156, 7),
he proved a good physician to her amid her sorrow, doubts,
and temptations. He sought to qualify himself for this task
by reading the writings of St. Theresa. Teacher and scholar
so profited by their mystical studies, that in A.D. 1665
Alexander VII. deemed the one worthy of canonization and the
other of beatification. In A.D. 1877 Pius IX. raised Francis
to the dignity of _doctor ecclesiæ_. His “Introduction to
the Devout Life” affords a guide to laymen to the life of
the soul, amid all the disturbances of the world resting in
calm contemplation and unselfish love of God. In the Catholic
Church, next to À Kempis’ “Imitation of Christ,” it is the
most appreciated and most widely used book of devotion. In
his “_Theotime_” he leads the reader deeper into the yearnings
of the soul after fellowship with God, and describes the perfect
peace which the soul reaches in God.[461]
§ 157.2. =Michael Molinos.=--After Francis de Sales a great
multitude of male and female apostles of the new mystical
gospel sprang up, and were favourably received by all the
more moderate church leaders. The reactionaries, headed by the
Jesuits, sought therefore all the more eagerly to deal severely
with the Spaniard Michael Molinos. Having settled in Rome in
A.D. 1669, he soon became the most popular of father confessors.
His “Spiritual Guide” in A.D. 1675 received the approval of the
Holy Office, and was introduced into Protestant Germany through
a Latin translation by Francke in A.D. 1687, and a German
translation in A.D. 1699 by Arnold. In it he taught those who
came to the confessional that the way to the perfection of
the Christian life, which consists in peaceful rest in the
most intimate communion with God, is to be found in spiritual
conference, secret prayer, active and passive contemplation,
in rigorous destruction of all self-will, and in disinterested
love of God, fortified, wherever that is possible, by daily
communion. The success of the book was astonishing. It promptly
influenced all ranks and classes, both men and women, lay and
clerical, not only in Italy, but also by means of translations
in France and Spain. But soon a reaction set in. As early
as A.D. 1681 the famous Jesuit =Segneri= issued a treatise,
in which he charged Molinos’ contemplative mysticism with
onesidedness and exaggeration. He was answered by the pious
and learned Oratorian =Petrucci=. A commission, appointed
by the Inquisition to examine the writings of both parties,
pronounced the views of Molinos and Petrucci to be in accordance
with church doctrine and Segneri’s objections to be unfounded.
All that Jesuitism reckoned as foundation, means, and end of
piety was characterized as purely elementary. No hope could
be entertained of winning over Innocent XI., the bitter enemy
of the Jesuits. But Louis XIV. of France, at the instigation
of his Jesuit father confessor, Lachaise, expressed through
his ambassador his surprise that his holiness should, not only
tolerate, but even encourage and support so dangerous a heretic,
who taught all Christendom to undervalue the public services
of the Church. In A.D. 1685 Innocent referred the matter to
the tribunal of the Inquisition. Throughout the two years
during which the investigation proceeded all arts were used to
secure condemnation. Extreme statements of fanatical adherents
of Molinos were not rarely met with, depreciating the public
ordinances and ceremonies, confession, hearing of mass, church
prayers, rosaries, etc. The pope, facile with age, amid groans
and lamentations, allowed things to take their course, and at
last confirmed the decree of the Inquisition of August 28th,
A.D. 1687, by which Molinos was found guilty of spreading
godless doctrine, and sixty-eight propositions, partly from
his own writings, partly from the utterances of his adherents,
were condemned as heretical and blasphemous. The heretic was
to abjure his heresies publicly, clad in penitential garments,
and was then consigned to lifelong solitary confinement in a
Dominican cloister, where he died in A.D. 1697.[462]
§ 157.3. =Madame Guyon and Fénelon.=--After her husband’s
death, =Madame Guyon=, in company with her father confessor,
the Barnabite =Lacombe=, who had been initiated during a long
residence at Rome into the mysteries of Molinist mysticism,
spent five years travelling through France, Switzerland,
Savoy, and Piedmont. Though already much suspected, she won
the hearts of many men and women among the clergy and laity,
and enkindled in them by personal conference, correspondence,
and her literary work, the ardour of mystical love. Her
brilliant writings are indeed disfigured by traces of foolish
exaggeration, fanaticism and spiritual pride. She calls herself
the woman of Revelation xii. 1, and the _mère de la grace_
of her adherents. The following are the main distinguishing
characteristics of her mysticism: The necessity of turning
away from everything creaturely, rejecting all earthly pleasure
and destroying every selfish interest, as well as of turning
to God in passive contemplation, silent devotion, naked faith,
which dispensed with all intellectual evidence, and pure
disinterested love, which loves God for Himself alone, not
for the eternal salvation obtained through Him. On her return
to Paris with Lacombe in A.D. 1686 the proper martyrdom of
her life began. Her chief persecutor was her step-brother,
the Parisian superior of the Barnabites, La Mothe, who spread
the most scandalous reports about his half-sister and Lacombe,
and had them both imprisoned by a royal decree in A.D. 1688.
Lacombe never regained his liberty. Taken from one prison to
another, he lost his reason, and died in an asylum in A.D. 1699.
Madame Guyon, however, by the influence of Madame de Maintenon,
was released after ten months’ confinement. The favour of
this royal dame was not of long continuance. Warned on all
sides of the dangerous heretic, she broke off all intercourse
with her in A.D. 1693, and persuaded the king to appoint a
new commission, in A.D. 1694, with Bishop =Bossuet= of Meaux
at its head, to examine her suspected writings. This commission
meeting at Issy, had already, in February, A.D. 1695, drawn
up thirty test articles, when =Fénelon=, tutor of the king’s
grandson, and now nominated to the archbishopric of Cambray,
was ordered by the king to take part in the proceedings. He
signed the articles, though he objected to much in them, and
had four articles of his own added. Madame Guyon also did so,
and Bossuet at last testified for her that he had found her
moral character stainless and her doctrine free from Molinist
heresy. But the bigot Maintenon was not satisfied with this.
Bossuet demanded the surrender of this certificate that he
might draw up another; and when Madame Guyon refused, on
the basis of a statement by the crazed Lacombe, she was sent
to the Bastile [Bastille] in A.D. 1696. In A.D. 1697 Fénelon
had written in her defence his “_Explication des Maximes des
Saintes sur la Vie Intérieur_,” showing that the condemned
doctrines of passive contemplation, secret prayer, naked
faith, and disinterested love, had all been previously taught
by St. Theresa, John of the Cross, Francis de Sales, and other
saints. He sent this treatise for an opinion to Rome. A violent
controversy then arose between Bossuet and Fénelon. The pious,
well-meaning pope, =Innocent XII.=, endeavoured vainly to
bring about a good understanding. Bossuet and the all-powerful
Maintenon wished no reconciliation, but condemnation, and gave
the king and pope no rest till very reluctantly he prohibited
the objectionable book by a brief in A.D. 1699, and condemned
twenty-three propositions from it as heretical. Fénelon,
strongly attached to the church, and a bitter persecutor
of Protestants, made an unconditional surrender, as guilty
of a defective exposition of the truth. But Madame Guyon
continued in the Bastile [Bastille] till A.D. 1701, when she
retired to Blois, where she died in A.D. 1717. Bossuet had
died in A.D. 1704, and Fénelon in A.D. 1715. She published
only two of her writings: “An Exposition of the Song,” and
the “_Moyen Court et très Facile de faire Oraison_.” Many
others, including her translation and expositions of the
Bible, were during her lifetime edited in twenty volumes by
her friend, the Reformed preacher of the Palatinate, Peter
Poiret.[463]
§ 157.4. =Mysticism Tinged with Theosophy and
Pantheism.=--=Antoinette Bourignon=, the daughter of a rich
merchant of Lille, in France, while matron of a hospital in
her native city, had in A.D. 1662 gathered around her a party
of believers in her theosophic and fantastic revelations.
She was obliged to flee to the Netherlands, and there, by
the force of her eloquence in speech and writing, spread her
views among the Protestants. Among them she attracted the
great scientist Swammerdam. But when she introduced politics,
she escaped imprisonment only by flight. Down to her death
in A.D. 1680 she earnestly and successfully prosecuted
her mission in north-west Germany. Peter Poiret collected
her writings and published them in twenty-one volumes at
Amsterdam, in A.D. 1679.--Quite of another sort was the
pantheistic mysticism of =Angelus Silesius=. Originally
a Protestant physician at Breslau, he went over to the
Romish church in A.D. 1653, and in consequence received from
Vienna the honorary title of physician to the emperor. He
was made priest in A.D. 1661, and till his death in A.D. 1677
maintained a keen polemic against the Protestant church
with all a pervert’s zeal. Most of his hymns belong to his
Protestant period. As a Catholic he wrote his “_Cherubinischer
Wandersmann_,” a collection of rhymes in which, with childish
_naïveté_ and hearty, gushing ardour, he merges self into the
abyss of the universal Deity, and develops a system of the most
pronounced pantheism.
§ 157.5. =Jansenism in its first Stage.=--Bishop Cornelius
Jansen, of Ypres, who died in A.D. 1638, gave the fruits
of his lifelong studies of Augustine in his learned work,
“_Augustinus s. doctr. Aug. de humanæ Naturæ Sanitate,
Ægritudine, et Medicina adv. Pelagianos et Massilienses_,”
which was published after his death in three volumes, Louvain,
1640. The Jesuits induced Urban VIII., in A.D. 1642, to prohibit
it in his bull _In eminenti_. Augustine’s numerous followers
in France felt themselves hit by this decree. Jansen’s pupil
at Port Royal from A.D. 1635, Duvergier de Hauranne, usually
called St. Cyran, from the Benedictine monastery of which he
was abbot, was the bitter foe of the Jesuits and Richelieu,
who had him cast into prison in A.D. 1638, from which he was
liberated after the death of the cardinal in A.D. 1643, and
shortly before his own. Another distinguished member of the
party was Antoine Arnauld, doctor of the Sorbonne, who died in
A.D. 1694, the youngest of twenty children of a parliamentary
advocate, whose powerful defence of the University of Paris
against the Jesuits called forth their hatred and lifelong
persecution. His mantle, as a vigorous polemist, had fallen
upon his youngest son. Very important too was the influence
of his much older sister, Angelica Arnauld, Abbess of the
Cistercian cloister of Port Royal des Champs, six miles from
Paris, which under her became the centre of religious life and
effort for all France. Around her gathered some of the noblest,
most pious, and talented men of the time: the poet Racine, the
mathematician and apologist Pascal, the Bible translator De Sacy,
the church historian Tillemont, all ardent admirers of Augustine
and determined opponents of the lax morality of the Jesuits.
Arnauld’s book, “_De la fréquente Communion_,” was approved
by the Sorbonne, the Parliament, and the most distinguished
of the French clergy; but in A.D. 1653 Innocent X. condemned
five Jansenist propositions in it as heretical. The Augustinians
now maintained that these doctrines were not taught in the
sense attributed to them by the pope. Arnauld distinguished
the _question du fait_ from the _question du droit_, maintaining
that the latter only were subject to the judgment of the
Holy See. The Sorbonne, now greatly changed in composition
and character, expelled him on account of this position from
its corporation in A.D. 1656. About this time, at Arnauld’s
instigation, Pascal, the profound and brilliant author of
“_Pensées sur la Religion_,” began, under the name of Louis
de Montalte to publish his famous “Provincial Letters,” which
in an admirable style exposed and lashed with deep earnestness
and biting wit the base moral principles of Jesuit casuistry.
The truly annihilating effect of these letters upon the
reputation of the powerful order could not be checked by
their being burnt by order of Parliament by the hangman at
Aix in A.D. 1657, and at Paris in A.D. 1660. But meanwhile
the specifically Jansenist movement entered upon a new phase
of its development. Alexander VII. had issued in A.D. 1656
a bull which denounced the application of the distinction _du
fait_ and _du droit_ to the papal decrees as derogatory to the
holy see, and affirmed that Jansen taught the five propositions
in the sense they had been condemned. In order to enforce the
sentence, Annal, the Jesuit father confessor of Louis XIV.,
obtained in 1661 a royal decree requiring all French clergy,
monks, nuns, and teachers to sign a formula unconditionally
accepting this bull. Those who refused were banished, and
fled mostly to the Netherlands. The sorely oppressed nuns of
Port Royal at last reluctantly agreed to sign it; but they were
still persecuted, and in A.D. 1664 the new archbishop, Perefixe,
inaugurated a more severe persecution, placed this cloister
under the interdict, and removed some of the nuns to other
convents. In A.D. 1669, Alexander’s successor, Clement IX.,
secured the submission of Arnauld, De Sacy, Nicole, and many
of the nuns by a policy of mild connivance. But the hatred
of the Jesuits was still directed against their cloister. In
A.D. 1705 Clement XI. again demanded full and unconditioned
acceptance of the decree of Alexander VII., and when the nuns
refused, the pope, in A.D. 1708, declared this convent an
irredeemable nest of heresy, and ordered its suppression, which
was carried out in A.D. 1709. In A.D. 1710 cloister and church
were levelled to the ground, and the very corpses taken out of
their graves.[464]--Continuation, § 165, 7.
§ 158. SCIENCE AND ART IN THE CATHOLIC CHURCH.
Catholic theology flourished during the seventeenth century as it
had never done since the twelfth and thirteenth. Especially in the
liberal Gallican church there was a vigorous scientific life. The
Parisian Sorbonne and the orders of the Jesuits, St. Maur, and the
Oratorians, excelled in theological, particularly in patristic and
historical, learning, and the contemporary brilliancy of Reformed
theology in France afforded a powerful stimulus. But the best days
of art, especially Italian painting, were now past. Sacred music was
diligently cultivated, though in a secularized style, and many gifted
hymn-writers made their appearance in Spain and Germany.
§ 158.1. =Theological Science= (§ 149, 14).--The parliamentary
advocate, Mich. le Jay, published at his own expense the
Parisian Polyglott in ten folio vols., A.D. 1629-1645, which,
besides complete Syriac and Arabic translations, included also
the Samaritan. The chief contributor was the Oratorian =Morinus=,
who edited the LXX. and the Samaritan texts, which he regarded
as incomparably superior to the Masoretic text corrupted by
the Jews. The Jansenists produced a French translation of
the Bible with practical notes, condemned by the pope, but
much read by the people. It was mainly the work of the brothers
=De Sacy=. The New Testament was issued in A.D. 1667 and the
Old Testament somewhat later, called the Bible of Mons from
the fictitious name of the place of publication. =Richard Simon=,
the Oratorian, who died in A.D. 1712, treated Scripture with
a boldness of criticism never before heard of within the church.
While opposed by many on the Catholic side, the curia favoured
his work as undermining the Protestant doctrine of Scripture.
=Cornelius à Lapide=, who died A.D. 1637, expounded Scripture
according to the fourfold sense.--In systematic theology
the old scholastic method still held sway. Moral theology
was wrought out in the form of casuistry with unexampled
lasciviousness, especially by the Jesuits (§ 149, 10). The
work of the Spaniard =Escobar=, who died in A.D. 1669, ran
through fifty editions, and that of =Busembaum=, professor in
Cologne and afterwards rector of Münster, who died A.D. 1668,
went through seventy editions. On account of the attempted
assassination of Louis XV. by Damiens in A.D. 1757, with
which the Jesuits and their doctrine of tyrannicide were
charged, the Parliament of Toulouse in A.D. 1757, and of Paris
in A.D. 1761, had Busembaum’s book publicly burnt, and several
popes, Alexander VII., VIII., and Innocent XI., condemned a
number of propositions from the moral writings of these and
other Jesuits. Among polemical writers the most distinguished
were =Becanus=, who died in A.D. 1624, and =Bossuet= (§ 153, 7).
Among the Jansenists the most prominent controversialists were
=Nicole= and =Arnauld=, who, in order to escape the reproach of
Calvinism, sought to prove the Catholic doctrine of the supper
to be the same as that of the apostles, and were answered
by the Reformed theologians Claude and Jurieu. In apologetics
the leading place is occupied by =Pascal=, with his brilliant
“_Pensées_.” =Huetius=, a French bishop and editor of Origen,
who died in A.D. 1721, replied to Spinoza’s attacks on the
Pentateuch, and applying to reason itself the Cartesian
principle, that philosophy must begin with doubt, pointed
the doubter to the supernatural revealed truths in the Catholic
church as the only anchor of salvation. The learned Jesuit
=Dionysius Petavius=, who died in A.D. 1652, edited Epiphanius
and wrote gigantic chronological works and numerous violent
polemics against Calvinists and Jansenists. His chief work
is the unfinished patristic-dogmatic treatise in five vols.
folio, A.D. 1680, “_De theologicis Dogmatibus_.” The Oratorian
=Thomassinus= wrote an able archæological work: “_Vetus et Nova
Eccl. Disciplina circa Beneficia et Beneficiarios_.”
§ 158.2. In church history, besides those named in § 5, 2, we
may mention Pagi, the keen critic and corrector of Baronius.
The study of sources was vigorously pursued. We have collections
of mediæval writings and documents by Sirmond, D’Achery,
Mabillon, Martène, Baluzius; of acts of councils by Labbé
and Cossart, those of France by =Jac. Sirmond=, and of Spain
by Aguirre; acts of the martyrs by =Ruinart=; monastic rules
by =Holstenius=, a pervert, who became Vatican librarian,
and died at Rome A.D. 1661. =Dufresne Ducange=, an advocate,
who died in A.D. 1688, wrote glossaries of the mediæval and
barbarous Latin and Greek, indispensable for the study of
documents belonging to those times. The greatest prodigy of
learning was =Mabillon=, who died in A.D. 1707, a Benedictine
of St. Maur, and historian of his order. =Pet. de Marca=, who
died Archbishop of Paris A.D. 1662, wrote the famous work on
the Gallican liberties “_De Concordia Sacerdotii et Imperii_.”
The Jansenist doctor of the Sorbonne, =Elias du Pin=, who died
A.D. 1719, wrote “_Nouvelle Bibliothèque des Auteurs Eccles._”
in forty-seven vols. The Jesuit Maimbourg, died A.D. 1686,
compiled several party histories of Wiclifism, Lutheranism,
and Calvinism; but as a Gallican was deprived of office
by the pope, and afterwards supported by a royal pension.
The Antwerp Jesuits Bolland, Henschen, Papebroch started,
in A.D. 1643, the gigantic work “_Acta Sanctorum_,” carried
on by the learned members of their order in Belgium, known
as =Bollandists=. It was stopped by the French invasion
of A.D. 1794, when it had reached October 15th with the
fifty-third folio vol. The Belgian Jesuits continued the
work from A.D. 1845-1867, reaching in six vols. the end of
October, but not displaying the ability and liberality of their
predecessors. In Venice =Paul Sarpi= (§ 155, 2) wrote a history
of the Tridentine Council, one of the most brilliant historical
works of any period. =Leo Allatius=, a Greek convert at Rome,
who died in A.D. 1669, wrote a work to show the agreement of
the Eastern and Western churches. Cardinal =Bona= distinguished
himself as a liturgical writer.--In France pulpit eloquence
reached the highest pitch in such men as Flechier, Bossuet,
Bourdaloue, Fénelon, Massillon, and Bridaine. In Vienna
=Abraham à St. Clara= inveighed in a humorous, grotesque way
against the corruption of manners, with an undercurrent of deep
moral earnestness. Similar in style and spirit, but much more
deeply sunk in Catholic superstition, was his contemporary
the Capuchin =Martin of Cochem=, who missionarized the Rhine
Provinces and western Germany for forty years, and issued
a large number of popular religious tracts.--Continuation,
§ 165, 14.
§ 158.3. =Art and Poetry= (§ 149, 15).--The greatest master
of the musical school founded by Palestrina was _Allêgri_,
whose _Miserere_ is performed yearly on the Wednesday afternoon
of Passion Week in the Sistine Chapel in Rome. The oratorio
originated from the application of the lofty music of this
school to dramatic scenes drawn from the Bible, for purely
musical and not theatrical performance. Philip Neri patronized
this music freely in his oratory, from which it took the name.
This new church music became gradually more and more secularized
and approximated to the ordinary opera style.--In =ecclesiastical
architecture= the Renaissance style still prevailed, but debased
with senseless, tasteless ornamentation.--In the Italian school
of =painting= the decline, both in creative power and imitative
skill, was very marked from the end of the sixteenth century.
In Spain during the seventeenth century religious painting
reached a high point of excellence in Murillo of Seville, who
died in A.D. 1682, a master in representing calm meditation
and entranced felicity.--The two greatest =poets= of Spain,
the creators of the Spanish drama, =Lope de Vega= (died
A.D. 1635) and =Pedro Calderon= (died A.D. 1681), both at
first soldiers and afterwards priests, flourished during
this century. The elder excelled the younger, not only in
fruitfulness and versatility (1,500 comedies, 320 autos,
§ 115, 12, etc.), but also in poetic genius and patriotism.
Calderon, with his 122 dramas, 73 festival plays, 200 preludes,
etc., excelled De Vega in artistic expression and beauty of
imagery. Both alike glorify the Inquisition, but occasionally
subordinate Mary and the saints to the great redemption of
the cross.--Specially deserving of notice is the noble German
Jesuit =Friedr. von Spee=, died A.D. 1635. His spiritual songs
show deep love to the Saviour and a profound feeling for nature,
approaching in some respects the style of the evangelical
hymn-writers. Spee was a keen but unsuccessful opponent of
witch prosecution. Another eminent poetic genius of the age
was the Jesuit =Jac. Balde= of Munich, who died in A.D. 1688.
He is at his best in lyrical poetry. A deep religious vein
runs through all his Latin odes, in which he enthusiastically
appeals to the Virgin to raise him above all earthly passions.
To Herder belongs the merit of rescuing him from oblivion.
III. The Lutheran Church.
§ 159. ORTHODOXY AND ITS BATTLES.[465]
The Formula of Concord commended itself to the hearts and
intelligences of Lutherans, and secured a hundred years’ supremacy of
orthodoxy, notwithstanding two Christological controversies. Gradually,
however, a new dogmatic scholasticism arose, which had the defects
as well as the excellences of the mediæval system. The orthodoxy of
this school deteriorated, on the one hand, into violent polemic on
confessional differences, and, on the other, into undue depreciation
of outward forms in favour of a spiritual life and personal piety.
These tendencies are represented by the Syncretist and Pietist
controversies.
§ 159.1. =Christological Controversies.=
1. =The Cryptist and Kenotist Controversy= between the
Giessen and Tübingen theologians, in A.D. 1619, about
Christ’s state of humiliation, led to the publication of
many violent treatises down to A.D. 1626. The Kenotists
of Giessen, with Mentzer and Feuerborn at their head,
assigned the humiliation only to the human nature, and
explained it as an actual κένωσις, _i.e._ a complete but
voluntary resigning of the omnipresence and omnipotence
immanent in His divinity (κτῆσις, but not χρῆσις),
yet so that He could have them at His command at any
moment, _e.g._ in His miracles. The Cryptists of Tübingen,
with Luc. Osiander and Thumm at their head, ascribed
humiliation to both natures, and taught that all the
while Christ, even _secundum carnem_, was omnipresent
and ruled both in heaven and earth, but in a hidden
way; the humiliation is no κένωσις, but only a κρύψις.
After repeated unsuccessful attempts to bring about
a reconciliation, John George, Elector of Saxony, in
A.D. 1623, accepted the Kenotic doctrine. But the two
parties still continued their strife.[466]
2. =The Lütkemann Controversy= on the humanity of Christ in
death was of far less importance. Lütkemann, a professor
of philosophy at Rostock, affirmed that in death, because
the unity of soul and body was broken, Christ was not true
man, and that to deny this was to destroy the reality and
the saving power of his death. He held that the incarnation
of Christ lasted through death, because the divine nature
was connected, not only with the soul, but also with the
body. Lütkemann was obliged to quit Rostock, but got an
honourable call to Brunswick as superintendent and court
preacher, and there died in A.D. 1655. Later Lutherans
treated the controversy as a useless logomachy.
§ 159.2. =The Syncretist Controversy.=--Since the Hofmann
controversy (§ 141, 15) the University of Helmstadt had shown
a decided humanistic tendency, and gave even greater freedom in
the treatment of doctrines than the Formula of Concord, which
it declined to adopt. To this school belonged =George Calixt=,
and from A.D. 1614 for forty years he laboured in promoting
its interests. He was a man of wide culture and experience,
who had obtained a thorough knowledge of church history, and
acquaintance with the most distinguished theologians of all
churches, during his extensive foreign travels, and therewith
a geniality and breadth of view not by any means common in
those days. He did not indeed desire any formal union between
the different churches, but rather a mutual recognition,
love, and tolerance. For this purpose he set, as a secondary
principle of Christian theology, besides Scripture, as the
primary principle, the consensus of the first five centuries
as the common basis of all churches, and sought to represent
later ecclesiastical differences as unessential or of less
consequence. This was denounced by strict Lutherans as
Syncretism and Cryptocatholicism. In A.D. 1639 the Hanoverian
preacher Buscher charged him with being a secret Papist. After
the Thorn Conference of A.D. 1645, a violent controversy arose,
which divided Lutherans into two camps. On the one side were
the universities of Helmstadt and Königsberg; on the other
hand, the theologians of the electorate of Saxony, Hülsemann
of Leipzig, Waller of Dresden, and Abr. Calov, who died
professor in Wittenberg in A.D. 1686. Calov wrote twenty-six
controversial treatises on this subject. Jena vainly sought to
mediate between the parties. In the _Theologorum Sax. Consensus
repetitus Fidei vera Lutheranæ_ of A.D. 1655, for which the
Wittenberg divines failed to secure symbolical authority, the
following sentiments were branded as Syncretist errors: That
in the Apostles’ Creed everything is taught that is necessary
to salvation; that the Catholic and Reformed systems retain
hold of fundamental truths; that original sin is of a merely
privative nature; that God _indirecte, improprie, et per
accidens_ is the cause of sin; that the doctrine of the Trinity
was first clearly revealed in the New Testament, etc. Calixt
died A.D. 1656 in the midst of most violent controversies. His
son Ulrich continued these, but had neither the ability nor
moderation of his father. Even the peaceably disposed Conference
of Cassel of A.D. 1661 (§ 154, 4) only poured oil on the flames.
The strife lost itself at last in actions for damages between
the younger Calixt and his bitter opponent Strauch of Wittenberg.
Wearied of these fruitless discussions, theologians now turned
their attention to the rising movement of Pietism.[467]
§ 159.3. =The Pietist Controversy in its First
Stage.=--=Philip Jacob Spener= born in Alsace in A.D. 1635,
was in his thirty-first year, on account of his spirituality,
distinguished gifts, and singularly wide scholarship, made
president of a clerical seminary at Frankfort-on-Main. In
A.D. 1686 he became chief court preacher at Dresden, and
provost of Berlin in A.D. 1691, when, on account of his intense
earnestness in pastoral work, he had been expelled from Dresden.
He died in Berlin in A.D. 1705. His year’s attendance at Geneva
after the completion of his curriculum at Strassburg had an
important influence on his whole future career. He there learned
to value discipline for securing purity of life as well as of
doctrine, and was also powerfully impressed by the practical
lectures of Labadie (§ 163, 7) and the reading of the “Practice
of Piety” and other ascetical writings of the English Puritans
(§ 162, 3). Though strongly attached to the Lutheran church,
he believed that in the restoration of evangelical doctrine
by the Wittenberg Reformation, “not by any means had all been
accomplished that needed to be done,” and that Lutheranism in
the form of the orthodoxy of the age had lost the living power
of the reformers, and was in danger of burying its talent in
dead and barren service of the letter. There was therefore a
pressing need of a new and wider reformation. In the Lutheran
church, as the depository of sound doctrine, he recognised
the fittest field for the development of a genuinely Christian
life; but he heartily appreciated any true spiritual movement
in whatsoever church it arose. He went back from scholastic
dogmatics to Holy Scripture as the living source of saving
knowledge, substituted for the external orthodox theology the
theology of the heart, demanded evidence of this in a pious
Christian walk: these were the means by which he sought to
promote his reformation. A whole series of Lutheran theologians
of the seventeenth century (§ 159) had indeed contributed to
this same end by their devotional works, hymns, and sermons.
What was new in Spener was the conviction of the insufficiency
of the hitherto used means and the undue prominence given to
doctrine, and his consequent effort vigorously made to raise
the tone of the Christian life. In his childlike, pious humility
he regarded himself as by no means called to carry out this work,
but felt it his duty to insist upon the necessity of it, and
indicate the means that should be used to realize it. This he
did in his work of A.D. 1675, “_Pia Desideria_.” As it was his
aim to recommend biblical practical Christianity to the heart
of the individual Christian, he revived the almost forgotten
doctrine “Of Spiritual Priesthood” in a separate treatise.
In A.D. 1670 he began to have meetings in his own house for
encouraging Christian piety in the community, which soon
were imitated in other places. Spener’s influence on the
Lutheran church became greater and wider through his position
at Dresden. Stirred up by his spirit, three young graduates of
Leipzig. A. H. Francke, Paul Anton, and J. K. Schade, formed
in A.D. 1686 a private _Collegia Philobiblica_ for practical
exposition of Scripture and the delivery of public exegetical
lectures at the university in the German language. But the
Leipzig theological faculty, with J. B. Carpzov II. at its
head, charged them with despising the public ordinances as
well as theological science, and with favouring the views
of separatists. The _Collegia Philobiblica_ was suppressed,
and the three friends obliged to leave Leipzig in A.D. 1690.
This marked the beginning of the Pietist controversies.
Soon afterwards Spener was expelled from Dresden; but in
his new position at Berlin he secured great influence in the
appointments to the theological faculty of the new university
founded at Halle by the peace-loving elector Frederick III.
of Brandenburg, in opposition to the contentious universities
of Wittenberg and Leipzig. Francke, Anton, and Breithaupt
were made professors of theology. Halle now won the position
which Wittenberg and Geneva had held during the Reformation
period, and the Pietist controversy thus entered upon
a second, more general, and more critical epoch of its
history.[468]--Continuation, § 166, 1.
§ 159.4. =Theological Literature= (§ 142, 6).--The “_Philologia
Sacra_” of =Sol. Glassius= of Jena, published in A.D. 1623,
has ranked as a classical work for almost two centuries. From
A.D. 1620 till the end of the century, a lively controversy was
carried on about the Greek style of the New Testament, in which
Lutherans, and especially the Reformed, took part. The purists
maintained that the New Testament idiom was pure and classical,
thinking that its inspiration would otherwise be endangered.
The first historico-critical introduction to the Scriptures was
the “_Officina Biblica_” of Walther in A.D. 1636. =Pfeiffer= of
Leipzig gained distinction in biblical criticism and hermeneutics
by his “_Critica Sacra_” of A.D. 1680 and “_Hermeneutica_”
of A.D. 1684. Exegesis now made progress, notwithstanding its
dependence on traditional interpretations of doctrinal proof
passages and its mechanical theory of inspiration. The most
distinguished exegetes were =Erasmus Schmidt= of Wittenberg,
who died in A.D. 1637: he wrote a Latin translation of New
Testament with admirable notes, and a very useful concordance
of the Greek New Testament, under the title Ταμεῖον, which
has been revised and improved by Bruder; =Seb. Schmidt= of
Strassburg, who wrote commentaries on several Old Testament
books and on the Pauline epistles; and =Abr. Calov= of
Wittenberg, who died in A.D. 1686, in his 74th year, whose
“_Biblia Illustrata_,” in four vols., is a work of amazing
research and learning, but composed wholly in the interests
of dogmatics.--Little was done in the department of church
history. Calixt awakened a new enthusiasm for historical
studies, and =Gottfried Arnold= (§ 159, 2), pietist, chiliast,
and theosophist, bitterly opposed to every form of orthodoxy,
and finding true Christianity only in sects, separatists,
and heretics, set the whole theological world astir by his
“_Unparteiische Kirchen- und Ketzer-historie_,” in A.D. 1699
(§ 5, 3).
§ 159.5. The orthodox school applied itself most diligently to
dogmatics in a strictly scholastic form. =Hutter= of Wittenberg,
who died in A.D. 1616, wrote “_Loci communes theologici_” and
“_Compendium Loc. Theol._” =John Gerhard= of Jena, who died
in A.D. 1637, published in A.D. 1610 his “_Loc. Theologici_”
in nine folio vols., the standard of Lutheran orthodoxy. =J.
Andr. Quenstedt= of Wittenberg, who died A.D. 1688, exhibited
the best and worst of Lutheran scholasticism in his “_Theol.
didactico-polemica_.” The most important dogmatist of the
Calixtine school was Conrad Horneius. Calixt himself is known
as a dogmatist only by his lectures; but to him we owe the
generally adopted distinction between morals and dogmatics
as set forth in his “_Epitome theol. Moralis_.”--Polemics
were carried on vigorously. =Hoë von Hoënegg= of Dresden
(§ 154, 3, 4) and =Hutter= of Wittenberg were bitter opponents
of Calvinism and Romanism. Hutter was styled by his friends
_Malleus Calvinistorum_ and _Redonatus Lutherus_. The ablest
and most dignified polemic against Romanism was that of =John
Gerhard= in his “_Confessio Catholica_.” =Nich. Hunnius=, son
of Ægid. Hunnius, and Hutter’s successor at Wittenberg, from
A.D. 1623 superintendent at Lübeck, distinguished himself as an
able controversialist against the papacy by his “_Demonstratio
Ministerii Lutherani Divini atque Legitimi_.” Against the
Socinians he wrote his “_Examen Errorum Photinianorum_,”
and against the fanatics a “Chr. Examination of the new
Paracelsist and Weigelian Theology.” His principal work is
his “_Διάσκεψις de Fundamentali Dissensu Doctrinæ Luth. et
Calvin_.” His “_Epitome Credendorum_” went through nineteen
editions. The most incessant controversialist was =Abr. Calov=,
who wrote against Syncretists, Papists, Socinians, Arminians,
etc.--Continuation, § 167, 4.
§ 160. THE RELIGIOUS LIFE.
The attachment of the Lutheran church of this age to pure doctrine led
to a one-sided over-estimation of it, often ending in dead orthodoxy.
But a succession of able and learned theologians, who recognised the
importance of heart theology as well as sound doctrine, corrected this
evil tendency by Scripture study, preaching, and faithful pastoral work.
A noble and moderate mysticism, which was thoroughly orthodox in its
beliefs, and opposing orthodoxy only where that had become external and
mechanical, had many influential representatives throughout the whole
country, especially during the first half of it. But also separatists,
mystics, and theosophists made their appearance, who were decidedly
hostile to the church. Sacred song flourished afresh amid the troubles
of the Thirty Years’ War; but gradually lost its sublime objective
church character, which was poorly compensated by a more flowing
versification, polished language, and elegant form. A corresponding
advance was also made in church music.
§ 160.1. =Mysticism and Asceticism.=--At the head of the orthodox
mystics stands =John Arndt=. His “True Christianity” and his
“_Paradiesgärtlein_” are the most widely read Lutheran devotional
books, but called forth the bitter hostility of those devoted
to the maintenance of a barren orthodoxy. He died in A.D. 1621,
as general superintendent at Celle. He had been expelled
from Anhalt because he would not condemn exorcism as godless
superstition, and was afterwards in Brunswick publicly charged
by his colleague Denecke and other Lutheran zealots with
Papacy, Calvinism, Osiandrianism, Flacianism, Schwenckfeldism,
Paracelsism, Alchemism, etc. As men of a similar spirit,
anticipators of the school of Spener, may be named =John Gerhard=
of Jena, with his “_Meditationes Sacræ_” and “_Schola pietatis_,”
and =Christian Scriver=, whose “Gotthold’s Emblems” is well known
to English readers. =Rahtmann= of Danzig maintained that the
word of God in Scripture has not in itself the power to enlighten
and convert men except through the gracious influence of God’s
Spirit. He was supported, after a long delay, in A.D. 1626 by
the University of Rostock, but opposed by Königsberg, Jena,
and Wittenberg. In A.D. 1628, the Elector of Saxony obtained
the opinion of the most famous theologians of his realm against
Rahtmann; but his death, which soon followed, brought the
controversy to a close.--The Württemberg theologian, =John
Valentine Andreä=, grandson of one of the authors of the
Formula of Concord, was a man of striking originality, famous
for his satires on the corruptions of the age. His “Order of
Rosicrucians,” published at Cassel in A.D. 1614, ridiculed the
absurdities of astrology and alchemy in the form of a satirical
romance. His influence on the church of his times was great and
wholesome, so that even Spener exclaimed: “Had I the power to
call any one from the dead for the good of the church, it would
be J. V. Andreä.” His later devotional work was almost completely
forgotten until attention was called to it by Herder.[469]
§ 160.2. =Mysticism and Theosophy.=--A mystico-theosophical
tendency, partly in outward connexion with the church, partly
without and in open opposition to it, was fostered by the
alchemist writings of Agrippa and Paracelsus, the theosophical
works of Weigel (§ 146, 2) and by the profound revelations of
the inspired shoemaker of Görlitz, =Jacob Boehme=, _philosophus
teutonicus_, the most talented of all the theosophists. In a
remarkable degree he combined a genius for speculation with the
most unfeigned piety that held firmly by the old Lutheran faith.
Even when an itinerant tradesman, he felt himself for a period
of seven days in calm repose, surrounded by the divine light. But
he dates his profound theosophical enlightenment from a moment in
A.D. 1594, when as a young journeyman and married, thrown into an
ecstasy, he obtained a knowledge of the divine mysteries down to
the ultimate principles of all things and their inmost quality.
His theosophy, too, like that of the ancient gnostics, springs
out of the question about the origin of evil. He solves it by
assuming an emanation of all things from God, in whom fire and
light, bitter and sweet qualities, are thoroughly tempered and
perfectly combined, while in the creature derived by emanation
from him they are in disharmony, but are reconciled and reduced
to godlike harmony through regeneration in Christ. Though opposed
by Calov, he was befriended by the Dresden consistory. Boehme
died in A.D. 1624, in retirement at Görlitz, in the arms of his
family.[470]--In close connexion with Boehmists, separatists, and
Pietists, yet differing from them all, =Gottfried Arnold= abused
orthodoxy and canonized the heretics of all ages. In A.D. 1700 he
wrote “The Mystery of the Divine Sophia.” When Adam, originally
man and woman, fell, his female nature, the heavenly Sophia,
was taken from him, and in his place a woman of flesh was made
for him out of a rib; in order again to restore the paradisiacal
perfection Christ brought again the male part into a virgin’s
womb, so that the new creature, the regenerate, stands before God
as a “male-virgin;” but carnal love destroys again the connexion
thus secured with the heavenly Sophia. But the very next year he
reached a turning-point in his life. He not only married, but in
consequence accepted several appointments in the Lutheran church,
without, however, signing the Formula of Concord, and applied his
literary skill to the production of devotional tracts.
§ 160.3. =Sacred Song= (§ 142, 3).--The first epoch of the
development of sacred song in this century corresponds to the
period of the Thirty Years’ War, A.D. 1618-1648. The Psalms of
David were the model and pattern of the sacred poets, and the
profoundest songs of the cross and consolation bear the evident
impress of the times, and so individual feeling comes more into
prominence. The influence of Opitz was also felt in the church
song, in the greater attention given to correctness and purity
of language and to the careful construction of verse and rhyme.
Instead of the rugged terseness and vigour of earlier days, we
now find often diffuse and overflowing utterances of the heart.
=John Hermann= of Glogau, who died in A.D. 1647, composed
400 songs, embracing these: “Alas! dear Lord, what evil hast
Thou done?” “O Christ, our true and only Light;” “Ere yet the
dawn hath filled the skies;” “O God, thou faithful God.” =Paul
Flemming=, a physician in Holstein, who died in A.D. 1640, wrote
on his journey to Persia, “Where’er I go, whate’er my task.”
=Matthew Meyffart=, professor and pastor at Erfurt, who died in
A.D. 1642, wrote “Jerusalem, thou city fair and high.” =Martin
Rinkart=, pastor at Eilenburg in Saxony, who died A.D. 1648,
wrote, “Now thank we all our God.” =Appelles von Löwenstern=,
who died A.D. 1648, composed, “When anguished and perplexed,
with many a sigh and tear.” =Joshua Stegmann=, superintendent
in Rinteln, who died A.D. 1632, wrote, “Abide among us with thy
grace.” =Joshua Wegelin=, pastor in Augsburg and Pressburg, wrote,
“Since Christ is gone to heaven, his home.” =Justus Gesenius=,
superintendent in Hanover, who died in A.D. 1673, wrote, “When
sorrow and remorse.” =Tob. Clausnitzer=, pastor in the Palatinate,
who died A.D. 1648, wrote, “Blessed Jesus, at thy word.” The
poets named mostly belong to the first Silesian school gathered
round Opitz. A more independent position, though not uninfluenced
by Opitz, is taken up by =John Rist=, who died in A.D. 1667. He
composed 658 sacred songs, of which many are remarkable for their
vigour, solemnity, and elevation; _e.g._ “Arise, the kingdom is
at hand;” “Sink not yet, my soul, to slumber;” “O living Bread
from heaven;” “Praise and thanks to Thee be sung.” At the head
of the Königsberg school of the same age stood =Simon Dach=,
professor of poetry at Königsberg, who died in A.D. 1659. He
composed 150 spiritual songs, among which the best known are,
“O how blessed, faithful souls, are ye!” “Wouldest thou inherit
life with Christ on high?” The most distinguished members of this
school are: =Henry Alberti=, organist at Königsberg, author of
“God who madest earth and heaven;” and =George Weissel=, pastor
in Königsberg, who died in A.D. 1655, author of “Lift up your
heads, ye mighty gates.”
§ 160.4. From the middle of the seventeenth century sacred song
became more subjective, and so tended to fall into a diversity
of groups. No longer does the church sing through its poets, but
the poets give direct expression to their individual feelings.
Confessional songs are less frequent, and their place is taken
by hymns of edification with reference to various conditions of
life; songs of death, the cross and consolation, and hymns for
the family become more numerous. With objectivity special features
of the church song disappear in the hymns of the period; but some
of its essential characteristics remain, especially the popular
form and contents, the freshness, liveliness, and simplicity of
diction, the truths of personal experience, the fulness of faith,
etc. We distinguish three groups:
1. =The Transition Group=, passing from objectivity to
subjectivity. Its greatest masters, indeed after Luther
the greatest sacred poet of the evangelical church, is
undoubtedly =Paul Gerhardt=, who died A.D. 1676, the
faith witness of the Lutheran faith under the wars and in
persecution (§ 154, 4). In him we find the new subjective
tendency in its noblest form; but there is also present
the old objective style, giving immediate expression to
the consciousness of the church, adhering tenaciously to
the confession, and a grand popular ring that reminds us
of the fulness and power of Luther. His 131 songs, if not
all church songs in the narrower sense, are almost all
genuine poems: _e.g._ “All my heart this night rejoices;”
“Cometh sunshine after rain;” “Go forth, my heart, and
seek delight;” “Be thou content: be still before;” “O world,
behold upon the tree;” “Now all the woods are sleeping;” and
“Ah, wounded head, must thou?” based on Bernard’s _Salve,
caput cruentatum_. To this school also belongs =George
Neumark=, librarian at Weimar, who died in A.D. 1681, author
of “Leave God to order all thy ways.” Also =John Franck=,
burgomaster at Guben in Lusatia, who died A.D. 1677, next
to Gerhardt the greatest poet of his age. His 110 songs are
less popular and hearty, but more melodious than Gerhardt’s;
_e.g._ “Redeemer of the nations, come;” “Ye heavens, oh
haste your dews to shed;” “Deck thyself, my soul, with
gladness.” =George Albinus=, pastor at Naumburg, died
A.D. 1679, wrote: “Not in anger smite us, Lord;” “World,
farewell! Of thee I’m tired.”
2. The =next stage= of the sacred song took the Canticles
instead of the Psalter as its model. The spiritual marriage
of the soul is its main theme. Feeling and fancy are
predominant, and often degenerate into sentimentality and
trifling. It obtained a new impulse from the addition of
a mystical element. =Angelus Silesius= (§ 156, 4) was the
most distinguished representative of this school, and while
Protestant he composed several beautiful songs; _e.g._
“O Love, who formedst me to wear;” “Thou holiest Love, whom
most I love;” “Loving Shepherd, kind and true.” =Christian
Knorr v. Rosenroth=, who died at Sulzbach A.D. 1689, wrote
“Dayspring of eternity.” =Ludämilie Elizabeth=, Countess
of Schwarzburg-Rudolstadt, who died in A.D. 1672, wrote
215 “Songs of Jesus.” =Caspar Neumann=, professor and pastor
at Breslau, died A.D. 1715, wrote, “Lord, on earth I dwell
in pain.”
3. =Those of Spener’s Time and Spirit=, men who longed for
the regeneration of the church by practical Christianity.
Their hymns are for the most part characterized by healthy
piety and deep godliness. Spener’s own poems are of slight
importance. =J. Jac. Schütz=, Spener’s friend, a lawyer in
Frankfort, who died A.D. 1690, composed only one, but that
a very beautiful hymn: “All praise and thanks to God most
high.” =Samuel Rodigast=, rector in Berlin, died A.D. 1708,
wrote, “Whate’er my God ordains is right.” =Laurentius
Laurentii=, musical director at Bremen, died A.D. 1722,
wrote, “Is my heart athirst to know?” “O thou essential
Word.”--=Gottfried Arnold=, died A.D. 1714, wrote, “Thou
who breakest every chain;” “How blest to all thy followers,
Lord, the road!”-- In Denmark, where previously translations
of German hymns were used, =Thomas Kingo=, from A.D. 1677
Bishop of Fünen, died A.D. 1703, was the much-honoured
founder of Danish national hymnology.[471]--Continuation,
§ 167, 6.
§ 160.5. =Sacred Music= (§ 142, 5).--The church music in the
beginning of the seventeenth century was affected by the Italian
school, just as church song was by the influence of Opitz. The
greatest master during the transition stage was =John Crüger=,
precentor in the church of St. Nicholas in Berlin, died A.D. 1662.
He was to the chorale what Gerhardt was to the church song.
We have seventy-one new melodies of his, admirably adapted to
Gerhardt’s, Hunnius’s, Franck’s, Dach’s, and Rinkart’s songs, and
used in the church till the present time. With the second half
of the century we enter on a new period, in which expression and
musical declamation perish. Choir singing now, to a great extent,
supersedes congregational singing. =Henry Schütz=, organist
to the Elector of Saxony, died A.D. 1672, is the great master
of this Italian sacred concert style. He introduced musical
compositions on passages selected from the Psalms, Canticles, and
prophets, in his “_Symphoniæ Sacræ_” of A.D. 1629. After a short
time a radical reform was made by =John Rosenmüller=, organist
of Wolfenbüttel, died A.D. 1686. A reaction against the exclusive
adoption of the Italian style was made by =Andr. Hammerschmidt=,
organist at Zittau, died A.D. 1675, one of the noblest and most
pious of German musicians. By working up the old church melodies
in the modern style, he brought the old hymns again into favour,
and set hymns of contemporary poets to bright airs suited to
modern standards of taste. The accomplished musician =Rud.
Ahle=, organist and burgomaster at Mühlhausen, died A.D. 1673,
introduced his own beautiful airs into the church music for
Sundays and festivals. His sacred airs are distinguished for
youthful freshness and power, penetrated by a holy earnestness,
and quite free from that secularity and frivolousness which soon
became unpleasantly conspicuous in such music.--Continuation,
§ 167, 7.
§ 160.6. =The Christian Life of the People.=--The rich
development of sacred poetry proves the wonderful fulness and
spirituality of the religious life of this age, notwithstanding
the many chilling separatistic controversies that prevailed
during the terrible upheaval of the Thirty Years’ War. The
abundance of devotional literature of permanent worth witnesses
to the diligence and piety of the Lutheran pastors. Ernest the
Pious of Saxe-Gotha, who died A.D. 1675, stands forth as the
ideal of a Christian prince. For the Christian instruction of his
people he issued, in the midst of the confusion and horrors of
the war, the famous Weimar or Ernestine exposition of the Bible,
upon which John Gerhard wrought diligently, along with other
distinguished Jena theologians. It appeared first in A.D. 1641,
and by A.D. 1768 had gone through fourteen large editions.
A like service was done for South Germany by the “Württemberg
Summaries,” composed by three Württemberg theologians at the
request of Duke Eberhard III., a concise, practical exposition
of all the books of Scripture, which for a century and a half
formed the basis of the weekly services (_Bibelstunden_) at
Württemberg.--Continuation, § 167, 8.
§ 160.7. =Missions.=--In the Lutheran church, missionary
enterprise had rather fallen behind (§ 142, 8). Gustavus Adolphus
of Sweden carried on the Lapp mission with new zeal, and Denmark,
too, gave ready assistance. A Norwegian pastor, Thomas Westen,
deserves special mention as the apostle of the mission. A German,
Peter Heyling of Lübeck, went on his own account as a missionary
to Abyssinia in A.D. 1635, while several of his friends at the
same time went to other eastern lands. Of these others no trace
whatever has been found. An Abyssinian abbot who came to Europe
brought news of Heyling. At first he was hindered by the
machinations of the Jesuits; but when these were expelled, he
found favour at court, became minister to the king, and married
one of the royal family. What finally came of him and his work
is unknown. Toward the end of the century two great men, the
philosopher Leibnitz and the founder of the Halle Orphanage,
A. H. Francke, warmly espoused the cause of foreign missions.
The ambitious and pretentious schemes of the philosopher ended in
nothing, but Francke made his orphanages, training colleges and
centres from which the German Lutheran missions to the heathens
were vigorously organized and successfully wrought.--Continuation,
§ 167, 9.
IV. The Reformed Church.
§ 161. THEOLOGY AND ITS BATTLES.
The Reformed scholars of France vied with those of St. Maur
and the Oratory, and the Reformed theologians of the Netherlands,
England, and Switzerland were not a whit behind. But an attempt made
at a general synod at Dort to unite all the Reformed national churches
under one confession failed. Opposition to Calvin’s extreme theory of
predestination introduced a Pelagianizing current into the Reformed
church, which was by no means confined to professed Arminians. In the
Anglican church this tendency appeared in the forms of latitudinarianism
and deism (§ 164, 3); while in France it took a more moderate course,
and approximated rather to the Lutheran doctrine. It was a reaction of
latent Zwinglianism against the dominant Calvinism. The Voetian school
successfully opposed the introduction of the Cartesian philosophy, and
secured supremacy to a scholasticism which held its own alongside of
that of the Lutherans. In opposition to it, the Cocceian federal school
undertook to produce a purely biblical system of theology in all its
departments.
§ 161.1. =Preliminaries of the Arminian Controversy.=--In the
_Confessio Belgica_ of A.D. 1562 the Protestant Netherlands
had already a strictly Calvinistic symbol, but Calvinism had
not thoroughly permeated the church doctrine and constitution.
There were more opponents than supporters of the doctrine of
predestination, and a Melanchthonian-synergistic (§ 141, 7),
or even an Erasmian-semipelagian, (§ 125, 3) doctrine, of
the freedom of the will and the efficacy of grace, was more
frequently taught and preached than the Augustinian-Calvinistic
doctrine. So also Zwingli’s view of the relation of church
and state was in much greater favour than the Calvinistic
Presbyterial church government with its terrorist discipline.
But the return of the exiles in A.D. 1572, who had adopted
strict Calvinistic views in East Friesland and on the Lower
German Rhine, led to the adoption of a purely Calvinistic creed
and constitution. The keenest opponent of this movement was
Coornhert, notary and secretary for the city of Haarlem, who
combated Calvinism in numerous writings, and depreciated doctrine
generally in the interests of practical living Christianity.
Political as well as religious sympathies were enlisted in
favour of this freer ecclesiastical tendency. The Dutch War
of Independence was a struggle for religious freedom against
Spanish Catholic fanaticism. The young republic therefore
became the first home of religious toleration, which was scarcely
reconcilable with a strict and exclusive Calvinism.--Meanwhile
within the Calvinistic church a controversy arose, which divided
its adherents in the Netherlands into two parties. In opposition
to the strict Calvinists, who as supralapsarians held that the
fall itself was included in the eternal counsels of God, there
arose the milder infralapsarians, who made predestination come
in after the fall, which was not predestinated but only foreseen
by God.
§ 161.2. =The Arminian Controversy.=--In A.D. 1588, James
Arminius (born A.D. 1560), a pupil of Beza, but a declared
adherent of the Ramist philosophy (§ 143, 6), was appointed
pastor in Amsterdam, and ordered by the magistrates to controvert
Coornhert’s universalism and the infralapsarianism of the
ministers of Delft. He therefore studied Coornhert’s writings,
and by them was shaken in his earlier beliefs. This was shown
first in certain sermons on passages from Romans, which made him
suspected of Pelagianism. In A.D. 1603 he was made theological
professor of Leyden, where he found a bitter opponent in his
supralapsarian colleague, Francis Gomarus. From the class-rooms
the controversy spread to the pulpits, and even into domestic
circles. A public disputation in A.D. 1608, led to no pacific
result, and Arminius continued involved in controversies
till his death in A.D. 1609. Although decidedly inclined
toward universalism, he had directed his polemic mainly against
supralapsarianism, as making God himself the author of sin.
But his followers went beyond these limits. When denounced by
the Gomarists as Pelagians, they addressed to the provincial
parliament of Holland and West Friesland, in A.D. 1610, a
remonstrance, which in five articles repudiates supralapsarianism
and infralapsarianism, and the doctrines of the irresistibility
of grace, and of the impossibility of the elect finally
falling away from it, and boldly asserts the universality of
grace. They were hence called Remonstrants and their opponents
Contraremonstrants. Parliament, favourably inclined toward
the Arminians, pronounced the difference non-fundamental,
and enjoined peace. When Vorstius, who was practically a
Socinian, was appointed successor to Arminius, Gomarus charged
the Remonstrants with Socinianism. Their ablest theological
representative was Simon Episcopius, who succeeded Gomarus at
Leyden in A.D. 1612, supported by the distinguished statesman,
Oldenbarneveldt, and the great jurist, humanist, and theologian,
Hugo Grotius of Rotterdam. Maurice of Orange, too, for a long
time sided with them, but in A.D. 1617 formally went over to
the other party, whose well-knit unity, strict discipline, and
rigorous energy commended them to him as the fittest associates
in his struggle for absolute monarchy. The republican-Arminian
party was conquered, Oldenbarneveldt being executed in 1619,
Grotius escaping by his wife’s strategem. =The Synod of Dort=
was convened for the purpose of settling doctrinal disputes.
It held 154 sessions, from Nov. 13th, 1618, to May 9th, 1619.
Invitations were accepted by twenty-eight theologians from
England, Scotland, Germany, and Switzerland. Brandenburg took
no part in it (§ 154, 3), and French theologians were refused
permission to go. Episcopius presented a clear and comprehensive
apology for the Remonstrants, and bravely defended their cause
before the synod. Refusing to submit to the decisions of the
synod, they were at the fifty-seventh session expelled, and then
excommunicated and deprived of all ecclesiastical offices. The
Heidelberg Catechism and the Belgic Confession were unanimously
adopted as the creed and manual of orthodox teaching. In the
discussion of the five controverted points, the opposition
of the Anglican and German delegates prevented any open and
manifest insertion of supralapsarian theses, so that the synodal
canons set forth only an essentially infralapsarian theory of
predestination.--Remonstrant teachers were now expelled from
most of the states of the union. Only after Maurice’s death
in A.D. 1625 did they venture to return, and in A.D. 1630 they
were allowed by statute to erect churches and schools in all the
states. A theological seminary at Amsterdam, presided over by
Episcopius till his death, in A.D. 1643, rose to be a famous
seat of learning and nursery of liberal studies. The number of
congregations, however, remained small, and their importance
in church history consists rather in the development of an
independent church life than in the revival of a semipelagian
and rationalistic type of doctrine.[472]
§ 161.3. =Consequences of the Arminian Controversy.=--The Dort
decrees were not accepted in Brandenburg, Hesse, and Bremen,
where a moderate Calvinism continued to prevail. In England
and Scotland the Presbyterians enthusiastically approved of the
decrees, whereas the Episcopalians repudiated them, and, rushing
to the other extreme of latitudinarianism, often showed lukewarm
indifferentism in the way in which they distinguished articles
of faith as essential and non-essential. The worthiest of the
latitudinarians of this age was Chillingworth, who sought an
escape from the contentions of theologians in the Catholic church,
but soon returned to Protestantism, seeking and finding peace in
God’s word alone. Archbishop Tillotson was a famous pulpit orator,
and Gilbert Burnet, who died A.D. 1715, was author of a “History
of the English Reformation.” In the French Reformed church, where
generally strict Calvinism prevailed, =Amyrault= of Saumur, who
died A.D. 1664, taught a _universalismus hypotheticus_, according
to which God by a _decretum universale et hypotheticum_ destined
all men to salvation through Jesus Christ, even the heathen, on
the ground of a _fides implicita_. The only condition is that
they believe, and for this all the means are afforded in _gratia
resistibilis_, while by a _decretum absolutum et speciale_
only to elect persons is granted the _gratia irresistibilis_.
The synods of Alençon, A.D. 1637, and Charenton, A.D. 1644,
supported by Blondel, Daillé, and Claude, declared these doctrines
allowable; but Du Moulin of Sedan, Rivetus and Spanheim of Leyden,
Maresius of Groningen [Gröningen], and others, offered violent
opposition. Amyrault’s colleague, =De la Place=, or _Placæus_,
who died A.D. 1655, went still further, repudiating the
unconditional imputation of Adam’s sin, and representing original
sin simply as an evil which becomes guilt only as our own actual
transgression. The synods just named condemned this doctrine.
Somewhat later Claude =Pajon= of Saumur, who died A.D. 1685,
roused a bitter discussion about the universality of grace,
by maintaining that in conversion divine providence wrought
only through the circumstances of the life, and the Holy
Spirit through the word of God. Several French synods condemned
this doctrine, and affirmed an immediate as well as a mediate
operation of the Spirit and providence.--Genuine Calvinism was
best represented in Switzerland, as finally expressed in the
=Formula Consensus= _Helvetica_ of Heidegger of Zürich, adopted
in A.D. 1675 by most of the cantons. It was, like the _Formula
Concordiæ_, a manual of doctrine rather than a confession. In
opposition to Amyrault and De la Place, it set forth a strict
theory of predestination and original sin, and maintained with
the Buxtorfs, against Cappellus of Saumur, the inspiration of
the Hebrew vowel points.
§ 161.4. =The Cocceian and Cartesian Controversies.=--If not
the founder, certainly the most distinguished representative in
the Netherlands of that scholasticism which sought to expound
and defend orthodoxy, was =Voetius=, who died A.D. 1676,
from A.D. 1607 pastor in various places, and from A.D. 1634
professor at Utrecht. A completely different course was pursued
by =Cocceius= of Bremen, who died A.D. 1669, professor at
Franeker in A.D. 1636, and at Leyden in A.D. 1650. The famous
Zürich theologian, Bullinger (§ 138, 7), had in his “_Compend.
Rel. Chr._” of A.D. 1556, viewed the whole doctrine of saving
truth from the point of view of a covenant of grace between God
and man; and this idea was afterwards carried out by Olevianus
of Heidelberg (§ 144, 1) in his “_De Substantia Fœderis_,” of
A.D. 1585. This became the favourite method of distribution
of doctrine in the whole German Reformed church. In the Dutch
church it was regarded as quite unobjectionable. In England it
was adopted in the Westminster Confession of A.D. 1648 (§ 155, 1),
and in Switzerland in A.D. 1675, in the _Formula Consensus_.
Cocceius is therefore not the founder of the federal theology.
He simply gave it a new and independent development, and freed
it from the trammels of scholastic dogmatics. He distinguished
a twofold covenant of God with man: the _fœdus operum s. naturæ_
before, and the _fœdus gratiæ_ after the fall. He then subdivided
the covenant of grace into three economies: before the law
until Moses; under the law until Christ; and after the law in
the Christian church. The history of the kingdom of God in the
Christian era was arranged in seven periods, corresponding to the
seven apocalyptic epistles, trumpets, and seals. In his treatment
of his theme, he repudiated philosophy, scholasticism, and
tradition, and held simply by Scripture. He is thus the founder
of a purely biblical theology. He attached himself as closely as
possible to the prevailing predestinationist orthodoxy, but only
externally. In his view the sacred history in its various epochs
adjusted itself to the needs of human personality, and to the
growing capacity for appropriating it. Hence it was not the idea
of election, but that of grace, that prevailed in his system.
Christ is the centre of all history, spiritual, ecclesiastical,
and civil; and so everything in Scripture, history, doctrine, and
prophecy, necessarily and immediately stands related to him. The
O.T. prophecies and types point to the Christ that was to come
in the flesh, and all history after Christ points to his second
coming; and O. and N.T. give an outline of ecclesiastical and
civil history down to the end of time. Thus typology formed the
basis of the Cocceian theology. In exegesis, however, Cocceius
avoided all arbitrary allegorizing. It was with him an axiom in
hermeneutics, _Id significan verba, quod significare possunt in
integra oratione, sic ut omnino inter se conveniant_. Yet his
typology led him, and still more many of his adherents, into
fantastic exegetical errors in the prophetic treatment of the
seven apocalyptic periods.
§ 161.5. A controversy, occasioned by Cocceius’ statement, in his
commentary on Hebrews in A.D. 1658, that the Sabbath, as enjoined
by the O.T. ceremonial law, was no longer binding, was stopped
in A.D. 1659 by a State prohibition. Voetius had not taken
part in it. But when Cocceius, in A.D. 1665, taught from Romans
iii. 25, that believers under the law had not full “ἄφεσις,”
only a “πάρεσις,” he felt obliged to enter the lists against this
“Socinian” heresy. The controversy soon spread to other doctrines
of Cocceius and his followers, and soon the whole populace seemed
divided into Voetians and Cocceians (§ 162, 5). The one hurled
offensive epithets at the other. The Orange political party
sought and obtained the favour of the Voetians, as before they
had that of the Gomarists; while the liberal republican party
coalesced with the Cocceians. Philosophical questions next
came to be mixed up in the discussion. The philosophy of the
French Catholic =Descartes= (§ 164, 1), settled in A.D. 1629 in
Amsterdam, had gained ground in the Netherlands. It had indeed
no connexion with Christianity or church, and its theological
friends wished only to have it recognised as a formal branch of
study. But its fundamental principle, that all true knowledge
starts from doubt, appeared to the representatives of orthodoxy
as threatening the church with serious danger. Even in A.D. 1643
Voetius opposed it, and mainly in consequence of his polemic,
the States General, in A.D. 1656, forbad it being taught in the
universities. Their common opposition to scholasticism, however,
brought Cocceians and Cartesians more closely to one another.
Theology now became influenced by Cartesianism. Roëll, professor
at Franeker and Utrecht, who died A.D. 1718, taught that the
divinity of the Scriptures must be proved to the reason, since
the _testimonium Spir. s. internum_ is limited to those who
already believe, rejected the doctrine of the imputation
of original sin, the doctrine that death is for believers
the punishment of sin, and the application of the idea of
eternal “generation” to the Logos, to whom the predicate of
sonship belongs only in regard to the decree of redemption
and incarnation. Another zealous Cartesian, Balth. Bekker, not
only repudiated the superstitions of the age about witchcraft
(§ 117, 4), but also denied the existence of the devil and demons.
The Cocceians were in no way responsible for such extravagances,
but their opponents sought to make them chargeable for these. The
stadtholder, William III., at last issued an order, in A.D. 1694,
which checked for a time the violence of the strife.
§ 161.6. =Theological Literature.=--Biblical oriental philology
flourished in the Reformed church of this age. =Drusius= of
Franeker, who died A.D. 1616, was the greatest Old Testament
exegete of his day. The two =Buxtorfs= of Basel, the father
died A.D. 1629, the son A.D. 1664, the greatest Christian
rabbinical scholars, wrote Hebrew and Chaldee grammars,
lexicons, and concordances, and maintained the antiquity and
even inspiration of the Hebrew vowel points against Cappellus
of Saumur. =Hottinger= of Zürich, who died A.D. 1667, vied with
both in his knowledge of oriental literature and languages, and
wrote extensively on biblical philology, and besides found time
to write a comprehensive and learned church history. =Cocceius=,
too, occupies a respectable place among Hebrew lexicographers.
In England, both before and after the Restoration, scholarship
was found, not among the controversial Puritans, but among the
Episcopal clergy. =Brian Walton=, who died A.D. 1661, aided by
the English scholars, issued an edition of the “London Polyglott”
in six vols., in A.D. 1657, which, in completeness of material
and apparatus, as well as in careful textual criticism, leaves
earlier editions far behind. =Edm. Castellus= of Cambridge in
A.D. 1669 published his celebrated “_Lexicon Heptaglottum_.” The
Elzevir printing-house at Amsterdam and Leyden, boldly assuming
the prerogatives of the whole body of theological scholars,
issued a _textus receptus_ of the N.T. in A.D. 1624. The best
established exegetical results of earlier times were collected
by Pearson in his great compendium, the “_Critici Sacri_,” nine
vols. fol., London, 1660; and Matthew Pool in his “_Synopsis
Criticorum_,” five vols. fol., London, 1669. Among the exegetes
of this time the brothers, J. Cappellus of Sedan, who died
A.D. 1624, and Louis Cappellus II. of Saumur, who died A.D. 1658,
were distinguished for their linguistic knowledge and liberal
criticism. =Pococke= of Oxford and =Lightfoot= of Cambridge were
specially eminent orientalists. =Cocceius= wrote commentaries
on almost all the books of Scripture, and his scholar =Vitringa=
of Franeker, who died A.D. 1716, gained great reputation by his
expositions of Isaiah and the Apocalypse. Among the Arminians the
famous statesman =Grotius=, who died A.D. 1645, was the greatest
master of grammatico-historical exposition in the century, and
illustrated Scripture from classical literature and philology.
The Reformed church too gave brilliant contributions to biblical
archæology and history. =John Selden= wrote “_De Syndriis Vett.
Heb._,” “_De diis Syris_,” etc. =Goodwin= wrote “Moses and Aaron.”
=Ussher= wrote “_Annales V. et N.T._” =Spencer= wrote “_De
Legibus Heb._” The Frenchman =Bochart=, in his “_Hierozoicon_”
and “_Phaleg_,” made admirable contributions to the natural
history and geography of the Bible.
§ 161.7. Dogmatic theology was cultivated mainly in the
Netherlands. =Maccovius=, a Pole, who died A.D. 1644, a
professor at Franeker, introduced the scholastic method into
Reformed dogmatics. The Synod of Dort cleared him of the charge
of heresy made against him by Amesius, but condemned his method.
Yet it soon came into very general use. Its chief representatives
were Maresius of Groningen [Gröningen], Voetius and Mastricht
of Utrecht, Hoornbeck [Hoornbeeck] of Leyden, and the German
Wendelin, rector of Zerbst. Among the Cocceians the most
distinguished were Heidanus of Leyden, Alting of Groningen
[Gröningen], and, above all, Hermann Witsius of Franeker, whose
“Economy of the Covenants” is written in a conciliatory spirit.
The most distinguished Arminian dogmatist after Episcopius
was =Phil. Limborch= of Amsterdam, who died A.D. 1712, in
high repute also as an apologist, exegete, and historian. The
greatest dogmatist of the Anglican church was =Pearson=, who died
A.D. 1686, author of “An Exposition of the Creed.” The Frenchman
=Peyrerius= obtained great notoriety from his statement, founded
on Romans v. 12, that Adam was merely the ancestor of the Jews
(Gen. ii. 7), while the Gentiles were of pre-Adamite origin
(Gen. i. 26), and also by maintaining that the flood had been only
partial. He gained release from prison by joining the Catholic
church and recanted, but still held by his earlier views.--Ethics,
consisting hitherto of little more than an exposition of the
decalogue, was raised by =Amyrault= into an independent science.
Amesius dealt with cases of conscience. =Grotius=, in his “_De
Veritate Relig. Chr._” and =Abbadie=, French pastor at Berlin,
and afterwards in London, who died A.D. 1727, in his “_Vérité de
la Rel. Chrét._,” distinguished themselves as apologists. =Claude=
and =Jurieu= gained high reputation as controversialists against
Catholicism and its persecution of the Huguenots.--The Reformed
church also in the interests of polemics pursued historical
studies. Hottinger of Zürich, Spanheim of Leyden, Sam. Basnage
of Zütpfen, and Jac. Basnage of the Hague, produced general
church histories. Among the numerous historical monographs the
most important are =Hospinian’s= “_De Templis_,” “_De Monachis_,”
“_De Festis_,” “_Hist. Sacramentaria_,” “_Historia Jesuitica_;”
=Blondel’s= “_Ps.-Isidorus_,” “_De la Primauté de l’Egl._,”
“_Question si une Femme a été Assisse au Siège Papal_” (§ 82, 6),
“_Apologia sent. Hieron. de Presbyt._” Also =Daillé= of Saumur
on the non-genuineness of the “Apostolic Constitutions” and the
Ps.-Dionysian writings, and his “_De Usu Patrum_” in opposition
to Cave’s Catholicizing over-estimation of the Fathers. We have
also the English scholar =Ussher=, who died A.D. 1656, “_Brit.
Ecclesiarum Antiquitates_;” H. Dodwell, who died A.D. 1711,
“_Diss. Cyprianicæ_,” etc.; Wm. Cave, who died A.D. 1713, “Hist.
of App. and Fathers,” “_Scriptorum Ecclst. Hist. Literaria_,”
etc.--Special mention should be made of =Eisenmenger=, professor
of oriental languages at Heidelberg. In his “_Entdecktes
Judenthum_,” two vols. quarto, moved by the over-bearing
arrogance of the Jews of his day, he made an immense collection
of absurdities and blasphemies of rabbinical theology from Jewish
writings. At his own expense he printed 2,000 copies; for these
the Jews offered him 12,000 florins, but he demanded 30,000.
They now persuaded the court at Venice to confiscate them before
a single copy was sold. Eisenmenger died in A.D. 1704, and his
heirs vainly sought to have the copies of his work given up to
them. Even the appeal of Frederick I. of Prussia was refused.
Only when the king had resolved, in A.D. 1711, at his own expense
to publish an edition from one copy that had escaped confiscation,
was the Frankfort edition at last given back.
§ 161.8. =The Apocrypha Controversy= (§ 136, 4).--In A.D. 1520
Carlstadt raised the question of the books found only in the
LXX., and answered it in the style of Jerome (§ 59, 1). Luther
gave them in his translation as an appendix to the O.T. with the
title “Apocrypha, _i.e._ Books, not indeed of Holy Scripture,
but useful and worthy to be read.” Reformed confessions took
up the same position. The Belgic Confession agreed indeed that
these books should be read in church, and proof passages taken
from them, in so far as they were in accord with the canonical
Scriptures. The Anglican Book of Common Prayer gives readings
from these books. On the other hand, although at the Synod of
Dort the proposal to remove at least the apocryphal books of Ezra
or Esdras, Tobit, Judith, Bel and the Dragon, was indeed rejected,
it was ordered that in future all apocryphal books should be
printed in smaller type than the canonical books, should be
separately paged, with a special title, and with a preface and
marginal notes where necessary. Their exclusion from all editions
of the Bible was first insisted on by English and Scotch Puritans.
This example was followed by the French, but not by the German,
Swiss, and Dutch Reformed churches.--Continuation, § 182, 4.
§ 162. THE RELIGIOUS LIFE.[473]
The religious life in the Reformed church is characterized generally
by harsh legalism, rigorous renunciation of the world, and a thorough
earnestness, coupled with decision and energy of will, which nothing in
the world can break or bend. It is the spirit of Calvin which impresses
on it this character, and determines its doctrine. Only where Calvin’s
influence was less potent, _e.g._ in the Lutheranized German Reformed,
the catholicized Anglican Episcopal Church, and among the Cocceians,
is this tendency less apparent or altogether wanting. On the other
hand, often carried to the utmost extreme, it appears among the English
Puritans (§§ 143, 3; 155, 1) and the French Huguenots (§ 153, 4), where
it was fostered by persecution and oppression.
§ 162.1. =England and Scotland.=--During the period of the
English Revolution (§ 155, 1, 2), after the overthrow of
Episcopacy, Puritanism became dominant; and the incongruous
and contradictory elements already existing within it assumed
exaggerated proportions (§ 143, 3, 4), until at last the opposing
parties broke out into violent contentions with one another.
The ideal of Scottish and English =Presbyterianism= was the
setting up of the kingdom of Christ as a theocracy, in which
church and state were blended after the O.T. pattern. Hence
all the institutions of church and state were to be founded on
Scripture models, while all later developments were set aside
as deteriorations from that standard. The ecclesiastical side of
this ideal was to be realized by the establishment of a spiritual
aristocracy represented in presbyteries and synods, which,
ruling the presbyteries through the synods, and the congregations
through the presbyteries, regarded itself as called and under
obligation to inspect and supervise all the details of the
private as well as public life of church members, and all this
too by Divine right. Regarding their system as alone having
divine institution, Presbyterians could not recognise any other
religious or ecclesiastical party, and must demand uniformity,
not only in regard to doctrine and creed, but also in regard to
constitution, discipline, and worship.[474]--On the other hand,
=Independent Congregationalism=, inasmuch as it made prominent
the N.T. ideas of the priesthood of all believers and spiritual
freedom, demanded unlimited liberty to each separate congregation,
and unconditional equality for all individual church members.
It thus rejected the theocratic ideal of Presbyterianism, strove
after a purely democratic constitution, and recognised toleration
of all religious views as a fundamental principle of Christianity.
Every attempt to secure uniformity and stability of forms
of worship was regarded as a repressing of the Spirit of God
operating in the church, and so alongside of the public services
private conventicles abounded, in which believers sought to
promote mutual edification. But soon amid the upheavals of this
agitated period a fanatical spirit spread among the various sects
of the Independents. The persecutions under Elizabeth and the
Stuarts had awakened a longing for the return of the Lord, and
the irresistible advance of Cromwell’s army, composed mostly
of Independents, made it appear as if the millennium was close
at hand. Thus chiliasm came to be a fundamental principle of
Independency, and soon too prophecy made its appearance to
interpret and prepare the way for that which was coming. From the
_Believers_ of the old Dutch times we now come to the =Saints= of
the early Cromwell period. These regarded themselves as called,
in consequence of their being inspired by God’s Spirit, to form
the “kingdom of the saints” on earth promised in the last days,
and hence also, from Daniel ii. and vii., they were called Fifth
Monarchy Men. The so called Short Parliament of A.D. 1653, in
which these Saints were in a majority, had already laid the
first stones of this structure by introducing civil marriage,
with the strict enforcement, however, of Matthew v. 32, as well
as by the abolition of all rights of patronage and all sorts
of ecclesiastical taxes, when Cromwell dissolved it. The Saints
had not and would not have any fixed, formulated theological
system. They had, however, a most lively interest in doctrine,
and produced a great diversity of Scripture expositions and
dogmatic views, so that their deadly foes, the Presbyterians,
could hurl against them old and new heretical designations
by the hundred. The fundamental doctrine of predestination,
common to all Puritans, was, even with them, for the most part,
a presupposition of all theological speculation.
§ 162.2. At the same time with the _Saints_ there appeared
among the Independents the =Levellers=, political and social
revolutionists, rather than an ecclesiastical and religious sect.
They were unjustly charged with claiming an equal distribution of
goods. Over against the absolutist theories of the Stuarts, all
the Independents maintained that the king, like all other civil
magistrates, is answerable at all times and in all circumstances
to the people, to whom all sovereignty originally and inalienably
belongs. This principle was taken by the Levellers as the
starting-point of their reforms. As their first regulative
principle in reconstructing the commonwealth and determining the
position of the church therein they did not take the theocratic
constitution of the O.T., as the Presbyterians did, nor the
biblical revelation of the N.T., as the moderate Independents
did, nor even the modern professed prophecy of the “Saints,” but
the law of nature as the basis of all revelation, and already
grounded in creation, with the sovereignty of the people as
its ultimate foundation. While the rest of the Independents
held by the idea of a Christian state, and only claimed that
all Christian denominations, with the exception of the Catholics
(§ 153, 6), should enjoy all political rights, the Levellers
demanded complete separation of church and state. This therefore
implied, on the one hand, the non-religiousness of the state,
and, on the other, again with the exception of Catholics, the
absolute freedom, independence, and equality of all religious
parties, even non-Christian sects and atheists. Yet all the
while the Levellers themselves were earnestly and warmly attached
to Christian truth as held by the other Independents.--Roger
Williams (§ 163, 3), a Baptist minister, in A.D. 1631
transplanted the first seeds of Levellerism from England to North
America, and by his writings helped again to spread those views
in England. When he returned home in A.D. 1651 he found the sect
already flourishing. The ablest leader of the English Levellers
was John Lilburn. In A.D. 1638, when scarcely twenty years old,
he was flogged and sentenced to imprisonment for life, because he
had printed Puritan writings in Holland and had them circulated
in England. Released on the outbreak of the Revolution, he joined
the Parliamentary army, was taken prisoner by the Royalists
and sentenced to death, but escaped by flight. He was again
imprisoned for writing libels on the House of Lords. Set free
by the Rump Parliament, he became colonel in Cromwell’s army,
but was banished the country when it was found that the spread
of radicalism endangered discipline. Till the dissolution of the
Short Parliament his followers were in thorough sympathy with
the Saints. Afterwards their ways went more and more apart; the
Saints drifted into Quakerism (§ 163, 4), while the Levellers
degenerated into deism (§ 164, 3).
§ 162.3. Out of the religious commotion prevailing in England
before, during, and after the Revolution there sprang up a
voluminous =devotional literature=, intended to give guidance
and directions for holy living. Its influence was felt in foreign
lands, especially in the Reformed churches of the continent, and
even German Lutheran Pietism was not unaffected by it (§ 159, 3).
That this movement was not confined to the Puritans, among
whom it had its origin, is seen from the fact that during the
seventeenth century many such treatises were issued from the
University Press of Cambridge. =Lewis Bayly=, Bishop of Bangor
A.D. 1616-1632, wrote one of the most popular books of this
kind, “The Practice of Piety,” which was in A.D. 1635 in its
thirty-second and in A.D. 1741 in its fifty-first edition, and
was also widely circulated in Dutch, French, German, Hungarian,
and Polish translations.--Out of the vast number of important
personages of the Revolution period we name the following three:
1. In =John Milton=, the highly gifted poet as well as eloquent
and powerful politician, born A.D. 1608, died A.D. 1674, we
find, on the basis of a liberal classical training received
in youth, all the motive powers of Independency, from the
original Puritan zeal for the faith and Reformation to
the politico-social radicalism of the Levellers, combined
in full and vigorous operation. From Italy, the beloved
land of classical science and artistic culture, he was
called back to England in A.D. 1640 at the first outburst
of freedom-loving enthusiasm (§ 155, 1), and made the
thunder of his controversial treatises ring over the
battlefield of parties. He fought against the narrowness
of Presbyterian control of conscience not less energetically
than against the hierarchism of the Episcopal church;
vindicates the permissibility of divorce (in view, no
doubt, of his own first unhappy marriage); advanced in his
“_Areopagitica_” of A.D. 1644 a plea for the unrestricted
liberty of the press; pulverized in his “_Iconoclastes_”
of A.D. 1649 the Εἰκὼν βασιλική, ascribed to Charles I.;
in several tracts, “_Defensio pro Populo Anglicano_,” etc.,
justified the execution of the king against Salmasius’s
“_Defensio Regia pro Carolo I._;” and, even after he
had in A.D. 1652 become incurably blind, he continued
unweariedly his polemics till silenced by the Restoration.
The “_Iconoclastes_” and “_Defensio_” were burned by the
hangman, but he himself was left unmolested. He now devoted
himself to poetry. “Paradise Lost” appeared in A.D. 1665,
and “Paradise Regained” in A.D. 1671. To this period,
when he had probably turned his back on all existing
religious parties, belongs the composition of his “_De
doctrina Christiana_,” a first attempt at a purely biblical
theology, Arian in its Christology and Arminian in its
soteriology.[475]
2. =Richard Baxter=, born A.D. 1615, died A.D. 1691, was quite
a different sort of man, and showed throughout a decidedly
ironical tendency. At once attracted and repelled by the
Independent movement in Cromwell’s army, he joined the force
in A.D. 1645 as military chaplain, hoping to moderate, if
not to check, their extravagances. A severe illness obliged
him to withdraw in A.D. 1647. After his recovery he returned
to his former post as assistant-minister at Kidderminster
in Worcestershire, and there remained till driven out by the
Act of Uniformity of A.D. 1662 (§ 155, 3). Those fourteen
years formed the period of his most successful labours. He
then composed most of his numerous devotional works, three
of which, “The Saint’s Everlasting Rest,” “The Reformed
Pastor,” “A Call to the Unconverted,” are still widely read
in the original and in translations. At first he hoped much
from the Restoration; but when, on conscientious grounds,
he refused a bishopric, he met only with persecution,
ill treatment, and imprisonment. Through William’s Act
of Toleration of A.D. 1689, he was allowed to pass the
last year of his life in London. On the doctrine of
predestination he took the moderate position of Amyrault
(§ 161, 3). His ideal church constitution was a blending
of Presbyterianism and Episcopacy, by restoring the original
episcopal constitution of the second century, when even the
smaller churches had each its own bishop with a presbytery
by his side.[476]
3. =John Bunyan=, born A.D. 1628, died A.D. 1688, was in his
youth a tinker or brazier, and as such seems to have led
a rough, wild life. On the outbreak of the Civil War in
A.D. 1642, he was drafted into the Parliamentary army.[477]
At the close of the war he married a poor girl from a
Puritan family, whose only marriage portion consisted in
two Puritan books of devotion. It was now that the birthday
of a new spiritual life began to dawn in him. He joined
the Baptist Independents, the most zealous of the Saints of
that time, was baptized by them in A.D. 1655, and travelled
the country as a preacher, attracting thousands around
him everywhere by his glorious eloquence. In A.D. 1660
he was thrown into prison, from which he was released by
the Indulgence of A.D. 1672 (§ 155, 3). He now settled in
Bedford, and from this time till his death, amid persecution
and oppression, continued his itinerant preaching with
ever-increasing zeal and success. “The Pilgrim’s Progress”
was written by him in prison. It is an allegory of the
freshest and most lively form, worthy to rank alongside
the “Imitation of Christ” (§ 114, 7). In it the fanatical
endeavour of the Saints to rear a millennial kingdom
on earth is transfigured into a struggle overcoming all
hindrances to secure an entrance into the heavenly Zion
above. It has passed through numberless editions, and has
been translated into almost all known languages.[478]
§ 162.4. =The Netherlands.=--From England the Reformed Pietism
was transplanted to the Netherlands, where =William Teellinck=
may be regarded as its founder. After finishing his legal studies
he resided for a while in England, where he made the acquaintance
of the Puritans and their writings, and was deeply impressed with
their earnest and pious family life. He then went to Leyden to
study theology, and in A.D. 1606 began a ministry that soon bore
fruit. He was specially blessed at Middelburg in Zealand, where
he died A.D. 1629. His writings, larger and smaller, more than a
hundred in number, in which a peculiar sweetness of mystical love
for the Redeemer is combined with stern Calvinistic views, after
the style of St. Bernard, were circulated widely in numerous
editions, eagerly read in many lands, and for fully a century
exerted a powerful influence throughout the whole Reformed church.
Teellinck in no particular departed from the prevailing orthodoxy,
but unwittingly toned down its harshness in his tracts, and
with the gentleness characteristic of him counselled brotherly
forbearance amid the bitterness of the Arminian controversy. In
spite of much hostility, which his best efforts could not prevent,
many university theologians stood by his side as warm admirers
of his writings. It will not be wondered at that among these was
the pious Amesius of Franeker (§ 161, 7), the scholar of the able
Perkins (§ 143, 5); but it is more surprising to find here the
powerful champion of scholastic orthodoxy, Voetius of Utrecht,
and his vigorous partisan, Hoornbeeck of Leyden. =Voetius=
especially, who even in his preacademic career as a pastor had
pursued a peculiarly exemplary and godly life, styled Teellinck
the Reformed Thomas à Kempis, and owned his deep indebtedness to
his devout writings. He opened his academic course in A.D. 1634
with an introductory discourse, “_De Pietate cum Scientia
conjungenda_,” and year after year gave lectures on ascetical
theology, out of which grew his treatise published in A.D. 1664,
“_Τὰ Ἀσκητικὰ s. Exercita Pietatis in usum Juventutis Acad._,”
which is a complete exposition of evangelical practical divinity
in a thoroughly scholastic form.
§ 162.5. During the controversy in the Dutch Reformed Church
between =Voetians and Cocceians=, beginning in A.D. 1658, the
former favoured the pietistic movement. In the German Pietist
controversy the Cocceians were with the Pietists in their
biblical orthodoxy joined with confessional indifferentism, but
with the orthodox in their liberality and breadth on matters of
life and conduct. The earnest, practical piety of the Voetians,
again, made them sympathise with the Lutheran Pietists, and their
zeal for pure doctrine and the Church confession brought them
into relation with the orthodox Lutherans. As discord between
the theologians arose over the obligation of the Sabbath law,
so the difference among the people arose out of the question of
Sabbath observance. The Voetians maintained that the decalogue
prohibition of any form of work on Sabbath was still fully
binding, while the Cocceians, on the ground of Mark ii. 27,
Galatians iv. 9, Colossians ii. 16, etc., denied its continued
obligation, their wives often, to the annoyance of the Voetians,
sitting in the windows after Divine service with their knitting
or sewing. But the opposition did not stop there; it spread
into all departments of life. The Voetians set great value upon
fasting and private meditation, avoided all public games and
plays, dressed plainly, and observed a simple, pious mode of
life; their pastors wore a clerical costume, etc. The Cocceians,
again, fell in with the customs of the time, mingled freely in
the mirth and pastimes of the people, went to public festivals
and entertainments, their women dressed in elegant, stylish
attire, their pastors were not bound by hard and fast symbols,
but had full Scripture freedom, etc.--Continuation, § 169, 2.
§ 162.6. =France, Germany, and Switzerland.=--The Reformed church
of =France= has gained imperishable renown as a martyr-church.
Fanatical excesses, however, appeared among the prophets of the
Cevennes (§ 153, 4), the fruits of which continued down into
the eighteenth century, and appeared now and again in England,
Holland, and Germany (§ 160, 2, 7).--In =Germany= the Reformed
church, standing side by side with the numerically far larger
Lutheran church, had much of the sternness and severity that
characterized the Romanic-Calvinistic party in doctrine, worship,
and life greatly modified; but where the Reformed element was
predominant, as in the Lower Rhine, it was correspondingly
affected by a contrary influence. The Reformed church in
Germany in its service of praise kept to the psalms of Marot and
Lobwasser (§ 143, 2). Maurice of Hesse published Lobwasser’s in
A.D. 1612, accompanied by some new bright melodies, for the use
of the churches in the land. Lutheran hymns, however, gradually
found their way into the Reformed church, which also produced two
gifted poets of its own. =Louisa Henrietta=, Princess of Orange,
wife of the great elector, and Paul Gerhardt’s sovereign, wrote
“Jesus my Redeemer lives;” and =Joachim Neander=, pastor in
Bremen, wrote, “Thou most Highest! Guardian of mankind,” “To
heaven and earth and sea and air,” “Here behold me, as I cast
me.”--In German =Switzerland= the noble =Breitinger= of Zürich,
who died A.D. 1645, the greatest successor of Zwingli and
Bullinger, wrought successfully during a forty years’ ministry,
and did much to revive and quicken the church life. That the
spirit of Calvin and Beza still breathed in the church of Geneva
is proved by the reception given there to such men as Andreä
(§ 160, 1), Labadie (§ 163, 7), and Spener (§ 159, 3).
§ 162.7. =Foreign Missions.=--From two sides the Reformed
church had outlets for its Christian love in the work of foreign
missions; on the one side by the cession of the Portuguese
East Indian colonies to the Netherlands in the beginning of the
seventeenth century, and on the other side by the continuous
formation of English colonies in North America throughout
the whole century. In regard to missionary effort, the
Dutch government followed in the footsteps of her Portuguese
predecessors. She insisted that all natives, before getting
a situation, should be baptized and have signed the Belgic
Confession, and many who fulfilled these conditions remained as
they had been before. But the English Puritans settled in America
showed a zeal for the conversion of the Indians more worthy
of the Protestant name. John Eliot, who is rightly styled the
apostle of the Indians, devoted himself with unwearied and
self-denying love for half a century to this task. He translated
the Bible into their language, and founded seventeen Indian
stations, of which during his lifetime ten were destroyed in
a bloody war. Eliot’s work was taken up by the Mayhew family,
who for five generations wrought among the Indians. The last
of the noble band, Zacharias Mayhew, died on the mission field
in A.D. 1803, in his 87th year.[479]--Continuation, § 172, 5.
V. Anti- and Extra-Ecclesiastical Parties.
§ 163. SECTS AND FANATICS.
Socinianism during the first decades of the century made extraordinary
progress in Poland, but then collapsed under the persecution of
the Jesuits. Related to the continental Anabaptists were the English
Baptists, who rejected infant baptism; while the Quakers, who adopted
the old fanatical theory of an inner light, set baptism and the Lord’s
supper entirely aside. In the sect of the Labadists we find a blending
of Catholic quietist mysticism and Calvinistic Augustinianism. Besides
those regular sects, there were various individual enthusiasts and
separatists. These were most rife in the Netherlands, where the free
civil constitution afforded a place of refuge for all exiles on account
of their faith. Here only was the press free enough to serve as a
thoroughgoing propaganda of mysticism and theosophy. Finally the Russian
sects, hitherto little studied, call for special attention.
§ 163.1. =The Socinians= (§ 148, 4).--The most important of the
Socinian congregations in =Poland=, for the most part small and
composed almost exclusively of the nobility, was that at Racau in
the Sendomir Palatinate. Founded in 1569, this city, since 1600
under James Sieninski, son of the founder, recognised Socinianism
as the established religion; and an academy was formed there
which soon occupied a distinguished position, and gave such
reputation to the place that it could be spoken of as “the
Sarmatian Athens.” But the congregation at Lublin, next in
importance to that of Racau, was destroyed as early as 1627 by
the mob under fanatical excitement caused by the Jesuits. The
same disaster befell Racau itself eleven years later. A couple of
idle schoolboys had thrown stones at a wooden crucifix standing
before the city gate, and had been for this severely punished by
their parents, and turned out of school. The Catholics, however,
made a complaint before the senate, where the Jesuits secured a
sentence that the school should be destroyed, the church taken
from “the Arians,” the printing press closed, but the ministers
and teachers outlawed and branded with infamy. And the Jesuits
did not rest until the Reichstag at Warsaw in 1658 issued decrees
of banishment against “all Arians,” and forbad the profession of
“Arianism” under pain of death.--The Davidist non-adoration party
of =Transylvanian= Unitarians (§ 148, 3) was finally overcome,
and the endeavours after conformity with the Polish Socinians
prevailed at the Diet of Deesch in 1638, where all Unitarian
communities engaged to offer worship to Christ, and to accept
the baptismal formula of Matthew xxviii. 19. And under the
standard of this so called _Complanatio Deesiana_ 106 Unitarian
congregations, with a membership of 60,000 souls, exist in
Transylvania to this day.--In =Germany= Socinianism had, even in
the beginning of the century, a secret nursery in the University
of Altdorf, belonging to the territory of the imperial city of
Nuremberg. Soner, professor of medicine, had been won over to
this creed by Socinians residing at Leyden, where he had studied
in 1597, 1598, and now used his official position at Altdorf
for, not only instilling his Unitarian doctrines by means
of private philosophical conversations into the minds of his
numerous students, who flocked to him from Poland, Transylvania,
and Hungary, but also for securing the adhesion of several German
students. Only after his death in 1612 did the Nuremberg council
come to know about this propaganda. A strict investigation was
then made, all Poles were expelled, and all the Socinian writings
that could be discovered were burned.--The later Polish Exultants
sought and found refuge in Germany, especially in Silesia,
Prussia, and Brandenburg, as well as in the Reformed Palatinate,
and also founded some small Unitarian congregations, which,
however, after maintaining for a while a miserable existence,
gradually passed out of view. They had greater success and spread
more widely in the =Netherlands=, till the states-general of 1653,
in consequence of repeated synodal protests, and on the ground
of an opinion given by the University of Leyden, issued a strict
edict against the Unitarians, who now gradually passed over to
the ranks of the Remonstrants (§ 161, 2) and the Collegiants.
Also in =England=, since the time of Henry VIII., antitrinitarian
confessors and martyrs were to be found. Even in 1611, under
James I., three of them had been consigned to the flames. The
Polish Socinians took occasion from this to send the king a
Racovian Catechism; but in 1614 it was, by order of parliament,
burned by the hands of the hangman. The Socinians were also
excluded from the benefit of the Act of Toleration of 1689, which
was granted to all other dissenters (§ 155, 3). The progress
of deism, however, among the upper classes (§§ 164, 3; 171, 1)
did much to prevent the extreme penal laws being carried into
execution.--The following are the most distinguished among the
numerous learned theologians of the Augustan age of Socinian
scholarship, who contributed to the extending, establishing, and
vindicating of the system of their church by exegetical, dogmatic,
and polemical writings: John Crell, died 1631; Jonas Schlichting,
died 1661; Von Wolzogen, died 1661; and Andr. Wissowatius,
a grandson of Faustus Socinus, died 1678; and with these must
also be ranked the historian of Polish Socinianism, Stanislaus
Lubienicki, died 1675, whose “_Hist. Reformat. Polonicæ_,” etc.,
was published at Amsterdam in 1685.
§ 163.2. =The Baptists of the Continent.=
1. =The Dutch Baptists= (§ 147, 2). Even during Menno’s
lifetime the Mennonites had split into the _Coarse_ and
the _Fine_. The _Coarse_, who had abandoned much of the
primitive severity of the sect, and were by far the most
numerous, were again divided during the Arminian controversy
into Remonstrants and Predestinationists. The former, from
their leader, were called Galenists, and from having a lamb
as the symbol of their Church, Lambists. The latter were
called Apostoolers from their leader, and Sunists because
their churches had the figure of the sun as a symbol. The
Lambists, who acknowledged no confession of faith, were most
numerous. In A.D. 1800, however, a union of the two parties
was effected, the Sunists adopting the doctrinal position
of the Lambists.--During the time when Arminian pastors
were banished from the Netherlands, three brothers Van der
Kodde founded a sect of =Collegiants=, which repudiated
the clerical office, assigned preaching and dispensation of
sacraments to laymen, and baptized only adults by immersion.
Their place of baptism was Rhynsburg on the Rhine, and hence
they were called Rhynsburgers. Their other name was given
them from their assemblies, which they styled _collegia_.
2. =The Moravian Baptists= (§ 147, 3). The Thirty Years’ War
ruined the flourishing Baptist congregations in Moravia,
and the reaction against all non-Catholics that followed
the battle of the White Mountain near Prague, in A.D. 1620,
told sorely against them. In A.D. 1622 a decree for their
banishment was issued, and these quiet, inoffensive men
were again homeless fugitives. Remnants of them fled into
Hungary and Transylvania, only to meet new persecutions
there. A letter of protection from Leopold I., A.D. 1659,
secured them the right of settling in three counties around
Pressburg. But soon these rigorous persecutions broke out
afresh; they were beset by Jesuits seeking to convert them,
and when this failed they were driven out or annihilated.
At last, by A.D. 1757-1762, they were completely broken up,
and most of them had joined the Roman Catholic church. A few
families preserved their faith by flight into South Russia,
where they settled in Wirschenka. When the Toleration Edict
of Joseph II., of A.D. 1781, secured religious freedom to
Protestants in Austria, several returned again to the faith
of their fathers, in the hope that the toleration would be
extended to them; but they were bitterly disappointed. They
now betook themselves to Russia, and together with their
brethren already there, settled in the Crimea, where they
still constitute the colony of Hutersthal.
§ 163.3. =The English Baptists.=--The notion that infant
baptism is objectionable also found favour among the English
Independents. Owing to the slight importance attached to the
sacraments generally, and more particularly to baptism, in
the Reformed church, especially among the Independents, the
supporters of the practice of the church in regard to baptism
to a large extent occupied common ground with its opponents.
The separation took place only after the rise of the fanatical
prophetic sects (§ 161, 1). We must, however, distinguish
from the continental Anabaptists the English Baptists, who
enjoyed the benefit of the Toleration Act of William III.,
of A.D. 1689, along with the other dissenters, by maintaining
their Independent-Congregationalist constitution (§ 155, 3).
In A.D. 1691, over the Arminian question, they split up into
Particular and General, or Regular and Free Will, Baptists.
The former, by far the more numerous, held by the Calvinistic
doctrine of _gratia particularis_, while the latter rejected
it. The Seventh-Day Baptists, who observed the seventh instead
of the first day of the week, were founded by Bampfield in
A.D. 1665.[480]--From England the Baptists spread to North
America, in A.D. 1630, where Roger Williams (§ 162, 2), one
of their first leaders, founded the little state of Rhode
Island, and organized it on thoroughly Baptist-Independent
principles.[481]--Continuation, § 170, 6.
§ 163.4. =The Quakers.=--=George Fox=, born A.D. 1624, died
A.D. 1691, was son of a poor Presbyterian weaver in Drayton,
Leicestershire. After scant schooling he went to learn shoemaking
at Nottingham, but in A.D. 1643 abandoned the trade. Harassed by
spiritual conflicts, he wandered about seeking peace for his soul.
Upon hearing an Independent preach on 2 Peter i. 19, he was moved
loudly to contradict the preacher. “What we have to do with,” he
said, “is not the word, but the Spirit by which those men of God
spake and wrote.” He was seized as a disturber of public worship,
but was soon after released. In A.D. 1649 he travelled the
country preaching and teaching, addressing every man as “thou,”
raising his hat to none, greeting none, attracting thousands by
his preaching, often imprisoned, flogged, tortured, hunted like a
wild beast. The core of his preaching was, not Scripture, but the
Spirit, not Christ without but Christ within, not outward worship,
not churches, “steeple-houses,” and bells, not doctrines and
sacraments, but only the inner light, which is kindled by God in
the conscience of every man, renewed and quickened by the Spirit
of Christ, which suddenly lays hold upon it. The number of his
followers increased from day to day. In A.D. 1652 he found, along
with his friends, a kindly shelter in the house of Thomas Fell,
of Smarthmore near Preston, and in his wife Margaret a motherly
counsellor, who devoted her whole life to the cause. They called
themselves “The Society of Friends.” The name Quaker was given as
a term of reproach by a violent judge, whom Fox bad “quake before
the word of God.” After the overthrow of the hopes of the Saints
through the dissolution of the Short Parliament and Cromwell’s
apostasy (§ 155, 2), many of them joined the Quakers, and
led them into revolutionary and fanatical excesses. Confined
hitherto to the northern counties, they now spread in London
and Bristol, and over all the south of England. In January,
A.D. 1655, they held a fortnight’s general meeting at Swannington,
in Leicestershire. Crowds of apostles went over into Ireland, to
North America and the West Indies, to Holland, Germany, France,
and Italy, and even to Constantinople. They did not meet with
great success. In Italy they encountered the Inquisition, and in
North America the severest penal laws were passed against them.
In A.D. 1656 James Naylor, one of their most famous leaders,
celebrated at Bristol the second coming of Christ “in the
Spirit,” by enacting the scene of Christ’s triumphal entry into
Jerusalem. But the king of the new Israel was scourged, branded
on the forehead with the letter B as a blasphemer, had his tongue
pierced with a redhot iron, and was then cast into prison. Many
absurd extravagances of this kind, which drew down upon them
frequent persecutions, as well as the failure of their foreign
missionary enterprises, brought most of the Quakers to adopt more
sober views. The great mother Quakeress, Margaret Fell, exercised
a powerful influence in this direction. George Fox, too, out
of whose hands the movement had for a long time gone, now lent
his aid. Naylor himself, in A.D. 1659, issued a recantation,
addressed “to all the people of the Lord,” in which he made the
confession, “My judgment was turned away, and I was a captive
under the power of darkness.”
§ 163.5. The movement of Quakerism in the direction of sobriety
and common sense was carried out to its fullest extent during
the Stuart Restoration, A.D. 1660-1688. Abandoning their
revolutionary tendencies through dislike to Cromwell’s violence,
and giving up most of their fanatical extravagances, the Quakers
became models of quiet, orderly living. Robert Barclay, by his
“_Catechesis et Fidei Confessio_,” of A.D. 1673, gave a sort of
symbolic expression to their belief, and vindicated his doctrinal
positions in his “_Theologiæ vere Christianæ Apologia_” of
A.D. 1676. During this period many of them laid down their lives
for their faith. On the other side of the sea they formed powerful
settlements, distinguished for religious toleration and brotherly
love. The chief promoter of this new departure was =William Penn=,
A.D. 1644-1718, son of an English admiral, who, while a student
at Oxford, was impressed by a Quaker’s preaching, and led to
attend the prayer and fellowship meetings of the Friends. In
order to break his connexion with this party, his father sent him,
in A.D. 1661, to travel in France and Italy. The frivolity of the
French court failed to attract him, but for a long time he was
spellbound by Amyrault’s theological lectures at Saumur. On his
return home, in A.D. 1664, he seemed to have completely come back
to a worldly life, when once again he was arrested by a Quaker’s
preaching. In A.D. 1668 he formally joined the society. For a
controversial tract, _The Sandy Foundation Shaken_, he was sent
for six months to the Tower, where he composed the famous tract,
_No Cross, no Crown_, and a treatise in his own vindication,
“Innocency with her Open Face.” His father, who, shortly before
his death in A.D. 1670, was reconciled to his son, left him a
yearly income of £1,500, with a claim on Government for £16,000.
In spite of continued persecution and oppression he continued
unweariedly to promote the cause of Quakerism by speech and pen.
In A.D. 1677, in company with Fox and Barclay, he made a tour
through Holland and Germany. In both countries he formed many
friendships, but did not succeed in establishing any societies.
His hopes now turned to North America, where Fox had already
wrought with success during the times of sorest persecution,
A.D. 1671, 1672, In lieu of his father’s claim, he obtained from
Government a large tract of land on the Delaware, with the right
of colonizing and organizing it under English suzerainty. Twice
he went out for this purpose himself, in A.D. 1682 and 1699, and
formed the Quaker state of Pennsylvania, with Philadelphia as its
capital. The first principle of its constitution was universal
religious toleration, even to Catholics.[482]
§ 163.6. =The Quaker Constitution=, as fixed in Penn’s time,
was strictly democratic and congregationalist, with complete
exclusion of a clerical order. At their services any man or
woman, if moved by the Spirit, might pray, teach, or exhort,
or if no one felt so impelled they would sit on in silence.
Their meeting-houses had not the form or fittings of churches,
their devotional services had neither singing nor music. They
repudiated water baptism, alike of infants and adults, and
recognised only baptism of the Spirit. The Lord’s supper,
as a symbolical memorial, is no more needed by those who are
born again. Monthly gatherings of all independent members,
quarterly meetings of deputies of a circuit, and a yearly synod
of representatives of all the circuits, administered or drew up
the regulations for the several societies. =The Doctrinal Belief
of the Quakers= is completely dominated by its central dogma of
the “inner light,” which is identified with reason and conscience
as the common heritage of mankind. Darkened and weakened by the
fall, it is requickened in us by the Spirit of the glorified
Christ, and possesses us as an inner spiritual Christ, an inner
Word of God. The Bible is recognised as the outer word of God,
but is useful only as a means of arousing the inner word. The
Calvinistic doctrine of election is decidedly rejected, and also
that of vicarious satisfaction. But also the doctrines of the
fall, original sin, justification by faith, as well as that of
the Trinity, are very much set aside in favour of an indefinite
subjective theology of feeling. The operation of the Holy Spirit
in man’s redemption and salvation outside of Christendom is
frankly admitted. On the other hand, the ethical-practical
element, as shown in works of benevolence, in the battle for
religious freedom, for the abolition of slavery, etc., is brought
to the front. In regard to =life and manners=, the Quakers have
distinguished themselves in all domestic, civil, industrial,
and mercantile movements by quiet, peaceful industry, strict
integrity, and simple habits, so that not only did they amass
great wealth, but gained the confidence and respect of those
around. They refused to take oaths or to serve as soldiers, or to
engage in sports, or to indulge in any kind of luxury. In social
intercourse they declined to acknowledge any titles of rank,
would not bow or raise the hat to any, but addressed all by the
simple “thou.” Their men wore broad-brimmed hats, a plain, simple
coat, without collar or buttons, fastened by hooks. Their women
wore a simple gray silk dress, with like coloured bonnet, without
ribbon, flower, or feathers, and a plain shawl. Wearing mourning
dress was regarded as a heathenish custom.[483]--Continuation,
§ 211, 3.
§ 163.7. =Labadie and the Labadists.=--Jean de Labadie, the
scion of an ancient noble family, born A.D. 1610, was educated
in the Jesuit school at Bordeaux, entered the order, and became a
priest, but was released from office at his own wish in A.D. 1639,
on account of delicate health. Even in the Jesuit college the
principles that manifested themselves in his later life began to
take root in him. By Scripture study he was led to adopt almost
Augustinian views of sin and grace, as well as the conviction of
the need of a revival of the church after the apostolic pattern.
This tendency was confirmed and deepened by the influence of
Spanish Quietism, which even the Jesuits had favoured to some
extent. In the interest of these views he wrought laboriously
for eleven years as Catholic priest in Amiens, Paris, and other
places, amid the increasing hostility of the Jesuits. Their
persecution, together with a growing clearness in his Augustinian
convictions, led him formally to go over to the Reformed church
in A.D. 1650. He now laboured for seven years as Reformed pastor
at Montauban. In A.D. 1657, owing to political suspicions against
him spread by the Jesuits, he withdrew from Montauban, and,
after two years’ labour at Orange, settled at Geneva, where
his preaching and household visitations bore abundant fruit. In
A.D. 1666 he accepted a call to Middelburg, in Zealand. There he
was almost as successful as he had been in Geneva; but there too
it began to appear that in him there burned a fire strange to
the Reformed church. The French Reformed synod took great offence
at his refusal to sign the Belgic Confession. It was found that
at many points he was not in sympathy with the church standards,
that he had written in favour of chiliasm and the Apokatastasis,
that in regard to the nature and idea of the church and its
need of a reformation he was not in accord with the views of the
Reformed church. The synod in 1668 suspended him from office, and,
as he did not confess his errors, in the following year deposed
him. Labadie then saw that what he regarded as his lifework, the
restoration of the apostolic church, was as little attainable
within the Reformed as within the Catholic church. He therefore
organized his followers into a separate denomination, and was,
together with them, banished by the magistrate. The neighbouring
town of Veere received them gladly, but Middelburg now persuaded
the Zealand council to issue a decree banishing them from that
town also. The people of Veere were ready to defy this order,
but Labadie thought it better to avoid the risk of a civil war
by voluntary withdrawal; and so he went, in August, A.D. 1669,
with about forty followers, to Amsterdam, where he laid the
foundations of an apostolic church. This new society consisted of
a sort of monastic household consisting only of the regenerate.
They hired a commodious house, and from thence sent out spiritual
workers as missionaries, to spread the principles of the “new
church” throughout the land. Within a year they numbered 60,000
souls. They dispensed the sacrament according to the Reformed
rite, and preached the gospel in conventicles. The most important
gain to the party was the adhesion of Anna Maria von Schürman,
born at Cologne A.D. 1607 of a Reformed family, but settled
from A.D. 1623 with her mother in Utrecht, celebrated for her
unexampled attainment in languages, science, and art. When in
A.D. 1670, the government, urged by the synod, forbad attendance
on the Labadists’ preaching, the accomplished and pious
Countess-palatine Elizabeth, sister of the elector-palatine,
and abbess of the rich cloister of Herford, whose intimate friend
Schürman had been for forty years, gave them an asylum in the
capital of her little state.
§ 163.8. In Herford “the Hollanders” met with bitter opposition
from the Lutheran clergy, the magistracy, and populace, and
were treated by the mob with insult and scorn. They themselves
also gave only too good occasion for ridicule. At a sacramental
celebration, the aged Labadie and still older Schürman embraced
and kissed each other and began to dance for joy. In his sermons
and writings Labadie set forth the Quietist doctrines of the
limitation of Christ’s life and sufferings in the mortification
of the flesh, the duty of silent prayer, the sinking of the
soul into the depths of the Godhead, the community of goods, etc.
Special offence was given by the private marriage of the three
leaders, Labadie, Yvon, and Dulignon with young wealthy ladies of
society, and their views of marriage among the regenerate as an
institution for raising up a pure seed free from original sin and
brought forth without pain. The Elector of Brandenburg, hitherto
favourable, as guardian of the seminary was obliged, in answer to
the complaints of the Herford magistracy, to appoint a commission
of inquiry. Labadie wrote a defence, which was published in
Latin, Dutch, and German, in which he endeavoured to harmonize
his mystical views with the doctrines of the Reformed church. But
in A.D. 1671 the magistrates obtained a mandate from the imperial
court at Spires, which threatened the abbess with the ban if she
continued to harbour the sectaries. In A.D. 1672 Labadie settled
in Altona, where he died in A.D. 1674. His followers, numbering
160, remained here undisturbed till the war between Denmark and
Sweden broke out in A.D. 1675. They then retired to the castle of
Waltha in West Friesland, the property of three sisters belonging
to the party. Schürman died in A.D. 1678, Dulignon in A.D. 1679,
and Yvon, who now had sole charge, was obliged in A.D. 1688 to
abolish the institution of the community of goods, after a trial
of eighteen years, being able to pay back much less than he had
received. After his death in A.D. 1707 the community gradually
fell off, and after the property had gone into other hands on
the death of the last of the sisters in A.D. 1725, the society
finally broke up.
§ 163.9. During this age various =fanatical sects= sprang up. In
Thuringia, =Stiefel= and his nephew =Meth= caused much trouble
to the Lutheran clergy in the beginning of the century by their
fanatical enthusiasm, till convinced, after twenty years, of
the errors of their ways. =Drabicius=, who had left the Bohemian
Brethren owing to differences of belief, and then lived in
Hungary as a weaver in poor circumstances, boasted in A.D. 1638
of having Divine revelations, prophesied the overthrow of the
Austrian dynasty in A.D. 1657, the election of the French king as
emperor, the speedy fall of the Papacy, and the final conversion
of all heathens; but was put to death at Pressburg in A.D. 1671
as a traitor with cruel tortures. Even Comenius, the noble
bishop of the Moravians, took the side of the prophets, and
published his own and others’ prophecies under the title “_Lux in
Tenebris_.”--=Jane Leade= of Norfolk, influenced by the writings
of Böhme, had visions, in which the Divine Wisdom appeared to
her as a virgin. She spread her Gnostic revelations in numerous
tracts, founded in A.D. 1670 the Philadelphian Society in
London, and died in A.D. 1704, at the age of eighty-one. The
most important of her followers was =John Pordage=, preacher and
physician, whose theological speculation closely resembles that
of Jac. Böhme. To the Reformed church belonged also =Peter Poiret=
of Metz, pastor from A.D. 1664 in Heidelburg [Heidelberg], and
afterwards of a French congregation in the Palatine-Zweibrücken.
Influenced by the writings of Bourignon and Guyon, he resigned
his pastorate, and accompanied the former in his wanderings
in north-west Germany till his death in 1680. At Amsterdam in
A.D. 1687 he wrote his mystical work, “_L’Économie Divine_”
in seven vols., which sets forth in the Cocceian method the
mysticism and theosophy of Bourignon. He died at Rhynsburg
in A.D. 1719.--From the Lutheran church proceeded Giftheil of
Württemburg [Württemberg], Breckling of Holstein, and Kuhlmann,
who went about denouncing the clergy, proclaiming fanatical views,
and calling for impracticable reforms. Of much greater importance
was =John George Gichtel=, an eccentric disciple of Jac. Böhme,
who in A.D. 1665 lost his situation as law agent in his native
town of Regensburg, his property, and civil rights, and suffered
imprisonment and exile from the city for his fanatical ideas.
He died in needy circumstances in Amsterdam in A.D. 1710. He
had revelations and visions, fought against the doctrine of
justification, and denounced marriage as fornication which
nullifies the spiritual marriage with the heavenly Sophia
consummated in the new birth, etc. His followers called
themselves Angelic Brethren, from Matthew xxii. 20, strove
after angelic sinlessness by emancipation from all earthly lusts,
toils, and care, regarded themselves as a priesthood after the
order of Melchizedec [Melchisedec] for propitiating the Divine
wrath.--Continuation, § 170.
§ 163.10. =Russian Sects.=--A vast number of sects sprang up
within the Russian church, which are all included under the
general name =Raskolniks= or apostates. They fall into two great
classes in their distinctive character, diametrically opposed the
one to the other.
1. The =Starowerzi=, or Old Believers. They originated in
A.D. 1652, in consequence of the liturgical reform of the
learned and powerful patriarch Nikon, which called forth
the violent opposition of a large body of the peasantry, who
loved the old forms. Besides stubborn adhesion to the old
liturgy, they rejected all modern customs and luxuries, held
it sinful to cut the beard, to smoke tobacco, to drink tea
and coffee, etc. The Starowerzi, numbering some ten millions,
are to this day distinguished by their pure and simple lives,
and are split up into three parties:
i. _Jedinowerzi_, who are nearest to the orthodox church,
recognise its priesthood, and are different only in
their religious ceremonies and the habits of their
social life;
ii. The _Starovbradzi_, who do not recognise the
priesthood of the orthodox church; and
iii. the _Bespopowtschini_, who have no priests, but only
elders, and are split up into various smaller sects.
Under the peasant Philip Pustosiwät, a party of Starowerzi,
called from their leader Philippins, fled during the
persecution of A.D. 1700 from the government of Olonez, and
settled in Polish Lithuania and East Prussia, where to the
number of 1,200 souls they live to this day in villages in
the district of Gumbinnen, engaged in agricultural pursuits,
and observing the rites of the old Russian church.
2. At the very opposite pole from the Starowerzi stand the
=Heretical Sects=, which repudiate and condemn everything
in the shape of external church organization, and manifest
a tendency in some cases toward fanatical excess, and in
other cases toward rationalistic spiritualism. As the sects
showing the latter tendency did not make their appearance
till the eighteenth century (§ 166, 2), we have here to
do only with those of the former class. The most important
of these sects is that of the =Men of God=, or Spiritual
Christians, who trace their origin from a peasant, Danila
Filipow, of the province of Wladimir. In 1645, say they,
the divine Father, seated on a cloud of flame, surrounded
by angels, descended from heaven on Mount Gorodin in a
chariot of fire, in order to restore true Christianity in
its original purity and spirituality. For this purpose he
incarnated himself in Filipow’s pure body. He commanded
his followers, who in large numbers, mainly drawn from the
peasant class, gathered around him, not to marry, and if
already married to put away their wives, to abstain from all
intoxicating drinks, to be present neither at marriages nor
baptisms, but above all things to believe that there is no
other god besides him. After some years he adopted as his
son another peasant, Ivan Suslow, who was said to have been
born of a woman a hundred years old, by communicating to him
in his thirtieth year his own divine nature. Ivan, as a new
Christ, sent out twelve apostles to spread his doctrine. The
Czar Alexis put him and forty of his adherents into prison;
but neither the knout nor the rack could wring from them the
mysteries of their faith and worship. At last, on a Friday,
the czar caused the new Christ to be crucified; but on
the following Sunday he appeared risen again among his
disciples. After some years the imprisoning, crucifying, and
resurrection were repeated. Imprisoned a third time in 1672,
he owed his liberation to an edict of grace on the occasion
of the birth of the Prince Peter the Great. He now lived
at Moscow along with the divine father Filipow, who had
hitherto consulted his own safety by living in concealment
in the enjoyment of the adoration of his followers
unmolested for thirty years, supported by certain wealthy
merchants. Filipow is said to have ascended up in the
presence of many witnesses, in 1700, into the seventh and
highest heaven, where he immediately seated himself on
the throne as the “Lord of Hosts,” and the Christ, Suslow,
also returned thither in 1716, after both had reached the
hundredth year of the human existence. As Suslow’s successor
appeared a new Christ in Prokopi Lupkin, and after his
death, in 1732, arose Andr. Petrow. The last Christ
manifestation was revealed in the person of the unfortunate
Czar Peter III., dethroned by his wife Catharine II. in 1762,
who, living meanwhile in secret, shall soon return, to
the terrible confusion of all unbelievers. With this the
historical tradition of the earlier sect of the Men of God
is brought to a close, and in the Skopsen, or Eunuchs, who
also venerate the Czar Peter III. as the Christ that is
to come again, a new development of the sect has arisen,
carrying out its principles more and more fully (§ 210, 4).
Other branches of the same party, among which, as also among
the Skopsen, the fanatical endeavour to mortify the flesh is
carried to the most extravagant length, are the Morelschiki
or Self-Flagellators, the Dumbies, who will not, even
under the severest tortures, utter a sound, etc. The
ever-increasing development of this sect-forming craze,
which found its way into several monasteries and nunneries,
led to repeated judicial investigations, the penitent
being sentenced for their fault to confinement in remote
convents, and the obdurate being visited with severe
corporal punishments and even with death. The chief sources
of information regarding the history, doctrine, and customs
of the “Men of God” and the Skopsen are their own numerous
spiritual songs, collected by Prof. Ivan Dobrotworski of
Kasan, which were sung in their assemblies for worship with
musical accompaniment and solemn dances. On these occasions
their prophets and prophetesses were wont to prophesy, and
a kind of sacramental supper was celebrated with bread and
water. The sacraments of the Lord’s supper and baptism,
as administered by the orthodox church, are repudiated
and scorned, the latter as displaced by the only effectual
baptism of the Spirit. They have, indeed, in order to avoid
persecution, been obliged to take part in the services of
the orthodox national church, and to confess to its priests,
avoiding, however, all reference to the sect.[484]
§ 164. PHILOSOPHERS AND FREETHINKERS.[485]
The mediæval scholastic philosophy had outlived itself, even in the
pre-Reformation age; yet it maintained a lingering existence side by
side with those new forms which the modern spirit in philosophy was
preparing for itself. We hear an echo of the philosophical ferment
of the sixteenth century in the Italian Dominican Campanella, and in
the Englishman Bacon of Verulam we meet the pioneer of that modern
philosophy which had its proper founder in Descartes. Spinoza, Locke,
and Leibnitz were in succession the leaders of this philosophical
development. Alongside of this philosophy, and deriving its weapons from
it for attack upon theology and the church, a number of freethinkers
also make their appearance. These, like their more radical disciples in
the following century, regarded Scripture as delusive, and nature and
reason as alone trustworthy sources of religious knowledge.
§ 164.1. =Philosophy.=--=Campanella= of Stilo in Calabria
entered the Dominican order, but soon lost taste for Aristotelian
philosophy and scholastic theology, and gave himself to the
study of Plato, the Cabbala, astrology, magic, etc. Suspected
of republican tendencies, the Spanish government put him in
prison in A.D. 1599. Seven times was he put upon the rack for
twenty-four hours, and then confined for twenty-seven years in
close confinement. Finally, in A.D. 1626, Urban VIII. had him
transferred to the prison of the papal Inquisition. He was set
free in A.D. 1629, and received a papal pension; but further
persecutions by the Spaniards obliged him to fly to his protector
Richelieu in France, where in A.D. 1639 he died. He composed
eighty-two treatises, mostly in prison, the most complete being
“_Philosophia Rationalis_,” in five vols. In his “_Atheismus
Triumphatus_” he appears as an apologist of the Romish system,
but so insufficiently, that many said _Atheismus Triumphans_ was
the more fitting title. His “_Monarchia Messiæ_” too appeared,
even to the Catholics, an abortive apology for the Papacy. In
his “_Civitas Solis_,” an imitation of the “Republic” of Plato,
he proceeded upon communistic principles.--=Francis Bacon of
Verulam=, long chancellor of England, died A.D. 1626, the great
spiritual heir of his mediæval namesake (§ 103, 8), was the
first successful reformer of the plan of study followed by the
schoolmen. With a prophet’s marvellous grasp of mind he organized
the whole range of science, and gave a forecast of its future
development in his “_De Augmentis_” and “_Novum Organon_.”
He rigidly separated the domain of _knowledge_, as that of
philosophy and nature, grasped only by experience, from the
domain of _faith_, as that of theology and the church, reached
only through revelation. Yet he maintained the position:
_Philosophia obiter libata a Deo abducit, plene hausta ad Deum
reducit_. He is the real author of empiricism in philosophy and
the realistic methods of modern times. His public life, however,
is clouded by thanklessness, want of character, and the taking of
bribes. In A.D. 1621 he was convicted by his peers, deprived of
his office, sentenced to imprisonment for life in the Tower, and
to pay a fine of £40,000; but was pardoned by the king.[486]--The
French Catholic =Descartes= started not from experience, but from
self-consciousness, with his “_Cogito, ergo sum_” as the only
absolutely certain proposition. Beginning with doubt, he rose
by pure thinking to the knowledge of the true and certain in
things. The imperfection of the soul thus discovered suggests
an absolutely perfect Being, to whose perfection the attribute
of being belongs. This is the ontological proof for the being of
God.--His philosophy was zealously taken up by French Jansenists
and Oratorians and the Reformed theologians of Holland, while
it was bitterly opposed by such Catholics as Huetius and such
Reformed theologians as Voetius.[487]--=Spinoza=, an apostate
Jew in Holland, died A.D. 1677, gained little influence over his
own generation by his profound pantheistic philosophy, which has
powerfully affected later ages. A violent controversy, however,
was occasioned by his “_Tractatus Theologico-politicus_,” in
which he attacked the Christian doctrine of revelation and the
authenticity of the O.T. books, especially the Pentateuch, and
advocated absolute freedom of thought.[488]
§ 164.2. =John Locke=, died A.D. 1704, with his sensationalism
took up a position midway between Bacon’s empiricism and
Descartes’ rationalism, on the one hand, and English deism and
French materialism, on the other. His “Essay concerning Human
Understanding” denies the existence of innate ideas, and seeks
to show that all our notions are only products of outer or
inner experience, of sensation or reflection. In this treatise,
and still more distinctly in his tract, “The Reasonableness of
Christianity,” intended as an apology for Christianity, and even
for biblical visions and miracles, as well as for the messianic
character of Christ, he openly advocated pure Pelagianism
that knows nothing of sin and atonement.[489]--=Leibnitz=,
a Hanoverian statesman, who died A.D. 1716, introduced the new
German philosophy in its first stage. The philosophy of Leibnitz
is opposed at once to the theosophy of Paracelsus and Böhme and
to the empiricism of Bacon and Locke, the pantheism of Spinoza,
and the scepticism and manichæism of Bayle. It is indeed a
Christian philosophy not fully developed. But inasmuch as at
the same time it adopted, improved upon, and carried out the
rationalism of Descartes, it also paved the way for the later
theological rationalism. The foundation of his philosophy is the
theory of monads wrought out in his “_Theodicée_” against Bayle
and in his “_Nouveaux Essais_,” against Locke. In opposition to
the atomic theory of the materialists, he regarded all phenomena
in the world as eccentricities of so called monads, _i.e._
primary simple and indivisible substances, each of which is
a miniature of the whole universe. Out of these monads that
radiate out from God, the primary monad, the world is formed
into a harmony once for all admired of God: the theory of
pre-established harmony. This must be the best of worlds,
otherwise it would not have been. In opposition to Bayle, who
had argued in a manichæan fashion against God’s goodness and
wisdom from the existence of evil, Leibnitz seeks to show that
this does not contradict the idea of the best of worlds, nor that
of the Divine goodness and wisdom, since finity and imperfection
belong to the very notion of creature, a metaphysical evil from
which moral evil inevitably follows, yet not so as to destroy the
pre-established harmony. Against Locke he maintains the doctrine
of innate ideas, contests Clarke’s theory of indeterminism,
maintains the agreement of philosophy with revelation, which
indeed is above but not contrary to reason, and hopes to prove
his system by mathematical demonstration.[490]--Continuation,
§ 171, 10.
§ 164.3. =Freethinkers.=--The tendency of the age to throw off
all positive Christianity first showed itself openly in England
as the final outcome of Levellerism (§ 162, 2). This movement
has been styled naturalism, because it puts natural in place of
revealed religion, and deism, because in place of the redeeming
work of the triune God it admits only a general providence of the
one God. On philosophic grounds the English deists affirmed the
impossibility of revelation, inspiration, prophecy, and miracle,
and on critical grounds rejected them from the Bible and history.
The simple religious system of deism embraced God, providence,
freedom of the will, virtue, and the immortality of the soul. The
Christian doctrines of the Trinity, original sin, satisfaction,
justification, resurrection, etc., were regarded as absurd and
irrational. Deism in England spread almost exclusively among
upper-class laymen; the people and clergy stood firmly to their
positive beliefs. Theological controversial tracts were numerous,
but their polemical force was in great measure lost by the
latitudinarianism of their authors.--The principal English deists
of the century were
1. =Edward Herbert of Cherbury=, A.D. 1581-1648, a nobleman
and statesman. He reduced all religion to five points: Faith
in God, the duty of reverencing Him, especially by leading
an upright life, atoning for sin by genuine repentance,
recompense in the life eternal.
2. =Thomas Hobbes=, A.D. 1588-1679, an acute philosophical
and political writer, looked on Christianity as an oriental
phantom, and of value only as a support of absolute monarchy
and an antidote to revolution. The state of nature is a
_bellum omnium contra omnes_; religion is the means of
establishing order and civilization. The state should decide
what religion is to prevail. Every one may indeed believe
what he will, but in regard to churches and worship he must
submit to the state as represented by the king. His chief
work is “Leviathan; or, The Matter, Form, and Power of a
Commonwealth, Ecclesiastical and Civil.”
3. =Charles Blount=, who died a suicide in A.D. 1693, a rabid
opponent of all miracles as mere tricks of priests, wrote
“Oracles of Reason,” “_Religio Laici_,” “Great is Diana
of the Ephesians,” and translated Philostratus’ “Life of
Apollonius of Tyana.”
4. =Thomas Browne=, A.D. 1635-1682, a physician, who in his
“_Religio Medici_” sets forth a mystical supernaturalism,
took up a purely deistic ground in his “Vulgar Errors,”
published three years later.
Among the opponents of deism in this age the most notable are
Richard Baxter (§ 162, 3) and Ralph Cudworth, A.D. 1617-1688,
a latitudinarian and Platonist, who sought to prove the leading
Christian doctrines by the theory of innate ideas. He wrote
“Intellectual System of the Universe” in A.D. 1678. The pious
Irish scientist, Robert Boyle, founded in London, in A.D. 1691,
a lectureship of £40 a year for eight discourses against deistic
and atheistic unbelief.[491]--Continuation, § 171, 1.
§ 164.4. A tendency similar to that of the English deists was
represented in Germany by =Matthias Knutzen=, who sought to found
a freethinking sect. The Christian “Coran” contains only lies;
reason and conscience are the true Bible; there is no God, nor
hell nor heaven; priests and magistrates should be driven out of
the world, etc. The senate of Jena University on investigation
found that his pretension to 700 followers was a vain boast.--In
France the brilliant and learned sceptic =Peter Bayle=,
A.D. 1647-1706, was the apostle of a light-hearted unbelief.
Though son of a Reformed pastor, the Jesuits got him over to the
Romish church, but in a year and a half he apostatised again. He
now studied the Cartesian philosophy, as Reformed professor at
Sedan, vindicated Protestantism in several controversial tracts,
and as refugee in Holland composed his famous “_Dictionnaire
Historique et Critique_,” in which he avoided indeed open
rejection of the facts of revelation, but did much to unsettle
by his easy treatment of them.--Continuation, § 171, 3.
THIRD SECTION.
CHURCH HISTORY OF THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY.[492]
I. The Catholic Church in East and West.
§ 165. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH.
During the first half of the century the Roman hierarchy suffered
severely at the hand of Catholic courts, while in the second half storms
gathered from all sides, threatening its very existence. Portugal,
France, Spain, and Italy rested not till they got the pope himself to
strike the deathblow to the Jesuits, who had been his chief supporters
indeed, but who had now become his masters. Soon after the German
bishops threatened to free themselves and their people from Rome,
and what reforms they could not effect by ecclesiastical measures the
emperor undertook to effect by civil measures. Scarcely had this danger
been overcome when the horrors of the French Revolution broke out, which
sought, along with the Papacy, to overthrow Christianity as well. But,
on the other hand, during the early decades of the century Catholicism
had gained many victories in another way by the counter-reformation and
conversions. Its foreign missions, however, begun with such promise of
success, came to a sad end, and even the home missions faded away, in
spite of the founding of various new orders. The Jansenist controversy
in the beginning of the century entered on a new stage, the Catholic
church being driven into open semi-Pelagianism, and Jansenism into
fanatical excesses. The church theology sank very low, and the Catholic
supporters of “_Illumination_” far exceeded in number those who had
fallen away to it from Protestantism.
§ 165.1. =The Popes.=--=Clement XI.=, 1700-1721, protested in
vain against the Elector Frederick III. of Brandenburg assuming
the crown as King Frederick I. of Prussia, on Jan. 18th,
A.D. 1701. In the Spanish wars of succession he sought to remain
neutral, but force of circumstances led him to take up a position
adverse to German interests. The new German emperor, Joseph I.,
A.D. 1705-1711, scorned to seek confirmation from the pope, and
Clement consequently had the usual prayer for the emperor omitted
in the church services. The relations became yet more strained,
owing to a dispute about the _jus primarum precum_, Joseph
claiming the right to revenues of vacancies as the patron. In
A.D. 1707, the pope had the joy of seeing the German army driven
out, not only of northern Italy, but also of Naples by the French.
Again they came into direct conflict over Parma and Piacenza,
Clement claiming them as a papal, the emperor claiming them as
an imperial, fief. No pope since the time of Louis the Bavarian
had issued the ban against a German emperor, and Clement ventured
not to do so now. Refusing the invitation of Louis XIV. to go
to Avignon, he was obliged either unconditionally to grant the
German claims or to try the fortune of war. He chose the latter
alternative. The miserable papal troops, however, were easily
routed, and Clement was obliged, in A.D. 1708, to acknowledge
the emperor’s brother, the Grand-duke Charles, as king of Spain,
and generally to yield to Joseph’s very moderate demands. Clement
was the author of the constitution _Unigenitus_, which introduced
the second stage in the history of Jansenism. After the short
and peaceful pontificate of =Innocent XIII.= A.D. 1721-1724,
came =Benedict XIII.=, A.D. 1724-1730, a pious, well-meaning,
narrow-minded man, ruled by a worthless favourite, Cardinal
Coscia. He wished to canonize Gregory VII., in the fond hope
of thereby securing new favour to his hierarchical views,
but this was protested against by almost all the courts. All
the greater was the number of monkish saints with which he
enriched the heavenly firmament. He promised to all who on their
death-bed should say, “Blessed be Jesus Christ,” a 2,000 years’
shortening of purgatorial pains. His successor =Clement XII.=,
A.D. 1730-1740, deprived the wretched Coscia of his offices, made
him disgorge his robberies, imposed on him a severe fine and ten
years’ imprisonment, but afterwards resigned the management of
everything to a greedy, grasping nephew. He was the first pope to
condemn freemasonry, A.D. 1736. =Benedict XIV.=, A.D. 1740-1758,
one of the noblest, most pious, learned, and liberal of the popes,
zealous for the faith of his church, and yet patient with those
who differed, moderate and wise in his political procedure, mild
and just in his government, blameless in life. He had a special
dislike of the Jesuits (§ 156, 12), and jestingly he declared, if,
as the curialists assert, “all law and all truth” lie concealed
in the shrine of his breast, he had not been able to find the key.
He wrote largely on theology and canon law, founded seminaries
for the training of the clergy, had many French and English
works translated into Italian, and was a liberal patron of
art. To check popular excesses he tried to reduce the number
of festivals, but without success.--Continuation, in Paragraphs
§ 165, 9, 10, 13.
§ 165.2. =Old and New Orders.=--Among the old orders that of
=Clugny= had amassed enormous wealth, and attempts made by its
abbots at reformation led only to endless quarrels and divisions.
The abbots now squandered the revenues of their cloisters at
court, and these institutions were allowed to fall into disorder
and decay. When, in A.D. 1790, all cloisters in France were
suppressed, the city of Clugny bought the cloister and church
for £4,000, and had them both pulled down.--The most important
new orders were:
1. =The Mechitarist Congregation=, originated by Mechitar the
Armenian, who, at Constantinople in A.D. 1701, founded a
society for the religious and intellectual education of his
countrymen; but when opposed by the Armenian patriarch, fled
to the Morea and joined the United Armenians (§ 72, 2). In
A.D. 1712 the pope confirmed the congregation, which, during
the war with the Turks was transferred to Venice, and in
A.D. 1717 settled on the island St. Lazaro [Lazzaro]. Its
members spread Roman Catholic literature in Armenia and
Armenian literature in the West. At a later time there was
a famous Mechitarist college in Vienna, which did much by
writing and publishing for the education of the Catholic
youth.
2. =Frères Ignorantins=, or Christian Brothers, founded
in A.D. 1725 by De la Salle, canon of Rheims, for the
instruction of children, wrought in the spirit of the
Jesuits through France, Belgium, and North America. After
the expulsion of the Jesuits from France in A.D. 1724, they
took their place there till themselves driven out by the
Revolution in A.D. 1790.[493]
3. The =Liguorians or Redemptorists=, founded in A.D. 1732
by Liguori, an advocate, who became Bishop of Naples in
A.D. 1762. He died in A.D. 1787 in his ninety-first year,
was beatified by Pius VII. in A.D. 1816, and canonized by
Gregory XVI. in A.D. 1839, and proclaimed _doctor ecclesiæ_
by Pius IX. in A.D. 1871 as a zealous defender of the
immaculate conception and papal infallibility. His devotional
writings, which exalt Mary by superstitious tales of
miracles, were extremely popular in all Catholic countries.
His new order was to minister to the poor. He declared
the pope’s will to be God’s, and called for unquestioning
obedience. Only after the founder’s death did it spread
beyond Italy.--Continuation, § 186, 1.
§ 165.3. =Foreign Missions.=--In the accommodation controversy
(§ 156, 12), the Dominicans prevailed in A.D. 1742; but the
abolishing of native customs led to a sore persecution in
China, from which only a few remnants of the church were
saved. The Italian Jesuit Beschi, with linguistic talents of
the highest order, sought in India to make use of the native
literature for mission purposes and to place alongside of it
a Christian literature. Here the Capuchins opposed the Jesuits
as successfully as the Dominicans had in China. These strifes
and persecutions destroyed the missions.--The Jesuit state of
Paraguay (§ 156, 10) was put an end to in A.D. 1750 by a compact
between Portugal and Spain. The revolt of the Indians that
followed, inspired and directed by the Jesuits, which kept the
combined powers at bay for a whole year, was at last quelled,
and the Jesuits expelled the country in A.D. 1758.--Continuation
§ 186, 7.
§ 165.4. =The Counter-Reformation= (§ 153, 2).--Charles XII. of
Sweden, in A.D. 1707, forced the Emperor Joseph I. to give the
Protestants of =Silesia= the benefits of the Westphalian Peace
and to restore their churches. But in =Poland= in A.D. 1717,
the Protestants lost the right of building new churches, and in
A.D. 1733 were declared disqualified for civil offices and places
in the diet. In the Protestant city of Thorn the insolence of
the Jesuits roused a rebellion which led to a fearful massacre
in A.D. 1724. The Dissenters sought and obtained protection
in Russia from A.D. 1767, and the partition of Poland between
Russia, Austria, and Prussia in A.D. 1772 secured for them
religious toleration. In =Salzburg= the archbishop, Count Firmian,
attempted in A.D. 1729 a conversion of the evangelicals by force,
who had, with intervals of persecution in the seventeenth century,
been tolerated for forty years as quiet and inoffensive citizens.
But in A.D. 1731 their elders swore on the host and consecrated
salt (2 Chron. xiii. 5) to be true to their faith. This “covenant
of salt” was interpreted as rebellion, and in spite of the
intervention of the Protestant princes, all the evangelicals,
in the severe winter of A.D. 1731, 1732, were driven, with
inhuman cruelty, from hearth and home. About 20,000 of them
found shelter in Prussian Lithuania; others emigrated to America.
The pope praised highly “the noble” archbishop, who otherwise
distinguished himself only as a huntsman and a drinker, and by
maintaining a mistress in princely splendour.
§ 165.5. In =France= the persecution of the Huguenots continued
(§ 153, 4). The “pastors of the desert” performed their duties at
the risk of their lives, and though many fell as martyrs, their
places were quickly filled by others equally heroic. The first
rank belongs to Anton Court, pastor at Nismes from A.D. 1715; he
died at Lausanne A.D. 1760, where he had founded a theological
seminary. He laboured unweariedly and successfully in gathering
and organizing the scattered members of the Reformed church,
and in overcoming fanaticism by imparting sound instruction.
Paul Rabaut, his successor at Nismes, was from A.D. 1730 to
1785 the faithful and capable leader of the martyr church. The
judicial murder of =Jean Calas= at Toulouse in A.D. 1762 presents
a hideous example of the fanaticism of Catholic France. One of
his sons had hanged himself in a fit of passion. When the report
spread that it was the act of his father, in order to prevent
the contemplated conversion of his son, the Dominicans canonized
the suicide as a martyr to the Catholic faith, roused the mob,
and got the Toulouse parliament to put the unhappy father to the
torture of the wheel. The other sons were forced to abjure their
faith, and the daughters were shut up in cloisters. Two years
later Voltaire called attention to the atrocity, and so wrought
on public opinion that on the revision of the proceedings by the
Parisian parliament, the innocence of the ill-used family was
clearly proved. Louis XV. paid them a sum of 30,000 livres; but
the fanatical accusers, the false witnesses, and the corrupt
judges were left unpunished. This incident improved the position
of the Protestants, and in A.D. 1787 Louis XVI. issued the Edict
of Versailles, by which not only complete religious freedom
but even a legal civil existence was secured them, which was
confirmed by a law of Napoleon in A.D. 1802.
§ 165.6. =Conversions.=--Pecuniary interests and prospect of
marriage with a rich heiress led to the conversion, in A.D. 1712,
of Charles Alexander while in the Austrian service; but when he
became Duke of Württemburg [Württemberg] he solemnly undertook
to keep things as they were, and to set up no Catholic services
in the country save in his own court chapel. Of other converts
Winckelmann and Stolberg are the most famous. While Winckelmann,
the greatest of art critics, not a religious but an artistic
ultramontane, was led in A.D. 1754 through religious indifference
into the Romish church, the warm heart of Von Stolberg was
induced, mainly by the Catholic Princess Gallitzin (§ 172, 2)
and a French emigrant, Madame Montague, to escape the
chill of rationalism amid the incense fumes of the Catholic
services.--Continuation, § 175, 7.
§ 165.7. =The Second Stage of Jansenism= (§ 157, 5).--=Pasquier
Quesnel=, priest of the Oratory at Paris, suspected in 1675 of
Gallicanism, because of notes in his edition of the works of
Leo the Great, fled into the Netherlands, where he continued his
notes on the N.T. Used and recommended by Noailles, Archbishop
of Paris, and other French bishops, this “Jansenist” book was
hated by the Jesuits and condemned by a brief of Clement XI.
in A.D. 1708. The Jesuit confessor of Louis XIV., Le Tellier,
selected 101 propositions from the book, and induced the king to
urge their express condemnation by the pope. In the =Constitution
Unigenitus= of A.D. 1713, Clement pronounced these heretical,
and the king required the expulsion from parliament and church
of all who refused to adopt this bull, which caused a division
of the French church into _Acceptants_ and _Appellants_. As many
of the condemned propositions were quoted literally by Quesnel
from Augustine and other Fathers, or were in exact agreement
with biblical passages, Noailles and his party called for an
explanation. Instead of this the pope threatened them with
excommunication. In A.D. 1715 the king died, and under the Duke
of Orleans’ regency in A.D. 1717, four bishops, with solemn
appeal to a general council, renounced the papal constitution
as irreconcilable with the Catholic faith. They were soon
joined by the Sorbonne and the universities of Rheims and Nantes,
Archbishop Noailles, and more than twenty bishops, all the
congregations of St. Maur and the Oratorians with large numbers
of the secular clergy and the monks, especially of the Lazarists,
Dominicans, Cistercians, and Camaldulensians. The pope, after
vainly calling them to obey, thundered the ban against the
Appellants in A.D. 1718. But the parliament took the matter
up, and soon the aspect of affairs was completely changed. The
regent’s favourite, Dubois, hoping to obtain a cardinal’s hat,
took the side of the Acceptants and carried the duke with him,
who got the parliament in 1720 to acknowledge the bull, with
express reservation, however, of the Gallican liberties, and
began a persecution of the Appellants. Under Louis XV. the
persecution became more severe, although in many ways moderated
by the influence of his former tutor, Cardinal Fleury. Noailles,
who died in 1729, was obliged in 1728 to submit unconditionally,
and in A.D. 1730 the parliament formally ratified the bull. Amid
daily increasing oppression, many of the more faithful Jansenists,
mostly of the orders of St. Maur and the Oratory, fled to the
Netherlands, where they gave way more and more to fanaticism. In
1727 a young Jansenist priest, Francis of Paris, died with the
original text of the appeal in his hands. His adherents honoured
him as a saint, and numerous reports of miracles, which had been
wrought at his grave in Medardus churchyard at Paris, made this a
daily place of pilgrimage to thousands of fanatics. The excited
enthusiasts, who fell into convulsions, and uttered prophecies
about the overthrow of church and state, grew in numbers and,
with that mesmeric power which fanaticism has been found in all
ages to possess powerfully influenced many who had been before
careless and profane. One of these was the member of parliament
De Montgeron, who, from being a frivolous scoffer, suddenly, in
1732, fell into violent convulsions, and in a three-volumed work,
“_La Vérité des Miracles Opérés par l’Intercession de François
de Paris_,” 1737, came forward as a zealous apologist of the
party. The government, indeed, in 1732 ordered the churchyard
to be closed, but portions of earth from the grave of the saint
continued to effect convulsions and miracles. Thousands of
convulsionists throughout France were thrown into prison, and
in 1752, Archbishop Beaumont of Paris, with many other bishops,
refused the last sacrament to those who could not prove that
they had accepted the constitution. The grave of “St. Francis,”
however, was the grave of Jansenism, for fanatical excess
contains the seeds of dissolution and every manifestation of it
hastens the catastrophe. Yet remnants of the party lingered on
in France till the outbreak of the Revolution, of which they had
prophesied.
§ 165.8. =The Old Catholic Church in the Netherlands.=--The
first Jesuits appeared in Holland in A.D. 1592. The form of piety
fostered by superior and inferior clergy in the Catholic church
there, a heritage from the times of the Brethren of the Common
Life (§ 112, 9), was directed to the deepening of Christian
thought and feeling; and this, as well as the liberal attitude
of the Archbishop of Utrecht, awakened the bitter opposition of
the Jesuits. At the head of the local clergy was Sasbold Vosmeer,
vicar-general of the vacant archiepiscopal see of Utrecht. Most
energetically he set himself to thwart the Jesuit machinations,
which aimed at abolishing the Utrecht see and putting the church
of Holland under the jurisdiction of the papal nuncio at Cologne.
On the ground of suspicions of secret conspiracy Vosmeer was
banished. But his successors refused to be overruled or set
aside by the Jesuits. Meanwhile in France the first stage of
the Jansenist controversy had been passed through. The Dutch
authorities had heartily welcomed the condemned book of their
pious and learned countryman; but when the five propositions
were denounced, they agreed in repudiating them, without, however,
admitting that they had been taught in the sense objected to by
Jansen. The Jesuits, therefore, charged them with the Jansenist
heresy, and issued in A.D. 1697 an anonymous pamphlet full of
lying insinuations about the origin and progress of Jansenism
in Holland. Its beginning was traced back to a visit of Arnauld
to Holland in A.D. 1681, and its effects were seen in the
circulation of prayer-books, tracts, and sermons, urging diligent
reading of Scripture, in the depreciation of the worship of Mary,
of indulgences, of images of saints and relics, rosaries and
scapularies (§ 186, 2), processions and fraternities, in the
rigoristic strictness of the confessional, the use of the
common language of the country in baptism, marriage, and extreme
unction, etc. The archbishop of that time, Peter Codde, in order
to isolate him, was decoyed to Rome, and there flattered with
hypocritical pretensions of goodwill, while behind his back his
deposition was carried out, and an apostolic vicar nominated for
Utrecht in the person of his deadly foe Theodore de Cock. But
the chapter refused him obedience, and the States of Holland
forbad him to exercise any official function, and under threat
of banishment of all Jesuits demanded the immediate return of
the archbishop. Codde was now sent down with the papal blessing,
but a formal decree of deposition followed him. Meanwhile the
government pronounced on his rival De Cock, who avoided a trial
for high treason by flight, a sentence of perpetual exile. But
Codde, though persistently recognised by his chapter as the
rightful archbishop, withheld on conscientious grounds from
discharging official duties down to his death in A.D. 1710. Amid
these disputes the Utrecht see remained vacant for thirteen years.
The flock were without a chief shepherd, the inferior clergy
without direction and support, the people were wrought upon
by Jesuit emissaries, and the vacant pastorates were filled by
the nuncio of Cologne. Thus it came about that of the 300,000
Catholics remaining after the Reformation, only a few thousands
continued faithful to the national party, while the rest became
bitter and extreme ultramontanes, as the Catholic church of
Holland still is. Finally, in A.D. 1723, the Utrecht chapter
took courage and chose a new archbishop in the person of
Cornelius Steenowen. Receiving no answer to their request for
papal confirmation, the chapter, after waiting a year and a
half, had him and also his three successors consecrated by a
French missionary bishop, Varlet, who had been driven away by
the Jesuits. But in order to prevent the threatened loss of
legitimate consecration for future bishops after Varlet’s death
in A.D. 1742, a bishop elected at Utrecht was in that same year
ordained to the chapter of Haarlem, and in A.D. 1758 the newly
founded bishopric of Deventer was so supplied. All these, like
all subsequent elections, were duly reported to Rome, and a
strictly Catholic confession from electors and elected sent
up; but each time, instead of confirmation, a frightful ban
was thundered forth. This, however, did not deter the Dutch
government from formally recognising the elections.--Meanwhile
the second and last act of the Jansenist tragedy had been played
in France. Many of the persecuted Appellants sought refuge in
Holland, and the welcome accorded them seemed to justify the
long cherished suspicion of Jansenism against the people of
Utrecht. They repelled these charges, however, by condemning the
five propositions and the heresies of Quesnel’s book; but they
expressly refused the bull of Alexander VII. and its doctrine
of papal infallibility. This put a stop to all attempts at
reconciliation. The church of Utrecht meanwhile prospered. At
a council held at Utrecht in A.D. 1765 it styled itself “The
Old Roman Catholic Church of the Netherlands,” acknowledged the
pope, although under his anathema, as the visible head of the
Christian church, accepted the Tridentine decrees as their creed,
and sent this with all the acts of council to Rome as proof of
their orthodoxy. The Jesuits did all in their power to overturn
the formidable impression which this at first made there;
and they were successful. Clement XIII. declared the council
null, and those who took part in it hardened sons of Belial.
But their church at this day contains, under one archbishop
and two bishops, twenty-six congregations, numbering 6,000
souls.[494]--Continuation, § 200, 3.
§ 165.9. =Suppression of the Order of Jesuits, A.D. 1773.=--The
Jesuits had striven with growing eagerness and success after
worldly power, and instead of absolute devotion to the interests
of the papacy, their chief aim was now the erection of an
independent political and hierarchical dominion. Their love
of rule had sustained its first check in the overthrow of the
Jesuit state of Paraguay; but they had secured a great part of
the world’s trade (§ 156, 13), and strove successfully to control
European politics. The Jansenist controversy, however, had called
forth against them much popular odium; Pascal had made them
ridiculous to all men of culture, the other monkish orders were
hostile to them, their success in trade roused the jealousy of
other traders, and their interference in politics made enemies
on every hand. The Portuguese government took the first decided
step. A revolt in Paraguay and an attempt on the king’s life were
attributed to them, and the minister Pombal, whose reforms they
had opposed, had them banished from Portugal in A.D. 1759, and
their goods confiscated. =Clement XIII.=, A.D. 1758-1769, chosen
by the Jesuits and under their influence, protected them by a
bull; but Portugal refused to let the bull be proclaimed, led the
papal nuncio over the frontier, broke off all relations with Rome,
and sent whole shiploads of Jesuits to the pope. France followed
Portugal’s example when the general Ricci had answered the king’s
demand for a reform of his orders: _Sint ut sunt, aut non sint_.
For the enormous financial failure of the Jesuit La Valette,
the whole order was made responsible, and at last, in A.D. 1764,
banished from France as dangerous to the state. Spain, Naples,
and Parma, too, soon seized all the Jesuits and transported them
beyond the frontiers. The new papal election on the death of
Clement XIII. was a life and death question with the Jesuits,
but courtly influences and fears of a schism prevailed. The
pious and liberal Minorite Ganganelli mounted the papal throne
as =Clement XIV.=, A.D. 1769-1774. He began with sweeping
administrative reforms, forbad the reading of the bull _In cœna
Domini_ (§ 117, 3), and, pressed by the Bourbon court, issued in
A.D. 1773 the bull _Dominus ac Redemtor Noster_ suppressing the
Jesuit order. The order numbered 22,600 members and the pope felt,
in granting the bull, that he endangered his own life. Next year
he died, not without suspicion of poisoning. All the Catholic
courts, even Austria, put the decree in force. But the heretic
Frederick II. tolerated the order for a long time in Silesia, and
Catherine II. and Paul I. in their Polish provinces.--=Pius VI.=,
A.D. 1775-1799, in many respects the antithesis of his
predecessor, was the secret friend of the exiled and imprisoned
ex-Jesuits. After the outbreak of the French Revolution, a
proposal was made at Rome, in A.D. 1792, for the formal
restoration of the order, as a means of saving the seriously
imperilled church, but it did not find sufficient encouragement.
§ 165.10. =Anti-hierarchical Movements in Germany and
Italy.=--Even before Joseph II. could carry out his reforms in
ecclesiastical polity, the noble elector =Maximilian Joseph III.=,
A.D. 1745-1777, with greater moderation but complete success,
effected a similar reform in the Jesuit-overrun Bavaria. Himself
a strict Catholic, he asserted the supremacy of the state over a
foreign hierarchy, and by reforming the churches, cloisters, and
schools of his country he sought to improve their position. But
under his successor, Charles Theodore, A.D. 1777-1799, everything
was restored to its old condition.--Meanwhile a powerful voice
was raised from the midst of the German prelates that aimed a
direct blow at the hierarchical papal system. =Nicholas von
Hontheim=, the suffragan Bishop of Treves, had under the name
_Justinus Febronius_ published, in A.D. 1763, a treatise _De
Statu Ecclesiæ_, in which he maintained the supreme authority of
general councils and the independence of bishops in opposition to
the hierarchical pretensions of the popes. It was soon translated
into German, French, Spanish, Portuguese, and Italian. The book
made a great impression, and Clement XIII. could do nothing
against the bold defender of the liberties of the church. In
A.D. 1778, indeed, Pius VI. had the poor satisfaction of extorting
a recantation from the old man of seventy-seven years, but he
lived to see yet more deadly storms burst upon the church. Urged
by Charles Theodore, Elector of Bavaria, the pope, in A.D. 1785,
had made Munich the residence of a nuncio. The episcopal electors
of Mainz, Cologne, and Treves, and the Archbishop of Salzburg,
seeing their archiepiscopal rights in danger, met in congress
at Ems in A.D. 1786, and there, on the basis of the Febronian
proofs, claimed, in the so called =Punctation of Ems=, practical
independence of the pope and the restoration of an independent
German national Catholic church. But the German bishops found
it easier to obey the distant pope than the near archbishops.
So they united their opposition with that of the pope, and the
undertaking of the archbishops came to nothing.--More threatening
still for the existence of the hierarchy was the reign of
=Joseph II.= in Austria. German emperor from A.D. 1765, and
co-regent with his mother Maria Theresa, he began, immediately
on his succession to sole rule in A.D. 1780, a radical reform of
the whole ecclesiastical institutions throughout his hereditary
possessions. In A.D. 1781 he issued his =Edict of Toleration=,
by which, under various restrictions, the Protestants obtained
civil rights and liberty of worship. Protestant places of worship
were to have no bells or towers, were to pay stole dues to the
Catholic priests, in mixed marriages the Catholic father had the
right of educating all his children and the Catholic mother could
claim the education at least of her daughters. By stopping all
episcopal communications with the papal curia, and putting all
papal bulls and ecclesiastical edicts under strict civil control,
the Catholic church was emancipated from Roman influences, set
under a native clergy, and made serviceable in the moral and
religious training of the people, and all her institutions that
did not serve this end were abolished. Of the 2,000 cloisters,
606 succumbed before this decree, and those that remained were
completely sundered from all connexion with Rome. In vain the
bishops and Pius VI. protested. The pope even went to Vienna in
A.D. 1782; but though received with great respect, he could make
nothing of the emperor. Joseph’s procedure had been somewhat
hasty and inconsiderate, and a reaction set in, led by interested
parties, on the emperor’s early death in A.D. 1790.--The
Grand-duke =Leopold of Tuscany=, Joseph’s brother, with the
aid of the pious Bishop Scipio von Ricci, inclined to Jansenism,
sought also in a similar way to reform the church of his land
at the Synod of Pistoia, in A.D. 1786. But here too at last the
hierarchy prevailed.
§ 165.11. =Theological Literature.=--The Revocation of the Edict
of Nantes, A.D. 1685, gave the deathblow to the French Reformed
theology, but it also robbed Catholic theology =in France= of its
spur and incentive. The Huguenot polemic against the papacy, and
that of Jansenism against the semi-pelagianism of the Catholic
church, were silenced; but now the most rabid naturalism, atheism,
and materialism held the field, and the church theology was so
lethargic that it could not attempt any serious opposition. Yet
even here some names are worthy of being recorded. Above all,
=Bernard de Montfaucon= of St. Maur, the ablest antiquarian of
France, besides his classical works, issued admirable editions of
Athanasius, Chrysostom, Origen’s “_Hexapla_,” and the “_Collectio
Nova Patrum_.” =E. Renaudot=, a learned expert in the oriental
languages, wrote several works in vindication of the “_Perpétuité
de la Foi cath._,” a history of the Jacobite patriarchs of
Alexandria, etc., and compiled a “_Collectio liturgiarum
Oriental_,” in two vols. Of permanent worth is the “_Bibliotheca
Sacra_” of the Oratorian =Le Long=, which forms an admirable
literary-historical apparatus for the Bible. The learned Jesuit
=Hardouin=, who pronounced all Greek and Latin classics, with
few exceptions, to be monkish products of the thirteenth century,
and denied the existence of all pre-Tridentine general councils,
edited a careful collection of Acts of Councils in twelve vols.
folio in Paris, 1715, and compiled an elaborate chronology
of the Old Testament. His pupil, the Jesuit =Berruyer=, wrote
a romancing “_Hist. du Peuple de Dieu_,” which, though much
criticised, was widely read. Incomparably more important was
the Benedictine =Calmet=, died A.D. 1757, whose “_Dictionnaire de
la Bible_” and “_Commentaire Littéral et Critique_” on the whole
Bible are really most creditable for their time. And, finally,
the Parisian professor of medicine, =Jean Astruc=, deserves to
be named as the founder of the modern Pentateuch criticism, whose
“_Conjectures sur les Mémoires Originaux_,” etc., appeared in
Brussels A.D. 1753.--Within the limits of the French Revolution
the noble theosophist =St. Martin=, died A.D. 1805, a warm
admirer of Böhme, wrote his brilliant and profound treatises.
§ 165.12. =In Italy= the most important contributions were in
the department of history. =Mansi=, in his collection of Acts of
Councils in thirty-one vols. folio, A.D. 1759 ff., and =Muratori=,
in his “_Scriptores Rer. Italic._,” in twenty-eight vols., and
“_Antiquitt. Ital. Med. Ævi_,” in six vols., show brilliant
learning and admirable impartiality. =Ugolino=, in a gigantic
work, “_Thesaurus Antiquitt. ss._,” thirty-four folio vols.,
A.D. 1744 ff., gathers together all that is most important for
biblical archæology. The three =Assemani=, uncle and two nephews,
cultured Maronites in Rome, wrought in the hitherto unknown
field of Syrian literature and history. The uncle, Joseph Simon,
librarian at the Vatican, wrote “_Bibliotheca Orientalis_,”
in four vols., A.D. 1719 ff., and edited Ephraem’s [Ephraim’s]
works in six vols. The elder nephew, Stephen Evodius, edited
the “_Acta ss. Martyrum Orient. et Occid._,” in two vols.,
and the younger, Joseph Aloysius, a “_Codex Liturgicus Eccles.
Univ._,” in thirteen vols. Among dogmatical works the “_Theologia
hist.-dogm.-scholastica_,” in eight vols. folio, Rome, 1739, of
the Augustinian =Berti= deserves mention. =Zaccaria= of Venice,
in some thirty vols., proved an indefatigable opponent of
Febronianism, Josephinism, and such-like movements, and a careful
editor of older Catholic works. The Augustinian =Florez=, died
A.D. 1773, did for =Spain= what Muratori had done for Italy
in making collections of ancient writers, which, with the
continuations of the brethren of his order, extended to fifty
folio volumes.--In =Germany= the greatest Catholic theologian
of the century was =Amort=. Of his seventy treatises the
most comprehensive is the “_Theologia Eclectica, Moralis et
Scholastica_,” in four vols. folio, A.D. 1752. He conducted
a conciliatory polemic against the Protestants, contested
the mysticism of Maria von Agreda (§ 156, 5), and vigorously
controverted superstition, miracle-mongering, and all manner
of monkish extravagances. To the time of Joseph II. belongs the
liberal, latitudinarian supernaturalist =Jahn= of Vienna, whose
“Introduction to the Old Testament,” and “Biblical Antiquities”
did much to raise the standard of biblical learning. For
his anti-clericalism he was deprived of his professorship in
A.D. 1805, and died in A.D. 1816 a canon in Vienna. To this
century also belongs the greatly blessed literary labours of
the accomplished mystic, =Sailer=, beginning at Ingolstadt in
A.D. 1777, and continued at Dillingen from A.D. 1784. Deprived
in A.D. 1794 of his professorship on pretence of his favouring
the Illuminati, it was not till A.D. 1799 that he was allowed to
resume his academic work in Ingolstadt and Landshut. By numerous
theological, ascetical, and philosophical tracts, but far more
powerfully by his lectures and personal intercourse, he sowed
the seeds of rationalism, which bore fruit in the teachings
of many Catholic universities, and produced in the hearts of
many pupils a warm and deep and at the same time a gentle and
conciliatory Catholicism, which heartily greeted, even in pious
Protestants, the foundations of a common faith and life. Compare
§ 187, 1.--Continuation, § 191.
§ 165.13. =The German-Catholic Contribution to the
Illumination.=--The Catholic church of Germany was also carried
away with the current of “the Illumination,” which from the
middle of the century had overrun Protestant Germany. While the
exorcisms and cures of Father Gassner in Regensburg were securing
signal triumphs to Catholicism, though these were of so dubious
a kind that the bishops, the emperor, and finally even the curia,
found it necessary to check the course of the miracle worker,
=Weishaupt=, professor of canon law in Ingolstadt, founded,
in A.D. 1776, the secret society of the =Illuminati=, which
spread its deistic ideas of culture and human perfectibility
through Catholic South Germany. Though inspired by deadly
hatred of the Jesuits, Weishaupt imitated their methods, and
so excited the suspicion of the Bavarian government, which, in
A.D. 1785, suppressed the order and imprisoned and banished its
leaders.--Catholic theology too was affected by the rationalistic
movement. But that the power of the church to curse still
survived was proved in the case of the Mainz professor, =Laurence
Isenbiehl=, who applied the passage about Immanuel, in Isaiah
vii. 14, not to the mother of Christ, but to the wife of the
prophet, for which he was deposed in A.D. 1774, and on account
of his defective knowledge of theology was sent back for two
years to the seminary. When in A.D. 1778 he published a learned
treatise on the same theme, he was put in prison. The pope too
condemned his exposition as pestilential, and Isenbiehl “as
a good Catholic” retracted. =Steinbühler=, a young jurist of
Salzburg, having been sentenced to death in A.D. 1781 for some
contemptuous words about the Catholic ceremonies, was pardoned,
but soon after died from the ill-treatment he had received. The
rationalistic movement got hold more and more of the Catholic
universities. In Mainz, =Dr. Blau=, professor of dogmatics,
promulgated with impunity the doctrine that in the course of
centuries the church has often made mistakes. In the Austrian
universities, under the protection of the Josephine edict, a
whole series of Catholic theologians ventured to make cynically
free criticisms, especially in the field of church history. At
Bonn University, founded in A.D. 1786 by the Elector-archbishop
of Cologne, there were teachers like =Hedderich=, who sportively
described himself on the title page of a dissertation as “_jam
quater Romæ damnatus_,” =Dereser=, previously a Carmelite monk,
who followed Eichhorn in his exposition of the biblical miracles,
and =Eulogius Schneider=, who, after having made Bonn too hot
for him by his theological and poetical recklessness, threw
himself into the French Revolution, for two years marched through
Alsace with the guillotine as one of the most dreaded monsters,
and finally, in A.D. 1794, was made to lay his own head on the
block.--At the Austrian universities, under the protection of
the tolerant Josephine legislation, a whole series of Catholic
theologians, Royko, Wolff, Dannenmayr, Michl, etc., criticised,
often with cynical plainness, the proceedings and condition of
the Catholic church. To this class also, in the first stage of
his remarkably changeful and eventful career, belongs Ign. Aur.
=Fessler=. From 1773, a Capuchin in various cloisters, last of
all in Vienna, he brought down upon himself the bitter hatred
of his order by making secret reports to the emperor about the
ongoings that prevailed in these convents. He escaped their
enmity by his appointment, in 1784, as professor of the oriental
languages and the Old Testament at Lemberg, but was in 1787
dismissed from this office on account of various charges against
his life, teaching, and poetical writings. In Silesia, in 1791,
he went over to the Protestant church, joined the freemasons,
held at Berlin the post of a councillor in ecclesiastical and
educational affairs for the newly won Catholic provinces of
Poland, and, after losing this position in consequence of the
events of the war of 1806, found employment in Russia in 1809;
first, as professor of oriental languages at St. Petersburg,
and afterwards, when opposed and persecuted there also on
suspicion of entertaining atheistical views, as member of a legal
commission in South Russia. Meanwhile having gradually moved from
a deistical to a vague mystical standpoint, he was in 1819 made
superintendent and president of the evangelical consistory at
Saratov, with the title of an evangelical bishop, and after the
abolition of that office in 1833 he became general superintendent
at St. Petersburg, where he died in 1839. His romances and
tragedies as well as his theological and religious writings
are now forgotten, but his “Reminiscences of his Seventy Years’
Pilgrimage,” published in 1824, are still interesting, and his
“History of Hungary,” in ten volumes, begun in 1812, is of
permanent value.
§ 165.14. =The French Contribution to the Illumination.=--The
age of Louis XIV., with the morals of its Jesuit confessors, the
lust, bigotry, and hypocrisy of its court, its dragonnades and
Bastille polemic against revivals of a living Christianity among
Huguenots, mystics, and Jansenists, its prophets of the Cevennes
and Jansenist convulsionists, etc., called forth a spirit of
freethinking to which Catholicism, Jansenism, and Protestantism
appeared equally ridiculous and absurd. This movement was
essentially different from English deism. The principle of
the English movement was _common sense_, the universal moral
consciousness in man, with the powerful weapon of rational
criticism, maintaining the existence of an ideal and moral
element in men, and holding by the more general principles of
religion. French naturalism, on the other hand, was a philosophy
of the _esprit_, that essentially French lightheartedness
which laughed away everything of an ideal sort with scorn and
wit. Yet there was an intimate relationship between the two.
The philosophy of common sense came to France, and was there
travestied into a philosophy _d’esprit_. The organ of this French
philosophy was the “_Encyclopédie_” of Diderot and D’Alembert,
and its most brilliant contributors, Montesquieu, Helvetius,
Voltaire, and Rousseau. =Montesquieu=, A.D. 1689-1755, whose
“_Esprit des Lois_” in two years passed through twenty-two
editions, wrote the “_Lettres Persanes_,” in which with biting
wit he ridiculed the political, social, and ecclesiastical
condition of France. =Helvetius=, A.D. 1715-1771, had his book,
“_De l’Esprit_,” burnt in A.D. 1759 by order of parliament,
and was made to retract, but this only increased his influence.
=Voltaire=, A.D. 1694-1778, although treating in his writings
of philosophical and theological matters, gives only a hash
of English deism spiced with frivolous wit, showing the same
tendency in his historical and poetical works, giving a certain
eloquence to the commonest and filthiest subjects, as in his
“_Pucelle_” and “_Candide_.” He obtained, however, an immense
influence that extended far past his own days. To the same class
belongs =Jean Jacques Rousseau=, A.D. 1712-1778, belonging to the
Roman Catholic church only as a pervert for seventeen years in
the middle of his life. Of a nobler nature than Voltaire, he
yet often sank into deep immorality, as he tells without reserve,
but also without any hearty penitence, in his _Confessions_.
His whole life was taken up with the conflict for his ideals
of freedom, nature, human rights, and human happiness. In
his “_Contrat Social_” of A.D. 1762, he commends a return
to the natural condition of the savage as the ideal end of
man’s endeavour. His “_Emile_” of A.D. 1761 is of epoch-making
importance in the history of education, and in it he eloquently
sets forth his ideal of a natural education of children,
while he sent all his own (natural) children to a foundling
hospital.--The physician =De la Mettrie=, who died at the court
of Frederick the Great in A.D. 1751, carried materialism to
its most extreme consequences, and the German-Frenchman Baron
=Holbach=, A.D. 1723-1789, wrote the “_Système de la Nature_,”
which in two years passed through eighteen editions.[495]
§ 165.15. These seeds bore fruit in the =French Revolution=.
Voltaire’s cry “_Écrasez l’infame_,” was directed against the
church of the Inquisition, the massacre of St. Bartholomew,
and the dragonnades, and Diderot had exclaimed that the world’s
salvation could only come when the last king had been strangled
with the entrails of the last priest. The constitutional National
Assembly, A.D. 1789-1791, wished to set aside, not the faith of
the people, but only the hierarchy, and to save the state from
a financial crisis by the goods of the church. All cloisters
were suppressed and their property sold. The number of bishops
was reduced to one half, all ecclesiastical offices without
a pastoral sphere were abolished, the clergy elected by the
people paid by the state, and liberty of belief recognised as
an inalienable right of man. The legislative National Assembly,
A.D. 1791, 1792, made all the clergy take an oath to the
constitution on pain of deposition. The pope forbad it under
the same threat. Then arose a schism. Some 40,000 priests who
refused the oath mostly quitted the country. Avignon (§ 110, 4)
had been incorporated in the French territory. The terrorist
National Convention, A.D. 1792-1795, which brought the king
to the scaffold on January 21st, A.D. 1793, and the queen on
October 16th, prohibited all Christian customs, on 5th October
abolished the Christian reckoning of time, and on November 7th
Christianity itself, laid waste 2,000 churches and converted
_Notre Dame_ into a _Temple de la Raison_, where a ballet-dancer
represented the goddess of reason. Stirred up by the fanatical
baron, “Anacharsis” Cloots, “the apostle of human freedom and the
personal enemy of Jesus Christ,” the Archbishop Gobel, now in his
sixtieth year, came forward, proclaiming his whole past life a
fraud, and owning no other religion than that of freedom. On the
other hand, the noble Bishop Gregoire of Blois, the first priest
to support the constitution, who voted for the abolition of
royalty, but not the execution of the king, was not driven by
the terrorism of the convention, of which he was a member, from
a bold and open profession of Christianity, appearing in his
clerical dress and unweariedly protesting against the vandalism
of the Assembly. Robespierre[496] himself said, “_Si Dieu
n’existait pas, il faudrait l’inventer_,” passed in A.D. 1794
the resolution, _Le peuple français reconnait l’Être suprême et
l’immortalité de l’âme_, and issued an order to celebrate the
_fête de l’Être suprême_. The Directory, A.D. 1795-1799, restored
indeed Christian worship, but favoured the deistical sect of the
=Theophilanthropists=, whose high-swelling phrases soon called
forth public scorn, while in A.D. 1802 the first consul banished
their worship from all churches. But meanwhile, in A.D. 1798, in
order to nullify the opposition of the pope, French armies had
overrun Italy and proclaimed the Church States a Roman Republic.
=Pius VI.= was taken prisoner to France, and died in A.D. 1799 at
Valence under the rough treatment of the French, without having
in the least compromised himself or his office.[497]
§ 165.16. =The Pseudo-Catholics.=
1. =The Abrahamites or Bohemian Deists.= When Joseph II. issued
his edict of toleration in A.D. 1781, a sect which had
hitherto kept itself secret under the mask of Catholicism
made its appearance in the Bohemian province of Pardubitz.
The Abrahamites were descended from the old Hussites,
and professed to follow the faith of Abraham before his
circumcision. Their fundamental doctrine was deistic
monotheism, and of the Bible they accepted only the ten
commandments and the Lord’s Prayer. But as they would
neither attend the Jewish synagogue nor the churches of any
existing Christian sect, the emperor refused them religious
toleration, drove them from their homes, and settled them
in A.D. 1783 on the eastern frontiers. Many of them, in
consequence of persecution, returned to the Catholic church,
and even those who remained steadfast did not transmit their
faith to their children.
§ 165.17.
2. =The Frankists.=--Jacob Leibowicz, the son of a Jewish rabbi
in Galicia, attached himself in Turkey, where he assumed the
name of =Frank=, to the Jewish sect of the Sabbatarians, who,
repudiating the Talmud, adopted the cabbalistic book Sohar
as the source of their more profound religious teaching.
Afterwards in Podolia, which was then still Polish, he was
esteemed among his numerous adherents as a Messiah sent of
God. Bitterly hated by the rabbinical Jews, and accused of
indulging in vile orgies in their assemblies, many of those
Soharists were thrown into prison at the instigation of
Bishop Dembowski of Kaminetz. But when they turned and
accused their opponents of most serious crimes against
Christendom, and, at Frank’s suggestion, pointing out what
they alleged to be an identity between the book Sohar and
the Christian doctrine of the Trinity and incarnation, made
it known that they were inclined to become converts, they
won the favour of the bishop. He arranged a disputation
between the two parties, pronounced the Talmudists beaten,
confiscated all available copies of the Talmud, dragged
them through the streets tied to the tail of a horse, and
then burnt them. Dembowski, however, died soon after in
A.D. 1757, and the cathedral chapter expelled the Soharists
from Kaminetz. They appealed to King Augustus III. and to
Archbishop Lubienski of Lemberg, renewing their profession
of faith in the Trinity, and promising to be subject to the
pope. In a disputation with the Talmudists lasting three
days they sought to prove that the Talmudists used Christian
blood in their services, which afterwards led to the death
of five of the Jews thus accused. By Frank’s advice, who
took part neither in this nor in the former disputation,
but was the secret leader of the whole movement, they now
formally applied for admission into the Catholic church,
and their leader now entered Lemberg in great state. They
actually submitted to be thus driven by him, and 1,000 of
his adherents were baptized at Lemberg. Frank was baptized
at Warsaw under the name of =Joseph=, the king himself
acting as sponsor. In all Catholic journals this event was
celebrated as a signal triumph for the Catholic church.
But Frank among his own disciples continued to play the
_rôle_ of a miracle-working Messiah. Hence in A.D. 1760
the Inquisition stepped in. Some of his followers were
imprisoned, others banished, and he himself as a heresiarch
condemned to confinement for life with hard labour, from
which after thirteen years he was liberated on the first
partition of Poland in A.D. 1772, through the favour of
Catherine II., who employed him as secret political agent.
Feeling that his life was insecure in Poland, he went to
Moravia, and at Brünn reorganized his numerous and attached
followers into a well-knit society, by which he was revered
as the incarnation of the Deity, and his beautiful daughter
Eva, brought up by her noble godmother, as “the divine
Emuna.” How he was permitted, under the protection of the
Catholic church, to continue here for sixteen years, playing
the _rôle_ of a Messiah, and to amass such wealth as enabled
him to purchase, in A.D. 1788, from the impoverished prince
of Homburg-Birstein his castle at Offenbach, with all the
privileges attached to it, is an insoluble mystery. He now
called himself Baron von Frank, formed with his followers
from Moravia and Poland a brilliant establishment, which
outwardly adhered to the Roman Catholic church, although he
very seldom attended the Catholic services. Frank died in
A.D. 1791, and was buried with great pomp, but without the
presence of the Catholic clergy. His daughter Eva was able
to maintain the extravagant establishment of her father
for twenty-six years, when the debt resting on the castle
reached three million florins. At last, in A.D. 1817, the
long-threatened catastrophe occurred. Eva died suddenly,
and a coffin said to contain her body was actually with
all decorum laid in the grave.
§ 166. THE ORIENTAL CHURCHES.
The oppressed condition of the orthodox church in the Ottoman empire
continued unchanged. It had a more vigorous development in Russia,
where its ascendency was unchallenged. Although the Russian church,
from the time of its obtaining an independent patriarchate at Moscow,
in A.D. 1589, was constitutionally emancipated from the mother church
of Constantinople, it yet continued in close religious affinity with it.
This was intensified by the adoption of the common confession, drawn up
shortly before by Peter Mogilas (§ 152, 3). The patriarchal constitution
in Russia, however, was but short-lived, for Peter I., in 1702,
after the death of the Patriarch Hadrian, abolished the patriarchate,
arrogated to himself as emperor the highest ecclesiastical office,
and in A.D. 1721 constituted “the Holy Synod,” to which, under the
supervision of a procurator guarding the rights of the state, he
assigned the supreme direction of spiritual and ecclesiastical affairs.
To these proposals the Patriarch of Constantinople gave his approval.
In this reform of the church constitution Theophanes Procopowicz,
Metropolitan of Novgorod, was the emperor’s right hand.--The
monophysite church of Abyssinia was again during this period the
scene of Christological controversies.
§ 166.1. =The Russian State Church.=--From the time of the
liturgical reformation of the Patriarch Nikon (§ 163, 10) a
new and peculiar =service of song= took the place of the old
unison style that had previously prevailed in the Russian church.
Without instrumental accompaniment, it was sustained simply by
powerful male voices, and was executed, at least in the chief
cities, with musical taste and charming simplicity. Among
the =theologians=, the above-named Procopowicz, who died in
A.D. 1736, occupied a prominent position. His “Handbook of
Dogmatics,” without departing from the doctrines of his church,
is characterized by learning, clearness of exposition, and
moderation. From the middle of the century, however, especially
among the superior clergy, there crept in a Protestant tendency,
which indeed held quite firmly by the old theology of the
œcumenical synods of the Greek Church, but set aside or laid
little stress upon later doctrinal developments. Even the
celebrated and widely used catechism, drawn up originally for the
use of the Grand-duke Paul Petrovich, by his tutor, the learned
Platón, afterwards Metropolitan of Moscow, was not quite free
from this tendency. It found yet more decided expression in
the dogmatic handbook of Theophylact, archimandrite of Moscow,
published in A.D. 1773.--Continuation, § 206, 1.
§ 166.2. =Russian Sects.=--To the sects of the seventeenth
century (§ 163, 10) are to be added spiritualistic gnostics of
the eighteenth, in which we find a blending of western ideas with
the old oriental mysticism. Among those were the =Malakanen=, or
consumers of milk, because, in spite of the orthodox prohibition,
they used milk during the fasts. They rejected all anointings,
even chrism and priestly consecration, and acknowledged only
spiritual anointing by the doctrine of Christ. They also
volatilized the idea of baptism and the Lord’s supper into that
of a merely spiritual cleansing and nourishing by the word of the
gospel. Otherwise they led a quiet and honourable life. More
important still in regard to numbers and influence were the
=Duchoborzen=. Although belonging exclusively to the peasant
class, they had a richly developed theological system of a
speculative character, with a notable blending of theosophy,
mysticism, Protestantism, and rationalism. They idealized the
doctrine of the sacraments after the style of the Quakers, would
have no special places of worship or an ordained clergy, refused
to take oaths or engage in military service, and led peaceable
and useful lives. They made their first appearance in Moscow in
the beginning of the eighteenth century under Peter the Great,
and spread through other cities of Old Russia.--Continuation,
§ 210, 3.
§ 166.3. =The Abyssinian Church= (§§ 64, 1; 73, 2).--About the
middle of the century a monk appeared, proclaiming that, besides
the commonly admitted twofold birth of Christ, the eternal
generation of the Father and the temporal birth of the Virgin
Mary, there was a third birth through anointing with the Holy
Spirit in the baptism in Jordan. He thus convulsed the whole
Abyssinian church, which for centuries had been in a state of
spiritual lethargy. The _abuna_ with the majority of his church
held by the old doctrine, but the new also found many adherents.
The split thus occasioned has continued till the present time,
and has played no unimportant part in the politico-dynastic
struggles of the last ten years (§ 184, 9).
II. The Protestant Churches.
§ 167. THE LUTHERAN CHURCH BEFORE “THE ILLUMINATION.”
By means of the founding of the University of Halle in A.D. 1694
a fresh impulse was given to the pietist movement, and too often the
whole German Church was embroiled in violent party strifes, in which
both sides failed to keep the happy mean, and laid themselves open to
the reproach of the adversaries. Spener died in A.D. 1705, Francke in
A.D. 1727, and Breithaupt in A.D. 1732. After the loss of these leaders
the Halle pietism became more and more gross, narrow, unscientific,
regardless of the Church confession, frequently renouncing definite
beliefs for hazy pious feeling, and attaching undue importance to pious
forms of expression and methodistical modes of life. The conventionalism
encouraged by it became a very Pandora’s box of sectarianism and
fanaticism (§ 170, 1). But it had also set up a ferment in the church
and in theology which created a wholesome influence for many years. More
than 6,000 theologians from all parts of Germany had down to Francke’s
death received their theological training in Halle, and carried the
leaven of his spirit into as many churches and schools. A whole series
of distinguished teachers of theology now rose in almost all the
Lutheran churches of the German states, who, avoiding the onesidedness
of the pietists and their opponents, taught and preached pure doctrine
and a pious life. From Calixt they had learnt to be mild and fair
towards the Reformed and Catholic churches, and by Spener they had
been roused to a genuine and hearty piety. Gottfried Arnold’s protest,
onesided as it was, had taught them to discover, even among heretics
and sectaries, partial and distorted truths; and from Calov and Löscher
they had inherited a zeal for pure doctrine. Most eminent among these
were Albert Bengel, of Württemberg, who died in A.D. 1752, and Chr. Aug.
Crusius of Leipzig, who died in A.D. 1775. But when the flood of “the
Illumination” came rushing in upon the German Lutheran Church about the
middle of the century, it overflowed even the fields sown by these noble
men.
§ 167.1. =The Pietist Controversies after the Founding of the
Halle University= (§ 159, 3).--Pietism, condemned by the orthodox
universities of Leipzig and Wittenberg, was protected and
encouraged in Halle. The crowds of students flocking to this new
seminary roused the wrath of the orthodox. The Wittenberg faculty,
with Deutschmann at its head, issued a manifesto in A.D. 1695,
charging Spener with no less than 264 errors in doctrine. Nor
were those of Leipzig silent, Carpzov going so far as to style
the mild and peace-loving Spener a _procella ecclesiæ_. Other
leading opponents of the pietists were Schelwig of Dantzig,
Mayer of Wittenberg, and Fecht of Rostock. When Spener died in
A.D. 1705 his opponents gravely discussed whether he could be
thought of as in glory. Fecht of Rostock denied that it could
be. Among the later champions of pure doctrine the worthiest
and ablest was the learned Löscher, superintendent at Dresden,
A.D. 1709-1747, who at least cannot be reproached with dead
orthodoxy. His “_Vollständiger Timotheus Verinus_,” two vols.,
1718, 1721, is by far the most important controversial work
against pietism.[498] Francis Buddeus of Jena for a long time
sought ineffectually to bring about a reconciliation between
Löscher and the pietists of Halle. In A.D. 1710 Francke and
Breithaupt obtained a valorous colleague in Joachim Lange;
but even he was no match for Löscher in controversy. Meanwhile
pietism had more and more permeated the life of the people, and
occasioned in many places violent popular tumults. In several
states conventicles were forbidden; in others, _e.g._ Württemberg
and Denmark, they were allowed.
§ 167.2. The orthodox regarded the pietists as a new sect,
with dangerous errors that threatened the pure doctrine of the
Lutheran Church; while the pietists maintained that they held by
pure Lutheran orthodoxy, and only set aside its barren formalism
and dead externalism for biblical practical Christianity. The
controversy gathered round the doctrines of the new birth,
justification, sanctification, the church, and the millennium.
a. The new birth. The orthodox maintained that regeneration
takes place in baptism (§ 141, 13), every baptized person
is regenerate; but the new birth needs nursing, nourishment,
and growth, and, where these are wanting, reawakening.
The pietists identified awakening or conversion with
regeneration, considered that it was effected in later
life through the word of God, mediated by a corporeal and
spiritual penitential struggle, and a consequent spiritual
experience, and sealed by a sensible assurance of God’s
favour in the believer’s blessed consciousness. This
inward sealing marks the beginning, introduction into the
condition of babes in Christ. They distinguished a _theologia
viatorum_, _i.e._ the symbolical church doctrine, and a
_theologia regenitorum_, which has to do with the soul’s
inner condition after the new birth. They have consequently
been charged with maintaining that a true Christian who has
arrived at the stage of spiritual manhood may and must in
this life become free from sin.
b. Justification and Sanctification. In opposition to an
only too prevalent externalizing of the doctrine of
justification, Spener has taught that only living faith
justifies, and if genuine must be operative, though not
meritorious. Only in faith proved to be living by a pious
life and active Christianity, but not in faith in the
external and objective promises of God’s word, lies the sure
guarantee of justification obtained. His opponents therefore
accused him of confounding justification and sanctification,
and depreciating the former in favour of the latter.
And, though not by Spener, yet by many of his followers,
justification was put in the background, and in a onesided
manner stress was laid upon practical Christianity.
Spener and Francke had expressly preached against worldly
dissipation and frivolity, and condemned dancing, the
theatre, card-playing, as detrimental to the progress of
sanctification, and therefore sinful; while the orthodox
regarded them as matters of indifference. Besides this, the
pietists held the doctrine of a day of grace, assigned to
each one within the limit of his earthly life (_terminism_).
c. The Church and the Pastorate. Orthodoxy regarded word and
sacrament and the ministry which administered them as the
basis and foundation of the church; pietism held that the
individual believers determined the character and existence
of the church. In the one case the church was thought
to beget, nurse, and nourish believers; in the other
believers, constituted, maintained, and renewed the church,
accomplishing this best by conventicles, in which living
Christianity preserved itself and diffused its influence
abroad. The orthodox laid great stress upon clerical
ordination and the grace of office; pietists on the person
and his faith. Spener had taught that only he who has
experienced in his own heart the power of the gospel,
_i.e._ he who has been born again, can be a true preacher
and pastor. Löscher maintained that the official acts of an
unconverted preacher, if only he be orthodox, may be blessed
as well as those of a converted man, because saving power
lies not in the person of the preacher, but in the word of
God which he preaches, in its purity and simplicity, and in
the sacraments which he dispenses in accordance with their
institution. The pietists then went so far as absolutely
to deny that saving results could follow the preaching of
an unconverted man. The proclamation of forgiveness by the
church without the inward sealing had for them no meaning;
yea, they regarded it as dangerous, because it quieted
conscience and made sinners secure. Hence they keenly
opposed private confession and churchly absolution. Of a
special grace of office they would know nothing: the true
ordination is the new birth; each regenerate one, and such
a one only, is a true priest. The orthodox insisted above
all on pure doctrine and the church confession; the pietists
too regarded this as necessary, but not as the main thing.
Spener decidedly maintained the duty of accepting the church
symbols; but later pietists rejected them as man’s work, and
so containing errors. Among the orthodox, again, some went
so far as to claim for their symbols absolute immunity from
error. Spener’s opposition to the compulsory use of fixed
Scripture portions, prescribed forms of prayer, and the
exorcism formulary occasioned the most violent contentions.
On the other hand, his reintroduction of the confirmation
service before the first communion, which had fallen into
general desuetude, was imitated, and soon widely prevailed,
even among the orthodox.
d. Eschatology. Spener had interpreted the biblical doctrine of
the 1,000 years’ reign as meaning that, after the overthrow
of the papacy and the conversion of heathens and Jews, a
period of the most glorious and undisturbed tranquillity
would dawn for the kingdom of Christ on earth as prelude
to the eternal sabbath. His opponents denounced this as
chiliasm and fanaticism.
e. There was, finally, a controversy about Divine providence
occasioned by the founding of Francke’s orphan house at
Halle. The pietists pointed to the establishment and growth
of this institution as an instance of immediate divine
providence; while Löscher, by indicating the common means
employed to secure success, reduced the whole affair to the
domain of general and daily providence, without denying the
value of the strong faith in God and the active love that
characterized its founder, as well as the importance of the
Divine blessing which rested upon the work.[499]
§ 167.3. =Theology= (§ 159, 4).--The last two important
representatives of the =Old Orthodox School= were =Löscher=, who,
besides his polemic against pietism, made learned contributions
to biblical philology and church history; and his companion in
arms, =Cyprian= of Gotha, who died in A.D. 1745, the ablest
combatant of Arnold’s “_Ketzerhistorie_,” and opponent of union
efforts and of the papacy.--The =Pietist School=, more fruitful
in practical than scientific theology, contributed to devotional
literature many works that will never be forgotten. The learned
and voluminous writer =Joachim Lange=, who died A.D. 1744, the
most skilful controversialist among the Halle pietists, author
of the “Halle Latin Grammar,” which reached its sixtieth edition
in A.D. 1809, published a commentary on the whole Bible in
seven folio vols. after the Cocceian method. Of importance as
a historian of the Reformation was =Salig= of Wolfenbüttel,
who died in A.D. 1738. =Christian Thomasius= at first attached
himself to the pietists as an opponent of the rigid adherence
to the letter of the orthodox, but was repudiated by them as an
indifferentist. To him belongs the honour of having turned public
opinion against the persecution of witches (§ 117, 4). Out of
the contentions of pietists and orthodox there now rose a =third
school=, in which Lutheran theology and learning were united with
genuine piety and profound thinking, decided confessionalism with
moderation and fairness. Its most distinguished representatives
were =Hollaz= of Pomerania, died 1713 (“_Examen Theologicum
Acroamaticum_”); =Buddeus= of Jena, died 1729 (“_Hist. Ecclst.
V.T._,” “_Instit. Theol. Dogma_,” “_Isagoge Hist. Theol. Univ._”);
=J. Chr. Wolf= of Homburg, died 1739 (“_Biblioth. Hebr._,” “_Curæ
Philol. et Crit. in N.T._”); =Weismann= of Tübingen, died 1747
(“_Hist. Ecclst._”); =Carpzov= of Leipzig, died A.D. 1767 as
superintendent at Lübeck (“_Critica s. V.T._,” “_Introductio
ad Libros cen. V.T._,” “_Apparatus Antiquitt. s. Codicis_”);
=J. H. Michaelis= of Halle, died 1731 (“_Biblia. Hebr. c.
Variis Lectionibus et Brev. Annott._,” “_Uberiores Annott. in
Hagiograph._”); assisted in both by his learned nephew =Chr. Ben.
Michaelis= of Halle, died 1764; =J. G. Walch= of Jena, died 1755
(“_Einl. in die Religionsstreitigkeiten_,” “_Biblioth. Theol.
Selecta_,” “_Biblioth. Patristica_,” “_Luther’s Werke_”); =Chr.
Meth. Pfaff= of Tübingen, died 1760 (“_K. G., K. Recht, Dogmatik,
Moral_”); =L. von Mosheim= of Helmstädt [Helmstadt] and Göttingen,
died 1755, the father of modern church history (“_Institt. Hist.
Ecclst._,” “_Commentarii Rebus Christ. ante Constant. M._,”
“_Dissertationes_,” etc.); =J. Alb. Bengel= of Stuttgart, died
1752 (“_Gnomon N.T._,” a commentary on the N.T. distinguished
by pregnancy of expression and profundity of thought; from
his interpretation of Revelation he expected the millennium to
begin in A.D. 1836); and =Chr. A. Crusius= of Leipzig, died 1775
(“_Hypomnemata ad Theol. Propheticam._”)--A =fourth= theological
school arose out of the application of the mathematical
method of demonstration by the philosopher =Chr. von Wolff=
of Halle, who died A.D. 1754. Wolff attached himself to
the philosophical system of Leibnitz, and sought to unite
philosophy and Christianity; but under the manipulation of his
logico-mathematical method of proof he took all vitality out of
the system, and the pre-established harmony of the world became
a purely mechanical clockwork. He looked merely to the logical
accuracy of Christian truths, without seeking to penetrate their
inner meaning, gave formal exercise to the understanding, while
the heart was left empty and cold; and thus inevitably revelation
and mystery made way for a mere natural theology. Hence the
charge brought against the system of tending to fatalism and
atheism, not only by narrow pietists like Lange, but by able
and liberal theologians like Buddeus and Crusius, was quite
justifiable. By a cabinet order of Frederick William I. in
A.D. 1723 Wolff was deposed, and ordered within two days,
on pain of death, to quit the Prussian states. But so soon as
Frederick II. ascended the throne, in A.D. 1740, he recalled the
philosopher to Halle from Marburg, where he had meanwhile taught
with great success.[500] =Sig. Jac. Baumgarten=, the pious and
learned professor in Halle, who died in A.D. 1757, was the first
to introduce Wolff’s method into theology. In respect of contents
his theology occupies essentially the old orthodox ground.
The ablest promoter of the system was =John Carpov= of Weimar,
who died in A.D. 1768 (“_Theol. Revelata Meth. Scientifica
Adornata_”). When applied to sermons, the Wolffian method led
to the most extreme insipidity and absurdity.
§ 167.4. =Unionist Efforts.=--The distinguished theologian
Chr. Matt. Pfaff, chancellor of the University of Tübingen, who,
without being numbered among the pietists, recognised in pietism
a wholesome reaction against the barren worship of the letter
which had characterized orthodoxy, regarded a union between
the Lutheran and Reformed churches on their common beliefs,
which in importance far exceeded the points of difference, as
both practicable and desirable; and in A.D. 1720 expressed this
opinion in his “_Alloquium Irenicum ad Protestantes_,” in which
he answered the challenge of the “_Corpus Evangelicorum_” at
Regensburg (§ 153, 1). His proposal, however, found little favour
among Lutheran theologians. Not only Cyprian of Gotha, but even
such conciliatory theologians as Weismann of Tübingen and Mosheim
of Helmstädt [Helmstadt], opposed it. But forty years later a
Lutheran theologian, Heumann of Göttingen, demonstrated that “the
Reformed doctrine of the supper is true,” and proposed, in order
to end the schism, that Lutherans should drop their doctrine
of the supper and the Reformed their doctrine of predestination.
This pamphlet, edited after the author’s death by Sack of Berlin,
in A.D. 1764, produced a great sensation, and called forth a
multitude of replies on the Lutheran side, the best of which
were those of Walch of Jena and Ernesti of Leipzig. Even within
the Lutheran church, however, it found considerable favour.
§ 167.5. =Theories of Ecclesiastical Law.=--Of necessity during
the first century of the Protestant church its government was
placed in the hands of the princes, who, because there were no
others to do so, dispensed the _jura episcopalia_ as _præcipua
membra ecclesiæ_. What was allowed at first in the exigency of
these times came gradually to be regarded as a legal right.
Orthodox theology and the juristic system associated with it,
especially that of Carpzov, justified this assumption in what
is called the =episcopal system=. This theory firmly maintains
the mediæval distinction between the spiritual and civil powers
as two independent spheres ordained of God; but it installs the
prince as _summus episcopus_, combining in his person the highest
spiritual with the highest civil authority. In lands, however,
where more than one confession held sway, or where a prince
belonging to a different section of the church succeeded, the
practical difficulties of this theory became very apparent; as,
_e.g._, when a Reformed or Romish prince had to be regarded as
_summus episcopus_ of a Lutheran church. Driven thus to seek
another basis for the claims of royal supremacy, a new theory,
that of the =territorial system=, was devised, according to
which the prince possessed highest ecclesiastical authority, not
as _præcipuum membrum ecclesiæ_, but as sovereign ruler in the
state. The headship of the church was therefore not an independent
prerogative over and above that of civil government, but an
inherent element in it: _cujus regio, illius et religio_. The
historical development of the German Reformation gave support to
this theory (§ 126, 6), as seen in the proceedings of the Diet of
Spires in A.D. 1526, in the Augsburg and Westphalian Peace.
A scientific basis was given it by Puffendorf of Heidelberg,
died A.D. 1694, in alliance with Hobbes (§ 163, 3). It was
further developed and applied by Christian Thomasius of Halle,
died A.D. 1728, and by the famous J. H. Böhmer in his “_Jus
Ecclesiasticum Potestantium_.” Thomasius’ connexion with the
pietists and his indifference to confessions secured for the
theory a favourable reception in that party. Spener himself
indeed preferred the Calvinistic presbyterial constitution,
because only in it could equality be given to all the three
orders, _ministerium ecclesiasticum_, _magistratus politicus_,
_status œconomicus_. This protest by Spener against the two
systems was certainly not without influence upon the construction
of a third theory, the =collegial system=, proposed by Pfaff of
Tübingen, died A.D. 1760. According to this scheme there belonged
to the sovereign as such only the headship of the church, _jus
circa sacra_, while the _jura in sacra_, matters pertaining to
doctrine, worship, ecclesiastical law and its administration,
installation of clergy, and excommunication, as _jura
collegialia_, belonged to the whole body of church members. The
normal constitution therefore required the collective vote of
all the members through their synods. But outward circumstances
during the Reformation age had necessitated the relegating the
discharge of these collegial rights to the princes, which in
itself was not unallowable, if only the position be maintained
that the prince acts _ex commisso_, and is under obligation to
render an account to those who have commissioned him. This system,
on account of its democratic character, found hearty supporters
among the later rationalists. But as a matter of fact nowhere
was any of the three systems consistently carried out. The
constitution adopted in most of the national churches was a
weak vacillation between all the three.[501]
§ 167.6. =Church Song= (§ 159, 3) received, during the first half
of the century, many valuable contributions. Two main groups of
singers may be distinguished:
1. The pietistic school, characterized by a biblical and
practical tendency. The spiritual life of believers, the
work of grace in conversion, growth in holiness, the varying
conditions and experiences of the religious life, were
favourite themes. They were fitted, not so much for use
in the public services, as for private devotion, and few
comparatively have been retained in collections of church
hymns. The later productions of this school sank more and
more into sentimentalism and allegorical and fanciful play
of words. We may distinguish among the Halle pietists an
older school, A.D. 1690-1720, and a younger, A.D. 1720-1750.
The former, coloured by the fervent piety of Francke,
produced simple, hearty, and often profound songs. The most
distinguished representatives were =Freylinghausen=, died
A.D. 1739, Francke’s son-in-law, and director of the Halle
Orphanage, editor in A.D. 1717 of a hymn-book widely used
among the pietists, was author of the hymns “Pure Essence,
spotless Fount of Light,” “The day expires;” =Chr. Fr.
Richter=, physician to the Orphanage, died A.D. 1711, author
of thirty-three beautiful hymns, including “God, whom I as
Love have known;” =Emilia Juliana=, Countess of Schwarzburg
Rudolstadt, died A.D. 1706, who wrote 586 hymns, including
“Who knows how near my end may be?” =Schröder=, pastor in
Magdeburg, died A.D. 1728, wrote “One thing is needful: Let
me deem;” =Winckler=, cathedral preacher of Magdeburg, died
A.D. 1722, author of “Strive, when thou art called of God;”
=Dessler=, rector of Nuremburg, died A.D. 1722, composer
of “I will not let Thee go, Thou help in time of need,” “O
Friend of souls, how well is me;” =Gotter=, died A.D. 1735,
who wrote, “O Cross, we hail thy bitter reign;” =Cresselius=,
pastor in Dusseldorf [Düsseldorf], author of “Awake, O man,
and from thee shake.” The younger Halle school represents
pietism in its period of decay. Its best representatives
are =J. J. Rambach=, professor at Giessen, died A.D. 1735,
who wrote “I am baptized into thy name;” =Allendorf=, court
preacher at Cöthen, died A.D. 1773, editor of a collection
of poetic renderings from the Canticles.
2. The poets of the orthodox party, although opposed to the
pietists, are all more or less touched by the fervent piety
of Spener. =Neumeister=, pastor at Hamburg, died A.D. 1756,
was an orthodox hymn-writer of thoroughly conservative
tendencies, zealously opposing the onesidedness of pietism,
with a strong, ardent faith in the orthodox creed, but
without much significance as a poet. =Schmolck=, pastor
at Schweidnitz, died A.D. 1737, wrote over 1,000 hymns,
including “Blessed Jesus, here we stand,” “Hosanna to the
Son of David! Raise,” “Welcome, thou Victor in the strife.”
=Sol. Franck=, secretary to the consistory at Weimar, died
A.D. 1725, wrote over 300 hymns, including “Rest of the
weary, thou thyself art resting now.” The mediating party
between pietism and orthodoxy, represented by Bengel and
Crusius in theology, is represented among hymn-writers
by =J. Andr. Rothe=, died A.D. 1758, and by =Mentzer=,
died A.D. 1734, composer of “Oh, would I had a thousand
tongues!” In A.D. 1750 J. Jac. von Moser collected a
list of 50,000 spiritual songs printed in the German
language.--Continuation, § 171, 1.
§ 167.7. =Sacred Music= (§ 159, 5).--Decadence of musical taste
accompanied the lowering of the poetic standard, and pietists
went even further than the orthodox in their imitation and
adaptation of operatic airs. =Freylinghausen=, not only himself
composed many such melodies, but made a collection from various
sources in A.D. 1704, retaining some of the more popular of the
older tunes.--There now arose, amid all this depravation of taste,
a noble musician, who, like the good householder, could bring
out of his treasure things new and old. =J. Seb. Bach=, the most
perfect organist who ever lived, was musical director of the
School of St. Thomas, Leipzig, and died A.D. 1750. He turned
enthusiastically to the old chorale, which no one had ever
understood and appreciated as he did. He harmonized the old
chorales for the organ, made them the basis for elaborate organ
studies, gave expression to his profoundest feelings in his
musical compositions and in his recitatives, duets, and airs,
reproduced at the sacred concerts many fine old chorales wedded
to most appropriate Scripture passages. He is for all times
the unrivalled master in fugue, harmony, and modulation. In his
passion music we have expression given to the profoundest ideas
of German Protestantism in the noblest music. After Bach comes a
master in oratorio music hitherto unapproached, =G. Fr. Handel=
of Halle, who, from A.D. 1710 till his death in A.D. 1759,
lived mostly in England. For twenty-five years he wrought for
the opera-house, and only in his later years gave himself to
the composing of oratorios. His operas are forgotten, but his
oratorios will endure to the end of time. His most perfect
work is the “Messiah,” which Herder describes as a Christian
epic in music. Of his other great compositions, “Samson,”
“Judas Maccabæus,” and “Jephtha” may be mentioned.[502]
§ 167.8. =The Christian Life and Devotional Literature.=--Pietism
led to a powerful revival of religious life among the people,
which it sustained by zealous preaching and the publication of
devotional works. A similar activity displayed itself among the
orthodox. Francke began his charitable labours with seven florins;
but with undaunted faith he started his Orphanage, writing over
its door the words of Isaiah xl. 31. In faith and benevolence
Woltersdorff was a worthy successor of Francke; and Baron von
Canstein applied his whole means to the founding of the Bible
Institute of Halle. Missions too were now prosecuted with a zeal
and success which witnessed to the new life that had arisen in
the Lutheran church.--A remarkable manifestation of the pietistic
spirit of this age is seen in =The Praying Children in Silesia=,
A.D. 1707. Children of four years old and upward gathered in open
fields for singing and prayer, and called for the restoration of
churches taken away by the Catholics. The movement spread over
the whole land. In vain was it denounced from the pulpits and
forbidden by the authorities. Opposition only excited more and
more the zeal of the children. At last the churches were opened
for their services. The excitement then gradually subsided. It
was, however, long a subject of discussion between the pietists
and the orthodox; the latter denouncing it as the work of the
devil, the former regarding it as a wonderful awakening of God’s
grace.--Best remembered of the many devotional writers of this
period are Bogatsky of Halle, died A.D. 1774, whose “Golden
Treasury” is still highly esteemed;[503] and Von Moser, died
A.D. 1785, who lived a noble and exemplary life at Stuttgart
amid much sore persecution. The great need of simple explanation
of Scripture appears from the great sale of such popular
commentaries as those of Pfaff at Tübingen, 1730, Starke at
Leipzig, 1741, and the Halle Bible of S. J. Baumgarten, 1748.
§ 167.9. =Missions to the Heathen.=--The quickening of
religious life by pietism bore fruit in new missionary activity.
Frederick IV. of Denmark founded in his East Indian possessions
the Tranquebar mission in A.D. 1706, under Ziegenbalg and
Plutschau. Ziegenbalg, who translated the New Testament into
Tamil, died in A.D. 1719. From the Danish possessions this
mission carried its work over into the English Indian territories.
Able and zealous workers were sent out from the Halle Institute,
of whom the greatest was Chr. Fr. Schwartz, who died in A.D. 1798,
after nearly fifty years of noble service in the mission field.
In the last quarter of the century, however, under the influence
of rationalism, zeal for missions declined, the Halle society
broke up, and the English were allowed to reap the harvest
sown by the Lutherans. The Halle professor Callenberg founded
in A.D. 1728 a society for the conversion of the Jews, in the
interests of which Stephen Schultz travelled over Europe, Asia,
and Africa, preaching the Cross among the Jews. Christianity had
been introduced among the Eskimos in Greenland in the eleventh
century (§ 93, 5), but the Scandinavian colony there had been
forgotten, and no trace of the religion which it had taught any
longer remained. This reproach to Christianity lay sore on the
heart of Hans Egede, a Norwegian pastor, and he found no rest
till, supported by a Danish-Norwegian trading house, he sailed
with his family in A.D. 1721 for these frozen and inhospitable
shores. Amid almost inconceivable hardships, and with at first
but little success, he continued to labour unweariedly, and even
after the trading company abandoned the field he remained. In
A.D. 1733 he had the unexpected joy of welcoming three Moravian
missionaries, Christian David and the brothers Stach. His joy
was too soon dashed by the spiritual pride of the new arrivals,
who insisted on modelling everything after their own Moravian
principles, and separated themselves from the noble Egede, when
he refused to yield, as an unspiritual and unconverted man. Egede,
on the other hand, though deeply offended at their confounding
justification and sanctification, their contempt of pure doctrine,
and their unscriptural views and mode of speech, was ready to
attribute all this to their defective theological training.
He rewarded their unkindness, when they were stricken down in
sore sickness, with unwearied, loving care. In A.D. 1736 he
returned to Denmark, leaving his son Paul to carry on his work,
and continued director of the Greenland Mission Seminary in
Copenhagen till his death in A.D. 1758.[504]--Continuation,
§ 171, 5.
§ 168. THE CHURCH OF THE MORAVIAN BRETHREN.[505]
The highly gifted Count Zinzendorf, inspired even as a boy, out of
fervent love to the Saviour, with the idea of gathering together the
lovers of Jesus, took occasion of the visit of some Moravian Exultants
to his estate to realize his cherished project. On the Hutberg he
dropped the mustard seed of the dream of his youth into fertile soil,
where, under his fervent care, it soon grew into a stately tree, whose
branches spread over all European lands, and thence through all parts
of the habitable globe. The society which he founded was called “The
Society of the United Brethren.” The fact that this society was not
overwhelmed by the extravagances to which for a time it gave way, that
its fraternising with the fanatics, the extravagant talk in which its
members indulged about a special covenant with the Saviour, and their
not over-modest claims to a peculiar rank in the kingdom of God, did not
lead to its utter overthrow in the abyss of fanaticism, and that on the
slippery paths of its mystical marriage theory it was able to keep its
feet, presents a phenomenon, which stands alone in church history, and
more than anything else proves how deeply rooted founder and followers
were in the saving truths of the gospel. The count himself laid aside
many of his extravagances, and what still remained was abandoned by
his sensible and prudent successor Spangenberg, so far as it was not
necessarily involved in the fundamental idea of a special covenant
with the Saviour. The special service rendered by the society was
the protest which it raised against the generally prevailing apostasy.
During this period of declension it saved the faith of many pious souls,
affording them a welcome refuge, with rich spiritual nourishment and
nurture. With the reawakening of the religious life in the nineteenth
century, however, its adherents lost ground in Europe more and more,
by maintaining their old onesidedness in life and doctrine, their
depreciatory estimate of theological science, and the quarrelsome spirit
which they generally manifested. But in one province, that of missions
to the heathen, their energy and success have never yet been equalled.
Their thorough and well-organized system of education also deserves
particular mention. At present the Society of the Brethren numbers half
a million, distributed among 100 settlements or thereabout.
§ 168.1. =The Founder of the Moravian Brotherhood=, Nic. Ludwig
Count von =Zinzendorf= and Pottendorf, was born in Dresden in
A.D. 1700. Spener was one of his sponsors at baptism. His father
dying early, and his mother marrying a second time, the boy,
richly endowed with gifts of head and heart, was brought up by
his godly pietistic grandmother, the Baroness von Gersdorf. There
in his earliest youth he learned to seek his happiness in the
closest personal fellowship with the Lord, and the tendency of
his whole future life to yield to the impulses of pious feeling
already began to assert itself. In his tenth year he entered the
Halle Institute under Francke, where the pietistic idea of the
need of the _ecclesiolæ in ecclesia_ took firm possession of his
heart. Even in his fifteenth year he sought its realization by
founding among his fellow students “The Order of the Grain of
Mustard Seed” (Matt. xiii. 31). After completing his school
course, his uncle and guardian, in order to put an end to his
pietistic extravagances, sent him to study law at the orthodox
University of Wittenberg. Here he had at first to suffer a sort
of martyrdom as a rigid pietist swimming against the orthodox
current. His residence at Wittenberg, however, was beneficial
to him in freeing him unconsciously of the Halle pietism,
which had restrained his spiritual development. He did indeed
firmly maintain the fundamental idea of pietism, _ecclesiolæ
in ecclesia_, but in his mind it gained a wider significance
than pietism had given it. His endeavours to secure a personal
conference, and where possible a union, between the Halle
and Wittenberg leaders were unsuccessful. In A.D. 1719 he
left Wittenberg and travelled for two years, visiting the most
distinguished representatives of all confessions and sects. This
too fostered his idea of a grand gathering of all who love the
Lord Jesus. On his return home, in A.D. 1721, at the wish of his
relatives he entered the service of the Saxon government. But a
religious genius like Zinzendorf could find no satisfaction in
such employment. And soon an opportunity presented itself for
carrying out the plan to which his thoughts and longings were
directed.[506]
§ 168.2. =The Founding of the Brotherhood=, A.D. 1722-1727. The
Schmalcald, and still more the Thirty Years’ War, had brought
frightful suffering and persecution upon the Bohemian and
Moravian Brethren. Many of them sought refuge in Poland and
Prussia. One of the refugees was the famous educationist J. Amos
Comenius, who died in A.D. 1671, after having been bishop of the
Moravians at Lissa in Posen from 1648. Those who remained behind
were, even after the Peace of Westphalia, subjected to the
cruellest oppression! Only secretly in their houses and at the
risk of their lives could they worship God according to the faith
of their fathers; and they were obliged publicly to profess their
adherence to the Romish church. Thus gradually the light of the
gospel was extinguished in the homes of their descendants, and
only a tradition, becoming ever more and more faint, remained
as a memory of their ancestral faith. A Moravian carpenter,
Christian David, born and reared in the Romish church, but
converted by evangelical preaching, succeeded in the beginning
of the eighteenth century in fanning into a flame again in some
families the light that had been quenched. This little band of
believers, under David’s leading, went forth in A.D. 1722 and
sought refuge on Zinzendorf’s estate in Lusatia. The count was
then absent, but the steward, with the hearty concurrence of
the count’s grandmother, gave them the Hutberg at Berthelsdorf
as a settlement. With the words of Psalm lxxxiv. 4 on his lips,
Christian David struck the axe into the tree for building the
first house. Soon the little town of Herrnhut had arisen, as
the centre of that Christian society which Zinzendorf now sought
with all his heart and strength to develop and promote. Gradually
other Moravians dropped in, but a yet greater number from far and
near streamed in, of all sorts of religious revivalists, pietists,
separatists, followers of Schwenckfeld, etc. Zinzendorf had no
thought of separation from the Lutheran church. The settlers were
therefore put under the pastoral care of Rothe, the worthy pastor
of Berthelsdorf (§ 167, 6). To organize such a mixed multitude
was no easy task. Only Zinzendorf’s glorious enthusiasm for
the idea of a congregation of saints, his eminent organizing
talents, the wonderful elasticity and tenacity of his will,
the extraordinary prudence, circumspection, and wisdom of his
management, made it possible to cement the incongruous elements
and avoid an open breach. The Moravians insisted upon restoring
their old constitution and discipline, and of the others, each
wished to have prominence given to whatever he thought specially
important. Only on one point were they all agreed, the duty of
refusing to conform to the Lutheran church and its pastor Rothe.
The count, therefore, felt obliged to form a new and separatist
society. Personally he had no special liking for the old Moravian
constitution; but the lot decided in its favour, while the idea
of continuing a pre-Reformation martyr church was not without a
certain charm. Thus Zinzendorf drew up a constitution with old
Moravian forms and names, on the basis of which the colony was
established, August 13th, A.D. 1727, under the name of the United
Brotherhood.
§ 168.3. =The Development of the Brotherhood down to Zinzendorf’s
Death=, A.D. 1727-1760.--With great energy the new society
proceeded to found settlements in Germany, Holland, England,
Ireland, Denmark, Norway, and North America, as well as among
German residents in other lands. In A.D. 1734, Zinzendorf
submitted to examination at Tübingen as candidate for license,
and in A.D. 1737 received episcopal consecration from the Berlin
court preacher, Jablonsky, who was at the same time bishop of
the Moravian Brethren, which the same prelate had two years
previously granted to Dr. Nitschmann, another member of the
society. The efforts of the Brethren to spread their cause now
attracted attention. The Saxon government in A.D. 1736 sent to
Herrnhut a commission, of which Löscher was a member. But in
A.D. 1736, before it submitted its report, which on the whole
was favourable, Zinzendorf quitted the country, probably by the
elector’s command at the instigation of the Austrian government,
which objected to the harbouring of so many Bohemian and Moravian
emigrants. Like all those at this time persecuted on account
of religion he took refuge in Wetterau (§ 170, 2). With his
little family of pilgrims he settled at Ronneburg near Büdingen,
founded the prosperous churches of Marienborn and Herrnhaag, and
travelled extensively in Europe and America. This period of exile
was the period when the society was most successful in spreading
outwardly, but it was also the period when it suffered most from
troubles and dissensions within. It was bitterly attacked by
Lutheran theologians, and much more venomously by apostates from
its own fold. The Brethren at this time afforded only too much
ground for misunderstanding and reproach. To this period belongs
the famous fiction of a special covenant, the Pandora-box
of all other absurdities; the development of the count’s own
theological views and peculiar form of expression in his numerous
works; the composition and introduction of unsavoury spiritual
songs, with their silly conceits and many blasphemous and even
obscene pictures and analogies; the market-crier laudations of
their church, the not always pure methods of propaganda, the
introduction of a marriage discipline fitted to break down all
modest restraints; and, finally, the so-called _Niedlichkeiten_,
or boisterous festivals. Even the pietists opposed these
antinomian excesses. Tersteegen, too (§ 169, 1), whose mystic
tendency inclined him strongly toward pietist views, reproached
the Herrnhuters with frivolity. This polemic, disagreeable as it
was, exercised a wholesome influence upon the society. The count
became more guarded in his language, and more prudent in his
behaviour, while he set aside the most objectionable excrescences
of doctrine and practice that had begun to show themselves in the
community. At last, in A.D. 1747, the Saxon government repeated
the edict of banishment so far as the person of the founder
was concerned, and when, two years later, the society expressly
accepted the Augsburg Confession, it was formally recognised
in Saxony. In this same year, A.D. 1749, an English act of
parliament recognised it as a church with a pure episcopal
succession on equal terms with the Anglican episcopal
church.--Zinzendorf continued down to his death to direct the
affairs of this church, which hung upon him with childlike
affection, reflecting his personality, not only in its
excellences, but also in all its extravagances. He died in
A.D. 1760 in the full enjoyment of that blessedness which his
fervent love for the Saviour had brought him.
§ 168.4. =Zinzendorf’s Plan and Work.=--While Zinzendorf
received his first impulse from pietism, he soon perceived its
onesidedness and narrowness. He would have no conventicle, but
one organized community; no ideal invisible, but a real visible
church; no narrow methodism, but a rich, free administration of
the Christian spirit. He did not, in the first instance, aim at
the conversion of the world, nor even at the reformation of the
church, but at gathering and preserving those belonging to the
Saviour. He hoped, however, to erect a reservoir in which he
might collect every little brooklet of living water, from which
he might again water the whole world. And when he succeeded in
organizing a community, he was quite convinced that it was the
Philadelphia of the Apocalypse (iii. 7 ff.), that it introduced
“the Philadelphian period” of church history, of which all
prophets and apostles had prophesied. His plan had originally
reference to all Christendom, and he even took a step toward
realizing this universal idea. In order to build a bridge
between the Catholic church and his own community, he issued, in
A.D. 1727, a Christo-Catholic hymn-book and prayer-book, and had
even sketched out a letter to the pope to accompany a copy of his
book. He also attempted, by a letter to the patriarchs and then
to Elizabeth, empress of Russia, to interest the Greek church
in his scheme, dwelling upon the Greek extraction of the church
of the Moravian Brethren (§ 79, 2). His gathering of members,
however, was practically limited to the Protestant churches. All
confessions and sects afforded him contingents. He was himself
heartily attached to the distinctive doctrines of the Lutheran
church. But in a society whose distinctive characteristic it was
to be the gathering point for the pious of all nationalities,
doctrine and confession could not be the uniting bond. It could
be only a fellowship of love and not of creed, and the bond
a community of loving sentiment and loving deeds. The inmost
principle of Lutheranism, reconciliation by the blood of Christ,
was saved, indeed was made the characteristic and vital doctrine,
the one point of union between Moravians, Lutherans, and Reformed.
Over the three parties stood the count himself as _ordinarius_;
but this gave an external and not a confessional unity. The
subsequent acceptance of the Augsburg Confession, in A.D. 1749,
was a political act, so as to receive a civil status, and
had otherwise no influence. Instead then of the confession,
Zinzendorf made the =constitution= the bond of union. Its forms
were borrowed from the old Moravian church order, but dominated
and inspired by Zinzendorf’s own spirit. The old Moravian
constitution was episcopal and clerical, and proceeded from
the idea of the church; while the new constitution of Herrnhut
was essentially presbyterial, and proceeded from the idea of
the community, and that as a communion of saints. The Herrnhut
bishops were only titular bishops; they had no diocese, no
jurisdiction, no power of excommunication. All these prerogatives
belonged to the united eldership, in which the lay element
was distinctly predominant. Herrnhut had no pastors, but
only preaching brothers; the pastoral care devolved upon the
elders and their assistants. But beside these half-Lutheran and
pseudo-Moravian peculiarities, there was also a Donatist element
at the basis of the constitution. This lay in the fundamental
idea of absolutely true and pure children of God, and reached
full expression in the concluding of a =special covenant= with
the Saviour at London on Sept. 16th, A.D. 1741. Leonard Dober for
some years administered the office of an elder-general. But at
the London synod it was declared that he had not the requisite
gifts for that office. Dober now wished to resign. While in
confusion as to whom they could appoint, it flashed into the
minds of all to appoint the Saviour Himself. “Our feeling and
heart conviction was, that He made a special covenant with His
little flock, taking us as His peculiar treasure, watching over
us in a special way, personally interesting Himself in every
member of our community, and doing that for us perfectly which
our previous elders could only do imperfectly.”
§ 168.5. Among the =numerous extravagances= which Zinzendorf
countenanced for a time, the following may be mentioned.
1. The notion of the motherhood of the Holy Spirit. Zinzendorf
described the holy Trinity as “man, woman, and child.”
The Spirit is the mother in three respects: the eternal
generation of the Son of God, the conception of the Man
Jesus, and the second birth of believers.
2. The notion of the fatherhood of Jesus Christ (Isa. ix. 6).
Creation is ascribed solely to the Son, hence Christ is our
special, direct Father. The Father of our Lord Jesus Christ
is only, “in the language of men, our father-in-law or
grandfather.”
3. In reference to our Lord’s life on earth, Zinzendorf
delighted in using terms of contempt, in order to emphasize
the depths of His humiliation.
4. In like manner he uses reproachful terms in speaking of the
style of the sacred Scriptures, and the inspired community
prefers a living Bible.
5. The theory and practice of mystical marriage, according to
Ephesians v. 32. The community and each member of it are
spiritual brides of Christ, and the marriage relation and
begetting of children were set forth and spiritualized in
a singularly indelicate manner.
§ 168.6. =Zinzendorf’s greatness= lay in the fervency of his
love of the Saviour, and in the yearning desire to gather under
the shadow of the cross all who loved the Lord. His weakness
consisted not so much in his manifested extravagances, as in his
idea that he had been called to found a society. To the realizing
of this idea he gave his life, talents, heart, and means. The
advantages of rank and culture he also gave to this one task.
He was personally convinced of his Divine call, and as he
did not recognise the authority of the written word, but only
subjective impressions, it is easily seen how he would drift into
absurdities and inconsistencies. The end contemplated seemed to
him supremely important, so that to realize it he did not scruple
to depart from strict truthfulness.--Zinzendorf’s writings,
over one hundred in number, are characterized by originality,
brilliancy, and peculiar forms of expression. Of his 2,000 hymns,
mostly improvised for public services, 700 of the best were
revised and published by Knapp. Two are still found in most
collections, and are more or less reproduced in our English hymns,
“Jesus still lead on,” and “Jesus, Thy blood and righteousness.”
§ 168.7. =The Brotherhood under Spangenberg’s
Administration.=--For its present form the Brotherhood is indebted
to its wise and sensible bishop, =Aug. Gottl. Spangenberg=, who
died A.D. 1792. Born in 1704, he became personally acquainted
with Zinzendorf in 1727, after he had completed his studies at
Jena under Buddæus, and continued ever after on terms of close
intimacy with him and his community. Through the good offices
of G. A. Francke, son and successor of A. H. Francke, he was
called in Sept., 1732, to the office of an assistantship in the
theological faculty at Halle, and appointed school inspector of
the Orphanage; but very soon offence was taken at the brotherly
fellowship which he had, not only with the society of Herrnhut,
but also with other separatists. The misunderstanding that
thus arose led in April, 1733, to his deprivation under a royal
cabinet order, and his expulsion by military power from Halle.
He now formally joined the communion of the Brethren. The first
half of his signally blessed ministry of sixty years among the
Moravians was chiefly devoted to foreign mission work, both in
their colonies abroad and in their stations in heathen lands.
In Holland in 1734, in England and Denmark in 1735, he obtained
official permission for the founding of Moravian colonies in
Surinam, in the American state of Georgia, and in Santa Cruz,
the forming and management of which he himself undertook, besides
directing the mission work in these places. Returning from
America in 1762, he won, after Zinzendorf’s death, so complete
an ascendency in the church in every respect, that he may well
be regarded as its second founder. At the Synod of Marienborn,
in A.D. 1764, the constitution was revised and perfected.
Zinzendorf’s monarchical prerogative was surrendered to the
eldership, and Spangenberg prudently secured the withdrawal of
all excrescences and extravagances. But the central idea of a
special covenant was not touched, and Sept. 16th is still held as
a grand pentecost festival. In the fifth section of the statutes
of the United Brethren at Gnaden, 1819, it distinguishes itself
from all the churches as a “society of true children of God; as
a family of God, with Jesus as its head. ” In the fourth section
of the “Historical Account of the Constitution of the United
Brethren at Gnaden, 1823,” the society is described as “a company
of living members of the invisible body of Jesus Christ;” and in
its litany for Easter morning, it adds as a fourth particular to
the article of the creed: “I believe that our brothers _N. N._,
and our sisters _N. N._ have joined the church above, and have
entered into the joy of the Lord.” The synod of A.D. 1848
modified this article, and generally the society’s distinctive
views are not made so prominent. This liberal tendency had
dogmatic expression given to it in Spangenberg’s “_Idea Fidei
Fratrum_.” Only a few new settlements have been formed since
Zinzendorf’s death, and none of any importance; while the
hitherto flourishing Moravian settlements in Wetterau were
destroyed and their members banished, in A.D. 1750, by the
reigning prince, Count von Isenburg-Büdingen, on account of
their refusing to take the oath of allegiance.--After the first
attempt to establish societies among the German emigrants in
Livonia and Esthonia in A.D. 1729-1743 had ended in the expulsion
of the Herrnhuters, these regions proved in the second half of
the century a more fruitful field than any other. They secured
there a relation to the national church such as they never
attained unto elsewhere. They had in these parts formally
organized a church within the church, whose members, mostly
peasants, felt convinced that they had been called by the Lord’s
own voice as His chosen little flock, a proceeding which caused
infinite trouble, especially in Livonia, to the faithful pastors,
who perceived the deadly mischief that was being wrought, and
witnessed against them from God’s word. This protest was too
powerful and convincing to be disregarded, and now, not only
too late, but also in too half-hearted a way, Herrnhut began,
in A.D. 1857, to turn back, so as to save its Livonian institute
by inward regeneration from certain overthrow.
§ 168.8. =The doctrinal peculiarities of the Brotherhood= cannot
be quite correctly described as un-Lutheran, or anti-Lutheran.
Bengel smartly characterized them in a single phrase: “They
plucked up the stock of sound doctrine, stripped oft what was
most essential and vital, and retained the half of it,” which not
only then, but even still retains its truth and worth. Salvation
is regarded as proceeding purely from the Son, the God-Man,
so that the relation of the Father and of the Holy Spirit to
redemption is scarcely even nominal; and the redemption of the
God-Man again is viewed one-sidedly as consisting only in His
sufferings and death, while the other side, that is grounded on
His life and resurrection, is either carefully passed over, or
its fruit is represented as borrowed from the atoning death. Thus
not only justification, but sanctification is derived exclusively
from the death of Christ, and this, not so much as a forensic
substitutionary satisfaction, although that is not expressly
denied, but rather as a Divine love-sacrifice which awakens
an answering love in us. The whole of redemption is viewed as
issuing from Christ’s blood and wounds; and since from this mode
of viewing the subject God’s grace and love are made prominent
rather than His righteousness, we hear almost exclusively of
the gospel, and little or nothing of the law. All preaching
and teaching were avowedly directed to the awakening of pious
feelings of love to God, and thus tended to foster a kind of
religious sentimentalism.
§ 168.9. =The peculiarities of worship among the Brethren=
were also directed to the excitement of pious feeling; their
sensuously sweet sacred music, their church hymns, overcharged
with emotion, their richly developed liturgies, their restoration
of the _agape_ with tea, biscuit, and chorale-singing, the
fraternal kiss at communion, in their earlier days also washing
of the feet, etc. The daily watchword from the O.T. and doctrinal
texts from the N.T. were regarded as oracles, and were intended
to give a special impress to the religious feelings of the day.
As early as A.D. 1727 they had a hymn-book containing 972 hymns.
Most of these were compositions of their own, a true reflection
of their religious sentiments at that period. It also contained
Bohemian and Moravian hymns, translated by Mich. Weiss, and
also many old favourites of the evangelical church, often sadly
mutilated. By A.D. 1749 it had received twelve appendices and
four supplements. In these appendices, especially in the twelfth,
the one-sided tendency to give prominence to feeling was carried
to the most absurd lengths of caricature in the use of offensive
and silly terms of endearment as applied to the Saviour.
Zinzendorf admitted the defects of this production, and had
it suppressed in 1751, and in London prepared a new, expurgated
edition of the hymn-book. Under Spangenberg’s presidency
Christian Gregor issued, in A.D. 1778, a hymn-book, containing
542 from Zinzendorf’s book and 308 of his own pious rhymes. He
also published a chorale book in A.D. 1784. Among their sacred
poets Zinzendorf stands easily first. His only son, Christian
Renatus, who died A.D. 1752, left behind him a number of sacred
songs. Their hymns were usually set to the melodies of the Halle
pietists.
§ 168.10. In regard to the =Christian life=, the Brotherhood
withdrew from politics and society, adopted stereotyped forms of
speech and peculiar usages, even in their dress. They sought to
live undisturbed by controversy, in personal communion with the
Saviour. Their separatism as a covenanted people may be excused
in view of the unbelief prevailing in the Protestant church, but
it has not been overcome by the reawakening of spiritual life
in the Church. As to their =ecclesiastical constitution=, Christ
Himself, as the Chief Elder of the church, should have in it the
direct government. The leaders, founding upon Proverbs xvi. 33
and Acts i. 26, held that fit expression was given to this
principle by the use of the lot; but soon opposition to this
practice arose, and with its abandonment the “special covenant”
theory lost all its significance. The lot was used in election of
office-bearers, sending of missionaries, admission to membership,
etc. But in regard to marriage, it was used only by consent
of the candidates for marriage, and an adverse result was not
enforced. The administration of the affairs of the society
lay with the conference of the united elders. From time to
time general synods with legislative power were summoned. The
membership was divided into groups of married, widowed, bachelors,
maidens, and children, with special duties, separate residences,
and also special religious services in addition to those common
to all. The church officers were bishops, presbyters, deacons,
deaconesses, and acolytes.
§ 168.11. =Missions to the Heathen.=--Zinzendorf’s meeting with
a West Indian negro in Copenhagen awakened in him at an early
period the missionary zeal. He laid the matter before the church,
and in A.D. 1732 the first Herrnhut missionaries, Dober and
Nitschmann, went out to St. Thomas, and in the following year
missions were established in Greenland, North America, almost
all the West Indian islands, South America, among the Hottentots
at the Cape, the East Indies, among the Eskimos of Labrador,
etc. Their missionary enterprise forms the most brilliant and
attractive part of the history of the Moravians. Their procedure
was admirably suited to uncultured races, and only for such. In
the East Indies, therefore, they were unsuccessful. They were
never wanting in self-denying missionaries, who resigned all from
love to the Saviour. They were mostly pious, capable artisans,
who threw themselves with all their hearts into their new work,
and devoted themselves with affectionate tenderness to the
advancement of the bodily and spiritual interests of those
among whom they laboured. One of the noblest of them all was the
missionary patriarch Zeisberger, who died in A.D. 1808, after
toiling among the North American Indians for sixty-three years.
These missions were conducted at a surprisingly small outlay. The
Brethren also interested themselves in the conversion of the Jews.
In A.D. 1738 Dober wrought among the Jews of Amsterdam; and with
greater success in A.D. 1739, Lieberkühn, who also visited the
Jews in England and Bohemia, and was honoured by them with the
title of “rabbi.”[507]
§ 169. THE REFORMED CHURCH BEFORE THE “ILLUMINATION.”
The sharpness of the contest between Calvinism and Lutheranism was
moderated on both sides. The union efforts prosecuted during the first
decades of the century in Germany and Switzerland were always defeated
by Lutheran opposition. In the Dutch and German Reformed Churches, even
during the eighteenth century, Cocceianism was still in high repute.
After it had modified strict Calvinism, the opposition between Reformed
orthodoxy and Arminian heterodoxy became less pronounced, and more and
more Arminian tendencies found their way into Reformed theology. What
pietism and Moravianism were for the Lutheran church of Germany,
Methodism was, in a much greater measure, and with a more enduring
influence, for the episcopal church of England.
§ 169.1. =The German Reformed Church.=--The Brandenburg dynasty
made unwearied efforts to effect a =union= between the Lutheran
and Reformed churches throughout their territories (§ 154, 4).
Frederick I. (III.) instituted for this purpose in A.D. 1703 a
_collegium caritativum_, under the presidency of the Reformed
court preacher Ursinus (ranked as bishop, that he might officiate
at the royal coronation), in which also, on the side of the
Reformed, Jablonsky, formerly a Moravian bishop, and, on the part
of the Lutherans, the cathedral preacher Winkler of Magdeburg and
Lüttke, provost of Cologne-on-the-Spree, took part. Spener, who
wanted not a made union but one which he himself was making, gave
expression to his opinion, and soon passed over. Lüttke after a
few _sederunts_ withdrew, and when Winkler in A.D. 1703 published
a plan of union, _Arcanum regium_, which the Lutheran church
merely submitted for the approval of the Reformed king, such a
storm of opposition arose against the project, that it had to
be abandoned. In the following year the king took up the matter
again in another way. Jablonsky engaged in negotiations with
England for the introduction of the Anglican episcopal system
into Prussia, in order by it to build a bridge for the union with
Lutheranism. But even this plan failed, in consequence of the
succession of Frederick William I. in A.D. 1713, whose shrewd
sense strenuously opposed it.--The vacillating statements of
the _Confessio Sigismundi_ (§ 154, 3) regarding =predestination=
made it possible for the Brandenburg Reformed theologians to
understand it as teaching the doctrine of particular as well as
universal grace, and so to make it correspond with Brandenburg
Reformed orthodoxy. The rector of the Joachimsthal Gymnasium in
Berlin, Paul Volkmann, in A.D. 1712, interpreted it as teaching
universal grace, and so in his _Theses theologicæ_ he constructed
a system of theology, in which the divine foreknowledge of the
result, as the reconciling middle term between the particularism
and universalism of the call, was set forth in a manner
favourable to the latter. The controversy that was aroused over
this, in which even Jablonsky argued for the more liberal view,
while on the other side Barckhausen, Volkmann’s colleague, in
his _Amica Collatio Doctrinæ de Gratia, quam vera ref. confitetur
Ecclesia, cum Doctr. Volkmanni_, etc., came forward under the
name of _Pacificus Verinus_ as his most determined opponent, was
put a stop to in A.D. 1719 by an edict of Frederick William I.,
which enjoined silence on both parties, without any result having
been reached.--One of the noblest mystics that ever lived was
=Gerhard Tersteegen=, died A.D. 1769. He takes a high rank as a
sacred poet. Anxious souls made pilgrimages to him from far and
near for comfort, counsel, and refreshment. Though not exactly a
separatist, he had no strong attachment to the church.[508]--The
prayer-book of =Conrad Mel=, pastor and rector at Hersfeld in
Hesse, died A.D. 1733, continues to the present day a favourite
in pious families of the Reformed communion.
§ 169.2. =The Reformed Church in Switzerland.=--=The Helvetic
Confession=, with its strict doctrine of predestination and its
peculiar inspiration theory (§ 161, 3), had been indeed accepted,
in A.D. 1675, by all the Reformed cantons as the absolute
standard of doctrine in church and school; but this obligation
was soon felt to be oppressive to the conscience, and so
the Archbishop of Canterbury and the kings of England and
Prussia repeatedly interceded for its abrogation. In Geneva,
though vigorously opposed by a strictly orthodox minority, the
_Vénérable Compagnie_ succeeded, in A.D. 1706, with the rector
of the Academy at its head, J. A. Turretin, whose father had
been one of the principal authors of the formula, in modifying
the usual terms of subscription, _Sic sentio, sic profiteor,
sic docebo, et contrarium non docebo_, into _Sic docebo quoties
hoc argumentum tractandum suscipiam, contrarium non docebo,
nec ore, nec calamo, nec privatim, nec publice_; and afterwards,
in A.D. 1725, it was entirely set aside, and adhesion to the
Scriptures of the O. and N.T., and to the catechism of Calvin,
made the only obligation. More persistent on both sides was the
struggle in Lausanne; yet even there it gradually lost ground,
and by the middle of the century it had no longer any authority
in Switzerland.--The =union efforts= made by the Prussian dynasty
found zealous but unsuccessful advocates in the chancellor Pfaff
of Lutheran Württemberg (§ 167, 4), and in Reformed Switzerland
in J. A. Turretin of Geneva.
§ 169.3. =The Dutch Reformed Church.=--Toward the end of the
seventeenth century, in consequence of threats on the part
of the magistrates, the passionate violence of the =dispute
between= Voetians and Cocceians (§ 162, 5) was moderated; but
in the beginning of the eighteenth century the flames burst
forth anew, reaching a height in 1712, when a marble bust of
Cocceius was erected in a Leyden church. An obstinate Voetian,
Pastor Fruytier of Rotterdam, was grievously offended at this
proceeding, and published a controversial pamphlet full of the
most bitter reproaches and accusations against the Cocceians,
which, energetically replied to by the accused, was much more
hurtful than useful to the interests of the Voetians. At last
a favourable hearing was given to a word of peace which a highly
respected Voetian, the venerable preacher of eighty years of
age, _J. Mor. Mommers_, addressed to the parties engaged in
the controversy. He published in A.D. 1738, under the title of
“_Eubulus_,” a tract in which he proved that neither Cocceius
himself nor his most distinguished adherents had in any essential
point departed from the faith of the Reformed church, and that
from them, therefore, in spite of all differences that had
since arisen, the hand of fellowship should not be withheld.
In consequence of this, the magistrates of Gröningen first of
all decided, that forthwith, in filling up vacant pastorates, a
Cocceian and Voetian should be appointed alternately; a principle
which gradually became the practice throughout the whole country.
At the same time also care was now taken that in the theological
faculties both schools should have equal representation. But
meanwhile also new departures had been made in each of the two
parties. Among the Voetians, after the pattern formerly given
them by Teellinck (§ 162, 4), followed up by the Frisian preacher
Theod. Brakel, died A.D. 1669, and further developed by Jodocus
von Lodenstein of Utrecht, died A.D. 1677, mysticism had made
considerable progress; and the Cocceians, in the person of
Hermann Witsius, drew more closely toward the pietism of the
Voetians and the Lutherans. The most distinguished representative
of this conciliatory party was F. A. Lampe of Detmold, afterwards
professor in Utrecht, previously and subsequently pastor in
Bremen, in high repute in his church as a hymn-writer, but best
known by his commentary on John.--These conciliatory measures
were frustrated by the publication, in A.D. 1740, of a work by
=Schortinghuis= of Gröningen, which pronounced the Scriptures
unintelligible and useless to the natural man, but made fruitful
to the regenerate and elect by the immediate enlightenment of the
Holy Spirit, evidenced by deep groanings and convulsive writhings.
It was condemned by all the orthodox. The author now confined
himself to his pastorate, where he was richly blessed. He died in
A.D. 1750. His notions spread like an epidemic, till stamped out
by the united efforts of the civil and ecclesiastical authorities
in A.D. 1752.
§ 169.4. =Methodism.=--=In the episcopal church of England= the
living power of the gospel had evaporated into the formalism of
scholastic learning and a mechanical ritualism. A reaction was
set on foot by =John Wesley=, born A.D. 1703, a young man of
deep religious earnestness and fervent zeal for the salvation
of souls. During his course at Oxford, in A.D. 1729, along with
some friends, including his brother Charles, he founded a society
to promote pious living.[509] Those thus leagued together were
scornfully called Methodists. From A.D. 1732, =George Whitefield=,
born in A.D. 1714, a youth burning with zeal for his own and his
fellow men’s salvation, wrought enthusiastically along with them.
In A.D. 1735 the brothers Wesley went to America to labour for
the conversion of the Indians in Georgia. On board ship they met
Nitschmann, and in Savannah Spangenberg, who exercised a powerful
influence over them. John Wesley accepted a pastorate in Savannah,
but encountered so many hindrances, that he decided to return to
England in A.D. 1738. Whitefield had just sailed for America, but
returned that same year. Meanwhile Wesley visited Marienborn and
Herrnhut, and so became personally acquainted with Zinzendorf. He
did not feel thoroughly satisfied, and so declined to join the
society. On his return he began, along with Whitefield, the great
work of his life. In many cities they founded religious societies,
preached daily to immense crowds in Anglican churches, and when
the churches were refused, in the open air, often to 20,000
or even 30,000 hearers. They sought to arouse careless sinners
by all the terrors of the law and the horrors of hell, and by
a thorough repentance to bring about immediate conversion. An
immense number of hardened sinners, mostly of the lower orders,
were thus awakened and brought to repentance amid shrieks and
convulsions. Whitefield, who divided his attentions between
England and America, delivered in thirty-four years 18,000
sermons; Wesley, who survived his younger companion by twenty-one
years, dying in A.D. 1791, and was wont to say the world was
his parish, delivered still more. Their association with the
Moravians had been broken off in A.D. 1740. To the latter, not
only was the Methodists’ style of preaching objectionable, but
also their doctrine of “Christian perfection,” according to
which the true, regenerate Christian can and must reach a perfect
holiness of life, not indeed free from temptation and error,
but from all sins of weakness and sinful lusts. Wesley in turn
accused the Herrnhuters of a dangerous tendency toward the errors
of the quietists and antinomians. Zinzendorf came himself to
London to remove the misunderstanding, but did not succeed.
The great Methodist leaders were themselves separated from one
another in A.D. 1741. Whitefield’s doctrine of grace and election
was Calvinistic; Wesley’s Arminian.--From A.D. 1748 the =Countess
of Huntingdon= attached herself to the Methodists, and secured an
entrance for their preaching into aristocratic circles. With all
her humility and self-sacrifice she remained aristocrat enough
to insist on being head and organizer. Seeing she could not
play this _rôle_ with Wesley, she attached herself closely to
Whitefield. He became her domestic chaplain, and with other
clergymen accompanied her on her travels. Wherever she went she
posed as a “queen of the Methodists,” and was allowed to preach
and carry on pastoral work. She built sixty-six chapels, and in
A.D. 1768 founded a seminary for training preachers at Trevecca in
Wales, under the oversight of the able and gentle John Fletcher,
reserving supreme control to herself. After Whitefield’s death,
in A.D. 1770, the opposition between the Calvinistic followers
of Whitefield and the Arminian Wesleyans burst out in a much more
violent form. Fletcher and his likeminded fellow labourers were
charged with teaching the horrible heresy of the universality of
grace, and were on that account discharged by the countess from
the seminary of Trevecca. They now joined Wesley, around whom the
great majority of the Methodists had gathered.
§ 169.5. The Methodists did not wish to separate from
the episcopal church, but to work as a leaven within it.
Whitefield was able to maintain this connexion by the aid of
his aristocratic countess and her relationship with the higher
clergy; but Wesley, spurning such aid, and trusting to his great
powers of organization, felt driven more and more to set up
an independent society. When the churches were closed against
him and his fellow workers, and preaching in the open air was
forbidden, he built chapels for himself.[510] The first was
opened in Bristol, in A.D. 1739. When his ordained associates
were too few for the work, he obtained the assistance of lay
preachers. He founded two kinds of religious societies: The
_united societies_ embraced all, the _band societies_ only the
tried and proved of his followers. Then he divided the _united
societies_ again into _classes_ of from ten to twenty persons
each, and the _class-leaders_ were required to give accurate
accounts of the spiritual condition and progress of those under
their care. Each member of the _united_ as well as the _band
societies_ held a _society ticket_, which had to be renewed
quarterly. The outward affairs of the societies were managed by
_stewards_, who also took care of the poor. A number of local
societies constituted a _circuit_ with a superintendent and
several itinerant preachers.[511] Wesley superintended all
the departments of oversight, administration, and arrangement,
supported from A.D. 1744 by an annual conference. Daily preaching
and devotional exercises in the chapels, weekly class-meetings,
monthly watchnights, quarterly fasts and lovefeasts, an
annual service for the renewing of the covenant, and a great
multiplication of prayer-meetings, gave a special character
to Methodistic piety. Charles Wesley composed hymns for their
services. They carefully avoided collision with the services
of the state church. The American Methodists, who had been up
to this time supplied by Wesley with itinerant missionaries, in
A.D. 1784, after the War of Independence, gave vigorous expression
to their wish for a more independent ecclesiastical constitution,
which led Wesley, in opposition to all right order, to ordain for
them by his own hand several preachers, and to appoint, in the
person of Thomas Coke, a superintendent, who assumed in America
the title of bishop. Coke became the founder of the Methodist
Episcopal Church of America, which soon outstripped all other
denominations in its zeal for the conversion of sinners, and
in consequent success. The breach with the mother church was
completed by the adoption of a creed in which the Thirty-nine
Articles were reduced to twenty-five. At the last conference
presided over by Wesley, A.D. 1790, it was announced that they
had in Britain 119 circuits, 313 preachers, and in the United
States 97 circuits and 198 preachers. After Wesley’s death,
in A.D. 1791, his autocratic supremacy devolved, in accordance
with the Methodist “Magna Charta,” the _Deed of Declaration_
of A.D. 1784, upon a fixed conference of 100 members, but its
hierarchical organization has been the cause of many subsequent
splits and divisions.[512]
§ 169.6. =Theological Literature=--=Clericus=, of Amsterdam, died
A.D. 1736, an Arminian divine, distinguished himself in biblical
criticism, hermeneutics, exegesis, and church history. =J. J.
Wettstein= was in A.D. 1730 deposed for heresy, and died in
A.D. 1754 as professor at the Remonstrant seminary at Amsterdam.
His critical edition of the N.T. of A.D. 1751 had a great
reputation. =Schultens= of Leyden, died A.D. 1750, introduced a
new era for O.T. philology by the comparative study of related
dialects, especially Arabic. He wrote commentaries on Job and
Proverbs. Of the Cocceian exegetes we mention, =Lampe= of Bremen,
died A.D. 1729, “Com. on John,” three vols., etc., and =J. Marck=
of Leyden, died A.D. 1731, “Com. on Minor Prophets.” In biblical
antiquity, =Reland= of Utrecht, died A.D. 1718, wrote “_Palæstina
ex vett. monum. Illustr. Antiquitt. ss._;” in ecclesiastical
antiquity, Bingham, died A.D. 1723, “Origines Ecclest.; or,
Antiquities of the Christian Church,” ten vols., 1724, a
masterpiece not yet superseded. Of English apologists who
wrote against the deists, =Leland=, died A.D. 1766, “Advantage
and Necessity of the Christian Revelation;” =Stackhouse=, died
A.D. 1752, “History of the Bible.” Of dogmatists, =Stapfer= of
Bern, died A.D. 1775, and =Wyttenbach= of Marburg, died A.D. 1779,
who followed the Wolffian method. Among church historians,
=J. A. Turretin= of Geneva, died A.D. 1757, and =Herm. Venema= of
Franeker, died A.D. 1787.--The most celebrated of the writers of
sacred songs in the English language was the Congregationalist
preacher =Isaac Watts=, died A.D. 1748, whose “Hymns and Spiritual
Songs,” which first appeared in A.D. 1707, still hold their
place in the hymnbooks of all denominations, and have largely
contributed to overthrow the Reformed prejudice against using
any other than biblical psalms in the public service of praise.
§ 170. NEW SECTS AND FANATICS.
The pietism of the eighteenth century, like the Reformation of the
sixteenth, was followed by the appearance of all sorts of fanatics and
extremists. The converted were collected into little companies, which,
as _ecclesiolæ in ecclesia_, preserved the living flame amid prevailing
darkness, and out of these arose separatists who spoke of the church as
Babylon, regarded its ordinances impure, and its preaching a mere jingle
of words. They obtained their spiritual nourishment from the mystical
and theosophical writings of Böhme, Gichtel, Guyon, Poiret, etc. Their
chief centre was Wetterau, where, in the house of Count Casimir von
Berleburg, all persecuted pietists, separatists, fanatics, and sectaries
found refuge. The count chose from them his court officials and personal
servants, although he himself belonged to the national Reformed church.
There was scarcely a district in Protestant Germany, Switzerland, and
the Netherlands where there were not groups of such separatists; some
mere harmless enthusiasts, others circulated pestiferous and immoral
doctrines. Quite apart from pietism Swedenborgianism made its appearance,
claiming to have a new revelation. Of the older sects the Baptists and
the Quakers sent off new swarms, and even predestinationism gave rise to
a form of mysticism allied to pantheism.
§ 170.1. =Fanatics and Separatists in Germany.=--Juliana =von
Asseburg=, a young lady highly esteemed in Magdeburg for her
piety, declared that from her seventh year she had visions and
revelations, especially about the millennium. She found a zealous
supporter in Dr. J. W. Petersen, superintendent of Lüneburg.
After his marriage with Eleonore von Merlau, who had similar
revelations, he proclaimed by word and writing a fantastic
chiliasm and the restitution of all things. He was deposed in
A.D. 1692, and died in A.D. 1727.[513] =Henry Horche=, professor
of theology at Herborn, was the originator of a similar movement
in the Reformed church. He founded several Philadelphian societies
(§ 163, 9) in Hesse, and composed a “mystical and prophetical
bible,” the so called “Marburg Bible,” A.D. 1712. Of other
fanatical preachers of that period one of the most prominent
was =Hochmann=, a student of law expelled from Halle for his
extravagances, a man of ability and eloquence, and highly
esteemed by Tersteegen. Driven from place to place, he at last
found refuge at Berleburg, and died there in A.D. 1721. In
Württemberg the pious court chaplain, =Hedinger=, of Stuttgart,
died A.D. 1703, was the father of pietism and separatism. The
most famous of his followers were =Gruber= and =Rock=, who,
driven from Württemberg, settled with other separatists at
Wetterau, renouncing the use of the sacraments and public worship.
Of those gathered together in the court of Count Casimir, the
most eminent were =Dr. Carl=, his physician, the French mystic
=Marsay=, and =J. H. Haug=, who had been expelled from Strassburg,
a proficient in the oriental languages. They issued a great
number of mystical works, chief of all the Berleburg Bible,
in eight vols., 1726-1742, of which Haug was the principal
author. Its exposition proceeded in accordance with the threefold
sense; it vehemently contended against the church doctrine of
justification, against the confessional writings, the clerical
order, the dead church, etc. It showed occasionally profound
insight, and made brilliant remarks, but contained also
many trivialities and absurdities. The mysticism which is
prominent in this work lacks originality, and is compiled from
the mystico-theosophical writings of all ages from Origen down
to Madame Guyon.
§ 170.2. =The Inspired Societies in Wetterau.=--After the
unfortunate issue of the Camisard War in A.D. 1705 (§ 153, 4)
the chief of the prophets of the Cevennes fled to England. They
were at first well received, but were afterwards excommunicated
and cast into prison. In A.D. 1711 several of them went to
the Netherlands, and thence made their way into Germany. Three
brothers, students at Halle, named Pott, adopted their notion
of the gift of inspiration, and introduced it into Wetterau in
A.D. 1714. =Gruber= and =Rock=, the leaders of the separatists
there, were at first opposed to the doctrine, but were overpowered
by the Spirit, and soon became its most enthusiastic champions.
Prayer-meetings were organized, immense lovefeasts were held, and
by itinerant brethren an _ecclesia ambulatoria_ was set on foot,
by which spiritual nourishment was brought to believers scattered
over the land and the children of the prophets were gathered from
all countries. The “utterances” given forth in ecstasy were calls
to repentance, to prayer, to the imitation of Christ, revelations
of the divine will in matters affecting the communities,
proclamations of the near approach of the Divine judgment upon a
depraved church and world, but without fanatical-sensual chiliasm.
Also, except in the contempt of the sacraments, they held by the
essentials of the church doctrine. In A.D. 1715 a split occurred
between the _true_ and the _false_ among the inspired. The true
maintained a formal constitution, and in A.D. 1716 excluded all
who would not submit to that discipline. By A.D. 1719 only Rock
claimed the gift of inspiration, and did so till his death in
A.D. 1749. Gruber died in A.D. 1728, and with him a pillar of
the society fell. Rock was the only remaining prop. A new era of
their history begins with their intercourse with the Herrnhuters.
Zinzendorf sent them a deputation in A.D. 1730, and paid them
a visit in person at Berleberg [Berleburg]. Rock’s profound
Christian personality made a deep impression upon him. But he
was offended at their contempt of the sacraments, and at the
convulsive character of their utterances. This, however, did not
hinder him from expressing his reverence for their able leader,
who in return visited Zinzendorf at Herrnhut in A.D. 1732. In the
interests of his own society Zinzendorf shrank from identifying
himself with those of Wetterau. Rock denounced him as a new
Babylon-botcher, and he retaliated by calling Rock a false
prophet. When the Herrnhuters were driven from Wetterau in
A.D. 1750 (§ 168, 3, 7), the inspired communities entered on
their inheritance. But with Rock’s death in A.D. 1749 prophecy had
ceased among them. They sank more and more into insignificance,
until the revival of spiritual life, A.D. 1816-1821, brought them
into prominence again. Government interference drove most of them
to America.
§ 170.3. Quite a peculiar importance belongs to =J. C. Dippel=,
theologian, physician, alchemist, discoverer of Prussian blue and
_oleum dippelii_, at first an orthodox opponent of pietism, then,
through Gottfr. Arnold’s influence, an adherent of the pietists,
and ultimately of the separatists. In A.D. 1697, under the name
of _Christianus Democritus_, he began to write in a scoffing
tone of all orthodox Christianity, with a strange blending
of mysticism and rationalism, but without any trace profound
Christian experience. Persecuted on every hand, exiled or
imprisoned, he went hither and thither through Germany, Holland,
Denmark, and Sweden, and found a refuge at last at Berleberg
[Berleburg] in A.D. 1729. Here he came in contact with the
inspired, who did everything in their power to win him over; but
he declared that he would rather give himself to the devil than
to this Spirit of God. He was long intimate with Zinzendorf, but
afterwards poured out upon him the bitterest abuse. He died in
the count’s castle at Berleberg [Berleburg] in A.D. 1734.[514]
§ 170.4. =Separatists of Immoral Tendency.=--One of the worst was
the =Buttlar sect=, founded by Eva von Buttlar, a native of Hesse,
who had married a French refugee, lived gaily for ten years at
the court of Eisenach, and then joined the pietists and became
a rigid separatist. Separated from her husband, she associated
with the licentiate Winter, and founded a Philadelphian society
at Allendorf in A.D. 1702, where the foulest immoralities were
practised. Eva herself was reverenced as the door of paradise,
the new Jerusalem, the mother of all, Sophia come from heaven,
the new Eve, and the incarnation of the Spirit. Winter was
the incarnation of the Father, and their son Appenfeller the
incarnation of the Son. They pronounced marriage sinful; sensual
lusts must be slain in spiritual communion, then even carnal
association is holy. Eva lived with all the men of the sect
in the most shameless adultery. So did also the other women
of the community. Expelled from Allendorf after a stay of six
weeks, they sought unsuccessfully to gain a footing in various
places. At Cologne they went over to the Catholic church.
Their immoralities reached their climax at Lüde near Pyrmont.
Winter was sentenced to death in A.D. 1706, but was let off
with scourging. Eva escaped the same punishment by flight,
and continued her evil practices unchecked for another year.
She afterwards returned to Altona, where with her followers
leading outwardly an honourable life, she attached herself
to the Lutheran church, and died, honoured and esteemed, in
A.D. 1717.--In a similar way arose in A.D. 1739 the =Bordelum
sect=, founded at Bordelum by the licentiates Borsenius and Bär;
and the =Brüggeler sect=, at Brüggeler in Canton Bern, where
in A.D. 1748 the brothers Kohler gave themselves out as the
two witnesses (Rev. xi.). Of a like nature too was the =sect
of Zionites= at Ronsdorf in the Duchy of Berg. Elias Eller, a
manufacturer at Elberfeld, excited by mystical writings, married
in A.D. 1725 a rich old widow, but soon found more pleasure in a
handsome young lady, Anna von Buchel, who by a nervous sympathetic
infection was driven into prophetic ecstasy. She proclaimed the
speedy arrival of the millennium; Eller identified her with the
mother of the man-child (Rev. xii. 1). When his wife had pined
away through jealousy and neglect and died, he married Buchel.
The first child she bore him was a girl, and the second, a boy,
soon died. When a strong opposition arose in Elberfeld against
the sect, he, along with his followers, founded Ronsdorf, as
a New Zion, in A.D. 1737. The colony obtained civil rights,
and Eller was made burgomaster. Anna having died in A.D. 1744,
Eller gave his colony a new mother, and practised every manner
of deceit and tyranny. After the infatuation had lasted a long
time, the eyes of the Reformed pastor Schleiermacher, grandfather
of the famous theologian, were at last opened. By flight to the
Netherlands he escaped the fate of another revolter, whom Eller
persuaded the authorities at Düsseldorf to put to death as a
sorcerer. Every complaint against himself was quashed by Eller’s
bribery of the officials. After his death in A.D. 1750 his
stepson continued this Zion game for a long time.
§ 170.5. =Swedenborgianism.=--=Emanuel von Swedenborg= was born
at Stockholm, in A.D. 1688, son of the strict Lutheran bishop
of West Gothland, Jasper Swedberg. He was appointed assessor
of the School of Mines at Stockholm, and soon showed himself to
be a man of encyclopædic information and of speculative ability.
After long examination of the secrets of nature, in a condition
of magnetic ecstasy, in which he thought that he had intercourse
with spirits, sometimes in heaven, sometimes in hell, he became
convinced, in A.D. 1743, that he was called by these revelations
to restore corrupted Christianity by founding a church of the
New Jerusalem as the finally perfected church. He published the
apocalyptic revelations as a new gospel: “_Arcana Cœlestia in
Scr. s. Detecta_,” in seven vols.; “_Vera Chr. Rel._,” two vols.
After his death, in A.D. 1772, his “_Vera Christiana Religio_”
was translated into Swedish, but his views never got much hold
in his native country. They spread more widely in England, where
John Clowes, rector of St. John’s Church, Manchester, translated
his writings, and himself wrote largely in their exposition and
commendation. Separate congregations with their own ministers,
and forms of worship, sprang up through England in A.D. 1788,
and soon there were as many as fifty throughout the country.
From England the New Church spread to America.--In Germany it
was specially throughout Württemberg that it found adherents.
There, in A.D. 1765, Oetinger (§ 171, 9) recognised Swedenborg’s
revelations, and introduced many elements from them into
his theosophical system.--Swedenborg’s religious system was
speculative mysticism, with a physical basis and rationalizing
results. The aim of religion with him is the opening of an
intimate correspondence between the spiritual world and man,
and giving an insight into the mystery of the connexion between
the two. The Bible (excluding the apostolic epistles, as merely
expository), pre-eminently the Apocalypse, is recognised by him
as God’s word; to be studied, however, not in its literal but
in its spiritual or inner sense. Of the church dogmas there is
not one which he did not either set aside or rationalistically
explain away. He denounces in the strongest terms the church
doctrine of the Trinity. God is with him only one Person,
who manifests Himself in three different forms: the Father is
the principle of the manifesting God; the Son, the manifested
form; the Spirit, the manifested activity. The purpose of the
manifestation of Christ is the uniting of the human and Divine;
redemption is nothing more than the combating and overcoming of
the evil spirits. But angels and devils are spirits of dead men
glorified and damned. He did not believe in a resurrection of the
flesh, but maintained that the spiritual form of the body endures
after death. The second coming of Christ will not be personal
and visible, but spiritual through a revelation of the spiritual
sense of Holy Scripture, and is realized by the founding of the
church of the New Jerusalem.[515]
§ 170.6. =New Baptist Sects= (§ 163, 3).--In Wetterau about
A.D. 1708 an anabaptist sect arose called =Dippers=, because they
did not recognise infant baptism and insisted upon the complete
immersion of adult believers. They appeared in Pennsylvania
in A.D. 1719, and founded settlements in other states. Of the
“perfect” they required absolute separation from all worldly
practices and enjoyments and a simple, apostolic style of dress.
To baptism and the Lord’s supper they added washing the feet
and the fraternal kiss and anointing the sick. The =Seventh-day
Baptists= observe the seventh instead of the first day of the
week, and enjoin on the “perfect” celibacy and the community of
goods. New sects from England continued to spread over America.
Of these were the =Seed= or =Sucker Baptists=, who identified the
non-elect with the seed of the serpent, and on account of their
doctrine of predestination regarded all instruction and care of
children useless. A similar predestinarian exaggeration is seen
in the =Hard-shell Baptists=, who denounce all home and foreign
missions as running counter to the Divine sovereignty. Many,
sometimes called Campbellites from their founder, reject any
party name, claiming to be simply =Christians=, and acknowledge
only so much in Scripture as is expressly declared to be “the
word of the Lord.” The =Six-Principles-Baptists= limit their
creed to the six articles of Hebrews vi. 1, 2. The brothers
Haldane, about the middle of the eighteenth century, founded
in Scotland the Baptist sect of =Haldanites=, which has with
great energy applied itself to the practical cultivation of
the Christian life.--Continuation, §§ 208, 1; 211, 3.
§ 170.7. =New Quaker Sects.=--The =Jumpers=, who sprang up among
the Methodists of Cornwall about A.D. 1760, are in principle
closely allied to the early Quakers (§ 163, 4). They leaped
and danced after the style of David before the ark and uttered
inarticulate howls. They settled in America, where they have
adherents still.--The =Shakers= originated from the prophets of
the Cevennes who fled to England in A.D. 1705. They converted
a Quaker family at Bolton in Lancashire named Wardley, and the
community soon grew. In A.D. 1758 Anna Lee, wife of a farrier
Stanley, joined the society, and, as the apocalyptic bride,
inaugurated the millennium. She taught that the root of all sin
was the relationship of the sexes. Maltreated by the mob, she
emigrated to America, along with thirty companions, in A.D. 1774.
Though persecuted here also, the sect increased and formed in the
State of New York the _Millennial Church_ or _United Society of
Believers_. Anna died in A.D. 1784; but her prophets declared
that she had merely laid aside the earthly garb and assumed the
heavenly, so that only then the veneration of “Mother Anna” came
into force. As Christ is the Son of the eternal Wisdom, Anna is
the daughter; as Christ is the second Adam, she is the second
Eve, and spiritual mother of believers as Christ is their father.
Celibacy, community of goods, common labour (chiefly gardening),
as a pleasure, not a burden, common domestic life as brothers
and sisters, and constant intercourse with the spirit world, are
the main points in her doctrine. By the addition of voluntary
proselytes and the adoption of poor helpless children the sect
has grown, till now it numbers 3,000 or 4,000 souls in eighteen
villages. The capital is New Lebanon in the State of New York.
The name Shakers was given them from the quivering motion of
body in their solemn dances. In their services they march about
singing “On to heaven we will be going,” “March heavenward, yea,
victorious band,” etc. Like the Quakers (§ 163, 6) they have
neither a ministry nor sacraments, and their whole manner of life
is modelled on that of the Quakers. The purity of the relation of
brothers and sisters has always been free from suspicion.[516]
§ 170.8. =Predestinarian-Mystical Sects.=--The =Hebræans=,
founded by Verschoor, a licentiate of the Reformed church of
Holland deposed under suspicion of Spinozist views, in the end
of the seventeenth century, hold it indispensably necessary
to read the word of God in the original. They were fatalists,
and maintained that the elect could commit no sin. True faith
consisted in believing this doctrine of their own sinlessness.
About the same time sprang up the =Hattemists=, followers of
_Pontiaan von Hattem_, a preacher deposed for heresy, with
fatalistic views like the Hebræans, but with a strong vein
of pantheistic mysticism. True piety consisted in the believer
resting in God in a purely passive manner, and letting God alone
care for him. The two sects united under the name of Hattemists,
and continued to exist in Holland and Zealand till about A.D. 1760.
§ 171. RELIGION, THEOLOGY, AND LITERATURE OF
THE “ILLUMINATION.”[517]
In England during the first half of the century deism had still
several active propagandists, and throughout the whole century efforts,
not altogether unsuccessful, were made to spread Unitarian views.
From the middle of the century, when the English deistic unbelief had
died out, the “Illumination,” under the name of rationalism, found an
entrance into Germany. Arminian pelagianism, recommended by brilliant
scholarship, English deism, spread by translations and refutations,
and French naturalism, introduced by a great and much honoured king,
were the outward factors in securing this result. The freemason lodges,
carried into Germany from England, a relic of mediævalism, aided the
movement by their endeavour after a universal religion of a moral
and practical kind. The inward factors were the Wolffian philosophy
(§ 167, 3), the popular philosophy, and the pietism, with its
step-father separatism (§ 170), which immediately prepared the soil
for the sowing of rationalism. Orthodoxy, too, with its formulas that
had been outlived, contributed to the same end. German rationalism is
essentially distinguished from Deism and Naturalism by not breaking
completely with the Bible and the church, but eviscerating both by its
theories of accommodation and by its exaggerated representations of
the limitations of the age in which the books of Scripture were written
and the doctrines of Christianity were formulated. It thus treats the
Bible as an important document, and the church as a useful religious
institution. Over against rationalism arose supernaturalism, appealing
directly to revelation. It was a dilution of the old church faith by
the addition of more or less of the water of rationalism. Its reaction
was therefore weak and vacillating. The temporary success of the
vulgar rationalism lay, not in its own inherent strength, but in the
correspondence that existed between it and the prevailing spirit of the
age. The philosophy, however, as well as the national literature of the
Germans, now began a victorious struggle against these tendencies, and
though itself often indifferent and even hostile to Christianity, it
recognised in Christ a school-master. Pestalozzi performed a similar
service to popular education by his attempts to reform effete systems.
§ 171.1. =Deism, Arianism, and Unitarianism in the English Church.=
1. =The Deists= (§ 164, 3). With Locke’s philosophy (§ 164, 2)
deism entered on a new stage of its development. It is
henceforth vindicated on the ground of its reasonableness.
The most notable deists of this age were =John Toland=,
an Irishman, first Catholic, then Arminian, died A.D. 1722,
author of “Christianity not Mysterious,” “Nazarenus, or
Jewish, Gentile, and Mohametan Christianity,” etc. The Earl
of =Shaftesbury=, died A.D. 1713, wrote “Characteristics of
Men,” etc. =Anthony Collins=, J.P. in Essex, died A.D. 1729,
author of “Priestcraft in Perfection,” “Discourse of
Freethinking,” etc. =Thomas Woolston=, fellow of Cambridge,
died in prison in A.D. 1733, author of “Discourse on the
Miracles of the Saviour.” =Mandeville= of Dort, physician in
London, died A.D. 1733, wrote “Free Thoughts on Religion.”
=Matthew Tindal=, professor of law in Oxford, died A.D. 1733,
wrote “Christianity as Old as the Creation.” =Thomas
Morgan=, nonconformist minister, deposed as an Arian, then
a physician, died A.D. 1743, wrote “The Moral Philosopher.”
=Thomas Chubb=, glover and tallow-chandler in Salisbury, died
A.D. 1747, author of popular compilations, “The True Gospel
of Jesus Christ.” Viscount =Bolingbroke=, statesman, charged
with high treason and pardoned, died A.D. 1751, writings
entitled, “Philosophical Works.”--Along with the deists
as an opponent of positive Christianity may be classed the
famous historian and sceptic =David Hume=, librarian in
Edinburgh, died A.D. 1776, author of “Inquiry concerning
the Human Understanding,” “Natural History of Religion,”
“Dialogues concerning Natural Religion,” etc.[518]--Deism
never made way among the people, and no attempt was made
to form a sect. Among the numerous opponents of deism these
are chief: Samuel Clarke, died A.D. 1729; Thomas Sherlock,
Bishop of London, died A.D. 1761; Chandler, Bishop of Durham,
died A.D. 1750; Leland, Presbyterian minister in Dublin,
died A.D. 1766, wrote “View of Principal Deistic Writers,”
three vols., 1754; Warburton, Bishop of Gloucester,
died A.D. 1779; Nath. Lardner, dissenting minister,
died A.D. 1768, wrote “Credibility of the Gospel History,”
seventeen vols., 1727-1757. With these may be ranked
the famous pulpit orator of the Reformed church of France,
Saurin, died A.D. 1730, author of _Discours hist., crit.,
theol., sur les Evénements les plus remarkables du V. et N.T._
2. =The So-called Arians.= In the beginning of the century
several distinguished theologians of the Anglican church
sought to give currency to an Arian doctrine of the
Trinity. Most conspicuous was =Wm. Whiston=, a distinguished
mathematician, physicist, and astronomer of the school of
Sir Isaac Newton, and his successor in the mathematical
chair at Cambridge. Deprived of this office in A.D. 1708
for spreading his heterodox views, he issued in A.D. 1711 a
five-volume work, “Primitive Christianity Revived,” in which
he justified his Arian doctrine of the Trinity as primitive
and as taught by the ante-Nicene Fathers, and insisted upon
augmenting the N.T. canon by the addition of twenty-nine
books of the apostolic and other Fathers, including the
apostolic “Constitutions” and “Recognitions” which he
maintained were genuine works of Clement. Subsequently
he adopted Baptist views, and lost himself in fantastic
chiliastic speculations. He died A.D. 1752. More sensible
and moderate was =Samuel Clarke=, also distinguished
as a mathematician of Newton’s school and as a classical
philologist. As an opponent of deism in sermons and
treatises he had gained a high reputation as a theologian,
when his work, “The Scripture Doctrine of the Trinity,”
in A.D. 1712, led to his being accused of Arianism by
convocation; but by conciliatory explanations he succeeded
in retaining his office till his death in A.D. 1729. But the
excitement caused by the publication of his work continued
through several decades, and was everywhere the cause of
division. His ablest apologist was Dan. Whitby, and his
keenest opponent Dan. Waterland.
3. =The Later Unitarians.= The anti-trinitarian movement
entered on a new stage in A.D. 1770. After Archdeacon
Blackburne of London, in A.D. 1766, had started the idea,
at first anonymously, in his “Confessional,” he joined
in A.D. 1772 with other freethinkers, among whom was his
son-in-law =Theophilus Lindsey=, in presenting to Parliament
a petition with 250 signatures, asking to have the clergy of
the Anglican church freed from the obligation of subscribing
to the Thirty-nine Articles and the Liturgy, and to have the
requirement limited to assent to the Scriptures. This prayer
was rejected in the Lower House by 217 votes against 71.
Lindsey now resigned his clerical office, announced his
withdrawal from the Anglican church, founded and presided
over a Unitarian congregation in London from A.D. 1774, and
published a large number of controversial Unitarian tracts.
He died in A.D. 1808. The celebrated chemist and physicist
=Joseph Priestley=, A.D. 1733-1806, who had been a
dissenting minister in Birmingham from A.D. 1780, joined
the Unitarian movement in 1782, giving it a new impetus by
his high scientific reputation. He wrote the “History of
the Corruptions of Christianity,” and the “History of Early
Opinions about Jesus Christ,” denying that there is any
biblical foundation for the orthodox doctrine of the Trinity,
and seeking to show that it had been forced upon the church
against her will from the Platonic philosophy. These and
a whole series of other controversial writings occasioned
great excitement, not only among theologians, but also
among the English people of all ranks. At last the mob rose
against him in A.D. 1791. His house and all his scientific
collections and apparatus were burnt. He narrowly escaped
with his life, and soon after settled in America, where he
wrote a church history in four vols. Of his many English
opponents the most eminent was Bishop Sam. Horsley, a
distinguished mathematician and commentator on the works
of Sir Isaac Newton.
§ 171.2. =Freemasons.=--The mediæval institution of freemasons
(§ 104, 13) won much favour in England, especially after the Great
Fire of London in A.D. 1666. The first step toward the formation
of freemason lodges of the modern type was taken about the end of
the sixteenth century, when men of distinction in other callings
sought admission as honorary members. After the rebuilding
of London and the completion of St. Paul’s in A.D. 1710, most
of the lodges became defunct, and the four that continued to
exist united in A.D. 1717 into one grand lodge in London, which,
renouncing material masonry, assumed the task of rearing the
temple of humanity. In A.D. 1721 the Rev. Mr. Anderson prepared
a constitution for this reconstruction of a trade society into
a universal brotherhood, according to which all “free masons”
faithfully observing the moral law as well as all the claims of
humanity and patriotism, came under obligation to profess the
religion common to all good men, transcending all confessional
differences, without any individual being thereby hindered from
holding his own particular views. Although, in imitation of the
older institution, all members by reason of their close connexion
were bound to observe the strictest secrecy in regard to their
masonic signs, rites of initiation and promotion, and forms
of greeting, it is not properly a secret society, since the
constitution was published in A.D. 1723, and members publicly
acknowledge that they are such.--From London the new institute
spread over all England and the colonies. Lodges were founded
in Paris in A.D. 1725, in Hamburg in A.D. 1737, in Berlin in
A.D. 1740. This last was raised in A.D. 1744 into a grand lodge,
with Frederick II. as grand master. But soon troubles and disputes
arose, which broke up the order about the end of the century.
Rosicrucians (§ 160, 1) and alchemists, pretending to hold the
secrets of occult science, Jesuits (§ 210, 1), with Catholic
hierarchical tendencies, and “Illuminati” (§ 165, 13), with
rationalistic and infidel tendencies, as well as adventurers of
every sort, had made the lodges centres of quackery, juggling,
and plots.[519]
§ 171.3. =The German “Illumination.”=
1. =Its Precursors.= One of the first of these, following in
the footsteps of Kuntzen and Dippel, was =J. Chr. Edelmann=
of Weissenfels, who died A.D. 1767. He began in A.D. 1735
the publication of an immense series of writings in a rough
but powerful style, filled with bitter scorn for positive
Christianity. He went from one sect to another, but never
found what he sought. In A.D. 1741 he accepted Zinzendorf’s
invitation, and stayed with the count for a long time. He
next joined the Berleberg [Berleburg] separatists, because
they despised the sacraments, and contributed to their
Bible commentary, though Haug had to alter much of his work
before it could be used. This and his contempt for prayer
brought the connexion between him and the society to an
end. He then led a vagabond life up and down through Germany.
Edelmann regarded himself as a helper of providence, and at
least a second Luther. Christianity he pronounced the most
irrational of all religions; church history a conglomeration
of immorality, lies, hypocrisy, and fanaticism; prophets
and apostles, bedlamites; and even Christ by no means
a perfect pattern and teacher. The world needs only one
redemption--redemption from Christianity. Providence,
virtue, and immortality are the only elements in religion.
No less than 166 separate treatises came from his facile
pen.--=Laurence Schmidt= of Wertheim in Baden, a scholar
of Wolff, was author of the notorious “Wertheimer Bible
Version,” which rendered Scripture language into the dialect
of the eighteenth century, and eviscerated it of all positive
doctrines of revelation. This book was confiscated by the
authorities, and its author cast into prison.
§ 171.4.
2. =The Age of Frederick the Great.= Hostility to all positive
Christianity spread from England and France into Germany.
The writings of the English deists were translated and
refuted, but mostly in so weak a style that the effect
was the opposite of that intended. Whilst English deism
with its air of thoroughness made way among the learned,
the poison of frivolous French naturalism committed
its ravages among the higher circles. The great king of
Prussia =Frederick II.=, A.D. 1740-1786, surrounded by
French freethinkers Voltaire, D’Argens, La Metrie, etc.,
wished every man in his kingdom to be saved after his own
fashion. In this he was quite earnest, although his personal
animosity to all ecclesiastical and pietistic religion made
him sometimes act harshly and unjustly. Thus, when Francke
of Halle (son of the famous A. H. Francke) had exhorted
his theological students to avoid the theatre, the king,
designating him “hypocrite” Francke, ordered him to attend
the theatre himself and have his attendance attested by the
manager. His bitter hatred of all “priests” was directed
mainly against their actual or supposed intolerance,
hypocrisy, and priestly arrogance; and where he met with
undoubted integrity, as in Gellert and Seb. Bach, or simple,
earnest piety, as in General Ziethen, he was not slow in
paying to it the merited tribute of hearty acknowledgment
and respect. His own religion was a philosophical
deism, from which he could thoroughly refute Holbach’s
materialistic “_Système de la Nature_.”--Under the name
of the German popular philosophy (Moses Mendelssohn,
Garve, Eberhard, Platner, Steinbart, etc.), which started
from the Wolffian philosophy, emptied of its Christian
contents, there arose a weak, vapoury, and self-satisfied
philosophizing on the part of the common human reason.
Basedow was the reformer of pedagogy in the sense of the
“Illumination,” after the style of Rousseau, and crying
up his wares in the market made a great noise for a while,
although Herder declared that he would not trust calves, far
less men, to be educated by such a pedagogue. The “Universal
German Library” of the Berlin publisher Nicolai, 106 vols.
A.D. 1765-1792, was a literary Inquisition tribunal against
all faith in revelation or the church. The “Illumination”
in the domain of theology took the name of rationalism.
Pietistic Halle cast its skin, and along with Berlin took
front rank among the promoters of the “Illumination.” In the
other universities champions of the new views soon appeared,
and rationalistic pastors spread over all Germany, to preach
only of moral improvement, or to teach from the pulpit about
the laws of health, agriculture, gardening, natural science,
etc. The old liturgies were mutilated, hymn-books revised
after the barbarous tastes of the age, and songs of mere
moral tendency substituted for those that spoke of Christ’s
atonement. An ecclesiastical councillor, Lang of Regensburg,
dispensed the communion with the words: “Eat this bread! The
Spirit of devotion rest on you with His rich blessing! Drink
a little wine! The virtue lies not in this wine; it lies in
you, in the divine doctrine, and in God.” The Berlin provost,
W. Alb. Teller, declared publicly: “The Jews ought on
account of their faith in God, virtue, and immortality, to
be regarded as genuine Christians.” C. Fr. Bahrdt, after he
had been deposed for immorality from various clerical and
academical offices, and was cast off by the theologians,
sought to amuse the people with his wit as a taphouse-keeper
in Halle, and died there of an infamous disease in A.D. 1792.
§ 171.5.
3. =The Wöllner Reaction.=--In vain did the Prussian government,
after the death of Frederick the Great, under Frederick
William II., A.D. 1786-1797, endeavour to restore the church
to the enjoyment of its old exclusive rights by punishing
every departure from its doctrines, and insisting that
preaching should be in accordance with the Confession.
At the instigation of the Rosicrucians (§ 160, 1) and of
the minister Von Wöllner, a country pastor ennobled by the
king, the =Religious Edict of 1788= was issued, followed
by a statement of severe penalties; then by a _Schema
Examinationis Candidatorum ss. Ministerii rite Instituendi_;
and in A.D. 1791, by a commission for examination under the
Berlin chief consistory and all the provincial consistories,
with full powers, not only over candidates, but also over
all settled pastors. But notwithstanding all the energy
with which he sought to carry out his edict, the minister
could accomplish nothing in the face of public opinion,
which favoured the resistance of the chief consistory.
Only one deposition, that of Schulz of Gielsdorf, near
Berlin, was effected, in A.D. 1792. Frederick William III.,
A.D. 1797-1840, dismissed Wöllner in A.D. 1798, and set
aside the edict as only fostering hypocrisy and sham piety.
§ 171.6. =The Transition Theology.=--Four men, who endeavoured to
maintain their own belief in revelation, did more than all others
to prepare the way for rationalism: Ernesti of Leipzig, in the
department of N.T. exegesis; Michaelis of Göttingen, in O.T.
exegesis; Semler of Halle, in biblical and historical criticism;
and Töllner of Frankfort-on-the-Oder, in dogmatics. =J. A.
Ernesti=, A.D. 1707-1781, from A.D. 1734 rector of St. Thomas’
School, from A.D. 1742 professor at Leipzig, colleague to Chr. A.
Crusius (§ 167, 3), was specially eminent as a classical scholar,
and maintained his reputation in that department, even after
becoming professor of theology in A.D. 1758. His _Institutio
Interpretis N.T._, of A.D. 1761, made it an axiom of exegesis
that the exposition of Scripture should be conducted precisely
as that of any other book. But even in the domain of classical
literature there must be an understanding of the author as a
whole, and the expositor must have appreciation of the writer’s
spirit, as well as have acquaintance with his language and the
customs of his age. And just from Ernesti’s want of this, his
treatise on biblical hermeneutics is rationalistic, and he became
the father of rationalistic exegesis, though himself intending
to hold firmly by the doctrine of inspiration and the creed of
the church.--What Ernesti did for the N.T., =J. D. Michaelis=,
A.D. 1717-1791, son of the pious and orthodox Chr. Bened.
Michaelis, did for the O.T. He was from A.D. 1750 professor
at Göttingen, a man of varied learning and wide influence. He
publicly acknowledged that he had never experienced anything of
the _testimonium Sp. s. internum_, and rested his proofs of the
divinity of the Scriptures wholly on external evidences, _e.g._
miracles, prophecy, authenticity, etc., a spider’s web easily
blown to pieces by the enemy. No one has ever excelled him in the
art of foisting his own notions on the sacred authors and making
them utter his favourite ideas. A conspicuous instance of this is
his “Laws of Moses,” in six vols.--In a far greater measure than
either Ernesti or Michaelis did =J. Sol. Semler=, A.D. 1725-1791,
pupil of Baumgarten, and from A.D. 1751 professor at Halle, help
on the cause of rationalism. He had grown up under the influence
of Halle pietism in the profession of a customary Christianity,
which he called his private religion, which contributed to his
life a basis of genuine personal piety. But with a rare subtlety
of reasoning as a man of science, endowed with rich scholarship,
and without any wish to sever himself from Christianity, he
undermined almost all the supports of the theology of the church.
This he did by casting doubt on the genuineness of the biblical
writings, by setting up a theory of inspiration and accommodation
which admitted the presence of error, misunderstanding, and pious
fraud in the Scriptures, by a style of exposition which put aside
everything unattractive in the N.T. as “remnants of Judaism,”
by a critical treatment of the history of the church and its
doctrines, which represented the doctrines of the church as the
result of blundering, misconception, and violence, etc. He was a
voluminous author, leaving behind him no less than 171 writings.
He sowed the wind, and reaped the whirlwind, by which he himself
was driven along. He firmly withstood the installation of Bahrdt
at Halle, opposed Basedow’s endeavours, applied himself eagerly
to refute the “Wolfenbüttel Fragments” of Reimarus, edited by
Lessing in 1774-1778, which represented Christianity as founded
upon pure deceit and fraud, and defended even the edict of
Wöllner. But the current was not thus to be stemmed, and Semler
died broken-hearted at the sight of the heavy crop from his own
sowing.--J. Gr. Töllner, A.D. 1724-1774, from A.D. 1756 professor
at Frankfort-on-the-Oder, was in point of learning and influence
by no means equal to those now named; yet he deserves a place
alongside of them, as one who opened the door to rationalism in
the department of dogmatics. He himself held fast to the belief
in revelation, miracles, and prophecy, but he also regarded it
as proved that God saves men by the revelation of nature; the
revelation of Scripture is only a more sure and perfect means. He
also examined the divine inspiration of Scripture, and found that
the language and thoughts were the authors’ own, and that God
was concerned in it in a manner that could not be more precisely
determined. Finally, in treating of the active obedience of
Christ, he gives such a representation of it as sets aside the
doctrine of the church.
§ 171.7. =The Rationalistic Theology.=--From the school of
these men, especially from that of Semler, went forth crowds
of rationalists, who for seventy years held almost all the
professorships and pastorates of Protestant Germany. At their
head stands =Bahrdt=, A.D. 1741-1792, writer at first of orthodox
handbooks, who, sinking deeper and deeper through vanity, want of
character, and immorality, and following in the steps of Edelmann,
wrote 102 vols., mostly of a scurrilous and blasphemous character.
The rationalists, however, were generally of a nobler sort:
=Griesbach= of Jena, A.D. 1745-1812, distinguished as textual
critic of the N.T.; =Teller= of Berlin, published a lexicon
to the N.T., which substituted “leading another life” for
regeneration, “improvement” for sanctification, etc.; Koppe of
Göttingen, and Rosenmüller of Leipzig wrote _scholia_ on N.T.,
and Schulze and Bauer on the O.T. Of far greater value were the
performances of =J. G. Eichhorn= of Göttingen, A.D. 1752-1827,
and =Bertholdt= of Erlangen, A.D. 1774-1822, who wrote
introductions to the O.T. and commentaries. In the department
of church history, =H. P. C. Henke= of Helmstädt and the
talented statesman, =Von Spittler= of Württemberg, wrote
from the rationalistic standpoint. Steinbart and Eberhardt
[Eberhard] wrote more in the style of the popular philosophy.
The subtle-minded =J. H. Tieftrunk=, A.D. 1760-1837, professor
of philosophy at Halle, introduced into theology the Kantian
philosophy with its strict categories. Jerusalem, Zollikofer,
and others did much to spread rationalistic views by their
preaching.[520]
§ 171.8. =Supernaturalism.=--Abandoning the old orthodoxy without
surrendering to rationalism, the supernaturalists sought to
maintain their hold of the Scripture revelation. Many of them
did so in a very uncertain way: their revelation had scarcely
anything to reveal which was not already given by reason. Others,
however, eagerly sought to preserve all essentially vital truths.
Morus of Leipzig, Ernesti’s ablest student, Less of Göttingen,
Döderlein of Jena, Seiler of Erlangen, and Nösselt of Halle,
were all representatives of this school. More powerful opponents
of rationalism appeared in =Storr= of Tübingen, A.D. 1746-1805,
who could break a lance even with the philosopher of Königsberg,
=Knapp= of Halle, and =Reinhard= of Dresden, the most famous
preacher of his age. Reinhard’s sermon on the Reformation
festival of A.D. 1800 created such enthusiasm in favour of the
Lutheran doctrine of justification, that government issued an
edict calling the attention of all pastors to it as a model. The
most distinguished apologists were the mathematician =Euler= of
St. Petersburg, the physiologist, botanist, geologist, and poet
=Haller= of Zürich and the theologians =Lilienthal= of Königsberg
and =Kleuker= of Kiel. The most zealous defender of the faith was
the much abused =Goeze= of Hamburg, who fought for the palladium
of Lutheran orthodoxy against his rationalistic colleagues,
against the theatre, against Barth, Basedow, and such-like,
against the “Wolfenbüttel Fragments,” against the “Sorrows of
Werther,” etc. His polemic may have been over-violent, and he
certainly was not a match for such an antagonist as Lessing; he
was, however, by no means an obscurantist, ignoramus, fanatic,
or hypocrite, but a man in solemn earnest in all he did. In
the field of church history important services were rendered
by =Schröckh= of Wittenberg and =Walch= of Göttingen, laborious
investigators and compilers, =Stäudlin= and =Planck= of Göttingen,
and =Münter= of Copenhagen.--Among English theologians of this
tendency toward the end of the century, the most famous was
=Paley= of Cambridge, A.D. 1743-1805, whose “Principles of Moral
and Political Philosophy” and “Evidences of Christianity” were
obligatory text-books in the university. His “_Horæ Paulinæ_”
prove the credibility of the Acts of the Apostles from the
epistles, and his “Natural Theology” demonstrates God’s being
and attributes from nature.
§ 171.9. =Mysticism and Theosophy.=--=Oetinger= of Württemburg
[Württemberg], the _Magus_ of the South, A.D. 1702-1782,
takes rank by himself. He was a pupil of Bengel (§ 167, 3),
well grounded in Scripture, but also an admirer of Böhme and
sympathising with the spiritualistic visions of Swedenborg. But
amid all, with his biblical realism and his theosophy, which held
corporeity to be the end of the ways of God, he was firmly rooted
in the doctrines of Lutheran orthodoxy.--The best mystic of the
Reformed church was =J. Ph. Dutoit= of Lausanne, A.D. 1721-1793,
an enthusiastic admirer of Madame Guyon; he added to her quietist
mysticism certain theosophical speculations on the original
nature of Adam, the creation of woman, the fall, the necessity
of the incarnation apart from the fall, the basing of the
sinlessness of Christ upon the immaculate conception of his
mother, etc. He gathered about him during his lifetime a large
number of pious adherents, but after his death his theories were
soon forgotten.
§ 171.10. =The German Philosophy.=--As Locke accomplished the
descent from Bacon to deism and materialism, so =Wolff= effected
the transition from Leibnitz to the popular philosophy. =Kant=,
A.D. 1724-1804, saved philosophy from the baldness and self-
sufficiency of Wolffianism, and pointed it to its proper element
in the spiritual domain. Kant’s own philosophy stood wholly
outside of Christianity, on the same platform with rationalistic
theology. But by deeper digging in the soil it unearthed many a
precious nugget, of whose existence the vulgar rationalism had
never dreamed, without any intention of becoming a schoolmaster
to lead to Christ. Kant showed the impossibility of a knowledge
of the supernatural by means of pure reason, but admitted
the ideas of God, freedom, and immortality as postulates of
the practical reason and as constituting the principle of all
religion, whose only content is the moral law. Christianity and
the Bible are to remain the basis of popular instruction, but
are to be expounded only in an ethical sense. While in sympathy
with rationalism, he admits its baldness and self-sufficiency.
His keen criticism of the pure reason, the profound knowledge of
human weakness and corruption shown in his doctrine of radical
evil, his categorical imperative of the moral law, were well
fitted to awaken in more earnest minds a deep distrust of
themselves, a modest estimate of the boasted excellences of
their age, and a feeling that Christianity could alone meet their
necessities.--=F. H. Jacobi=, A.D. 1743-1819, “with the heart a
Christian, with the understanding a pagan,” as he characterized
himself, took religion out of the region of mere reason into the
depths of the universal feelings of the soul, and so awakened a
positive aspiration.--=J. G. Fichte=, A.D. 1762-1814, transformed
Kantianism, to which he at first adhered, into an idealistic
science of knowledge, in which only the _ego_ that posits itself
appears as real, and the _non-ego_, only by its being posited by
the _ego_; and thus the world and nature are only a reflex of the
mind. But when, accused of atheism in A.D. 1798, he was expelled
from his position in Jena, he changed his views, rushing from the
verge of atheism into a mysticism approaching to Christianity. In
his “Guide to a Blessed Life,” A.D. 1806, he delivered religion
from being a mere servant to morals, and sought the blessedness
of life in the loving surrender of one’s whole being to the
universal Spirit, the full expression of which he found in
John’s Gospel. Pauline Christianity, on the other hand, with its
doctrine of sin and redemption, seemed to him a deterioration,
and Christ Himself only the most complete representative of
the incarnation of God repeated in all ages and in every pious
man.--In the closing years of the century, =Schelling= brought
forward his theory of _identity_, which was one of the most
powerful instruments in introducing a new era.[521]
§ 171.11. =The German National Literature.=--When the powerful
strain of the evangelical church hymn had well-nigh expired in
the feeble lispings of =Gellert’s= sacred poetry, =Klopstock=
began to chant the praises of the Messiah in a higher strain. But
the pathos of his odes met with no response, and his “Messiah,”
of which the first three cantos appeared in A.D. 1748, though
received with unexampled enthusiasm, could do nothing to exorcise
the spirit of unbelief, and was more praised than read. The
theological standpoint of =Lessing=, A.D. 1729-1781, is set forth
in one of his letters to his brother. “I despise the orthodox
even more than you do, only I despise the clergy of the new style
even more. What is the new-fashioned theology of those shallow
pates compared with orthodoxy but as dung-water compared with
dirty water? On this point we are at one, that our old religious
system is false; but I cannot say with you that it is a patchwork
of bunglers and half philosophers. I know nothing in the world
upon which human ingenuity has been more subtly exercised than
upon it. That religious system which is now offered in place of
the old is a patchwork of bunglers and half philosophers.” He is
offended at men hanging the concerns of eternity on the spider’s
thread of external evidences, and so he was delighted to hurl
the Wolfenbüttel “Fragments” at the heads of theologians and the
Hamburg pastor Goeze, whom he loaded with contumely and scorn.
Thoroughly characteristic too is the saying in the “_Duplik_:”
That if God holding in his right hand all truth, and in his
left hand the search after truth, subject to error through all
eternity, were to offer him his choice, he would humbly say,
“Father the left, for pure truth is indeed for thee alone.” In
his “_Nathan_” only Judaism and Mohammedanism are represented by
truly noble and ideal characters, while the chief representative
of Christianity is a gloomy zealot, and the conclusion of the
parable is that all three rings are counterfeit. In another
work he views revelation as one of the stages in “The Education
of the Human Race,” which loses its significance as soon as
its purpose is served. In familiar conversation with Jacobi
he frankly declared his acceptance of the doctrine of Spinoza:
Ἓν καὶ πᾶν.[522] =Wieland=, A.D. 1733-1813, soon turned
from his youthful zeal for ecclesiastical orthodoxy to the
popular philosophy of the cultured man of the world. =Herder=,
A.D. 1744-1803, with his enthusiastic appreciation of the
poetical contents of the Bible, especially of the Old Testament,
was not slow to point out the insipidity of its ordinary
treatment. =Goethe=, A.D. 1749-1832, profoundly hated the
vandalism of neology, delighted in “The Confessions of a
Fair Soul” (§ 172, 2), had in earlier years sympathy with the
Herrnhuters, but in the full intellectual vigour of his manhood
thought he had no need of Christianity, which offended him by
its demand for renunciation of self and the world. =Schiller=,
A.D. 1759-1805, enthusiastically admiring everything noble,
beautiful and good, misunderstood Christianity, and introduced
into the hearts of the German people Kantian rationalism clothed
in rich poetic garb. His lament on the downfall of the gods of
Greece, even if not so intended by the poet himself, told not so
much against orthodox Christianity as against poverty-stricken
deism, which banished the God of Christianity from the world
and set in his place the dead forces of nature. And if indeed
he really thought that for religion’s sake he should confess
to no religion, he has certainly in many profoundly Christian
utterances given unconscious testimony to Christianity.--The
Jacobi philosophy of feeling found poetic interpreters in =Jean
Paul Richter=, A.D. 1763-1825, and =Hebel=, died A.D. 1826, in
whom we find the same combination of pious sentiment which is
drawn toward Christianity and the sceptical understanding which
allied itself to the revolt against the common orthodoxy. =J. H.
Voss=, a rough, powerful Dutch peasant, who in his “_Luise_”
sketched the ideal of a brave rationalistic country parson, and,
with the inexorable rigour of an inquisitor, hunted down the
night birds of ignorance and oppression. But alongside of those
children of the world stood two genuine sons of Luther, =Matthias
Claudius=, A.D. 1740-1815, and =J. G. Hamann=, A.D. 1730-1788,
the “Magus of the North” and the Elijah of his age, of whom Jean
Paul said that his commas were planetary systems and his periods
solar systems, to whom the philosopher Hemsterhuis erected in
the garden of Princess Gallitzin a tablet with the inscription:
“To the Jews a stumbling- block, to the Greeks foolishness.” With
them may also be named two noble sons of the Reformed church, the
physiognomist =Lavater=, A.D. 1741- 1801, and the devout dreamer,
=Jung-Stilling=, A.D. 1740-1817. The famous historian, =John von
Müller=, A.D. 1752- 1809, well deserves mention here, who more
than any previous historian made Christ the centre and summit
of all times; and also the no less famous statesman =C. F. von
Moser=, the most German of the Germans of this century, who,
with noble Christian heroism, in numerous political and patriotic
tracts, battled against the prevailing social and political vices
of his age.
§ 171.12. The great Swiss educationist =Pestalozzi=,
A.D. 1746-1827, assumed toward the Bible, the church, and
Christianity an attitude similar to that of the philosopher of
Königsberg. The conviction of the necessity and wholesomeness
of a biblical foundation in all popular education was rooted
in his heart, and he clearly saw the shallowness of the popular
philosophy, whether presented under the eccentric naturalism of
Rousseau or the bald utilitarianism of Basedow. His whole life
issued from the very sanctuary of true Christianity, as seen in
his self-sacrificing efforts to save the lost, to strengthen the
weak, and to preach to the poor by word and deed the gospel of
the all-merciful God whose will it is that all should be saved.
He began his career as an educationist in A.D. 1775 by receiving
into his house deserted beggar children, and carried on his
experiments in his educational institutions at Burgdorf till
A.D. 1798, and at Isserten till A.D. 1804. His writings, which
circulated far and wide, gained for his methods recognition and
high approval.[523]
§ 172. CHURCH LIFE IN THE PERIOD OF THE “ILLUMINATION.”
The ancient faith of the church had even during this age of prevailing
unbelief its seven thousand who refused to bow the knee to Baal. The
German people were at heart firmly grounded in the Christianity of the
Bible and the church, and where the pulpit failed had their spiritual
wants supplied by the devout writings of earlier days. Where the modern
vandalism of the “Illumination” had mutilated and watered down the books
of praise, the old church songs lingered in the memories of fathers and
mothers, and were sung with ardour at family worship. For many men of
culture, who were more exposed to danger, the Society of the Brethren
afforded a welcome refuge. But even among the most accomplished of the
nation many stood firmly in the old paths. Lavater and Stilling, Haller
and Euler, the two Mosers, father and son, John von Müller and his
brother J. G. Müller, are not by any means the only, but merely the best
known, of such true sons of the church. In Württemberg and Berg, where
religious life was most vigorous, religious sects were formed with new
theological views which made a deep impression on the character and
habits of the people. Also toward the end of the century an awakened
zeal in home and foreign missions was the prelude of the glorious
enterprises of our own days.
§ 172.1. =The Hymnbook and Church Music.=--Klopstock, followed
by Cramer and Schlegel, introduced the vandalism of altering
the old church hymns to suit modern tastes and views. But a
few, like Herder and Schubert, raised their voices against such
philistinism. The “Illuminist” alterations were unutterably
prosaic, and the old pathos and poetry of the sixteenth and
seventeenth century hymns were ruthlessly sacrificed. The
spiritual songs of the noble and pious Gellert are by far
the best productions of this period.--=Church Music= too now
reached its lowest ebb. The old chorales were altered into modern
forms. A multitude of new, unpopular melodies, difficult of
comprehension, with a bald school tone, were introduced; the last
trace of the old rhythm disappeared, and a weary monotony began
to prevail, in which all force and freshness were lost. As a
substitute, secular preludes, interludes, and concluding pieces
were brought in. The people often entered the churches during the
playing of operatic overtures, and were dismissed amid the noise
of a march or waltz. The church ceased to be the patron and
promoter of music; the theatre and concert room took its place.
The opera style thoroughly depraved the oratorio. For festival
occasions, cantatas in a purely secular, effeminate style were
composed. A true ecclesiastical music no longer existed, so that
even Winterfeld closed his history of church music with Seb. Bach.
It was, if possible, still worse with the mass music of the Roman
Catholic church. Palestrina’s earnest and capable school was
completely lost sight of under the sprightly and frivolous opera
style, and with the organ still more mischief was done than in
the Protestant church.
§ 172.2. =Religious Characters.=--The pastor of Ban de la Roche
in Steinthal of Alsace, “the saint of the Protestant church,”
=J. Fr. Oberlin=, A.D. 1740-1826, deserves a high place of honour.
During a sixty years’ pastorate “Father Oberlin” raised his
poverty-stricken flock to a position of industrial prosperity,
and changed the barren Steinthal into a patriarchal paradise. The
same may be said of a noble Christian woman of that age, =Sus.
Cath. von Klettenberg=, Lavater’s “Cordata,” Goethe’s “Fair Soul,”
whose genuine confessions are wrought into “_Wilhelm Meister_,”
the centre of a beautiful Christian circle in Frankfort, where
the young Goethe received religious impressions that were never
wholly forgotten.--Community of religious yearnings brought
together pious Protestants and pious Catholics. The Princess von
Gallitzin, her chaplain Overberg, and minister Von Fürstenberg
formed a noble group of earnest Catholics, for whom the ardent
Lutheran Hamann entertained the warmest affection.
§ 172.3. =Religious Sects.=--In Württemberg there arose out of
the pietism of Spener, with a dash of the theosophy of Oetinger,
the party of the =Michelians=, so named from a layman, Michael
Hahn, whose writings show profound insight into the truths of the
gospel. He taught the doctrine of a double fall, in consequence
of which he depreciated though he did not forbid marriage; of a
restitution of all things; while he subordinated justification
to sanctification, the Christ for us to the Christ in us, etc.
As a reaction against this extreme arose the =Pregizerians=, who
laid exclusive stress upon baptism and justification, declared
assurance and heart-breaking penitence unnecessary, and imparted
to their services as much brightness and joy as possible. Both
sects spread over Württemberg and still exist, but in their
common opposition to the destructive tendencies of modern times,
they have drawn more closely together. In their chiliasm and
restitutionism they are thoroughly agreed.--The =Collenbuschians=
in Canton Berg propounded a dogmatic system in which Christ
empties Himself of His divine attributes, and assumes with sinful
flesh the tendencies to sin that had to be fought against, the
sufferings of Christ are attributed to the wrath of Satan, and
His redemption consists in His overcoming Satan’s wrath for us
and imparting His Spirit to enable us to do works of holiness.
The most distinguished adherents of Collenbusch were the two
Hasencamps and the talented Bremen pastor Menken.
§ 172.4. =The Rationalistic “Illumination” outside of
Germany.=--In Amsterdam, in A.D. 1791, a =Restored Lutheran
Church= or =Old Light= was organized on the occasion of the
intrusion of a rationalistic pastor. It now numbers eight Dutch
congregations with 14,000 adherents and 11 pastors. Under the
name of =Christo Sacrum= some members of the French Reformed
church at Delft, in A.D. 1797, founded a denomination which
received adherents of all confessions, holding by the divinity
of Christ and His atonement, and treating all confessional
differences as non-essential and to be held only as private
opinions. In their public services they adopted mainly the forms
of the Anglican episcopal church. Though successful at first, it
soon became rent by the incongruity of its elements. In England
the dissenters and Methodists provided a healthy protest against
the lukewarmness of the State church. In =William Cowper=,
A.D. 1731-1800, we have a noble and brilliant poet of high
lyrical genius, whose life was blasted by the terrorism of a
predestinarian doctrine of despair and the religious melancholy
produced by Methodistic agonies of soul.
§ 172.5. =Missionary Societies and Missionary Enterprise.=--In
order to arouse interest in the idea of a grand union for
practical Christian purposes, the Augsburg elder, John Urlsperger,
travelled through England, Holland, and Germany. The Basel
Society for Spreading Christian Truth, founded in A.D. 1780, was
the firstfruits of his zeal, and branches were soon established
throughout Switzerland and Southern Germany. The Basel Bible
Society was founded in A.D. 1804, and the Missionary Society
in A.D. 1816.--At a meeting of English Baptist preachers at
Kettering, in Northamptonshire, in A.D. 1792, William Carey was
the means of starting the Baptist Missionary Society. Carey was
himself its first missionary. He sailed for India in A.D. 1793,
and founded the Serampore Mission in Bengal. The work of the
society has now spread over the East and West Indies, the Malay
Archipelago, South Africa, and South America. A popular preacher,
Melville Horne, who had been himself in India, published “Letters
on Missions,” in A.D. 1794, in which he earnestly counselled a
union of all true Christians for the conversion of the heathen.
In response to this appeal a large number of Christians of all
denominations, mostly Independents, founded in A.D. 1795, the
London Missionary Society, and in the following year the first
missionary ship, _The Duff_, under Captain Wilson, sailed for the
South Seas with twenty-nine missionaries on board. Its operations
now extend to both Indies, South Africa, and North America;
but its chief hold is in the South Seas. In the Society Islands
the missionaries wrought for sixteen years without any apparent
result, till at last King Pomare II. of Tahiti sought baptism as
the first-fruits of their labours. A victory gained over a pagan
reactionary party in A.D. 1815 secured complete ascendency to
Christianity. The example of the London Society was followed by
the founding of two Scottish societies in A.D. 1796 and a Dutch
society in A.D. 1797, and the Church Missionary Society in London
in A.D. 1799, for the English possessions in Africa, Asia, etc.
The Danish Lutheran (§ 167, 9) and the Herrnhut (§ 168, 11)
societies still continued their operations.[524]--Continuation,
§§ 183, 184.
FOURTH SECTION.
CHURCH HISTORY OF THE NINETEENTH CENTURY.
I. General and Introductory.
§ 173. SURVEY OF RELIGIOUS MOVEMENTS OF NINETEENTH CENTURY.
A reaction had set in against the atheistic spirit of the French
Revolution, and the victories of A.D. 1813, 1815, encouraged the
pious in their Christian confidence. Princes and people were full of
gratitude to God. Alexander I., Francis I., and Frederick William III.,
representing the three principal churches, in A.D. 1815, after the
political situation had been determined by the Congress of Vienna,
formed “the Holy Alliance,” a league of brotherly love for mutual
defence and maintenance of peace, to which all the European princes
adhered with the exception of the pope, the sultan, and the king of
England. Through Metternich’s arts it ultimately degenerated into an
instrument of repression and tyranny.--Incongruous elements were present
everywhere. The restoration of the papacy in A.D. 1814 had given a new
impulse to ultramontanism, as did also the Reformation centenary of
A.D. 1817 to Protestantism; while supernaturalism and pietism prevailing
in the Lutheran and Reformed churches led to renewed attempts at union.
Old sects were strengthened and new sects arose. Pantheism, materialism,
and atheism, as well as socialism and communism, without concealment
attacked Christianity; while pauperism and vagabondage, on the one hand,
and the Stock Exchange swindling of capitalists, on the other, spread
moral consumption through all classes of society. The ultramontanes, led
by the Jesuits, reasserted the most arrogant claims of the papacy. The
climax was reached when Pius IX. obtained a decree of council affirming
his infallibility, while by the Nemesis of history the royal crown was
torn from his head.
§ 174. NINETEENTH CENTURY CULTURE IN RELATION TO
CHRISTIANITY AND THE CHURCH.
Down to A.D. 1840, when zeal for it began to abate, philosophy
exercised an important influence on the religious development of the
age, both in the departments of science and of life. While rationalism
was not able to transcend the standpoint of Kant, the other theological
tendencies were more or less determined formally, and even materially
by the philosophical movements of this period. Alongside of philosophy,
literature, itself to a great extent coloured by contemporary philosophy,
exerted a powerful influence on the religious opinions of the more
cultured among the people. The sciences, too, came into closer relations,
partly friendly, partly hostile, to Christianity; and art in some of its
masterpieces paid a noble tribute to the church.
§ 174.1. =The German Philosophy= (§ 171, 10).--=Fries=, whose
philosophy was Kantian rationalism, modified by elements borrowed
from Jacobi, influenced such theologians as De Wette. =Schelling=,
in his “Philosophy of Identity,” had advanced from Fichte’s
idealism to a pantheistic naturalism. From Fichte he had learned
that this world is nothing without spirit; but while Fichte
recognised this world, the _non-ego_, as reality only in so far
as man seizes upon it and penetrates it by his spirit, and so
raises it into real being, Schelling regards spirit as nothing
else than the life of nature itself. In the lower stages of this
nature-life spirit is still slumbering and dreaming, but in man
it has attained unto consciousness. The nature-life as a whole,
or the world-soul, is God; man is the reflex of God and the
world in miniature, a microcosmos. In the world’s development God
comes into objective being and unfolds his self-consciousness;
Christianity is the turning point in the world’s history; its
fundamental dogmas of revelation, trinity, incarnation, and
redemption are suggestive attempts to solve the world’s riddle.
Schelling’s poetic view of the world penetrated all the sciences,
and gave to them a new impulse. Though hateful to the old
rationalists, this system found ardent admirers among the younger
theologians. As Schelling to Fichte, so =Hegel= was attached
to Schelling, and wrought his pantheistic naturalism into a
pantheistic spiritualism. Not so much in the life of nature as in
the thinking and doing of the human spirit, the divine revelation
is the unfolding of the divine self-consciousness from non-being
into being. Judaism and Christianity are progressive stages of
this process; Judaism stands far below classic paganism; but in
Christianity we have the perfect religion, to be developed into
the highest form of philosophy. The Protestant church doctrine
was now again accorded the place of honour. Marheincke developed
Lutheran orthodoxy into a system of speculative theology based on
Hegelian principles; while Göschel infused into it a pietist
spirit, which made many hail the new departure as the long-sought
reconciliation of theology and philosophy. But after Hegel’s
death in A.D. 1831 the condition of matters suddenly changed.
His school split into an orthodox wing following the master’s
ecclesiastical tendencies, and a heterodox wing which deified the
human spirit. Strauss, Bauer, and Feuerbach led this heterodox
party in theology, and Ruge in reference to social, æsthetic,
and political questions. Persecuted by the state in A.D. 1843,
the Young Hegelians joined the rationalists, whom they had before
sneered at as “antediluvian theologians.” =Schelling=, who had
been silent for almost thirty years, took Hegel’s chair in Berlin
as his decided opponent in A.D. 1841, and with his dualistic
doctrine of potencies, from which he finally advanced to a
Christian gnosticism, obtained a temporary influence among the
younger theologians. He died at the baths of Ragaz in Switzerland
in A.D. 1854. He flashed for a moment like a meteor, and as
suddenly his light was quenched.
§ 174.2. The domination of the Hegelian philosophy was overthrown
by the split in the school and the radicalism of the adherents
of the left wing, and Schelling in the second stage of his
philosophical development had not succeeded in founding any
proper school of his own. A group of younger philosophers, with
I. H. Fichte at their head, starting from the Hegelian dialectic,
have striven to free philosophy from the reproach of pantheism
and to develop a speculative theism in touch with historical
Christianity. Other members of this school are Weisse, Braniss,
Chalibæus, Ulrici, Wirth, Romang, etc.--=Herbart= renounces all
that philosophers from Fichte senior to Fichte junior had done,
and declares the metaphysical end of their systems beyond the
horizon of philosophy, which must limit itself to the province of
experience. His realism is in diametrical opposition to Hegel’s
idealism. Toward Christianity his philosophy occupies a position
of indifference. Influenced by Kant’s theory of knowledge as
well as by the Fichte-Schelling-Hegel idealism and Herbart’s
realism, with an infusion of Leibnitz’s monad doctrine, =Hermann
Lotze= of Göttingen has, since A.D. 1844, set forth a system of
“teleological idealism.” He develops his metaphysical principles
from what we have by immediate experience internal and external,
and the invariability of the causal mechanism in everything that
happens in the inner and outer world he explains as the realizing
of moral purposes.--=Schopenhauer’s= philosophy, which only in
the later years of his life (died A.D. 1860) began to attract
attention, is in spirit utterly opposed to the religion and
ethics of Christianity. Its task is to describe “The World as
Will and Idea;” first at that stage of entering into visibility
which is represented in man does will, the thing-in-itself,
become joined with idea, and makes its appearance now with it
over against the world as a conscious subject. But since idea
is regarded as a pure illusion of the will, this leads to a
pessimism which takes absolute despair as the only legitimate
moral principle. =E. von Hartmann= went still further in the
same direction in his “Philosophy of the Unconscious,” published
in 1869, of which an English translation in three vols. appeared
in 1884. He identifies the will with matter and idea with spirit,
demands in addition to the absolute despair of the individual
here and hereafter, the complete surrender of the personality to
the world-process in order to the attainment of its end, the
annihilation of the world. This dissolution of the world consists
in the complete withdrawal of the will into the absolute as
the only unconscious, so that at last the wrong and misery of
being produced by the irrational will are abolished in this
withdrawal. From this philosophical standpoint Hartmann attempted
in A.D. 1874 to take Christianity to pieces, showing some favour
to Vatican Catholicism, but pouring out the vials of his wrath
upon Protestantism. His “religion of the future” consists in a
yearning for freedom from all the burden and misery of being and
share in the world-process by relapsing into the blessedness of
non-being.--In France, England, and America much favour has been
shown to the atheistic-sensual Positivism of =Aug. Comte=, which,
excluding every form of theology and morals, requires only the
so-called exact sciences as the object of philosophy. On his later
notions of a “religion of humanity,” see § 210, 1. On essentially
similar lines proceeds =Herbert Spencer=, in his “System of
Synthetic Philosophy,” to whose school also Darwin belonged.
His followers are styled agnostics, because they regard all
knowledge of God and divine things as absolutely impossible,
and evolutionists, because their master endeavours to construct
all the sciences on the basis of the evolution theory.
§ 174.3. =The Sciences.=-Schelling’s profound theories were of
all the more significance from their not being restricted to
the philosophical strivings of his time, but inspiring the other
sciences with the breath of a new life. To the fullest extent
the natural sciences exposed themselves to this influence. There
was not wanting indeed a certain shadowy mysticism, to which
especially the fancies of mesmeric magnetism largely contributed;
but this fog gradually cleared away, and the Christian elements
were purified from their pantheistic surroundings. Steffens
and Von Schubert taught that the divine book of nature is to be
regarded as the reflex and expansion of the divine revelation in
Scripture. The Hegelian philosophy, too, seemed at first likely
to infuse a Christian spirit into the other sciences. In Göschel,
at least, there was a thinker who imparted to jurisprudence a
Christian character, and to Christianity a juristic construction.
In other respects Hegel’s philosophy in its application to the
other departments of science gave in many ways a predominance to
an abstruse dialectic tendency. Its adherents of the extreme left
sought to construct all sciences _a priori_ from the pure idea,
and at the same time to root out from them the last vestiges of
the Christian spirit.
The greatest names in natural science, Copernicus, Kepler, Newton,
Haller, Davy, Cuvier, etc., are household words in Christian
circles. All these and many more were firmly convinced that there
was no conflict between their most brilliant discoveries and
Christian truth. In A.D. 1825 the Earl of Bridgwater founded a
lectureship, and treatises on the power, wisdom, and goodness of
God as manifested in the creation, have been written by Buckland,
Chalmers, Whewell, Bell, etc. It was otherwise in Germany.
Even Schleiermacher, in his “Letters to Lücke,” in A.D. 1829,
expressed his fears of the prophesied overthrow of all Christian
theories of the world by the incontrovertible results of physical
research, and Bretschneider in his “Letters to a Statesman,” in
A.D. 1830, proclaimed to the world without regret that already
what Schleiermacher only feared had actually come to pass.
Physicists, awakening from the glamour of the Schelling nature
philosophy, pronounced all speculation contraband, and declared
pure empiricism, the simple investigation of actual things, the
only permissible object of their labour. And although they handed
over to theologians and philosophers questions about spirit in
and over nature, as not belonging to their province, a younger
generation maintained that spirit was non-existent, because it
could not be discovered by the microscope and dissecting knife.
Carl Vogt defined thought to be a secretion of the brain,
and Moleschott regarded life as a mere mode of matter and
man’s existence after life only as the manuring of the fields.
Feuerbach proclaimed that “man is what he eats,” and Buchner
[Büchner] popularized these views into a gospel for social
democrats and nihilists. Oersted, the famous discoverer of
electro-magnetism, had sought “the spirit in nature,” but the
spirit which he found was not that of the Bible and the church.
The grandmaster of German scientific research, Alex. von Humboldt,
saw in the world a cosmos of noble harmony as a whole and in its
parts, but of Christian ideas in God’s great book of nature he
finds no trace. In A.D. 1859 the great English naturalist Darwin,
died A.D. 1882, introduced into the arena the theory of “Natural
Selection,” by means of which the modification and development of
the few primary animal forms through the struggle for existence
and the survival of the fittest by sexual selection is supposed,
in millions, perhaps milliards, of years, to have brought
forth the present variety and manifoldness of animal species.
Multitudes of naturalists now accept his theory of the descent
of men and apes from a common stem.--In =Medicine= De Valenti on
the Protestant side, with pietistic earnestness, maintains that
Christian faith is a vehicle of healing power; while a circle in
Munich on the Catholic side make worship of saints and the host a
_conditio sine qua non_ of all medicine. A more moderate attitude
is assumed by the Roman Catholic Dr. Capellmann of Aachen, in his
“Pastoral Medicine.”
§ 174.4. Of Christian =Jurists= we have, on the Protestant
side, Stahl, Savigny, Puchta, Jacobson, Richter, Meier, Scheuerl,
Hinschius, etc.; and on the Catholic side, Walther, Philipps, etc.
Among =Historians=, the greatest in modern times is Leopold von
Ranke, who, with his disciples, occupies a thoroughly Christian
standpoint. There has appeared, however, on the part of many
Protestant historians, such as Voigt, Leo, Mentzel, Vorreiter,
Hurter, Gfroerer [Gfrörer], etc., a tendency in the most
conspicuous manner to recognise and admire the brilliant
phenomena of mediæval Catholicism, even going to the length
of renouncing the vital principles of Protestantism, and
glorifying a Boniface, a Gregory VII., and an Innocent III.,
and characterizing the Reformation as a revolution. Ultramontanes
have been only too ready to turn to their own use all such
concessions, but show no inclination to make similar admissions
damaging to their side, so that with them history consists rather
in the abuse of everything Protestant as vile and perfidious,
instead of being a record of independent research. Janssen
[Jansen] of Frankfort stands out prominently above the billows
of the “_Kulturkampf_” (§ 197), as the greatest master of this
ultramontane style of history making.--=Geography=, first raised
to the rank of a science by Carl Ritter, received from its great
founder a Christian impress and owes much of its development to
the researches of Christian missionaries. Finally, =Philology=,
in the hands of Creuzer, Görres, Sepp, etc., unfolds in a
Christian spirit the religion and mythology of classical paganism;
and in the hands of Nägelsbach and Lübker expounds the religious
life of the ancient world in relation to Christian truth.
§ 174.5. =National Literature= (§ 171, 11).--To some extent
Goethe, but much more decidedly the romantic school of poets, was
attached to Schelling’s philosophy of nature. The romanticists
developed a deep religiousness of feeling, as shown in Novalis
and La Motte Fouqué, and violent opposition to rationalistic
theology as shown in Tieck, which in the case of Fr. Schlegel ran
to the other extreme of moral frivolity as seen in his “Lucinde.”
The romantic school as thus represented by Schlegel was joined by
the party of Young Germany with its gospel of the rehabilitation
of the flesh. Its mouthpiece was the gifted poet Heine.
The pantheistic deification of nature by Schelling, and
the self-deification of the Hegelian school obtained poetic
expression in Leop. Schafer’s _Laienbrevier und Weltpriester_,
as well as in Sallet’s _Laienevangelium_; while the sympathies
of the young Hegelians with the revolutionary movements gained
utterance in the poems of Herwegh, and in a more serious
tone in those of Freiligrath. More recently the views of
the _Protestantenverein_ (§ 180) have found their poetical
representative in Nic. Eichhorn, whose “Jesus of Nazareth,” a
tragical drama, 1880, deals with the life, works, and sufferings
of the “historical Christ,” after the style of free Protestant
science, with rich psychological analysis of the character in a
brilliant imaginative production. Though composed with a view to
theatrical representation, it has never yet been put on the stage.
§ 174.6. The Christian element was present in the noble patriotic
songs of E. M. Arndt[525] and Max. von Schenkendorf much more
distinctly than in the romantic school. Enthusiasm in the
struggle for freedom awakened faith in the living God. Uhland’s
lovely lyrics, with their enthusiasm for the present interests
of the Fatherland, entitle him to rank among patriotic poets, and
their brilliant and profound rendering of the old German legends
places him in the romantic school, which, however, in clearness
and depth he leaves far behind. Without being a distinctively
Christian poet, his warm sympathy with the life of the German
people gives him a genuine interest in the Christian religion.
The same may be said of Rückert’s highly finished poems, which
transplanted the fragrant flowers of oriental sensuousness
and contemplativeness into the garden of German poetry. A more
decided Christian consecration of poetic genius is seen in the
noble and beautiful lyrics of Emanuel Geibel, died 1884, the
greatest and most Christian of the secular poets of the present.
Of those ordinarily ranked as sacred poets may be named Knapp,
Döring, Spitta, Garve, Vict. Strauss, etc., who for the most
part contributed their sacred songs to Knapp’s “_Christoterpe_”
(1833-1853). A later publication of equal merit, called the
“_Neue Christoterpe_,” has been edited since 1880 by Kögel, Baur,
and Frommel. But with all the Christian depth and spirituality,
freshness and warmth, which we meet with in the productions of
these Christian poets, none of them has been able to rise to
the noble simplicity, power, popular force, and fitting them for
church use, objectivity which are present in the old evangelical
church hymns. In this respect they all bear too conspicuously the
signature of their age, with its subjective tone and the noise
and turmoil of present conflicts. Of all modern poets, Rückert
alone approaches in his advent hymn the measure and spirit of the
old church song.--In the department of novels and romance there
has been shown an almost invariable hostility toward Christianity,
religion being either entirely avoided or held up to contempt by
having as its representatives, simpletons, hypocrites, or knaves.
§ 174.7. In =France=, Chateaubriand in his “_Genie du
Christianisme_” pronounces an eloquent eulogy on the half-pagan
Christianity of the Middle Ages. In another work he makes the
representatives of heathenism in the age of Constantine act like
Homeric heroes, and those of Christianity speak “like theologians
of the age of Bossuet.” Lamartine may be described as a Christian
romanticist. Victor Hugo, Balzac, George Sand, Sue, Dumas,
etc., influenced by the Revolution, developed an antichristian
tendency; while naked naturalism, photographic realism in
depicting the lowest side of Parisian life, especially adultery
and prostitution, is represented by Flaubert, Daudet, De Goncourt,
Zola, etc.--In =Italy=, the amiable Manzoni gave noble expression
to Christian feeling in his “_Inni Sacri_,” and in his masterly
romance “_Promessi Sposi_;” and the famous poet Silvio Pellico,
in his “_La mia Prigioni_,” affords a noble example of the
sustaining power of true religion during ten years’ rigorous
imprisonment in an Austrian dungeon. The most gifted of modern
Italian poets, Giacomo Leopardi, sank into despairing pessimism,
which expressed itself in the domain of religion in biting
satire and savage irony. Among the poets of the present who,
with glowing patriotism, not only yearned for the deliverance
and unity of Italy, but also lived to see these accomplished,
and have since given expression, though from different political
and religious standpoints, to the desire for the reconciliation
of the free united kingdom with the irreconcilable church, the
most distinguished are Aleardi, Carducci, Imbriani, Guercini,
Cavalotti.--In =Spain=, Caecilia Böhl von Faber, although
the daughter of a German father, and educated in Germany,
introduced, under the name Fernan Caballero, the modern romance
in a thoroughly national Spanish style, and in a purely moral and
catholic Christian spirit. In the =Flemish Provinces=, Hendrik
Conscience, the able novelist, has described Flemish village
life in a spirit fully in sympathy with Christianity.--=England=
had in Lord Byron a poet of the first rank, who more than any
other poet had experience in himself of the convulsions and
contradictions of his age. In powerful and impressive tones he
sets forth the unreconciled disharmonies of nature and of human
life. Incurable pain, despair, weariness of life, and hatred
of mankind, without hope, yet without desire for reconciliation,
enthusiastic admiration of the ancient world, passionate love of
liberty and titanic pride in human might mingle with scenes of
grumbling, misery, and profligacy. On the other hand, the rich
and mostly solid English novel literature is prevailingly
inspired by a Christian spirit.
§ 174.8. =Popular Education.=--While the poetic national
literature for the most part found entrance only among the
cultured and adult circles, this age, almost as fond of
writing as of reading, produced an enormous quantity of books
for the people and for children. But only a few succeeded in
catching the proper tone for the masses and the youth, and
still fewer supplied their readers with what was genuinely pious.
Pestalozzi’s “_Lienhard und Gertrud_,” Hebel’s “_Schatzkästlein_,”
and Tschokke’s “_Goldmacherdorf_,” respected at least the
Christian feeling of the people, although they did not strengthen
or foster it. But, on the other hand, in recent years a number of
writers have appeared, thoroughly popular, and at the same time
thoroughly Christian, who, as popular poets and novelists, have
become apostles of Christian views, morals, and customs to the
people. The most distinguished of these are Jeremiah Gotthelf
(Albert Bitzius, died 1854), whose “Kate the Grandmother” was
translated in the _Sunday Magazine_ for 1865, Von Horn, Carl
Stöber, Wildenhahn, Nathusius, Frommel, Weitbrecht, etc. In the
Catholic church Albanus Stoltz, died 1883, developed a wonderful
power of popular composition, which, however, he subsequently put
at the service of a fanatical ultramontanism, and so sacrificed
much of its nobility and worth. From the enormous mass of
children’s books only extremely few attain their aim. In the
front rank stands the brilliant patriarch of Christian tale
writing, Von Schubert, died 1860. After him are Barth, the author
of “Poor Henry,” Stöber, and the Swiss Spyri, and the Catholic
Christian Schmid, author of the “Easter Eggs.”--The =Public
Schools=, especially under Dinter (died 1831), member of the
consistory and schoolboard of Königsberg, were for a long time
nurseries of the tame, flat, and self-satisfied rationalism of
the _ancien régime_; but since 1830, and more particularly in
consequence of the violent agitations of the seminary director
Diesterweg, who died in 1866, put to silence in 1847, but
still for his work in connexion with education always highly
respected, many of the teachers took a higher flight in the
naturalistic-democratic direction. By word and pen Diesterweg
carried on a propaganda in favour of a free and liberal education
for the people. His disciples, wanting his earnest Christian
spirit, carried out recklessly his radical tendencies, and now
the Christian faith has no more persistent foes than the teachers
of the public schools. In A.D. 1870, a Teachers’ Association in
Vienna gave a vote of 6,000 in favour of radicalism. At a Hamburg
meeting in A.D. 1872 of 5,100 teachers, progress was shown by
individuals raising their voices in defence of Christianity,
which, however, were generally drowned in shrieks and hisses.
A Teachers’ Evangelical Association held its ninth assembly
at Hamburg in A.D. 1881 with 1,500 members. Christian opinions
are now ably represented in schools, educational journals,
and literature. A burning question at present is whether the
national school should be preferred to the denominational school.
Liberals in church and state say it should; conservatives say
it should not; while both parties think their views supported by
the experience of the past. The Prussian minister of education,
Falk, A.D. 1872-1879, firmly insisted upon the development of the
national system, but his successors Von Puttkamer and Von Gossler
reverted to the denominational system. The German Evangelical
School Congress of Hamburg in October, 1882, demanded that both
elementary and secondary schools should have a confessional
character.
§ 174.9. =Art.=--The intellectual quickening called forth with
the opening of the new century imparted new spirit and life to
the cultivation of the arts. Winckelmann, died A.D. 1768, had
opened the way to an understanding of pagan classical art, and
romanticism awakened appreciation of and enthusiasm for mediæval
Christian art. The greatest masters of =Architecture= were
Schinckel, Klenze, and Heideloff. The foundation stone of the
final part of the Cologne cathedral was laid by a Protestant king,
Frederick William IV., in A.D. 1842, and the work was finished
by a Protestant builder in A.D. 1880. =Statuary= had three great
masters, who gave expression to profound Christian ideas in
bronze and marble, the Italian Canova, the German Dannecker,
and greatest of all, the Dane Thorwaldsen, whose Christ and the
Apostles and other works form a main attraction to visitors in
Copenhagen. Three younger German masters of the art, who have
heired their fame, are Rauch, Rietschl, and Drake.--In =Painting=
too a new era now began. A group of gay German artists in Rome,
with Overbeck at their head, formed a Society in A.D. 1813, and
mostly became perverts to Romanism. Peter Cornelius, the ablest
of the school, himself born a Catholic, answered his friends’
request to place Luther in a picture of the last judgment,
in hell: “Yes, but with the Bible in his hands and the devils
trembling before him”; and in a subsequent picture of the
judgment, he gave the German reformer his place among the saints
in heaven. His pupil, Julius Schnorr von Karolsfeld is well known
by his “_Bibel in Bildern_.” Ludwig Richter, the Albert Dürer
of the nineteenth century and creator of the modern woodcut,
has filled German houses with his artistic and poetic creations,
which breathe of God, nature, and the family fireside. The
Frenchman, Gustave Doré of Strassburg, has also illustrated the
Bible in a manner worthy of ranking alongside of Schnorr, though
a characteristically French striving for effect is everywhere
discernible.--=Painted Glass= (§ 104, 14) for church windows
had during the eighteenth century passed almost wholly out of
use, but again in the nineteenth came into favour, and was made
at Dresden, Nuremberg, and Munich. The most eminent artist in
this department was Ainmiller of Munich, specimens of whose
workmanship are to be seen in all parts of the world.
§ 174.10. =Music and the Drama.=--In Vienna the three great
masters of musical composition, Mozart, Haydn, and Beethoven,
produced in the department of sacred music some of their noblest
works. Mendelssohn, in his St. Paul and Elijah and in his Psalms,
sought to reproduce the power and truth of the simple word of
God. An early death prevented him giving expression to his ideal
of Christ in music. The Hungarian virtuoso Liszt sacrifices
sacred calmness and dignity to theatrical effect. His son-in-law,
Richard Wagner, inspired by Schopenhauer’s philosophy, a richly
endowed poet and composer, proclaimed by his followers as the
Messiah of the music of the future, going back to mediæval legend,
has produced a _quasi_-Christian musical drama, in which the
gospel of pessimism takes the place of the gospel of the grace of
God.--Quite different is the Passion Play of the Bavarian village
Oberammergau, which is a reproduction of the mediæval mysteries
(§ 115, 12). It originated in a vow made in 1633 on the occasion
of a plague which visited the place, and is repeated every
ten years on the Sundays from the end of May to the middle
of September. The history of the Saviour’s passion is here
represented with interludes from Messianic Old Testament passages
explained by a chorus like that of the classical tragedy, with
appropriate scenery, drapery, and musical accompaniment. In
the presence of an immense concourse of strangers for whose
accommodation a large amphitheatre was been built, almost all the
villagers, men, women, and children, take part in the performance
and show rare artistic power. The text of the drama for the
most part agrees with the gospel narrative, only occasionally
interspersed with legend, and quite free from ultramontane
hagiology and mariolatry. The performance of A.D. 1850, and still
more that of A.D. 1880, attracted crowds of pilgrims and tourists
to the quiet and remote valley. An independent exhibition,
falling little behind the original in the artistic character
of its composition and production, was given, in 1883, on the
Sundays of July and August in the Tyrolese village of Brixlegg,
and was visited by similar crowds.
§ 175. INTERCOURSE AND NEGOTIATIONS BETWEEN THE CHURCHES.
Protestants could recognise, as Catholics could not, elements of
truth and beauty in the creeds of their opponents. When a peaceful and
conciliatory spirit was shown by individual Catholic clergymen, it was
the occasion of suspicion and persecution on the part of the old Romish
party. Schemes of union were entertained by the Old Catholics (§ 190),
and negotiations were entered on by the Greek Orthodox church, on
the one hand, and the Roman Catholic and Anglican churches, on the
other, but in both cases without any practical result. On the union
negotiations between the different Protestant sects, see § 178;
and on the Prusso-Anglican bishopric of Jerusalem, see § 184, 8.
Of the numerous conversions from Protestantism to Catholicism and
from Catholicism to Protestantism, we can here mention only such as
have excited public interest in some special way.
§ 175.1. =Romanizing Tendencies among Protestants.=--Not only
in England, where an important high-church party embraced a more
than half-Catholic Puseyism (§ 202, 2), but even in Protestant
Germany a Romanizing current set in on many sides. A taste for
the romantic, artistic, historical (§ 174, 5, 9, 4), as well
as feudalist-aristocratic and hyper-Lutheran ecclesiastical
tendencies led the way in this direction. Many sought rest in
the bosom of the church “where alone salvation is found,” while
others, too deeply rooted in evangelical truth, bewailed the
loss of “noble and venerable” institutions in the worship, life,
and constitution of the church, but were unable to accept the
various unevangelical accretions which made void the doctrine
of justification by faith alone. This was the position of Löhe
of Neuendettelsau, in point of doctrine a strict Lutheran,
who published a selection of Catholic legends as patterns of
self-denial for his deaconesses, wished to restore anointing of
the sick, etc. Some Protestant pastors expressed warm sympathy
with the Pope during his misfortunes in A.D. 1860, and approved
of the continuance of the papacy and the pope’s temporal dominion.
A conference of Catholics (Count Stolberg, Dr. Michelis, etc.)
and Protestants (Leo, Bindewald, etc.) at Erfurt in A.D. 1860,
on the basis of a common recognition of the moral advantages of
the papacy, sought to bring about a union of the churches. Still
more remarkable is the story told by the Old Catholic professor
Friedrich. Just before the opening of the Vatican Council,
certain evangelical pastors of Saxony wrote letters to Bishop
Martin of Paderborn, which Friedrich himself read, urging that at
the council permission should be given to priests to marry and to
give the cup in the communion to the laity, and promising that in
that case they themselves and many like-minded pastors would join
the Romish church. That the letters were written and received is
unquestionable; but it is doubtful whether folly and imbecility
or a wish to hoax and mystify, directed the pen. The writer or
writers, as the examination before the consistory of the locality
proved, are not to be sought among the pastors whose names are
appended. How far the Protestant ultra-conservative reactionary
party goes with the ultramontanes and how far it would aid the
overthrow and undermining of the Protestant state and evangelical
church, is shown by the conduct of the Privy Councillor and
Chief Justice Ludwig von Gerlach (§ 176, 1), who, in 1872, in
the Prussian House of Representatives, took his place among
the ultramontane party of the centre, hostile to the empire
and friendly to the Poles, and in his pamphlet “_Kaiser und
Papst_” of 1872 described the new German empire as an incarnate
antichrist. Also the Lutheran Guelphs of Hanover are zealous
supporters of all the demands of the centre in the Prussian
parliament and in the German Reichstag.
§ 175.2. =The Attitude of Catholicism toward
Protestantism.=--Every Catholic bishop has still on assuming
office to take the oath, _Hæreticos pro posse persequar_. The
Jesuits, restored in A.D. 1814, soon pervaded every section with
their intolerant spirit. The huge lie that Protestantism is in
matters of State as well as of church essentially revolutionary,
while Catholicism is the bulwark of the State against revolution
and democracy, was affirmed with such audacity that even
Protestant statesmen believed it. The Roman Jesuit Perrone
(§ 191, 9) taught the Catholic youth in a controversial Italian
catechism that “they should feel a creeping horror come over them
at the mere mention of the word Protestantism, more even than
when a murderous attack was made upon them, for Protestantism and
its defenders are in the religious and moral world just the same
as the plague and plague-stricken are in the physical world, and
in all lands Protestants are the scum of all that is vile and
immoral,” etc. In a pastoral of A.D. 1855, Von Ketteler, Bishop
of Mainz, compared the Germans, who by the Reformation rent
the unity of the church, to the Jews who crucified the Messiah.
Romish prelates have vied with one another in their abuse
of Protestants and Protestantism. In A.D. 1881, Leo XIII.
speaking of the spread of Russian nihilism, charged Protestant
missionaries with spreading the dominion of the prince of
darkness. Prof. Hohoff of Paderborn, in his “Hist. Studies on
Protestantism and Socialism,” Paderb., 1881, reiterated the
accusation: “Yes, it is so, Protestantism has begotten atheism,
materialism, scepticism, nihilism. The Reformation was the
murderer of all science, the greatest foe of culture and learning,
and the falsifier of all history.... Melanchthon’s _Loci_ may
be styled the most unscientific production in the domain of
dogmatics.... Yes, the Reformation has proved a prime source of
superstition, a step backward in the history of civilization....
The Catholic church has been the champion of conscience,
reason, and freedom.... No one is thoroughly capable of judging
historical facts without prejudice as the believing Catholic
Christian.”--But while the vast majority of Catholic writers
thus abuse Protestantism, others like Seltmann of Eberswald seek
to win over to the ranks of the Romish church those who can be
befooled by fair speeches. The “Protestant” correspondents in
Seltmann’s periodical write under the cloak of anonymity.--In
Spain the Reformation was long attributed to the Augustinians,
who were jealous of the Dominicans as the only dispensers of
indulgences, and to Luther’s desire to marry; but the poet Nuñez
de Arca in his “_Vision de Fray Martin_,” attributed it to the
corruption of the church and papacy of its time, and regarded
with sympathy the spiritual struggles of the reformer. Though as
a good Catholic he concludes his poem with the ban of the church
against Luther, he yet describes him as a just and well-deserving
man.
§ 175.3. =Romish Controversy.=--In the beginning of A.D. 1872
the Waldensian Professor Sciarelli published as a challenge
the thesis that the Apostle Peter never set foot in Rome, and
Pius IX. with childlike simplicity gave his consent to a public
disputation, which came off at Rome on 9th and 10th February.
Three Protestant champions, with Sciarelli at their head, were
confronted by three Catholics, headed by Fabiani, before 125
auditors admitted by ticket. Both sides claimed the victory; but
the shorthand reports were more widely read through Italy than
could be agreeable to the papal court.
§ 175.4. =Roman Catholic Union Schemes.=--While American
Protestant missionaries strove zealously for the conversion of
the schismatical Eastern Churches, Rome with equal diligence but
little success endeavoured to win over these and the orthodox
Greeks to her own communion. There was great joy over the
conversion of the =Bulgarians= to Romanism in A.D. 1860.
Taking advantage of a national movement for the restoration
of a patriarchate independent of Constantinople (§ 207, 3),
some French Jesuits succeeded in persuading a small number of
malcontents to agree to a union with Rome. In 1861 the pope
consecrated an old Bulgarian priest, Jos. Sokolski, archbishop
of the united Bulgarian church. Very soon, however, he and almost
all his followers returned to their allegiance to the Greek
Orthodox church. Leo XIII. in his _encyclical_ of A.D. 1880, by
giving conspicuous honour to Cyril and Methodius, and uttering
kind sentiments about the Christian church in the East, and
conferring high rank on dignitaries of the Eastern church,
seeks to smooth the way for a union of the two great churches.
§ 175.5. =Greek Orthodox Union Schemes.=--In A.D. 1867 the
Archbishop of Canterbury addressed a letter to the Patriarch
of Constantinople and the whole Eastern church, to open the way
to a common understanding and union of the churches, sending a
modern Greek translation of the Book of Common Prayer, and asking
their assistance at the consecration of an Anglican church at
Constantinople. The patriarch Gregorius [Gregory] granted this
request, and answered the letter in a friendly manner, passing
over the Anglican’s warnings against superstitious additions
to the doctrine, _e.g._ mariolatry, but characterizing all the
contrary doctrines of the Thirty-nine Articles as “very modern.”
At the same time vigorous measures were being taken with a
similar object by members of the Russian and of the Anglican
churches. In 1870 Professor Overbeck of Halle undertook to act
as intermediary in these negotiations. He had in 1865 published,
in answer to the papal encyclical with syllabus of December 8th,
1864 (§ 185, 2), a tract with the motto _Ex oriente lux_, in
which he placed the claims of the Orthodox eastern church before
the Roman Catholic as well as Protestant. On the opening of the
Vatican Council in 1869 he advocated in a pamphlet the breaking
up of the papal church and the formation of Catholic national
churches. In North America Professor Bjerring, of the Catholic
seminary for priests at Baltimore, took the same position. In
March, 1871, he went to St. Petersburg, was there ordained as
an Orthodox priest, and on his return to New York instituted a
Sunday service in the English language according to the Greek
rite. Of any further advance in this direction of union nothing
is known.
§ 175.6. =Old Catholic Union Schemes.=--Döllinger (§ 191, 5) in
A.D. 1871 was hopeful of a union not only with the Greek, but
also with the Anglican church, and similar hopes were entertained
in England and Russia, and distinguished representatives of both
communions took part in the Old Catholic congresses (§ 190, 1).
On the invitation of Döllinger, as president of the committee
commissioned by the Freiburg Congress of A.D. 1874 to treat
about union with the Anglican church, forty friends of union from
Germany, England, Denmark, France, Russia, Greece, and America
met in conference at Bonn. After a lively debate the cleft
between East and West was bridged over by a compromise treating
the _filioque_ as an unnecessary addition to the Nicene symbol,
and asserting that, however desirable a mutual understanding
on doctrinal questions might be, existing differences in
constitution, discipline, and worship presented no bar to
union. The Catholics presented the Anglicans with fourteen
theses essential to union, in which the anti-Protestant doctrines
were for the most part toned down, but transubstantiation
distinctly asserted. Subsequent conferences never got beyond
these preliminaries. It was, however, agreed that, in case of
necessity, Anglicans and Old Catholics might dispense the supper
to one another.
§ 175.7. =Conversions.=--The most famous converts of the century
were Hurter, the biographer of Innocent III., the Countess Ida
von Hahn-Hahn, writer of religious romances, Gfroerer [Gfrörer],
the church historian, the radical Hegelian Daumer, the historian
of ante-tridentine theology Hugo Lämmer, and Dr. Ed. Preuss, who
had written against the immaculate conception and for criminal
conduct had to flee the country. In A.D. 1844 Carl Haas, a
Protestant pastor, went over to the Romish church, but the two
new dogmas of Pius IX. led him to study the works of Luther. He
now returned to the Lutheran church, vindicating his procedure
in a treatise entitled, “To Rome, and from Rome back again to
Wittenberg, 1881.” Also the Mecklenburg Lutheran pastor, Dr. A.
Hager, who, after his conversion, had undertaken the editorship
of an ultramontane newspaper in Breslau in 1873, was obliged
in a few years to resign the appointment. His return to the
evangelical church was being talked about, when he suddenly died
in 1883, after having received the last sacrament in the Catholic
church. The climax of abuse of Luther and the Lutheran church was
reached by the Hanoverian Evers, who had gone over in 1880; in
all his scandalous and vituperative writings he describes himself
on the title page as “formerly Lutheran pastor.” His mud-throwing,
however, was carried so far, that even the ultramontane _Köln.
Volkszeitung_ was constrained to advise him to write more
decently.
§ 175.8. The Mortara affair of A.D. 1858 attracted special
attention. The eight-year old son of the Jew Mortara of Bologna
was violently taken from his parents to Rome because his
Christian nurse said that two years before, during a dangerous
illness, she had baptized him. The church answered the entreaties
of the parents and the universal outcry by saying that the
sacrament had an indelible character, and that the pope could not
change the law. Again in A.D. 1864, the ten-year old Jewish boy,
Joseph Coën, apprentice weaver in Rome, was decoyed by a priest
to his cloister and there persuaded to receive baptism. In vain
his mother, the Jewish community, and even the French ambassador,
urged his restoration; and when, in A.D. 1870, the temporal power
of the pope was overthrown, the lad, now sixteen years old, had
himself become such a fanatical Catholic that he refused to have
anything to do with his mother as an unbeliever.
§ 175.9. In the Tyrol in A.D. 1830 there were numerous
conversions from Catholicism to Protestantism (§ 198, 1).
A Catholic priest in Baden, Henhöfer of Mühlhausen, influenced
by the writings of Sailer and Boos, went over to the Lutheran
church in A.D. 1823, and continued down to his death in A.D. 1862
a vigorous opponent of the prevailing rationalism. Count Leopold
von Seldnitzsky, formerly Prince-Bishop of Breslau, felt obliged
in 1840, in consequence of the conscientious objections he had
to perform his official duties toward church and state during
the ecclesiastico-political controversies of 1830 (§ 193, 1),
to resign his appointments. He was subsequently led in A.D. 1863,
through reading the Scriptures and Luther’s works, after a sore
struggle, to join the evangelical Church. He devoted all his
means to the founding of Protestant educational institutions at
Berlin and Breslau. He died in A.D. 1871, in his eighty-fourth
year. The proclamation by the Vatican of the dogma of
infallibility drove many pious and earnest Catholics out of the
Romish communion. Of these Carl von Richthofen, Canon of Breslau,
engages our special interest. Son of a pious Lutheran mother, and
trained up under Gossner’s mild spiritual direction (§ 187, 2),
his gentle and deeply religious nature had attached itself to
the Roman Catholic church of his father only under the illusion
that the Romish doctrine of justification was not wholly
irreconcilable with the evangelical doctrine. He at first
submitted to but soon renounced the Vatican decree; was
excommunicated by Archbishop Förster, voluntarily resigned
his emoluments; joined the Old Catholics in A.D. 1873, and
the separated Old Lutherans in A.D. 1875. In the following
year he died a painful death from the explosion of a petroleum
lamp.--Upon the whole Rome has made most converts in America
and England; and she has suffered losses more or less severe
in France, Belgium, Ireland, Italy, Spain, and Bohemia.
§ 175.10. =The Luther Centenary, A.D. 1883.=--The celebration of
Luther’s birth was carried out with great enthusiasm throughout
all Germany, more than a thousand tracts on Luther and the
Reformation were published, statues were erected, special
services were held in all Lutheran churches, high schools, and
universities, and brilliant demonstrations were made at Jena,
Worms, Wittenberg, and Eisleben. There were founded at Kiel a
Luther-house, at Worms and at the Wartburg Luther libraries, in
Leipzig and Berlin Luther churches. At Eisleben a bronze statue
of the reformer was solemnly unveiled representing his tearing
the papal bull with his right hand and pressing the Bible to his
heart with his left. Another noble monument was raised by the
munificence of the emperor by the issuing during this year of
the first volume of pastor Knaake’s critical edition of Luther’s
works. A “German Luther Institute” aims at assisting children
of the poorer clergy and teachers, and a “Reformation History
Society” has undertaken the task of issuing popular tracts on the
persons, events and principles of that and the succeeding period
based upon original documents. Protestants of all lands, with the
exception of the English high-church party, contributed liberally;
the Americans had a copy of the great Luther statue of the Worms
monument (§ 178, 1) made and erected in Washington. Even in
Italy the liberal press eulogised Luther, while the ultramontanes
loaded his memory with unmeasured calumny and reproach. The
threatened counter-demonstrations of German ultramontanes fell
quite flat and harmless. The =Zwingli Centenary= of January 1st,
A.D. 1884, was celebrated with enthusiasm throughout the Reformed
church, especially in Switzerland. On the other hand, the
celebration of the five-hundredth anniversary of Wiclif’s death
on December 31st, 1884, created comparatively little interest.
II. Protestantism in General.[526]
§ 176. RATIONALISM AND PIETISM.
At the beginning of the century rationalism was generally prevalent,
but philosophy and literature soon weakened its foundations, and the
war of independence moved the hearts of the people toward the faith of
their fathers. Pietism entered the lists against rationalism, and the
Halle controversy of A.D. 1830 marked the crisis of the struggle. The
rationalists were compelled to make appeal to the people by popular
agitators. During A.D. 1840 they managed to found several “free
churches,” which, however, had for the most part but a short and
unprosperous existence. They were more successful in A.D. 1860 with
the _Protestantenverein_ as the instrument of their propaganda (§ 180).
§ 176.1. The old =Rationalism= was attacked by the disciples
of Hegel and Schelling, and in A.D. 1834 Röhr of Weimar found
Hase of Jena as keen an opponent as any pietist or orthodox
controversialist. That recognised leader of the old rationalists
had coolly attempted to substitute a new and rational form
of doctrine, worship, and constitution for the antiquated
formularies of the Reformation, and drew down upon himself the
rebuke even of those who sympathized with him in his doctrinal
views.--In A.D. 1817 Claus Harms of Kiel, on the occasion of
the Reformation centenary, opened an attack upon those who had
fallen away from the faith of their fathers, by the publication
of ninety-five new theses, recalling attention to Luther’s almost
forgotten doctrines. In A.D. 1827 Aug. Hahn in an academical
discussion at Leipzig maintained that the rationalists should
be expelled from the church, and Hengstenberg started his
_Evangelische Kirchenzeitung_. The jurist Von Gerlach in
A.D. 1830 charged Gesenius and Wegscheider of Halle with open
contempt of Christian truth, and called for State interference.
In all parts of Germany, amid the opposition of scientific
theologians and the scorn of philosophers, pietism made way
against rationalism, so that even men of culture regarded it
as a reproach to be reckoned among the rationalists. Unbelief,
however, was widespread among the masses. When Sintenis,
preacher in Magdeburg in A.D. 1840, declared the worship of
Christ superstitious, and was reprimanded by the consistory,
his neighbours, the pastors Uhlich and König, founded the society
of the “Friends of Light,” whose assembly at Köthen then was
attended by thousands of clergymen and laymen. In one of these
assemblies in A.D. 1844, Wislicenus of Halle, by starting the
question, Whether the Scriptures or the reason is to be regarded
as the standard of faith? shattered the illusion that rationalism
still occupied the platform of the church and Scripture. The
left wing of the school of Schleiermacher took offence at the
severe measures demanded by Hengstenberg and his party, and
in 1846 issued in Berlin a manifesto with eighty-eight signatures
against the paper pope of antiquated Reformation confessions and
the inquisitorial proceedings of the _Kirchenzeitung_ party, as
inimical to all liberty of faith and conscience, wishing only to
maintain firm hold of the truth that Jesus Christ is yesterday,
to-day, and for ever the one and only ground of salvation. The
Friends of Light, combining with the German Catholics and the
Young Hegelians, founded Free churches at Halle, Königsberg,
and many other places. Their services and sermons void of
religion, in which the Bible, the living Christ, and latterly
even the personal God, had no place, but only the naked worship
of humanity, had temporary vitality imparted them by the
revolutionary movements of A.D. 1848. This gave the State an
excuse, long wished for, to interfere, and soon scarcely a trace
of their churches was to be found.
§ 176.2. =Pietism= had not been wholly driven out of the
evangelical church during the period of ecclesiastical
impoverishment, but, purified from many eccentric excesses,
and seeking refuge and support for the most part by attaching
itself to the community of the Moravian Brethren, it had, even
in Württemberg, established itself independently and in an
essentially theosophical-chiliastic spirit. There too a kind
of spiritualism was introduced by the physician and poet Justin
Kerner of Weinsberg, and the philosopher Eschenmayer of Tübingen,
with spirit revelations from above and below. Amid the religious
movements of the beginning of the century Pietism gained a
decided advantage. It took the form of a protest against the
rationalism prevailing among the clergy. The earnest and devout
sought spiritual nourishment at conventicles and so-called
_Stunden_ addressed by laymen, mostly of the working class,
well acquainted with Scripture and works in practical divinity.
Persecuted by the irreligious mob, the rationalist clergy,
and sometimes by the authorities, they by-and-by secured
representatives among the younger clergy and in the university
chairs, and carried on vigorous missions at home and abroad.
This pietism was distinctly evangelical and Protestant. It did
not oppose but endeavoured simply to restore the orthodoxy of
the church confession. Yet it had many of the characteristics
of the earlier pietism: over-estimation of the invisible to
the disparagement of the visible church, of sanctification
over justification, a tendency to chiliasm, etc.--Of no less
importance in awakening the religious life throughout Germany,
and especially in Switzerland, was the missionary activity of
Madame de Krüdener of Riga. This lady, after many years of a
gay life, forsook the world, and began in A.D. 1814 her travels
through Europe, preaching repentance, proclaiming the gospel
message in the prisons, the foolishness of the cross to the
wise of this world, and to kings and princes the majesty of
Christ as King of kings. Wherever she went she made careless
sinners tremble, and drew around her crowds of the anxious and
spiritually burdened of every sort and station. Honoured by
some as a saint, prophetess, and wonder-worker, ridiculed by
others as a fool, persecuted as a dangerous fanatic or deceiver,
driven from one country to another, she died in the Crimea in
A.D. 1824.[527]
§ 176.3. =The Königsberg Religious Movement,
A.D. 1835-1842.=--The pious theosophist, J. H. Schönherr of
Königsberg, starting from the two primitive substances, fire
and water, developed a system of theosophy in which he solved
the riddles of the theogony and cosmogony, of sin and redemption,
and harmonized revelation with the results of natural science.
At first influenced by these views, but from A.D. 1819 expressly
dissenting from them, J. W. Ebel, pastor in the same city,
gathered round him a group of earnest Christian men and women,
Counts Kanitz and Finkenstein and their wives, Von Tippelskirch,
afterwards preacher to the embassy at Rome, the theological
professor H. Olshausen, the pastor Dr. Diestel, and the medical
doctor Sachs. After some years Olshausen and Tippelskirch
withdrew, and dissensions arose which gave opportunity to
the ecclesiastical authorities to order an investigation. Ebel
was charged with founding a sect in which impure practices were
encouraged. He was suspended in A.D. 1835, and at the instigation
of the consistory a criminal process was entered upon against him.
Dr. Sachs, who had been expelled from the society, was the chief
and almost only witness, but vague rumours were rife about mystic
rites and midnight orgies. Ebel and Diestel were deposed in
A.D. 1839, and pronounced incapable of holding any public office;
and as a sect founder Ebel was sentenced to imprisonment in the
common jail. On appeal to the court of Berlin, the deposition was
confirmed, but all the rest of the sentence was quashed, and the
parties were pronounced capable of holding any public offices
except those of a spiritual kind. Two reasons were alleged for
deposition:
1. That Ebel, though not from the pulpit or in the public
instruction of the young, yet in private religious teaching,
had inculcated his theosophical views.
2. That both of them as married men had given expression to
opinions injurious to the purity of married life.
In general they were charged with spreading a doctrine which was
in conflict with the principles of Christianity, and making such
use of sexual relations as was fitted to awaken evil thoughts
in the minds of hearers. Ebel was pronounced guiltless of
sectarianism.--Kanitz wrote a book in defence, which represents
Ebel and Diestel as martyrs to their pure Christian piety in
an age hostile to every pietistic movement; whereas Von Wegnern,
followed by Hepworth Dixon, in a romancing and frivolous style,
lightly give currency to evil surmisings without offering any
solid basis of proof. The whole affair still waits for a patient
and unprejudiced investigation.[528]
§ 176.4. =The Bender Controversy.=--At the Luther centenary
festival of A.D. 1883, Prof. Bender of Bonn declared that in
the confessional writings of the Reformation evangelical truth
had been obscured by Romish scholasticism, introduced by subtle
jurists and sophistical theologians. This called forth vigorous
opposition, in which two of his colleagues, 38 theological
students, 59 members of the Rhenish synod, took part.
General-Superintendent Baur, also, in a new year’s address,
inveighed against Bender’s statements. On the other hand,
170 students of Bonn, 32 of these theological students, gave a
grand ovation to the “brave vindicator of academic freedom.”
The Rhenish and Westphalian synods bewailed the offence given by
Bender’s address, and protested against its hard and unfounded
attacks upon the confessional writings. At the Westphalian synod,
Prof. Mangold said that the faculty was as much offended at the
address as the church had been, but that its author, when he
found how his words had created such feeling, sought in every
way to repress the agitation, and had intended only to pass a
scientific judgment on ecclesiastical and theological developments.
§ 177. EVANGELICAL UNION AND LUTHERAN SEPARATION.
From A.D. 1817 Prussia favoured and furthered the scheme for union
between the two evangelical churches, and over this question a split
arose in the camp of pietism. On the one hand were the confessionalists,
determined to maintain what was distinctive in their symbols, and on the
other, those who would sacrifice almost anything for union. For the most
part both churches cordially seconded the efforts of the royal head of
the church; only in Silesia did a Lutheran minority refuse to give way,
which still maintains a separate existence.
§ 177.1. =The Evangelical Union.=--Circumstances favoured
this movement. Both in the Lutheran and in the Reformed
church comparatively little stress was laid upon distinctive
confessional doctrines, and pietism and rationalism, for
different reasons, had taught the relative unimportance of dogma.
And so a general accord was given to the king’s proposal, at
the Reformation centenary of A.D. 1817, to fortify the Protestant
church by means of a =Union= of Lutherans and Calvinists. The
new Book of Common Order of A.D. 1822, in the preparation of
which the pious king, Frederick William III., had himself taken
part, was indeed condemned by many as too high-church, even
Catholicizing in its tendency. A revised edition in A.D. 1829,
giving a wider choice of formularies, was legally authorized,
and the union became an accomplished fact. There now existed in
Prussia an evangelical national church with a common government
and liturgy, embracing within it three different sections:
a Lutheran, and a Reformed, which held to their distinctive
doctrines, though not regarding these as a cause of separation,
and a real union party, which completely abandoned the points of
difference. But more and more the union became identified with
doctrinal indifferentism and slighting of all church symbols,
and those in whom the church feeling still prevailed were driven
into opposition to the union (§ 193). The example of Prussia
in sacking the union of the two churches was followed by Nassau,
Baden, Rhenish Bavaria, Anhalt, and to some extent in Hesse
(§§ 194, 196).
§ 177.2. =The Lutheran Separation.=--Though the union denied
that there was any passing over from one church to another, it
practically declared the distinctive doctrines to be unessential,
and so assumed the standpoint of the Reformed church. Steffens
(§ 174, 3), the friend of Scheibel of Breslau, who had been
deprived of his professorship in A.D. 1832 for his determined
opposition to the union, and died in exile in 1843 (§ 195, 2),
headed a reaction in favour of old Lutheranism. Several suspended
clergymen in Silesia held a synod at Breslau in A.D. 1835,
to organize a Lutheran party, but the civil authorities bore
so heavily upon them that most of them emigrated to America
and Australia. Guericke of Halle, secretly ordained pastor,
ministered in his own house to a small company of Lutheran
separatists, was deprived of his professorship in A.D. 1835,
and only restored in A.D. 1840, after he had apologised for his
conduct. From A.D. 1838, the laws were modified by Frederick
William IV., imprisoned clergymen were liberated in A.D. 1840,
and a Lutheran church of Prussia independent of the national
church was constituted by a general synod at Breslau in A.D. 1841,
which received recognition by royal favour in A.D. 1845. The
affairs are administered by a supreme council resident in
Breslau, presided over by the distinguished jurist Huschke. Other
separations were prevented by timely concessions on the part of
the national church. The separatists claim 50,000 members, with
fifty pastors and seven superintendents.
§ 177.3. =The Separation within the Separation.=--Differences
arose among the separate Lutherans, especially over the question
of the visible church. The majority, headed by Huschke, defined
the visible church as an organism of various offices and orders
embracing even unbelievers, which is to be sifted by the divine
judgment. To it belongs the office of church government, which
is a _jus divinum_, and only in respect of outward form a _jus
humanum_. The opposition understood visibility of the preaching
of the word and dispensation of sacraments, and held that
unbelievers belonged as little to the visible as to the invisible
church. The distribution of orders and offices is a merely human
arrangement without divine appointment, individual members are
quite independent of one another, the church recognises no other
government than that of the unfettered preaching of the word, and
each pastor rules in his own congregation. Diedrich of Jabel and
seven other pastors complained of the papistical assumptions of
the supreme council, and at a general synod in A.D. 1860 refused
to recognise the authority of that council, or of a majority of
synods, and in A.D. 1861, along with their congregations, they
formally seceded and constituted the so called Immanuel Synod.
§ 178. EVANGELICAL CONFEDERATION.
The union had only added a third denomination to the two previously
existing, and was the means of even further dissension and separation.
Thus the interests of Protestantism were endangered in presence of the
unbelief within her own borders and the machinations of the ultramontane
Catholics without. An attempt was therefore made in A.D. 1840 to combine
the scattered Protestant forces, by means of confederation, for common
work and conflict with common foes.
§ 178.1. =The Gustavus Adolphus Society.=--In A.D. 1832, on the
two hundredth anniversary of the birth of the saviour of German
Protestantism, on the motion of Superintendent Grossman of
Leipzig, a society was formed for the help of needy Protestant
churches, especially in Catholic districts. At first almost
confined to Saxony, it soon spread over Germany, till only
Bavaria down to A.D. 1849, and Austria down to A.D. 1860, were
excluded by civil enactment from its operations. The masses
were attracted by the simplicity of its basis, which was simply
opposition to Catholicism, and the demagogical Friends of Light
soon found supremacy in its councils. Because of opposition to
the expulsion of Rupp, in A.D. 1846, as an apostate from the
principle of protestantism, great numbers with church leanings
seceded, and attempted to form a rival union in A.D. 1847. After
recovering from the convulsions of A.D. 1848, under the wise
guidance of Zimmermann of Darmstadt, the society regained a solid
position. In A.D. 1883 it had 1,779 branches, besides 392 women’s
and 11 students’ unions, and a revenue for the year of about
£43,000.--The same feeling led to the erection of the =Luther
Monument at Worms=. This work of genius, designed by Rietschel,
and completed after his death in A.D. 1857 by his pupils, and
inaugurated on 25th June, A.D. 1868, represents all the chief
episodes in the Reformation history. It was erected at a cost
of more than £20,000, raised by voluntary contributions, and
the scheme proved so popular that there was a surplus of £2,000,
which was devoted to the founding of bursaries for theological
students.
§ 178.2. =The Eisenach Conference.=--The other German states
borrowed the idea of confederation from Prussia and Württemberg.
It took practical shape in the meetings of deputies at Eisenach,
begun in A.D. 1852, and was held for a time yearly, and
afterwards every second year, to consult together on matters of
worship, discipline and constitution. Beyond ventilating such
questions the conference yielded no result.
§ 178.3. =The Evangelical Alliance.=--An attempt was made in
England, on the motion of Dr. Chalmers (§ 202, 7), at a yet more
comprehensive confederation of all Protestant churches of all
lands against the encroachments of popery and puseyism (§ 202, 2).
After several preliminary meetings the first session of the
=Evangelical Alliance= was held in London in August, A.D. 1846.
Its object was the fraternizing of all evangelical Christians on
the basis of agreement upon the fundamental truths of salvation,
the vindication and spread of this common faith, and contention
for liberty of conscience and religious toleration. Nine articles
were laid down as terms of membership: Belief in the inspiration
of Scripture, in the Trinity, in the divinity of Christ,
in original sin, in justification by faith alone, in the
obligatoriness of the two sacraments, in the resurrection of the
body, in the last judgment, and in the eternal blessedness of the
righteous and the eternal condemnation of the ungodly. It could
thus include Baptists, but not Quakers. In A.D. 1855 it held its
ninth meeting at the great Paris Industrial Exhibition as a sort
of church exhibition, the representatives of different churches
reporting on the condition of their several denominations. The
tenth meeting, of A.D. 1857, was held in Berlin. The council of
the Alliance, presided over by Sir Culling Eardley, presented
an address to King Frederick William IV., in which it was said
that they aimed a blow not only against the sadduceanism, but
also against the pharisaism of the German evangelical church.
The confessional Lutherans, who had opposed the Alliance,
regarded this latter reference as directed against them. The
king, however, received the deputation most graciously, while
declaring that he entertained the brightest hopes for the future
of the church, and urged cordial brotherly love among Christians.
Though many distinguished confessionalists were members of
the Alliance none of them put in an appearance. The members of
the “Protestantenverein” (§ 180) would not take part because
the articles were too orthodox. On the other hand, numerous
representatives of pietism, unionism, Melanchthonianism, as well
as Baptists, Methodists, and Moravians, crowded in from all parts,
and were supported by the leading liberals in church and state.
While there was endless talk about the oneness and differences
of the children of God, about the universal priesthood, about the
superiority of the present meeting over the œcumenical councils
of the ancient church, about the want of spiritual life in
the churches, even where the theology of the confessions was
professed, etc., with denunciations of half-Catholic Lutheranism
and its sacramentarianism and officialism, and many a true
and admirable statement of what the church’s needs are, Merle
d’Aubigné introduced discord by the hearty welcome which
he accorded his friend Bunsen, which was intensified by the
passionate manner in which Krummacher reported upon it. The
gracious royal reception of the members of the Alliance, at which
Krummacher gave expression to his excited feelings in the words,
“Your Majesty, we would all fall not at your feet, but on your
neck!” was described by his brother, Dr. F. W. Krummacher, as a
sensible prelude to the solemn scenes of the last judgment. Sir
Culling Eardley declared, “There is no more the North Sea.” Lord
Shaftesbury said in London that with the Berlin Assembly a new
era had begun in the world’s history; and others who had returned
from it extolled it as a second Pentecost.
§ 178.4. =The Evangelical Church Alliance.=--After the revolution
of A.D. 1848, the most distinguished theologians, clergymen and
laymen well-affected toward the church, sought to bring about
a confederation of the Lutheran, Reformed, United, and Moravian
churches. When they held their second assembly at Wittenberg,
A.D. 1849, many of the strict Lutherans had already withdrawn,
especially those of Silesia. The Lutheran congress, held shortly
before at Leipzig under the presidency of Harless, had pronounced
the confederation unsatisfactory. The political reaction in
favour of the church had also taken away the occasion for such
a confederation. Yet the yearly deliberations of this council
on matters of practical church life did good service. An attempt
made at the Berlin meeting of A.D. 1853 to have the _Augustana_
adopted as the church confession awakened keen opposition. At
the Stuttgart meeting of A.D. 1857 there were violent debates
on foreign missions and evangelical Catholicity between the
representatives of confessional Lutheranism who had hitherto
maintained connection with the confederation and the unionist
majority. The Lutherans now withdrew. The attempt made at
the Berlin October assembly of A.D. 1871, amid the excitement
produced by the glorious issue of the Franco-Prussian War and the
founding of the new German empire with a Protestant prince, to
draw into the confederation confessional Lutherans and adherents
of the “Protestantenverein,” in order to form a grand German
Protestant national church, miscarried, and a meeting of
the confederation in the old style met again at Halle in the
following year. But it was now found that its day was past.
§ 178.5. =The Evangelical League.=--At a meeting of the Prussian
evangelical middle party in autumn, 1886, certain members,
“constrained by grief at the surrender of arms by the Prussian
government in the _Kulturkampf_,” gathered together for private
conference, and resolved in defence of the threatened interests
of the evangelical church to found an “Evangelical League” out
of the various theological and ecclesiastical parties. Prominent
party leaders on both sides being admitted, a number of moderate
representatives of all schools were invited to a consultative
gathering at Erfurt. On January 15th, 1887, a call to join
the membership of the league was issued. It was signed by
distinguished men of the middle party, such as Beyschlag, Riehm
of Halle, etc., moderate representatives of confessionalism and
the positive union, such as Kawerau of Kiel, Fricke of Leipzig,
Witte, Warneck, etc., and liberal theologians like Lipsius and
Nippold of Jena, etc.; and it soon received the addition of
about 250 names. It recognised Jesus Christ, as the only begotten
Son of God, as the only means of salvation, and professed the
fundamental doctrines of the Reformation. It represented the
task of the League as twofold: on the one hand the defending
at all points the interests of the evangelical church against
the advancing pretensions of Rome, and, on the other hand, the
strengthening of the communal consciousness of the Christian
evangelical church against the cramping influence of party,
as well as in opposition to indifferentism and materialism. For
the accomplishment of this task the league organized itself under
the control of a central board with subordinate branches over all
Germany, each having a committee for representing its interests
in the press, and with annual general assemblies of all the
members for common consultation and promulgating of decrees.
§ 179. LUTHERANISM, MELANCHTHONIANISM, AND CALVINISM.
Widespread as the favourable reception of the Prussian union had
been, there were still a number of Lutheran states in which the Reformed
church had scarcely any adherents, _e.g._ Bavaria, Saxony, Hanover,
Mecklenburg, and Schleswig-Holstein; and the same might be said of the
Baltic Provinces and of the three Scandinavian kingdoms. Also in Austria,
France, and Russia the two denominations kept apart; and in Poland, the
union of A.D. 1828 was dissolved in A.D. 1849 (§ 206, 3). The Lutheran
confessional reaction in Prussia afforded stimulus to those who had
thus stood apart. In all lands, amid the conflict with rationalism, the
confessional spirit both of Lutheran and Reformed became more and more
pronounced.
§ 179.1. =Lutheranism within the Union.=--After the Prussian
State church had been undermined by the revolution of A.D. 1848,
an unsuccessful attempt was made to have a pure Lutheran
confessional church set up in its place. At the October assembly
in Berlin, in A.D. 1871, an ineffectual effort was made by the
United Lutherans to co-operate with those who were unionists
on principle. During the agitation caused by the May Laws
(§ 197, 5) and the Sydow proceedings (§ 180, 4), the first general
evangelical Lutheran conference was held in August, A.D. 1873, in
Berlin. It assumed a moderate conciliatory tone toward the union,
pronounced the efforts of the “Protestantenverein” (§ 180) an
apostasy from the fundamental doctrines of the gospel, bewailed
the issuing of the May Laws, protested against their principles,
but acknowledged the duty of obedience, and concluded an address
to the emperor with a petition on behalf of a democratic church
constitution and civil marriage.--The literary organs of the
United Lutherans are the “_Evang. Kirchenzeitung_,” edited by
Hengstenberg, and now by Zöckler, and the “_Allgem. konserv.
Monatsschrift für die christl. Deutschl._,” by Von Nathusius.
§ 179.2. =Lutheranism outside of the Union.=--A general Lutheran
conference was held under the presidency of Harless, in July,
A.D. 1868, at which the sentiments of Kliefoth, denouncing a union
under a common church government without agreement about doctrine
and sacraments, met with almost universal acceptance. At the
Leipzig gathering of A.D. 1870, Luthardt urged the duty of firmly
maintaining doctrinal unity in the Lutheran church. The assembly
of the following year agreed to recognise the emperor as head
of the church only in so far as he did not interfere with the
dispensation of word and sacrament, admitted the legality of
a merely civil marriage but maintained that despisers of the
ecclesiastical ordinance should be subjected to discipline, that
communion fellowship is to be allowed neither to Reformed nor
unionists if fixed residents, but to unionists faithful to the
confession if temporary residents, even without expressly joining
their party; and also with reference to the October assembly of
the previous year the union of the two Protestant churches of
Germany under a mixed system of church government was condemned.
The third general conference of Nüremburg [Nuremberg], in
A.D. 1879, dealt with the questions: Whether the church should
be under State control or free? Whether the schools should
be denominational or not? and in both cases decided in favour
of the latter alternative.--Its literary organ is Luthardt’s
“_Allg. Luth. Kirchenzeitung_.”
§ 179.3. =Melancthonianism [Melanchthonianism] and
Calvinism.=--The Reformed church of Germany has maintained a
position midway between Lutheranism and Calvinism very similar to
the later Melanchthonianism. Ebrard indeed sought to prove that
strict predestinarianism was only an excrescence of the Reformed
system, whereas Schweitzer, purely in the interests of science
(§ 182, 9, 16), has shown that it is its all-conditioning nerve
and centre, to which it owes its wonderful vitality, force, and
consistency. Heppe of Marburg went still further than Ebrard
in his attempt to combine Lutheranism and Calvinism in a
=Melancthonian [Melanchthonian] church= (§ 182, 16), by seeking
to prove that the original evangelical church of Germany was
Melanchthonian, that after Luther’s death the fanatics, more
Lutheran than Luther, founded the so-called Lutheran church
and completed it by issuing the Formula of Concord; that the
Calvinizing of the Palatinate, Hesse, Brandenburg, Anhalt was
only a reaction against hyper- or pseudo-Lutheranism, and that
the restoration of the original Melanchthonianism, and the modern
union movement were only the completion of that restoration.
Schenkel’s earlier contributions to Reformation history moved
in a similar direction. Ebrard also, in A.D. 1851, founded a
“_Ref. Kirchenzeitung_.”--But even the genuine strict =Calvinism=
had zealous adherents during this century, not only in Scotland
(§ 202, 7) and the Netherlands (§ 200, 2), but also in Germany,
especially in the Wupperthal. G. D. Krummacher, from A.D. 1816
pastor in Elberfeld, and his nephew F. W. Krummacher of Barmen,
were long its chief representatives. When Prussia sought in
A.D. 1835 to force the union in the Wupperthal, and threatened
the opposing Reformed pastors with deposition, the revolt here
proved almost as serious as that of the Lutherans in Silesia. The
pastors, with the majority of their people agreed at last to the
union only in so far as it was in accordance with the Reformed
mode of worship. But a portion, embracing their most important
members, stood apart and refused all conciliation. The royal
Toleration Act of A.D. 1847 allowed them to form an independent
congregation at Elberfeld with Dr. Kohlbrügge as their minister.
This divine, formerly Lutheran pastor at Amsterdam, was driven
out owing to a contest with a rationalising colleague, and
afterwards, through study of Calvin’s writings, became an ardent
Calvinist. This body, under the name of the Dutch Reformed
church, constituted the one anti-unionist, strictly Calvinistic
denomination in Prussia.--The De Cock movement (§ 200, 2), out
of which in A.D. 1830 the separate “Chr. Ref. Church of Holland”
sprang, spread over the German frontiers and led to the founding
there of the “Old Ref. Church of East Frisia and Bentheim,” which
has now nine congregations and seven pastors.--At the meeting
of the Evangelical Alliance in New York in A.D. 1873, the
Presbyterians present resolved to convoke an œcumenical Reformed
council. A conference in London in A.D. 1875 brought to maturity
the idea of a Pan-Presbyterian assembly. The council is to meet
every third year; the members recognise the supreme authority
of the Old and New Testament in matters of faith and practice,
and accept the consensus of all the Reformed confessions.
The first “=General Presbyterian Council=” met in Edinburgh
from 3rd to 10th July, A.D. 1877, about 300 delegates being
present. The proceedings consisted in unmeasured glorification
of presbyterianism “drawn from the whole Scripture, from the
seventy elders of the Pentateuch to the twenty-four elders
of the Apocalypse.” The second council met at Philadelphia in
A.D. 1880, and boasted that it represented forty millions of
Presbyterians. It appointed a committee to draw up a consensus
of the confessions of all Reformed churches. The third council of
305 members met at Belfast in A.D. 1884, and after a long debate
declined, by a great majority, to adopt a strictly formulated
consensus of doctrine as uncalled for and undesirable, and by the
reception of the Cumberland Presbyterians they even surrendered
the Westminster Confession (§ 155, 1) as the only symbol
qualifying for membership of the council. The fourth council met
in London in A.D. 1887.--An œcumenical Methodist congress was
held in London in A.D. 1881, attended by 400 delegates.
§ 180. THE “PROTESTANTENVEREIN.”
Rationalists of all descriptions, adherents of Baur’s school, as well
as disciples of Hegel and Schleiermacher of the left wing, kept far off
from every evangelical union. But the common negation of the tendencies
characterizing the evangelical confederations and the common endeavour
after a free, democratic, non-confessional organization of the German
Protestant church, awakened in them a sense of the need of combination
and co-operation. While in North Germany this feeling was powerfully
expressed from A.D. 1854, in the able literary organ the “_Protest.
Kirchenzeitung_,” in South Germany, with Heidelberg as a centre and Dean
Zittel as chief agitator, local “_Protestantenvereine_” were formed,
which combined in a united organization in the Assembly of Frankfort,
A.D. 1863. After long debates the northern and southern societies
were joined in one. In June, A.D. 1865, the first general Protestant
assembly was held at Eisenach, and the nature, motive, and end of the
associations were defined. To these assemblies convened from year to
year members of the society crowded from all parts of Germany in order
to encourage one another to persevere in spreading their views by word
and pen, and to take steps towards the founding of branch associations
for disseminating among the people a Christianity which renounces the
miraculous and sets aside the doctrines of the church.
§ 180.1. =The Protestant Assembly.=--The first general
German Protestant Assembly, composed of 400 clerical and lay
notabilities, met at Eisenach in A.D. 1865, under the presidency
of the jurist Bluntschli of Heidelberg and the chief court
preacher Schwarz of Gotha. A peculiar lustre was given to
the meeting by the presence of Rothe of Heidelberg. Of special
importance was Schwarz’s address on “The Limits of Doctrinal
Freedom in Protestantism,” which he sought not in the confession,
not in the authority of the letter of Scripture, not even
in certain so called fundamental articles, but in the one
religious moral truth of Christianity, the gospel of love
and the divine fatherhood as Christ taught it, expounded it in
his life and sealed it by his death. In Berlin, Osnabrück, and
Leipzig, the churches were refused for services according to the
_Protestantenverein_. In A.D. 1868 fifteen heads of families in
Heidelberg petitioned the ecclesiastical council to grant them
the use of one of the city churches where a believing clergyman
might conduct service in the old orthodox fashion. This request
was refused by fifty votes against four. Baumgarten denounced
this intolerance, and declared that unless repudiated by the
union it would be a most serious stain upon its reputation.
In A.D. 1877 he publicly withdrew from the society.
§ 180.2. =The “_Protestantenverein_” Propaganda.=--The views
of the union were spread by popular lectures and articles in
newspapers and magazines. The “_Protestanten-Bibel_,” edited
by Schmidt and Holtzendorff in A.D. 1872, of which an English
translation has been published, giving the results of New
Testament criticism, “laid the axe at the root of the dogmatics
and confessionalism,” and proved that “we are still Christians
though our conception of Christianity diverges in many points
from that of the second century, and we proclaim a Christianity
without miracles and in accordance with the modern theory of
the universe.” The success of such efforts to spread the broad
theology has been greatly over-estimated. Enthusiastic partisans
of the union claimed to have the whole evangelical world at their
back, while Holtzendorff boasted that they had all thoughtful
Germans with them.
§ 180.3. =Sufferings Endured.=--In many instances members of
the society were disciplined, suspended and deposed. In October,
A.D. 1880, =Beesenmeyer= of Mannheim, on his appointment to
Osnabrück, was examined by the consistory. He confessed an
economic but not an essential Trinity, the sinlessness and
perfect godliness but not the divinity of Christ, the atoning
power of Christ’s death but not the doctrine of vicarious
satisfaction. He was pronounced unorthodox, and so unfit to hold
office. =Schroeder=, a pastor in the consistory of Wiesbaden in
A.D. 1871, on his refusing to use the Apostles’ Creed at baptism
and confirmation, was deposed, but on appealing to the minister
of worship, Dr. Falk, he was restored in the beginning of
A.D. 1874. The Stettin consistory declined to ordain Dr. =Hanne=
on account of his work “_Der ideale u. d. geschichtl. Christus_,”
and an appeal to the superior court and another to the king were
unsuccessful. Several members of the church protested against
the call of Dr. =Ziegler= to Liegnitz in A.D. 1873, on account
of his trial discourse and a previous lecture on the authority
of the Bible, and the consistory refused to sustain the call.
The Supreme Church Council, however, when appealed to, declared
itself satisfied with Ziegler’s promise to take unconditionally
the ordination vow, which requires acceptance of the fundamental
doctrines of the gospel and not the peculiar theological system
of the symbols.
§ 180.4. The conflicts in =Berlin= were specially sharp.
In A.D. 1872 the aged pastor of the so called New Church,
Dr. =Sydow=, delivered a lecture on the miraculous birth of
Jesus, in which he declared that he was the legitimate son
of Joseph and Mary. His colleague, Dr. =Lisco=, son of the
well-known commentator, spoke of legendary elements in the
Apostles’ Creed, and denied its authority. Lisco was reprimanded
and cautioned by the consistory. Sydow was deposed. He appealed,
together with twenty-six clergymen of the province of Brandenburg,
and twelve Berlin pastors, to the Supreme Church Council. The
Jena theologians also presented a largely signed petition to
Dr. Falk against the procedure of the consistory, while the Weimar
and Württemberg clergy sent a petition in favour of maintaining
strict discipline. The superior court reversed the sentence, on
the ground that the lecture was not given in the exercise of his
office, and severely reprimanded Sydow for giving serious offence
by its public delivery. At a Berlin provincial synod in A.D. 1877,
an attack was made by pastor =Rhode= on creed subscription.
=Hossbach=, preaching in a vacant church, declared that he
repudiated the confessional doctrine of the divinity of Christ,
regarded the life of Jesus in the gospels as a congeries of
myths, etc. Some loudly protested and others as eagerly pressed
for his settlement. The consistory accepted Rhode’s retractation
and annulled Hossbach’s call. The Supreme Church Council supported
the consistory, and issued a strict order to its president to
suffer no departure from the confession. The congregation next
chose Dr. =Schramm=, a pronounced adherent of the same party, who
was also rejected. In A.D. 1879 =Werner=, biographer of Boniface,
a more moderate disciple of the same school, holding a sort of
Arian position, received the appointment. When, in A.D. 1880,
the Supreme Church Council demanded of Werner a clear statement
of his belief regarding Scripture, the divinity and resurrection
of Christ, and the Apostles Creed, and on receiving his reply
summoned him to a conference at Berlin, he resigned his office.
§ 180.5. The conflicts in Schleswig Holstein also caused
considerable excitement. Pastor =Kühl= of Oldensworth had
published an article at Easter, A.D. 1880, entitled, “The Lord
is Risen indeed,” in which the resurrection was made purely
spiritual. He was charged with violating his ordination vow,
sectaries pointed to his paper as proof of their theory that
the state church was the apocalyptic Babylon, and petitions from
115 ministers and 2,500 laymen were presented against him to
the consistory of Kiel. The consistory exhorted Kühl to be more
careful and his opponents to be more patient. In the same year,
however, he published a paper in which he denied that the order
of nature was set aside by miracles. He was now advised to give
up writing and confine himself to his pastoral work. A pamphlet
by Decker on “The Old Faith and the New,” was answered by =Lühr=,
and his mode of dealing with the ordination vow was of such a
kind as to lead pastor Paulsen to speak of it as a “chloroforming
of his conscience.”
§ 181. DISPUTES ABOUT FORMS OF WORSHIP.
During the eighteenth century the services of the evangelical church
had become thoroughly corrupted and disordered under the influence
of the “Illumination,” and were quite incapable of answering to the
Christian needs and ecclesiastical tastes of the nineteenth century.
Whenever there was a revival in favour of the faith of their fathers,
a movement was made in the direction of improved forms of worship. The
Rationalists and Friends of Light, however, prevented progress except
in a few states. Even the official Eisenach Conference did no more than
prepare the way and indicate how action might afterwards be taken.
§ 181.1. =The Hymnbook.=--Traces of the vandalism of the
Illumination were to be seen in all the hymnbooks. The noble poet
Ernst Moritz Arndt was the first to enter the lists as a restorer;
and various attempts were made by Von Elsner, Von Raumer, Bunsen,
Stier, Knapp, Daniel, Harms, etc., to make collections of sacred
songs answerable to the revived Christian sentiment of the people.
These came to be largely used, not in the public services, but
in family worship, and prepared the way for official revisal of
the books for church use. The Eisenach Conference of A.D. 1853
resolved to issue 150 classical hymns with the old melodies as
an appendix to the old collection and a pattern for further work.
Only with difficulty was the resolution passed to make A.D. 1750
the _terminus ad quem_ in the choice of pieces. Wackernagel
insisted on a strict adherence to the original text and retired
from the committee when this was not agreed to. Only in a few
states has the Eisenach collection been introduced; _e.g._ in
Bavaria, where it has been incorporated in its new hymnbook.
§ 181.2. =The Book of Chorales.=--In A.D. 1814, Frederick
William III. of Prussia sought to secure greater prominence
to the liturgy in the church service. In A.D. 1817, Natorp of
Münster expressed himself strongly as to the need of restoring
the chorale to its former position, and he was followed by the
jurist Thibaut, whose work on “The Purity of Tone” has been
translated into English. The reform of the chorale was carried
out most vigorously in Württemberg, but it was in Bavaria that
the old chorale in its primitive simplicity was most widely
introduced.
§ 181.3. =The Liturgy.=--Under the reign of the Illuminists the
liturgy had suffered even more than the hymns. The Lutherans now
went back to the old Reformation models, and liturgical services,
with musical performances, became popular in Berlin. Conferences
held at Dresden did much for liturgical reform, and the able
works and collections of Schöberlein supplied abundant materials
for the practical carrying out of the movement.
§ 181.4. =The Holy Scriptures.=--The Calw Bible in its fifth
edition adopted somewhat advanced views on inspiration, the canon
and authenticity, while maintaining generally the standpoint
of the most reverent and pious students of scripture. Bunsen’s
commentary assumed a “mediating” position, and the “Protestant
Bible” on the New Testament, translated into English, that of
the advanced school. Besser’s expositions of the New Testament
books, of which we have in English those on John’s gospel, had
an unexampled popularity. The Eisenach Conference undertook
a revision of Luther’s translation of the Bible. The revised
New Testament was published in A.D. 1870, and accepted by some
Bible societies. The much more difficult task of Old Testament
revision was entrusted to a committee of distinguished university
theologians, which concluded its labours in A.D. 1881. A “proof”
Bible was issued in A.D. 1883, and the final corrected rendering
in A.D. 1886. A whole legion of pamphlets were now issued
from all quarters. Some bitterly opposing any change in the
Luther-text, others severely criticising the work, so that the
whole movement seems now at a standstill.[529]--In England, in
May, 1885, the work of revision of the English version of the
Bible, undertaken by order of convocation, was completed after
fifteen years’ labour, and issued jointly by the two universities
of Oxford and Cambridge. The revised New Testament, prepared
four years previously, had been telegraphed in short sections to
America by the representative of the _New York Herald_, so that
the complete work appeared there rather earlier than in England.
But in the case of the Old Testament revision such freebooting
industry was prevented by the strict and careful reserve of all
concerned in the work. The revised New Testament had meanwhile
never been introduced into the public services; whether the
completed Bible will ever succeed in overcoming this prejudice
remains to be seen.[530]
§ 182. PROTESTANT THEOLOGY IN GERMANY.
The real founder of modern Protestant theology, the Origen of the
nineteenth century, is Schleiermacher. His influence was so powerful
and manysided that it extended not merely to his own school, but
also in almost all directions, even to the Catholic church, embracing
destructive and constructive tendencies such as appeared before
in Origen and Erigena. Alongside of the vulgar rationalism, which
still had notable representatives, De Wette founded the new school
of historico-critical rationalism, and Neander that of pietistic
supernaturalism, which soon overshadowed the two older schools of
rational and supra-rational supernaturalism. On the basis of Schelling’s
and Hegel’s philosophy Daub founded the school of speculative theology
with an evangelical tendency; but after Hegel’s death it split into
a right and left wing. As the former could not maintain its position,
its adherents by-and-by went over to other schools; and the latter,
setting aside speculation and dogmatics, applied itself to the critical
investigation of the early history of Christianity, and founded the
school of Baur at Tübingen. Schleiermacher’s school also split into a
right and left wing. Each of them took the union as its standard; but
the right, which claimed to be the “German” and the “Modern” theology,
wished a union under a consensus of the confessions, and sought to
effect an accommodation between the old faith and the modern liberalism;
whereas the left wished union without a confession, and unconditioned
toleration of “free science.” This latter tendency, however, secured
greater prominence and importance from A.D. 1854, through combination
with the representatives of the historico-critical and the younger
generation of the Baurian school, from which originated the “free
Protestant” theology. On the other hand, under the influence of pietism,
there has arisen since A.D. 1830, especially in the universities
of Erlangen, Leipzig, Rostock, and Dorpat, a Lutheran confessional
school, which seeks to develop a Lutheran system of theology of the
type of Gerhard and Bengel. A similar tendency has also shown itself
in the Reformed church. The most recent theological school is that
founded by Ritschl, resting on a Lutheran basis but regarded by the
confessionalists as rather allied to the “free Protestant” theology,
on account of its free treatment of certain fundamental doctrines of
Lutheranism.--Theological contributions from Scandinavia, England,
and Holland are largely indebted to German theology.
§ 182.1. =Schleiermacher, A.D. 1768-1834.=--Thoroughly grounded
in philosophy and deeply imbued with the pious feeling of the
Moravians among whom he was trained, Schleiermacher began his
career in A.D. 1807 as professor and university preacher at Halle,
but, to escape French domination, went in the same year to Berlin,
where by speech and writing he sought to arouse German patriotism.
There he was appointed preacher in A.D. 1809, and professor
in A.D. 1810, and continued to hold these offices till his
death in A.D. 1834. In A.D. 1799 he published five “_Reden
über d. Religion_.” In these it was not biblical and still
less ecclesiastical Christianity which he sought with glowing
eloquence to address to the hearts of the German people, but
Spinozist pantheism. The fundamental idea of his life, that God,
“the absolute unity,” cannot be reached in thought nor grasped
by will, but only embraced in feeling as immediate consciousness,
and hence that feeling is the proper seat of religion, appears
already in his early productions as the centre of his system. In
the following year, A.D. 1800, he set forth his ethical theory
in five “Monologues:” every man should in his own way represent
humanity in a special blending of its elements. The study and
translation of Plato, which occupied him now for several years,
exercised a powerful influence upon him. He approached more and
more towards positive Christianity. In a Christmas Address in
A.D. 1803 on the model of Plato’s Symposium, he represents Christ
as the divine object of all faith. In A.D. 1811 he published his
“Short Outline of Theological Study,” which has been translated
into English, a masterly sketch of theological encyclopædia. In
A.D. 1821 he produced his great masterpiece, “_Der Chr. Glaube_,”
which makes feeling the seat of all religion as immediate
consciousness of absolute dependence, perfectly expressed in
Jesus Christ, whose life redeems the world. The task of dogmatics
is to give scientific expression to the Christian consciousness
as seen the life of the redeemed; it has not to prove,
but only to work out and exhibit in relation to the whole
spiritual life what is already present as a fact of experience.
Thus dogmatics and philosophy are quite distinct. He proves
the evangelical Protestant character of the doctrines thus
developed by quotations from the consensus of both confessions.
Notwithstanding his protest, many of his contemporaries still
found remnants of Spinozist pantheism. On certain points too,
he failed to satisfy the claims of orthodoxy; _e.g._ in his
Sabellian doctrine of the Trinity, his theory of election, his
doctrine of the canon, and his account of the beginning and
close of our Lord’s life, the birth and the ascension.[531]
§ 182.2. =The Older Rationalistic Theology.=--The older,
so-called vulgar rationalism, was characterized by the
self-sufficiency with which it rejected all advances from
philosophy and theology, science and national literature. The
new school of historico-critical rationalism availed itself
of every aid in the direction of scientific investigation. The
father of the vulgar rationalism of this age was =Röhr= of Weimar,
who exercised his ingenuity in proving how one holding such
views might still hold office in the church. To this school also
belonged =Paulus= of Heidelberg, described by Marheineke as one
who believes he thinks and thinks he believes but was incapable
of either; =Wegscheider= of Halle, who in his “_Institutions
theol. Christ. dogmaticæ_” repudiates miracles; =Bretschneider=
of Gotha, who began as a supernaturalist and afterwards went over
to extreme rationalism; and =Ammon= of Dresden, who afterwards
passed over to rational supernaturalism.
§ 182.3. The founder of =Historico-critical Rationalism= was
=De Wette=; a contemporary of Schleiermacher in Berlin University,
but deprived of office in A.D. 1819 for sending a letter of
condolence to the mother of Sands, which was regarded as an
apology for his crime. From A.D. 1822 till his death in A.D. 1849
he continued to work unweariedly in Basel. His theological
position had its starting point in the philosophy of his friend
Fries, which he faithfully adhered to down to the end of his life.
His friendship with Schleiermacher had also a powerful influence
upon him. He too placed religion essentially in feeling,
which, however, he associated much more closely with knowledge
and will. In the church doctrines he recognised an important
symbolical expression of religious truths, and so by the out and
out rationalist he was all along sneered at as a mystic. But his
chief strength lay in the sharp critical treatment which he gave
to the biblical canon and the history of the O.T. and N.T. His
commentaries on the whole of the N.T. are of permanent value, and
contain his latest thoughts, when he had approached most nearly
to positive Christianity. His literary career began in A.D. 1806
with a critical examination of the books of Chronicles. He also
wrote on the Psalms, on Jewish history, on Jewish archæology,
and made a new translation of the Bible. His Introductions to
the O.T. and N.T. have been translated into English.--=Winer=
of Leipzig is best known by his “Grammar of New Testament Greek,”
first published in A.D. 1822, of which several English and
American translations have appeared, the latest and best that of
Dr. Moulton, made in A.D. 1870, from the sixth German edition. He
also edited an admirable “_Bibl. Reallexicon_,” and wrote a work
on symbolics which has been translated into English under the
title “A Comparative View of the Doctrines and Confessions of the
Various Communities of Christendom” (Edin., 1873).--=Gesenius=
of Halle, who died A.D. 1842, has won a high reputation by
his grammatical and lexicographical services and as author of
a commentary on Isaiah--=Hupfeld= of Marburg and Halle, who died
A.D. 1866, best known by his work in four vols. on the Psalms,
in his critical attitude toward the O.T., belonged to the same
party.--=Hitzig= of Zürich and Heidelberg, who died A.D. 1875,
far outstripped all the rest in genius and subtlety of mind and
critical acuteness. He wrote commentaries on most of the prophets
and critical investigations into the O.T. history.--=Ewald= of
Göttingen, A.D. 1803-1875, whose hand was against every man and
every man’s hand against him, held the position of recognised
dictator in the domain of Hebrew grammar, and uttered oracles as
an infallible expounder of the biblical books. In his _Journal
for Biblical Science_, he held an annual _auto da fe_ of all
the biblico-theological literature of the preceding year;
and, assuming a place alongside of Isaiah and Jeremiah, he
pronounced in every preface a prophetic burden against the
theological, ecclesiastical, or political ill doers of his time.
His exegetical writings on the poetical and prophetical books
of the O.T., his “History of Israel down to the Post-Apostolic
Age,” and a condensed reproduction of his “Bible Doctrine of
God,” under the title: “Revelation, its Nature and Record” and
“Old and New Testament Theology,” have all appeared in English
translations, and exhibit everywhere traces of brilliant genius
and suggestive originality.[532]
§ 182.4. =Supernaturalism= of the older type (§ 171, 8) was
now represented by Storr, Reinhard, Planck, Knapp, and Stäudlin.
In Württemberg Storr’s school maintained its pre-eminence
down to A.D. 1830. Neander, Tholuck, and Hengstenberg may
be described as the founders and most powerful enunciators
of the more recent =Pietistic Supernaturalism=. Powerfully
influenced by Schleiermacher, his colleague in Berlin, =Neander=,
A.D. 1789-1850, exercised an influence such as no other
theological teacher had exerted since Luther and Melanchthon.
Adopting Schleiermacher’s standpoint, he regarded religion as
a matter of feeling: _Pectus est quod theologum facit_. By his
subjective pectoral theology he became the father of modern
scientific pietism, but it incapacitated him from understanding
the longing of the age for the restoration of a firm objective
basis for the faith. He was adverse to the Hegelian philosophy
no less than to confessionalism. Neander was so completely a
pectoralist, that even his criticism was dominated by feeling,
as seen in his vacillations on questions of N.T. authenticity
and historicity. His “Church History,” of which we have
admirable English translations, was an epoch-making work, and
his historical monographs were the result of careful original
research.[533]--=Tholuck=, A.D. 1799-1877, from A.D. 1826
professor at Halle, at first devoted to oriental studies,
roused to practical interests by Baron von Kottwitz of Berlin,
gave himself with all his wide culture by preaching, lecturing
and conversing to lead his students to Christ. His scientific
theology was latitudinarian, but had the warmth and freshness
of immediate contact with the living Saviour. His most important
works are apologetical and exegetical. In his “Preludes to
the History of Rationalism” he gives curious glimpses into the
scandalous lives of students in the seventeenth century; and he
afterwards confessed that these studies had helped to draw him
into close sympathy with confessionalism. While always lax in his
views of authenticity, he came to adopt a very decided position
in regard to revelation and inspiration.--=Hengstenberg=,
A.D. 1802-1869, from A.D. 1826 professor in Berlin, had quite
another sort of development. Rendered determined by innumerable
controversies, in none of which he abated a single hair’s breadth,
he looked askance at science as a gift of the Danaides, and set
forth in opposition to rationalism and naturalism a system of
theology unmodified by all the theories of modern times. Born in
the Reformed church and in his understanding of Scripture always
more Calvinist than Lutheran, rationalising only upon miracles
that seemed to detract from the dignity of God, and in his
later years inclined to the Romish doctrine of justification, he
may nevertheless claim to be classed among the confessionalists
within the union. He deserves the credit of having given a great
impulse to O.T. studies and a powerful defence of O.T. books,
though often abandoning the position of an apologist for that
of an advocate. His “Christology of the Old Testament,” in
four vols., “Genuineness of the Pentateuch and Daniel,” three
vols., “Egypt and the Books of Moses,” commentaries on Psalms,
Ecclesiastes, Ezekiel, the Gospel of John, Revelation, and his
“History of the Kingdom of God in the Old Testament,” have all
been translated into English.
§ 182.5. The so called =Rational Supernaturalism= admits the
supernatural revelation in holy scripture, and puts reason
alongside of it as an equally legitimate source of religious
knowledge, and maintains the rationality of the contents of
revelation. Its chief representative was =Baumgarten-Crusius=
of Jena. Of a similar tendency, but more influenced by æsthetic
culture and refined feeling, and latterly inclining more and
more to the standpoint of “free Protestantism,” =Carl Hase=,
after seven years’ work in Tübingen, opened his Jena career in
A.D. 1830, which he closed by resigning his professorship in
A.D. 1883, after sixty years’ labour in the theological chair.
In his “Life of Jesus,” first published A.D. 1829, he represents
Christ as the ideal man, sinless but not free from error, endowed
with the fulness of love and the power of pure humanity, as
having truly risen and become the author of a new life in the
kingdom of God, of which the very essence is most purely and
profoundly expressed in the gospel of the disciple who lay upon
the Master’s heart. The latest revision of this work, issued
in A.D. 1876 under the title “_Geschichte Jesu_,” treats the
fourth gospel as non-Johnannine in authorship and mythical in its
contents, and explains the resurrection by the theory of a swoon
or a vision. In his “_Hutterus Redivivus_,” A.D. 1828, twelfth
edition 1883, he seeks to set forth the Lutheran dogmatic as
Hutter might have done had he lived in these days. This led to
the publication of controversial pamphlets in A.D. 1834-1837,
which dealt the deathblow to the _Rationalismus Vulgaris_. His
“Church History,” distinguished by its admirable little sketches
of leading personalities, was published in A.D. 1834, and the
seventh edition of A.D. 1854 has been translated into English.
§ 182.6. =Speculative Theology.=--Its founder was =Daub=,
professor at Heidelberg from A.D. 1794 till his death in
A.D. 1836. Occupying and writing from the philosophical
standpoints of Kant, Fichte, and Schelling successively, he
published in A.D. 1816 “Judas Iscariot,” an elaborate discussion
of the nature of evil, but passed over in A.D. 1833, with his
treatise on dogmatics, to the Hegelian position. He exerted
great influence as a professor, but his writings proved to most
unintelligible.--=Marheineke= of Berlin in the first edition
of his “Dogmatics” occupied the standpoint of Schelling, but in
the second set forth Lutheran orthodoxy in accordance with the
formulæ of the Hegelian system.--After Hegel’s death in A.D. 1831
his older pupils =Rosenkranz= and =Göschel= sought to enlist his
philosophy in the service of orthodoxy. =Richter= was the first
to give offence, by his “Doctrine of the Last Things,” in which
he denounced the doctrine of immortality in the sense of personal
existence after death. =Strauss=, A.D. 1808-1874, represented
the “Life of Jesus,” in his work of A.D. 1835, as the product
of unintentional romancing, and in his “_Glaubenslehre_” of
A.D. 1840, sought to prove that all Christian doctrines are
put an end to by modern science, and openly taught pantheism
as the residuum of Christianity. =Bruno Bauer=, after passing
from the right to the left Hegelian wing, described the gospels
as the product of conscious fraud, and =Ludwig Feuerbach=,
in his “Essence of Christianity,” A.D. 1841, set forth in all
its nakedness the new gospel of self-adoration. The breach
between the two parties in the school was now complete. Whatever
Rosenkranz and Schaller from the centre, and Göschel and Gabler
from the right, did to vindicate the honour of the system,
they could not possibly restore the for ever shattered illusion
that it was fundamentally Christian. Those of the right fell
back into the camps of “the German theology” and the Lutheran
confessionalism; while in the latest times the left has no
prominent theological representative but Biedermann of Zürich.
§ 182.7. =The Tübingen School.=--Strauss was only the advanced
skirmisher of a school which was proceeding under an able leader
to subject the history of early Christianity to a searching
examination. =Fred. Chr. Baur= of Tübingen, A.D. 1792-1860,
almost unequalled among his contemporaries in acuteness,
diligence, and learning, a pupil of Schleiermacher and Hegel,
devoted himself mainly to historical research about the
beginnings of Christianity. In this department he proceeded to
reject almost everything that had previously been believed. He
denied the genuineness of all the New Testament writings, with
the exception of Revelation and the Epistles to the Romans,
Galatians, and Corinthians; treating the rest as forgeries of
the second century, resulting from a bitter struggle between
the Petrine and Pauline parties. This scheme was set forth in
a rudimentary form in the treatise on “The So-called Pastoral
Epistles of the Apostle Paul,” A.D. 1835. His works, “Paul, the
Apostle,” and the “History of the First Three Centuries,” have
been translated into English. He had as collaborateurs in this
work, Schwegler, Zeller, Hilgenfeld, Volkmar, etc. =Ritschl=,
who was at first an adherent of the school, made important
concessions to the right, and in the second edition of his
great work, “_Die Entstehung d. alt-kath. Kirche_,” of A.D. 1857,
announced himself as an opponent. =Hilgenfeld= of Jena, too,
marked out new lines for himself in New Testament Introduction
and in the estimate of early church doctrine, modifying in
various ways the positions of Baur. The labours of this school
and its opponents have done signal service in the cause of
science.
§ 182.8. =Strauss=, who had meanwhile occupied himself with the
studies of Von Hutten, Reimarus, and Lessing’s “Nathan,” feeling
that the researches of the Tübingen school had antiquated his
“Life of Jesus,” and stimulated by Renan’s “Life of Jesus,”
written with French elegance and vivacity, in which he described
Christ as an amiable hero of a Galilæan village story, undertook
in 1864 a semi-jubilee reproduction of his work, addressed to
“the German people.” This was followed by a severe controversial
pamphlet, “The Half and the Whole,” in which he lashed the
halting attempts of Schenkel as well as the uncompromising
conservatism of Hengstenberg. He now pointed out cases of
intentional romancing in the gospel narratives; the resurrection
rests upon subjective visions of Christ’s disciples. His
“Lectures on Voltaire” appeared in A.D. 1870, and in A.D. 1872
the most radical of all his books, “The Old and the New Faith,”
which makes Christianity only a modified Judaism, the history
of the resurrection mere “humbug,” and the whole gospel story
the result of the “hallucinations” of the early Christians. The
question whether “we” are still Christians he answers openly
and honourably in the negative. He has also surmounted the
standpoint of pantheism. The religion of the nineteenth century
is _pancosmism_, its gospel the results of natural science
with Darwin’s discoveries as its bible, its devotional works
the national classics, its places of worship the concert rooms,
theatres, museums, etc. The most violent attacks on this book
came from the _Protestantenverein_. Strauss had said, “If
the old faith is absurd, then the modernized edition of the
‘_Protestantenverein_’ and the school of Jena is doubly, trebly
so. The old faith only contradicts reason, not itself; the
new contradicts itself at every point, and how can it then
be reconciled with reason?”[534]
§ 182.9. =The Mediating Theology.=--This tendency originated
from the right wing of the school of Schleiermacher, still
influenced more or less by the pectoralism of Neander. It adopted
in dogmatics a more positive and in criticism a more conservative
manner. It earnestly sought to promote the interests of the
union not merely as a combination for church government, but as
a communion under a confessional consensus. Its chief theological
organs were the “_Studien und Kritiken_,” started in A.D. 1828,
edited by Ullmann and Umbreit in Heidelberg, afterwards by
Riehm and Köstlin in Halle, and the “_Jahrbücher für deutsche
Theologie_” of Dorner and Leibner, A.D. 1856-1878.--Although the
mediating theology sought to sink all confessional differences,
denominational descent was more or less traceable in most of its
adherents. Its leading representatives from the =Reformed church=
were: =Alexander Schweizer=, who most faithfully preserved the
critical tendency of Schleiermacher, and, in a style far abler
and subtler than any other modern theologian, expounded the
Reformed system of doctrine in its rigid logical consistency.
In his own system he gives a scientific exposition of the
evangelical faith from the unionist standpoint, with many pious
reflections on Scripture and the confession as well as results of
Christian experience, based upon the threefold manifestation of
God set forth without miracle in the physical order of the world,
in the moral order of the world, and in the historical economy
of the kingdom of God.--=Sack=, one of the oldest and most
positive of Schleiermacher’s pupils, professor at Bonn, then
superintendent at Magdeburg, wrote on apologetics and polemics.
=Hagenbach= of Basel, A.D. 1801-1874, is well-known by his
“Theological Encyclopædia and Methodology,” “History of the
Reformation,” and “History of the Church in the Eighteenth
and Nineteenth Centuries,” all of which are translated into
English.--=John Peter Lange= of Bonn, A.D. 1802-1884, a man
of genius, imaginative, poetic, and speculative, with strictly
positive tendencies, widely known by his “Life of Christ” and the
commentary on Old and New Testament, edited and contributed to by
him.--=Dr. Philip Schaff= may also be named as the transplanter
of German theology of the Neander-Tholuck type to the American
soil. Born in Switzerland, he accepted a call as professor to the
theological seminary of the German Reformed church at Mercersburg
in 1843. He soon fell under suspicion of heresy, but was
acquitted by the Synod of New York in 1845. In 1869 he accepted
a call to a professorship in the richly endowed Presbyterian
Union Theological Seminary of New York. Writing first in German
and afterwards in English, his works treat of almost all the
branches of theological science, especially in history and
exegesis. He is also president of several societies engaged
in active Christian work.
§ 182.10. Among those belonging originally to the =Lutheran
church= were Schleiermacher’s successor in Berlin, =Twesten=,
whose dogmatic treatise did not extend beyond the doctrine of
God, a faithful adherent of Schleiermacher’s right wing on the
Lutheran side; =Nitzsch=, professor in Bonn A.D. 1822-1847, and
afterwards of Berlin till his death in A.D. 1868, best known by
his “System of Christian Doctrine,” and his Protestant reply to
Möhler’s “Symbolism,” a profound thinker with a noble Christian
personality, and one of the most influential among the consensus
theologians. =Julius Müller= of Halle, A.D. 1801-1878, if we
except his theory of an ante-temporal fall, occupied the common
doctrinal platform of the confessional unionists. His chief work,
“The Christian Doctrine of Sin,” is a masterpiece of profound
thinking and original research. =Ullmann=, A.D. 1796-1865,
professor in Halle and Heidelberg, a noble and peace-loving
character, distinguished himself in the domain of history by his
monograph on “Gregory Nazianzen,” his “Reformers before the
Reformation,” and most of all by his beautiful apologetical
treatise on the “Sinlessness of Jesus.”--=Isaac Aug. Dorner=,
A.D. 1809-1884, born and educated in Württemberg, latterly
professor in Berlin, applied himself mainly to the elaborating
of Christian doctrine, and gave to the world, in his “Doctrine of
the Person of Christ,” in A.D. 1839, a work of careful historical
research and theological speculation. The fundamental ideas of
his Christology are the theory favoured by the “German” theology
generally of the necessity of the incarnation even apart from sin
(which Müller strongly opposed), and the notion of the archetypal
Christ, the God-Man, as the collective sum of humanity, in whom
“are gathered the patterns of all several individualities.” His
“System of Christian Doctrine” formed the copestone of an almost
fifty years’ academical career. Christ’s virgin birth is admitted
as the condition of the essential union in Him of divinity and
humanity; but the incarnation of the Logos extends through the
whole earthly life of the Redeemer; it is first completed in
his exaltation by means of his resurrection; it was therefore
an operation of the Logos, as principle of all divine movement,
_extra carnem_. His “System of Christian Ethics” was edited
after his death by his son.[535]--=Richard Rothe=, A.D. 1799-1867,
appointed in A.D. 1823 chaplain to the Prussian embassy at Rome,
where he became intimately acquainted with Bunsen. In A.D. 1828
he was made ephorus at the preachers’ seminary of Wittenberg,
and afterwards professor in Bonn and Heidelberg. Rothe was one
of the most profound thinkers of the century, equalled by none
of his contemporaries in the grasp, depth, and originality of
his speculation. Though influenced by Schleiermacher, Neander,
and Hegel, he for a long time withdrew like an anchoret from the
strife of theologians and philosophers, and took up a position
alongside of Oetinger in the chamber of the theosophists. His
mental and spiritual constitution had indeed much in common with
that great mystic. In his first important work, “_Die Anfänge
der chr. Kirche_,” he gave expression to the idea that in its
perfected form the church becomes merged into the state. The same
thought is elaborated in his “Theological Ethics,” a work which
in depth, originality, and conclusiveness of reasoning is almost
unapproached, and is full of the most profound Christian views
in spite of its many heterodoxies. In his later years he took
part in the ecclesiastical conflicts in Baden (§ 196, 3) with
the _Protestantenverein_ (§ 180, 1), and entered the arena of
public ecclesiastical life.[536]--=Beyschlag= of Halle, in his
“_Christologie d. N. T._,” A.D. 1866, carried out Schleiermacher’s
idea of Christ as only man, not God and man but the ideal of
man, not of two natures but only one, the archetypal human, which,
however, as such is divine, because the complete representation
of the divine nature in the human. From this standpoint, too,
he vindicates the authenticity of John’s Gospel, and from Romans
ix.-xi. works out a “Pauline Theodicy.”--=Hans Lassen Martensen=,
A.D. 1808-1884, professor at Copenhagen, Bishop of Zealand
and primate of Denmark, with high speculative endowments and
a considerable tincture of theosophical mysticism, has become
through his “Christian Dogmatics,” “Christian Ethics,” in three
vols., etc., of a thoroughly Lutheran type, one of the best known
theologians of the century.
§ 182.11. Among =Old Testament exegetes= the most distinguished
are: =Umbreit=, A.D. 1795-1860, of Heidelberg, who wrote from
the supernaturalist standpoint, influenced by Schleiermacher
and Herder, commentaries on Solomon’s writings and those of the
prophets, and on Job; =Bertheau= of Göttingen, of Ewald’s school,
wrote historico-critical and philological commentaries on the
historical books; and =Dillmann=, Hengstenberg’s successor in
Berlin, specially distinguished for his knowledge of the Ethiopic
language and literature, has written critical commentaries on
the Pentateuch and Job.--Among =New Testament exegetes= we may
mention: =Lücke= of Göttingen, known by his commentary on John’s
writings; =Bleek=, the able New Testament critic and commentator
on the Epistle to the Hebrews; =Meyer=, A.D. 1800-1873, most
distinguished of all, whose “Critical and Exegetical Commentary
on the New Testament,” begun in A.D. 1832, in which he was
aided by Huther, Lunemann, and Düsterdieck, is well-known in its
English edition as the most complete exegetical handbook to the
New Testament; =Weiss= of Kiel and Berlin, author of treatises
on the doctrinal systems of Peter and of John, “The Biblical
Theology of the New Testament,” “Life of Christ,” “Introduction
to New Testament,” revises and rewrites commentaries on Mark,
Luke, John, and Romans, in the last edition of the Meyer
series.--A laborious student in the domain of New Testament
textual criticism was =Constant. von Tischendorff [Tischendorf]=
of Leipzig, A.D. 1815-1874, who ransacked all the libraries
of Europe and the East in the prosecution of his work. The
publication of several ancient codices, _e.g._ the _Cod.
Sinaiticus_, a present from the Sinaitic monks to the czar on
the thousandth anniversary of the Russian empire in A.D. 1862,
the _Cod. Vaticanus N.T._, a new edition of the LXX., the most
complete collection of New Testament apocrypha and pseudepigraphs,
and finally a whole series of editions of the New Testament (from
A.D. 1841-1873 there appeared twenty-four editions, of which the
_Editio Octava Major_ of 1872 is the most complete in critical
apparatus), are the rich and ripe fruits of his researches.
A second edition, compared throughout with the recensions of
Tregelles and Westcott and Hort, was published by =Von Gebhardt=,
and a third volume of Prolegomena was added by C. R. Gregory.
As a theologian he attached himself, especially in later years,
to the Lutheranism of his Leipzig colleagues, and on questions
of criticism and introduction took up a strictly conservative
position as seen in his well known tract, “When were our Gospels
written?”
§ 182.12. Among the university teachers of his time =John Tob.
Beck=, A.D. 1804-1878, assumed a position all his own. After
a pastorate of ten years he began in A.D. 1836 his academical
career in Basel, and went in A.D. 1843 to Tübingen, where he
opposed to the teaching of Baur’s school a purely biblical and
positive theology, with a success that exceeded all expectations.
A Württemberger by birth, nature, and training, he quite ignored
the history of the church and its dogmas as well as modern
criticism, and set forth a system of theology drawn from a
theosophical realistic study of the Bible. He took little
interest in the excited movements of his age for home and foreign
missions, union, confederation, and alliances, in questions about
liturgies, constitution, discipline, and confessions, in all
which he saw only the form of godliness without the power. Better
times could be hoped for only as the result of the immediate
interposition of God. His “Pastoral Theology” and “Biblical
Psychology” have been translated into English.
§ 182.13. =The Lutheran Confessional Theology.=--=Sartorius=,
A.D. 1797-1859, from A.D. 1822 professor in Dorpat, then from
A.D. 1835 general superintendent at Königsberg, made fresh and
vigorous attacks upon rationalism, and supported the union as
preserving “the true mean” of Lutheranism. He is best known by
his “Doctrine of Divine Love.” =Rudelbach=,--a Dane by birth and
finally settled in Copenhagen, occupying the same ground, became
a violent opponent of the union.--=Guericke= of Halle, beginning
as a pietist, passed through the union into a rigorous Lutheran,
and joined Rudelbach in editing the journal afterwards conducted
by Luthardt of Leipzig.--Alongside of these older representatives
of Lutheran orthodoxy there arose a =second generation= which
from A.D. 1840 has fallen into several groups. Their divergencies
were mainly on two points:
1. On the place and significance of the clerical order, some
viewing it as based on the general priesthood of believers
and resting on the call of the congregation for the orderly
administration of the means of grace, others regarding it
as a divine institution, yet without adopting the Romanizing
and Anglican theory of apostolic succession; and
2. On the more important question of biblical prophecy, where
one party maintained the spiritualistic, widely favoured
since the time of Jerome, and another party, attaching
itself to Crusius and Bengel, insisted upon a realistic
interpretation.
At the head of the =first group=, which maintained the old
Protestant theory of church and office and looked askance
at chiliastic theories, supporting the old doctrines by all
available materials from modern science, stands =Harless=,
A.D. 1806-1879, professor in Erlangen and Leipzig, the chief
ecclesiastical commissioner in Dresden, and finally at Munich.
His theological reputation rests upon his “Commentary on
Ephesians,” A.D. 1835, his “Christian Ethics,” A.D. 1842.
Alongside of him =Thomasius= of Erlangen, A.D. 1802-1875, wrought
in a similar direction.--=Keil=, A.D. 1807-1888, from A.D. 1833
professor in Dorpat, since A.D. 1858 living retired in Leipzig,
of all Hengstenberg’s students has most faithfully preserved
his master’s exegetical and critical conservatism. He began
in A.D. 1861 in connexion with Delitzsch his “Old Testament
Commentary” on strictly conservative lines. We have an English
translation of that work, and also of his “Introduction to the
Old Testament” and his “Old Testament Archæology.”--=Philippi=,
A.D. 1809-1882, son of Jewish parents, during his academic
career in Dorpat, A.D. 1841-1852, exercised a powerful influence
in securing for strict Lutheranism a very widespread ascendency
among the clergy of Livonia. From A.D. 1852 till his death in
A.D. 1882 he resided in Rostock. As exegete and dogmatist, he
has, like a John Gerhard and Quenstedt of the nineteenth century,
reproduced the Lutheran theology of the seventeenth century,
unmodified by the developments of modern thought. He is known to
English readers by his “Commentary on Romans.” His chief work is
“_Kirchl. Glaubenslehre_,” in six vols.--Alongside of him, and
scarcely less important, stands =Theodosius Harnack=, who went
from Dorpat in A.D. 1853 to Erlangen, but returned to Dorpat
in A.D. 1866, and retired in A.D. 1873. He has written upon
the worship of the church of the post-apostolic age, on Luther’s
theology, and practical theology.
§ 182.14. At the head of the =second group=, characterized
by a decided biblical realism and inclined to a biblical
chiliasm, stands =Von Hofmann= of Erlangen, A.D. 1810-1877, whose
“_Weissagung und Erfüllung_,” 1841, represents the very antipodes
of Hengstenberg’s view of the Old Testament, placing history and
prophecy in vital relation to one another, and studying prophecy
in its historical setting. In his “_Schriftbeweis_” we have
an entirely new system of doctrine drawn from Scripture, the
doctrine of the atonement being set forth in quite a different
form from that generally approved, but vindicated by its author
against Philippi as “a new way of teaching old truth.” In his
commentary on the New Testament, he takes up a conservative
position on questions of criticism and introduction.--=Franz
Delitzsch=, in Rostock, A.D. 1846, Erlangen, A.D. 1850,
in Leipzig since A.D. 1867, more intimately acquainted with
rabbinical literature than any other Christian theologian, became
an enthusiastic adherent of Hofmann’s position. His theology,
however, has a more decidedly theosophical tendency, while
his critical attitude is more liberal. He is well known by his
“Biblical Psychology,” commentary on Psalms, Isaiah, Solomon’s
writings, Job, Hebrews, and a new commentary on Genesis in
which he accepts many of the positions of the advanced school
of biblical criticism.--=Luthardt= of Leipzig in the domain of
New Testament exegesis and dogmatics works from the standpoint of
Hofmann. His “Commentary on John’s Gospel,” “Authorship of Fourth
Gospel,” and “Apologetical Lectures on the Fundamental, Saving
and Moral Truths of Christianity,” are well known.--Hofmann’s
conception of Old Testament doctrine is admirably carried out
by =Oehler=, A.D. 1812-1872, with learning and speculative
power, in his “Theology of the Old Testament,” and in various
important monographs on Old Testament doctrines.--The most
important representatives of the =third group=, which strongly
emphasizes the extreme Lutheran theory of the church and office,
are =Kliefoth= of Schwerin, liturgist and biblical commentator;
and =Vilmar=, who opened his academic career at Marburg, in
1856, with a controversial programme entitled “The Theology
of Facts against the Theology of Rhetoric.” Vilmar’s lectures,
able, though sketchy and incomplete, were published after his
death in A.D. 1868 by some of his disciples. To the same school
belonged =Von Zezschwitz= of Erlangen, A.D. 1825-1886, whose
“_Catechetics_” is a treasury of solid learning.
§ 182.15. Among Lutheran theologians taking little or nothing to
do with these controversial questions, =Kahnis=, A.D. 1814-1888,
from A.D. 1850 professor at Leipzig, occupied a strict Lutheran
confessional standpoint, diverging only in the adoption of a
subordinationist doctrine on the person of Christ, a Sabellian
theory of the Trinity, and a theory of the Lord’s supper in
some points differing from that of the strict Lutherans. His
historical sketches are vigorous and lively.--=Zöckler= of
Giessen and Greifswald has made important contributions to
church history, exegesis, and dogmatics, and especially to the
theory and history of natural theology. In 1886 he began the
publication of a short biblical commentary contributed to by the
most distinguished positive theologians, he himself editing the
New Testament and Strack the Old Testament. It is to be in twelve
vols., and is being translated into English.--=Von Oetingen=
of Dorpat has devoted himself to social problems and moral
statistics.--=Frank= of Erlangen has proved a powerful apologist
for old Lutheranism, and in his “System of Christian Evidence”
has introduced a new branch of theology, in which the subjective
Christian certitude which the believer has with his faith is
made the basis of the scientific exposition of the truth set
forth in his “System of Christian Truth,” a thoughtful and
speculative treatise on doctrine, followed by “The System
of Christian Morals” as the conclusion of his theological
work.--Lutheran theology had also zealous representatives in
several distinguished jurists: =Göschel=, president of the
consistory of Magdeburg, who wrote against Strauss, sought
to derive profound Christian teaching from Goethe and Dante,
and wrote on the last things, and on man in respect of body,
soul, and spirit; =Stahl=, A.D. 1802-1861, professor of law at
Erlangen and Berlin, leader since A.D. 1849 of the high-church
aristocratic reactionary party in the Prussian chamber, supported
his views by reference to the Scripture doctrine of the divine
origin of magisterial authority.
§ 182.16. As zealous representatives of =Reformed
Confessionalism= who set aside the dogma of predestination
and so show no antagonism to the union, may be named: =Heppe=,
opponent of Vilmar in Marburg, who devoted much of his career
as a historian to the undermining of Lutheranism, then wrought
upon the histories of provincial churches, of Catholic mysticism
and pietism, etc.; and =Ebrard=, A.D. 1818-1887, a brilliant
believing theologian who combated rationalism and Catholicism,
professor from A.D. 1847 of Reformed theology at Erlangen, known
by his “Gospel History: a Compendium of Critical Investigations
in Support of the Historical Church of the Four Gospels,” his
“Apologetics,” in 3 vols., “Commentary on Hebrews,” etc.
§ 182.17. =The Free Protestant Theology.=--This school originated
in the left wing of Schleiermacher’s following, and has as its
literary organs, Hilgenfeld’s _Zeitschrift_ and the _Jahrbücher
für prot. Theologie_.--The distinguished statesman, =Von Bunsen=,
A.D. 1791-1860, ambassador at Rome and afterwards at London, at
first stood at the head of the revival of the church interests
and life; but in his “Church of the Future,” conceived a
constitutional idea on a democratic basis, for which he sought
support in historical studies on the Ignatian age, etc., and
the historical refutation of the orthodox Christology and
trinitarianism. His elaborate work on “Egypt’s Place in the
World’s History,” full of arbitrary criticism, negative and
positive, on the chronological and historical data of the
Old Testament, seeks to show that, by restoring the Egyptian
chronology, we for the first time make the Bible history fit
into general history. “The Signs of the Times” comprise glowing
philippics against the hierarchical pretensions of Papists
and even more dangerous Lutherans, insists on Scripture being
translated out of the Semitic into the Japhetic mode of speech,
to which end he devoted his last great works, “God in History”
and his “Bible Commentary,” the latter finished after his
death by Kamphausen and Holtzmann.--=Schenkel=, A.D. 1813-1885,
professor at Heidelberg from A.D. 1851 till his resignation in
A.D. 1884, from the right wing of the mediating school, through
unionism and Melanchthonianism advanced to the standpoint of his
“_Charakterbild Jesu_,” which strips Christ of all supernatural
features, yet proclaims him the redeemer of the world, and
strives to save his resurrection as a historical and saving
truth, and explains his appearances after the resurrection as
“real manifestations of the personality living and glorified
after death.” In later years he sought to draw yet more
closely to positive Christianity. =Keim= of Zürich and Giessen,
A.D. 1825-1878, the ablest of all recent historians of the
life of Jesus, and with all his radicalism preserving some
conservative tendencies, is best known by his “Jesus of Nazareth,”
in six vols.--=Holtzmann= of Heidelberg and Strassburg, passed
from the mediating school over to that of Tübingen, from which in
important points he has now departed.--To the same rank belongs
=Hausrath= of Heidelberg, whose “History of the New Testament
Times” is well known. Under the pseudonym of George Taylor he
has composed several highly successful historical romances.--The
organs of this school are Hilgenfeld’s _Zeitschrift_, and since
1875 the Jena “_Jahrbücher für protest. Theologie_.”
§ 182.18. =In the Old Testament Department= a liberal critical
school has arisen which has reversed the old relation of “the law
and the prophets,” treating the origin of the law as post-exilian,
and as in not coming at the beginning, but at the end of the
Jewish history. =Reuss=, whose “History of the New Testament
Books” marked an epoch in New Testament introduction, was the
first who moved in this direction, in his lectures begun at
Strassburg in A.D. 1834, the results of which are given us in
his “History of the Theology of the Apostolic Age” and in his
“History of the Canon.” Meanwhile =Vatke= of Berlin had, in
A.D. 1835, undertaken to prove that the patriarchal religion was
pure Semitic nature worship, and that the prophets were the first
to raise it into a monotheistic Jehovism. Little success attended
his efforts. Greater results were obtained by Reuss’ two pupils,
=Graf= in A.D. 1866, and =Kayser= in A.D. 1874. The most brilliant
exposition of this theory was given by =Julius Wellhausen=
of Greifswald, transferred in A.D. 1882 to the Philosophical
Faculty of Halle, in his “History of Israel.” In his “Prolegomena
to History of Israel,” and article “Israel” in “_Encyclopædia
Britannica_,” he gives expression with clearness and force to
his radical negative criticism, and develops a purely naturalist
conception of the Old Testament. Professor Kuenen of Leyden
transplanted these views to the Netherlands, and Robertson Smith
has introduced them into Scotland and England, while in Germany
they are taught by a number of the younger teachers, Stade in
Giessen, Merx in Heidelberg, Smend in Basel, etc. And now at last
in A.D. 1882 the venerable master of the school, =Edward Reuss=,
has himself in his “_Geschichte d. h. Schr. d. A. Test._” given a
brilliant and in many points modified exposition of these radical
theories. The history of Israel, according to him, divides itself
into the four successive periods of the heroes, of the prophets,
of the priests, and of the scribes, characterized respectively
by individualism, idealism, formalism, and traditionalism. Even
before the close of prophetism the priestly influence began
to assert itself, but it was only in the post-exilian period
under the domination of the priests that the construction and
codification of the law began to make impression on the Jewish
people. So too in the age of the kings there existed a Levitical
tradition about rites and worship, which traced back its first
outlines to the time of Moses, though at this period there could
have been no written official codex of any kind. In regard to
Moses, we are to think not only of his person as historical,
but also of his career as that of a man inspired by the
divine spirit and recognised as such by his contemporaries and
fellow-countrymen.--Also =Wellhausen=, who has hitherto concerned
himself only with the critical introduction to the Old Testament
books, not with their historical or theological interpretation,
supplied this defect to some extent by his “Prolegomena to the
History of Israel.” He admits that much of the history of Israel
related in the Old Testament is credible. He even goes so far as
to allow that this history was a preparation and forerunner of
Christianity, but without miracle and prophecy, and without any
immediate interposition of God in the affairs of Israel.
§ 182.19. Among the most distinguished free-thinking =dogmatists=
of recent times, =Biedermann= of Zürich, A.D. 1819-1885,
has occupied the most advanced position. His principal work,
“_Christliche Dogmatik_,” A.D. 1869, defined God and the origin
of the world as the self-development of the Absolute Idea
according to the Hegelian scheme, recognises in the person of
Christ the first realization of the Christian principle of the
divine sonship in a personal life, then proceeds with free
exposition of the Scripture and church doctrines, and combats
openly the doctrines of the church and through them also those
of Scripture, as setting religion purely in the domain of the
imagination.--=Lipsius= of Leipzig, Kiel, and Jena, in his
earliest treatise on the Pauline Doctrine of Justification in
A.D. 1853, held the position of the mediating theology, but under
the influence of Kant, Hegel, and Baur has been led to adopt
the standpoint of the “Free Protestant” school. His history of
gnosticism and his researches in early apocryphal literature
are important contributions to our knowledge of primitive
Christianity. His “_Lehrbuch d. ev. prot. Dogmatik_,” 1876,
2nd ed., 1879, on the basis of Kant and Schleiermacher, fixing
the limits of science with the former, and maintaining with the
latter the necessity of religious faith and life, not rejecting
metaphysics generally, but only its speculations on God and
divine things lying quite outside of human experience, seeks
from the common faith of the Christian church of all ages, as
it is expressed in the Scriptures and in the confessions, by
the application of the freest subjective criticism of the letter
of revelation, to secure a theory of the world in harmony with
modern views.--=Pfleiderer=, Twesten’s successor in Berlin,
in his “Paulinism,” “Influence of Paul on Development of
Christianity” and “History of the Philosophy of Religion,”
occupies more the Hegelian speculative standpoint than that
of Kantian criticism.
§ 182.20. =Ritschl and his School.=--=Ritschl=, 1822-1889, from
A.D. 1846 in Bonn, from A.D. 1864 in Göttingen, on his withdrawal
from the Tübingen party, applied himself to dogmatic studies
and founded a school, the adherents of which, divided into
right and left wings, have secured quite a number of academical
appointments. After the completion of his great dogmatic work
on “Justification and Reconciliation,” Ritschl resumed his
historical studies in a “History of Pietism,” which he traces
back through the persecuted anabaptists of the Reformation age
to the Tertiaries of the Franciscan order and the mysticism
of St. Bernard. He earnestly maintains his adherence to the
confessions of the Lutheran church, and regards it as the task
of his life to disentangle the pure Lutheran doctrine from the
accretions of scholastic metaphysics. Even more decidedly than
Schleiermacher, he banishes all philosophy from the domain of
theology. The grand significance of Kant’s doctrine of knowledge,
with its assertion of the incomprehensibility of all transcendent
truth except the ethical postulates of God, freedom and
immortality, as set forth in a more profound manner by Lotze,
is indeed admitted, but only as a methodological basis of all
religious inquiries, and with determined rejection of every
material support from Kant’s construction of religion within the
limits of the pure reason. Ritschl rather pronounces in favour
of the formal principle of Protestantism, and declares distinctly
that all religious truth must be drawn directly from Scripture,
primarily from the New Testament as the witness of the early
church uncorrupted by the Platonic-Aristotelian metaphysic, but
also secondarily from the Old Testament as the record of the
content of revelation made to the religious community of Israel.
The truthfulness of the biblical, especially of the New Testament,
system of truth, rests, however, not on any theory of inspiration,
but on its being an authentic statement of the early church of
the doctrine of Christ, inasmuch as to this witness the necessary
degree of _fides humana_ belongs. Ritschl’s Christology rests on
the witness of Christ to himself in the synoptists, through which
he proclaims himself the one prophet who in the divine purpose
of grace for mankind has received perfect consecration, sent by
God into the world to represent the founding of the kingdom of
God on earth foreshadowed in the Old Testament revelation; but
no attempt is made to explain how Christ became possessed of
the secrets of the divine decree. To him, as the first and only
begotten Son of God, standing in essential union with the Father,
belongs the attribute of deity and the right of worship. But of
an eternal pre-existence of Christ we can speak only in so far
as this is meant of the eternal gracious purpose of God to redeem
the world through him by means of the complete unfolding of the
kingdom of God in the fellowship of love. Whatever goes beyond
this in the fourth gospel, its Johannine authenticity not being
otherwise contested, as well as in Paul’s epistles and in the
Epistle to the Hebrews, resulted from the necessity felt by their
writers for assigning a sufficient reason for the assumption of
such incomparable glory on the part of Christ. As the archetype
of humanity destined for the kingdom of God, Christ is the
original object of the divine love, so that the love of God to
the members of his kingdom comes to them only through him. And
as the earthly founding, so also the heavenly completion, of
the kingdom of God is assigned to Christ, and hence after his
resurrection all power was given to him, of the transcendent
exercise of which, however, we can know nothing. The universality
of human sin is admitted by Ritschl as a fact of experience,
but he despairs of reaching any dogmatic statement as to the
origin of sin through the temptation of a superhuman evil
power. But that sin is inherited and as original guilt is
under the condemnation of God, is not taught or pre-supposed
by the teaching either of Christ or of the apostles. Redemption
(reconciliation and justification) consists in the forgiveness of
sins, by which the guilt that estranges from God is removed and
the sinner is restored into the fellowship of the kingdom of God.
Forgiveness, however, is not given on condition of the vicarious
penal sufferings of Christ, whose sufferings and death are of
significance rather because his life and works were a complete
fulfilment of his calling, and witnessed to as such by God’s
raising him from the dead. Justification secures the reception
of the penitent sinner into the fellowship of the kingdom of
God, preached and perfectly developed by Christ, and the sonship
enjoyed in its membership, prefigured in Christ himself, which
contains in itself the desire as well as the capacity to do good
works out of love to God.--The school of Ritschl is represented
in Göttingen by its founder and by =Schultz= and =Wendt=,
in Marburg by =Herrmann=, in Bonn by =Bender=, in Giessen by
=Gottschick= and =Kattenbusch=, in Strassburg by =Lobstein=,
in Basel by =Kaftan=, formerly of Berlin.[537]
§ 182.21. Opponents and critics of the school of Ritschl,
especially from the confessional Lutheran ranks, have appeared in
considerable numbers. Luthardt of Leipzig in A.D. 1878 opened the
campaign against Ritschilianism, followed by Bestmann, charging
it with undermining Christianity. The Hanoverian synod of
A.D. 1882 decided by a large majority that the scientific results
of theological science must be ruled by the confessions of the
evangelical church. The chief theme at the following Hanoverian
Pentecost Conference was the “Incarnation of the Son of God,” the
discussion being led by Professor Dieckhoff of Rostock, against
whom no voice was raised in favour of the views of Ritschl.
Not long after, Professor Fricke of Leipzig published a lecture
given by him at the Meissen Conference, on the Present Relations
of Metaphysics and Theology, followed by utterances of Kübel of
Tübingen, Grau of Königsberg, Kreibig and H. Schmidt at Berlin,
all unfavourable to Ritschl’s theology.--The main objections
are, according to =Bestmann=: idolatry of Kant, depreciation
of the religious factor in Christianity in favour of the ethical
by laying out a moral foreground without providing a dogmatic
background, reducing the objective fundamental truths of the
confession into subjective ethical ideas, etc.; according to
=Luthardt=: Ritschl’s position that it does not matter so much
what the facts of the Christian faith are in themselves, as what
they mean for us, makes his whole dogmatic system hang in the
air, if in Christianity we have to do not with what God, Christ,
the resurrection are, but only what significance we attach to
them, Christianity is stript of all importance, the significance
of a thing must have its foundation in the thing itself, etc.;
according to =Dieckhoff=: Ritschl on his accepting the divinity
of Christ lays down the rule that the special content of what is
meant by the term divinity must be transferable to the believer,
and so for Ritschl, Christ is a mere man who in his person was
the first to represent a relation to God which is destined for
all men in like measure, etc.; according to =Fricke=: new Kantian
scepticism with regard to ideals and transcendentals, reducing
religious elements to moral, with Ritschl’s removal of all
metaphysical facts the chief verities of our Christian faith
are taken away, at least in the scientific form in which we have
them, _e.g._ the doctrine of the Trinity, our Christology, our
theory of satisfaction, in place of which comes the Catholic
_justitia infusa_, etc.; according to =Münchmayer=: “the object
of justification with Ritschl is not the individual but the
community, it is no act of God upon the individual but an eternal
purpose of God for the community, its effect on the individual
is not objective divine forgiveness of guilt but a subjective act
of incorporation of the individual into the redeemed community;
Christ and his work are not the ground of justification,
but only the means of revealing the eternal justifying will
of God, and therefore finally a continuation of the historical
work of Christ by means of his church takes the place of the
personal intercession of the exalted Redeemer for the penitent
sinner.” Kreibig and Schmidt express themselves in a similar
manner.--Ritschl has not himself undertaken any reply, but
his disciples have sought to remove what they regard as
misunderstandings, and generally to vindicate the system of
their master.
§ 182.22. =Writers on Constitutional Law and History.=--The most
distinguished writers on the constitutional law of the church
are Eichhorn and Dove of Göttingen, Jacobsen of Königsberg,
Wasserschleben of Giessen, Richter and Hinschius of Berlin,
Friedberg of Leipzig, who belong to the unionist party; while
Bickell of Marburg, Mejer of Göttingen and Hanover, Von Scheuerl
of Erlangen, and Sohm of Strassburg belong to the confessional
Lutherans.--Of ecclesiastical historians (§ 5, 4, 5) the number
is so great that we cannot even enumerate their names.--The
“_Theologische Literaturzeitung_” of Schürer and Harnack
is a liberal scientific journal, distinguished for its fair
criticisms by writers whose names are given.
§ 183. HOME MISSIONS.
In regard to home mission work, the Protestant church long lagged
behind the Catholic, which had wrought vigorously through its monkish
orders. England first entered with zeal into the field, especially
dissenters and members of the low church party, and subsequently also
the high church ritualistic party (§ 202, 1, 3), which now takes an
active interest in this work. Germany, in view of the scanty means at
the disposal of the pietists and the church party, made noble efforts.
In other continental countries, but especially in North America, much
was done for home missions. Soon the whole Protestant world began
to organize benevolent and evangelistic institutions. The laborious
Wichern, in A.D. 1849, went through all Germany to arouse interest
in home missions, and started a yearly congress on the subject in
Wittenberg. Till his death in A.D. 1881, Wichern continued to direct
this congress and further the interests which it represented.
§ 183.1. =Institutions.=--The earliest charity school was that
founded at Düsselthal by Count Recke-Volmarstein, in A.D. 1816,
followed by Zeller’s at Beuggen in A.D. 1820. One of the most
famous of these institutions was the =Rauhe Haus= of Wichern,
at Horn, near Hamburg, A.D. 1833.[538] Fliedner’s Deaconess
Institute at Kaiserswerth is the pride of the evangelical church.
It has now 190 branches, with 625 sisters, in the four continents.
There are many independent institutions modelled upon it in
Germany, England, Sweden, Norway, Denmark, Russia, and France.
In A.D. 1881 there were in Germany 31, and in the cities of other
lands 22, principal deaconess institutions of this German order,
with 4,751 sisters and 1,491 fields of labour outside of the
institution. The original institute of Kaiserswerth comprises
a hospital with 600 patients, a refuge for fallen women and
liberated prisoners, an orphanage for girls, a seminary for
governesses, and a home for female imbeciles.[539] Löhe founded
the deaconess institute of =Neuendettelsau=, on strict Lutheran
principles, with hospital, girls’ school, and asylum for imbecile
children. In France a most successful institution was founded by
pastor Bost of Laforce, in A.D. 1848, for foundlings, imbeciles,
and epileptics. In England, George Müller, a poor German student
of Halle, a pupil of Tholuck, beginning in A.D. 1832, founded at
Bristol five richly endowed orphanages after the pattern of that
of A. H. Francke, in which thousands of destitute street children
have been educated, and for this and other purposes has spent
nearly £1,000,000 without ever asking any one for a contribution,
acting on the belief that “the God of Elijah still lives.”
The London City Mission employs 600 missionaries. In New York,
since A.D. 1855, about 60,000 street children have been placed,
by the Society for Poor Children, in Christian families, and
21 Industrial schools are maintained with 10,000 scholars.--Tract
Societies in London, Hamburg, Berlin, etc., send out millions
of tracts for Christian instruction and awakening. The Society
for North Germany successfully pursues a similar work; the Calw
Publication Society circulates Christian text-books with woodcuts
at a remarkably small price. In Berlin the Evangelical Book
Society issues reprints of the older tracts on practical divinity.
Christian women, like the English Quakeress Elizabeth Fry, the
noble Amalie Sieveking of Hamburg, Miss Florence Nightingale, the
heroine of the Crimean war, and the brave Maria Simon of Dresden,
who organized the female nursing corps of the wars of 1866,
1870, 1871, helped on the work of home missions in all lands,
especially in the departments of tending the poor and the sick.
§ 183.2. The =Order of St. John=, secularized in A.D. 1810,
was reorganized by Frederick William IV. in A.D. 1852 into
an association for the care of the sick and poor. Under a
grand-master it has 350 members and 1,500 associates. Its
revenues are formed from entrance fees and annual contributions.
It has thirty hospitals. In A.D. 1861 it founded a hospital for
men in Beyrout during the persecution of Christians in Syria, and
in A.D. 1868 gave aid during the famine that followed the typhus
epidemic in East Prussia, and did noble service in the wars of
A.D. 1864, 1866, and 1870.
§ 183.3. =The Itinerant Preacher Gustav Werner in
Württemberg.=--Abandoning his charge in A.D. 1840, Werner began
his itinerant labours, and during the year formed more than a
hundred groups of adherents over all Württemberg. His preaching
was allegorical and eschatological, and avoided the doctrines of
satisfaction and justification. On his repudiating the Augsburg
Confession, the church boards refused to recognise him, and
he went hither and thither preaching a Christian communism. In
A.D. 1842 he bought a site in Reutlingen, built a house, and
founded a school for eighty children. In order to develop his
views of carrying on industrial arts on a Christian basis, he
bought, in A.D. 1850, the paper factory at Reutlingen for £4,000,
and subsequently transferred it to Dettingen on a larger scale,
at an outlay of £20,000. By A.D. 1862 he had established no less
than twenty-two branches, in which manufacturing was carried
on, with institutions of all kinds for education, pastoral work,
rescuing the lost and raising the fallen. Each member lives and
works for the whole; none receives wages; surplus income goes
to increase the number and extent of the institutions. Vast
multitudes of sunken and destitute families have been by these
means restored to respectable social positions and to a moral
religious life.
§ 183.4. =Bible Societies.=--The Bible societies constitute
an independent branch of the home mission. Modern efforts to
circulate Scripture began in England. As a necessary adjunct to
missionary societies, the great British and Foreign Bible Society
was founded in London in A.D. 1804, embracing all Protestant
sects, excepting the Quakers. It circulates Bibles without note
or comment. The Apocryphal controversy of A.D. 1825-1827 resulted
in the society resolving not to print the Apocrypha in its
issues. In consequence of this decision, fifty German societies,
including the present society of Berlin, seceded. The New York
Association, founded in A.D. 1817, is in thorough accord with
the London society. The Baden Missionary Society revived the
discussion in A.D. 1852 by making it the subject of essay
for a prize, which was won by the learned work of Keerl, who,
along with the stricter Lutherans, condemned the Apocrypha.
The other side was taken by Stier and Hengstenberg, and most
of the consistories advised adherence to the old practice,
as all misunderstanding was prevented by Luther’s preface and
the prohibition against using passages from the Apocrypha as
sermon texts.--Bible societies altogether have issued during
the century 180,000,000 Bibles and New Testaments in 324
different languages.[540]
§ 184. FOREIGN MISSIONS.
Protestant zeal for missions to the heathen has gone on advancing
since the end of last century (§ 172, 5). Missionary societies increase
from year to year. In A.D. 1883 there were seventy independent societies
with innumerable branches, which contribute annually about £1,500,000,
or five times as much as the Romish church, and maintain 2,000 mission
stations, 2,940 European and American missionaries, and 1,000 ordained
native pastors and 25,000 native teachers and assistants, having under
their care 2,214,000 converts from heathenism. In missionary enterprise
England holds the first place, next comes America, and then Germany.
Among Protestant sects the Methodists and Baptists are most zealous
in the cause of missions, and the Moravian Brethren have wrought
most successfully in this department. The missions also did much to
prepare the way for the suppression of the slave trade by the European
powers in A.D. 1830, and the emancipation of all slaves in the British
possessions in A.D. 1834, at a cost of £20,000,000. The noble English
philanthropist, William Wilberforce, unweariedly laboured for these
ends.--Also in England, Germany, Russia, and France new associations
were formed for missions to the Jews, and the work was carried on with
admirable patience, though the visible results were very small.
§ 184.1. =Missionary Societies.=--The great American Missionary
Society was founded at Boston in A.D. 1810, the English Wesleyan
in A.D. 1814, the American Methodist in A.D. 1819, the American
Episcopal in A.D. 1820, and the Society of Paris in A.D. 1824.
The new German societies were on confessional lines: that of
Basel in A.D. 1816, of Berlin in A.D. 1823, the Rhenish with the
mission seminary at Barmen in A.D. 1829, the North German, on
the basis of the Augsburg Confession, in A.D. 1836. The Dresden
Society, which resumed the old Lutheran work in the East Indies
(§ 167, 9), founded a seminary at Leipzig in A.D. 1849, in order
to get the benefit of the university. Lutheran societies, mostly
affiliated with that of Leipzig, were started in Sweden, Denmark,
Norway, Russia, Bavaria, Hanover, Mecklenburg, Hesse, and America.
The Neuendettelsau Institute wrought through the Iowa Synod among
the North American Indians, and through the Immanuel Synod among
the aborigines of Australia. The Hermannsburg Institute under
Harms prosecuted mission work with great zeal. In A.D. 1853,
Harms sent out in his own mission ship eight missionaries and as
many Christian colonists. It has been objected to this mission,
that endeavours after social elevation and industrial training
have driven to the background the main question of individual
conversion.--The advanced liberal school in Switzerland and
Germany sought in A.D. 1883 to start a mission on their own
particular lines. They do not propose any opposition to existing
agencies, and intend to make their first experiment among the
civilized races of India and Japan.
§ 184.2. =Europe and America.=--The Swedish mission in Lapland
(§ 160, 7) was resumed in A.D. 1825 by Stockfleth. The Moravians
carried on their work among the Eskimos in Greenland, which had
now become a wholly Christian country, and also in Labrador,
which was almost in the same condition. The chaplain of the
Hudson Bay Company, J. West, founded a successful mission in
that territory in A.D. 1822. Among the natives and negro slaves
in the British possessions, the United States, and West Indies,
Moravians, Methodists, Baptists, and Anglican Episcopalians
patiently and successfully carried on the work. Among the natives
and bush negroes, descendants of runaway slaves, in Guiana, the
Moravians did a noble work.--Catholic South America remained
closed against Protestant missions. But the ardent zeal of
Capt. Allen Gardiner led him to choose the inhospitable shores of
Patagonia as a field of labour. He landed there in A.D. 1850 with
five missionaries, but in the following year their corpses only
were found. The work, however, was started anew in A.D. 1856, and
prosecuted with success under the direction of an Anglican bishop.
§ 184.3. =Africa.=--The Moravians have laboured among the
Hottentots, the Berlin missionaries among the wild Corannas,
and the French Evangelical Society among the Bechuanas. Hahn
of Livonia is the apostle of the Hereros. On the East Coast the
London Missionary Society has wrought among the warlike Kaffirs,
and other British societies are labouring in Natal among the
Zulus. On the West Coast the English colony of Sierra Leone was
founded for the settling and Christianizing of liberated slaves,
and farther south is Liberia, a similar American colony; both in
a flourishing condition, under the care of Methodists, Baptists,
and Anglican Episcopalians. The Basel missionaries labour on the
Gold Coast, Baptists in Old Calabar, and the American and North
German Societies on the Gaboon River.--The London missionaries
won Radama of Madagascar to Christianity in A.D. 1818, but his
successor Ranavalona instituted a bloody persecution of the
Christians in A.D. 1835, during which David Jones, the apostle
of the Malagassy, suffered martyrdom in A.D. 1843. In the island
of Mauritius, where there is an Anglican bishop, many Malagassy
Christians found refuge. After the queen’s death in A.D. 1861,
her Christian son Radama II. recalled the Christian exiles
and the missionaries. He soon became the victim of a palace
revolution. His wife and successor Rosaherina continued a heathen
till her death in A.D. 1868, but put no obstacle in the way of
the gospel. But her cousin Ranavalona II. overthrew the idol
worship, was baptized in A.D. 1869, and in the following year
burned the national idols. Protestantism now made rapid strides,
till interrupted by French Jesuit intrigues, which have been
favoured by the recent French occupation.
§ 184.4. Livingstone and Stanley have made marvellous
contributions to our geographical knowledge of =Central Africa=
and to Christian missions there. The Scottish missionary, David
Livingstone, factory boy, afterwards physician and minister,
wrought, A.D. 1840-1849, under the London Missionary Society in
South Africa, and then entered on his life work of exploration
in Central Africa. During his third exploring journey into the
interior in A.D. 1865 as a British consul, he was not heard of
for a whole year. H. M. Stanley, of the _New York Herald_, was
sent in A.D. 1871, and found him in Ujiji on Lake Tanganyiká.
Livingstone died of dysentery on the southern bank of this lake
in A.D. 1873. Still more important was Stanley’s second journey,
A.D. 1874-1877, which yielded the most brilliant scientific
results, and was epoch-making in the history of African missions.
He got the greatest potentate in those regions, King Mtesa of
Uganda, who had been converted by the Arabs to Mohammedanism, to
adopt Christianity and permit a Christian church to be built in
his city. Stanley’s letters from Africa roused missionary fervour
throughout England. The Church Missionary Society in A.D. 1877
set up a mission station in the capital, and put a steamer
on the Victoria Nyanza. The church services were regularly
attended, education and the work of civilization zealously
prosecuted, Sunday labour and the slave trade prohibited, etc.
French Jesuits entered in A.D. 1879, insinuating suspicions
of the English missionaries into the ear of the king, and the
machinations of the Arab slave-dealers made their position
dangerous. Missionaries arrived by way of Egypt with flattering
recommendations from the English foreign secretary in the name
of the queen. But the traders, by means of an Arabic translation
of a letter purporting to be from the English consul at Zanzibar,
cast suspicion on the document as a forgery, and represented its
bearers as in the pay of the hostile Egyptians. Mtesa’s wrath
knew no bounds, and only his favour for the missionary physician
saved the mission and led him to send an embassy of three chiefs
and two missionaries to England in June, A.D. 1879, to discover
the actual truth. His anger meanwhile cooled, and the work of
the mission was resumed. He was preparing to put an utter end
to the national heathenism, when suddenly a report spread that
the greatest of all the Lubaris or inferior deities, that of
the Nyanza Lake, had become incarnate in an old woman, in order
to heal the king and restore the ancient religion. The whole
populace was in an uproar; Mtesa, under threat of deposition,
restored heathenism, with human sacrifice, man stealing, and the
slave trade. Then the Lubari excitement cooled down. Mtesa, moved
by a dream, declared himself again a Mohammedan, and converted
the Christian church into a mosque. The English missionaries,
stripped of all means, starved, and subjected to all sorts of
privations, did not flinch. At last, in January, A.D. 1881,
the embassy, sent eighteen months before to England, reached
home again, and, by the story of their reception, caused a
revulsion of feeling in favour of the English mission, which
again flourished under the protection of the king. But Mtesa died
in 1884. His son and successor, Mwanga, a suspicious, peevish
young despot, addicted to all forms of vice, began again the
most cruel persecution, of which Bishop Hannington, sent out
from England, with fifty companions, were the victims. Only
four escaped.
§ 184.5. =Asia.=--The most important mission field in
Asia is =India=. The old Lutheran mission there had great
difficulties to contend against: the system of caste distinctions,
the proud self-sufficiency of the pantheistic Brahmans, the
politico-commercial interests of the East India Company, etc.
The Leipzig Society has sixteen stations among the Tamuls, and
alongside are English, American, and German missionaries of
every school. The Gossner Society works among the Kohls of Chota
Nagpore, where a rival mission has been started by the puseyite
bishop of Calcutta, Dr. Milman, to which, in A.D. 1868, six
of the twelve German missionaries and twelve of the thirty-six
chapels were transferred. The Basel missionaries labour in Canara
and Malabar. The military revolt in Northern India in A.D. 1857
interrupted missionary operations for two years; but the work was
afterwards resumed with great vigour. The Christian benevolence
shown during the famine of A.D. 1878, in which three millions
perished, made a great impression in favour of the Protestant
church. In the preceding years throughout all India only between
5,000 and 10, 000 souls were annually added; but in A.D. 1878 the
number of new converts rose to 100,000, and in A.D. 1879 there
were 44,000.--The island of =Ceylon= was, under Portuguese and
Dutch rule, in great part nominally Christianized; but when
compulsion was removed under British rule, this sham profession
was at an end. Multitudes fell back into heathenism, and in the
first ten years of the British dominion 900 new idol temples
were erected. From A.D. 1812 Baptist, Methodist, and Anglican
missionaries have toiled with small appearance of fruit. In
=Farther India= the American missionaries have wrought since
A.D. 1813. Judson and his heroic wife did noble work among the
Karens and the Burmans. Also in Malacca, Singapore, and Siam
the Protestant missions have had brilliant success. The work in
Sumatra has been retarded by the opposition of the Malays and
deadly malarial fever. The preaching of the gospel was eminently
successful in =Java=, where since A.D. 1814 Baptist missionaries
and agents of the London Society have wrought heroically.
In Celebes the Dutch missionaries found twenty Christian
congregations of old standing, greatly deteriorated for want
of pastoral care, but still using the Heidelberg Catechism. At
Banjermassin, in A.D. 1835 the Rhenish Society founded their
first station in Borneo, and wrought not unsuccessfully among
the heathen Dyaks. But in A.D. 1859 a rebellion of the Mohammedan
residents led to the expulsion of the Dutch and the murder of all
Christians. Only a few of the missionaries escaped martyrdom, and
subsequently settled in Sumatra.
§ 184.6. The work in =China= began in A.D. 1807, when the London
Missionary Society settled Morrison in Canton, where he began the
study of the language and the translation of the Bible. Gutzlaff
of Pomerania, in A.D. 1826, conceived the plan of evangelizing
China through the Chinese converts, but, though he continued his
efforts till his death in A.D. 1854, the scheme failed through
the unworthiness of many of the professors. The war against the
opium traffic, A.D. 1839-1842, opened five ports to the mission,
and led to the transference of Hongkong to the English. The
Chinese mission now made rapid strides; but the interior was
still untouched. The conflict between the governor of Canton
and the English, French, and Americans, and the chastisement
administered to the Chinese in A.D. 1857, led the emperor, in
A.D. 1858, to make a treaty with the three powers and also with
Russia, by which the whole land was opened up for trade and
missions, and full toleration granted to Christianity. Popular
hatred of strangers, and especially of missionaries, however,
occasioned frequently bloody encounters, and in A.D. 1870 there
was a furious outburst directed against the French missionaries.
During a terrible famine in North China, in A.D. 1878, when more
than five millions perished, the heroic and self-sacrificing
conduct of the missionaries brought them into high favour.
Throughout China there are now 320 organized Christian
congregations with 50,000 adherents under 238 foreign
missionaries.--After seclusion for three centuries, =Japan=,
about the same time as China, was opened by treaty to European
and American commerce, notwithstanding the opposition of the
old feudal nobility, the so-called Daimios. In A.D. 1871 the
mikado’s government succeeded in overcoming completely the power
of the daimios and setting aside the shiogun or military vizier,
who had exercised supreme executive power. European customs were
introduced, but the rigorous enactments against native converts
to Christianity were still enforced. A cruel persecution
of native Christians was carried on in A.D. 1867, but the
Protestant missionaries continued to work unweariedly, preparing
dictionaries and reading books. The Buddhist priests sought
to get up a rival mission to send agents to America and Europe,
whereas many of the leading newspapers expressed the opinion that
Japan must soon put Christianity in the place of Buddhism as the
state religion.
§ 184.7. =Polynesia and Australia.=--The flourishing Protestant
church of Tahiti, the largest and finest of the Society Islands
(§ 172, 5), suffered from the appearance of two French Jesuits
in A.D. 1836. When Queen Pomare compelled them to withdraw,
the French government, resenting this as an indignity to
their nation, sent a fleet to attack the defenceless people,
proclaimed a French protectorate, and introduced not only
Catholic missionaries, but European vices. Amid much persecution,
however, the Protestants held their own. In December, 1880,
Pomare V. resigned, and the Society Islands became a dependency
of France.--In the south-east groups great opposition was shown,
but in the north-west Christianity made rapid progress. The
island of Raiatea was the centre of the South Sea missions. There
from A.D. 1819 John Williams, the apostle of the South Seas,
wrought till he met a martyr’s death in A.D. 1839. He went from
place to place in a mission ship built by his own hands. The
Harvey Group were Christianized in A.D. 1821, and the Navigator
Group in A.D. 1830. The French took the Marquesas Islands in
A.D. 1838, and introduced Catholic missionaries. The attempt
to evangelize the New Hebrides led to the death of Williams
and two of his companions. Missionaries of the London Society,
A.D. 1797-1799, had failed in the Friendly Islands through the
savage character of the natives, but in A.D. 1822 the Methodists
made a successful start. The gospel was carried thence to Fiji,
which is now under British rule. Both groups have become almost
wholly Christianized. The =Sandwich Islands= form a third mission
centre, wrought by the American board. Kamehameha I. gladly
adopted the elements of Christian civilization, though rejecting
Christianity: while his successor Kamehameha II. in A.D. 1829
abolished tabu and overthrew the idol temples. In A.D. 1851
Christianity was adopted as the national religion. The work was
more difficult in =New Zealand=, where the Church Missionary
Society, represented by Samuel Marsden, the apostle of New
Zealand, began operations in A.D. 1814. For ten years the
position of the missionaries was most hazardous; yet they held
on, and the conversion of the most bloodthirsty of the chiefs
did much to advance their cause. In New Guinea the London Society
has been making steady progress. Among the stolid natives of the
continent of New Holland, the so called Papuans, the labours of
the Moravians since A.D. 1849 have not yielded much fruit. Since
A.D. 1875 the German-Australian Immanuel Synod, supported by
Neuendettelsau, has laboured for the conversion of the heathen
in the inland districts.
§ 184.8. =Missions to the Jews.=--In A.D. 1809 the London Society
for Promoting Christianity among the Jews (§ 172, 5) was formed
by a union of all denominations, but soon passed into the hands
of the Anglicans. By the circulation of the Scriptures and
tracts, and by the sending out of missionaries, mostly Jewish
converts, the work was persevered in amid many discouragements.
In A.D. 1818 Poland was opened to its missionaries, and there
some 600 Jews were baptized. The society carried on its operations
also in Germany, Holland, France, and Turkey. The work in Poland
was interrupted by the Crimean war, and was not resumed till
A.D. 1875. In Bessarabia Faltin has laboured successfully among
the Jews since A.D. 1860. He was joined in the work in A.D. 1867
by the converted Rabbi Gurland, who had studied theology at Halle
and Berlin. In A.D. 1871 Gurland accepted a call to similar work
in Courland and Lithuania, and since A.D. 1876 has been Lutheran
pastor at Mitau. In A.D. 1841 the evangelical bishopric of
St. James was founded in Jerusalem by the English and Prussian
governments conjointly, presentations to be made alternately, but
the ordination to be according to the Anglican rite. The first
bishop was Alexander, a Jewish convert. He died in A.D. 1845 and
was succeeded by the zealous missionary Gobat, elected by the
Prussian government. He died in A.D. 1879 and was succeeded
by Barclay, who died in A.D. 1881. It was now again Prussia’s
turn to make an appointment. The English demand to have Lutheran
ministers ordained successively deacon, presbyter, and bishop
had given offence, and so no new appointment has been made. In
June 1886 the English-Prussian compact was formally cancelled
and a proposal made to found an independent Prussian Evangelical
bishopric.
§ 184.9. =Missions among the Eastern Churches.=--In A.D. 1815
the Church Missionary Society founded a missionary emporium in
the island of Malta, as a tract depôt for the evangelizing the
East; and in A.D. 1846 the Malta Protestant College was erected
for training native missionaries, teachers, physicians, etc., for
work in the various oriental countries. In the Ionian islands, in
Constantinople, and in Greece, British and American missionaries
began operations in A.D. 1819 by erecting schools and circulating
the scriptures. At first the orthodox clergy were favourable, but
as the work progressed they became actively hostile, and only two
mission schools in Syra and Athens were allowed to continue. In
Syria the Americans made Beyrout their head quarters in A.D. 1824,
but the work was interrupted by the Turco-Egyptian conflicts.
Subsequently, however, it flourished more and more, and, before
the Syrian massacre of A.D. 1860 (§ 207, 2), there were nine
prosperous stations in Syria. The founding of the Jerusalem
bishopric in A.D. 1841, and the issuing of the Hatti-Humayun
in A.D. 1856 (§ 207, 2), induced the Church Missionary Society
to make more vigorous efforts which, however, were afterwards
abandoned for want of success. Down to the outbreak of the
persecution of Syrian Christians in A.D. 1860, this society
had five flourishing stations. From A.D. 1831 the Americans
had wrought zealously and successfully among the Armenians in
Constantinople and neighbourhood, but in A.D. 1845 the Armenian
patriarch excited a violent persecution which threatened
the utter overthrow of the work. The British ambassador,
Sir Stratford de Redcliffe, however, insisted upon the Porte
recognising the rights of the Protestant Armenians as an
independent religious denomination, and since then the missions
have prospered. Among the Nestorians in Turkey and Persia the
Americans, with Dr. Grant at their head, began operations in
A.D. 1834; but through Jesuit intrigues the suspicions of the
Kurds and Turks were excited, and in A.D. 1843 and 1846 a war
of extermination was waged against the mountain Nestorians,
which annihilated the Protestant missions among them. Operations,
however, have been recommenced with encouraging success. Among
the deeply degraded Copts in Egypt, and extending from them into
Abyssinia, the Moravians had been working without any apparent
result from A.D. 1752 to A.D. 1783. In A.D. 1826 the Church
Missionary Society, under German missionaries trained at Basel
(Gobat, Irenberg, Krapf [Krapff], etc.), took up the work, till
it was stopped by the government in A.D. 1837. In A.D. 1855
the Basel missionaries began again to work in Abyssinia with
the approval of King Theodore. This state of things soon changed.
Theodore’s ambition was to conquer Egypt and overthrow Islam.
But when in A.D. 1863 this scheme only called forth threats from
London and Paris, he gave loose rein to his natural ferocity
and put the English consul and the German missionaries in chains.
By means of an armed expedition in A.D. 1868, England compelled
the liberation of the prisoners, and Theodore put an end to his
own life. After the withdrawal of the English the country was
desolated by civil wars, and at the close of these troubles in
A.D. 1878 the mission resumed its operations.
III. Catholicism in General.
§ 185. THE PAPACY AND THE STATES OF THE CHURCH.
The papacy, humiliated but not destroyed by Napoleon I., was in
A.D. 1814 by the aid of princes of all creeds restored to the full
possession of its temporal and spiritual authority, and amid many
difficulties it reasserted for the most part successfully its
hierarchical claims in the Catholic states and in those whose
Protestantism and Catholicism were alike tolerated. Many severe
blows indeed were dealt to the papacy even in the Roman states by
revolutionary movements, yet political reaction generally by-and-by put
the church in a position as good if not better than it had before. But
while on this side the Alps, especially since the outbreak of A.D. 1848,
ultramontanism gained one victory after another in its own domain, in
Italy, it suffered one humiliation after another; and while the Vatican
Council, which put the crown upon its idolatrous assumptions (§ 189, 3),
was still sitting, the whole pride of its temporal sovereignty was
shattered: the States of the Church were struck out of the number of the
European powers, and Rome became the capital and residence of the prince
of Sardinia as king of United Italy. But reverence for the pope now
reached a height among catholic nations which it had never anywhere
attained before.
§ 185.1. =The First Four Popes of the Century.=--Napoleon as
First Consul of the French Republic, in A.D. 1801 concluded a
concordat with =Pius VII.=, A.D. 1800-1823, who under Austrian
protection was elected pope at Venice, whereby the pope was
restored to his temporal and spiritual rights, but was obliged
to abandon his hierarchical claims over the church of France
(§ 203, 1). He crowned the consul emperor of the French at Paris
in A.D. 1804, but when he persisted in the assertion of his
hierarchical principles, Napoleon in A.D. 1808 entered the papal
territories, and in May, A.D. 1809, formally repudiated the
donation of “his predecessor” Charlemagne. The pope treated the
offered payment of two million francs as an insult, threatened
the emperor with the ban, and in July, A.D. 1809, was imprisoned
at Savona, and in A.D. 1812 was taken to Fontainebleau. He
refused for a time to give canonical institution to the bishops
nominated by the emperor, and though at last he yielded and
agreed to reside in France, he soon withdrew his concession,
and the complications of A.D. 1813 constrained the emperor, on
February 14th, to set free the pope and the Papal States. In May
the pope again entered Rome. One of his first official acts was
the restoration of the Jesuits by the bull _Sollicitudo omnium_,
as by the unanimous request of all Christendom. The Congregation
of the Index was again set up, and during the course of the year
737 charges of heresy were heard before the tribunal of the holy
office. All sales of church property were pronounced void, and
1,800 monasteries and 600 nunneries were reclaimed. In A.D. 1815
the pope formally protested against the decision of the Vienna
Congress, especially against the overthrow of the spiritual
principalities in the German empire (§ 192, 1). Equally fruitless
was his demand for the restoration of Avignon (§ 165, 15).
In A.D. 1816 he condemned the Bible societies as a plague to
Christendom, and renewed the prohibition of Bible translations.
His diplomatic schemes were determined by his able secretary
Cardinal Consalvi, who not only at the Vienna Congress, but also
subsequently by several concordats secured the fullest possible
expression to the interests and claims of the curia.--His
successor was =Leo XII.=, A.D. 1823-1829, who, more strict in
his civil administration than his predecessor, condemned Bible
societies, renewed the Inquisition prosecutions, for the sake
of gain celebrated the jubilee in A.D. 1825, ordered prayers
for uprooting of heresy, rebuilt the Ghetto wall of Rome,
overturned during the French rule (§ 95, 3), which marked off
the Jews’ quarter, till Pius IX. again threw it down in A.D. 1846.
After the eight months’ reign of =Pius VIII.=, A.D. 1829-1830,
=Gregory XVI.=, A.D. 1831-1846, ascended the papal throne, and
sought amid troubles at home and abroad to exalt to its utmost
pitch the hierarchical idea. In A.D. 1832 he issued an encyclical,
in which he declared irreconcilable war against modern science
as well as against freedom of conscience and the press, and his
whole pontificate was a consistent carrying out of this principle.
He encountered incessant opposition from liberal and revolutionary
movements in his own territory, restrained only by Austrian
and French military interference, A.D. 1832-1838, and from the
rejection of his hierarchical schemes by Spain, Portugal, Prussia,
and Russia.[541]
§ 185.2. =Pius IX., A.D. 1846-1878.=--Count Mastai Feretti in
his fifty-fourth year succeeded Gregory on 16th June, and took
the name of Pius IX. While in ecclesiastical matters he seemed
willing to hold by the old paths and distinctly declared against
Bible societies, he favoured reform in civil administration
and encouraged the hopes of the liberals who longed for the
independence and unity of Italy. But this only awakened the
thunder storm which soon burst upon his own head. The far
resounding cry of the jubilee days, “_Evviva Pio Nono!_” ended
in the pope’s flight to Gaeta in November, 1848; and in February,
1849, the Roman Republic was proclaimed. The French Republic,
however, owing to the threatening attitude of Austria, hastened
to take Rome and restore the temporal power of the pope. Amid the
convulsions of Italy, Pius could not return to Rome till April,
1850, where he was maintained by French and Austrian bayonets.
Abandoning his liberal views, the pope now put himself more and
more under the influence of the Jesuits, and his absolutist and
reactionary politics were directed by Card. Antonelli. From his
exile at Gaeta he had asked the opinion of the bishops of the
whole church regarding the immaculate conception of the blessed
Virgin, to whose protection he believed that he owed his safety.
The opinions of 576 were favourable, resting on Bible proofs:
Genesis iii. 15, Song of Sol. iv. 7, 12, and Luke i. 28; but some
French and German bishops were strongly opposed. The question was
now submitted for further consideration to various congregations,
and finally the consenting bishops were invited to Rome to settle
the terms of the doctrinal definition of the new dogma. After
four secret sessions it was acknowledged by acclamation, and
on 8th December, 1854 (§ 104, 7), the pope read in the Sixtine
chapel the bull _Ineffabilis_ and placed a brilliant diadem
on the head of the image of the queen of heaven. The disciples
of St. Thomas listened in silence to this aspersion of their
master’s orthodoxy; no heed was paid to two isolated individual
voices that protested; the bishops of all Catholic lands
proclaimed the new dogma, the theologians vindicated it, and the
spectacle-loving people rejoiced in the pompous Mary-festival.
The pope’s next great performance was the encyclical, _Quanta
cura_, of December 8th, 1864, and the accompanying syllabus
cataloguing in eighty-four propositions all the errors of the
day, by which not only the antichristian and anti-ecclesiastical
tendencies, but also claims for freedom of belief and worship,
liberty of the press and science, the state’s independence of the
church, the equality of the laity and clergy in civil matters, in
short all the principles of modern political and social life, were
condemned as heretical. Three years later the centenary of Peter
(§ 16, 1) brought five hundred bishops to Rome, with other clergy
and laymen from all lands. The enthusiasm for the papal chair
was such that the pope was encouraged to convoke an œcumenical
council. The jubilee of his consecration as priest in A.D. 1869
brought him congratulatory addresses signed by one and a half
millions, filled the papal coffers, attracted an immense number
of visitors to Rome, and secured to all the votaries gathered
there a complete indulgence. On the Vatican Council which met
during that same year, see § 189.[542]
§ 185.3. =The Overthrow of the Papal States.=--In the Peace of
Villafranca of 1859, which put an end to the short Austro-French
war in Italy, a confederation was arranged of all the Italian
princes under the honorary presidency of the pope for drawing up
the future constitution of Italy. During the war the Austrians
had vacated Bologna, but the French remained in Rome to protect
the pope. The revolution now broke out in Romagna. Victor Emanuel,
king of Sardinia, was proclaimed dictator for the time over that
part of the Papal States and a provisional government was set
up. In vain did the pope remind Christendom in an encyclical
of the necessity of maintaining his temporal power, in vain
did he thunder his _excommunicatio major_ against all who would
contribute to its overthrow. A pamphlet war against the temporal
power now began, and About’s letters in the _Moniteur_ described
with bitter scorn the incapacity of the papal government. In his
pamphlet, “_Le Pope et le Congrès_,” Laguéronnière proposed to
restrict the pope’s sovereignty to Rome and its neighbourhood,
levy a tax for the support of the papal court on all Catholic
nations, and leave Rome undisturbed by political troubles. On
December 31st, 1859, Napoleon III. exhorted the pope to yield
to the logic of facts and to surrender the provinces that refused
any longer to be his. The pope then issued a rescript in which
he declared that he could never give up what belonged not to
him but to the church. The popular vote in Romagna went almost
unanimously for annexation to Sardinia, and this, in spite of
the papal ban, was done. A revolution broke out in Umbria and
the March of Ancona, and Victor Emanuel without more ado attached
these states also to his dominion in A.D. 1860, so that only
Rome and the Campagna were retained by the pope, and even these
only by means of French support. At the September convention of
A.D. 1864 Italy undertook to maintain the papal domain intact,
to permit the organization of an independent papal army, and to
contribute to the papal treasury; while France was to quit Roman
territory within at the latest two years. The pope submitted
to what he could not prevent, but still insisted upon his most
extreme claims, answered every attempt at conciliation with
his stereotyped _non possumus_, and in A.D. 1866 proclaimed
St. Catherine of Siena (§ 112, 4) patron of the “city.” When
the last of the French troops took ship in A.D. 1866 the radical
party thought the time had come for freeing Italy from papal rule,
and roused the whole land by public proclamation. Garibaldi again
put himself at the head of the movement. The Papal State was
soon encircled by bands of volunteers, and insurrections broke
out even within Rome itself. Napoleon pronounced this a breach
of the September convention, and in A.D. 1867 the volunteers
were utterly routed by the French at Mentana. The French guarded
Civita Vecchia and fortified Rome. But in August, 1870, their own
national exigencies demanded the withdrawal of the French troops,
and after the battle of Sedan the Italians to a man insisted
on having Rome as their capital, and Victor Emanuel acquiesced.
The pope sought help far and near from Catholic and non-Catholic
powers, but he received only the echo of his own words, _non
possumus_. After a four hours’ cannonade a breach was made in the
walls of the eternal city, the white flag appeared on St. Angelo,
and amid the shouts of the populace the Italian troops entered
on September 20th, 1870. A plebiscite in the papal dominions gave
133,681 votes in favour of annexation and 1,507 against; in Rome
alone there were 40,785 for and only 46 against. The king now
issued the decree of incorporation; Rome became capital of united
Italy and the Quirinal the royal residence.
§ 185.4. =The Prisoner of the Vatican, A.D. 1870-1878.=--The
dethroned papal king could only protest and utter denunciations.
No result followed from the adoption of St. Joseph as guardian
and patron of the church, nor from the solemn consecration of the
whole world to the most sacred heart of Jesus, at the jubilee of
June 16th, A.D. 1875. The measures of A.D. 1871, by which Cavour
sought to realize his ideal of a “free church in a free state,”
were pronounced absurd, cunning, deceitful, and an outrage on
the apostles Peter and Paul. By these measures the rights and
privileges of a sovereign for all time had been conferred on the
pope: the holiness and inviolability of his person, a body-guard,
a post and telegraph bureau, free ambassadorial communication
with foreign powers, the _ex-territoriality_ of his palace of
the Vatican, embracing fifteen large saloons, 11,500 rooms,
236 stairs, 218 corridors, two chapels, several museums, archives,
libraries, large beautiful gardens, etc., as also of the Lateran
and the summer palace of Castle Gandolpho, with all appurtenances,
also an annual income, free from all burdens and taxes, of three
and a quarter million francs, equal to the former amount of
his revenue, together with unrestricted liberty in the exercise
of all ecclesiastical rights of sovereignty and primacy, and
the renunciation of all state interference in the disposal of
bishoprics and benefices. The right of the inferior clergy to
exercise the _appellatio ab abusu_ to a civil tribunal was set
aside, and of all civil rights only that of the royal _exequatur_
in the election of bishops, _i.e._ the mere right of investing
the nominee of the curia in the possession of the revenues of
his office, was retained.--To the end of his life Pius every year
returned the dotation as an insult and injury, and “the starving
holy father in prison, who has not where to lay his head,”
received three or four times more in Peter’s pence contributed
by all Catholic Christendom. Playing the _rôle_ of a prisoner
he never passed beyond the precincts of the Vatican. He reached
the semi-jubilee of his papal coronation in A.D. 1871, being
the first pope who falsified the old saying, _Annos Petri non
videbit_. He rejected the offer of a golden throne and the
title of “the great,” but he accepted a Parisian lady’s gift of
a golden crown of thorns. In support of the prison myth, straws
from the papal cell were sold in Belgium for half a franc per
stalk, and for the same price photographs of the pope behind
an iron grating. As once on a time the legend arose about the
disciple whom Jesus loved that he would not die, so was it
once said about the pope; and on his eighty-third birthday, in
A.D. 1874, a Roman Jesuit paper, eulogising the moral purity of
his life, put the words in his mouth, “Which of you convinceth
me of sin?” But he himself by constantly renewed rescripts,
encyclicals, briefs, allocutions to the cardinals and to numerous
deputations from far and near, unweariedly fanned the flame of
enthusiasm and fanaticism throughout papal Christendom, and
thundered threatening prophecies not only against the Italian,
but also against foreign states, for with most of them he lived
in open war. A collection of his “Speeches delivered at the
Vatican” was published in 1874, commented on by Gladstone in
the _Contemporary Review_ for January, 1875, who gives abundant
quotations showing papal assumptions, maledictions, abuse and
misunderstanding of the Scriptures with which they abound. On
the fiftieth anniversary of the pope’s episcopal consecration,
in June, 1877, crowds from all lands assembled to offer their
congratulations, with costly presents and Peter’s pence amounting
to sixteen and a half million francs. He died February 8th, 1878,
in the eighty-sixth year of his age and thirty-second of his
pontificate. His heirs claimed the unpaid dotations of twenty
million lire, but were refused by the courts of law.[543]--His
secretary Antonelli, descended from an old brigand family,
who from the time of his stay at Gaeta was his evil demon,
predeceased him in A.D. 1876. Though the son of a poor herdsman
and woodcutter, he left more than a hundred million lire. His
natural daughter, to the great annoyance of the Vatican, sought,
but without success, in the courts of justice to make good her
claims against her father’s greedy brothers.
§ 185.5. =Leo XIII.=--After only two days’ conclave the
Cardinal-archbishop of Perugia, Joachim Pecci, born in A.D. 1810,
was proclaimed on February 20th, 1878, as Leo XIII. In autograph
letters he intimated his accession to the German and Russian
emperors, but not to the king of Italy, and expressed his
wish for a good mutual understanding. To the government of the
Swiss Cantons he declared his hope that their ancient friendly
relations might be restored. At Easter, 1878, he issued an
encyclical to all patriarchs, primates, archbishops, and bishops,
in which he required of them that they should earnestly entreat
the mediation of the “immaculate queen of heaven” and the
intercession of St. Joseph, “the heavenly shield of the church,”
and also failed not to make prominent the infallibility of
the apostolic chair, and to condemn all the errors condemned
by his predecessors, emphasizing the necessity of restoring the
temporal power of the pope, and confirming and renewing all the
protests of his predecessor Pius IX., of sacred memory, against
the overthrow of the Papal States. On the first anniversary of
his elevation he proclaimed a universal jubilee, with the promise
of a complete indulgence. He still persisted in the prison
myth of his predecessor, and like him sent back the profferred
contribution of his “jailor.” In the conflicts with foreign
powers inherited from Pius, as well as in his own, he has
employed generally moderate and conciliatory language.--He has
not hesitated to take the first step toward a good understanding
with his opponents, for which, while persistently maintaining
the ancient principles of the papal chair, he makes certain
concessions in regard to subordinate matters, always with
the design and expectation of seeing them outweighed on the
other side by the conservation of all the other hierarchical
pretensions of the curial system. It was, however, only in
the middle of A.D. 1885 that it became evident that the pope
had determined, without allowing any misunderstanding to arise
between himself and his cardinals, to break through the trammels
of the irreconcilable zealots in the college. And indeed after
the conclusion of the German _Kulturkampf_ (§ 197, 13, 15),
brought about by these means, in an allocution with reference
thereto addressed to the cardinals in May, 1887, he gave an
unexpected expression to his wish and longing in regard to an
understanding with the government on the Italian question, which
involved an utter renunciation of his predecessor’s dogged _Non
possumus_, the attitude hitherto unfalteringly maintained. “Would
that peaceful counsels,” says he, “embracing all our peoples
should prevail in Italy also, and that at last once that unhappy
difference might be overcome without loss of privilege to the
holy see!” Such harmony, indeed, is only possible when the pope
“is subjected to no authority and enjoys perfect freedom,” which
would cause no loss to Italy, “but would only secure its lasting
peace and safety.” That he counts upon the good offices of the
German emperor for the effecting of this longed-for restoration
of such a _modus vivendi_ with the Italian government, he
has clearly indicated in his preliminary communications to the
Prussian centre exhorting to peace (§ 197, 14). The _Moniteur
de Rome_ (§ 188, 1), however, interpreted the words of the pope
thus: “Italy would lose nothing materially or politically, if
it gave a small corner of its territory to the pope, where he
might enjoy actual sovereignty as a guarantee of his spiritual
independence.”--On Leo’s contributions to theological science
see § 191, 12; on his attitude to Protestantism and the Eastern
Church, see § 175, 2, 4. He expressed himself against the
freemasons in an encyclical of A.D. 1884 with even greater
severity than Pius. Consequently the Roman Inquisition issued
an instruction to all bishops throughout the Catholic world
requiring them to enjoin their clergy in the pulpit and the
confessional to make it known that all freemasons are _eo ipso_
excommunicated, and by Catholic associations of every sort,
especially by the spread of the third order of St. Francis
(§ 186, 2), the injunction was carried out. At the same time a
year’s reprieve was given to the freemasons, during which the
Roman heresy laws, which required their children, wives, and
relatives to denounce them to all clergy and laymen, were to be
suspended. Should the guilty, however, allow this day of grace
to pass, these laws were to be again fully enforced, and then it
would be only for the pope to absolve them from their terrible sin.
§ 186. VARIOUS ORDERS AND ASSOCIATIONS.
The order of the Jesuits restored in A.D. 1814 by Pius VII.
impregnated all other orders with its spirit, gained commanding
influence over Pius IX., made the bishops its agents, and turned the
whole Catholic church into a Jesuit institution. An immense number
of societies arose aiming at the accomplishment of home mission work,
inspired by the Jesuit spirit and carrying out unquestioningly the
ultramontane ideas of their leaders. Also zeal for foreign missions
on old Jesuit lines revived, and the enthusiasm for martyrdom was due
mainly to the same cause.
§ 186.1. =The Society of Jesus and Related Orders.=--After the
suppression of their order by Clement XIV. the Jesuits found
refuge mainly among the =Redemptorists= (§ 165, 2), whose
headquarters were at Vienna, from which they spread through
Austria and Bavaria, finding entrance also into Switzerland,
France, Belgium, and Holland, and after 1848 into Catholic
Prussia, as well as into Hesse and Nassau. The =Congregation
of the Sacred Heart= was founded by ex-Jesuits in Belgium
in A.D. 1794, and soon spread in Austria and Bavaria.--The
=restored Jesuit order= was met with a storm of opposition from
the liberals. The July revolution of A.D. 1830 drove the Jesuits
from France, and when they sought to re-establish themselves,
Gregory XVI., under pressure of the government, insisted that
their general should abolish the French institutions in A.D. 1845.
An important branch of the order had settled in Catholic
Switzerland, but the unfavourable issue of the Separated Cantons’
War of 1847 drove its members out of that refuge. The revolution
of 1848 threatened the order with extinction, but the papal
restoration of A.D. 1850 re-introduced it into most Catholic
countries. Since then the sons of Loyola have renewed their
youth like the eagle. They have forced their way into all lands,
even in those on both sides of the ocean that had by legislative
enactments been closed against them, spreading ultramontane views
among Catholics, converting Protestants, and disseminating their
principles in schools and colleges. Even Pius IX., under whose
auspices Aug. Theiner had been allowed, in A.D. 1853, in his
“History of the Pontificate of Clement XIV.” to bring against
them the heavy artillery drawn from “the secret archives of the
Vatican,” again handed over to them the management of public
instruction, and surrendered himself even more and more to their
influence, so that at last he saw only by their eyes, heard only
with their ears, and resolved only according to their will.[544]
The founding of the Italian kingdom under the Prince of Sardinia
in A.D. 1860 led to their expulsion from all Italy, with the
exception of Venice and the remnants of the Papal States. When,
in A.D. 1866, Venice also became an Italian province, they
migrated thence into the Tyrol and other Austrian provinces,
where they enjoyed the blessings of the concordat (§ 198, 2).
Spain, too, on the expulsion of Queen Isabella in A.D. 1868, and
even Mexico and several of the States of Central and Southern
America, drove out the disciples of Loyola. On the other hand,
they made brilliant progress in Germany, especially in Rhenish
Hesse and the Catholic provinces of Prussia. But under the
new German empire the Reichstag, in A.D. 1872, passed a law
suppressing the Jesuits and all similar orders throughout the
empire (§ 197, 4). They were also formally expelled from France
in A.D. 1880 (§ 203, 6). Still, however, in A.D. 1881 the order
numbered 11,000 members in five provinces, and according to
Bismarck’s calculation in A.D. 1872 their property amounted to
280 million thalers. In A.D. 1853 John Beckx of Belgium was made
general. He retired in A.D. 1884 at the age of ninety, Anderlady,
a Swiss, having been appointed in A.D. 1883 his colleague and
successor.--The hope which was at first widely entertained
that Leo XIII. would emancipate himself from the domination of
the order seems more and more to be proved a vain delusion. In
July, 1886, he issued, on the occasion of a new edition of the
institutions of the order, a letter to Anderlady, in which he,
in the most extravagant manner, speaks of the order as having
performed the most signal services “to the church and society,”
and confirms anew everything that his predecessors had said and
done in its favour, while expressly and formally he recalls anew
anything that any of them had said and done against it.
§ 186.2. =Other Orders and Congregations.=--After the storms of
the revolution religious orders rapidly recovered lost ground.
France decreed, on November 2nd, 1789, the abolition of all
orders, and cloisters and in 1802, under Napoleon’s auspices,
they were also suppressed in the German empire and the friendly
princes indemnified with their goods. Yet on grounds of utility
Napoleon restored the Lazarists, as well as the Sisters of Mercy,
whose scattered remnants he collected in A.D. 1807 in Paris into
a general chapter, under the presidency of the empress-mother.
But new cloisters in great numbers were erected specially in
Belgium and France (in opposition to the law of 1789, which was
unrepealed), in Austria, Bavaria, Prussia, Rhenish Hesse, etc.,
as also in England and America. In 1849 there were in Prussia
fifty monastic institutes; in 1872 there were 967. In Cologne one
in every 215, in Aachen one in every 110, in Münster one in every
sixty-one, in Paderborn one in every thirty-three, was a Catholic
priest or member of an order. In Bavaria, between 1831 and 1873
the number of cloisters rose from 43 to 628, all, with the
exception of some old Benedictine monasteries, inspired and
dominated by the Jesuits. Even the Dominicans, originally such
determined opponents, are now pervaded by the Jesuit spirit. The
restoration of the =Trappist order= (§ 156, 8) deserves special
mention. On their expulsion from La Trappe in A.D. 1791 the
brothers found an asylum in the Canton Freiburg, and when driven
thence by the French invasion of A.D. 1798, Paul I. obtained from
the czar permission for them to settle in White Russia, Poland,
and Lithuania. But expelled from these regions again in A.D. 1800
they wandered through Europe and America, till after Napoleon’s
defeat they purchased back the monastery of La Trappe, and made
it the centre of a group of new settlements throughout France
and beyond it.--Besides regular orders there were also numerous
=congregations= or religious societies with communal life
according to a definite but not perpetually binding rule, and
without the obligation of seclusion, as well as =brotherhoods=
and =sisterhoods= without any such rule, which after the
restoration of A.D. 1814 in France and after A.D. 1848 in Germany,
were formed for the purposes of prayer, charity, education,
and such like. From France many of these spread into the Rhine
Provinces and Westphalia.--In Spain and Portugal (§ 205, 1, 5)
all orders were repeatedly abolished, subsequently also in
Sardinia and even in all Italy (§ 204, 1, 2), and also in several
Romish American states (§ 209, 1, 2), as also in Prussia and
Hesse (§ 197, 8, 15). Finally the third French Republic has
enforced existing laws against all orders and congregations not
authorized by the State (§ 203, 6).--On the 700th anniversary of
the birth of St. Francis, in September, 1882, Leo XIII. issued an
encyclical declaring the institute of the Franciscan Tertiaries
(§ 98, 11) alone capable of saving human society from all the
political and social dangers of the present and future, which had
some success at least in Italy.
Of what inhuman barbarity the superiors of cloisters are still
capable is shown _instar omnium_ in the horrible treatment of the
nun =Barbara Ubryk=, who, avowedly on account of a breach of her
vow of chastity, was confined since A.D. 1848 in the cloister of
the Carmelite nuns at Cracow in a dark, narrow cell beside the
sewer of the convent, without fire, bed, chair, or table. It was
only in A.D. 1869, in consequence of an anonymous communication
to the law officers, that she was freed from her prison in a
semi-animal condition, quite naked, starved, and covered with
filth, and consigned to an asylum. The populace of Cracow,
infuriated at such conduct, could be restrained from demolishing
all the cloisters only by the aid of the military.
§ 186.3. =The Pius Verein.=--A society under the name of the Pius
Verein was started at Mainz in October, 1848, to further Catholic
interests, advocating the church’s independence of the State,
the right of the clergy to direct education, etc. At the annual
meetings its leading members boasted in grossly exaggerated terms
of what had been accomplished and recklessly prophesied of what
would yet be achieved. At the twenty-eighth general assembly
at Bonn in A.D. 1881, with an attendance of 1,100, the same
confident tone was maintained. Windhorst reminded the Prussian
government of the purchase of the Sibylline books, and declared
that each case of breaking off negotiations raised the price
of the peace. Not a tittle of the ultramontane claims would be
surrendered. The watchword is the complete restoration of the
_status quo ante_. Baron von Loë, president of the Canisius
Verein, concluded his triumphant speech with the summons to
raise the membership of the union from 80,000 to 800,000, yea
to 8,000,000; then would the time be near when Germany should
become again a Catholic land and the church again the leader of
the people. At the assembly at Düsseldorf in A.D. 1883, Windhorst
declared, amid the enthusiastic applause of all present, that
after the absolute abrogation of the May laws the centre would
not rest till education was again committed unreservedly to the
church. In the assembly at Münster in A.D. 1885, he extolled
the pope (notwithstanding all confiscation and imprisoning for
the time being) as the governor and lord of the whole world.
The thirty-third assembly at Breslau in A.D. 1886, with special
emphasis, demanded the recall of all orders, including that of
the Jesuits.
§ 186.4. =The various German unions= gradually fell under
ultramontane influences. The Borromeo Society circulated Catholic
books inculcating ultramontane views in politics and religion.
The Boniface Union, founded by Martin, Bishop of Paderborn,
aided needy Catholic congregations in Protestant districts. Other
unions were devoted to foreign missions, to work among Germans in
foreign lands, etc. In all the universities such societies were
formed. In Bavaria patriot peasant associations were set on foot,
as a standing army in the conflict of the ultramontane hierarchy
with the new German empire. For the same purpose Bishop Ketteler
founded in A.D. 1871 the Mainz Catholic Union, which in A.D. 1814
had 90,000 members. The Görres Society of 1876 (§ 188, 1) and
the Canisius Society of 1879 (§ 151, 1) were meant to promote
education on ultramontane lines.--In =Italy= such societies
have striven for the restoration of the temporal power and the
supremacy of the church over the State. The unions of =France=
were confederated in A.D. 1870, and this general association
holds an annual congress. The several unions were called
“_œuvres_.” The _Œuvre du Vœu National_, _e.g._, had the task
of restoring penitent France to the “sacred heart of Jesus”
(§ 188, 12); the _Œuvre Pontifical_ made collections of Peter’s
pence and for persecuted priests; the _Œuvre de Jesus-Ouvrier_
had to do with the working classes, etc.
§ 186.5. The knowledge of the omnipotence of =capital= in
these days led to various proposals for turning it to account
in the interests of Catholicism. The Catholic Bank schemes of
the Belgian Langrand-Dumonceau in 1872 and the Munich bank were
pure swindles; and that of Adele Spitzeder 1869-1872, pronounced
“holy” by the clergy and ultramontane press, collapsed with
a deficit of eight and a quarter million florins.--Archbishop
Purcell of Cincinnati invited church members to avoid risk to
bank with him. He invested in land, advanced money for building
churches, cloisters, schools, etc., and in A.D. 1878 found
himself bankrupt with liabilities amounting to five million
dollars. He then offered to resign his office, but the pope
refused and gave him a coadjutor, whereupon the archbishop
retired into a cloister where he died in his eighty-third year.
In the _Union Générale_ of Paris, founded in 1876, which came
to a crash in 1882, the French aristocracy, the higher clergy
and members of orders lost hundreds of millions of francs.
§ 186.6. =The Catholic Missions.=--The impulse given to Catholic
interests after 1848 was seen in the zeal with which missions
in Catholic lands, like the Protestant Methodist revival and
camp-meetings (§ 208, 1), began to be prosecuted. An attempt was
thus made to gather in the masses, who had been estranged from
the church during the storms of the revolution. The Jesuits and
Redemptorists were prominent in this work. In bands of six they
visited stations, staying for three weeks, hearing confessions,
addressing meetings three times a day, and concluding by a
general communion.
§ 186.7. Besides the Propaganda (§ 156, 9), fourteen societies in
Rome, three in Paris, thirty in the whole of Catholic Christendom,
are devoted to the dissemination of Catholicism among =Heretics=
and =Heathens=. The Lyons Association for the spread of the faith,
instituted in 1822, has a revenue of from four to six million
francs. Specially famous is the =Picpus Society=, so called from
the street in Paris where it has its headquarters. Its founder
was the deacon Coudrin, a pupil of the seminary for priests
at Poictiers [Poitiers] broken up in A.D. 1789. Amid the evils
done to the church and the priests by the Revolution, in his
hiding-place he heard a divine call to found a society for the
purpose of training the youth in Catholic principles, educating
priests, and bringing the gospel to the heathen “by atoning for
excesses, crimes, and sins of all kinds by an unceasing day and
night devotion of the most holy sacrament of the altar.” Such a
society he actually founded in A.D. 1805, and Pius VII. confirmed
it in A.D. 1817. The founder died in A.D. 1837, after his
society had spread over all the five continents. Its chief aim
henceforth was missions to the heathen. While the Picpus society,
as well as the other seminaries and monkish orders, sent forth
crowds of missionaries, other societies devoted themselves to
collecting money and engaging in prayer. The most important of
these is the =Lyonese Society= for the spread of the faith of
A.D. 1822. The member’s weekly contribution is 5 cents, the
daily prayer-demand a paternoster, an angel greeting, and a
“St. Francis Xavier, pray for us.” The fanatical journal of the
society had a yearly circulation of almost 250,000 copies, in
ten European languages. The popes had showered upon its members
rich indulgences.--After Protestant missions had received such
a powerful impulse in the nineteenth century, the Catholic
societies were thereby impelled to force in wherever success had
been won and seemed likely to be secured, and wrought with all
conceivable jesuitical arts and devices, for the most part under
the political protection of France. The Catholic missions have
been most zealously and successfully prosecuted in North America,
China, India, Japan, and among the schismatic churches of the
Levant. Since 1837 they have been advanced by aid of the French
navy in the South Seas (§ 184, 7) and in North Africa by the
French occupation of Algiers, and most recently in Madagascar.
In South Africa they have made no progress.--In A.D. 1837-1839
a bloody persecution raged in Tonquin and Cochin China; in
A.D. 1866 Christianity was rooted out of Corea, and over 2,000
Christians slain; two years later persecution was renewed in
Japan. In China, through the oppressions of the French, the
people rose against the Catholics resident there. This movement
reached a climax in the rebellion of 1870 at Tientsin, when all
French officials, missionaries, and sisters of mercy were put to
death, and the French consulate, Catholic churches and mission
houses were levelled to the ground. Also in Further India since
the French war of A.D. 1883 with Tonquin, over which China
claimed rights of suzerainty, the Catholic missions have again
suffered, and many missionaries have been martyred.
§ 187. LIBERAL CATHOLIC MOVEMENTS.
Alongside of the steady growth of ultramontanism from the time of the
restoration of the papacy in A.D. 1814, there arose also a reactionary
movement, partly of a mystical-irenical, evangelical- revival and
liberal-scientific, and partly of a radical-liberalistic, character.
But all the leaders in such movements sooner or later succumbed before
the strictly administered discipline of the hierarchy. The Old Catholic
reaction (§ 190), on the other hand, in spite of various disadvantages,
still maintains a vigorous existence.
§ 187.1. =Mystical-Irenical Tendencies.=--=J. M. Sailer=,
deprived in A.D. 1794 of his office at Dillingen (§ 165, 12), was
appointed in A.D. 1799 professor of moral and pastoral theology
at Ingolstadt, and was transferred to Landshut in A.D. 1800.
There for twenty years his mild and conciliatory as well as
profoundly pious mysticism powerfully influenced crowds of
students from South Germany and Switzerland. Though the pope
refused to confirm his nomination by Maximilian as Bishop of
Augsburg in A.D. 1820, he so far cleared himself of the suspicion
of mysticism, separatism, and crypto-calvinism, that in A.D. 1829
no opposition was made to his appointment as Bishop of Regensburg.
Sailer continued faithful to the Catholic dogmatic, and none
of his numerous writings have been put in the Index. Yet he lay
under suspicion till his death in A.D. 1832, and this seemed to
be justified by the intercourse which he and his disciples had
with Protestant pietists. His likeminded scholar, friend, and
vicar-general, the Suffragan-bishop =Wittmann=, was designated
his successor in Regensburg, but he died before receiving papal
confirmation. Of all his pupils the most distinguished was the
Westphalian Baron von =Diepenbrock=, over whose wild, intractable,
youthful nature Sailer exercised a magic influence. In A.D. 1823
he was ordained priest, became Sailer’s secretary, remaining his
confidential companion till his death, was made vicar-general
to Sailer’s successor in A.D. 1842, and in A.D. 1845 was
raised to the archiepiscopal chair of Breslau, where he joined
the ultramontanes, and entered with all his heart into the
ecclesiastico-political conflicts of the Würzburg episcopal
congress (§ 192, 4). His services were rewarded by a cardinal’s
hat from Pius IX. in A.D. 1850. His pastoral letters, however,
as well as his sermons and private correspondence, show that he
never altogether forgot the teaching of his spiritual father. He
delighted in the study of the mediæval mystics, and was specially
drawn to the writings of Suso.
§ 187.2. =Evangelical-Revival Tendencies.=--A movement much
more evangelical than that of Sailer, having the doctrine of
justification by faith alone as its centre, was originated by
a simple Bavarian priest, =Martin Boos=, and soon embraced sixty
priests in the diocese of Augsburg. The spiritual experiences
of Boos were similar to those of Luther. The words of a poor old
sick woman brought peace to his soul in A.D. 1790, and led him
to the study of Scripture. His preaching among the people and his
conversations with the surrounding clergy produced a widespread
revival. Amid manifold persecutions, removed from one parish
to another, and flying from Bavaria to Austria and thence into
Rhenish Prussia, where he died in A.D. 1825 as priest of Sayn,
he lighted wherever he went the torch of truth. Even after his
conversion Boos believed that he still maintained the Catholic
position, but was at last to his own astonishment convinced of
the contrary through intercourse with Protestant pietists and the
study of Luther’s works. But so long as the mother church would
keep him he wished not to forsake her.[545] So too felt his
like-minded companions =Gossner= and =Lindl=, who were expelled
from Bavaria in A.D. 1829 and settled in St. Petersburg. Lindl,
as Provost of South Russia, went to reside in Odessa, where he
exercised a powerful influence over Catholics and Protestants and
among the higher classes of the Russians. The machinations of the
Roman Catholic and Greek churches caused both Gossner and Lindl
to leave Russia in A.D. 1824. They then joined the evangelical
church, Lindl in Barmen and Gossner in Berlin. Lindl drifted
more and more into mystico-apocalyptic fanaticism; but Gossner,
from A.D. 1829 till his death in A.D. 1858 as pastor of the
Bohemian church in Berlin, proved a sincere evangelical and a
most successful worker.--The Bavarian priest Lutz of Carlshuld,
influenced by Boos, devoted himself to the temporal and spiritual
well-being of his people, preached Christ as the saviour of
sinners, and exhorted to diligent reading of the Bible. In
A.D. 1831, with 600 of his congregation, he joined the Protestant
church; but to avoid separation from his beloved people, he
returned again after ten months, and most of his flock with him,
still retaining his evangelical convictions. He was not, however,
restored to office, and subsequently in A.D. 1857, with three
Catholic priests of the diocese, he attached himself to the
Irvingites, and was with them excommunicated.
§ 187.3. =Liberal-Scientific Tendencies.=--=Von Wessenberg=,
as vicar-general of the diocese of Constance introduced such
drastic administrative reforms as proved most distasteful to
the nuncio of Lucerne and the Romish curia. He also endeavoured
unsuccessfully to restore a German national Catholic church.
In the retirement of his later years he wrote a history of the
church synods of the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries, which
gave great offence to the ultramontanes.--=Fr. von Baader= of
Munich expressed himself so strongly against the absolutism
of the papal system that the ultramontane minister, Von Abel,
suspended his lectures on the philosophy of religion in A.D. 1838.
He gave still greater offence by his work on Eastern and Western
Catholicism, in which he preferred the former to the latter.[546]
The talented =Hirscher= of Freiburg more interested in what is
Christian than what is Roman Catholic, could not be won over
to yield party service to the ultramontanes. They persecuted
unrelentingly =Leop. Schmid=, whose theosophical speculation
had done so much to restore the prestige of theology at Giessen,
and had utterly discredited their pretensions. When his enemies
successfully opposed his consecration as Bishop of Mainz
in A.D. 1849, he resigned his professorship and joined the
philosophical faculty. Goaded on by the venomous attacks of his
opponents he advanced to a more extreme position, and finally
declared “that he was compelled to renounce the specifically
Roman Catholic church so long as she refused to acknowledge the
true worth of the gospel.”
§ 187.4. =Radical-Liberalistic Tendencies.=--The brothers
=Theiner= of Breslau wrote in A.D. 1828 against the celibacy
of the clergy; but subsequently John attached himself to the
German-Catholics, and in A.D. 1833 Augustine returned to his
allegiance to Rome (§ 191, 7).--During the July Revolution in
Paris, the priest Lamennais, formerly a zealous supporter of
absolutism, became the enthusiastic apostle of liberalism. His
journal _L’Avenir_, A.D. 1830-1832, was the organ of the party,
and his _Paroles d’un Croyant_, A.D. 1834, denounced by the
pope as unutterably wicked, made an unprecedented sensation. The
endeavour, however, to unite elements thoroughly incongruous led
to the gradual breaking up of the school, and Lamennais himself
approximated more and more to the principles of modern socialism.
He died in A.D. 1854. One of his most talented associates on
the staff of the _Avenir_ was the celebrated pulpit orator
=Lacordaire=, A.D. 1802-1861. Upon Gregory’s denunciation of
the journal in A.D. 1832 Lacordaire submitted to Rome, entered
the Dominican order in A.D. 1840, and wrote a life of Dominic
in which he eulogised the Inquisition; but his eloquence still
attracted crowds to _Notre Dame_. Ultimately he fell completely
under the influence of the Jesuits.
§ 187.5. =Attempts at Reform in Church Government.=--In A.D. 1861
=Liverani=, pope’s chaplain and apostolic notary, exposed the
scandalous mismanagement of Antonelli, the corruption of the
sacred college, the demoralization of the Roman clergy, and the
ambitious schemes of the Jesuits, recommended the restoration
of the holy Roman empire, not indeed to the Germans, but to
the Italians: the pope should confer on the king of Italy by
divine authority the title and privileges of Roman emperor, who,
on his part, should undertake as papal mandatory the political
administration of the States of the Church. But in A.D. 1873 he
sought and obtained papal forgiveness for his errors. The Jesuit
=Passaglia= expressed enthusiastic approval of the movements of
Victor Emanuel and of Cavour’s ideal of a “free church in a free
state.” He was expelled from his order, his book was put into
the Index, but the Italian Government appointed him professor of
moral philosophy in Turin. At last he retracted all that he had
said and written. In the preface to his popular exposition of the
gospels of 1874, the Jesuit father =Curci= urged the advisability
of a reconciliation between the Holy See and the Italian
government, and expressed his conviction that the Church States
would never be restored. That year he addressed the pope in
similar terms, and refusing to retract, was expelled his order in
A.D. 1877. Leo XIII. by friendly measures sought to move him to
recant, but without success. The condemnation of his books led
to their wider circulation. In A.D. 1883 he charged the Holy See
with the guilt of the unholy schism between church and state; but
in the following year he retracted whatever in his writings the
pope regarded as opposed to the faith, morals, and discipline of
the Catholic church.
§ 187.6. =Attempts to Found National Catholic Churches.=--After
the July Revolution of A.D. 1830 the Abbé =Chatel= of Paris
had himself consecrated bishop of a new sect by a new-templar
dignitary (§ 210, 1) and became primate of the =French Catholic
Church=, whose creed recognised only the law of nature and viewed
Christ as a mere man. After various congregations had been formed,
it was suppressed by the police in A.D. 1842. The Abbé =Helsen=
of Brussels made a much more earnest endeavour to lead the church
of his fatherland from the antichrist to the true Christ. His
=Apostolic Catholic Church= was dissolved in A.D. 1857 and its
remnants joined the Protestants. The founding of the =German
Catholic Church= in A.D. 1844 promised to be more enduring. In
August of that year, Arnoldi, Bishop of Treves, exhibited the
holy coat preserved there, and attracted one and a half millions
of pilgrims to Treves (§ 188, 2). A suspended priest, =Ronge=, in
a letter to the bishop denounced the worship of relics, seeking
to pose as the Luther of the nineteenth century. =Czerski= of
Posen had in August, 1844, seceded from the Catholic church, and
in October founded the “Christian Catholic Apostolic Church,”
whose creed embodied the negations without the positive beliefs
of the Protestant confessions, maintaining in other respects
the fundamental articles of the Christian faith. Ronge meanwhile
formed congregations in all parts of Germany, excepting Bavaria
and Austria. A General Assembly held at Leipzig in March, 1845,
brought to light the deplorable religious nihilism of the leaders
of the party. Czerski, who refused to abandon the doctrine of
Christ’s divinity, withdrew from the conference, but Ronge held
a triumphal procession through Germany. His hollowness, however,
became so apparent that his adherents grew ashamed of their
enthusiasm for the new reformer. His congregations began to break
up; many withdrew, several of the leaders threw off the mask
of religion and adopted the _rôle_ of political revolutionists.
After the settlement that followed the disturbances of A.D. 1848
the remnants of this party disappeared.[547]
§ 187.7. The inferior clergy of Italy, after the political
emancipation of Naples from the Bourbon domination in A.D. 1860,
longed for deliverance from clerical tyranny, and founded in
A.D. 1862 a society with the object of establishing a =national
Italian church= independent of the Romish curia. Four Neapolitan
churches were put at the disposal of the society by the minister
Ricasoli, but in 1865, an agreement having been come to between
the curia and the government, the bishops were recalled and the
churches restored. Thousands, to save themselves from starvation,
gave in their submission, but a small party still remained
faithful. Encouraged by the events of 1870 (§§ 135, 3; 189, 3),
they were able in 1875 to draw up a “dogmatic statement” for
the “Church of Italy independent of the Roman hierarchy,” which
indeed besides the Holy Scriptures admitted the authority of
the universal church as infallible custodian and interpreter
of revealed truth, but accepted only the first seven œcumenical
councils as binding. In the same year Bishop Turano of Girgenti
excommunicated five priests of the Silician town Grotta as
opponents of the syllabus and the dogma of infallibility. The
whole clergy of the town, numbering twenty-five, then renounced
their obedience to the bishop, and with the approval of the
inhabitants declared themselves in favour of the “statement.”
North of Rome this movement made little progress; but in 1875
three villages of the Mantuan diocese claimed the ancient
privilege of choosing their own priest, and the bishop and
other authorities were obliged to yield. The Neapolitan movement,
however, as a whole seems to be losing itself in the sand.
§ 187.8. =The Frenchman, Charles Loyson=, known by his Carmelite
monkish name of _Père Hyacinthe_, was protected from the Jesuits
by Archbishop Darboy when he inveighed against the corruptions
of the church, and even Pius IX. on his visit to Rome in 1868
treated him with favour. The general of his order having imposed
silence on him, he publicly announced his secession from the
order and appeared as a “preacher of the gospel,” claiming
from a future General Council a sweeping reform of the church,
protesting against the falsifying of the gospel of the Son of God
by the Jesuits and the papal syllabus. He was then excommunicated.
In A.D. 1871 he joined the German Old Catholics (§ 190, 1);
and though he gave offence to them by his marriage, this did
not prevent the Old Catholics of Geneva from choosing him as
their pastor. But after ten months, because “he sought not the
overthrow but the reform of the Catholic church, and reprobated
the despotism of the mob as well as that of the clergy, the
infallibility of the state as well as that of the pope,” he
withdrew and returned to Paris, where he endeavoured to establish
a French National Church free of Rome and the Pope. The clerical
minister Broglie, however, compelled him to restrict himself to
moral-religious lectures. In February, 1879, he built a chapel
in which he preaches on Sundays and celebrates mass in the French
language. He sought alliance with the Swiss Christian Catholics,
whose bishop, Herzog, heartily reciprocated his wishes, and with
the Anglican church, which gave a friendly response. But that
this “seed corn” of a “Catholic Gallican Church” will ever grow
into a fully developed plant was from the very outset rendered
more than doubtful by the peculiar nature of the sower, as well
as of the seed and the soil.
§ 188. CATHOLIC ULTRAMONTANISM.
The restoration of the Jesuit order led, during the long pontificate
of Pius IX., to the revival and hitherto unapproached prosperity of
ultramontanism, especially in France, whose bishops cast the Gallican
Liberties overboard (§§ 156, 3; 203, 1), and in Germany, where with
strange infatuation even Protestant princes gave it all manner of
encouragement. Even the lower clergy were trained from their youth
in hierarchical ideas, and under the despotic rule of their bishops,
and a reign of terror carried on by spies and secret courts, were
constrained to continue the profession of the strictest absolutism.
§ 188.1. =The Ultramontane Propaganda.=--In =France=
ultramontanism revived with the restoration. Its first and ablest
prophet was Count =de Maistre=, A.D. 1754-1821, long Sardinian
ambassador at St. Petersburg. He wrote against the modern
views of the relations of church and state, supporting the
infallibility, absolutism, and inviolability of the pope. He
was supported by Bonald, Chateaubriand, Lamartine, Lamennais,
Lacordaire, and Montalembert. Only Bonald maintained this
attitude. Between him and Chateaubriand a dispute arose over
the freedom of the press; Lamennais and Lacordaire began to
blend political radicalism with their ultramontanism; Lamartine
involved himself in the February revolution of 1848 as the
apostle of humanity; and Montalembert took up a half-way position.
In 1840 Louis =Veuillot= started the _Univers Religieux_ in place
of the _Avenir_, in which, till his death in 1883, he vindicated
the extremest ultramontanism.--In =Germany= ultramontane views
were disseminated by romancing historians and poets mostly
converts from Protestantism. =Görres=, professor of history in
Munich, represented the Reformation as a second fall, and set
forth the legends of ascetics in his “History of Mysticism” as
sound history. The German bishops set themselves to train the
clergy in hierarchical views, and by a rule of terror prevented
any departure from that theory. The ultramontanising of the
masses was carried on by missions, and by the establishment
of brotherhoods and sisterhoods. In the beginning of A.D. 1860
there were only thirteen ultramontane journals with very
few subscribers, while in January, 1875, there were three
hundred. The most important was _Germania_, founded at Berlin in
1871.--The _Civiltà Cattolica_ of Rome was always revised before
publication by Pius IX., and under Leo XIII. a similar position
is held by the _Moniteur de Rome_, while the _Osservatore Romano_
and the _Voce della verità_ have also an official character.
§ 188.2. =Miracles.=--Prince =Hohenlohe= went through many parts
of Germany, Austria, and Hungary, performing miraculous cures;
but his day of favour soon passed, and he settled down as a
writer of ascetical works.--Pilgrimages to wonder-working shrines
were encouraged by reports of cures wrought on the grand-niece
of the Bishop of Cologne (§ 193, 1), cured of knee-joint
disease before the holy coat of Treves (§ 187, 6). Subjected to
examination, the pretended seamless coat was found to be a bit
of the gray woollen wrapping of a costly silk Byzantine garment
1½ feet broad and 1 foot long.
§ 188.3. =Stigmatizations.=--In many cases these marks were
found to have been fraudulently made, but in other cases it was
questionable whether we had not here a pathological problem,
or whether hysteria created a desire to deceive or pre-disposed
the subject to being duped under clerical influence. =Anna Cath.
Emmerich=, a nun of Dülmen in Westphalia, in 1812, professed
to have on her body bloody wound-marks of the Saviour. For five
years down to her death in 1824, the poet Brentano sat at her
feet, venerating her as a saint and listening to her ecstatic
revelations on the death and sufferings of the Redeemer and his
mother. Overberg, Sailer, and Von Stolberg were also satisfied of
the genuineness of her revelations and of the miraculous marking
of her body. The physician Von Drussel examined the wound-prints
and certified them as miraculous; but Bodde, professor of
chemistry at Münster, pronounced the blood marks spots produced
by dragon’s-blood. Competent physicians declared her a hysterical
woman incapable of distinguishing between dream and reality,
truth and lies, honesty and deceit. Others famous in the same
line were Maria von Wörl, Dominica Lazzari, and =Crescentia
Stinklutsch=; also Dorothea Visser of Holland and Juliana
Weiskircher from near Vienna.
§ 188.4. Of a very doubtful kind were the miraculous marks on
=Louise Lateau=, daughter of a Belgian miner. On 24th April, 1868,
it is said she was marked with the print of the Saviour’s wounds
on hands, feet, side, brow, and shoulders. In July, A.D. 1868,
she fell into an ecstasy, from which she could be awakened
only by her bishop or one authorized by him. Trustworthy
physicians, after a careful medical examination, reported
that she laboured under a disease which they proposed to call
“stigmatic neuropathy.” Chemical analysis proved the presence of
food which had been regularly taken, probably in a somnambulistic
trance. In the summer of 1875 her sister for a time put an end
to the affair by refusing the clergy entrance into the house,
and she was then obliged to eat, drink, and sleep like other
Christians, so that the Friday bloody marks disappeared. But
now, say ultramontane journals, Louise became dangerously ill,
and clergy were called in to her help, and the marks were again
visible. Her patron Bishop Dumont of Tournay being deposed by
the pope in 1879, she took part against his successor, and was
threatened with excommunication (§ 200, 7). She was now deserted
by the ultramontanes and Belgian clergy, and treated as a poor,
weak-minded invalid. She died neglected and in obscurity in
A.D. 1883.
§ 188.5. Of pseudo-stigmatizations there has been no lack even
in the most recent times. In 1845 =Caroline Beller=, a girl of
fifteen years, in Westphalia, was examined by a skilful physician.
On Thursday he laid a linen cloth over the wound-prints, and sure
enough on Friday it was marked with blood stains; but also strips
of paper laid under, without her knowledge, were pricked with
needles. The delinquent now confessed her deceit, which she had
been tempted to perpetrate from reading the works of Francis of
Assisi, Catherine of Siena, and Emmerich. Theresa Städele in 1849,
Rosa Tamisier in 1851, and Angela Hupe in 1863, were convicted of
fraudulently pretending to have stigmata. The latter was proved
to have feigned deafness and lameness for a whole year, to have
diligently read the writings of Emmerich in 1861, to have shown
the physician fresh bleeding wounds on hands, feet, and side, and
to have affirmed that she had neither eaten nor drunk for a year.
Four sisters of mercy were sent to attend her, and they soon
discovered the fraud. In 1876 the father confessor of Ernestine
Hauser was prosecuted for damages, having injured the girl’s
health by the severe treatment to which she was subjected in
order to induce ecstasy and obtain an opportunity for impressing
the stigmata. =Sabina Schäfer= of Baden, in her eighteenth year,
had for two years borne the reputation of a wonder-working saint,
who every Friday showed the five wound prints, and in ecstasy
told who were in hell and who in purgatory. She professed
to live without food, though often she betook herself to the
kitchen to pray alone, and even carried food with her to give
to her guardian angel to carry to the distant poor. When under
surveillance in 1880 she sought to bribe her guardian to bring
her meat and drink, fragments of food were found among her
clothes, and also a flask with blood and an instrument for
puncturing the skin. She confessed her guilt, and was sentenced
by the criminal court of Baden to ten weeks’ imprisonment. The
ultramontane _Pfälzer Bote_ complained that so-called liberals
should ruthlessly encroach on the rights of the church and the
family.
§ 188.6. =Manifestations of the Mother of God in France.=--The
most celebrated of these manifestations occurred in 1858 at
=Lourdes=, where in a grotto the Virgin repeatedly appeared to a
peasant girl of fourteen years, almost imbecile, named Bernadette
Soubirous, saying “_Je suis l’Immaculée Conception_,” and urging
the erection of a chapel on that spot. A miracle-working well
sprang up there. Since 1872 the pilgrimages under sanction of the
hierarchy have been on a scale of unexampled magnificence, and
the cures in number and significance far excelling anything heard
of before.--At the village of =La Salette= in the department of
Isère, in 1846 two poor children, a boy of fifteen and a girl of
eleven years, saw a fair white-dressed lady sitting on a stone
and shedding tears, and, lo, from the spot where her foot rested
sprang up a well, at which innumerable cures have been wrought.
The epidemic of visions of the Virgin reached a climax in Alsace
Lorraine in 1872. In a wood near the village of =Gereuth= crowds
of women and children gathered, professing to see visions of
the mother of God; but when the police appeared to protect the
forest, the manifestation craze spread over the whole land, and
at thirty-five stations almost daily visions were enjoyed. The
epidemic reached its crisis in Mary’s month, May, 1874, and
continued with intervals down to the end of the year. In some
cases deceit was proved; but generally it seemed to be the
result of a diseased imagination and self-deception fostered
by speculative purveyors and the ultramontane press and clergy.
§ 188.7. =Manifestations of the Mother of God in Germany.=--In
the summer of 1876 three girls of eight years old in the village
of =Marpingen=, in the department of Treves, saw by a well a
white-robed lady, with the halo over her head and with a child
in her arms, who made herself known as the immaculate Virgin,
and called for the erection of a chapel. A voice from heaven
said, This is my beloved Son, etc. There were also processions
and choirs of angels, etc. The devil, too, appeared and ordered
them to fall down and worship him. Thousands crowded from far
and near, and the water of the fountain wrought miraculous cures.
The surrounding clergy made a profitable business of sending
the water to America, and the _Germania_ of Berlin unweariedly
sounded forth its praises. Before the court of justice the
children confessed the fraud, and were sentenced to the house of
correction; and though on technical grounds this judgment was set
aside, the supreme court of appeal in 1879 pronounced the whole
thing a scandalous and disgraceful swindle.--Weichsel, priest
of =Dittrichswald= in Ermland, who gained great reputation as an
exorcist, made a pilgrimage to Marpingen in the summer of 1877,
and on his return gave such an account of what he had seen to
his communicants’ class that first one and then another saw the
mother of God at a maple tree, which also became a favourite
resort for pilgrims.
§ 188.8. =Canonizations.=--When in 1825 Leo XII. canonized a
Spanish monk Julianus, who among other miracles had made roasted
birds fly away off the spit, the Roman wits remarked that they
would prefer a saint who would put birds on the spit for them.
St. Liguori was canonized by Gregory XVI. in 1839. Pius IX.
canonized fifty-two and beatified twenty-six of the martyrs
of Japan. The Franciscans had sought from Urban VIII. in 1627
canonization for six missionaries and seventeen Japanese converts
martyred in 1596 (§ 150, 2), but were refused because they would
not pay 52,000 Roman thalers for the privilege. Pius IX. granted
this, and included three Jesuit missionaries. At Pentecost, 1862,
the celebration took place, amid acclamations, firing of cannons,
and ringing of bells. In 1868 the infamous president of the
heretic tribunal Arbúes [Arbires] (§ 117, 2) received the
distinction. The number of _doctores ecclesiæ_ was increased by
Pius IX. by the addition of Hilary of Poitiers in 1851, Liguori
in 1870, and Francis de Sales in 1877. And Leo XIII. canonized
four new saints, the most distinguished of whom was the French
mendicant, Bened. Jos. Labre, who after having been dismissed
by Carthusians, Cistercians, and Trappists as unteachable, made
a pilgrimage to Rome, where he stayed fifteen years in abject
poverty, and died in 1783 in his thirty-sixth year.
§ 188.9. =Discoveries of Relics.=--The Roman catacombs continued
still to supply the demand for relics of the saints for newly
erected altars. Toward the end of A.D. 1870 the Archbishop of
St. Iago de Compostella (§ 88, 4) made excavations in the crypt
of his cathedral, in consequence of an old tradition that the
bones of the Apostle James the Elder, the supposed founder of the
church, had been deposited there, and he succeeded in discovering
a stone coffin with remains of a skeleton. The report of this
made to Pius IX. gave occasion to the appointment of a commission
of seven cardinals, who, after years of minute examination of
all confirmatory historical, archæological, anatomical, and
local questions, submitted their report to Leo XIII., whereupon,
in November, 1884, he issued an “Apostolic Brief,” by which
he (without publishing the report) declared the unmistakable
genuineness of the discovered bones as _ex constanti et
pervulgato apud omnes sermone jam ab Apostolorum ætate memoriæ
prodita_, pronounced the relics generally _perennes fontes_,
from which the _dona cælestia_ flow forth like brooks among the
Christian nations, and calls attention to the fact that it is
just in this century, in which the power of darkness has risen
up in conflict against the Lord and his Christ, these and also
many other relics “_divinitus_” have been discovered, as _e.g._
the bones of St. Francis, of St. Clara, of Bishop Ambrose, of the
martyrs Gervasius and Protasius, of the Apostles Philip and James
the Less, the genuineness of which had been avouched by his
predecessors Pius VII. and Pius IX.
§ 188.10. =The blood of St. Januarius=, a martyr of the age
of Diocletian, liquefies thrice a year for eight days, and on
occasion of earthquakes and such-like calamities in Naples, the
blood is brought in two vials by a matron near to the head of the
saint; if it liquefies the sign is favourable to the Neapolitans,
if it remains thick unfavourable; but in either case it forms
a powerful means of agitation in the hands of the clergy.
Unbelievers venture to suggest that this _precioso sangue del
taumaturgo S. Gennaro_ is not blood, but a mixture that becomes
liquid by the warmth of the hand and the heat of the air in the
crowded room, some sort of cetaceous product coloured red.
§ 188.11. About 100 clergy, twenty colour-bearers, 150 musicians,
10,000 leapers, 3,000 beggars, and 2,000 singers take part
in the =Leaping Procession at Echternach= in Luxemburg, which
is celebrated yearly on Whit-Tuesday. It was spoken of in the
sixteenth century as an ancient custom. After an “exciting”
sermon, the procession is formed in rows of from four to six
persons bound together by pocket-handkerchiefs held in their
hands; Wilibrord’s dance is played, and all jump in time to the
music, five steps forward and two backward, or two backward and
three forward, varied by three or four leaps to the right and
then as many to the left. Thus continually leaping the procession
goes through the streets of the city to the parish church, up
the sixty-two steps of the church stair and along the church
aisles to the tomb of Wilibrord (§ 78, 3). The dance is kept up
incessantly for two hours. The performers do so generally because
of a vow, or as penance for some fault, or to secure the saint’s
intercession for the cure of epilepsy and convulsive fits,
common in that region, mainly no doubt owing to such senseless
proceedings. The origin of the custom is obscure. Tradition
relates that soon after the death of Wilibrord a disease appeared
among the cattle which jumped incessantly in the stalls, till
the people went leaping in procession to Wilibrord’s tomb, and
the plague was stayed! But the custom is probably a Christian
adaptation of an old spring festival dance of pagan times
(§ 75, 3; comp. 2 Sam. vi. 14).
§ 188.12. =The Devotion of the Sacred Heart.=--Even after the
suppression of the Jesuit order the devotion of the Sacred Heart
(§ 156, 6) was zealously practised by the ex-Jesuits and their
friends. On the restoration of the order numerous brotherhoods
and sisterhoods, especially in France, devoted themselves to this
exercise, and the _revanche_ movement of A.D. 1870 used this as
one of its most powerful instruments. Crowds of pilgrims flocked
to Paray le Monial, and there, kneeling before the cradle of
Bethlehem, they besought the sacred heart of Jesus to save France
and Rome, and the refrain of all the pilgrim songs, “_Dieu, de
la clemence ... sauvez Rome et la France au nom du sacré-cœur_,”
became the spiritual Marseillaise of France returning to the
Catholic fold. From the money collected over the whole land a
beautiful church _du Sacré-Cœur_ has been erected on Montmartre
in Paris. The gratifying news was then brought from Rome that
the holy father had resolved on July 16th, 1875, the twenty-ninth
anniversary of his ascending the papal throne and the two
hundredth anniversary of the great occurrences at Paray le
Monial, that the whole world should give adoration to the sacred
heart. In France this day was fixed upon for the laying of the
foundation stone of the church at Montmartre, and the Archbishop
of Cologne, Paul Melchers, commanded Catholic Germany to show
greater zeal in the adoration of the sacred heart, “ordained by
divine revelation” two hundred years before.
§ 188.13. =Ultramontane Amulets.=--The Carmelites adopted a brown,
the Trinitarians a white, the Theatines a blue, the Servites
a black, and the Lazarites a red, scapular, assured by divine
visions that the wearing of them was a means of salvation. A
tract, entitled “_Gnaden und Ablässe des fünffachen Skapuliers_,”
published by episcopal authority at Münster in 1872, declared
that any layman who wore the five scapulars would participate
in all the graces and indulgences belonging to them severally.
The most useful of all was the Carmelite scapular, impenetrable
by bullets, impervious to daggers, rendering falls harmless,
stilling stormy seas, quenching fires, healing the possessed, the
sick, the wounded, etc.--The Benedictines had no scapulars, but
they had Benedict-medals, from which they drew a rich revenue.
This amulet first made its appearance in the Bavarian Abbey of
Metten. The tract, entitled, “_St. Benediktusbüchlein oder die
Medaille d. h. Benediktus_,” published at Münster in 1876, tells
how it cures sicknesses, relieves toothache, stops bleeding
at the nose, heals burns, overcomes the craving for drink,
protects from attacks of evil spirits, restrains skittish horses,
cures sick cattle, clears vineyards of blight, secures the
conversion of heretics and godless persons, etc.--In A.D. 1878
there appeared at Mainz, with approval of the bishop, a book in
its third edition, entitled, “_Der Seraphische Gürtel und dessen
wunderbare Reichtümer nach d. Franz. d. päpstl. Hausprälaten
Abbé v. Segur_,” according to which Sixtus V. in 1585 founded
the Archbrotherhood of the Girdle of St. Francis. It also affirms
that whoever wears this girdle day and night and repeats the six
enjoined paternosters, participates in all the indulgences of
the holy land and of all the basilicas and sanctuaries of Rome
and Assisi, and is entitled to liberate 1,000 souls a day from
purgatory.--Great miracles of healing and preservation from all
injuries to body and soul, property and goods, are attributed by
the Jesuits to the “_holy water of St. Ignatius_” (§ 149, 11),
the sale of which in Belgium, France, and Switzerland has proved
to them a lucrative business. But the mother of God has herself
favoured them with a still more powerful miracle-working water in
the fountains of Lourdes and Marpingen.
§ 188.14. We give in conclusion a specimen of =Ultramontane
pulpit eloquence=. A Bavarian priest, Kinzelmann, said in a
sermon in 1872: “We priests stand as far above the emperor, kings,
and princes as the heaven is above the earth.... Angels and
archangels stand beneath us, for we can in God’s stead forgive
sins. We occupy a position superior to that of the mother of God,
who only once bare Christ, whereas we create and beget him every
day. Yea, in a sense, we stand above God, who must always and
everywhere serve us, and at the consecration must descend from
heaven upon the mass,” etc.--An apotheosis of the priesthood
worthy of the Middle Ages.
§ 189. THE VATICAN COUNCIL.[548]
Immediately after Pius IX. had, at the centenary of St. Peter in 1867,
given a hint that a general council might be summoned at an early date,
the _Civiltà Cattolica_ of Rome made distinct statements to the effect
that the most prominent questions for discussion would be the confirming
of the syllabus (§ 185, 2), the sanctioning of the doctrine of papal
absolutism in the spirit of the bull _Unam sanctam_ of Boniface VIII.
(§ 110, 1), and the proclamation of papal infallibility. The _Civiltà_
had already taught that “when the pope thinks, it is God who thinks in
him.” When the council opened on the day of the immaculate conception,
December 8th, 1869, all conceivable devices of skilful diplomacy
were used by the Jesuit Camarilla, and friendly cajoling and violent
threatening on the part of the pope, in order to silence or win
over, and, in case this could not be done, to stifle and suppress
the opposition which even already was not inconsiderable in point
of numbers, but far more important in point of moral, theological,
and hierarchical influence. The result aimed at was secured. Of the
150 original opponents only fifty dared maintain their opposition to
the end, and even they cowardly shrank from a decisive conflict, and
wrote from their respective dioceses, as their Catholic faith obliged
them to do, notifying their most complete acquiescence.
§ 189.1. =Preliminary History of the Council.=--When Pius IX. on
the centenary of St. Peter made known to the assembled bishops
his intention to summon a general council, they expressed their
conviction that by the blessing of the immaculate Virgin it would
be a powerful means of securing unity, peace, and holiness. The
formal summons was issued on the day of St. Peter and St. Paul
of the following year, June 29th, 1868. The end for which the
council was convened was stated generally as follows: The saving
of the church and civil society from all evils threatening them,
the thwarting of the endeavours of all who seek the overthrow
of church and state, the uprooting of all modern errors and the
downfall of all godless enemies of the apostolical chair. In
Germany the Catholic General Assembly which met at Bamberg soon
after this declared that from this day a new epoch in the world’s
history would begin, for “either the salvation of the world would
result from this council, or the world is beyond the reach of
help.” This hopefulness prevailed throughout the whole Catholic
world. Fostered by the utterances of the _Civiltà Cattolica_, the
excitement grew from day to day. The learned bishop _in partibus_
Maret, dean of the theological faculty of Paris, now came
forward as an eloquent exponent of the Gallican liberties;
even the hitherto so strict Catholic, the Count Montalembert,
to the astonishment of everybody, assumed a bold and independent
attitude in regard to the council, and energetically protested
in a publication of March 7th, 1870, six days before his death,
against the intrigues of the Jesuits and the infallibility dogma
which it was proposed to authorize. But the greatest excitement
was occasioned by the work “_Der Papst und das Konzil_,”
published in Leipzig, 1869, under the pseudonym _Janus_, of which
the real authors were Döllinger, Friedrich, and Huber of Munich,
who brought up the heavy artillery of the most comprehensive
historical scholarship against the evident intentions of the
curia. The German bishops gathered at the tomb of St. Boniface
at Fulda in September, 1869, and issued from thence a general
pastoral letter to their disturbed flocks, declaring that it
was impossible that the council should decide otherwise than
in accordance with holy Scripture and the apostolic traditions
and what was already written upon the hearts of all believing
Catholics. Also the papal secretary, Card. Antonelli, quieted
the anxiety of the ambassadors of foreign powers at Rome by the
assurance that the Holy See had in view neither the confirming of
the syllabus nor the affirming of the dogma of infallibility. In
vain did the Bavarian premier, Prince Hohenlohe, insist that the
heads of other governments should combine in taking measures to
prevent any encroachment of the council upon the rights of the
state. The great powers resolved to maintain simply a watchful
attitude, and only too late addressed earnest expostulations and
threats.
§ 189.2. =The Organization of the Council.=--Of 1,044 prelates
entitled to take part in the council 767 made their appearance,
of whom 276 were Italians and 119 bishops _in partibus_, all
pliable satellites of the curia, as were also the greater number
of the missionary bishops, who, with their assistants in the
propaganda, were supported at the cost of the holy father. The
sixty-two bishops of the Papal States were doubly subject to the
pope, and of the eighty Spanish and South American bishops it was
affirmed in Rome that they would be ready at the bidding of the
holy father to define the Trinity as consisting of four persons.
Forty Italian cardinals and thirty generals of orders were
equally dependable. The Romance races were represented by no less
than 600, the German by no more than fourteen. For the first time
since general councils were held was the laity entirely excluded
from all influence in the proceedings, even the ambassadors of
Catholic and tolerant powers. The order of business drawn up
by the pope was arranged in all its details so as to cripple
the opposition. The right of all fathers of the council to make
proposals was indeed conceded, but a committee chosen by the pope
decided as to their admissibility. From the special commissions,
whose presidents were nominated by the pope, the drafts of
decrees were issued to the general congregation, where the
president could at will interrupt any speaker and require him
to retract. Instead of the unanimity required by the canon law
in matters of faith, a simple majority of votes was declared
sufficient. A formal protest of the minority against these and
similar unconstitutional proposals was left quite unheeded. The
proceedings were indeed taken down by shorthand reporters, but
not even members of council were allowed to see these reports.
The conclusions of the general congregation were sent back for
final revision to the special commissions, and when at last
brought up again in the public sessions, they were not discussed,
but simply voted on with a _placet_ or a _non-placet_. The right
transept of St. Peter’s was the meeting place of the council,
the acoustics of which were as bad as possible, but the pope
refused every request for more suitable accommodation. Besides,
the various members spoke with diverse accents, and many had but
a defective knowledge of Latin. Although absolute secresy was
enjoined on pain of falling into mortal sin, under the excitement
of the day so much trickled out and was in certain Romish circles
so carefully gathered and sifted, that a tolerably complete
insight was reached into the inner movements of the council. From
such sources the author of the “_Römischen Briefe_,” supposed
to have been Lord Acton, a friend and scholar of Döllinger, drew
the material for his account, which, carried by trusty messengers
beyond the bounds of the Papal State, reached Munich, and
there, after careful revision by Döllinger and his friends, were
published in the _Augsburg Allg. Zeitung_. Also Prof. Friedrich
of Munich, who had accompanied Card. Hohenlohe to Rome as
theological adviser, collected what he could learn in episcopal
and theological circles in a journal which was published at a
later date.
§ 189.3. =The Proceedings of the Council.=--The first public
session of December 8th, 1869, was occupied with opening
ceremonies; the second, of January 6th, with the subscription
of the confession of faith on the part of each member. The first
preliminary was the _schema_ of the faith, the second that on
church discipline. Then followed the _schema_ on the church and
the primacy of the pope in three articles: the legal position
of the church in reference to the state, the absolute supremacy
of the pope over the whole church on the principles of the
Pseudo-Isidore (§ 87, 2) and the assumptions of Gregory VII.,
Innocent III. and Boniface VIII., reproduced in the principal
propositions of the syllabus (§ 184, 2), and the outlines of a
catechism to be enforced as a manual for the instruction of youth
throughout the church. On March 6th there was added by way of
supplement to the _schema_ of the church a fourth article in the
form of a sketch of the decree of infallibility. Soon after the
opening of the council an agitation in this direction had been
started. An address to the pope emanating from the Jesuit college
petitioning for this was speedily signed by 400 subscribers.
A counter address with 137 signatures besought the pope not to
make any such proposal. At the head of the agitation in favour of
infallibility stood archbishops Manning of Westminster, Deschamps
of Mechlin, Spalding of Baltimore, and bishops Fessler of
St. Pölten, secretary of the council, Senestrey of Regensburg,
the “overthrower of thrones” (§ 197, 1), Martin of Paderborn, and,
as bishop _in partibus_, Mermillod of Geneva. Among the leaders
of the opposition the most prominent were cardinals Rauscher of
Vienna, Prince Schwarzenberg of Prague and Matthieu of Besançon,
Prince-bishop Förster of Breslau, archbishops Scherr of Munich,
Melchers of Cologne, Darboy of Paris, and Kenrick of St. Louis,
the bishops Ketteler of Mainz, Dinkel of Augsburg, Hefele
of Rottenburg, Strossmayer of Sirmium, Dupanloup of Orleans,
etc.--Owing to the discussions on the =Schema of the Faith= there
occurred on March 22nd a stormy scene, which in its wild uproar
reminds one of the disgraceful _Robber Synod of Ephesus_
(§ 52, 4). When Bishop Strossmayer objected to the statement
made in the preamble, that the indifferentism, pantheism, atheism,
and materialism prevailing in these days are chargeable upon
Protestantism, as contrary to truth, the furious fathers of the
majority amid shouts and roars, shaking of their fists, rushed
upon the platform, and the president was obliged to adjourn the
sitting. At the next session the objectionable statement was
withdrawn and the entire _schema_ of the faith was unanimously
adopted at the third public sitting of the council on April 24th.
=The Schema of the Church= came up for a consideration on
May 10th. The discussion turned first and mainly on the fourth
article about the infallibility of the pope. Its biblical
foundation was sought in Luke xxii. 32, its traditional basis
chiefly in the well-known passage of Irenæus (§ 34, 8) and on
its supposed endorsement by the general councils of Lyons and
Florence (§ 67, 4, 6), but the main stress was laid on its
necessarily following from the position of the pope as the
representative of Christ. The opposition party had from the
outset their position weakened by the conduct of many of their
adherents who, partly to avoid giving excessive annoyance to the
pope, and partly to leave a door open for their retreat, did not
contest the correctness of the doctrine in question, but all the
more decidedly urged the inopportuneness of its formal definition
as threatening the church with a schism and provocative of
dangerous conflicts with the civil power. The longer the decision
was deferred by passionate debates, the more determinedly did
the pope throw the whole weight of his influence into the scales.
By bewitching kindliness he won some, by sharp, angry words he
terrified others. He denounced opponents as sectarian enemies of
the church and the apostolic chair, and styled them ignoramuses,
slaves of princes, and cowards. He trusted the aid of the blessed
Virgin to ward off threatened division. To the question whether
he himself regarded the formulating of the dogma as opportune,
he answered: “No, but as necessary.” Urged by the Jesuits, he
confidently declared that it was notorious that the whole church
at all times taught the absolute infallibility of the pope;
and on another occasion he silenced a modest doubt as to a
sure tradition with the dictatorial words, _La tradizione
sono io_, adding the assurance, “As Abbáte Mastai I believe in
infallibility, as pope I have experienced it.” On July 13th the
final vote was called for in the general congregation. There were
371 who voted simply _placet_, sixty-one _placet juxta modum_,
_i.e._ with certain modifications, and eighty-eight _non placet_.
After a last hopeless attempt by a deputation to obtain the
pope’s consent to a milder formulating of the decree, Bishop
Ketteler vainly entreating on his knees, to save the unity and
peace of the church by some small concession, the fifty hitherto
steadfast members of the minority returned home, after emitting
a written declaration that they after as well as before must
continue to adhere to their negative vote, but from reverence and
respect for the person of the pope they declined to give effect
to it at a public session. On the following day, July 18th,
the fourth and last public sitting was held: 547 fathers voted
_placet_ and only two, Riccio of Cajazzo and Fitzgerald of Little
Rock, _non placet_. A violent storm had broken out during the
session and amid thunder and lightning, Pius IX., like “a second
Moses” (Exod. xix. 16), proclaimed in the _Pastor æternus_ the
absolute plenipotence and infallibility of himself and all his
predecessors and successors.--It was on the evening preceding
the proclamation of this new dogma that Napoleon III. proclaimed
war with Prussia, in consequence of which the pope lost the
last remnants of temporal sovereignty and every chance of its
restoration. Under the influence of the fever-fraught July sun,
the council now dwindled down to 150 members, and, after the
whole glory of the papal kingdom had gone down (§ 185, 3), on
October 20th, its sittings were suspended until better times.
The _schema_ of discipline and the preliminary sketch of a
catechism were not concluded; a subsequently introduced _schema_
on apostolic missions was left in the same state; and a petition
equally pressed by the Jesuits for the defining of the corporeal
ascension of Mary had not even reached the initial stage.
§ 189.4. =Acceptance of the Decrees of the Council.=--All
protests which during the council the minority had made
against the order of business determined on and against all
irregularities resulting from it, because not persisted in,
were regarded as invalid. Equally devoid of legal force was
their final written protest which they left behind, in which
they expressly declined to exercise their right of voting. And
the assent which they ultimately without exception gave to the
objective standpoint of the law and the faith of the Catholic
church, was not in the least necessary in order to make it appear
that the decisions of the council, drawn up with such unanimity
as had scarcely ever before been seen, were equally valid with
any of the decrees of the older councils. Thus the bishops
of the minority, if they did not wish to occasion a split of
unexampled dimensions and incalculable complications, quarrels,
and contentions in the church that boasted of a unity which had
hitherto been its strength and stay, could do nothing else than
yield at the twelfth hour to the pope’s demand that “_sacrificio
dell’intelletto_” which at the eleventh hour they had refused.
The German bishops, who had proved most steadfast at the council,
were now in the greatest haste to make their submission. Even
by the end of August, at Fulda, they joined their infallibilist
neighbours in addressing a pastoral letter, in which they most
solemnly declared that all true Catholics, as they valued their
soul’s salvation, must unconditionally accept the conclusions of
the council unanimously arrived at which are in no way prejudiced
by the “differences of opinion” elicited during the discussion.
At the same time they demanded of theological professors,
teachers of religion, and clergymen throughout the dioceses a
formal acceptance of these decrees as the inviolable standpoint
of their doctrinal teaching; they also took measures against
those who refused to yield, and excommunicated them. Even
Bishop Hefele, who did not sign this pastoral and was at
first determined not to yield nor swerve, at last gave way.
In his pastoral proclaiming the new dogma he gave it a quite
inadmissible interpretation: As the infallibility of the church,
so also that of the pope as a teacher, extends only to the
revealed doctrines of faith and morals, and even with reference
to them only the definitions proper and not the introductory
statements, grounds, and applications, belong to the infallible
department. But subsequently he cast himself unreservedly into
the arms of his colleagues assembled once again at Fulda in
September, 1872, where he also found his like-minded friend,
Bishop Haneberg of Spires. Yet he forbore demanding an express
assent from his former colleagues at Tübingen and his clergy, and
thus saved Württemberg from a threatened schism. Strossmayer held
out longest, but even he at last threw down his weapons. But many
of the most cultured and scholarly of the theological professors,
disgusted with the course events were taking, withdrew from the
field and continued silently to hold their own opinions. The
inferior clergy, for the most part trained by ultramontane bigots,
and held in the iron grasp of strict hierarchical discipline,
passed all bounds in their extravagant glorification of the new
dogma. And while among the liberal circles of the Catholic laity
it was laughed at and ridiculed, the bigoted nobles and the
masses who had long been used to the incensed atmosphere of an
enthusiastic adoration of the pope, bowed the knee in stupid
devotion to the papal god. But the brave heart of one noble
German lady broke with sorrow over the indignity done by the
Vatican decree and the characterlessness of the German bishops to
the church of which to her latest breath she remained in spirit a
devoted member. Amalie von Lasaulx, sister of the Munich scholar
Ernst von Lasaulx (§ 174, 4), from 1849 superioress of the
Sisters of Mercy in St. John’s Hospital at Bonn, lay beyond hope
of recovery on a sick-bed to which she had been brought by her
self-sacrificing and faithful discharge of the duties of her
calling, when there came to her from the lady superior of the
order at Nancy the peremptory demand to give in her adhesion to
the infallibility dogma. As she persistently and courageously
withstood all entreaties and threats, all adjurations and cruelly
tormenting importunings, she was deposed from office and driven
from the scene of her labours, and when, soon thereafter, in 1872,
she died, the habit of her order was stripped from her body. The
Old Catholics of Bonn, whose proceedings she had not countenanced,
charged themselves with securing for her a Christian burial.--No
state as such has recognised the council. Austria answered it by
abolishing the concordat and forbidding the proclamation of the
decrees. Bavaria and Saxony refused their _placet_; Hesse, Baden,
and Württemberg declared that the conclusions of the council
had not binding authority in law. Prussia indeed held to its
principle of not interfering in the internal affairs of the
Catholic church, but, partly for itself, partly as the leading
power of the new German empire, passed a series of laws in
order to resume its too readily abandoned rights of sovereignty
over the affairs of the Catholic church, and to insure itself
against further encroachments of ultramontanism upon the domain
of civil life (§ 197). The Romance states, on the other hand,
pre-eminently France, were prevented by internal troubles and
conflicts from taking any very decisive steps.
§ 190. THE OLD CATHOLICS.
A most promising reaction, mainly in Germany, led by men highly
respected and eminent for their learning, set in against the Vatican
Council and its decrees, in the so-called Old Catholic movement of the
liberal circles of the Catholic people, which went the length, even
in 1873, of establishing an independent and well organized episcopal
church. Since then, indeed, it has fallen far short of the all too
sanguine hopes and expectations at first entertained; but still
within narrower limits it continues steadily to spread and to rear for
itself a solid structure, while carefully, even nervously, shrinking
from anything revolutionary. More in touch with the demands of the
_Zeitgeist_ in its reformatory concessions, yet holding firmly in every
particular to the positive doctrines of orthodoxy, the Old Catholic
movement has made progress in Switzerland, while in other Catholic
countries its success has been relatively small.
§ 190.1. =Formation and Development of the Old Catholic Church
in the German Empire.=--In the beginning of August, 1870, the
hitherto exemplary Catholic professor Michelis of Braunsberg
(§ 191, 6), issued a public charge against Pius IX. as a heretic
and devourer of the church, and by the end of August several
distinguished theologians (Döllinger and Friedrich of Munich,
Reinkens, Weber, and Baltzer of Breslau, Knoodt of Bonn, and
the canonist Von Schulte of Prague) joined him at Nuremberg
in making a public declaration that the Vatican Council could
not be regarded as œcumenical, nor its new dogma as a Catholic
doctrine. This statement was subscribed to by forty-four Catholic
professors of the university of Munich with the rector at their
head, but without the theologians. Similarly, too, several
Catholic teachers in Breslau, Freiburg, Würzburg, and Bonn
protested, and still more energetically a gathering of Catholic
laymen at Königswinter. Besides the Breslau professors already
named, the Bonn professors Reusch, Langen, Hilgers, and Knoodt
refused to subscribe the council decrees at the call of their
bishop; whereas the Munich professors, with the exception of
Döllinger and Friedrich, yielded. A repeated injunction of his
archbishop in January, 1871, drew from Döllinger the statement
that he as a Christian, a theologian, a historian, and a citizen,
was obliged to reject the infallibility dogma, while at the
same time he was prepared before an assembly of bishops and
theologians to prove that it was opposed to Scripture, the
Fathers, tradition, and history. He was now literally overwhelmed
with complimentary addresses from Vienna, Würzburg, Munich, and
almost all other cities of Bavaria; and an address to government
on the dangers to the state threatened by the Vatican decrees
that lay at the Munich Museum, was quickly filled with 12,000
signatures. On April 14th, Döllinger was excommunicated, and
Professor Huber sent an exceedingly sharp reply to the archbishop.
After several preliminary meetings, the =first congress= of the
Old Catholics was held in Munich in September, 1871, attended
by 500 deputies from all parts of Germany. A programme was
unanimously adopted which, with protestation of firm adherence
to the faith, worship, and constitution of the ancient Catholic
church, maintained the invalidity of the Vatican decrees and the
excommunication occasioned by them, and, besides recognising the
Old Catholic church of Utrecht (§ 165, 8), expressed a hope of
reunion with the Greek church, as well as of a gradual progress
towards an understanding with the Protestant church. But when at
the second session the president, Dr. von Schulte, proposed the
setting up of independent public services with regular pastors,
and the establishing as soon as possible of an episcopal
government of their own, Döllinger contested the proposal as
a forsaking of the safe path of lawful opposition, taking the
baneful course of the Protestant Reformation, and tending toward
the formation of a sect. As, however, the proposal was carried
by an overwhelming majority, he declined to take further part
in their public assemblies and retired more into the background,
without otherwise opposing the prevailing current or detaching
himself from it. The second congress was held at Cologne in
the autumn of 1872. From the episcopal churches of England and
America, from the orthodox church of Russia, from France, Italy,
and Spain, were sent deputies and hearty friendly greetings.
Archbishop Loos of Utrecht, by the part which he took in the
congress, cemented more closely the union with the Old Catholics
of Holland. Even the German “_Protestantenverein_” was not
unrepresented. A committee chosen for the purpose drew up an
outline of a synodal and congregational order, which provides
for the election of bishops at an annual meeting at Pentecost
of a synod, of which all the clergy are members and to which the
congregations send deputies, one for every 200 members. Alongside
of the bishop stands a permanent synodal board of five priests
and seven laymen. The bishop and synodal board have the right of
vetoing doubtful decrees of synod. The choice of pastors lies
with the congregation; its confirmation belongs to the bishop.
In July, 1873, a bishop was elected in the Pantaleon church
of Cologne by an assembly of delegates, embracing twenty-two
priests and fifty-five laymen. The choice fell upon Professor
Reinkens, who, as meanwhile Bishop Loos of Utrecht had died, was
consecrated on August 11th, at Rotterdam, by Bishop Heykamp of
Deventer, and selected Bonn as his episcopal residence.
§ 190.2. The first synod of the German Old Catholics, consisting
of thirty clerical and fifty-nine lay members, met at Bonn in
May, 1874. It was agreed to continue the practice of auricular
confession, but without any pressure being put upon the
conscience or its observance being insisted upon at set times.
Similarly the moral value of fasting was recognised, but all
compulsory abstinence, and all distinctions of food as allowable
and unallowable, were abolished. The second synod, with reference
to the marriage law, took the position that civil regular
marriages ought also to have the blessing of the church; only
in the case of marriages with non-Christians and divorced parties
should this be refused. The third synod introduced a German
ritual in which the exorcism was omitted, while the Latin mass
was provisionally retained. The fourth synod allowed to such
congregations as might wish it the use of the vernacular in
several parts of the service of the mass. At all these synods the
lay members had persistently repeated the proposal to abolish the
obligatory celibacy of the clergy. But now the agitation,
especially on the part of the Baden representatives, had become
so keen, that at the fifth synod of 1878, in spite of the
warning read by Bishop Reinkens from the Dutch Old Catholics,
who threatened to withdraw from the communion, the proposal
was carried by seventy-five votes against twenty-two. The Bonn
professors, Langen and Menzel, foreseeing this result, had
absented themselves from the synod, Reusch immediately withdrew
and resigned his office as episcopal vicar-general, Friedrich
protested in the name of the Bavarian Old Catholics. Reinkens,
too, had vigorously opposed the movement; whereas Knoodt,
Michelis, and Von Schulte had favoured it. The synod of 1883
resolved to dispense the supper in both kinds to members of the
Anglican church residing in Germany, but among their own members
to follow meanwhile the usual practice of _communio sub una_.
The number of Old Catholic congregations in the German empire
is now 107, with 38,507 adherents and 56 priests.--Even at their
first congress the German Old Catholics, in opposition to the
unpatriotic and law-defying attitude of German ultramontanism,
had insisted upon love of country and obedience to the laws
of the state as an absolute Christian duty. Their newly chosen
bishop Reinkens, too, gave expression to this sentiment in
his first pastoral letter, and had the oath of allegiance
administered him by the Prussian, Baden, and Hessian governments.
But Bavaria felt obliged, on account of the terms of its
concordat, to refuse. At first the Old Catholics had advanced the
claim to be the only true representatives of the Catholic church
as it had existed before July 18th, 1870. At the Cologne congress
they let this assumption drop, and restricted their claims upon
the state to equal recognition with “the New Catholics,” equal
endowments for their bishop, and a fair proportion of the
churches and their revenues. Prussia responded with a yearly
episcopal grant of 16,000 thalers; Baden added about 6,000. It
proved more difficult to enforce their claim to church property.
A law was passed in Baden in 1874, which not only guaranteed
to the Old Catholic clergy their present benefices and incomes,
freed them from the jurisdiction of the Romish hierarchy, and
gave them permission to found independent congregations, but also
granted them a mutual right of possessing and using churches and
church furniture as well as sharing in church property according
to the numerical proportion of the two parties in the district.
A similar measure was introduced into the Prussian parliament,
and obtained the royal assent in July, 1875. Since then, however,
the interest of the government in the Old Catholic movement has
visibly cooled. In Baden, in 1886 the endowment had risen to
24,000 marks.
§ 190.3. =The Old Catholics in other Lands.=--=In Switzerland=
the Old, or rather, as it has there been called, the Christian,
Catholic movement, had its origin in 1871 in the diocese
of Basel-Solothurn, whence it soon spread through the whole
country. The national synod held at Olten in 1876 introduced
the vernacular into the church services, abolished the compulsory
celibacy of the clergy and obligatory confession of communicants,
and elected Professor Herzog bishop, Reinkens giving him
episcopal consecration. In 1879 the number of Christian Catholics
in German Switzerland amounted to about 70,000, with seventy-two
pastors. But since then, in consequence of the submission of the
Roman Catholics to the church laws condemned by Pius IX. they
have lost the majority in no fewer than thirty-nine out of the
forty-three congregations of Canton Bern, and therewith the
privileges attached. A proposal made in the grand council of
the canton in 1883 for the suppression of the Christian Catholic
theological faculty in the University of Bern, which has existed
since 1874, was rejected by one hundred and fifty votes against
thirteen.--=In Austria=, too, strong opposition was shown
to the infallibility dogma. At Vienna the first Old Catholic
congregation was formed in February, 1872, under the priest Anton;
and soon after others were established in Bohemia and Upper
Austria. But it was not till October, 1877, that they obtained
civil recognition on the ground that their doctrine is that
which the Catholic church professed before 1870. In June, 1880,
they held their first legally sanctioned synod. The provisional
synodical and congregational order was now definitely adopted,
and the use of the vernacular in the church services, the
abolition of compulsory fasting, confession, and celibacy,
as well as of surplice fees, and the abandoning of all but the
high festivals, were announced on the following Sunday. The
bitter hatred shown by the Czechs and the ultramontane clergy
to everything German has given to the Old Catholic movement for
some years past a new impulse and decided advantage.--=In France=
the Abbé Michaud of Paris lashed the characterlessness of the
episcopate and was excommunicated, and the Abbés Mouls and Junqua
of Bordeaux were ordered by the police to give up wearing the
clerical dress. Junqua, refusing to obey this order, was accused
by Cardinal Donnet, Bishop of Bordeaux, before the civil court,
and was sentenced to six months’ imprisonment. Not till 1879
did the ex-Carmelite Loyson of Paris lay the foundation of a
Catholic Gallican church, affiliated with the Swiss Old Catholics
(§ 187, 8).--=In Italy= since 1862, independently of the German
movement, yet on essentially the same grounds, a national Italian
church was started with very promising beginnings, which were
not, however, realized (§ 187, 7). Rare excitement was caused
throughout Italy by the procedure of Count Campello, canon of
St. Peter’s in Rome, who in 1881 publicly proclaimed his creed
in the Methodist Episcopal chapel, there renouncing the papacy,
and in a published manifesto addressed to the cathedral chapter
justified this step and made severe charges against the papal
curia; but soon after, in a letter to Loyson, he declared that
he, remaining faithful to the true Catholic church, did not
contemplate joining any Protestant sect severed from Catholic
unity, and in a communication to the Old Catholic Rieks of
Heidelberg professed to be in all points at one with the German
Old Catholics. Accordingly he sought to form in Rome a Catholic
reform party, whose interests he advocated in the journal _Il
Labaro_. The pope’s domestic chaplain, Monsignor Savarese, has
adopted a similar attitude. In December, 1883, he was received
by the pastor of the American Episcopal church at Rome into the
Old Catholic church on subscribing the Nicene Creed. In 1886 they
were joined by another domestic chaplain of the pope, Monsignor
Renier, formerly an intimate friend of Pius IX., who publicly
separated himself from the papal church, and with them took his
place at the head of a Catholic “_Congregation of St. Paul_” in
Rome.--Also the Episcopal _Iglesia Española_ in Spain (§ 205, 4),
and the Mexican _Iglesia de Jesus_ (§ 209, 1), must be regarded
as essentially of similar tendencies to the Old Catholics.
§ 191. CATHOLIC THEOLOGY, ESPECIALLY IN GERMANY.
Catholic theology in Germany, influenced by the scientific spirit
prevailing in Protestantism, received a considerable impulse. From
latitudinarian Josephinism it gradually rose toward a strictly
ecclesiastical attitude. Most important were its contributions in
the department of dogmatic and speculative theology. Besides and after
the schools of Hermes, Baader, and Günther, condemned by the papal
chair, appeared a whole series of speculative dogmatists who kept their
speculations within the limits of the church confession. Also in the
domain of church history, Catholic theology, after the epoch-making
productions of Möhler and Döllinger, has aided in reaching important
results, which, however, owing to the “tendency” character of
their researches, demand careful sifting. Least important are their
contributions to biblical criticism and exegesis. In general, however,
the theological _docents_ at the German universities give a scientific
character to their researches and lectures in respect of form and also
of matter, so far as the Tridentine limits will allow. But the more the
Jesuits obtained influence in Germany, the more was that scholasticism,
which repudiated the German university theology and opposed it with
perfidious suspicions and denunciations, naturalized, especially in the
episcopal seminaries, while it was recommended by Rome as the official
theology. The attempt, however, at the Munich Congress of Scholars
in 1863 to come to an understanding between the two tendencies failed,
owing to the contrariety of their principles and the opposition of
the Jesuits.--Outside of Germany, French theology, especially in the
department of history, manifested a praiseworthy activity. In Spain
theology has never outgrown the period of the Middle Ages. In Italy,
on the other hand, the study of Christian antiquities flourished,
stimulated by recent discoveries of treasures in catacombs, museums,
archives, and libraries.
§ 191.1. =Hermes and his School.=--The Bonn professor, =George
Hermes=, influenced in youth by the critical philosophy, passed
the Catholic dogma of Trent, assured it would stand the test,
through the fire of doubt and the scrutiny of reason, because
only what survives such examination could be scientifically
vindicated. He died in A.D. 1831, and left a school named after
him, mainly in Treves, Bonn, and Breslau. Gregory XVI. in 1835
condemned his writings, and the new Archbishop of Cologne,
Droste-Vischering, forbad students at Bonn attending the lectures
of Hermesians. These made every effort to secure the recall of
the papal censure. Braun and Elvenich went to Rome, but their
declaration that Hermes had not taught what the pope condemned
profited them as little as a similar statement had the Jansenists.
There now arose on both sides a bitter controversy, which
received new fuel from the Prusso-Cologne ecclesiastical strife
(§ 193, 1). Finally in 1844 professors Braun and Achterfeld of
Bonn were deprived of office by the coadjutor-Archbishop Geissel,
and the Prussian government acquiesced. The professors of the
Treves seminary and Baltzer of Breslau, the latter influenced
by Günther’s theology, retracted.--A year before Hermes’
condemnation the same pope had condemned the opposite theory of
Abbé =Bautain= of Strassburg, that the Christian dogmas cannot
be proved but only believed, and that therefore all use of reason
in the appropriation of the truths of salvation is excluded.
Bautain, as an obedient son of the church, immediately retracted,
“_laudabiliter se subjecit_.”
§ 191.2. =Baader and his School.=--Catholic theology for a long
time paid no regard to the development of German philosophy.
Only after Schelling, whose philosophy had many points of contact
with the Catholic doctrine, a general interest in such studies
was awakened as forming a speculative basis for Catholicism. To
the theosophy of Schelling based on that of the Görlitz shoemaker
(§ 160, 2), =Francis von Baader=, professor of speculative
dogmatics at Munich, though not a professional theologian, but
a physician and a mineralogist, attached himself. In his later
years he went over completely to ultramontanism. His scholar
=Franz Hoffmann= of Würzburg has given an exposition of Baader’s
speculative system. At Giessen this system was represented by
Leop. Schmid (§ 187, 3). All the Catholic adherents of this
school are distinguished by their friendly attitude toward
Protestantism.
§ 191.3. =Günther and his School.=--A theology of at least
equal speculative power and of more decidedly Catholic contents
than that of Baader, was set forth by the secular priest =Anton
Günther= of Vienna, a profound and original thinker of combative
humour, sprightly wit, and a roughness of expression sometimes
verging upon the burlesque. He recognised the necessity of going
up in philosophical and theological speculation to Descartes,
who held by the scholastic dualism of God and the creature, the
Absolute and the finite, spirit and nature, while all philosophy,
according to him, had been ever plunging deeper into pantheistic
monism. Thence he sought to solve the two problems of Christian
speculation, creation and incarnation, and undertook a war of
extermination against “all monism and semimonism, idealistic and
realistic pantheism, disguised and avowed semipantheism,” among
Catholics and Protestants. His first great work, “_Vorschule zur
Spekul. Theologie_,” published in 1828, treating of the theory
of creation and the theory of incarnation, was followed by a
long series of similar works. His most eminent scholars were
=Pabst=, doctor of medicine in Vienna, who gave clear expositions
of his master’s dark and aphoristic sayings, and =Veith=, who
popularized his teachings in sermons and practical treatises.
Some of the Hermesians, such as Baltzer of Breslau, entered the
rank of his scholars. The historico-political papers, however,
charged him with denying the mysteries of Christianity, rejecting
the traditional theology, etc., and Clemens, a _privatdocent_
of philosophy in Bonn, became the mouthpiece of this party. Thus
arose a passionate controversy, which called forth the attention
of Rome. We might have expected Günther to meet the fate of
Hermes twenty years before; but the matter was kept long under
consideration, for strong influence from Vienna was brought
to bear on his behalf. At last in January, 1857, the formal
reprobation of the Güntherian philosophy was announced, and
all his works put in the Index. Günther humbly submitted to the
sentence of the church. So too did =Baltzer=. But being suspected
at Rome, he was asked voluntarily to resign. This Baltzer refused
to do. Then Prince-Bishop Förster called upon the government
to deprive him; and when this failed, he withdrew from him the
_missio canonica_ and a third of his canonical revenues, and in
1870, on his opposing the infallibility dogma, he withheld the
other two-thirds. His salary from the State continued to be paid
in full till his death in A.D. 1871.
§ 191.4. =John Adam Möhler.=--None of all the Catholic
theologians of recent times attained the importance and influence
of Möhler in his short life of forty-two years. Stimulated
to seek higher scientific culture by the study mainly of
Schleiermacher’s works and those of other Protestants, and
putting all his rich endowments at the service of the church,
he won for himself among Catholics a position like that of
Schleiermacher among Protestants. His first treatise of 1825,
on the unity of the church, was followed by his “Athanasius the
Great,” and the work of his life, the “Symbolics” of 1832, in
its ninth edition in 1884, which with the apparatus of Protestant
science combats the Protestant church doctrine and presented
the Catholic doctrine in such an ennobled and sublimated form,
that Rome at first seriously thought of placing it in the Index.
Hitherto Protestants had utterly ignored the productions of
Catholic theology, but to overlook a scientific masterpiece like
this would be a confession of their own weakness. And in fact,
during the whole course of the controversy between the two
churches, no writing from the Catholic camp ever caused such
commotion among the Protestants as this. The ablest Protestant
replies are those of Nitsch [Nitzsch] and Baur. In 1835 Möhler
left Tübingen for Munich; but sickness hindered his scientific
labours, and, in 1838, in the full bloom of manhood, the Catholic
church and Catholic science had to mourn his death. He can
scarcely be said to have formed a school; but by writings,
addresses, and conversation he produced a scientific ferment in
the Catholic theology of Germany, which continued to work until
at last completely displaced by the scholasticism reintroduced
into favour by the Jesuits.
§ 191.5. =John Jos. Ignat. von Döllinger.=--Of all Catholic
theologians in Germany, alongside of and after Möhler, by far the
most famous on either side of the Alps was the church historian
Döllinger, professor at Munich since 1826. His first important
work issued in that same year was on the “Doctrine of the
Eucharist in the First Three Centuries.” His comprehensive
work, “The History of the Christian Church,” of 1833 (4 vols.,
London, 1840), was not carried beyond the second volume; and
his “Text-book of Church History” of 1836, was only carried
down to the Reformation. The tone of his writings was strictly
ecclesiastical, yet without condoning the moral faults of
the popes and hierarchy. Great excitement was produced by his
treatise on “The Reformation,” in which he gathered everything
that could be found unfavourable to the Reformers and their work,
and thus gained the summit of renown as a miracle of erudition
and a master of Catholic orthodoxy. Meanwhile in 1838 he had
taken part in controversies about mixed marriages (§ 193, 1), and
in 1843 over the genuflection question (§ 195, 2), with severely
hierarchical pamphlets. As delegate of the university since 1845
he defended with brilliant eloquence in the Bavarian chamber the
measures of the ultramontane government and the hierarchy, became
in 1847 Provost of St. Cajetan, but was also in the same year
involved in the overthrow of the Abel ministry, and was deprived
of his professorship. In the following year he was one of the
most distinguished of the Catholic section in the Frankfort
parliament, where he fought successfully in the hierarchical
interest for the unconditional freedom and independence of the
church. King Maximilian II. restored him to his professorship
in 1849. From this time his views of confessional matters became
milder and more moderate. He first caused great offence to his
ultramontane admirers at Easter, 1861, when he in a series of
public lectures delivered one on the Papal States then threatened,
in which he declared that the temporal power of the pope, the
abuses of which he had witnessed during a journey to Rome in 1857,
was by no means necessary for the Catholic church, but was rather
hurtful. The papal nuncio, who was present, ostentatiously left
the meeting, and the ultramontanes were beside themselves with
astonishment, horror, and wrath. Döllinger gave some modifying
explanations at the autumn assembly of the Catholic Union at
Munich in 1861. But soon thereafter appeared his work, “The
Church and the Churches” (London, 1862), which gave the lecture
slightly modified as an appendix. The “Fables respecting the
Popes of the Middle Ages” (London, 1871), was as little to the
taste of the ultramontanes. Indeed in these writings, especially
in the first named, the polemic against the Protestant Church
had all its old bitterness; but he is at least more just toward
Luther, whom he characterizes as “the most powerful man of the
people, the most popular character, which Germany ever possessed.”
And while he delivers a glowing panegyric on the person of the
pope, he lashes unrelentingly the misgovernment of the Papal
States. At the Congress of Scholars at Munich he contended for
the freedom of science. Döllinger as president of the congress
sent the pope a telegram which satisfied his holiness. But the
Jesuits looked deeper, and immediately “_il povero Döllinger_”
was loaded by the _Civiltà Cattolica_ with every conceivable
reproach. In A.D. 1868 nominated to the life office of imperial
councillor, he voted with the bishops against the liberal
education scheme of the government. But his battle against
the council and infallibility made the rent incurable, and his
angry archbishop hurled against him the great excommunication.
Then Vienna made him doctor of philosophy, Marburg, Oxford,
and Edinburgh gave him LL.D., and the senate of his university
unanimously elected him rector in 1871. But his tabooed lecture
room became more and more deserted. He took no prominent part
in the organizing of the Old Catholic church (§ 190, 1), but all
the more eagerly did he seek to promote its union negotiations
(§ 175, 6).
§ 191.6. =The Chief Representatives of Systematic
Theology.=--=Klee=, A.D. 1800-1840, of Bonn and Munich,
was a positivist of the old school, and during the Hermesian
controversy a supporter of the theology of the curia. =Hirscher=,
1788-1865, of Freiburg, numbered by the liberals as one of
their ornaments and by the fanatical ultramontanes as a heretic,
did much to promote a conciliatory and moderate Catholicism,
equally free from ultramontane and rationalistic tendencies,
abandoning nothing essential in the Catholic doctrine. =Hilgers=,
the Hermesian, afterwards joined the Old Catholics of Bonn.
=Staudenmaier= and =Sengler= of Freiburg and =Berlage= of Münster
held a distinguished rank as speculative theologians. In the same
department, =Kuhn= and =Drey= of Tübingen, =Ehrlich= of Prague,
=Deutinger= of Dillingen, a disciple of Schelling and Baader,
and as such persecuted, though a pious believing Catholic,
=Oischinger= of Munich, who in despair at the proclamation of the
Vatican decree suddenly stopped his fruitful literary activity,
=Dieringer= of Bonn, who for the same reason not only ceased to
write but also in 1871 resigned his professorship and retired to
a small country pastorate, and finally, =Hettinger= of Würzburg,
best known by his “_Apologie d. Christenthums_.”--While the
above-named, though suspected and opposed by the scholastic party,
strove to preserve intact their ecclesiastical Catholic character,
other representatives of this tendency by their struggles against
scholasticism and then against the Vatican Council, were driven
away from their orthodox position. Thus =Frohschammer= of Munich,
when his treatise on “The Origin of the Soul,” in which he
supported the theory of Generationism in opposition to the
Catholic doctrine of creationism, and other works were placed
in the Index, asked for a revision on the ground that he taught
nothing contrary to Catholic doctrine. He was stripped of all his
clerical functions, and students were prohibited attending his
lectures. He protested, and his rooms were more crowded than
ever. Subsequently, however, repudiated even by the Old Catholics,
he drifted more and more, not only from the church, but even
from belief in revelation. Against Strauss’ last work he wrote
a tract in which he sought to prove that “the old faith is
indeed untenable,” but that also “the new science” cannot take
its place, that a “new faith” must be introduced by going back
to the Christianity of Christ. =Michelis=, a man of wide culture
in the department of natural science and philology, as well as
theology and philosophy, had in his earlier position as professor
in Paderborn, Münster, and Braunsberg, supported by word and pen
a strictly ecclesiastical tendency; but the Vatican Council made
him one of the first and most zealous leaders of the Old Catholic
movement. His most important work is his “Catholic Dogmatics,”
of 1881, in which the Old Catholic conception of Christianity is
represented as the purified higher unity of the Protestant and
Vatican systems of doctrine.
§ 191.7. =The Chief Representatives of Historical Theology.=--The
first place after Möhler and Döllinger belongs to Möhler’s
scholar Hefele, from 1840 professor at Tübingen and from 1869
Bishop of Rottenburg, distinguished by the liberal spirit of his
researches. His treatises on the Honorius controversy made him
one of the most dangerous opponents of the infallibility dogma,
to which, however, he at last submitted (§ 189, 4). His most
important work is the “History of the Councils.” Hase criticised
the second edition of the work, severely but not without
sufficient grounds, by saying that in it “the bishop chokes
the scholar.” =Werner= of Vienna is a prolific writer in the
department of the history of theological literature; while
=Bach= of Munich and the Dominican =Denifle= have written on
the mediæval mystics, the latter also on the universities of
the Middle Ages. =Hergenröther= of Würzburg, by his monograph
on “Photius and the Greek Schism,” written in the interests of
his party, and by his polemic against the anti-Vatican movement,
and specially by his “Handbook of Church History,” rendered such
service to the papacy and the papal church, that Leo XIII. in
1879 made him a cardinal and librarian of the Vatican, with
the task of reorganizing the library.--Among the Old Catholics,
=Friedrich= of Munich, besides his historical account of the
Vatican Council, had written on Wessel, Huss, and the church
history of Germany. =Huber= of Munich, whose “Philosophy of the
Church Fathers” of 1859 was put in the Index, while his much
more liberal work on Erigena of 1861 passed without censure, in
later years wrote an exhaustive account of the Jesuit order and
a critical reply to Strauss’ “Old and New Faith.” =Pichler= of
Munich, by his conscientious research and criticism, drew down
upon him the papal censure, and his book on the “History of the
Division of the Eastern and Western Churches” had the honour
of being placed in the Index. His later studies and writings
estranged him more and more from Romanism, inspired him with the
idea of a national German church, and fostered in him a love for
the _Protestantenverein_ movement; but his unbridled bibliomania
while assistant in the Royal Library of St. Petersburg in 1871,
brought his public career to a sad and shameful end. The Old
Catholic Professor =Langen= of Bonn, wrote a four-volume work
against the Vatican dogma, discussed the “Trinitarian Doctrinal
Differences between the Eastern and Western Churches,” in the
interests of a union with the Greek church, and published an
able monograph on “John of Damascus,” as well as a thorough and
impartial “History of the Roman Church down to Nicholas I.,”
two vols., 1881, 1885.--In Rome the Oratorian =Aug. Theiner=
atoned for the literary errors of his youth (§ 187, 4) by his
zealous vindication of papal privileges. His chief works were the
continuation of the “_Annales Ecclesiastici_” of Baronius, and
the editing of the historical documents of the various Christian
nations. The Jesuits charged him with giving the anti-Vaticanists
aid from the library and sought to influence the pope against
him so as to deprive him of his office of prefect of the Vatican
archives. He was suspended from his duties, and though he
still retained his title and occupied his official residence
in the Vatican, the doors from it into the library were built
up. His edition of the “Acts of the Council of Trent,” which
was commenced, was also prohibited. But he succeeded in making
a transcript at Agram in Croatia, where in 1874 a portion of it,
the official protocol of the secretary of the Council, Massarelli,
was printed by the help of Bishop Strossmayer in an elegant
style but abbreviated, and therefore unsatisfactory. Cardinal
Angelo =Mai=, as principal Vatican librarian, distinguished
himself by his palimpsest studies in old classical as well as
patristic literature. And quite worthy of ranking with either
in carefulness, diligence, and patience was =De Rossi=, who
has laboured in the department of Christian archæology, and
is well known by his great work, “_Roma sotteranea cristiana_,”
published in 1864 ff.--=Xavier Kraus=, when his “Handbook” had
been adversely criticised, hastened to Rome, submitted all his
utterances to the judgment of the pope, and proclaimed on his
return that in the next edition he would explain what had been
misunderstood and withdraw what was objected to. The question
now rises, whether the more recent work of =Xav. Funk= can
escape a similar censure.
Among Catholic writers on canon lay the most notable are
=Walters= of Bonn, =Phillips= of Vienna, =Von Schulte= of Prague
and Bonn, who till the Vatican Council was one of the most zealous
advocates of the strict Catholic tendency, since then openly on
the side of the opposition, a keen supporter, and by word and pen
a vigorous promoter, of the Old Catholic movement, and =Vering=
of Prague, who occupies the ultramontane Vatican standpoint.
§ 191.8. =The Chief Representatives of Exegetical
Theology.=--=Hug= of Freiburg, in his “Introduction,” occupies
the biblical but ecclesiastically latitudinarian attitude of
Jahn. Leaving dogma unattacked and so himself unattacked, =Mövers=
of Breslau, best known by his work on the Phœnicians, a Richard
Simon of his age, developed a subtlety of destructive criticism
of the canon and history of the Old Testament which astonished
even the father of Protestant criticism, De Wette. =Kaulen= of
Bonn wrote an “Introduction to the Old and New Testament,” in
a fairly scientific spirit from the Vatican standpoint; while
=Maier= of Freiburg, wrote an introduction to the New Testament
and commentaries on some New Testament books.--The Old Catholic
=Reusch= of Bonn wrote “Introduction to the Old Testament,” and
“Nature and the Bible” (2 vols., Edin., 1886). =Sepp= of Munich,
silent since 1867, began his literary career with a “Life of
Christ,” a “History of the Apostles,” etc., in the spirit of
the romantic mystical school of Görres. His “Sketch of Church
Reform, beginning with a Revision of the Bible Canon,” caused
considerable excitement. With humble submission to the judgment
of his church, he demanded a correction of the Tridentine decrees
on Scripture in accordance with the results of modern science,
but the only response was the inclusion of his book in the Index.
§ 191.9. =The Chief Representatives of the New
Scholasticism.=--The official and most masterly representative of
this school for the whole Catholic world was the Jesuit =Perrone=,
1794-1876, professor of dogmatics of the _Collegium Romanum_,
the most widely read of the Catholic polemical writers, but not
worthy to tie the shoes of Bellarmin [Bellarmine], Bossuet, and
Möhler. In his “_Prælectiones Theologicæ_,” nine vols., which has
run through thirty-six editions, without knowing a word of German,
he displayed the grossest ignorance along with unparalleled
arrogance in his treatment of Protestant doctrine, history, and
personalities (§ 175, 2). The German Jesuit =Kleutgen= who, under
Pius IX., was the oracle of the Vatican in reference to German
affairs, introduced the new Roman scholasticism by his work “_Die
Theologie der Vorzeit_,” into the German episcopal seminaries,
whose teachers were mostly trained in the _Collegium Germanicum_
at Rome. Alongside of Perrone and Kleutgen, in the domain of
morals, the Jesuit =Gury= holds the first place, reproducing
in his works the whole abomination of probabilism, _reservatio
mentalis_, and the old Jesuit casuistry (§ 149, 10), with the
usual lasciviousness in questions affecting the sexes. Among
theologians of this tendency in German universities we mention
next =Denzinger= of Würzburg, who seeks in his works “to
lead dogmatics back from the aberrations of modern philosophic
speculations into the paths of the old schools.” His zealous
opposition to Güntherism did much to secure its emphatic
condemnation.
§ 191.10. =The Munich Congress of Catholic Scholars, 1863.=--In
order if possible to heal the daily widening cleft between the
scientific university theologians and the scholastic theologians
of the seminaries, and bring about a mutual understanding and
friendly co-operation between all the theological faculties,
Döllinger and his colleague Haneberg summoned a congress
at Munich, which was attended by about a hundred Catholic
scholars, mostly theologians. After high mass, accompanied with
the recitation of the Tridentine creed, the four days’ conference
began with a brilliant presidential address by Döllinger “On the
Past and Present of Catholic Theology.” The liberal views therein
enunciated occasioned violent and animated debates, to which,
however, it was readily admitted as a religious duty that all
scientific discussions and investigations should yield to the
dogmatic claims of the infallible authority of the church, as
thereby the true freedom of science can in no way be prejudiced.
A telegraphic report to the pope drawn up in this spirit by
Döllinger was responded to in a similar manner on the same
day with the apostolic blessing. But after the proceedings
_in extenso_ had become known, a papal brief was issued which
burdened the permission to hold further yearly assemblies with
such conditions as must have made them utterly fruitless. They
were indeed acquiesced in with a bad grace at the second and
last congress at Würzburg in 1864, but the whole scheme was
thus brought to an end.
§ 191.11. =Theological Journals.=--The most severely scientific
journal of this century is the Tübingen _Theol. Quartalschrift_,
which, however, since the Vatican Council has been struggling
to maintain a neutral position between the extremes of the Old
and the New Catholicism. In order if possible to displace it the
Jesuits Wieser and Stenstrup of Innsbruck [Innsbrück] started in
1877 their _Zeitschrift für Kath. Theologie_. The ably conducted
_Theol. Litteraturblatt_, started in 1866 by Prof. Reusch of Bonn,
had to be abandoned in 1878, after raising the standard of Old
Catholicism.
§ 191.12. =The Popes and Theological Science.=--What kind
of theology =Pius IX.= wished to have taught is shown by his
proclaiming St. Liguori (§ 165, 2) and St. Francis de Sales
(§ 157, 1) _doctores ecclesiæ_. =Leo XIII.=, on the other hand,
in 1879 recommended in the encyclical _Æterni patris_, in the
most urgent way, all Catholic schools to make the philosophy
of the angelical Aquinas (§ 103, 6) their foundation, founded
in 1880 an “Academy of St. Thomas Aquinas,” three out of its
thirty members being Germans, Kleutgen, Stöckl, and Morgott, and
gave 300,000 lire out of Peter’s pence for an edition of Aquinas’
works with the commentaries of “the most eminent expositors,”
setting aside “all those books which, while professing to be
derived from St. Thomas are really drawn from foreign and unholy
sources;” _i.e._, in accordance with the desires of the Jesuits,
omitting the strictly Thomist expositors (§ 149, 13), and giving
currency only to Jesuit interpretations. No wonder that the
Jesuit General Beckx in such circumstances submitted himself
“humbly,” being praised for this by the pope as a saint. But a
much greater, indeed a really great, service to the documentary
examination of the history of the Christian church and state has
been rendered by the same pope, undoubtedly at the instigation of
Cardinal Hergenröther, by the access granted not only to Catholic
but also to Protestant investigators to the exceedingly rich
treasures of the Vatican archives. Though still hedged round with
considerable limitations, the concession seems liberality itself
as compared with the stubborn refusal of Pius IX. to facilitate
the studies of any inquirer. With honest pride the pope could
inscribe on his bust placed in the library: “_Leo XIII. Pont.
Max. historiæ studiis consulens tabularii arcana reclusit a
1880_.”--But what the ends were which he had in view and what
the hopes that he cherished is seen from the rescript of August,
1883, in which he calls upon the cardinals De Luca, Pitra, and
Hergenröther, as prefects of the committee of studies, of the
library and archives, while proclaiming the great benefits which
the papacy has secured to Italy, to do their utmost to overthrow
“the lies uttered by the sects” on the history of the church,
especially in reference to the papacy, for, he adds, “we desire
that at last once more the truth should prevail.” Therefore
archives and library are to be opened to pious and learned
students “for the service of religion and science in order that
the historical untruths of the enemies of the church which have
found entrance even into the schoolbooks should be displaced by
the composition of good writings.” The firstfruits of the zeal
thus stimulated were the “_Monunenta ref. Lutheranæ ex tabulariis
S. Sedis_,” Ratisbon, 1883, published by the assistant keeper of
the archives P. Balan as an extinguisher to the Luther Jubilee of
that year. But this performance came so far short of the wishes
and expectations of the Roman zealots that by their influence the
editor was removed from his official position. The next attempt
of this sort was the edition by Hergenröther of the papal
_Regesta_ down to Leo X.
IV. Relation of Church to the Empire and to the States.
§ 192. THE GERMAN CONFEDERATION.
The Peace of Luneville of 1801 gave the deathblow to the old German
empire, by the formal cession of the left bank of the Rhine to France,
indemnifying the secular princes who were losers by this arrangement
with estates and possessions on the right of the Rhine, taken from the
neutral free cities of the empire and the secularized ecclesiastical
principalities, institutions, monasteries, and orders. An imperial
commission sitting at Regensburg arranged the details of these
indemnifications. They were given expression to by means of the
imperial commission’s decree or recess of 1803. The dissolution of
the constitution of the German empire thus effected was still further
carried out by the Peace of Presburg of 1805, which conferred upon the
princes of Bavaria, Württemberg, and Baden, in league with Napoleon,
full sovereignty, and to the two first named the rank of kings, and was
completed by the founding of the Confederation of the Rhine of 1806,
in which sixteen German princes formally severed themselves from the
emperor and empire and ranked themselves as vassals of France under the
protectorate of Napoleon. Francis II., who already in 1804 had assumed
the title of Emperor of Austria as Francis I., now that the German
empire had actually ceased to exist, renounced also the name of
German emperor. The unhappy proceedings of the Vienna Congress of the
German Confederation and its permanent representation in the Frankfort
parliament during 1814 and 1815, after Napoleon’s twice repeated defeat,
led finally to the Austro-Prussian war of 1866.
§ 192.1. =The Imperial Commission’s Decree, 1803.=--The
significance of this for church history consists not merely
in the secularization of the ecclesiastical principalities
and corporations, but even still more in the alteration
caused thereby in the ecclesiastical polity of the territorial
governments. With the ecclesiastical principalities the most
powerful props of the Catholic church in Germany were lost,
and Protestantism obtained a decided ascendency in the council
of the German princes. The Catholic prelates were now simply
paid servants of the state, and thus their double connexion with
the curia and the state brought with it in later times endless
entanglements and complications. On the other hand, in states
hitherto almost exclusively Protestant, _e.g._ Württemberg, Baden,
Hesse, there was a great increase of Catholic subjects, which
attracted but little serious attention when the confessional
particularism in the consciousness of the age was more unassuming
and tolerant than ever it has been before or since.
§ 192.2. =The Prince-Primate of the Confederation of the
Rhine.=--Baron Carl Theod. von Dalberg, distinguished for his
literary culture and his liberal patronage of art and science,
was made in 1802 Elector of Mainz and Lord High Chancellor of the
German empire. When by the recess of 1803 the territories of the
electorate on the left of the Rhine were given over to France and
those on the right secularized, the electoral rank was abolished.
The same happened with respect to the lord high chancellorship
through the creation of the Rhenish Confederation. Dalberg was
indemnified for the former by the favour of Napoleon by the
gift of a small territory on the right of the Rhine, and for the
latter by the renewal of the prince-primacy of the Confederation
of the Rhine with a seat in the Federal council. He still
retained his episcopal office and fixed its seat at Regensburg.
The founding of a metropolitan chapter at Regensburg embracing
the whole domain of the Rhenish Confederation he did not succeed
in carrying out, and in 1813 he felt compelled to surrender also
his territorial possessions. His spiritual functions, however,
as Archbishop of Regensburg, he continued to discharge until his
death in 1817.
§ 192.3. =The Vienna Congress and the Concordat.=--The Vienna
Congress of 1814, 1815, had assigned it the difficult task of
righting the sorely disturbed political affairs of Europe and
giving a new shape to the territorial and dynastic relations. But
never had an indispensably necessary redistribution of territory
been made more difficult or more complicated by diplomatic
intrigues than in Germany. Instead of the earlier federation of
states, the restoration of which proved impossible, the federal
constitution of June 8th, 1815, created under the name of the
German Confederation a union of states in which all members
of the confederation as such exercised equal sovereign rights.
Their number then amounted to thirty-eight, but in the course
of time by death or withdrawal were reduced to thirty-four. The
new distribution of territory, just as little as the Luneville
Peace, took into account confessional homogeneity of princes and
territories, so that the combination of Catholic and Protestant
districts with the above referred to consequences, occurred in
a yet larger measure. But the federal constitution secured in
Article XVI. full toleration for all Christian confessions in
the countries of the confederation. The claims of the Romish
curia, which advanced from the demand for the restoration of all
ecclesiastical principalities and the return of all impropriated
churches and monasteries to their original purposes, to the
demand for the restoration of the holy Roman-German empire in the
mediæval and hierarchical sense, as well as the solemn protest
against its conclusions laid upon the table of the congress by
the papal legate Consalvi, were left quite unheeded. But also
a proposal urgently pressed by the vicar-general of the diocese
of Constance, Baron von Wessenberg (§ 187, 3), to found a German
Catholic national church under a German primate found no favour
with the congress; and an article recommended by Austria and
Prussia to be incorporated in the acts of the confederation by
which the Catholic church in Germany endeavoured to secure a
common constitution under guarantee of the confederation, was
rejected through the opposition of Bavaria. And since in the
Frankfort parliament neither Wessenberg with his primacy and
national church idea nor Consalvi with a comprehensive concordat
answering to the wishes of the curia, was able to carry through
a measure, it was left to the separate states interested to make
separate concordats with the pope. Bavaria concluded a concordat
in 1817 (§ 195, 1); Prussia in 1821 (§ 193, 1). Negotiations with
the other German states fell through owing to the excessiveness
of the demands of the hierarchy, or led to very unsatisfactory
results, as in Hanover in 1824 (§ 194, 1) and the states
belonging to the ecclesiastical province of the Upper Rhine
in 1837 (§ 196, 1). In the time of reaction against the
revolutionary excesses of 1848 the curia first secured any real
advance. Hesse-Darmstadt opened the list in 1854 with a secret
convention (§ 196, 4); then Austria followed in 1855 with a
model concordat (§ 198, 2) which served as the pattern for the
concordats with Württemberg in 1857 (§ 196, 6), and with Baden
in 1859 (§ 196, 2), as well as for the episcopal convention with
Nassau in 1861 (§ 196, 4). But the revived liberal current of
1860 swept away the South German concordats; the Vatican Council
by its infallibility dogma gave the deathblow to that of Austria,
and the German “_Kulturkampf_” sent the Prussian concordat to the
winds, and only that of Bavaria remained in full force.
§ 192.4. =The Frankfort Parliament and the Würzburg Bishops’
Congress of 1848.=--As in the March diets of 1848 the magic
word “freedom” roused through Germany a feverish excitement,
it found a ready response among the Catholics, whose church
was favoured in the highest degree by the movement. In the
Frankfort parliament the ablest leaders of Catholic Germany
had seats. Among the Catholic population there were numerous
religio-political societies formed (§ 186, 3), and the German
bishops, avowedly for the celebration of the 600th anniversary of
the building of Cologne cathedral, set alongside of the Frankfort
people’s parliament a German bishops’ council. After they had at
Frankfort declared themselves in favour of unconditional liberty
of faith, conscience, and worship, the complete independence
of all religious societies in the ordering and administering
of their affairs, but also of freeing the schools from all
ecclesiastical control and oversight, as well as of the
introduction of obligatory civil marriage, the bishops’ council
met in October at Würzburg under the presidency of Archbishop
Geissel of Cologne with nineteen episcopal assistants and several
able theological advisers. In thirty-six sessions they reached
the conclusion that complete separation between church and state
is not to be desired so long as the state does not refuse to
the church the place of authority belonging to it. On the other
hand, by all means in their power they are to seek the abrogation
of the _placet_ of the sovereign, the full independence of
ecclesiastical legislation, administration and jurisdiction, with
the abolition of the _appellatio tanquam ab abusu_, the direction
and oversight of the public schools as well as the control of
religious instruction in higher schools to be given only by
teachers licensed for the purpose by the bishops, and finally to
demand permission to erect educational institutions of their own
of every kind, etc., and to forward a copy of these decisions
to all German governments. The main object of the Würzburg
assembly to secure currency for their resolutions in the new
Germany sketched out at the Frankfort parliament, was indeed
frustrated by that parliament’s speedy overthrow. Nevertheless
in the several states concerned it proved of great and lasting
importance in determining the subsequent unanimous proceedings
of the bishops.
§ 193. PRUSSIA.
To the pious king Frederick William III. (1797-1840) it was a matter
of heart and conscience to turn to account the religious consciousness
of his people, re-awakened by God’s gracious help during the war of
independence, for the healing of the three hundred years’ rent in the
evangelical church by a union of the two evangelical confessions. The
jubilee festival of the Reformation in 1817 seemed to him to offer the
most favourable occasion. The king also desired to see the Catholic
church in his dominions restored to an orderly and thriving condition,
and for this end concluded a concordat with Rome in 1821. But it was
broken up in 1836 over a strife between canon and civil law in reference
to mixed marriages. Frederick William IV. was dominated by romantic
ideas, and his reign (1840-1858), notwithstanding all his evangelical
Christian decidedness, was wanting in the necessary firmness and
energetic consistency. In the Catholic church the Jesuits were allowed
unhindered to foster ultramontane hierarchical principles, and in
the evangelical church the troubles about constitution, union, and
confession could not be surmounted either by its own proper guardian,
the episcopate, or by the superior church councils created in 1850.
And although the notifications of William I. on his entrance upon the
sole government in 1858 were hailed by the liberals as giving assurance
that a new era had dawned in the development of the evangelical national
church, this hope proved to be premature. With the exaltation of the
victory-crowned royal house of Prussia to the throne of the newly
erected German Empire on January 18th, 1871, a new era was actually
opened for ecclesiastical developments and modifications throughout
the land.
§ 193.1. =The Catholic Church to the Close of the Cologne
Conflict.=--The government of =Frederick William III.= entered
into negotiations with the papal curia, not so much for the old
provinces in which everything was going well, but rather in the
interests of the Rhine provinces annexed in 1814, whose bishops’
sees were vacant or in need of circumscription. The first
Prussian ambassador to the Roman curia (1816-1823) was the famous
historian Niebuhr. Although a true Protestant and keen critic
and restorer of the history of old pagan Rome he was no match
for the subtle and skilful diplomacy of Consalvi. In presence
of the claims of the curia he manifested to an almost incredible
extent trustful sympathy and acquiescence, even taking to do with
matters that lay outside of Prussian affairs, eagerly silencing
and opposing any considerations suggested from the other side. A
complete concordat, however, defining in detail all the relations
between church and state was not secured, but in 1821 an
agreement was come to, with thankful acknowledgment of the “great
magnanimity and goodness” shown by the king, by the bull _De
salute animarum_, sanctioned by the king through a cabinet order
(“in the exercise of his royal prerogative and without detriment
to these rights”), according to which two archbishoprics, Cologne
and Posen, and six bishoprics, Treves, Münster, Paderborn,
Breslau, Kulm, and Ermeland, with a clerical seminary, were
erected in Prussia and furnished with rich endowments. The
cathedral chapter was to have the free choice of the bishop; but
by an annexed note it was recommended to make sure in every such
election that the one so chosen would be a _grata persona_ to the
king. The union thus effected between church and state was of but
short duration. The decree of Trent forbade Catholics to enter
into mixed marriages with non-Catholics. A later papal bull
of 1741, however, permitted it on condition of an only passive
assistance of the clergy at the wedding and an engagement by the
parents to train up the children as Catholics. The law of Prussia,
on the other hand, in contested cases made all the children
follow the religion of their fathers. As this was held in 1825
to apply to the Rhine provinces, and as the bishops there had, in
1828, appealed to the pope, Pius VIII. when negotiations with the
Prussian ambassador Bunsen (1824-1838) proved fruitless, issued
in 1830 a brief which permitted Catholic priests to give the
ecclesiastical sanction to mixed marriages only when a promise
was given that the children should be educated as Catholics, but
otherwise to give only passive assistance. When all remonstrances
failed to overcome the obstinacy of the curia, the government
turned to the Archbishop of Cologne, Count =Spiegel=, a zealous
friend and promoter of the Hermesian theology (§ 191, 1), and
arranged in 1834 a secret convention with him, which by his
influence all his suffragans joined. In it they promised to give
such an interpretation to the brief that its observance would be
limited to teaching and exhortation, but would by no means extend
to the obligation of submitting the children to Catholic baptism,
and that the mere _assistentia passiva_ would be resorted to as
rarely as possible, and only in cases where absolutely required.
Spiegel died in November, 1835. In 1836 the Westphalian Baron
=Clement Droste von Vischering= was chosen as his successor.
Although before his elevation he had unhesitatingly agreed to
the convention, soon after his enthronization he strictly forbad
all the clergy celebrating any marriage except in accordance with
the brief, and blamed himself for having believed the agreement
between convention and brief affirmed by the government, and
having only subsequently on closer examination discovered the
disagreement between the two. At the same time, in order to give
effect to the condemnation that had been meanwhile passed on
the Hermesian theology, he gave orders that at the confessional
the Bonn students should be forbidden to attend the lectures
of Hermesians. When the archbishop could not be prevailed on
to yield, he was condemned in 1837 as having broken his word
and having incited to rebellion, and sent to the fortress of
Minden. =Gregory XIV.= addressed to the consistory a fulminating
allocution, and a flood of controversial tracts on either
side swept over Germany. Görres designated the archbishop “the
Athanasius of the nineteenth century.” The government issued
a state paper justifying its procedure, and the courts of
law sentenced certain refractory priests to several years’
confinement in fortresses or prisons. The moderate peaceful
tone of the cathedral chapter did much to quell the disturbance,
supporting as it did the state rather than the archbishop. The
example of Cologne encouraged also =Dunin=, Archbishop of Gnesen
and Posen, to issue in 1838 a pastoral in which he threatened
with suspension any priest in his diocese who would not yield
unconditional obedience to the papal brief. For this he was
deposed by the civil courts and sentenced to half a year’s
imprisonment in a fortress, but the king prevented the execution
of the sentence. But Dunin fled from Berlin, whither he had
been ordered by the king, to Posen, and was then brought in 1839
to the fortress of Kolberg. While matters were in this state
Frederick William IV. came to the throne in 1840. Dunin was
immediately restored, after promising to maintain the peace.
Droste also was released from his confinement with public marks
of respect, but received in 1841, with his own and the pope’s
approval, in the former Bishop of Spires, Geissel, a coadjutor,
who in his name and with the right of succession administered the
diocese. The government gave no aid to the Hermesians. The law
in regard to mixed marriages continued indeed in force, but
was exercised so as to put no constraint of conscience upon
the Catholic clergy. Of his own accord the king declined
further exercise of the royal prerogative, allowing the bishops
direct intercourse with the papal see, whereas previously all
correspondence had to pass through royal committees, with this
proviso by the minister Eichhorn, “that this display of generous
confidence be not abused,” and with the expectation that the
bishops would not only communicate to the government the contents
of their correspondence with the pope, but also the papal replies
which did not deal exclusively with doctrine, and would not speak
and act against the wish and will of the government. But Geissel,
recommended by Louis of Bavaria to his son-in-law Frederick
William IV. instead of Baron von Diepenbrock (§ 187, 1) who was
first thought of, by his skilful and energetic manœuvring, going
on from victory to victory, raised ultramontanism in Prussia to
the very summit of its influence and glory.
§ 193.2. =The Golden Age of Prussian Ultramontanism,
1841-1871.=--In the Cologne-Posen conflict Rome had won an almost
complete victory, and with all its satellites now thought only
of how it might in the best possible manner turn this victory to
account, in which the all too trustful government sought to aid
it to the utmost. This movement received a further impulse in
the revolution of 1848 (§ 192, 4). In Prussia as well as in other
German lands, and there in a special degree, the Catholic church
managed to derive from the revolutionary movements of those times,
and from the subsequent reaction, substantial advantage. The
constitution of 1850 declared in Article xv.: “The evangelical
and the Roman Catholic Church as well as every other religious
society regulates and administers its affairs independently;”
in Article xvi.: “The correspondence of religious societies
with their superiors is unrestricted, the publication of
ecclesiastical ordinances is subject only to those limitations
which apply to all other documents;” in Article xviii.:
“The right of nomination, proposal, election, and institution
to spiritual office, so far as it belongs to the state, is
abolished;” and in Article xxiv.: “The respective religious
societies direct religious instruction in the public schools.”
Under the screen of these fundamental privileges the Catholic
episcopate now claimed one civil prerogative after another,
emancipated itself wholly from the laws of the state, and, on
the plea that God must be obeyed rather than man, made the canon
law, not only in purely ecclesiastical but also in mixed matters,
the only standard, and the decision of the pope the final appeal.
At last nothing was left to the state but the obligation of
conferring splendid endowments upon the bishops, cathedral
chapters, and seminaries for priests, and the honour of being at
home the executioner of episcopal tyranny, and abroad the avenger
of every utterance unfavourable in the doctrine and worship,
customs and enactments of the Catholic church. With almost
incredible infatuation the Catholic hierarchy was now regarded
as a main support of the throne against the revolutionary
tendencies of the age and as the surest guarantee for the loyalty
of subjects in provinces predominantly Catholic. Under protection
of the law allowing the formation of societies and the right
of assembling, the order of Jesuits set up one establishment
after another, and made up for defects or insufficient energy
of ultramontane pastoral work, agitation and endeavour at
conversion on the part of other peaceably disposed parish
priests, by numerous missions conducted in the most ostentatious
manner (§ 186, 6). Although according to Article xiii. of the
constitution religious societies could obtain corporative rights
only by special enactments, the bishops, on their own authority,
without regarding this provision, established religious orders
and congregations wherever they chose. As these were generally
placed under foreign superiors male or female, to whom in Jesuit
fashion unconditional obedience was rendered, each member being
“like a corpse,” without any individual will, they spread without
hindrance, so that continually new cloisters and houses of the
orders sprang up like mushrooms over the Protestant metropolis
(§ 186, 2). Education in Catholic districts fell more and more
into the hands of religious corporations, and even the higher
state educational institutions, so far as they dealt with the
training of the Catholic youth (theological faculties, gymnasia,
and Training schools), were wholly under the control of the
bishops. From the boys’ convents and priests’ seminaries,
erected at all episcopal residences, went forth a new generation
of clergy reared in the severest school of intolerance, who,
first of all acting as chaplains, by espionage, the arousing
of suspicion and talebearing, were the dread of the old parish
priests, and, as “chaplains at large,” stirred up fanaticism
among the people, and secured the Catholic press to themselves
as a monopoly. For the purposes of Catholic worship and education
the government had placed state aid most liberally at their
disposal, without requiring any account from the bishops as to
their disposal of the money. Although the number of Catholics
in the whole country was only about half that of the Protestants,
the endowment of the Catholic was almost double that of the
evangelical church. The civil authority readily helped the
bishops to enforce any spiritual penalties, and thus the inferior
clergy were brought into absolute dependence upon their spiritual
superiors. In the government department of Public Worship, from
1840 to 1848 under the direction of Eichhorn, there was since
1841 a subsection for dealing with the affairs of the Catholic
church which, although restricted to the guarding of the rights
of the king over against the curia and that of the state over
against the hierarchy, came to be in an entirely opposite
sense “the civil department of the pope in Prussia.” Under Von
Mühler’s ministry, 1862-1872, it obtained absolute authority
which it seems to have exercised in removing unfavourable acts
and documents from the imperial archives. And thus the Catholic
church, or rather the ultramontane party dominant in it since
1848, grew up into a power that threatened the whole commonwealth
in its very foundations.--By the annexation of Hanover, Hesse,
and Nassau in 1866, four new bishoprics, those of Hildesheim,
Osnabrück, Fulda and Limburg were added to the previous
eight.--Continuation § 197.
§ 193.3. =The Evangelical Church in Old Prussia down to
1848.=--On the accomplishment of the union by Frederick
William III. and the confusions arising therefrom, see § 177.
=Frederick William IV.= on his accession declared his wish in
reference to the national evangelical church, that the supreme
control of the church should be exercised only in order to secure
for it in an orderly and legal way the independent administration
of its own affairs. The realization of this idea, after a church
conference of the ordinary clergy from almost all German states
had been held in Berlin without result, was attempted at Berlin
by a general synod, opened on Whitsunday, 1846. The synod at
its eighteenth session entered upon the consideration of the
difficult question of doctrine and the confession. The result
of this was the approval of an ordination formula drawn up by
Dr. Nitzsch (§ 182, 10), according to which the candidate for
ordination was to make profession of the great fundamental
and saving truths instead of the church confession hitherto
enforced. And since among these fundamental truths the doctrines
of creation, original sin, the supernatural conception, the
descent into hell and the ascension of Christ, the resurrection
of the body, the last judgment, everlasting life and everlasting
punishment were not included, and therefore were not to be
enforced, since further by this ordination formula the special
confessions of Lutheran and Reformed were really set aside,
and therewith the existence of a Lutheran as well as a Reformed
church within the union seemed to be abolished, a small number
of decided Lutherans in the synod protested; still more decided
and vigorous protests arose from outside the synod, to which
the _Evang. Kirchenzeitung_ opened its columns. The government
gave no further countenance to the decisions of the synod, and
opponents exercised their wit upon the unfortunate _Nicænum_ of
the nineteenth century, which as a _Nitzschenum_ had fallen into
the water. In March, 1847, the king issued a patent of toleration,
by which protection was assured anew to existing churches, but
the formation of new religious societies was allowed to all who
found not in these the expression of their belief.
§ 193.4. =The Evangelical Church in Old Prussia,
1848-1872.=--When the storms of revolution broke out in 1848,
the new minister of worship, =Count Schwerin=, willingly aided
in reorganizing the church according to the mind of the masses
of the people by a constitutional synod. But before it had met
the reaction had already set in. The transition ministry of
=Ladenberg= was assured by consistories and faculties of the
danger of convoking such a synod of representatives of the people.
Instead of the synod therefore a =Supreme Church Council= was
assembled at Berlin in 1850, which, independent of the ministry,
and only under the king as _præcipuum membrum ecclesiæ_, should
represent the freedom of the church from the state as something
already realized. On March 6th, 1852, the king issued a cabinet
order, in consequence of which the Supreme Church Council
administered not only the affairs of the evangelical national
church as a whole, but also was charged with the interests of the
Lutheran as well as the Reformed church in particular, and was
to be composed of members from both of those confessions, who
should alone have to decide on questions referring to their own
confession. On the _Itio in partes_ thus required in this board,
only Dr. Nitzsch remained over, as he declared that he could find
expression for his religious convictions in neither of the two
confessions, but only in a consensus of both. The difficulty
was overcome by reckoning him a representative equally of both
denominations. Encouraged by such connivance in high places to
entertain still bolder hopes, the Lutheran societies in 1853
presented to the king a petition signed by one hundred and sixty
one clergymen, for restoring Lutheran faculties and the Lutheran
church property. But this called forth a rather unfavourable
cabinet order, in which the king expressed his disapproval of
such a misconception of the ordinances of the former year, and
made the express declaration that it never was his intention to
break up or weaken the union effected by his father, that he only
wished to give the confession within the union the protection
to which it was undoubtedly entitled. After this the separate
Lutheran interest so long highly favoured fell into manifest and
growing disfavour. Still the ministerial department of worship
under =Von Raumer=, 1850-1858, continued to conduct the affairs
of schools and universities in the spirit of the ecclesiastical
orthodox reaction, and issued the endless school regulations
conceived in this spirit of the privy councillor Stiehl. The
Supreme Church Council also exhibited a rare activity and passed
many wholesome ordinances. The evangelical church won great
credit by the care it took of its members scattered over distant
lands, in supplying them with clergy and teachers. The evident
favour with which Frederick William IV. furthered the efforts of
the Evangelical Alliance of 1857 (§ 178, 3) was the last proof
of decided aversion from the confessional movement which he was
to be allowed to give. A long and hopeless illness, of which he
died in 1861, obliged him to resign the government to his brother
=William I.= When this monarch in October, 1855, began to rule
in his own name, he declared to his newly appointed ministers
that it was his firm resolve that the evangelical union, whose
beneficent development had been obstructive to an orthodoxy
incompatible with the character of the evangelical church, and
which had thus almost caused its ruin, should be maintained
and further advanced. But in order that the task might be
accomplished, the organs for its administration must be carefully
chosen and to some extent changed. All hypocrisy and formalism,
which that orthodoxy had fostered, is wherever possible to be
removed. The “new era,” however, marked by the appearance of
liberal journals, by no means answered to the expectations which
those words excited. The ministry of =Von Bethmann-Hollweg=,
1858-1862, filled some theological and spiritual offices in this
liberal spirit; Stahl withdrew from the Supreme Church Council;
the proceedings against the free churches, as well as the severe
measures against the re-marriage of divorced parties, were
relaxed. But the marriage law laid down by the ministry with
permission of civil marriage was rejected by the House of Peers,
and the hated school regulations had to be undertaken by the
minister himself. The ecclesiastically conservative ministry of
=Von Mühler=, 1862-1872, which, however, wanted a fixed principle
as well as self-determined energy of will, and was therefore
often vacillating and losing the respect of all parties, was
utterly unfit to realize these expectations. The Supreme Church
Council published in 1867 the outlines of a provincial synodal
constitution for the six East Provinces which were still without
this institution, which the Rhine Provinces and Westphalia had
enjoyed since 1835. For this purpose he convened in autumn, 1869,
an extraordinary provincial synod, which essentially approved
the sketch submitted, whereupon it was provisionally enacted.
§ 193.5. =The Evangelical Church in Old Prussia,
1872-1880.=--After the removal of Von Mühler, the minister of
worship, in January, 1872, his place was taken by =Dr. Falk=,
1872-1879. The hated school regulations were now at last set
aside and replaced by new moderate prescriptions, conceived in
an almost unexpectedly temperate spirit. On September 10th, 1873,
the king issued a congregational and synodal constitution
for the eastern provinces, with the express statement that the
position of the confession and the union should thereby be in no
way affected. It prescribed that in every congregation presided
over by a pastor, elected by the ecclesiastically qualified
church members, _i.e._ those of honourable life who had taken
part in public worship and received the sacraments, there should
be a church council of from four to twelve persons, and for
more important matters, _e.g._ the election of a pastor, a
congregational committee of three times the size, half of which
should be reappointed every third year. To the district synod,
presided over by the superintendent, each congregation sends as
delegates besides the pastor a lay representative chosen by the
church council from among its members or from the congregational
committee. According to the same principle the District Synods
choose from their members a clerical and a lay representative to
the provincial synod, to which also the evangelical theological
faculty of the university within the bounds sends a deputy, and
the territorial lord nominates a number of members not exceeding
a sixth part of the whole. The general synod, in which also the
two western provinces, the Rhenish and Westphalian, take part,
consists of one hundred and fifty delegates from the provincial
synods, and thirty nominated by the territorial lords, to which
the faculties of theology and law of the six universities within
the bounds send each one of their members. Although this royal
decree had proclaimed itself final, and only remitted to an
=Extraordinary General Synod= to be called forthwith the task of
arranging for future ordinary general synods, yet at the meeting
of this extraordinary synod in Berlin, on November 24th, 1875,
a draft was submitted of a constitution modified in various
important points. Of the three demands of the liberal party
now violently insisted upon--
1. Substitution of the “filter” system in the election of
provincial and general synod members for that of the
community electorate.
2. Strengthening of the lay element in all synods; and
3. Abolition of the equality of small village communities with
large town communities
the first was by far the most important and serious in its
consequences, but the other two bore fruit through the decree
that two-thirds of the members of the district and provincial
synods should be laymen, and the other one-third should be freely
elected to the district synod from the populous town communities,
for the provincial synods from the larger district synods.
Also in reference to the rights belonging to the several grades
of synods, considerable modifications were made, whereby the
privileges of communities were variously increased (_e.g._ to
them was given the right of refusing to introduce the catechisms
and hymn-books sanctioned by the provincial synods), while those
of the district and provincial synods were lessened in favour
of the general synod, and those of the latter again in favour
of the high church council and the minister of public worship.
After nearly four weeks’ discussion the bill without any serious
amendments was passed by the assembly, and on January 20th, 1876,
received the royal assent and became an ecclesiastical law.
But in order to give it also the rank of a law of the state,
a decision of the States’ Parliament on the relation of church
and state was necessary. The parliament had already in 1874,
when the original congregational and synodal constitution was
submitted to it, in order to advance the movement, approved
only the congregational constitution with provisional refusal
of everything going beyond that. In May, 1876, the bill already
raised by the king into an ecclesiastical law, passed both houses
of parliament, and had here also some amendments introduced with
the effect of increasing and strengthening the prerogative of
the state. The main points in the law as then passed are these:
The general synod, whose members undertake to fulfil their
duties agreeably to the word of God and the ordinances of the
evangelical national church, has the task of maintaining and
advancing the state church on the basis of the evangelical
confession. The laws of the state church must receive its assent,
but any measure agreed upon by it cannot be laid before the king
for his sanction without the approval of the minister of public
worship. It meets every sixth year; in the interval it, as well
as the provincial synods, is represented by a synodal committee
chosen from its members. The head of the church government is
the Supreme Church Council, whose president countersigns the
ecclesiastical laws approved by the king. The right of appointing
to this office lies with the minister of public worship; in
the nomination of other members the president makes proposals
with consent of the minister. Taxation of the general synod for
parliamentary purposes needs the assent of the minister of state,
and must, if it exceeds four per cent. of the class and income
tax, be agreed to by the Lower House, which also annually has
to determine the expenditure on ecclesiastical administration.
§ 193.6. When preparations were being made for the extraordinary
general synod, the king had repeatedly given vigorous expression
to his positive religious standpoint, and from the proposed
lists of members for that synod submitted by the minister of
public worship all names belonging to the _Protestantenverein_
were struck out. Still more decidedly in 1877 did he show
his disapproval in the Rhode-Hossbach troubles (§ 180, 4), by
declaring his firm belief in the divinity of Christ, and when the
then president of the Brandenburg consistory, Hegel, tendered his
resignation, owing to differences with the liberal president of
the Supreme Church Council, Hermann, the king refused to accept
it, because he could not then spare any such men as held by
the apostolic faith. In May, 1878, Hermann was at last, after
repeated solicitations, allowed to retire, Dr. Hermes, member of
the Supreme Church Council, was nominated his successor, and the
positive tendency of the Supreme Church Council was strengthened
by the admission of the court preachers, Kögel and Baur. His
proposals again disagreeing with the royal nominations for the
provincial synod and for the =First Ordinary General Synod= of
autumn, 1879, led the minister of public worship, Dr. Falk, at
last, after repeated solicitation, to accept his resignation.
It was granted him in July, 1879, and the chief president of the
province of Silesia, =Von Puttkamer=, a more decided adherent
of the positive union party, was named as his successor;
but in June, 1881, he was made minister of the interior, and
the undersecretary of the department of public worship, =Von
Gossler=, was made minister. The general synod, October 10th
till November 3rd, consisted of fifty-two confessionalists,
seventy-six positive-unionists, fifty-six of the middle party
or evangelical unionist, and nine from the ranks of the left,
the _Protestantenverein_; three confessionalists, twelve
positive-unionists, and fifteen of the middle party were
nominated by the king. The measures proposed by the Supreme
Church Council:
1. A marriage service without reference to the preceding civil
marriage, with two marriage formulæ, the first a joint
promise, the second a benediction;
2. A disciplinary law against despisers of baptism and marriage,
which threatened such with the loss of all ecclesiastical
electoral rights, and eventually with exclusion from the
Lord’s supper and sponsor rights; and
3. A law dealing with _Emeriti_,
were adopted by the synod and then approved by the king. On the
other hand a series of independent proposals conceived in the
interests of the high-church party remained in suspense. The last
effected elections for the general synod committee resulted in
the appointment of three positive-unionist members, including the
president, two confessionalists, and two of the middle party.[549]
§ 193.7. =The Evangelical Church in the Annexed Provinces.=--In
1866 the provinces of Hanover, Hesse and Schleswig-Holstein were
incorporated with the kingdom of Prussia. In these political
particularism, combined with confessional Lutheranism, suspicion
of every organized system of church government as intended
to introduce Prussian unionism, even to the extreme of open
rebellion, led to violent conflicts. The king, indeed, personally
gave assurance in Cassel, Hanover and Kiel that the position of
the church confession should in no way be endangered. “He will
indeed support the union where it already existed as a sacred
legacy to him from his forefathers; he also hopes that it may
always make further progress as a witness to the grand unity of
the evangelical church; but compulsion is to be applied to no
man.” The consistories of these provinces were still to continue
independent of the Supreme Church Council. But the ministerial
order for the restoration of representative synodal constitution
increasingly prevailed, although the wide-spread suspicion and
individual protests against the system of church government,
such as the temporary prohibition of the Marburg consistory of
the mission festival, as avowedly used for agitation against
the intended synodal constitution, helped to intensify the
bitterness of feeling. But on the other hand many preachers by
their unbecoming pulpit harangues, and their refusal to take
the oath of allegiance or service, to pray in church for their
new sovereign, and to observe the general holiday appointed
to be held in 1869 on November 10th (Luther’s birthday),
etc., compelled the ecclesiastical authorities to impose fines,
suspension, penal transportation, and deposition. In the Lutheran
=Schleswig-Holstein= a new congregational constitution was
introduced in 1869 by the minister Von Mühler, as the basis of a
future synodal constitution, which was adopted by the _Vorsynode_
of Rendsburg in 1871, preserving the confessional status laid
down, without discussion. In 1878 an advance was made by the
institution of district or provostship synods, and in February,
1880, the first General Synod was held at Rendsburg. As in Old
Prussia so also here the conservative movement proved victorious.
The laity obtained majorities in all synods, and the supremacy
of the state was secured by the subordination of the church
government under the minister of public worship.
§ 193.8. =In Hanover=, where especially Lichtenberg, president of
the upper consistory, and Uhlhorn, member of the upper consistory
(since 1878 abbot of Loccum), although many Lutheran extremists
long remained dissatisfied, temperately and worthily maintained
the independence and privileges of the Lutheran church, the first
national synod could be convened and could bring to a generally
peaceful conclusion the question of the constitution only in
the end of 1869, after the preliminary labour of the national
synod committee. In 1882 the Reformed communities of 120,000
souls, hitherto subject to Lutheran consistories, obtained an
independent congregational and synodal constitution. Against
the new marriage ordinance enacted in consequence of the
civil marriage law (§ 197, 5), Theod. Harms (brother, and from
1865 successor of L. Harms, § 184, 1), pastor and director of
Hermannsburg missionary seminary, rebelled from the conviction
that civil marriage did not deserve to be recognised as marriage.
He was first suspended, then in 1877 deposed from office, and
with the most of his congregation retired and founded a separate
Lutheran community, to which subsequently fifteen other small
congregations of 4,000 souls were attached. As teacher and pupils
of the seminary made it a zealous propaganda for the secession,
the missionary journals and missionary festivals were misused
for the same purpose, and as Harms answered the questions of the
consistory in reference thereto, partly by denying, partly by
excusing, that court, in December, 1878, forbad the missionary
collections hitherto made throughout the churches at Epiphany
for Hermannsburg, and so completely broke off the connection
between the state church and the institution which had hitherto
been regarded as “its pride and its preserving salt.” A reaction
has since set in in favour of the seminary and its friends on
the assurance that the interests of the separation would not be
furthered by the seminary, and that several other objectionable
features, _e.g._ the frequent employment in the mission service
of artisans without theological training, the sending of them out
in too great numbers without sufficient endowment and salary, so
that missionaries were obliged to engage in trade speculations,
should be removed as far as possible; but since the seminary
life was always still carried on upon the basis of ecclesiastical
secession, it could lead to no permanent reconciliation with the
state church. Harms died in 1885. His son Egmont was chosen his
successor, and as the consistory refused ordination, he accepted
consecration at the hands of five members of the Immanuel Synod
at Magdeburg.
§ 193.9. =In Hesse= the ministry of Von Mühler sought to bring
about a combination of the three consistories of Hanau, Cassel,
and Marburg, as a necessary vehicle for the introduction of a
new synodal constitution. In the province itself an agitation
was persistently carried on for and against the constitutional
scheme submitted by the ministers, which wholly ignored the old
church order (§ 127, 2), which, though in the beginning of the
seventeenth century through the ecclesiastical disturbances of
the time (§ 154, 1), it had passed out of use, had never been
abrogated and so was still legally valid. A _Vorsynode_ convened
in 1870 approved of it in all essential points, but conventions
of superintendents, pastoral conferences and lay addresses
protested, and the Prussian parliament, for which it was not yet
liberal enough, refused the necessary supplies. As these after
Von Mühler’s overthrow were granted, his successor, Dr. Falk,
immediately proceeded in 1873 to set up in Cassel the court
that had been objected to so long. It was constituted after the
pattern of the Supreme Church Council, of Lutheran, Reformed, and
United members with _Itio in partes_ on specifically confessional
questions. The clergy of Upper Hesse comforted themselves
with saying that the new courts in which the confessions were
combined, if not better, were at least no worse than the earlier
consistories in which the confessions were confounded; and they
felt obliged to yield obedience to them, so long as they did not
demand anything contradictory the Lutheran confession. On the
other hand, many of the clergy of Lower Hesse saw in the advance
from a merely eventual to an actual blending of the confessional
status in church government an intolerable deterioration. And so
forty-five clergyman of Lower and one of Upper Hesse laid before
the king a protest against the innovation as destructive of the
confessional rights of the Hessian church contrary to the will
of the supreme majesty of Jesus Christ. They were dismissed with
sharp rebuke, and, with the exception of four who submitted, were
deposed from office for obstinate refusal to obey. There were
about sixteen congregations which to a greater or less extent
kept aloof from the new pastors appointed by the consistories,
and without breaking away from the state church wished to remain
true to the old pastor “appointed by Jesus Christ himself.”--In
autumn, 1884, the movement on behalf of the restoration of a
presbyterial and synodal constitution of the Hessian evangelical
church, which had been delayed for fourteen years, was resumed.
A sketch of a constitution, which placed it under three
general superintendents (Lutheran, Reformed, United) and
thirteen superintendents, and, for the fair co-operation of
the lay element in the administration of church affairs (the
confession status, however, being beyond discussion), provided
suitable organs in the shape of presbyteries and synods, with a
predominance of the lay element, was submitted to a _Vorsynode_
that met on November 12th, consisting of two divisions, like a
Lower and Upper House, sitting together. The first division, as
representative of the then existing church order, embraced, in
accordance with the practice of the old Hessian synods, all the
members of the consistory, _i.e._ the nine superintendents and
thirteen pastors elected by the clergy; the second, consisting at
least of as many lay as clerical members, was chosen by the free
election of the congregation. The royal assent was given to the
decrees of the _Vorsynode_ in the end of December, 1885, and the
confessional status was thereby expressly guaranteed.
§ 194. THE NORTH GERMAN SMALLER STATES.
In most of the smaller North German states, owing to the very slight
representation of the Reformed church, which was considerable only
in Bremen, Lippe-Detmold, and a part of Hesse and East Friesland, the
union met with little favour. Yet only in a few of those provinces did a
sharply marked confessional Lutheranism gain wide and general acceptance.
This was so especially and most decidedly in Mecklenburg, but also in
Hanover, Hesse, and Saxony. On the other hand, since the close of 1860,
in almost all those smaller states a determined demand was made for a
representative synodal constitution, securing the due co-operation of
the lay element.--The Catholic church was strongest in Hanover, and next
come some parts of Hesse, which had been added to the ecclesiastical
province of the Upper Rhine (§ 196, 1), but in the other North German
smaller states it was only represented here and there.
§ 194.1. =The Kingdom of Saxony.=--The present kingdom of Saxony,
formerly an electoral principality, has had Catholic princes
since 1679 (§ 153, 1), but the Catholic church could strike its
roots again only in the immediate neighbourhood of the court.
Indeed those belonging to it did not enjoy civil and religious
equality until 1807, when this distinction was set aside. The
erection of cloisters and the introduction of monkish orders,
however, continued even then forbidden, and all official
publications of the Catholic clergy required the _placet_ of
the government. The administration of the evangelical church,
so long as the king is Catholic, lies, according to agreement,
in the hands of the ministers commissioned _in evangelicis_.
Although several of these have proved defenders of ecclesiastical
orthodoxy, the rationalistic Illumination became almost
universally prevalent not only among the clergy but also
among the general populace. Meanwhile a pietistic reaction
set in, especially powerful in Muldenthal, where Rudelbach’s
labours impressed on it a Lutheran ecclesiastical character.
The religious movement, on the other hand, directed by Martin
Stephan, pastor of the Bohemian church in Dresden, came to a
sad and shameful end. As representative and restorer of strict
Lutheran views he had wrought successfully in Dresden from 1810,
but, through the adulation of his followers, approaching even
to worship, he fell more and more deeply into hierarchical
assumption and neglect of self-vigilance. When the police in
1837 restricted his nightly assemblies, without, however, having
discovered anything immoral, and suspended him from his official
duties, he called upon his followers to emigrate to America. Many
of them, lay and clerical, blindly obeyed, and founded in 1835,
in Missouri, a Lutheran church communion (§ 208, 2). Stephan’s
despotic hierarchical assumptions here reached their fullest
height; he also gave his lusts free scope. Women oppressed or
actually abused by him at length openly proclaimed his shame in
1839, and the community excommunicated him. He died in A.D. 1846.
Taught by such experiences, and purged of the Donatist-separatist
element, a church reaction against advancing rationalism made
considerable progress under a form of church that favoured it,
and secured also influential representatives in members of the
theological faculty of the university of Leipzig distinguished
for their scientific attainments. After repeated debates in
the chamber over a scheme of a new ecclesiastical and synodal
order submitted by the ministry, the first evangelical Lutheran
state synod met in Dresden, in May, 1871. On the motion of
the government, the law of patronage was here modified so that
the patron had to submit three candidates to the choice of the
ecclesiastical board. It was also decided to form an upper or
state consistory, to which all ecclesiastical matters hitherto
administered by the minister of public worship should be given
over; the control of education was to remain with the ministry,
and the state consistory was to charge itself with the oversight
only of religious instruction and ethico-religious training. The
most lively debates were those excited by the proposal to abolish
the obligation resting upon all church teachers to seem to adhere
to the confession of the Lutheran church, led by Dr. Zarncke,
the rector of the state university. The commission of inquiry
sent down, under the presidency of Professor Luthardt, demanded
the absolute withdrawal of this proposal, which aimed at perfect
doctrinal freedom. On the other hand, Professor G. Baur made the
mediate proposal to substitute for the declaration on oath, the
promise to teach simply and purely to the best of his knowledge
and according to conscience the gospel of Christ as it is
contained in Scripture, and witnessed in the confessions of the
Lutheran church. And as even now Luthardt, inspired by the wish
not to rend the first State Synod at its final sitting by an
incurable schism, agreed to this suggestion, it was carried
by a large majority. In consequence of this decision, a number
of “Lutherans faithful to the confession,” withdrew from the
State church, and on the anniversary of the Reformation in 1871,
constituted themselves into an Evangelical Lutheran Free Church,
associated with the Missouri synod (§ 208, 2), from which, on
the suggestion of some of the members of the community who had
returned from America, they chose for themselves a pastor called
Ruhland. There were five such congregations in Saxony: at Dresden,
Planitz, Chemnitz, Frankenberg, and Krimmitschau, to which some
South German dissenters at Stenden, Wiesbaden, Frankfort, and
Anspach attached themselves.
§ 194.2. =The Saxon Duchies.=--The Stephan emigration had
also decoyed a number of inhabitants from Saxe-Altenburg. In
a rescript to the Ephorus Ronneburg, in 1838, the consistory
traced back this separatist movement to the fact that the
religious needs of the congregations found no satisfaction in the
rationalistic preaching, and urged a more earnest presentation
from the pulpit of the fundamental and central doctrines of
evangelical Christianity. This rescript was the subject of
violent denunciation. The government took the opinion of four
theological faculties on the procedure of the consistory and
its opponents, who published it simply with the praise and blame
contained therein, and thus prevented any investigation. Also
in =Weimar= and =Gotha= the rationalism of Röhr and Bretschneider,
which had dominated almost all pulpits down to the middle of
the century, began gradually to disappear, and the more recent
parties of Confessional, Mediation, and Free Protestant theology
to take its place. The last named party found vigorous support
in the university of Jena. A petition addressed to it in 1882
from the Thuringian Church Conference of Eisenach, to call
to Jena also a representative of the positive Lutheran theology,
was decidedly refused, and, in a controversial pamphlet by
Superintendent Braasch, condemned as “the Eisenach outrage”
(_Attentat_). In =Meiningen= the _Vorsynode_ convened there
in 1870 sanctioned the sketch of a moderately liberal synodal
constitution submitted to it, which placed the confession indeed
beyond the reach of legislative interference, but also secured
its rights to free inquiry. The first State Synod, however, did
not meet before 1878. In =Weimar= the first synod was held in
1873, the second in 1879.
§ 194.3. =The Kingdom of Hanover.=--Although the union found no
acceptance in Hanover, after the overthrow of the rationalism of
the _ancien régime_, the union theology became dominant in the
university. The clergy, however, were in great part carried along
by the confessional Lutheran current of the age. The Preachers’
Conference at Stade in 1854 took occasion to call the attention
of the government to the “manifest divergence” between the union
theology of the university and the legal and actual Lutheran
confession of the state church, and urged the appointment
of Lutheran teachers. The faculty, on the other hand, issued
a memorial in favour of liberty of public teaching, and the
curators filled the vacancies again with union theologians.
When in April, 1862, it was proposed to displace the state
catechism introduced in 1790, which neither theologically nor
catechetically satisfied the needs of the church, by a carefully
sifted revision of the Walther catechism in use before 1790,
approved of by the Göttingen faculty, the agitation of the
liberal party called forth an opposition, especially in city
populations, which expressed itself in insults to members of
consistories and pastors, and in almost daily repeated bloody
street fights with the military, and obliged the government at
last to give way.--The negotiations about a concordat with Rome
reached up further in 1824 than obtaining the circumscription
bull _Impensa Romanorum_, by which the Catholic church obtained
two bishoprics, those of Hildesheim and Osnabrück.--In 1886,
Hanover was incorporated with the kingdom of Prussia (§ 193, 8).
§ 194.4. =Hesse.=--Landgrave Maurice, 1592-1627, had forced upon
his territories a modified Melanchthonian Calvinism (§ 154, 1),
but a Lutheran basis with Lutheran modes of viewing things and
Lutheran institutions still remained, and the Lutheran reaction
had never been completely overcome, not even in Lower Hesse,
although there the name of the Reformed Church with Reformed
modes of worship had been gradually introduced in most of the
congregations. The communities of Upper Hesse and Schmalcald,
however, by continuous opposition saved for the most part their
Lutheranism, which in 1648 was guaranteed to them anew by the
Darmstadt Recess, and secured an independent form of church
government in the Definitorium at Marburg. The union movement,
which issued from Prussia in 1817, met with favour also in Hesse,
but only in the province of Hanau in 1818 got the length of a
formal constituting of a church on the basis of the union. In
1821, however, the elector issued the so-called Reorganization
edict, by which the entire evangelical church of the electorate,
without any reference to the confession status, but simply in
accordance with the political divisions of the state, was put
under the newly instituted consistories of Cassel, Marburg,
and Hanau, in the formation of which the confession of the
inhabitants had not been considered. The Marburg Definitorium
indeed protested, but in vain, against this despotic act, which
was felt a grievance, less on account of the wiping out of the
confession than on account of the loss of independent church
government which it occasioned. The government appointed pastors,
teachers and professors without enquiring much about their
confession. In 1838 the hitherto required subscription of the
clergy to the confessional writings, the Augsburg Confession and
its Apology, was modified into a formula declaring conscientious
regard for them. But in this Bickell, professor of law at Marburg,
saw a loss to the church in legal status, an endangering of the
evangelical church; the theological professor, Hupfeld, also
in the further course of the controversy took his side, while
the advocate, Henkel, in Cassel, as a popular agitator opposed
him and demanded a State Synod for the formal abolishing of all
symbolical books. The government ignored both demands, and the
vehement conflict was quieted by degrees. With 1850 a new era
began in the keen controversy over the question, which confession,
whether Lutheran or Reformed, was legally and actually that
of the state. The ministry of Hassenpflug from 1850, which
suppressed the revolution, considered it as legally the Lutheran,
and determined the ecclesiastical arrangements in this sense,
and in this course Dr. Vilmar, member of the Consistory, was the
minister’s right hand. But the elector was from the beginning
personally opposed to this procedure, and on the overthrow of
the ministry in 1855, Vilmar (died 1868) was also transferred to
a theological professorship at Marburg. This, however, only gave
a new impulse to the confessional Lutheran movement in the state,
for the spirit and tendency of the highly revered theological
teacher powerfully influenced the younger generation of the
Hessian clergy. In consequence of the German war, Hesse was
annexed to Prussia in 1866 (§ 193, 9).--On the Catholic church
in this state, compare § 196, 1.
§ 194.5. =Brunswick, Oldenburg, Anhalt, and Lippe-Detmold.=--Much
ado was made also in =Brunswick= over the introduction of a new
constitution for the Lutheran state church in 1869, and at last
in 1871 a synodal ordinance was passed by which the State Synod,
consisting of fourteen clerical and eighteen lay members, was
to meet every four years, so as not to be a too offensive factor
in the ecclesiastical administration and legislation, which
therefore has left untouched the content of the confession. The
first synod of 1872 began by rejecting the injunction to open
the sessions with prayer and reading of scripture. =Oldenburg=,
which in 1849, by a synod whose membership had been chosen by the
original electorate, had been favoured with a democratic church
constitution wholly separate from the state, accepted in 1854
without opposition a new constitution which restored the headship
of the church to the territorial lords, the administration of the
church to a Supreme Church Council and ecclesiastical legislation
to a State Synod consisting of clerical and lay members.--The
prince in the exercise of his sovereign rights gave a charter
in 1878 to the evangelical church of the Duchy of =Anhalt= to
a synodal ordinance which, though approved by the _Vorsynode_ of
1876, had been rejected by parliament, and afterwards it gained
the assent of the national representatives.--In the Reformed
=Lippe-Detmold= there were in 1844 still five preachers who,
wearied of the illuminationist catechism of the state church, had
gone back to the Heidelberg catechism and protested against the
abolition of acceptance on oath of the symbols, as destructive
of the peace of the church. The democratic church constitution
of 1851, however, was abrogated in 1854, and instead of it, the
old Reformed church order of 1684 was again made law. At the same
time, religious pardon and equality were guaranteed to Catholics
and Lutherans. The first Reformed State Synod was constituted
in 1878.
§ 194.6. =Mecklenburg.=--Mecklenburg-Schwerin from 1848 was
in possession of a strictly Lutheran church government under
the direction of Kliefoth, and its university at Rostock
had decidedly Lutheran theologians. When the chamberlain Von
Kettenburg, on going over to the Catholic church, appointed
a Catholic priest on his estate, the government in 1852, on
the ground that the laws of the state did not allow Catholic
services which extended beyond simple family worship, held that
he had overstepped the limits. A complaint, in reference thereto,
presented to the parliament and then to the German _Bund_, was
in both cases thrown out. Even in 1863 the Rostock magistrates
refused to allow tower and bells in the building of a Catholic
church.--An extraordinary excitement was caused by the removal
from office in January, 1858, of Professor M. Baumgarten of
Rostock. An examination paper set by him on 2 Kings xi. by which
the endeavour was made to win scripture sanction for a violent
revolution, obliged the government even in 1856 to remove him
from the theological examination board. At the same time his
polemic addressed to a pastoral conference at Parchim, against
the doctrine of the Mecklenburg state catechism on the ceremonial
law, especially in reference to the sanctification of the Sabbath,
increased the distrust which the clergy of the state, on account
of his writings, had entertained against his theological position
as one which, from a fanatical basis, diverged on all sides into
fundamental antagonism to the confession and the ordinances of
the Lutheran state church. The government finally deposed him
in 1858 (leaving him, however, in possession of his whole salary,
also of the right of public teaching), on the ground and after
the publication of a judgment of the consistory which found him
guilty of heretical alteration of all the fundamental doctrines
of the Christian faith and the Lutheran confession, and sought to
prove this verdict from his writings. As might have been foreseen,
this step was followed by a loud outcry by all journals; but even
Lutherans, like Von Hofmann, Von Scheurl [Scheuerl], and Luthardt,
objected to the proceedings of the government as exceeding the
law laid down by the ecclesiastical ordinance and the opinion
of the consistory as resting upon misunderstanding, arbitrary
supposition and inconsequent conclusion.
§ 195. BAVARIA.
Catholic Bavaria, originally an electorate, but raised in 1806, by
Napoleon’s favour, into a royal sovereignty, to which had been adjudged
by the Vienna Congress considerable territories in Franconia and the
Palatine of the Rhine with a mainly Protestant population, attempted
under Maximilian Joseph (IV.) I., after the manner of Napoleon,
despotically to pass a liberal system of church polity, but found
itself obliged again to yield, and under Louis I. became again the
chief retreat of Roman Catholic ecclesiasticism of the most pronounced
ultramontane pattern. It was under the noble and upright king,
Maximilian II., that the evangelical church of the two divisions of
the kingdom, numbering two-thirds of the population, first succeeded in
securing the unrestricted use of their rights. Nevertheless, Catholic
Bavaria remained, or became, the unhappy scene of the wildest demagogic
agitation of the Catholic clergy and of the Bavarian “Patriots” who
played their game, whose patriotism consisted only in mad hatred of
Prussia and fanatical ultramontanism. Yet King Louis II., after the
brilliant successes of the Franco-German war, could not object to the
proposal of November 30th, 1870, to found a new German empire under a
Prussian and therefore a Protestant head.
§ 195.1. =The Bavarian Ecclesiastical Polity under Maximilian I.,
1799-1825.=--Bavaria boasted with the most unfeigned delight
after the uprooting of Protestantism in its borders as then
defined (§ 151, 1), that it was the most Catholic, _i.e._ the
most ultramontane and most bigoted, of German-speaking lands, and,
after a short break in this tradition by Maximilian Joseph III.
(§ 165, 10), went forth again with full sail, under Charles
Theodore, 1777-1779, on the old course. But the thoroughly
new aspect which this state assumed on the overthrow of the
old German empire, demanded an adapting territorially of the
civil and ecclesiastical life in accordance with the relations
which it owed to its present political position. The new elector
Maximilian Joseph IV., who as king styled himself Maximilian I.,
transferred the execution of this task to his liberal, energetic,
and thoroughly fearless minister, Count Montgelas, 1799-1817.
In January, 1802, it was enacted that all cloisters should
be suppressed, and that all cathedral foundations should be
secularized; and these enactments were immediately carried out
in an uncompromising manner. Even in 1801 the qualification
of Protestants to exercise the rights of Bavarian citizens
was admitted, and a religious edict of 1803 guaranteed to all
Christian confessions full equality of civil and political
privileges. To the clergy was given the control of education,
and to the gymnasia and universities a considerable number of
foreigners and Protestants received appointments. In all respects
the sovereignty of the state over the church and the clergy was
very decidedly expressed, the episcopate at all points restricted
in its jurisdiction, the training of the clergy regulated
and supervised on behalf of the state, the patronage of all
pastorates and benefices usurped by the government, even
public worship subjected to state control by the prohibition
of superstitious practices, etc. But amid many other infelicities
of this autocratic procedure was specially the gradual dying out
of the old race of bishops, which obliged the government to seek
again an understanding with Rome; and so it actually happened
in June, 1817, after Montgelas’ dismissal, that a concordat was
drawn up. By this the Roman Catholic apostolic religion secured
throughout the whole kingdom those rights and prerogatives which
were due to it according to divine appointment and canonical
ordinances, which, strictly taken, meant supremacy throughout the
land. In addition, two archbishoprics and seven bishoprics were
instituted, the restoration of several cloisters was agreed to,
and the unlimited administration of theological seminaries, the
censorship of books, the superintendance of public schools and
free correspondence with the holy see were allowed to the bishops.
On the other hand, the king was given the choice of bishops (to
be confirmed by the pope), the nomination of a great part of
the priests and canons, and the _placet_ for all hierarchical
publications. After many vain endeavours to obtain amendments,
the king at last, on October 17th, ratified this concordat;
but, to mollify his highly incensed Protestant subjects, he
delayed the publication of it till the proclamation of the new
civil constitution on May 18th following. The concordat was
then adopted, as an appendage to an edict setting forth the
ecclesiastical supremacy of the state, securing perfect freedom
of conscience to all subjects, as well as equal civil rights to
members of the three Christian confessions, and demanding from
them equal mutual respect. The irreconcilableness of this edict
with the concordat was evident, and the newly appointed bishops
as well as the clerical parliamentary deputies, declared by papal
instruction that they could not take the oath to the constitution
without reservation, until the royal statement of Tegernsee,
September 21st, that the oath taken by Catholic subjects simply
referred to civil relations, and that the concordat had also the
validity of a law of the state, induced the curia to agree to
it. But the government nevertheless continued to insist as before
upon the supremacy of the state over the church, enlarged the
claims of the royal _placet_, put the free intercourse with
Rome again under state control, arbitrarily disposed of church
property and supervised the theological examinations of the
seminarists, made the appointment of all clergy dependent on
its approbation, and refused to be misled in anything by the
complaints and objections of the bishops.
§ 195.2. =The Bavarian Ecclesiastical Polity under Louis I.,
1825-1848.=--Zealous Catholic as the new king was, he still
held with unabated tenacity to the sovereign rights of the crown,
and the extreme ultramontane ministry of Von Abel from 1837
was the first to wring from him any relaxations, _e.g._ the
reintroduction of free intercourse between the bishops and the
holy see without any state control. But it could not obtain the
abolition of the _placet_, and just as little the eagerly sought
permission of the return of the Jesuits. On the other hand the
allied order of Redemptorists was allowed, whose missions among
the Bavarian people, however, the king soon made dependent
on a permission to be from time to time renewed. His tolerant
disposition toward the Protestants was shown in 1830, by his
refusing the demand of the Catholic clergy for a Reverse in
mixed marriages, and recognising Protestant sponsors at Catholic
baptisms. But yet his honourable desire to be just even to
the Protestants of his realm was often paralysed, partly by
his own ultramontane sympathies, partly and mainly by the
immense influence of the Abel ministry, and the religious
freedom guaranteed them by law in 1818 was reduced and restricted.
Among other things the Protestant press was on all sides gagged
by the minister, while the Catholic press and preaching enjoyed
unbridled liberty. Great as the need was in southern Bavaria the
government had strictly forbidden the taking of any aid from the
_Gustavus Adolphus Verein_. Louis saw even in the name of this
society a slight thrown on the German name, and was specially
offended at its vague, nearly negative attitude towards the
confession. Yet he had no hesitation in affording an asylum in
Catholic Bavaria to the Lutheran confessor Scheibel (§ 177, 2)
whom Prussian diplomacy had driven out of Lutheran Saxony,
and did not prevent the university of Erlangen, after its dead
orthodoxy had been reawakened by the able Reformed preacher
Krafft (died 1845), becoming the centre of a strict Lutheran
church consciousness in life as well as science for all
Germany. The adoration order of 1838, which required even the
Protestant soldiers to kneel before the host as a military salute,
occasioned great discontent among the Protestant population,
and many controversial pamphlets appeared on both sides. When
finally the parliament in 1845 took up the complaint of the
Protestants, a royal proclamation followed by which the usually
purely military salute formerly in use was restored. In 1847 the
ultramontane party, with Abel at its head, fell into disfavour
with the king, on account of its honourable attitude in the
scandal which the notorious Lola Montez caused in the circle of
the Bavarian nobility; but in 1848 Louis was obliged, through the
revolutionary storm that burst over Bavaria, to resign the crown.
§ 195.3. =The Bavarian Ecclesiastical Polity under Maximilian II.,
1848-1864, and Louis II.= (died 1886).--Much more thoroughly
than his father did Maximilian II. strive to act justly toward
the Protestant as well as the Catholic church, without however
abating any of the claims of constitutional supremacy on the
part of the state. In consequence of the Würzburg negotiations
(§ 192, 4), the Bavarian bishops assembled at Freysing, in
November, 1850, presented a memorial, in which they demanded the
withdrawal of the religious edict included in the constitution
of 1818, as in all respects prejudicial to the rights of the
church granted by the concordat, and set forth in particular
those points which were most restrictive to the free and
proper development of the catholic church. The result was
the publication in April, 1852, of a rescript which, while
maintaining all the principles of state administration hitherto
followed, introduced in detail various modifications, which,
on the renewal of the complaints in 1854, were somewhat further
increased as the fullest and final measure of surrender.--The
change brought about 1866 in the relation of Bavaria to North
Germany led the government under Louis II. to introduce liberal
reforms, and the offensive and defensive alliance which the
government concluded with the heretical Prussia, the failure of
all attempts on the outbreak of the Franco-Prussian war to force
it in violation of treaty to maintain neutrality, and then to
prevent Bavaria becoming part of the new German empire founded in
1871 at the suggestion of her own king, roused to the utmost the
wrath of the Bavarian clerical patriots. In the conflicts of the
German government, in 1872, against the intolerable assumptions,
claims and popular tumults of the ultramontane clergy, the
department of public worship, led by Lutz, inclined to take
an energetic part. But this was practically limited to the
passing of the so-called _Kanzelparagraphen_ (§ 197, 4) in
the _Reichstag_. Comp. § 197, 14.
§ 195.4. =Attempts at Reorganization of the Lutheran
Church.=--Since 1852, Dr. von Harless (§ 182, 13), as president
of the upper consistory at Munich, stood at the head of the
Lutheran church of Bavaria. Under his presidency the general
synod at Baireuth in 1853 showed a vigorous activity in the
reorganization of the church. On the basis of its proceedings
the upper consistory ordered the introduction of an admirable
new hymnbook. This occasioned considerable disagreement. But when,
in 1856, the upper consistory issued a series of enactments on
worship and discipline, a storm, originating in Nuremberg, burst
forth in the autumn of that same year, which raged over the whole
kingdom and attacked even the state church itself. The king was
assailed with petitions, and the spiritual courts went so far in
faint-heartedness as to put the acceptance and non-acceptance of
its ordinances to the vote of the congregations. Meanwhile the
time had come for calling another general synod (1857). An order
of the king as head of the church abolished the union of the
two state synods in a general synod which had existed since 1849,
and forbad all discussion of matters of discipline. Hence instead
of one, two synods assembled, the one in October at Anspach, the
other in November at Baireuth. Both, consisting of equal numbers
of lay and clerical members, maintained a moderate attitude,
relinquishing none of the privileges of the church or the
prerogatives of the upper consistory, and yet contributed greatly
to the assuaging of the prevalent excitement. Also the lay and
clerical members of the subsequent reunited general synods held
every fourth year for the most part co-operated successfully
on moderate church lines. The synod held at Baireuth in 1873
unanimously rejected an address sent from Augsburg inspired by
“Protestant Union” sympathies, as to their mind “for the most
part indistinct and where distinct unevangelical.”
§ 195.5. =The Church of the Union in the Palatine of the
Rhine.=--In the Bavarian =Palatine of the Rhine= the union had
been carried out in 1818 on the understanding that the symbolical
books of both confessions should be treated with due respect, but
no other standard recognised than holy scripture. When therefore
the Erlangen professor, Dr. Rust, in 1832 appeared in the
consistory at Spires and the court for that time had endeavoured
to fill up the Palatine union with positive Christian contents,
204 clerical and lay members of the Diocesan Synod presented
to the assembly of the states of the realm, opportunely meeting
in 1837, a complaint against the majority of the consistory.
As this memorial yielded practically no result, the opposition
wrought all the more determinedly for the severance of the
Palatine church from the Munich Upper Consistory. This was first
accomplished in the revolutionary year 1848. An extraordinary
general synod brought about the separation, and gave to the
country a new democratic church constitution. But the reaction
of the blow did not stop there. The now independent consistory at
Spires, from 1853 under the leadership of Ebrard, convened in the
autumn of that year a general synod, which made the _Augustana
Variata_ of 1540 as representing the consensus between the
_Augustana_ of 1530 and the Heidelberg as well as the Lutheran
catechism, the confessional standard of the Palatine church,
and set aside the democratic election law of 1848. When now the
consistory, purely at the instance of the general synod of 1853,
submitted to the diocesan synod in 1856 the proofs of a new
hymnbook, the liberal party poured out its bitter indignation
upon the system of doctrine which it was supposed to favour.
But the diocesan synods admitted the necessity of introducing
a new hymnbook and the suitability of the sketch submitted,
recommending, however, its further revision so that the recension
of the text might be brought up to date and that an appendix
of 150 new hymns might be added. The hymnbook thus modified was
published in 1859, and its introduction into church use left to
the judgment of presbyteries, while its use in schools and in
confirmation instruction was insisted upon forthwith. This called
forth protest after protest. The government wished from the
first to support the synodal decree, but in presence of growing
disturbance, changed its attitude, recommended the consistory
to observe decided moderation so as to restore peace, and
in February, 1861, called a general synod which, however, in
consequence of the prevailingly strict ecclesiastical tendencies
of its members, again expressed itself in favour of the new
hymnbook. Its conclusions were meanwhile very unfavourably
received by the government. Ebrard sought and obtained liberty
to resign, and even at the next synod, in 1869, the consistory
went hand in hand with the liberal majority.
§ 196. THE SOUTH GERMAN SMALLER STATES AND
RHENISH ALSACE AND LORRAINE.
The Protestant princely houses of South Germany had by the Lüneville
[Luneville] Peace obtained such an important increase of Catholic
subjects, that they had to make it their first care to arrange their
delicate relations by concluding a concordat with the papal curia in a
manner satisfactory to state and church. But all negotiations broke down
before the exorbitant claims of Rome, until the political restoration
movements of 1850 led to modifications of them hitherto undreamed of.
The concordats concluded during this period were not able to secure
enforcement over against the liberal current that had set in with
redoubled power in 1860, and so one thing after another was thrown
overboard. Even in the Protestant state churches this current made
itself felt in the persistent efforts, which also proved successful, to
secure the restoration of a representative synodal constitution which
would give to the lay element in the congregations a decided influence.
§ 196.1. =The Upper Rhenish Church Province.=--The governments
of the South German States gathered in 1818 at Frankfort, to
draw up a common concordat with Rome. But owing to the utterly
extravagant pretensions nothing further was reached than a new
delimitation in the bull “_Provida sollersque_,” 1821, of the
bishoprics in the so-called Upper Rhenish Church Province: the
archbishopric of Freiburg for Baden and the two Hohenzollern
principalities, the bishoprics of Mainz for Hesse-Darmstadt,
Fulda for Hesse-Cassel, Rottenburg for Württemberg, Limburg for
Nassau and Frankfort; and even this was given effect to only
in 1827, after long discussions, with the provision (bull _Ad
dominicæ gregis custodiam_) that the choice of the bishops should
issue indeed from the chapter, but that the territorial lord
might strike out objectionable names in the list of candidates
previously submitted to him. The actual equality of Protestants
and Catholics which the pope had not been able to allow in the
concordat, was now in 1880 proclaimed by the princes as the
law of the land. Papal and episcopal indulgences had to receive
approval before their publication; provincial and diocesan
synods could be held only with approval of the government and
in presence of the commissioners of the prince; taxes could not
be imposed by any ecclesiastical court; appeal could be made to
the civil court against abuse of spiritual power; those preparing
for the priesthood should receive scientific training at the
universities, practical training in the seminaries for priests,
etc. The pope issued a brief in which he characterized these
conditions as scandalous novelties, and reminded the bishops of
Acts v. 29. But only the Bishop of Fulda followed this advice,
with the result that the Catholic theological faculty at Marburg
was after a short career closed again, and the education of the
priests given over to the seminary at Fulda. Hesse-Darmstadt
founded a theological faculty at Giessen in 1830; Baden had one
already in Freiburg, and Würtemberg [Württemberg] had in 1817
affiliated the faculty at Ellwanger with the university of
Tübingen, and endowed it with the revenues of a rich convent. In
all these faculties alongside of rigorous scientific exactness
there prevailed a noble liberalism without the surrender of
the fundamental Catholic faith. The revolutionary year, 1848,
first gave the bishops the hope of a successful struggle for
the unconditional freedom of the church. In order to enforce the
Würzburg decrees (§ 192, 4), the five bishops issued in 1851 a
joint memorial. As the governments delayed their answer, they
declared in 1852 that they would immediately act as if all had
been granted them; and when at last the answer came, on most
points unfavourable, they said in 1853, that, obeying God rather
than man, they would proceed wholly in accordance with canon law.
§ 196.2. =The Catholic Troubles in Baden down to 1873.=--The
Grand Duchy of Baden, with two-thirds of its population Catholic,
where in 1848 the revolution had shattered all the foundations
of the state, and where besides a young ruler had taken the
reins of government in his hands only in 1852, seemed in spite
of the widely prevalent liberality of its clergy, the place best
fitted for such an attempt. The Archbishop of Freiburg, =Herm.
von Vicari=, in 1852, now in his eighty-first year, began by
arbitrarily stopping, on the evening of May 9th, the obsequies of
the deceased grand-duke appointed by the Catholic Supreme Church
Council for May 10th, prohibiting at the same time the saying
of mass for the dead (_pro omnibus defunctis_) usual at Catholic
burials, but in Baden and Bavaria hitherto not refused even to
Protestant princes. More than one hundred priests, who disobeyed
the injunction, were sentenced to perform penances. In the
following year he openly declared that he would forthwith carry
out the demands of the episcopal memorial, and did so immediately
by appointing priests in the exercise of absolute authority;
and by holding entrance examinations to the seminary without
the presence of royal commissioners as required by law. As a
warning remained unheeded, the government issued the order that
all episcopal indulgences must before publication be subscribed
by a grand-ducal special commissioner appointed for the purpose.
Against him, as well as against all the members of the Supreme
Church Council, the archbishop proclaimed the ban, issued a
fulminating pastoral letter, which was to have been read with
the excommunication in all churches, and ordered preaching for
four weeks for the instruction of the people on these matters.
At the same time he solemnly protested against all supremacy
of the state over the church. The government drove the Jesuits
out of the country, forbad the reading of the pastoral, and
punished disobedient priests with fines and imprisonment.
But the archbishop, spurred on by Ketteler, Bishop of Mainz,
advanced more boldly and recklessly than ever. In May, 1854,
the government introduced a criminal process against him,
during the course of which he was kept prisoner in his own house.
The attempts of his party to arouse the Catholic population
by demonstrations had no serious result. At the close of the
investigation the archbishop was released from his confinement
and continued the work as before. The government, however, still
remained firm, and punished every offence. In June, 1855, however,
a provisional agreement was published, and finally in June, 1859,
a formal concordat, the bull _Æterni patris_, was concluded with
Rome, its concessions to the archbishop almost exceeding even
those of Austria (§ 198, 2). In spite of ministerial opposition
the second chamber in March, 1860, brought up the matter before
its tribunal, repudiated the right of the government to conclude
a convention with Rome without the approbation of the states of
the realm, and forbad the grand-duke to enforce it. He complied
with this demand, dismissed the ministry, insisted, in answer
to the papal protest, on his obligation to respect the rights of
the constitution, and on October 9th, 1860, sanctioned jointly
with the chambers a law on the legal position of the Catholic and
Protestant churches in the state. The archbishop indeed declared
that the concordat could not be abolished on one side, and still
retain the force of law, but in presence of the firm attitude
of the government he desisted, and satisfied himself with giving
in 1861 a grudging acquiescence, by which he secured to himself
greater independence than before in regard to imposing of dues
and administration of the church property. Conflicts with the
archbishop, however, and with the clerical minority in the
chamber, still continued. The archbishop died in 1868. His see
remained vacant, as the chapter and the government could not
agree about the list of candidates; the interim administration
was carried on by the vicar-general, Von Kübel (died 1881),
as administrator of the archdiocese, quite in the spirit of
his predecessor. The law of October 9th, 1860, had prescribed
evidence of general scientific culture as a condition of
appointment to an ecclesiastical office in the Protestant as well
as the Catholic church. Later ordinances required in addition:
Possession of Baden citizenship, having passed a favourable
examination on leaving the university, a university course of at
least two and half years, attendance upon at least three courses
of lectures in the philosophical faculty, and finally also an
examination before a state examining board, within one and half
years of the close of the university curriculum, in the Latin
and Greek languages, history of philosophy, general history,
and the history of German literature (later also the so called
_Kulturexamen_). The Freiburg curia, however, protested, and in
1867 forbad clergy and candidates to submit to this examination
or to seek a dispensation from it. The result was, that forthwith
no clergymen could be definitely appointed, but up to 1874 no
legal objection was made to interim appointments of parochial
administrators. The educational law of 1868 abolished the
confessional character of the public schools. In 1869 state
recognition was withdrawn from the festivals of Corpus Christi,
the holy apostles, and Mary, as also, on the other hand, from the
festivals of Maundy Thursday and Good Friday. In 1870 obligatory
civil marriage was introduced, while all compulsion to observe
the baptismal, confirmational, and funeral rites of the church
was abolished, and a law on the legal position of benevolent
institutions was passed to withdraw these as much as possible
from the administration of the ecclesiastical authorities. On
the subsequent course of events in Baden, see § 197, 14.
§ 196.3. =The Protestant Troubles in Baden.=--The union of the
Lutheran and Reformed churches was carried out in the Grand Duchy
of Baden in 1821. It recognised the normative significance of the
_Augustana_, as well as the Lutheran and Heidelberg catechisms,
in so far as by it the free examination of scripture as the
only source of Christian faith, is again expressly demanded
and applied. A synod of 1834 provided this state church with
union-rationalistic agenda, hymnbook, and catechism. When there
also a confessional Lutheran sentiment began again in the
beginning of 1850 to prevail, the church of the union opposed
this movement by gensdarmes, imprisonment and fines. The pastor
Eichhorn, and later also the pastor Ludwig, with a portion
of their congregations left the state church and attached
themselves to the Breslau Upper Church Conference, but amid
police interference could minister to their flocks only under
cloud of night. After long refusal the grand-duke at last in
1854 permitted the separatists the choice of a Lutheran pastor,
but persistently refused to recognise Eichhorn as such. Pastor
Haag, who would not give up the Lutheran distribution formula
at the Lord’s supper, was after solemn warning deposed in 1855.
On the other hand the positive churchly feeling became more
and more pronounced in the state church itself. In 1854 the old
rationalist members of the Supreme Church Council were silenced,
and Ullmann of Heidelberg was made president. Under his auspices
a general synod of 1855 presented a sketch of new church and
school books on the lines of the union consensus, with an
endeavour also to be just to the Lutheran views. The grand-duke
confirmed the decision and the country was silent. But when in
1858 the Supreme Church Council, on the ground of the Synodal
decision of 1855, promulgated the general introduction of a
new church book, a violent storm broke out through the country
against the liturgical novelties contained therein (extension
of the liturgy by confession of sin and faith, collects,
responses, Scripture reading, kneeling at the supper, the making
a confession of their faith by sponsors), the Heidelberg faculty,
with Dr. Schenkel at its head, leading the opposition in the
Supreme Church Council. Yet Hundeshagen, who in the synod had
opposed the introduction of a new agenda, entered the lists
against Schenkel and others as the apologist of the abused church
book. The grand-duke then decided that no congregation should be
obliged to adopt the new agenda, while the introduction of the
shorter and simpler form of it was recommended. The agitations
these awakened caused its rejection by most of the congregations.
Meanwhile in consequence of the concordat revolution in 1860, a
new liberal ministry had come into power, and the government now
presented to the chambers a series of thoroughly liberal schemes
for regulating the affairs of the evangelical church, which
were passed by large majorities. Toward the end of the year the
government, by deposing the Supreme Church Councillor Heintz,
began to assume the patronage of the supreme ecclesiastical court.
Ullmann and Bähr tendered their resignations, which were accepted.
The new liberal Supreme Church Council, including Holtzmann,
Rothe, etc., now published a sketch of a church constitution on
the lines of ecclesiastical constitutionalism, which with slight
modifications the synod of July, 1861, adopted and the grand-duke
confirmed. It provided for annual diocesan synods of lay and
clerical members, and a general synod every five years. The
latter consists of twenty-four clerical and twenty-four lay
members, and six chosen by the grand-duke, besides the prelate,
and is represented in the interval by a standing committee of
four members, who have also a seat and vote in the Supreme Church
Council.--Dr. Schenkel’s “_Leben Jesu_” of 1864 led the still
considerable party among the evangelical clergy who adhered to
the doctrine of the church to agitate for his removal from his
position as director of the Evangelical Pastors’ Seminary at
Heidelberg; but it resulted only in this, that no one was obliged
to attend his lectures. The second synod, held almost a year
behind time in 1867, passed a liberal ordination formula. At the
next synod in 1871, the orthodox pietistic party had evidently
become stronger, but was still overborne by the liberal party,
whose strength was in the lay element. Meanwhile a praiseworthy
moderation prevailed on both sides, and an effort was made
to work together as peaceably as possible.--In Heidelberg a
considerable number attached to the old faith, dissatisfied
with the preaching of the four “Free Protestant” city pastors,
after having been in 1868 refused their request for the joint use
of a city church for private services in accordance with their
religious convictions (§ 180, 1), had built for this purpose a
chapel of their own, in which numerously attended services were
held under the direction of Professor Frommel of the gymnasium.
When a vacancy occurred in one of the pastorates in 1880, this
believing minority, anxious for the restoration of unity and
peace, as well as the avoidance of the separation, asked to
have Professor Frommel appointed to the charge. At a preliminary
assembly of twenty-one liberal church members this proposal was
warmly supported by the president, Professor Bluntschli, by all
the theological professors, with the exception of Schenkel and
eighteen other liberal voters, and agreed to by the majority of
the two hundred liberals constituting the assembly. But when the
formal election came round the proposal was lost by twenty-seven
to fifty-one votes.
§ 196.4. =Hesse-Darmstadt and Nassau.=--In 1819 the government
of the Grand Duchy of =Hesse= recommended the union of all
=Protestant= communities under one confession. Rhenish Hesse
readily agreed to this, and there in 1822 the union was
accomplished. In the other provinces, however, it did not take
effect, although by the rationalism fostered at Giessen among the
clergy and by the popular current of thought in the communities,
the Lutheran as well as the Reformed confession had been robbed
of all significance. But since 1850 even there a powerful
Lutheran reaction among the younger clergy, zealously furthered
by a section of the aristocracy of the state, set in, especially
in the district on the right bank of the Rhine, which has eagerly
opposed the equally eager struggles of the liberal party to
introduce a liberal synodal representative constitution for the
evangelical church of the whole state. These endeavours, however,
were frustrated, and at an extraordinary state synod of 1873, on
all controverted questions, the middle party gave their vote in
favour of the absorptive union. The state church was declared
to be the united church. The clause that had been added to the
government proposal: “Without prejudice to the status of the
confessions of the several communities,” was dropped; the place
of residence and not the confession was that which determined
qualifications in the community; the ordination now expressed
obligation to the Reformation confessions generally, etc. The
members of the minority broke off their connection with the
synod, and seventy-seven pastors presented to the synod a protest
against its decisions. The grand-duke then, on the basis of
these deliberations, gave forthwith a charter to the church
constitution, in which indeed the Lutheran, Reformed, and United
churches were embraced in one evangelical state church with
a common church government; but still also, by restoring the
phrase struck out by the synod from § 1, the then existing
confessional status of the several communities was preserved and
the confession itself declared beyond the range of legislation.
Yet fifteen Lutheran pastors represented that they could not
conscientiously accept this, and the upper consistory hastened to
remove them from office shortly before the shutting of the gates,
_i.e._, before July 1st, 1875, when by the new law (§ 197, 15)
depositions of clergy would belong only to the supreme civil
court. The opposing congregations now declared, in 1877, their
withdrawal from the state church, and constituted themselves as
a “free Lutheran church in Hesse.”--The =Catholic= church in the
Grand Duchy of Hesse, had under the peaceful bishops of Mainz,
Burg (died 1833) and Kaiser (died 1849), caused the government no
trouble. But it was otherwise after Kaiser’s death. Rome rejected
Professor Leopold Schmid of Giessen, favoured at Darmstadt
and regularly elected by the chapter (§ 187, 3), and the
government yielded to the appointment of the violent ultramontane
Westphalian, Baron von Ketteler. His first aim was the extinction
of the Catholic faculty at Giessen (§ 191, 2); he rested not
until the last student had been transferred from it to the
newly erected seminary at Mainz (1851). No less energetic and
successful were his endeavours to free the Catholic church from
the supremacy of the state in accordance with the Upper Rhenish
episcopal memorial. The Dalwigk ministry, in 1854, concluded a
“provisional agreement” with the bishop, which secured to him
unlimited autonomy and sovereignty in all ecclesiastical matters,
and, to satisfy the pope with his desiderata, these privileges
were still further extended in 1856. To this convention, first
made publicly known in 1860, the ministry, in spite of all
addresses and protests, adhered with unfaltering tenacity,
although long convinced of its consequences. The political events
of 1886, however, led the grand-duke in September of that year
to abrogate the hateful convention. But the minister as well
as the bishop considered this merely to refer to the episcopal
convention of 1850, and treated the agreement with the pope of
1856 as always still valid. So everything went on in the old way,
even after Ketteler’s supreme influence in the state had been
broken by the overthrow of Dalwigk in 1871. Comp. § 197, 15.--The
Protestant church in the Duchy of =Nassau= attached itself to
the union in 1817. The conflict in the Upper Rhenish church
overflowed even into this little province. The Bishop of Limburg,
in opposition to law and custom, appointed Catholic clergy on
his own authority, and excommunicated the Catholic officers
who supported the government, while the government arrested the
temporalities and instituted criminal proceedings against bishop
and chapter. After the conclusion of the Württemberg and Baden
concordats, the government showed itself disposed to adopt a
similar way out of the conflict, and in spite of all opposition
from the States concluded in 1861 a convention with the bishop,
by which almost all his hierarchical claims were admitted. Thus
it remained until the incorporation of Nassau in the Prussian
kingdom in 1866.
§ 196.5. In =Protestant Württemberg= a religious movement among
the people reached a height such as it attained nowhere else.
Pietism, chiliasm, separatism, the holding of conventicles,
etc., assumed formidable dimensions; solid science, philosophical
culture, and then also philosophical and destructive critical
tendencies issuing from Tübingen affected the clergy of this
state. Dissatisfaction with various novelties in the liturgy,
the hymnbook, etc., led many formally to separate from the
state church. After attempts at compulsion had proved fruitless,
the government allowed the malcontents under the organizing
leadership of the burgomaster, G. W. Hoffman (died 1846), to form
in 1818 the community of Kornthal, with an ecclesiastical and
civil constitution of its own after the apostolic type. Others
emigrated to South Russia and to North America (§ 211, 6, 7).
Out of the pastoral work of pastor Blumhardt at Möttlingen, who
earnestly preached repentance, there was developed, in connection
with the healing of a demoniac, which had been accompanied with a
great awakening in the community, the “gift” of healing the sick
by absolution and laying on of hands with contrite believing
prayer. Blumhardt, in order to afford this gift undisturbed
exercise, bought the Bad Boll near Göppingen, and officiated
there as pastor and miraculous healer in the way described. He
died in 1880.--After the way to a synodal representation of the
whole evangelical state church had been opened up in 1851 by
the introduction, according to a royal ordinance, of parochial
councils and diocesan synods, the consistory having also in
1858 published a scheme referring thereto, the whole business
was brought to a standstill, until at last in 1867, by means
of a royal edict, the calling of a State Synod consisting of
twenty-five clerical and as many lay members was ordered, and
consequently in February, 1869, such a synod met for the first
time. Co-operation in ecclesiastical legislation was assigned
to it as its main task, while it had also the right to advise
in regard to proposals about church government, also to make
suggestions and complaints on such matters, but the confession
of the evangelical church was not to be touched, and lay entirely
outside of its province. A liberal enactment with regard to
dissenters was sanctioned by the chamber in 1870.
§ 196.6. =The Catholic Church in Württemberg.=--Even after
the founding of the bishopric of Rottenberg [Rottenburg] the
government maintained strictly the previously exercised rights of
sovereignty over the Catholic church, to which almost one-third
of the population belonged, and the almost universally prevalent
liberalism of the Catholic clergy found in this scarcely any
offence. A new order of divine service in 1837, which, with the
approval of the episcopal council, recommended the introduction
of German hymns in the services, dispensing the sacraments in
the German language, restriction of the festivals, masses, and
private masses, processions, etc., did indeed cause riots in
several places, in which, however, the clergy took no part. But
when in 1837, in consequence of the excitement caused throughout
Catholic Germany by the Cologne conflict (§ 193, 1), the hitherto
only isolated cases of lawless refusal to consecrate mixed
marriages had increased, the government proceeded severely to
punish offending clergymen, and transported to a village curacy
a Tübingen professor, Mack, who had declared the compulsory
celebration unlawful. Called to account by the nuncio of Munich
for his indolence in all these affairs and severely threatened,
old Bishop Keller at last resolved, in 1841, to lay before
the chamber a formal complaint against the injury done to the
Catholic church, and to demand the freeing of the church from
the sovereignty of the state. In the second chamber this motion
was simply laid _ad acta_, but in the first it was recommended
that the king should consider it. The bishop, however, and the
liberal chapter could not agree as to the terms of the demand,
contradictory opinions were expressed, and things remained
as they were. But Bishop Keller fell into melancholy and died
in 1845. His successor took his stand upon the memorial and
declaration of the Upper Rhenish bishops, and immediately in 1853
began the conflict by forbidding his clergy, under threats of
severe censure, to submit as law required to civil examinations.
The government that had hitherto so firmly maintained its
sovereign rights, under pressure of the influence which a lady
very nearly related to the king exercised over him, gave in
without more ado, quieted the bishop first of all by a convention
in 1854, and then entered into negotiations with the Roman curia,
out of which came in 1857 a concordat proclaimed by the bull
_Cum in sublimi_, which, in surrender of a sovereign right of
the state over the affairs of the church, far exceeds that of
Austria (§ 198, 2). The government left unheeded all protests and
petitions from the chambers for its abolition. But the example
of Baden and the more and more decided tone of the opposition
obliged the government at last to yield. The second chamber
in 1861 decreed the abrogation of the concordat, and a royal
rescript declared it abolished. In the beginning of 1862 a bill
was submitted by the new ministry and passed into law by both
chambers for determining the relations of the Catholic church to
the state. The royal _placet_ or right of permitting or refusing,
is required for all clerical enactments which are not purely
inter-ecclesiastical but refer to mixed matters; the theological
endowments are subject to state control and joint administration;
boys’ seminaries are not allowed; clergymen appointed to office
must submit to state examination; according to consuetudinary
rights, about two-thirds of the benefices are filled by the
king, one-third by the bishops on reporting to the civil court,
which has the right of protest; clergy who break the law are
removable by the civil court, etc. The curia indeed lodged
a protest, but the for the most part peace-loving clergy reared,
not in the narrowing atmosphere of the seminaries but amid
the scientific culture of the university, in the halls of
Tübingen, submitted all the more easily as they found that in
all inter-ecclesiastical matters they had greater freedom and
independence under the concordat than before.
§ 196.7. =The Imperial Territory of Alsace and Lorraine
since 1871.=--After Alsace with German Lorraine had again, in
consequence of the Franco-Prussian war, been united to Germany
and as an imperial territory had been placed under the rule
of the new German emperor, the secretary of the Papal States,
Cardinal Antonelli, in the confident hope of being able to secure
in return the far more favourable conditions, rights and claims
of the Catholic church in Prussia with the autocracy of the
bishops unrestricted by the state, declared in a letter to the
Bishop of Strassburg, that the concordat of 1801 (§ 203, 1) was
annulled. But when the imperial government showed itself ready
to accept the renunciation, and to make profit out of it in the
opposite way from that intended, the cardinal hasted in another
letter to explain how by the incorporation with Germany a new
arrangement had become necessary, but that clearly the old must
remain in force until the new one has been promulgated. Also a
petition of the Catholic clergy brought to Berlin by the bishop
himself, which laid claim to this unlimited dominion over all
Catholic educational and benevolent institutions, failed of
its purpose. The clergy therefore wrought for this all the
more zealously by fanaticizing the Catholic people in favour of
French and against German interests. On the epidemic about the
appearance of the mother of God called forth in this way, see
§ 188, 7. In 1874 the government found itself obliged to close
the so-called “little seminaries,” or boys’ colleges, on account
of their fostering sentiments hostile to the empire. Yet in
1880 the newly appointed imperial governor, Field-marshal von
Manteuffel (died 1885), at the request of the States-Committee,
allowed Bishop Räss of Strassburg to reopen the seminary at
Zillisheim, with the proviso that his teachers should be approved
by the government, and that instruction in the German language
should be introduced. Manteuffel has endeavoured since, by
yielding favours to the France-loving Alsatians and Lorrainers,
and to their ultramontane clergy, to win them over to the idea of
the German empire, even to the evident sacrifice of the interests
of resident Germans and of the Protestant church. But such
fondling has wrought the very opposite result to that intended.
§ 197. THE SO-CALLED KULTURKAMPF IN THE GERMAN EMPIRE.[550]
Ultramontanism had for the time being granted to the Prussian state,
which had not only allowed it absolutely free scope but readily aided
its growth throughout the realm (§ 193, 2), an indulgence for that
offence which is in itself unatoneable, having a Protestant dynasty.
Pius IX. had himself repeatedly expressed his satisfaction at the
conduct of the government. But the league which Prussia made in 1866
with the “church-robbing Sub-alpine,” _i.e._ Italian, government, was
not at all to the taste of the curia. The day of Sadowa, 3rd July, 1866,
called from Antonelli the mournful cry, _Il mondo cessa_, “The world has
gone to ruin,” and the still more glorious day of Sedan, 2nd September,
1870, completely put the bottom out of the Danaid’s vessel of
ultramontane forbearance and endurance. This day, 18th January, 1871,
had as its result the overthrow of the temporal power of the papacy as
well the establishment of a new and hereditary German empire under the
Protestant dynasty of the Prussian Hohenzollerns. German ultramontanism
felt itself all the more under obligation to demand from the new
emperor as the first expiation for such uncanonical usurpation, the
reinstatement of the pope in his lost temporal power. But when he did
not respond to this demand, the ultramontane party, by means of the
press favourable to its claims, formally declared war against the German
empire and its governments, and applied itself systematically to the
mobilization of its entire forces. But the empire and its governments,
with Prussia in the van, with unceasing determination, supported by
the majority of the States’ representatives, during the years 1871-1875
proceeded against the ultramontanes by legislative measures. The
execution of these by the police and the courts of law, owing to the
stubborn refusal to obey on the part of the higher and lower clergy, led
to the formation of an opposition, commonly designated after a phrase
of the Prussian deputy, Professor Virchow, “_Kulturkampf_,” which was
in some degree modified first in 1887. The imperial chancellor, Prince
Bismarck, uttered at the outset the confident, self-assertive statement,
“We go not to Canossa,”--and even in 1880, when it seemed as if a
certain measure of submission was coming from the side of the papacy,
and the Prussian government also showed itself prepared to make
important concessions, he declared, “We shall not buy peace with Canossa
medals; such are not minted in Germany.” Since 1880, however, the
Prussian government with increasing compliance from year to year set
aside and modified the most oppressive enactments of the May laws, so as
actually to redress distresses and inconveniences occasioned by clerical
opposition to these laws, without being able thereby to obtain any
important concession on the part of the papal curia, until at last in
1887, after the government had carried concession to the utmost limit,
the pope put his seal to definitive terms of peace by admitting the
right of giving information on the part of the bishops regarding
appointments to vacant pastorates, as well as the right of protest
on the part of the government against those thus nominated.
§ 197.1. =The Aggression of Ultramontanism.=--Even in the
revolution year, 1848, German ultramontanism, in order to obtain
what it called the freedom of the church, had zealously seconded
many of the efforts of democratic radicalism. Nevertheless, in
the years of reaction that followed, it succeeded in catching
most of the influential statesmen on the limed twig of the
assurance that the episcopal hierarchy, with its unlimited sway
over the clergy and through them over the feelings of the people,
constituted the only certain and dependable bulwark against the
revolutionary movements of the age, and this idea prevailed down
to 1860, and in Prussia down to 1871. But the overthrow of the
concordat in Baden, Württemberg and Darmstadt by the states of
the realm after a hard conflict, the humiliation of Austria in
1866, and the growth in so threatening a manner since of the
still heretical Prussia, produced in the whole German episcopate
a terrible apprehension that its hitherto untouched supremacy
in the state would be at an end, and in order to ward off this
danger it was driven into agitations and demonstrations partly
secret and partly open. On 8th October, 1868, the papal nuncio in
Munich, Monsignor Meglia, uttered his inmost conviction regarding
the Württemberg resident thus: “Only in America, England, and
Belgium does the Catholic church receive its rights; elsewhere
nothing can help us but the revolution.” And on 22nd April, 1869,
Bishop Senestray [Senestrey] of Regensburg declared plainly in a
speech delivered at Schwandorff: “If kings will no longer be of
God’s grace, I shall be the first to overthrow the throne....
Only a war or revolution can help us in the end.” And war at
last came, but it helped only their opponents. Although at
its outbreak in 1870 the ultramontane party in South Germany,
especially in Bavaria, for the most part with unexampled
insolence expressed their sympathy with France, and after the
brilliant and victorious close of the war did everything to
prevent the attachment of Bavaria to the new German empire, their
North German brethren, accustomed to the boundless compliance of
the Prussian government, indulged the hope of prosecuting their
own ends all the more successfully under the new regime. Even
in November, 1870, Archbishop Ledochowski of Posen visited the
victorious king of Prussia at Versailles, in order to interest
him personally in the restoration of the Papal States. In
February, 1871, in the same place, fifty-six Catholic deputies of
the Prussian parliament presented to the king, who had meanwhile
been proclaimed Emperor of Germany, a formal petition for
the restoration of the temporal power of the pope, and soon
afterwards a deputation of distinguished laymen waited upon
him “in name of all the Catholics of Germany,” with an address
directed to the same end. The _Bavarian Fatherland_ (Dr. Sigl)
indeed treated it with scorn as a “belly-crawling-deputation,
which crawled before the magnanimous hero-emperor, beseeching
him graciously to use said deputation as his spittoon.” And the
_Steckenberger Bote_, inspired by Dr. Ketteler, declared: “We
Catholics do not entreat it as a favour, but demand it as our
right.... Either you must restore the Catholic church to all
its privileges or not one of all your existing governments will
endure.” At the same time as the insinuation was spread that the
new German empire threatened the existence of the Catholic church
in Germany, a powerful ultramontane election agitation in view of
the next Reichstag was set on foot, out of which grew the party
of the “Centre,” so called from sitting in the centre of the hall,
with Von Ketteler, Windthorst, Mallinkrodt (died 1874), and the
two Reichenspergers, as its most eloquent leaders. Even in the
debate on the address in answer to the speech from the throne
this party demanded intervention, at first indeed only diplomatic,
in favour of the Papal States. In the discussion on the new
imperial constitution A. Reichensperger sought to borrow from
the abortive German landowners’ bill of 1848, condemned indeed as
godless by the syllabus (§ 185, 2), principles that might serve
the turn of ultramontanism regarding the unrestricted liberty
of the press, societies, meetings, and religion, with the most
perfect independence of all religious communities of the State.
Mallinkrodt insisted upon the need of enlarged privileges for
the Catholic church owing to the great growth of the empire
in Catholic territory and population. All these motions were
rejected by the Reichstag, and the Prussian government answered
them by abolishing in July, 1871, the Catholic department of
the Ministry of Public Worship, which had existed since 1841
(§ 193, 2). The _Genfer Korrespondenz_, shortly before highly
praised by the pope, declared: If kings do not help the papacy
to regain its rights, the papacy must also withdraw from them
and appeal directly to the hearts of the people. “Understand
ye the terrible range of this change? Your hours, O ye princes,
are numbered!” The Berlin _Germania_ pointed threateningly to
the approaching _revanche_ war in France, on the outbreak of
which the German empire would no longer be able to reckon on
the sympathy of its Catholic subjects; and the _Ellwanger kath.
Wochenblatt_ proclaimed openly that only France is able to guard
and save the Catholic church from the annihilating projects
of Prussia. And in this way the Catholic people throughout all
Germany were roused and incited by the Catholic press, as well as
from the pulpit and confessional, in home and school, in Catholic
monasteries and nunneries, in mechanics’ clubs and peasants’
unions, in casinos and assemblies of nobles. Bishop Ketteler
founded expressly for purposes of such agitations the Mainz
Catholic Union, in September, 1871, which by its itinerant
meetings spread far and wide the flame of religious fanaticism;
and a Bavarian priest, Lechner, preached from the pulpit that
one does not know whether the German princes are by God’s or by
the devil’s grace.
§ 197.2. =Conflicts Occasioned by Protection of the Old Catholics,
1871-1872.=--That the Prussian government refused to assist
the bishops in persecuting the Old Catholics, and even retained
these in their positions after excommunication had been hurled
against them, was regarded by those bishops as itself an act
of persecution of the Catholic church. To this opinion they
gave official expression, under solemn protest against all
encroachments of the state upon the domain of Catholic faith and
law, in a memorial addressed to the German emperor from Fulda, on
September 7th, 1871, but were told firmly and decidedly to keep
within their own boundaries. Even before this Bishop =Krementz
of Ermeland= had refused the _missio canonica_ to Dr. Wollmann,
teacher of religion at the Gymnasium of Braunsberg, on account
of his refusing to acknowledge the dogma of infallibility, and
had forbidden Catholic scholars to attend his instructions.
The minister of public worship, Von Mühler, decided, because
religious instruction was obligatory in the Prussian gymnasia,
that all Catholic scholars must attend or be expelled from the
institution. The Bavarian government followed a more correct
course in a similar case that arose about the same time; for
it recognised and protected the religious instructions of the
anti-infallibilist priest, Renftle in Mering, as legitimate, but
still allowed parents who objected to withhold their children
from it. And in this way the new Prussian minister, Falk,
corrected his predecessor’s mistake. But all the more decidedly
did the government proceed against Bishop Krementz, when
he publicly proclaimed the excommunication uttered against
Dr. Wollmann and Professor Michelis, which had been forbidden by
Prussian civil law on account of the infringement of civil rights
connected therewith according to canon law. As the bishop could
not be brought to an explicit acknowledgment of his obligation
to obey the laws of the land, the minister of public worship
on October 1st, 1872, stripped him of his temporalities.
But meanwhile a second conflict had broken out. The Catholic
field-provost of the Prussian army and bishop _in partibus_,
Namszanowski, had under papal direction commanded the
Catholic divisional chaplain, Lünnemann of Cologne, on pain
of excommunication, to discontinue the military worship in the
garrison chapel, which, by leave of the military court, was
jointly used by the Old Catholics, and so was desecrated. He
was therefore brought before a court of discipline, suspended
from his office in May, 1872, and finally, by royal ordinance
in 1873, the office of field-provost was wholly abolished.
§ 197.3. =Struggles over Educational Questions, 1872-1873.=--In
the formerly Polish provinces of the Prussian kingdom the
Polonization of resident Catholic Germans had recently assumed
threatening proportions. The archbishop of Posen and Gnesen,
Count =Ledochowski=, whom the pope during the Vatican Council
appointed primate of Poland, was the main centre of this
agitation. In the Posen priest seminary he formed for himself,
in a fanatically Polish clergy, the tools for carrying it out,
and in the neighbouring Schrimm he founded a Jesuit establishment
that managed the whole movement. Where previously Polish and
German had been preached alternately, German was now banished,
and in the public schools, the oversight of which, as throughout
all Prussia, lay officially in the hands of the clergy, all means
were used to discourage the study of the German language, and
to stamp out the German national sentiment. But even in the two
western provinces the Catholic public schools were made by the
clerical school inspectors wholly subservient to the designs of
ultramontanism. In order to stem such disorder the government,
in February, 1872, sanctioned the =School Inspection Law=
passed by the parliament, by which the right and duty of school
inspection was transferred from the church to the state, so that
for the sake of the state the clerical inspectors hostile to the
government were set aside, and where necessary might be replaced
by laymen. A pastoral letter of the Prussian bishops assembled
at Fulda in April of that year complained bitterly of persecution
of the church and unchristianizing of the schools, but advised
the Catholic clergy under no circumstances voluntarily to resign
school inspection where it was not taken from them. By a rescript
of the minister of public worship in June, the exclusion of all
members of spiritual orders and congregations from teaching in
public schools was soon followed by the suppression of the Marian
congregations in all schools, and it was enjoined in March, 1873,
that in Polish districts, where other subjects had been taught in
the higher educational institutions in the German language, this
also would be obligatory in religious instruction. Ledochowski
indeed directed all religious teachers in his diocese to use the
Polish language after as they had done before, but the government
suspended all teachers who followed his direction, and gave
over the religious instruction to lay teachers. The archbishop
now erected private schools for the religious instruction of
gymnasial teachers, and the government forbad attendance at them.
§ 197.4. =The Kanzelparagraph and the Jesuit law,
1871-1872.=--While thus the Prussian government took more and
more decided measures against the ultramontanism that had become
so rampant in its domains, on the other hand, its mobile band
of warriors in cassock, dress coat, and blouse did not cease to
labour, and the imperial government passed some drastic measures
of defence applicable to the whole empire. At the instance of
the Bavarian government, which could not defend itself from
the violence of its “patriots,” the Federal Council asked the
Reichstag to add a new article to the penal code of the empire,
threatening any misuse of the pulpit for political agitation
with imprisonment for two years. The Bavarian minister of public
worship, Lutz, undertook himself to support this bill before
the Reichstag. “For several decades,” he said, “the clergy
in Germany have assumed a new character; they are become the
simple reflection of Jesuitism.” The Reichstag sanctioned the
bill in December, 1871. Far more deeply than this so-called
=Kanzelparagraph=, the operation of which the agitation of the
clergy by a little circumspection could easily elude, did the
=Jesuit Law=, published on July 4th, 1872, cut into the flesh
of German ultramontanism. Already in April of that year had a
petition from Cologne demanding the expulsion of the Jesuits
been presented to the Reichstag. Similar addresses flowed in
from other places. The Centre party, on the other hand, organized
a regular flood of petitions in favour of the Jesuits. The
Reichstag referred both to the imperial chancellor, with the
request to introduce a law against the movements of the Jesuits
as dangerous to the State. The Federal Council complied with this
request, and so the law was passed which ordained the removal
of the Jesuits and related orders and congregations, the closing
of their institutions within six months, and prohibited the
formation of any other orders by their individual members, and
the government authorised the banishment of foreign members and
the interning of natives at appointed places. A later ordinance
of the Federal Council declared the Redemptorists, Lazarists,
Priests of the Holy Ghost, and the Society of the Heart of Jesus
to be orders related to the Society of Jesus. Those affected
by this law anticipated the threatened interning by voluntarily
removing to Belgium, Holland, France, Turkey, and America.
§ 197.5. =The Prussian Ecclesiastical Laws, 1873-1875.=--In
order to be able to check ultramontanism, even in its pædagogical
breeding places, the episcopal colleges and seminaries, and at
the same time to restrict by law the despotic absolutism of the
bishops in disciplinary and beneficiary matters, the Prussian
government brought in other four ecclesiastical bills, which in
spite of violent opposition on the part of the Centre and the
Old Conservatives, were successively passed by both houses of
parliament, and approved by the king on May 11th, 12th, 13th,
and 14th, 1873. Their most important provisions are: As a
condition for admission to a spiritual office the state requires
citizenship of the German empire, three years’ study at a German
university, and, besides an exit gymnasial examination preceding
the university course, a state examination in general knowledge
(in philosophy, history, and German literature), in addition to
the theological examination. The episcopal boys’ seminaries and
colleges are abolished. The priest seminaries, if the minister
of worship regards them as fit for the purpose, may take the
place of the university course, but must be under regular state
inspection. The candidates for spiritual offices, which must
never be left vacant more than a year, are to be named to the
chief president of the province, and he can for cogent reasons
lodge a protest against them. Secession from the church is
freely allowed, and releases from all personal obligations
to pay ecclesiastical dues and perform ecclesiastical duties.
Excommunication is permissible, but can be proclaimed only
in the congregation concerned, and not publicly. The power of
church discipline over the clergy can be exercised only by German
superiors and in accordance with fixed processional procedure.
Corporal punishment is not permissible, fines are allowed
to a limited extent, and restraint by interning in so-called
_Demeriti_ houses, but only at furthest of three months, and when
the party concerned willingly consents. Church servants, whose
remaining in office is incompatible with the public order, can
be deposed by civil sentence. And as final court of appeal in all
cases of complaint between ecclesiastical and civil authorities
as well as within the ecclesiastical domain, a royal court
of justice for ecclesiastical affairs is constituted, whose
proceedings are open and its decision final.--But even the
May Laws soon proved inadequate for checking the insolence of
the bishops and the disorders among the Catholic population
occasioned thereby. In December, 1873, therefore, by sovereign
authority there was prescribed a new formula of the episcopal
Oath of Allegiance, recognising more distinctly and decisively
the duty of obedience to the laws of the state. Then next a bill
was presented to the parliament, which had been kept in view in
the original constitution, demanding obligatory civil marriage
and abolition of compulsory baptism, as well as the conducting
of civil registration by state officials. In February, 1874, it
was passed into law. On the 20th and 21st =May, 1874=, two other
bills brought in for extending the May Laws of the previous
year, in consequence of which a bishop’s see vacated by death,
a judicial sentence, or any other cause, must be filled within
the space of a year, and the chapter must elect within ten days
an episcopal administrator, who has to be presented to the chief
president, and to undertake an oath to obey the laws of the
state. If the chapter does not fulfil these requirements, a lay
commissioner will be appointed to administer the affairs of the
diocese. During the episcopal vacancy, all vacant pastorates, as
well as all not legally filled, can be at once validly supplied
by the act of the patron, and, where no such right exists,
by congregational election. Parochial property, on the illegal
appointment of a pastor, is given over to be administered by a
lay commissioner.--The empire also came to the help of the May
Laws by an imperial enactment of May 4th, 1874, sanctioned by the
emperor, which empowers the competent state government to intern
all church officers discharged from their office and not yielding
submission thereto, as well as all punished on account of
incompetence in their official duties, and, if this does not help,
to condemn them to loss of their civil rights and to expulsion
from the German federal territory.--Also in its next session the
imperial house of representatives again gave legislative sanction
to the _Kulturkampf_; for in January, 1875, it passed a bill
presented by the Federal Council on the deposition on oath as
to personal rank, and on divorce with obligatory civil marriage,
which, going far beyond the Prussian civil law of the previous
year, and especially ridding Bavaria of its strait-jacket canon
marriage law enforced by the concordat, abolished the spiritual
jurisdiction in favour of that of the civil courts, and gave it
to the state to determine the qualifications for, as well as the
hindrances to, divorce, without, however, touching the domain of
conscience, or entrenching in any way upon the canon law and the
demands of the church.
§ 197.6. =Opposition in the States to the Prussian May
Laws.=--Bishop Martin of Paderborn had even beforehand refused
obedience to the May Laws of 1873. After their promulgation, all
the Prussian bishops collectively declared to the ministry that
“they were not in a position to carry out these laws,” with the
further statement that they could not comply even with those
demands in them which in other states, by agreement with the pope,
are acknowledged by the church, because they are administered
in a one-sided way by the state in Prussia. On these lines also
they proceeded to take action. First of all, the refractoriness
of several of the seminaries drew down upon them the loss of
endowment and of the right of representation; and in the next
place, the refusal of the bishops to notify their appointment of
clergymen led to their being frequently fined, while the church
books and seals were taken away from clergymen so appointed,
all the official acts performed by them were pronounced invalid
in civil law, and those who performed them were subjected to
fines. But here, too, again Bishop Martin, well skilled in church
history (he had been previously professor of theology in Bonn),
had beforehand in a pastoral instructed his clergy that “since
the days of Diocletian there had not been seen so violent
a persecution of the name of Jesus Christ.” Soon after this
Archbishop Ledochowski, in an official document addressed to
the Chief President of Poland, compared the demand to give
notification of clerical appointments with the demand of ancient
Rome upon Christian soldiers to sacrifice to the heathen gods.
And by order of the pope prayers were offered in all churches for
the church so harshly and cruelly persecuted. And yet the whole
“persecution” then consisted in nothing more than this, that a
newly issued law of the state, under threat of fine in case of
disobedience, demanded again of the bishops paid by the state
what had been accepted for centuries as unobjectionable in the
originally Catholic Bavaria, and also for a long while in France,
Portugal, and other Romish countries, what all Prussian bishops
down to 1850 (§ 193, 2) had done without scruple, what the
bishops of Paderborn and Münster even had never refused to
do in the extra-Prussian portion of these dioceses (Oldenburg
and Waldeck), as also the Prince-Bishop of Breslau, since the
issuing of the similar Austrian May Laws (§ 198, 4) in the
Austro-Silesian part of his diocese, what the episcopal courts
of Württemberg and Baden had yielded to, although in almost all
these states the demand referred to broke up the union with the
papal curia. Yet before a year had passed the cases of punishment
for these offences had so increased that the only very inadequate
fines that could be exacted by the seizure of property had to
be changed into equivalent sentences of imprisonment. The first
prelate who suffered this fate was Archbishop Ledochowski, in
February, 1874. Then followed in succession: Eberhard of Treves,
Melchers of Cologne, Martin of Paderborn, and Brinkmann of
Münster. The ecclesiastical court of justice expressly pronounced
deposition against Ledochowski in April, 1874; against Martin in
January, 1875, and against the Prince-Bishop Förster of Breslau
in October, 1875, who alone had dared to proclaim in his diocese
the encyclical _Quod nunquam_ (§ 197, 7). But the latter had
even beforehand withdrawn the diocesan property to the value
of 900,000 marks to his episcopal castle, Johannisberg, in
Austro-Silesia, where with a truly princely income from Austrian
funds he could easily get over the loss of the Prussian part
of his revenues. Martin, who had been interned at Wesel, fled
in August, 1875, under cloud of night, to Holland, from whence
he transferred his agitations into Belgium, and finally to
London (died 1879). Ledochowski found a residence in the Vatican.
Brinkmann was deposed in March, and Melchers in June, 1876,
after both had beforehand proved their enjoyment of martyrdom
by escaping to Holland. Eberhard of Treves anticipated his
deposition from office by his death in May, 1876. Blum of Limburg
was deposed in June, 1877, and Beckmann of Osnabrück died in
1878.--In the Prussian parliament and German Reichstag the Centre
party, supported by Guelphs, Poles, and the Social Democrats, had
meanwhile with anger, scorn, and vituperation, with and without
wit, fought not only against all ecclesiastical, but also against
all other legislative proposals, whose acceptance was specially
desired by the government. And all the representatives of the
ultramontane press within and without Europe vied with one
another in violent denunciation of the ecclesiastical laws, and
in unmeasured abuse of the emperor and the empire. But almost
without exception the Roman Catholic officials in Prussia, as
well as the Protestants and Old Catholics, carried out “the
Diocletian persecution of Christians” in the judicial and police
measures introduced by the church laws. A number of Catholic
notables of the eastern provinces of their own accord, in a
dutiful address to the emperor, expressly accepted the condemned
laws, and won thereby the nickname of “State Catholics.” The
great mass of the Catholic people, high and low, remained
unflinchingly faithful to the resisting clergy in, for the most
part, only a passive opposition, although even, as the Berlin
_Germania_ expressed it, “the Catholic rage at the Bismarckian
ecclesiastical polity could condense itself into one Catholic
head” in a murderous attempt on the chancellor in quest of health
at Kissingen, on July 13th, 1874. It was the cooper, Kullmann,
who, fanaticised by exciting speeches and writings in the
Catholic society of Salzwedel, sought to take vengeance, as
he himself said, upon the chancellor for the May Laws and “the
insult offered to his party of the Centre.”--In the further
course of the Prussian _Kulturkampf_, however, fostered by
the aid of the confessional, the insinuating assiduity of
the clerical press, and the all-prevailing influence of the
thoroughly disciplined Catholic clergy over the popish masses,
the Centre grew in number and importance at the elections from
session to session, so that from the beginning of 1880, by the
unhappy division of the other parties in the Reichstag as well
as Chamber, it united sometimes with the Conservatives, sometimes
and most frequently with the Progressionists and Democrats
renouncing the _Kulturkampf_, and was supported on all questions
by Poles, Danes, Guelphs, and Alsatian-Lorrainers, as clerical
interest and ultramontane tactics required, in accordance with
the plan of campaign of the commander-in-chief, especially of
the quondam Hanoverian minister, Windthorst, dominated far more
by Guelphic than by ultramontane tendencies. The Centre was thus
able to turn the scale, until, at least in the Reichstag, after
the dissolution and new election of 1887, its dominatory power
was broken by the closer combination of the conservative and
national liberal parties.
§ 197.7. =Share in the Conflict taken by the Pope.=--=Pius IX.=
had congratulated the new emperor in 1871, trusting, as he
wrote, that his efforts directed to the common weal “might bring
blessing not only to Germany, but also to all Europe, and might
contribute not a little to the protection of the liberty and
rights of the Catholic religion.” And when first of all the
Centre party, called forth by the election agitation of German
ultramontanism, opened its politico-clerical campaign in the
Reichstag, he expressed his disapproval of its proceedings upon
Bismarck’s complaining to the papal secretary Antonelli. Yet
a deputation of the Centre sent to Rome succeeded in winning
over both. In order to build a bridge for the securing an
understanding with the curia, now that the conflict had grown
in extent and bitterness, the imperial government in May, 1872,
appointed the Bavarian Cardinal Prince Hohenlohe to the vacant
post of ambassador to the Vatican. But the pope, with offensive
recklessness, rejected the well-meant proposal, and forbade
the cardinal to accept the imperial appointment. From that time
he gave free and public expression on every occasion to his
senseless bitterness against the German empire and its government.
In an address to the German Reading Society at Rome in July, 1872,
he allowed himself to use the most violent expressions against
the German chancellor, and closed with the prophetic threatening:
“Who knows but the little stone shall soon loose itself from
the mountain (Dan. ii. 34), which shall break in pieces the foot
of the colossus?” But even this diatribe was cast in the shade
by the Christmas allocution of that year, in which he was not
ashamed to characterize the procedure of the German statesmen
and their imperial sovereign as “_impudentia_.” And after the
publication of the first May Laws he addressed a letter to the
emperor, in which, founding upon the fact that even the emperor
like all baptized persons belonged to him, the pope, he cast in
his teeth that “all the measures of his government for some time
aimed more and more at the annihilation of Catholicism,” and
added the threatening announcement that “these measures against
the religion of Jesus Christ can have no other result than
the overthrow of his own throne.” The emperor in his answer
made expressly prominent his divinely appointed call as well as
his own evangelical standpoint, and with becoming dignity and
earnestness decidedly repudiated the unmeasured assumptions of
the papacy, and published both letters. In the same style of
immoderate pretension the pope again, in November, 1875, in one
encyclical after another, gave vent to his anger against emperor
and empire, especially its military institutions. In place of
the deposed and at that time imprisoned archbishop, Ledochowski,
he appointed in 1874 a native apostolic legate, who was at last
ascertained to be the Canon Kurowski, when he was in October,
1875, condemned to two years’ imprisonment. But the pope took
the most decided and successful step by the =Encyclical _Quod
nunquam_, of 5th February, 1875=, addressed to the Prussian
episcopate, in which he characterized the Prussian May Laws as
“not given to free citizens to demand a reasonable obedience,
but as laid upon slaves, in order to force obedience by fears of
violence,” and, “in order to fulfil the duties of his office,”
declared quite openly to all whom it concerns and to the
Catholics throughout the world: “_Leges illas irritas esse,
utpote quæ divinæ Ecclesiæ constitutioni prorsus adversantur_;”
but upon those “godless” men who make themselves guilty of the
sin of assuming spiritual office without a divine call, falls _eo
ipso_ the great excommunication. On the other hand he rewarded,
in March, 1875, Archbishop Ledochowski, then still in prison, but
afterwards, in February, 1876, settled in Rome, for his sturdy
resistance of those laws, with a cardinal’s hat, and to the not
less persistent Prince-Bishop Förster of Breslau he presented
on his jubilee as priest the archiepiscopal pall. In the next
Christmas allocution he romanced about a second Nero, who, while
in one place with a lyre in his hand he enchanted the world by
lying words, in other places appeared with iron in his hand,
and, if he did not make the streets run with blood, he fills
the prisons, sends multitudes into exile, seizes upon and with
violence assumes all authority to himself. Also to the German
pilgrims who went in May, 1877, to his episcopal jubilee at Rome,
he had still much that was terrible to tell about this “modern
Attila,” leaving it uncertain whether he intended Prince Bismarck
or the mild, pious German emperor himself.
§ 197.8. =The Conflict about the Encyclical _Quod nunquam_ of
1875.=--By this encyclical the pope had completely broken up the
union between the Prussian state and the curia, resting upon the
bull _De salute animarum_ (§ 193, 1); for he, bluntly repudiating
the sovereign rights of the civil authority therein expressly
allowed, by pronouncing the laws of the Prussian state invalid,
authorized and promoted the rebellion of all Catholic subjects
against them. The Prussian government now issued three new laws
quickly after one another, cutting more deeply than all that went
before, which without difficulty received the sanction of all the
legislative bodies.
I. The so called =Arrestment Act= (_Sperrgesetz_) of
April 22nd, 1875, which ordered the immediate suspension
of all state payments to the Roman Catholic bishoprics and
pastorates until those who were entitled to them had in
writing or by statement declared themselves ready to yield
willing obedience to the existing laws of the state.
II. A law of May 31st, 1875, ordering the =Expulsion of
all Orders and such like Congregations= within eight
months, the minister of public worship, however, being
authorized to extend this truce to four years in the case
of institutions devoted to the education of the young,
while those which were exclusively hospital and nursing
societies were allowed to remain, but were subject to
state inspection and might at any time be suppressed by
royal order.
III. A law of June 12th, 1875, declaring the formal =Abrogation
of the Fifteenth, Sixteenth, and Eighteenth Articles of
the Constitution= (§ 193, 2).
And finally in addition there came the enforcement during this
session of the Chamber of laws previously introduced on the
rights of the Old Catholics (§ 190, 2), and, on June 20th, 1875,
on the administration of church property in Catholic parishes.
The latter measures aimed at withdrawing the administration
referred to from the autocratic absolutism of the clergy, and
transferring it to a lay commission elected by the community
itself, of which the parish priest was to be a member, but not
the president. Although the Archbishop of Cologne in name of
all the bishops before its issue had solemnly protested against
this law, because by it “essential and inalienable rights of
the Catholic church were lost,” and although the recognition
of it actually involved recognition of the May Laws and the
ecclesiastical court of justice, yet all the bishops declared
themselves ready to co-operate in carrying out the arrangements
for surrendering the church property to the administration
of a civil commission. They thus indeed secured thoroughly
ultramontane elections, but at the same time put themselves
into a position of self-contradiction, and admitted that the
one ground of their opposition to the May Laws, that they were
one-sidedly wrought by the state, was null and void.
§ 197.9. =Papal Overtures for Peace.=--=Leo XIII.=, since 1878,
intimated his accession to the Emperor William, and expressed his
regret at finding that the good relations did not continue which
formerly existed between Prussia and the holy see. The Emperor’s
answer expressed the hope that by the aid of his Holiness
the Prussian bishops might be induced to obey the laws of the
land, as the people under their pastoral care actually did;
and afterwards while in consequence of the attempt on his life
of June 2nd, 1873, he lay upon a sickbed, the crown prince on
June 10th answered other papal communications by saying, that
no Prussian monarch could entertain the wish to change the
constitution and laws of his country in accordance with the
ideas of the Romish church; but that, even though a thorough
understanding upon the radical controversy of a thousand
years could not be reached, yet the endeavour to preserve a
conciliatory disposition on both sides would also for Prussia
open a way to peace which had never been closed in other states.
Three weeks later the Munich nuntio Masella was at Kissingen and
conferred with the chancellor, Prince Bismarck, who was residing
there, about the possibility of a basis of reconciliation.
Subsequently negotiations were continued at Gastein, and then
in Vienna with the there resident nuntio Jacobini, but were
suspended owing to demands by the curia to which the state could
not submit. Still the pope attempted indirectly to open the way
for renewed consultation, for he issued a brief dated February
24th, 1880, to “Archbishop Melchers of Cologne” (deposed by
the royal court of justice), in which he declared his readiness
to allow to the respective government boards notification
of new elected priests before their canonical institution.
Thereupon a communication was sent to Cardinal Jacobini that the
state ministry had resolved, so soon as the pope had actually
implemented this declaration of his readiness, to make every
effort to obtain from the state representatives authority to
set aside or modify those enactments of the May Laws which were
regarded by the Romish church as harsh. But the pope received
this compromise of the government very ungraciously and showed
his dissatisfaction by withdrawing his concession, which besides
referred only to the unremovable priests, therefore not to
_Hetzkaplane_ and succursal or assistant priests, and presupposed
the obtaining the “_agrément_,” _i.e._ the willingly accorded
consent, of the state, without by any means allowing the setting
aside of the party elected.
§ 197.10. =Proof of the Prussian Government’s willingness to be
Reconciled, 1880-1881.=--Notwithstanding this brusque refusal
on the part of the papal curia, the government, at the instance
of the minister of public worship, Von Puttkamer (§ 193, 6),
resolved in May, 1880, to introduce a bill which gave a wide
discretionary power for moderating the unhappy state of matters
that had prevailed since the passing of the May Laws, throughout
Catholic districts, where 601 pastorates stood wholly vacant and
584 partly so, and nine bishoprics, some by death and others by
deposition. Although the need of peace was readily admitted on
both sides, the Liberals opposed these “Canossa proposals” as far
too great; the Centre, Poles, and Guelphs as far too small. Yet
it obtained at last in a form considerably modified, through a
compromise of the conservatives with a great part of the national
liberals the consent of both chambers. This law, sanctioned on
=July 14th, 1880=, embraced these provisions:
1. The royal court shall no longer depose from office
any church officers, but simply pronounce incapable of
administering the office;
2-4. The ministry of the state is authorized to give the
episcopal administrator charged by the church with
the interim administration of a vacant bishopric a
dispensation from the taking of the prescribed oath;
further, an administration by commission of ecclesiastical
property may be revoked as well as appointed; also state
endowments that had been withdrawn are to be restored for
the benefit of the whole extent of the diocese;
5. Spiritual official acts of a duly appointed clergyman by
way merely of assistance in another vacant parish are to
be allowed;
6. The minister of the interior and of public worship are
empowered to approve of the erection of new institutions
of religious societies which are devoted wholly to the
care of the sick, as to allow revocably to them the care
and nurture of children not yet of school age; and more
recently added were
7. The particular, according to which Articles 2, 3, and 4
cease to operate after January 1st, 1882.
The government was particularly careful to carry out the
provisions temporarily recognised in Article 3, for the
restoration of orderly episcopal administration by regularly
elected episcopal administrators in bishoprics made vacant by
death. Fulda, which was longest vacant, from October, 1873, had
to be left out of account, since in that case there was only
one member of the chapter left and so a canonical election
was impossible. But without difficulty in March, 1881, the
Vicar-General Dr. Höting for Osnabrück and Canon Drobe for
Paderborn, without taking the oath of allegiance, succeeded in
obtaining independent administration of the property as well as
the restoration of state pay for the entire dioceses, though they
did not give the notification required by the May Laws for the
interim administration. In October, 1881, the deposed Prince
Bishop Förster of Breslau died, and the suffragan bishop, Gleich,
elected by the chapter, undertook with consent of the government
the office of episcopal administrator.--Meanwhile the pope,
by a hearty letter of congratulation to the emperor on his
birthday, March 22nd, had given new life to the suspended
peace negotiations. And now also, when the respective chapters
transferred their right of election to the pope, the orderly
appointments of the Canon Dr. Korum of Metz, a pupil of the
Jesuit faculty of Innspruck [Innsbrück], very warmly recommended
by Von Manteuffel, governor of Alsace and Lorraine, to the
episcopal see of Treves, in August, 1881, of Vicar-General
Kopp of Hildesheim to Fulda in December, 1881, of the episcopal
administrators Höting and Drobe, in March and May, 1882,
respectively to Osnabrück and Paderborn, were duly carried
into effect. For Breslau the chapter drew up a list of seven
candidates, but the government pointed out the Berlin provost,
Rob. Herzog, as a mild and conciliatory person. The chapter now
laid its right of election in the hands of the pope, and in May,
1882, Herzog was raised to the dignity of prince-bishop. There
now remained vacant only the sees of Cologne, Posen, Limburg
and Münster, which had been emptied by the depositions of the
civil courts.--Meanwhile, too, the negotiations carried on at
the instance of the government by privy councillor Von Schlözer,
with the curia at Rome for the restoration of the embassy to the
Vatican had been brought to a close. The chamber voted for this
purpose an annual sum of 90,000 marks, and Schlözer himself was
appointed to the post in March, 1882.
§ 197.11. =Conciliatory Negotiations, 1882-1884.=--With January
1st, 1882, the three enactments of the July law of 1880, which
might be enforced at the discretion of the government, ceased to
operate. Von Gossler, minister of public worship since June, 1881,
on behalf of government, introduced a new bill into the Chamber
on January 16th, 1882, for their re-enactment and extension,
which by a compromise between the Conservatives and the Centre,
after various modifications secured a majority in both houses.
This second revised law embraced the following points:
1. Renewal of the three above-named enactments till
April 1st, 1884;
2. Restoration of the “Bishop’s Paragraph,” lost in 1880, in
this new form: If the king has pardoned a bishop set aside
by the ecclesiastical court, he becomes again the bishop of
his diocese recognised by the state;
3. The setting aside of the examination in general knowledge
(_Kulturexamen_) for those who bring a certificate of
having passed the Gymnasium exit examination, or have
attended with diligence lectures on philosophy, history
and German literature during a three years’ course at a
German university, or at a Prussian seminary of equal rank,
and have given proof of this by presenting evidence to the
chief president;
4. The setting aside of the rights of the patron and
congregation of themselves filling the vacant pastorates
during a vacancy in the episcopal see.
The new law obtained royal sanction on =May 31st, 1882=. But its
two most important articles, 2 and 3, remained for a long time
a dead letter, and even Article 1 was only carried out by the
resumption of the state emoluments for the Hohenzollerns and the
five newly instituted bishoprics (§ 197, 10), but not for the
other seven. But the ill humour of the ultramontane Hotspurs was
raised to the boiling point by the fate of the bill introduced by
the Centre into the Reichstag to set aside the Expatriation Law
of May 4th, 1874, which seemed to the government indispensable
on account of its applicability to the agitations against the
empire of the Polish clergy. This bill, after violent debates,
was carried on January 18th, 1882, by a two-thirds majority;
but it was cast out by the Federal Council on June 6th, almost
unanimously, only Bavaria and Reuss _jüngere Linie_ voting in
its favour. This was the result mainly of the failure of all the
attempts of Von Schlözer to render the government’s concessions
acceptable to the papal curia.--On the other hand, the government
of its own accord brought in a third revision scheme in June,
1883, by which it sought to relieve as far as possible the
troubles of the Catholic church. By adopting this law:
1. The obligation of notification on the part of the bishops
and the right of the state to protest on the change of
temporary assistants and substitutes into regular spiritual
officers, were abolished; as also
2. the competence of the court for ecclesiastical affairs in
appeals against the protest of the chief president, which
now therefore, according to the generally prevailing rule,
are referred to the minister of worship, the whole ministry,
the parliament, the king;
3. the immunity from punishment in the execution of their
office guaranteed in Article 5 of the July law of 1880
(§ 197, 10) was extended to all spiritual offices whether
vacant or not;
4. the ordaining of individual candidates in vacant dioceses
by bishops recognised by the state was declared to be legal.
In spite of repeated declarations of the curia that it could and
would agree to the notification only after a previous sufficient
guarantee of perfectly free training of the clergy and free
administration of the spiritual office, the king while residing
at the Castle of Mainau on Lake Constance, on July 11th, 1883,
sanctioned the so-called Mainau Law that had passed both houses,
and on the 14th, the minister of public worship demanded that
the Prussian bishops, without making notification, should fill up
vacancies in pastorates by appointing assistants, and should name
those candidates who were eligible for such appointment under
the conditions of the May Law of the previous year (§ 197, 3).
The pope at last, in September, 1883, allowed the dispensation
required, but for that time only and without prejudice for the
future. By the end of May, 1,884 applications had been made to
the senior of the Prussian episcopate appointed to receive such,
Marnitz of Kulm, by 1,443 clergymen, of whom the government
rejected only 178 who had studied at the Jesuit institutions of
Rome, Louvain, and Innsbrück.--In December, 1883, Bishop Blum of
Limburg, and in January, 1884, Brinkmann of Münster were restored
by royal grace, and for both dioceses, as well as for Ermeland,
Kulm and Hildesheim, and at last also on March 31st, shortly
before the closing of the door, even for Cologne, in this case,
however, revocably, the arrest of salaries ceased, so that only
the two archiepiscopal sees of Cologne and Posen remained vacant,
and only Posen continued bereft of its endowments. On the other
hand the government allowed the three discretionary enactments
that were in operation till April 1st, 1884, to lapse without
providing for their renewal. Also the proposal for abolishing
the Expatriation Law of November, 1884, introduced anew by the
Centre and again adopted by the Reichstag by a great majority,
was thrown out by the Federal Council; but in the beginning
of December, on the opening of the new Reichstag, it was again
brought in by the Centre and passed, but was left quite unnoticed
by the Federal Council. The repeated motions of the Centre for
payment of the bishops’ salaries from the state exchequer, as
well as for immunity to those who read mass and dispensed the
sacraments, were again thrown out by the House of Deputies in
April, 1885.
§ 197.12. =Resumption on both sides of Conciliatory Measures,
1885-1886.=--The next subject of negotiation with the curia was
the re-institution of the archiepiscopal see of Posen-Gnesen.
In March, 1884, the pope had nominated Cardinal Ledochowski
secretary of the committee on petitions, in which capacity he
had to remain in Rome. He now declared himself willing to accept
Ledochowski’s resignation of the archbishopric if the Prussian
government would allow a successor who would possess the
confidence of the holy see as well as of the Polish inhabitants
of the diocese. But of the three noble Polish chauvinists
submitted by the Vatican the government could accept none. Since
further no agreement could be reached on the question of the
bishop’s obligation to make notification and the state’s right
to protest, the negotiations were for a long time at a standstill,
and were repeatedly on the point of being broken off. But from
the middle of 1885, a conciliatory movement gained power, through
the counsels of the more moderate party among the cardinals.
Archbishop Melchers, who lived as an exile in Maestricht, was
called to Rome, and as a reward for his assistance was made
cardinal, and the pope consecrated as his successor in the
archbishopric of Cologne, Bishop Krementz of Ermeland (§ 197, 2),
who also was acknowledged by the Prussian government and
introduced to Cologne on December 15th, 1885, with great pomp,
with 20,000 torches and twenty bands of music. After a long
list of candidates had been set aside by one side and the other,
some here, some there, the pope at last fell from his demand for
one of Polish nationality, and in March, 1886, appointed to the
vacant see Julius Dinder, dean of Königsberg, a German by nation
but speaking the Polish language.--Meanwhile at other points
advance was made in the peaceful, yea, even friendly, relations
between the pope and the Prussian government. The diplomatist
Leo showed his admiring regard for the diplomatist Bismarck
by sending him a valuable oil-painting of himself by a Münich
[Munich] master, and the latter astonished the world by making
the pope umpire in a threatening conflict with Spain on the
possession of the Caroline islands. His decision on the main
question was indeed in favour of Spain, but not unimportant
concessions were also made to Germany. The pope sent the prince
two Latin poems as _pretium affectionis_, and conferred upon
him, the first Protestant that had ever been so honoured, at
the close of 1885 or beginning of 1886, the highest papal order,
the insignia of the Order of Christ, with brilliants, after the
cardinal secretary of state Jacobini as president of the papal
court of arbitration had been rewarded with the Prussian order
of the Black Eagle, and the other members of the court with other
high Prussian orders; and at the end of April, 1886, the German
emperor sent the pope himself thanks for his mediation, with an
artistic and costly Pectoral (§ 59, 7) worth 10,000 marks.--The
government had, meanwhile, on February 15th, 1886, brought in
a new proposal of revision of church polity, the fourth, and in
order to secure the advice of a distinguished representative of
the Prussian episcopate, called Bishop Kopp of Fulda to the House
of Peers. But as his demands for concessions, suggested to him,
not by the pope, but by the Centre, went far beyond what was
proposed, they were for the most part decidedly opposed by the
minister of worship and rejected by the house. The law confirmed
by the king on May 24th, 1886, made the following changes:
Complete abolition of the examination in general culture;
freeing of the seminaries recognised by the minister as suitable
for clerical training, as well as faculties established in
universities, seminaries and gymnasia from any special state
inspection (as laid down in the May Laws), and subjecting such
to the common laws affecting all similar educational institutions.
Removal of restrictions requiring ecclesiastical disciplinary
procedure to be only before German ecclesiastical courts;
Abolition of the Court for Ecclesiastical Affairs and
transference of its functions partly to the ministry of worship,
which now as court of appeal in matters of church discipline
dealt only with those cases which entailed a loss or reduction
of official income, partly to the Berlin supreme court, which
has jurisdiction in case of a breach of the law of the state by
a church officer as well as in case of a refusal to fulfil the
oath of obedience; The discretionary enactments of the government
of 1880 (§ 197, 10) are again enforced and the modifications
of these in Article 6 of that law are extended to all other
institutions engaged on the home propaganda; All reading of
private masses and dispensing of sacraments are no longer
subjected to the infliction of penalties.--Some weeks before
royal sanction was given to this law, Cardinal Jacobini had,
at the instance of the pope, expressed his profound satisfaction
with the success of the advice in the House of Peers, as also
particularly at the prospect of other concessions promised by the
government. In an official communication to the president of the
House of Deputies, he proposed the addition that the notification
of new appointments to vacant pastorates should begin from that
date. In August there followed, on the part of the government,
the hitherto refused dispensation for those trained by the
Jesuits in Rome and Innsbrück, and in November, with consent of
the minister of public worship, the re-opening of the episcopal
seminaries at Fulda and Treves.
§ 197.13. =Definitive Conclusion of Peace, 1887.=--In February,
1887, the state journal published a new form of oath for the
bishops, sanctioned by royal ordinance, in which the obligation
hitherto enforced “to conscientiously observe the laws of the
state,” was omitted, and the asseveration added, “that I have
not, by the oath, taken to his Holiness the pope and the church,
undertaken any obligation which can be in conflict with the oath
of fidelity as a subject of his Royal Majesty.”--The promised
fifth revision, meanwhile accepted by the pope in its several
particulars and acknowledged by him as sufficient basis for
a definitive peace, was on February 13th, 1887, contrary to
precedent, first laid before the House of Peers. Bishop Kopp
proposed a great number of changes and additions, of which
several of a very important nature were accepted. The most
important provisions of this law, which was passed on =April
29th, 1887=, are the following: The obligation on bishops to
make notification applies only to the conferring of a spiritual
office for life, and the right of protest by the state must
rely upon a basis named and belonging to the civil domain;
All state compulsion to lifelong reinstatement in a vacant
office is unlawful; The previously insured immunity for reading
mass and dispensing the sacraments is now applied to members
of all spiritual orders again allowed in the kingdom; The
duty of ecclesiastical superiors to communicate disciplinary
decisions to the Chief President is given up. Those orders and
congregations which devote themselves to aiding in pastoral work,
the administering of Christian benevolence, and, on Bishop Kopp’s
motion, those which engage in educational work in girl’s high
schools and similar institutions, as well as those which lead
a private life, are to be allowed and are to be also restored
to the enjoyment of their original possessions; The training of
missionaries for foreign work and the erection of institutions
for this purpose are to be permitted to the privileged orders
and congregations.--Bishop Kopp, and also the pope, with lively
gratitude, accepted these ordinances as making the reconciliation
an accomplished fact; but they also expressed the hope that
the success of this peaceful arrangement will be such as shall
lead to further important concessions to the rightful claims
of the Catholic church. After this conclusive revision, besides
the extremely contracted obligation of notification by the
bishops and the almost completely insignificant right of civil
protest, there remain of the _Kulturkampf_ laws only: the
_Kanzelparagraph_, the Jesuit and the exile enactments (all
of them imperial and not Prussian laws), and the abrogation
of the three articles of the Prussian constitution (§ 197, 8).
Insignificant as the concessions of the papal curia may seem
in comparison to the almost complete surrender of the Prussian
government, it can hardly be said that Bismarck has been untrue
to his promise not to go to Canossa. With him the main thing
ever was to restore within the German empire the peace that
was threatened by thunderclouds gathering from day to day in
the political horizon in east and west, and thus, as also by
nurturing and developing the military forces, to set aside the
danger of war from without. But for this end, the sovereignty
of the Centre, which hampered him on every side, allying itself
with all elements in the Chamber and Reichstag hostile to the
government and the empire, must be broken. But this was possible
only if he succeeded in breaking up the unhallowed artificial
amalgamation of Catholic church interests for which the Centre
contended with the political tendencies of the party hostile
to the empire, by recognising those interests in a manner
satisfactory to the pope and to all right-minded loyal German
Catholics, and so estranging them from the political schemes of
the leader of the Centre. This indeed would have scarcely been
possible with Pius IX., but with the much clearer and sharper
Leo XIII. there was hope of success. And the statesmanlike
insight and self-denial of the prince succeeded, though at first
only in a limited measure, and this was a much more important
gain for the state than the papal concessions of episcopal
notification and the state’s right of protest.--When in the
beginning of 1887, at the same time that the fear was greatest of
a war with France and Russia, the renewal and enlargement of the
military budget, hitherto for seven years, was necessary, and its
refusal by the Centre and its adherents was regarded as certain,
Bismarck prevailed on the pope to intervene in his favour. The
pope did it in a confidential communication to the president
of the Centre, in which he urged acceptance of the septennial
act in the Reichstag for the security of the Fatherland and the
conserving of peace on the continent, expressly referring to the
friendly and promising attitude of the imperial government to
the papacy and the Catholic church. But the president kept the
communication secret from the members of his party, and they
continued strenuously and unanimously opposed to the Septennate.
The Reichstag was consequently dissolved. The pope now published
this correspondence with the leaders of the Centre, thirty-seven
Rhenish nobles separated from the party, and the new elections to
the Reichstag were mainly favourable to the government. Although
the Deputy Windthorst as chief leader of the Prussian _Ecclesia
militans_ had on every occasion protested his and his party’s
profoundest reverence for and conditional submission to every
expression of the papal will, and shortly before (§ 186, 3) had
styled the pope “Lord of the whole world,” he opposed himself,
as he had done on the Septennate question, on the fifth revision
of the ecclesiastical laws, to the will of the infallible pope
by publishing a memorial proving the absolute impossibility of
accepting this proposed law, which, however, this time also he
failed to carry out.
§ 197.14. =Independent Procedure of the other German Governments.=
1. =Bavaria’s= energy in the struggle against ultramontanism
(§ 197, 4) soon cooled. Yet in 1873 the Redemptorists were
instructed to discontinue their missionary work (§ 186, 6),
and all theological students were forbidden to attend the
Jesuit German College at Rome (§ 151, 1). Also in 1875,
the jubilee processions organized by the episcopate without
obtaining the royal _Placet_ were inhibited.
2. =Württemberg=, which since 1862 possessed more civil
jurisdiction over Catholic church affairs and exercised it
more freely (§ 196, 6) than Prussia laid claim to in 1873,
could all the more easily maintain ecclesiastical peace,
since its peaceful Bishop Hefele (§ 189, 3, 4; 191, 7)
avoided all occasion of conflict and strife.
3. In =Baden= the _Kulturkampf_ that had here previously
broken out (§ 196, 2) was continued all the more keenly.
In 1873 public teaching, holding of missions and assisting
in pastoral work, had been refused to all religious orders
and fraternities. But the main blow, followed by the
comprehensive church legislation of February 19th, 1874,
which closed all boys’ seminaries and episcopal institutions,
allowed none to hold a clerical office or discharge any
ecclesiastical function without a three years’ course
at a German university and a state examination in general
culture (§ 196, 2), strictly forbad all influencing of
public elections by the clergy, and made deposition follow
the second conviction of a church officer. The expedient
hitherto resorted to of appointing mere deputy priests so
as to avoid the examination, was consequently frustrated.
The rapid increase of vacant pastorates, after five years’
opposition, at last moved the episcopal curia to sue for
peace at the hands of the government, and when the latter
showed an exceedingly conciliatory spirit, the curia
with consent of the pope in February, 1880, withdrew its
prohibition of the request for dispensation from the state
examination, and the government now on its part with the
Chambers passed a law, by which the obligation to undergo
this examination was abolished, and the certificate of
the exit examination, three years’ attendance at a German
university, and diligent attention to at least three
courses of the philosophical faculty, was held as sufficient
evidence of general culture. The Baden _Kulturkampf_ seems
to have been definitely concluded by the election and
recognition of Dr. Orbin to the see of Freiburg, vacant for
fourteen years, when he without scruple took the oath of
allegiance. This, however, did not check, far less put an
end to the tumults of the fanatical ultramontane Irredenta.
§ 197.15.
4. =Hesse-Darmstadt= in 1874 followed the example of Prussia
and Baden in excluding all spiritual orders from teaching
in public schools, and on April 23rd, 1875, issued five
ecclesiastical laws which were directed to restoring under
penal sanctions the state of the law, which before 1850
(§ 196, 4) had been unquestioned. Essentially in harmony with
the Prussian May Laws of 1873 and 1874, they go beyond these
in several particulars. All clergymen receiving appointments,
_e.g._, must have gone through a full university course;
all religious orders and congregations were to be allowed
to die out; public roads and squares could be used
for ecclesiastical festivals only by permission of the
government to be renewed on each occasion. The “contentious”
Bishop Ketteler of Mainz, who stirred up the fire to the
utmost with the Prussian brand, and had kindled also a
similar flame in Hesse over the proposal of this law, held
still that to view martyrdom at a distance was the better
part, and carefully avoided any overt act of disobedience.
But he immediately refused to co-operate in restoring the
Catholic theological faculty at Giessen, and the government
consequently abandoned the idea. The Mainz see after
Ketteler’s death in 1877 remained long vacant, as the
government felt obliged to reject the electoral list
submitted by the chapter. A candidate satisfactory to the
Vatican and the government was only found in May, 1886, in
the person of Dr. Haffner, a member of the chapter. After
Prussia had concluded its definitive peace with Rome, the
Hessian government, in May, 1887, laid before the house of
representatives a revision of ecclesiastical legislation of
1875, like that of Prussia, only not going so far, for which
meanwhile the approval of the papal curia had been obtained.
It agrees to the erection of a Catholic clerical seminary,
and Catholic students’ residences in this seminary and
in the state-gymnasia; erection of independent boys’
institutions preparatory to the seminary for priests is,
however, still refused; the existing duty of bishops to
make notification, and the right of the state to protest
in regard to appointments to vacant pastorates are also
retained. There is no word of rehabilitating religious
orders and congregations, nor of any limitation of the law
about the exercise of ecclesiastical punishment and means
of discipline.
5. Last of all among the German states affected by the
_Kulturkampf_, the kingdom of =Saxony=, with only 73,000
Catholic inhabitants, at the instance of the second Chamber
in 1876, came forward with a Catholic church law modelled
upon the Prussian May Laws, with its several provisions
modified, in spite of the contention of the talented heir
to the throne, Prince George, that the power of the state
in relation to the Catholic church could only be determined
by a concordat with the Roman curia.
§ 198. AUSTRIA-HUNGARY.
To the emperor of Austria there was left, after the re-organization
of affairs by the Vienna Congress, of the Roman empire, only the
name of defender of the papal see, and the Catholic church, and the
presidency of the German Federal Council. The remnants of the Josephine
ecclesiastical constitution were gradually set aside and Catholicism
firmly established as the state religion; yet the government asserted
its independence against all hierarchical claims, and granted, though
only in a very limited degree, toleration to Protestantism. The
revolution year 1848 removed indeed some of these limits, but the
period of reaction that followed gave, by means of a concordat concluded
with the curia in 1855, to the ultramontane hierarchy of the country
an unprecedented power in almost all departments of civil life, and
prejudicial also to the interests of the Protestant church. After the
disastrous issue of the Italian war in 1859, and still more that of the
German war in 1866, the government was obliged to make an honest effort
to introduce and develop liberal institutions. And after an imperial
patent of 1861 had secured religious liberty, self-administration, and
equal rights to the Protestant church, the constitutional legislation
of 1868 freed Catholic as well as Protestant civil, educational, and
ecclesiastical matters from the provisions of the concordat that most
seriously threatened them, and by the declaration of papal infallibility
in 1870 the government felt justified in regarding the entire concordat
as antiquated and declaring it abolished. In its place a Catholic church
act was passed by the state in 1874. But the _Kulturkampf_ struggle
which was thus made imminent also for Austria was avoided by pliancy on
both sides.
§ 198.1. =The Zillerthal Emigration.=--In the Tyrolese
=Zillerthal= the knowledge of evangelical truth had spread
among several families by means of Protestant books and Bibles.
When the Catholic clergy from 1826 had pushed to its utmost
the clerical guardianship by means of auricular confession, an
opposition arose which soon from the refusal to confess passed on
to the rejection of saint worship, masses for the dead, purgatory,
indulgences, etc., and ended in the formal secession of many to
the evangelical church in 1830, with a reference to the Josephine
edict of toleration. The emperor Francis I., to whom on the
occasion of his visit to Innsbrück in 1832 they presented their
petition, promised them toleration. But the Tyrolese nobles
protested, and the official decision, given at last in 1834,
ordered removal to Transylvania or return to the Catholic church.
The petitioners now applied, as those of Salzburg had previously
done (§ 165, 4), by a deputation to the king of Prussia, who,
after by diplomatic communications securing the emperor’s
consent to emigration, assigned them his estate of Erdmannsdorf
in Silesia for colonization. There now the exiles, 399 in number,
settled in 1837, and, largely aided by the royal munificence,
founded a new Zillerthal.
§ 198.2. =The Concordat.=--After the revolution year 1848,
the government were far more yielding toward the claims of the
hierarchy than under the old Metternich _régime_. In April, 1850,
an imperial patent relieved the papal and episcopal decrees of
the necessity of imperial approval, and on August 18th, 1855,
a concordat with the pope was agreed to, by which unprecedented
power and independence was granted to the hierarchy in Austria
for all time to come. The first article secured to the Roman
Catholic religion throughout the empire all rights and privileges
which they claimed by divine institution and the canon law.
The others gave to the bishops the right of unrestricted
correspondence with Rome, declared that no papal ordinance
required any longer the royal _placet_, that prelates are
unfettered in the discharge of their hierarchical obligations,
that religious instruction in all schools is under their
supervision, that no one can teach religion or theology without
their approval, that in catholic schools there can be only
catholic teachers, that they have the right of forbidding all
books which may be injurious to the faithful, that all cases
of ecclesiastical law, especially marriage matters, belong to
their jurisdiction, yet the apostolic see grants that purely
secular law matters of the clergy are to be decided before a
civil tribunal, and the emperor’s right of nomination to vacant
episcopal sees is to continue, etc. The inferior clergy, who
were now without legal protection against the prelates, only
reluctantly bowed their necks to this hard yoke; the liberal
Catholic laity murmured, sneered, and raged, and the native press
incessantly urged a revision of the concordat, the necessity of
which became ever more apparent from concessions made meanwhile
willingly or grudgingly to the “Non-Catholics.” But only after
Austria, by the issue of the German war of 1866, was restricted
to her own domain, and finally freed from the drag of its
ultramontane Italian interests, found herself obliged to make
every effort to reconcile the opposing parties within her own
territories, could these views prove successful. But since the
government nevertheless held firmly by the principle that the
concordat, as a state contract regularly concluded between two
sovereigns, could be changed only by mutual consent, the liberal
majority of the house of deputies resolved to make it as harmless
as possible by means of domestic legislation, and on June 11th,
1867, the deputy Herbst moved the appointment of a committee for
drawing up three bills for restoring civil marriage, emancipation
of schools from the church, and equality of all confessions
in the eye of the law. The motion was carried by a hundred and
thirty-four votes against twenty-two. The Cisleithan (_i.e._
Austrian excluding Hungary) episcopate, with Cardinal Rauscher
of Vienna at their head, presented an address to his apostolic
majesty demanding the most rigid preservation of the concordat,
denouncing civil marriage as concubinage, and the emancipation
of schools as their dechristianizing. An imperial autograph
letter to Rauscher rebuked with earnest words the inflammatory
proceedings of the bishops, and at the same time the ultramontane
ambassador to Rome, Baron Hübner, was recalled. After the
arrangement with Hungary was completed, the first Cisleithan, the
so-called Burger, ministry was constituted under the presidency
of Prince Auersperg, composed of the most distinguished leaders
of the parliamentary majority. All the three bills were passed
by a large majority, and obtained imperial sanction on =May 25th,
1868=. The papal nuncio of Vienna protested, the pope in an
allocution denounced the new Austrian constitution as _nefanda
sane_ and the three confessional laws as _abominabiles leges_.
“We repudiate and condemn these laws,” he says, “by apostolic
authority, as well as everything done by the Austrian government
in matters of church policy, and determine in the exercise of
the same authority that these decrees with all their consequences
are and shall be null and void.” But all Vienna, all Austria
held jubilee, and the Chancellor von Beust rejected with energy
the assumptions of the curia over the civil domain. The bishops
indeed issued protests and inflammatory pastorals, and forbad the
publication of the marriage act, but submitted to the threats of
compulsion by the supreme court, and Bishop Rudigier of Linz, who
went furthest in inciting to opposition, was in 1869 taken into
court by the police, and sentenced to twelve days’ imprisonment,
but pardoned by the emperor. Toward the Vatican Council Austria
assumed at first a waiting policy, then in vain remonstrated,
warned, threatened, and finally, on July 30th, 1870, after the
proclamation of infallibility, declared that the concordat was
antiquated and abolished, because by this dogma the position of
one of the contracting parties had undergone a complete change.
§ 198.3. =The Protestant Church in Cisleithan Austria.=--Down to
1848 Protestantism of both confessions in Austria enjoyed only a
very limited toleration. The storms of this year first set aside
the hated official name of “Non-Catholics,” and won permission
for Protestant places of worship to have bells and towers.
But the repeated petitions for permission to found branches
of the _Gustavus Adolphus Union_, the persistently maintained
law that Catholic clergymen, even after they had formally become
Protestants, could not marry, because the _character indelibilis_
of priestly consecration attached itself even to apostates, and
many such facts, prove that the government was far from intending
to grant to the Protestants civil equality with the Catholics.
But the unfortunate result of the Sardinian-French war of 1859,
and the fear thereby increased of the falling asunder of the
whole Austrian federation, induced the government to address
itself earnestly to the introduction of liberal institutions,
and also to do justice to the Protestant church. The presidency
of the two Protestant consistories in Vienna, hitherto given to
a Catholic, was now assigned to a Protestant; meetings of the
Gustavus Adolphus Union were now allowed, and a share was given
to the Protestant party in the ministry of public worship by
the appointment of three evangelical councillors. After the
entrance on office of the liberal minister Von Schmerling,
an imperial patent was issued on April 8th, 1864, by which
unrestricted liberty of faith, independent administration of
all ecclesiastical, educational, and charitable matters, free
election of pastors, even from abroad, full exercise of civil and
political rights, and complete equality with Catholics was given
to the Protestants of the German and Slavonian crown territories.
Also in 1868, under the reactionary ministry of Belcredi,
on the expiry of the legal term of the Evangelical Supreme
Church Council, it was reorganized, two evangelical school
councillorships were created, and the pecuniary position of
the evangelical clergy considerably improved. But in spite of
all privileges legally granted to the evangelical church, it
continued in many cases, in presence of the concordat, which
down to 1870 still remained in force, exposed to the whims and
caprice, sometimes of the imperial courts, sometimes of the
Catholic clergy.
§ 198.4. =The Clerical Landtag Opposition in the Tyrol.=--In the
=Tyrol=, after the publication of the imperial patent of April,
1861, a violent movement was set on foot by clerical agitation.
The Landtag, by a great majority, pronounced the issuing of it
the most serious calamity which the country, hitherto honest,
true, and happy in its undivided attachment to the Catholic faith,
could have suffered, and concluded that Non-Catholics in the
Tyrol should only by way of dispensation be allowed, but that
publicity of Protestant worship and formation of Protestant
congregations should be still forbidden. The Schmerling ministry,
indeed, refused to confirm these resolutions. The agitation
of the clergy, however, which fanned in all possible ways the
fanaticism of the people, grew from year to year, until at last
the Belcredi ministry of 1866 came to an agreement with the
Landtag, sanctioned by the emperor, according to which the
creation of an evangelical landed proprietary in the Tyrol was
not indeed formally forbidden, but permission for an evangelical
to possess land had in each case to be obtained from the Landtag.
The ecclesiastical laws of 1868 next called forth new conflicts.
Twice was the Landtag closed because of the opposition thus
awakened, until finally in September, 1870, the estates took
the oath to the new constitution with reservation of conscience.
But now, when in December, 1875, the ministry of worship
gave approval to the formal constituting of two evangelical
congregations in the Tyrol, at Innsbrück and Meran, the clerical
press was filled with burning denunciations, and the majority
of the Landtag meeting in the following March thought to give
emphasis to their protest by leaving the chamber, and so bringing
the assembly to a sudden close. In June, 1880, the three bishops
of the Tyrol uttered in the Landtag a fanatical protest against
the continuance of the meanwhile established congregations, which
the Landtag majority renewed in July, 1883.
§ 198.5. =The Austrian Universities.=--Stremayr, minister
of public worship, introduced in 1872 a scheme of university
reorganization, by which the exclusively Catholic character which
had hitherto belonged to the Austrian universities, especially
those of Vienna and Prague, should be removed. Up to this time
a Non-Catholic could there obtain no sort of academical degree,
but this was now to be obtainable apart from any question of
confession. The office of chancellor, held by the archbishops
of Prague and Vienna, was restricted to the theological faculty,
to the state was assigned the right of nominating all professors,
even in the theological faculty, and the German language
was recommended as the medium of instruction. Candidates of
theology have to pass through a full and comprehensive course
of theological science in a three years’ university curriculum,
before they can be admitted into an episcopal seminary for
practical training. In spite of the opposition of the superior
clergy, the bill passed even in the House of Peers, and became
law in 1873.--In Innsbrück, where according to ancient custom
the rector was chosen from the four faculties in succession, the
other faculties protested against the election when, in 1872,
the turn came to the theological (Jesuit) faculty, and they
carried their point. The new organization law gave the choice
of rector to the whole professoriate, and a subsequent imperial
order withdrew from the general of the Jesuits the right of
nominating all theological professors.--Much was done, too, for
the elevation of the evangelical theological faculty in Vienna
by bringing able scholars from Germany, by giving a right to
the promotion to the degree of doctor of theology, etc. But its
incorporation in the university, though often moved for, was
hindered by the continued opposition of the Catholic theologians
as well as philosophers, and in 1873 it did not meet with
sufficient support in the House of Peers. Even the use of certain
halls in the university buildings, promised by the minister,
could not yet be obtained.
§ 198.6. =The Austrian Ecclesiastical Laws, 1874-1876.=--At last
the government in January, 1874, introduced the long-promised
Catholic church legislation into the Reichstag, intended to
supply blanks occasioned by the setting aside of the concordat.
Its main contents are these:
I. The concordat, hitherto only diplomatically dealt with,
is now legislatively annulled; the bishops have to present
all their manifestoes not before but upon publication to
the state government for its cognisance; every vacancy of
an ecclesiastical office, as well as every new appointment
to such, is to be notified to the civil court, which
can raise objections against such appointment within
thirty days; the minister of worship then decides on the
admissibility or inadmissibility of the candidate; legal
deposition of a church officer involves withdrawal of the
emoluments; the performance of unusual practices in public
worship of a demonstrative character can be prohibited by
the civil court; any misuse of ecclesiastical authority in
restraining any one from obeying the laws of the land or
from exercising his civil rights is strictly interdicted.
II. The ecclesiastical revenues and the income of the
cloisters are subjected to a progressive taxation on
behalf of a religious fund, mainly for improving the
condition of the lower clergy, for which the episcopate
hitherto, in spite of all entreaties, had done practically
nothing.
III. Newly formed religious societies received state
recognition if their denomination and principles contain
nothing contrary to law and morality or offensive to those
of another faith.
IV. The state grants or refuses its approval of the
establishment of spiritual orders, congregations, and
ecclesiastical societies; institutions and legacies for
them amounting to over three thousand gulden require
state sanction; any member is free to quit any order;
all orders must report annually on the personal changes
and disciplinary punishments that have taken place; at any
time when occasion calls for it they may be subjected to
a visitation by the civil court.[551]
In vain did the pope by an encyclical seek to rouse the
episcopate to violent opposition, in vain did he adjure the
emperor in a letter in his own hand not to suffer the church
to be put into such disgraceful bondage; the House of Deputies
approved the four bills, and the emperor in =May, 1874=,
confirmed at least the first three, while the fourth was being
debated in the House of Peers. The bishops now issued a joint
declaration that they could obey these laws only in so far as
they “were in harmony with the demands of justice as stated
in the concordat.” But it did not go to the length of actual
conflict. Neither to the pope and episcopate, nor to the
government was such a thing convenient at the time. Hence the
attitude of reserve on both sides, which kept everything as
it had been. And when notwithstanding Bishop Rudigier of Linz,
threatened with fines on account of his refusal to notify the
newly appointed priests, appealed to the pope, he obtained
through the Vienna nuncio permission to yield on this point,
“_non dissentit tolerari posse_.” But all the more urgently did
the nuncio strive to prevent the passing of the sweeping cloister
law. In January, 1876, it was passed in the House of Peers with
modifications, to which, however, the emperor refused his assent.
Also the revised marriage law of the same date, which removed
the hindrances to marriage incorporated even in the book of civil
law, and no longer recognised differences of religion, Christians
and non-Christians, the remarriage of separated parties of whom
at the time of the first marriage only one party belonged to the
Catholic church, higher consecration and the vows of orders, did
not pass the House of Peers.
§ 198.7. =The Protestant Church in the Transleithan
Provinces.=--In =Hungary= since 1833 the Reichstag had by bold
action won for the Protestants full equality with the Catholics,
but in consequence of the revolution, the military lordship
of the Protestant Haynau in 1850 again put in fetters all
independent life in both Protestant churches. The Haynau decree
was, indeed, again abrogated in 1854, but full return to the
earlier autonomy of the church, in spite of all petitions and
deputations, could never be regained, all the less as Hungary in
all too decided a manner rejected the constitutional proposals
submitted by the Government in 1856. The liberal imperial patent
of September 1st, 1859, which secured independent administration
and development to the Protestant church in the crown possessions
of Hungary, got no better reception. In the German-Slavonian
districts of North Hungary, as well as in Croatia, Slavonia, and
Austrian Servia, it was greeted with jubilation and gratitude,
but the Magyar Hungarians declined on many, for the most part
frivolous, grounds, mainly because it emanated from the emperor,
and did not originate in an autonomous synod. When the government
showed its intention of going forward with it, the opposition was
carried to the utmost extreme, so that the emperor was obliged
temporarily to suspend proceedings in May, 1860. Still the
ecclesiastical joined with the political movement continued
to increase until in 1867 the imperial chancellor, Von Beust,
succeeded in quieting both for a time by the Hungarian Agreement.
On June 8th of that year, the emperor, Francis Joseph, on
ratifying the agreement, was solemnly crowned King of Hungary.
The hated patent had been shortly before revoked by an
imperial edict, with the direction to order church matters
in a constitutional way. After a complete reconciliation, at
a General Protestant Convention in December, 1867, with the
Patent congregations, hitherto denounced as unpatriotic, it was
concluded that to the state belonged only a right of protection
and oversight of the church, which is autonomous in all its
internal affairs, but to all confessions perfect freedom in law,
and that there should be not a separate religious legislation
for each, but a common one for all confessions. A committee
first appointed in 1873 for this purpose, with the motto, “A
Free Church in a Free State,” constituted, and then adjourned
_ad kalendas Græcas_.
§ 199. SWITZERLAND.
The Catholic church of Switzerland, after long continued troubles,
obtained again a regular hierarchical organization in 1828. Since that
time the Jesuits settled there in crowds, and assumed to themselves in
most of the Catholic cantons the whole direction of church and schools.
The unfortunate issue of the cantonal war of 1847 led indeed to their
banishment by law, but, favoured by the bishops, they knew how still to
re-enter by back doors and secretly to regain their earlier influence.
The city of Calvin was the centre of their plots, not only for
Switzerland, but also for all Cisalpine Europe, until at last the
overstrained bow broke, and the Swiss governments became the most
decided and uncompromising opponents of the ultramontane claims. In
1873 the papal nuncio, in consequence of a papal encyclical insulting
the government, was banished.--In Protestant Switzerland, besides the
destructive influence of the Illumination, antagonistic to the church,
and radical liberalism, there appeared a soil receptive of pietism,
separatism, and fanaticism, whose first cultivation has been ascribed
to Madame Krüdener (§ 176, 2). In the Protestant church of German
Switzerland the religious and theological developments stood regularly
in lively connexion with similar movements in Germany, while those in
the French cantons received their impulse and support from France and
England. From France, to which they were allied by a common language,
they learned the unbelief of the encyclopædists (§ 165, 14), while
travelling Englishmen and those residing in the country for a longer
period introduced the fervour and superstition of Methodism and other
sects.
§ 199.1. =The Catholic Church in Switzerland till 1870.=--The
ecclesiastical superintendence of Catholic Switzerland was
previously subject to the neighbouring foreign bishoprics.
But for immediate preservation of its interests the curia had
appointed a nunciature at Lucerne in 1588. When now, in 1814, the
liberal Wessenberg (§ 187, 3), already long suspected of heresy,
was called as coadjutor to Constance, the nuncio manœuvred with
the Catholic confederates till these petitioned the pope for the
establishment of an independent and national bishopric. But when
each of the cantons interested claimed to be made the episcopal
residence negotiations were at last suspended, and in 1828 six
small bishoprics were erected under immediate control of Rome.
At the end of 1833 the diocesan representatives of Basel and
St. Gall assembled in Baden to consult about the restoration
of a national Swiss Metropolitan Union and a common state
church constitution for securing church and state against the
encroachments of the Romish hierarchy. But Gregory XIV. condemned
the articles of conference here agreed upon, which would have
given to Switzerland only what other states had long possessed,
as false, audacious, and erroneous, destructive of the church,
heretical, and schismatic, and among the Catholic people a revolt
was stirred up by ultramontane fanaticism, under the influence
of which the whole action was soon frustrated. On the occasion of
a revision of the constitution of the canton of Aargau, a revolt,
led by the cloisters, broke out in 1841. But the rebels were
defeated, and the grand council resolved upon the closing of all
cloisters, eight in number. Complaint made against this at the
diet was regarded as satisfied by the Aargau Agreement of 1843
restoring three nunneries. An opposition was organized against
the revision of the constitution of Canton =Lucerne= in 1841.
The liberal government was overthrown, and the new constitution,
in which the state insisted on its _placet_ in ecclesiastical
matters and the granting of cantonal civil rights to those
only who professed attachment to the Roman Catholic church, was
submitted to the pope for approval. At last, in 1844, the academy
of Lucerne was given over to the Jesuits, for which Joseph Leu,
the popular agitator, as member of the grand council, had wrought
unweariedly since 1839. In Canton =Vaud= the parties of old or
clerical and young Switzerland contended with one another for
the mastery. The latter suffered an utter defeat in 1844, and the
constitution which was then carried allowed the right of public
worship only to the Catholic church. In consequence of this
victory of the clerical party Catholic Switzerland with Lucerne
at its head became a main centre of ultramontanism and Jesuitism.
At the diet of 1844, indeed, Aargau, supported by numerous
petitions from the people, moved for the banishment of all
Jesuits from all Switzerland, but the majority did not consent.
The Jesuit opponents expelled from Lucerne now organized twice
over a free volunteer corps to overthrow the ultramontane
government and force the expulsion of the Jesuits, but on both
occasions, in 1844 and 1845, it suffered a sore defeat. In face
of the threateningly growing increase of the excitement, which
made them fear a decisive intervention of the diet, the Catholic
cantons formed in 1845 a =separate league= (_Sonderbund_) for
the preservation of their faith and their sovereign rights. This
proceeding, irreconcilable with the Act of Federation, led to
a civil war. The members of the _Sonderbund_ were defeated, the
ultramontane governments had to resign, and the Jesuits departed
in 1847. The new Federal constitution which Switzerland adopted
in 1848, secured unconditional liberty of conscience and equality
of all confessions, and the expulsion of the Jesuits in terms
of the law. But since that time ultramontanism has gained the
supremacy in Catholic Switzerland, and in spite of the existing
law against the Jesuits all the threads of the ultramontane
clerical movements in Switzerland were in the Jesuits’ hands.
These were never more successful than in Canton =Geneva=, where
the radical democratic agitator Fazy leagued himself closely with
ultramontanism to compass the destruction of the old Calvinistic
aristocracy, and by bringing in large numbers the lower class
Catholics from the neighbouring France and Savoy he obtained a
considerable Catholic majority in the canton, and in the capital
itself made Catholics and Protestants nearly equal.
§ 199.2. =The Geneva Conflict, 1870-1883.=--The Catholic church
of Canton Geneva, on the founding of the six Swiss bishoprics
by a papal bull, had been incorporated “for all time to
come,” after the style of the concordat, with the bishopric of
Freiburg-Lausanne. But the government made no objection when the
newly elected priest of Geneva, Mermillod, a Jesuit of the purest
water, assumed the title and rank of an episcopal vicar-general
for the whole canton. But when in 1864 the pope nominated him
bishop of Hebron _in partibus_ and auxiliary bishop of Geneva, it
made a protest. Nevertheless, when, in the following year, Bishop
Marilley of Freiburg by papal orders transferred to him absolute
power for the canton with personal responsibility, and in 1870
formally renounced all episcopal rights over it, so that the pope
now appointed the auxiliary bishop independent bishop of Geneva,
it was evident a step had been taken that could not be recalled.
The government renewed its protest and made it more vehement, in
consequence of which, in January, 1873, by a papal brief which
was first officially communicated to the government after it
had already been proclaimed from all Catholic pulpits, Mermillod
was appointed apostolic vicar-general with unlimited authority
for Canton Geneva, and the district was thus practically made
a Catholic mission field. A demand made of him by the state
to resign this office and title and divest himself of every
episcopal function, was answered by the declaration that he
would obey God rather than man. The _Bund_ then expelled him
from Federal territory until he would yield to that demand.
From Ferney, where he settled, he unceasingly stirred up the
fire of opposition among the Genevan clergy and people, but the
government decidedly rejected all protests, and by a popular vote
obtained sanction for a Catholic church law which restricted the
rights of the diocesan bishop who might reside in Switzerland,
but not in Canton Geneva, and without consent of the government
could not appoint there any episcopal vicar, and transferred the
election of priests and priests’ vicars to the congregations. The
next elections returned Old Catholics, since the Roman Catholic
population did not acknowledge the law condemned by the pope and
took no part in the voting. By decision of the grand council of
1875 the abolition of all religious corporations was next enacted,
and all religious ceremonies and processions in public streets
and squares forbidden. Leo XIII. made an attempt to still
the conflict, for in 1879 he gave Bishop Marilley the asked
for discharge, and confirmed his elected successor, Cosandry,
as bishop of Freiburg, Lausanne, and Geneva, without however
removing Mermillod from his office of vicar apostolic of Geneva.
But this actually took place after the death of Cosandry in 1882
by the appointment of Mermillod as his successor in 1883. As
he now ceased to style himself a vicar apostolic, the Federal
council removed the decree of banishment as the occasion of
it had ceased, but left each canton free as to whether or not
it should accept him as bishop. Freiburg, Neuenburg, and Vaud
accepted him, and Mermillod had a brilliant entry into Freiburg,
which he made his episcopal residence. But Geneva refused to
recognise him, because it had already officially attached itself
to the Old Catholic Bishop Herzog of Berne, and Mermillod went so
far in his ostentatious love of peace as to declare that he would
not in future enter Genevan territory.
§ 199.3. =Conflict in the Diocese of Basel-Soleure,
1870-1880.=--Bishop Lachat of Soleure, whose diocese comprised
the Cantons Bern, Soleure, Aargau, Basel, Thurgau, Lucerne, and
Zug, had been previously in conflict with the diocesan conference,
_i.e._ the delegates of the seven cantons entrusted with the
oversight of the ecclesiastical administration, on account of
introducing the prohibited handbook on morals of the Jesuit Gury
(§ 191, 9), which ended in the closing of the seminary aided
by the government, and the erection of a new seminary at his
own cost. Although the diocesan conference next forbad the
proclamation of the new Vatican dogma, the bishop threatened
excommunicated Egli in Lucerne in 1871, and Geschwind in
Starrkirch in 1872, who refused. The conference ordered the
withdrawal of this unlawful act, and on the bishop’s refusal,
deposed him in January, 1873. The dissenting cantons, Lucerne and
Zug, indeed declared that after as well as before they would only
recognise Lachat as lawful bishop, the chapter refused to make
the required election of administrator of the diocese, the clergy
in Soleure and in =Bernese Jura= without exception took the
side of the bishop, as also by means of a popular vote the
great majority of Catholics in Thurgau. But amid all this the
conference did not yield in the least. Lachat was compelled by
the police to quit his episcopal residence, and withdrew to a
village in Canton Lucerne. The council of the Bernese government
resolved to recall the refractory clergy of the Jura, took their
names off the civil register and forbad them to exercise any
clerical functions. The outbreaks incited by rebel clergy in
the Jura were put down by the military, sixty-nine clergymen
were exiled, and, so far as the means allowed, replaced by
liberal successors introduced by the Old Catholic priest Herzog
(§ 190, 3) in Olten. In November, 1875, permission to return home
was granted to the exiles in consequence of the revised Federal
constitution of 1874, according to which the banishment of Swiss
burghers was no longer allowed. The Bernese government felt all
the more disposed to carry out this enactment of the National
Council, as it believed that it had obtained the legal means for
checking further rebellion and obstinacy among those who should
return. On January, 1874, by popular vote a law was sanctioned
reorganizing the whole ecclesiastical affairs of the =Canton
Bern=. By it all clergy, Catholic as well as Protestant, are
ranked as civil officers, the choice of whom rests with the
congregations, the tenure of office lasting for six years. All
purely ecclesiastical affairs for the canton rest in the last
instance with a synod of the particular denomination, for the
several congregations with a church committee, both composed of
freely elected lay and clerical members. But if a dispute in a
particular congregation should arise about a synodal decree, the
congregational assembly decides on its validity or non-validity
for the particular congregation. All decrees of higher church
courts and pastorals must have state approval, which must never
be refused on dogmatic grounds. If a congregation splits over any
question, the majority claims the church property and pastor’s
emoluments, etc. And this law was next extended in October 31st,
1875, in the matter of penal law by the so-called Police
Worship Law. It imposes heavy fines up to 1000 francs or a
year’s imprisonment for any clerical agitation against the law,
institutions or enactments of the civil courts, as well as for
every outbreak of hostilities against members of other religious
bodies, refuses to allow any interference of foreign spiritual
superiors without leave granted by government in each particular
case, forbids all processions and religious ceremonies outside
of the fixed church locality, etc. In the same year the first
Catholic Cantonal Synod declared its attachment to the Christian
or Old Catholic church of Switzerland. But it was otherwise
after the newly elected Grand Council of the canton of its
own accord, on September 12th, 1878, granted the returned Jura
clergy complete amnesty for all the past, and on the assumption
of future submission to existing laws of state, recognised
them again eligible for election to spiritual offices which had
previously been denied them. Not only did the Roman Catholic
people regularly take part in elections of priests, church
councils, and synods, undoubtedly with the approval of the new
pope Leo XIII., who had in February addressed a conciliatory
letter to the members of the Federal Council, but also the
extremest of the Jura now submitted without scruple to the new
election required by the law, and won therein for the most part
the majority of votes. In the Catholic Cantonal Synod convened in
Bern, in January, 1880, were found seventy-five Roman Catholics
and only twenty-five Old Catholic deputies. The latter were
naturally defeated in all controversies. The synod declared
that the connexion with the Christian Catholic national bishopric
was annulled, that auricular confession was obligatory, that
marriages of priests were forbidden, etc. Since now the law
assigns the state pay of the priest as well as all the church
property in the case of a split to the majority for the time
being, the inevitable consequence was that Old Catholics of the
Jura district were deprived of all share in these privileges,
and had to make provision for their own support. Also in Canton
=Soleure=, the law that all pastors must be re-elected after
the expiry of six years, came in force in 1872, and then the
thirty-two Roman Catholic clergymen concerned were with only two
exceptions re-elected, while, on the other hand, the Old Catholic
priest Geschwind of Starrkirch was rejected.--But all efforts
to restore the bishopric of Basel-Soleure came to grief over the
person of Bishop Lachat, whom the curia would not give up and the
Federal Council would not again allow, until at last a way out of
the difficulty was found. The canton Tessin, which previously in
church matters belonged to the Italian dioceses of Milan and Como,
was, in 1859, by decree of the Federal Council, detached from
these. But Tessin insisted on the founding of a bishopric of its
own, while the Federal Council wished to join it to the bishopric
of Chur. Thus the matter remained undecided, till in September,
1884, the papal curia came to an understanding with the Federal
Council that Lachat should be appointed vicar-apostolic for
the newly founded bishopric of Tessin, and that to the vacated
bishopric of Basel-Soleure the “learned as well as mild” Provost
Fiala of Soleure should be called. In this way all the cantons
referred to, with the exception of Bern, were won.[552]
§ 199.4. =The Protestant Church in German Switzerland.=--Among
all the German cantons, =Basel= (§ 172, 5), which unweariedly
prosecuted the work of home and foreign missions, fell most
completely under the influence of rationalism and then of the
liberal Protestant theology. While pietism obtained powerful
support and encouragement in its missionary institutions and
movements, and there, though developing itself on Reformed soil,
assumed, in consequence of its manifold connection with Germany,
a colour almost more Lutheran than Reformed, the university by
eminent theological teachers of scientific ability represented
the Mediation school in theology of a predominantly Reformed type.
In the Canton =Zürich=, on the other hand, the advanced theology,
theoretical and practical, obtained an increasing and finally
an almost exclusive mastery in the university and church. But
yet, when in 1839 the Grand Council called Dr. David Strauss
to a theological professorship, the Zürich people rose to a man
against the proposal, the appointment was not enforced, the Grand
Council was overthrown, and Strauss pensioned. The victory and
ascendency of this reaction, however, was not of long continuance.
Theological and ecclesiastical radicalism again won the upper
hand and maintained it unchecked. In the other German cantons the
most diverse theological schools were represented alongside of
one another, yet with steadily increasing advantage to liberal
and radical tendencies. The theological faculty at =Bern=
favoured mainly a liberal mediation theology, and an attempt
of the orthodox party in 1847, to set aside the appointment of
Professor E. Zeller by means of a popular tumult, miscarried.
From 1860 ecclesiastical liberalism prevailed in German
Protestant Switzerland, frequently going the length of
the extremest radicalism and showing its influence even in
the cantonal and synodal legislation. The starting of the
“_Zeitstimmen für d. ref. Schweiz_,” in 1859, by Henry Lang,
who had fled in 1848 from Württemberg to Switzerland, and died
in 1876 as pastor in Zürich, marked an epoch in the history of
the radical liberal movement in Swiss theology. In Fred. Langhans,
since 1876 professor at Bern, he had a zealous comrade in the
fight. During 1864-1866, Langhans published a series of violent
controversial tracts against the pietistic orthodox party in
Switzerland, which zealously prosecuted foreign missions, and in
1866 he founded the _Swiss Reform Union_, while Alb. Bitzius, son
of the writer known as Jer. Gotthelf (§ 174, 8) started as its
organ the “_Reformblätter aus d. bernischen Kirche_,” which was
subsequently amalgamated with the _Zeitstimmem_.--After more or
less violent conflicts with pietistic orthodoxy, still always
pretty strongly represented, especially in the aristocracy, the
emancipation of the schools from the church and the introduction
of obligatory civil marriage were accomplished in most cantons,
even before the revised Federal constitution of 1874 and the
marriage law of 1875 gave to these principles legal sanction
throughout the whole of Switzerland. In almost all Protestant
cantons the re-election or new election to all spiritual offices
every six years was ordained by law, in many the freeing of
the clergy from any creed subscription with the setting aside
of confessional writings as well as of the orthodox liturgy,
hymnbooks and catechisms was also carried, and the withdrawing
of the Apostles’ Creed from public worship and from the baptismal
formula was enjoined. The Basel synod in 1883, by thirty-six to
twenty-seven votes, carried the motion to make baptism no longer
a condition of confirmation; and although the Zürich synod in
1882 still held baptism obligatory for membership in the national
church, the Cantonal Council in 1883, on consulting the law of
the church, overturned this decision by 140 against 19 votes.
§ 199.5. =The Protestant Church in French Switzerland.=--The
French philosophy of the eighteenth century had given to the
Reformed church of =Geneva= a prevailingly rationalistic tendency.
Notwithstanding, or just because of this, Madame Krüdener, in
1814, with her conventicle pietism, found an entrance there,
and won in the young theologian Empaytaz a zealous supporter and
an apostle of conversion preaching. In the next year a wealthy
Englishman, Haldane, appeared there as the apostle of methodistic
piety, and inspired the young pastor Malan with enthusiasm for
the revival mission. Empaytaz and Malan now by speech and writing
charged the national church with defection from the Christian
faith, and won many zealous believers as adherents, especially
among students of theology. The _Vénérable Compagnie_ of the
Geneva clergy, hitherto resting on its lees in rationalistic
quiet, now in 1817 thought it might still the rising storm by
demanding of theological candidates at ordination the vow not to
preach on the two natures in Christ, original sin, predestination,
etc., but thereby they only poured oil on the fire. The adherents
of the daily increasing evangelical movement withdrew from
the national church, founded free independent communities and
_Réunions_ under the banner of the restoration of Calvinistic
orthodoxy, and were by their enemies nicknamed _Momiers_, _i.e._
mummery traders or hypocrites. The government imprisoned and
banished their leaders, while the mob, unchecked, heaped upon
them all manner of abuse. The persecution came to an end in
1830. Thereafter settling down in quiet moderation, it founded
in 1831 the _Société évangélique_, which, in 1832, established
an _Ecole de Théologie_, and became the centre of the Free church
evangelical movement. From that time the _Eglise libre_ of Geneva
has existed unmolested alongside of the _Eglise Nationale_, and
the opposition at first so violent has been moderated on both
sides by the growth of conciliatory and mediating tendencies.
Since 1850, two divergent parties have arisen within the bosom
of the free church itself, which without any serious conflict
continued alongside of one another, until in May, 1883, the
majority of the presbytery resolved to make a peaceful separation,
the stricter forming the congregation of the _Pelisserie_, and
the more liberal that of the _Oratoire_. At the same time a
committee was appointed to draw up a confession upon which both
could unite in lasting fellowship. But when this failed, a formal
and complete separation was agreed upon at the new year.--From
Geneva the Methodist revival spread to =Vaud=. The religious
movement got a footing, especially in Lausanne. The Grand
Council, however, did not allow the contemplated formation of
an independent congregation, and in 1824 forbad all “sectarian”
assemblies, while the mob raged even more wildly than at Geneva
against the “_Momiers_.” The excitement increased when, in 1839,
by decision of the Grand Council, the Helvetic Confession was
abrogated. When in 1845 a revolutionary radical government came
into office at Lausanne, the refusal of many clergymen to read
from the pulpit a political proclamation, caused a thorough
division in the church, for the preachers referred to were in
a body driven out of the national church. A Free church of Vaud
now developed itself alongside of the national church, sorely
oppressed and persecuted by the radical government, and spread
into other Swiss cantons. It owed its freedom from sectarian
narrowness mainly to the influence of the talented and thoroughly
independent Alex. Vinet, who devoted his whole energies and
brilliant eloquence to the interests of religious freedom and
liberty of conscience and to the struggle for the separation
of church and state. Vinet was from 1817 teacher of the French
language and literature in Basel, then from 1837 to 1845
professor of practical theology at Lausanne, but on the
reconstruction of the university he was not re-elected. He died
in 1847.[553]--In the canton =Neuchatel= the State Council in
1873 introduced a law, which granted unconditional liberty of
conscience, freedom in teaching and worship without any sort
of restriction on clergy, teachers and congregations. The Grand
Council by forty-seven votes to forty-six gave it its sanction,
notwithstanding the almost unanimous protest of the evangelical
synod, and refused to appeal to a popular vote. When an appeal
to the Federal Council proved fruitless, somewhere about one half
of the pastors, including the theological professors and all the
students, left the state church, and formed an _Eglise libre_;
while the other half regarded it as their duty to remain in the
national church so long as they were not hindered from preaching
God’s word in purity and simplicity. Both parties had a common
meeting point in the _Union évangélique_, and a law originally
passed in favour of the Old Catholics, which secured to all
seceders a right to the joint use of their respective churches,
proved also of advantage to the Free church.--The canton =Geneva=
issued, in 1874, a Protestant law of worship, which with dogma
and liturgy also threw overboard ordination, and maintained that
the clergy are answerable only to their conscience and their
electors. Yet at the new election of the consistory in 1879,
at the close of the legal term of four years, the evangelical
and moderate party again obtained the supremacy, and a law
introduced by the radical party in the Grand Council, demanding
the withdrawal of the budget of worship and the separation of
church and state, was, on July 4th, 1880, thrown out by universal
popular vote, by a majority of 9,000 to 4,000.
§ 200. HOLLAND AND BELGIUM.
Among the most serious mistakes in the new partition of states at
the Vienna Congress was the combining in one kingdom of the United
Netherlands the provinces of Holland and Belgium, diverse in race,
language, character, and religion. The contagion of French Revolution
of July, 1830, however, caused an outbreak in Brussels, which ended in
the separation of Catholic Belgium from the predominantly Protestant
Holland. Belgium has since then been the scene of unceasing and
changeful conflicts between the liberal and ultramontane parties, whose
previous combination was now completely shattered. And while, on the
other hand, in the Reformed state church of Holland, theological studies,
leaning upon German science, have taken a liberal and even radical
destructive course, the not inconsiderable Roman Catholic population has
fallen, under Jesuit leading, more and more into bigoted obscurantism.
§ 200.1. =The United Netherlands.=--The constitution of the
new kingdom created in 1814 guaranteed unlimited freedom to all
forms of worship and complete equality of all citizens without
distinction of religious confession. Against this the Belgian
episcopate protested with bishop Maurice von Broglie, of Ghent,
at their head, who refused, in 1817, the prayers of the church
for the heretical crown princess and the _Te Deum_ for the
newborn heir to the throne. As he went so far as to excite
the Catholic people on all occasions against the Protestant
government, the angry king, William I., summoned him to answer
for his conduct before the court of justice. But he eluded
inquiry by flight to France, and as guilty of high treason
was sentenced to death, which did not prevent him from his
exile unweariedly fanning the flames of rebellion. The number
of cloisters grew from day to day and also the multitude of
clerical schools and seminaries, in which the Catholic youth
was trained up in the principles of the most violent fanaticism.
The government in 1825 closed the seminaries, expelled Jesuit
teachers, forbad attendance at Jesuit schools abroad, and founded
a college at Louvain, in which all studying for the church were
obliged to pass through a philosophical curriculum. The common
struggle for maintaining the liberty of instruction promised by
the constitution made political radicalism and ultramontanism
confederates, and the government, intimidated by this combination,
agreed, in a concordat with the pope in 1827, to modify the
obligatory into a facultative attendance at Louvain College.
The inevitable consequence of this was the speedy and complete
decay of the college. But the confederacy of the radicals
and ultramontanes continued, directing itself against other
misdeeds of the government, and was not broken up until in 1830
it attained its object by the disjunction of Belgium and Holland.
§ 200.2. =The Kingdom of Holland.=--In the prevailingly =Reformed=
national church rationalism and latitudinarian supernaturalism
had to such an extent blotted out the ecclesiastical distinctions
between Reformed, Remonstrants, Mennonites, and Lutherans,
that the clergy of one party would unhesitatingly preach in the
churches of the others. Then rose the poet Bilderdijk, driven
from political into religious patriotism, to denounce with
glowing fury the general declension from the orthodoxy of Dort.
Two Jewish converts of his, the poet and apologist Isaac da Costa,
and the physician Cappadose, gave him powerful support. A zealous
young clergyman, Henry de Cock, was theological mouthpiece of
the party. Because he offended church order, especially by
ministering in other congregations, he was suspended and finally
deposed in 1834. The greater part of his congregation and four
other pastors with him formally declared their secession from the
unfaithful church, as a return to the orthodox Reformed church.
As separatists and disturbers of public worship, they were fined
and imprisoned, and were at last satisfied with the recognition
granted them of royal grace in 1839, as a separate or =Christian
Reformed Church=. It consists now of 364 congregations, embracing
about 140,000 souls, with a flourishing seminary at Kampen. The
=Reformed State Church=, with three-fourths of all the Protestant
population, persevered in and developed its liberalistic
tendencies. The State Synod of 1883 expressly declared that
the Netherland Reformed Church demands from its teachers not
agreement with all the statements of the confessional writings,
but only with their spirit, gist, and essence; and the synod
of 1877, by the vote of a majority, stated that no sort of
formulated confession should be required even of candidates for
confirmation. Yet even amid such proceedings from various sides,
a churchly and evangelical reaction of considerable importance
set in. Three great parties within the state church carried on
a life and death struggle with one another:
1. The Strict Calvinists, whose leader is Dr. Kuyper, formerly
pastor in Amsterdam;
2. The so-called Middle Party, which falls into two divisions:
the, just about expiring, Ethical Irenical Party, with
the Utrecht professor Van Oosterzee (died 1882), and the
Evangelical Party with the Gröningen professor Hofstede de
Groot, since 1872 Emeritus, as leaders, of which the former,
subordinating the confession, regards the Christian life
as the main thing in Christianity, and the latter declares
itself prepared to take the gospel alone for its creed and
confession; and
3. The so-called Modern Party, which, with Professors Scholten
and Kuenen as leaders, has its centre at Leyden, and in
theology carries out with reckless energy the destructive
critical principles of the school of Baur and Wellhausen
(§ 182, 7, 18).
The “_Moderns_” are also the founders and leaders of the
“_Protestant Federation_” after the German model (§ 180),
with its annual assemblies since 1873, in opposition to which
a “_Confessional Union_” holds its annual meetings at Utrecht,
and operates by means of evangelists and lay preachers in places
where there are only “Modern” pastors. The higher and cultured
classes in the congregations mostly favour the Gröningen and
some also the Leyden school, but the great majority of the middle
and lower classes are adherents of Kuyper, and have frequently
secured majorities in the Congregational Church Council.--The
Dutch school law of 1856 banished every sort of confessional
religious education from public schools supported by the state,
and so called forth the erection of numerous denominational
schools independent of the state, and the founding of a “_Union
for Christian Popular Education_,” which has spread through
the whole country. The university law sanctioned, after violent
debates in the chamber, in 1876, establishes in place of the old
theological faculties, professorships for the science of religion
generally, with the exception of dogmatics and practical theology,
and left it with the Reformed State Synod to care for these two
subjects, either in a theological seminary or by founding for
itself the two theological professorships in the universities
and supporting them from the sums voted for the state church.
The synod decided on the latter course, and appointed to the new
chairs men of moderate liberal views. The adherents of the strict
Calvinistic party, however, founded a Free Reformed University
at Amsterdam, which was opened in autumn, 1880. Its first rector
was Kuyper.--The =Lutheran Church= of fifty congregations and
sixty-two pastors, with about 60,000 souls, has also had since
1816 a theological seminary. In it neological tendencies prevail.
§ 200.3. The founding of the Free University at Amsterdam,
referred to above, led to a series of violent conflicts
which threatened to break up the whole Reformed church of
the Netherlands by a wild schism. The Reformed State Synod,
consisting mainly of Gröningen theologians, but also numbering
many members belonging to the Modern or Leyden school, and
constituting the supreme ecclesiastical court, had, in spite of
its eleventh rule, which makes “the maintenance of the doctrine”
a main task of all church government, for a long time admitted
the principle of unfettered freedom of teaching, and ordained
that even evidence of orthodoxy on the part of candidates for
confirmation would no longer be regarded as a condition of their
acceptance, their examination referring only to their knowledge,
the examining clergy and not the assisting elders being judges
in this matter. When now the Free University had been founded
in direct opposition to the synod, the latter resolved to reject
all its pupils at the examination of candidates, and when, in
the summer of 1885, its first student presented himself, actually
carried out this resolution. Thereupon the university transferred
the examination to a committee, elected by itself, consisting
of orthodox Reformed pastors and elders, and a small village
congregation agreed to elect the candidate for its poorly
endowed, and so for seventeen years vacant, pastorate. But the
synod refused him ordination. Therefore the director of a strict
Calvinistic Gymnasium, formerly a pastor, performed the ceremony,
and the congregation announced its secession from the synodal
union. At the same time in Amsterdam a second conflict arose over
the question of candidates for confirmation. Three pastors of the
“modern” school demanded the elders subject to them, among them
Dr. Kuyper, to take part as required in the examining of their
candidates; but these refused to give their assistance, because
the previous training had not been according to Scripture and the
confession, and also the majority of the church council approved
of this refusal, as the parents had complained, and declared
that the certificate of morality demanded by other pastors could
be made out only if candidates for confirmation had previously
formally and solemnly confessed their genuine and hearty faith in
Jesus Christ as the only and all-sufficient Saviour, which these,
however, in accordance with the Dutch practice of the eighteenth
century, declined to do. The controversy was carried by appeal
through all the church courts, and finally the State Synod
ordered the church council to make delivery of the certificates
within six weeks on pain of suspension. But this was brought
about before the expiry of that period by the outbreak of a
far more serious conflict over matters of administration. In
Amsterdam the administration of church property lay with a
special commission, responsible to the church council, consisting
of members, one half from the church council and the other half
from the congregations. If in the beginning of January, 1886,
the threatened suspension and deposition of the church council
should be carried out, in accordance with proper order until
the appointment of a new council all the rights of the same,
therefore also that of supervising that commission, would fall
to the “classical board” (§ 143, 1) as the next highest court.
In order to avoid this, the fateful resolution was passed on
December 14th, 1885, to alter § 41 of the regulations, so that,
if the church council in the discharge of its duty to govern
the community in accordance with God’s word and the legalized
church confession, it would be so hindered therein that it
might feel in conscience obliged to obey God rather than man
and accept suspension and deposition, and a church council should
be appointed, the administrative commission would be obliged
to remain subject, not to this, but to the original commission.
The “classical board” annulled this resolution, suspended on
January 4th, 1886, for continued obstinacy the previous church
council, and constituted itself, pending decision on the part of
discipline, interim administrator of all its rights and duties.
The suspended majority, however, called a meeting for the same
day, and when it found the doors of its meeting place closed,
sent for a locksmith to break them open. They were prevented by
the police, who then, by putting on a safety lock, strengthening
the boards of the door by mailed plates, and setting a watch,
greatly reduced the chances of an entrance. But the opposition
sent to the watchers a letter by a policeman demanding that
the representatives of the church council should be allowed to
pass; upon which these, regarding it as an order of the police,
withdrew. They then had the mailed plates sawn, took possession
of the hall and the archives and treasure box lying there, and
refused admission to the classical board. While then the question
of law and possession was referred to the courts of law, and
there the final decision would not be given before the lapse
of a year, the disciplinary procedure took its course through
all the ecclesiastical courts and ended in the deposition of all
resisting elders and pastors. The latter preached now to great
crowds in hired halls. From the capital the excitement increased
by means of violent publications on both sides, spread over the
whole land and produced discord in many other communities. Wild
and uproarious tumults first broke out in Leidendorf, a suburb of
Leyden. The pastor and the majority of the church council refused
to enter on their congregational list two girls who had been
confirmed by liberal churchmen elsewhere, and with by far the
greater part of the congregation seceded from the synodal union.
The classical board now, in July, 1886, declared the pastorate
vacant, and ordered that a regular interim service should be
conducted on Sundays by the pastors of the circuit. The uproar
among the people, however, was thereby only greatly increased,
so that the civil authorities were obliged to protect the deputed
preachers, by a large military escort, from rude maltreatment,
and to secure quiet during public worship by a company of police
in church. And similar conflicts soon broke out on like occasions
and with similar consequences in many other places throughout
all parts of the land. In December, 1886, the Amsterdam church
council also declared its secession from the state church, and a
numerously attended “Reformed Church Congress” at Amsterdam, in
January, 1887, summoned by Kuyper in the interests of the crowd
of seceders, resolved to accept the decision of the law in regard
to church property.[554]
§ 200.4. Even after the separation of Belgium there was still
left a considerable number of =Catholics=, about three-eighths of
the population, most numerous in Brabant, Limburg, and Luxemburg,
and these were, as of old, inclined to the most bigoted
ultramontanism. This tendency was greatly enhanced when the new
constitutional law of 1848 announced the principle of absolute
liberty of belief, in consequence of which the Jesuits crowded
in vast numbers, and the pope in 1853 organized a new Catholic
hierarchy in the land, with four bishops and an archbishop at
Utrecht, under the control of the propaganda. The Protestant
population went into great excitement over this. The liberal
ministry of Thorbecke was obliged to resign, but the chambers
at length sanctioned the papal ordinance, only securing the
Protestant population against its misapplication and abuse.--On
the withdrawal of the French in 1814 there were only eight
cloisters remaining; but in 1861 there were thirty-nine for monks
and 137 for nuns, and since then the number has considerably
increased.--The Dutch =Old Catholics= (§ 165, 8), on account
of their protest against the dogma of the Immaculate Conception
(§ 185, 2), enjoined upon the Catholic church by the pope, were
anew excommunicated, and joined the German Old Catholics in
rejecting the decrees of the Vatican Council (§ 190, 1).
§ 200.5. =The Kingdom of Belgium.=--Catholic Belgium obtained
after its separation from Holland a constitution by which
unlimited freedom of religious worship and education, and the
right of confessing opinion and of associating, were guaranteed,
and to the state was allowed no interference with the affairs
of the church beyond the duty of paying the clergy. Also in
Leopold I., 1830-1865, of the house of Saxe-Coburg, it had a king
who though himself a Protestant was faithful to the constitution,
and, according to agreement, had his children trained up in
the Roman Catholic church. The confederacy of radicalism and
ultramontanism, however, was broken by the irreconciliable enmity
and violent conflict in daily life and in the chambers among
clerical and liberal ministers. The ultramontanes founded
at Louvain in 1834 a strictly Catholic university, which was
under the oversight of the bishops and the patronage of the
Virgin; while the liberals promoted the erection of an opposition
university for free science at Brussels. That the Jesuits used
to the utmost for their own ends the liberty granted them by the
constitution by means of missions and the confessional, schools,
cloisters, and brotherhoods of every kind is what might have been
expected. But liberalism also knew how to conduct a propaganda
and to bring the clergy into discredit with the educated classes
by unveiling their intrigues, legacy-hunting, etc., while
these exercised a great influence chiefly upon bigoted females.
The number of cloisters, which on the separation from Holland
amounted only to 280, had risen in 1880 in that small territory
to 1,559, with 24,672 inmates, of whom 20,645 were nuns.
§ 200.6. After the ultramontane party had enjoyed eight years
of almost unchallenged supremacy, the Malou ministry favourable
to it was overthrown in June, 1878, and a liberal government,
under the presidency of Frère-Orban, took its place. Then began
the =Kulturkampf= in Belgium. The charge of public education was
taken from the ministry of the interior, and a special minister
appointed in the person of Van Humbeeck. He began by changing
all girls’ schools under the management of sisters of spiritual
orders into communal schools, and in January, 1879, brought in
a bill for reorganizing elementary education, which completely
secularized the schools; deprived the clergy of all official
influence over them, and relegated religious instruction to the
care of the family and the church, the latter, however, having
the necessary accommodation allowed in the school buildings.
The chambers approved the bill, and the king confirmed it, in
spite of all protests and agitation by the clergy. The clerical
journals put a black border on their issue which published it;
the provincial councils under clerical influence nullified as
far as possible all money bequests for the public schools, and
the bishops assembled in August at Mechlin resolved to found
free schools in all communities, and to refuse absolution to all
parents who entrusted their children to state schools and all
teachers in them, in order thus to cause a complete decay of the
public schools, which indeed happened to this extent that within
a few months 1,167 communal schools had not a single Catholic
scholar. On complaint being made by the government to Leo XIII.,
he expressed through the Brussels nuncio his regret and
disapproval of the proceedings of the bishops; but, on the
other hand, he not only privately praised them on account of
their former zeal in opposing the school law, but also incited
them to continued opposition. When this double dealing of the
curia was discovered, the government in June, 1880, broke off
all diplomatic relations with the Vatican by recalling their
ambassador and giving the nuncio his passports. The ministerial
president publicly in the chamber of deputies characterized
the action of the Holy See as “_fourberie_.” Whereupon the pope
at the next consistory called princes and peoples as witnesses
of this insult. In May, 1882, the results of the inquiry into
clerical incitements against the public was read in the chamber,
where such startling revelations were made as these: Priests
taught the children that they should no longer pray for the king
when he had committed the mortal sin of confirming the school law;
the ministers are worse than murderers and true Herods; a priest
even taught children to pray that God might cause their “liberal”
parents to die, etc. Amid such conflicts the Catholic party
in parliament split into the parties of the _Politici_, who
were willing to submit to the constitution, and that of the
_Intransigenti_, who, under the direction of the bishops and the
university of Louvain, held high above everything the standard
of the syllabus. The latter fought with such passionateness, that
the pope felt obliged in 1881 to enjoin upon the episcopate “that
prudent attitude” which the church in such cases always maintains
in “enduring many evils” which for the time cannot be overcome.
But undeterred, the government continued to restrict the claims
of the clergy, so far as these were not expressly guaranteed by
the constitution.--In June, 1884, as the result of the elections
for the chamber of deputies, the clerical party again were in
power. Malou was once more at the head of a ministry in favour of
the clericals, caused the king to dissolve the senate, and in the
new elections won there also a majority for his party. No sooner
were they in power than the clerical ministry, in conjunction
with the majority in the chambers, proceeded with inconsiderate
haste, amid the most violent, almost daily repeated explosions
from the now intensely embittered liberal and radical section
of the population, which only seemed to increase their zeal,
to employ their absolute power to the utmost in the interest of
clericalism. The restoration of diplomatic relations with the
papal curia in the spirit of absolute acquiescence in its schemes
was the grand aim of the reaction, as well as a new school law
by which the schools were completely given over again to the
clergy and the orders. But when at the next communal elections
a liberal majority was returned, and protests of the new communal
councils poured in against the school law on behalf of the vast
number of state certificated teachers reduced by it to hunger and
destitution, the Malou ministry found itself obliged to resign in
October, 1884. Its place was taken by the moderate ultramontane
Beernaert ministry, which sought indeed to quiet the excitement
by mild measures, but held firmly in all essential points to the
principles of its predecessor.
§ 200.7. An exciting episode in the Belgium _Kulturkampf_ is
presented by the appearance of Bishop =Dumont of Tournay=, who,
previously an enthusiastic admirer of Pius IX. and a vigorous
defender of the infallibility dogma, also a zealous patron of
stigmatization miracles at Bois d’Haine (§ 188, 4), now suddenly
turned round on the school question and refused to obey the papal
injunction. For this he was first suspended, and then in 1880
formally deposed by the pope. He afterwards wrote letters in the
most advanced liberal journals with violent denunciations of the
pope, whom he would not recognise as pope, but only as Bishop of
Rome, and so styled him not Leo, but only Pecci. In these letters
Dumont makes the interesting communication that the virgin Louise
Lateau, favoured of God, has threatened with excommunication the
“intruder” Durousseaux, nominated by the pope as his successor,
because she continues to reverence Dumont as the only legitimate
Bishop of Tournay. The Vatican pronounced him insane, and the
chapter appealed to the civil authorities to have him declared
incapable in the sight of the law, which, however, they refused,
because they could not regard Dumont’s insanity as proved. On
the other hand, Dumont refused to renounce his episcopal office,
and accused Durousseaux of having by night, with the help of a
locksmith, obtained entrance to his episcopal palace, and having
taken forcible possession of a casket lying there, which, besides
the diocesan property to the value of five millions, contained
also about one and a half millions of his own private means.
Pending the issue of the conflict, as to which of the two should
be regarded as the true bishop, the palace was now officially
sealed up. The attempt to arrest the robbed casket had to be
abandoned, because meanwhile the canon Bernard, as keeper of the
treasures of the diocese, had fled with its contents to America.
He was, however, on legal warrant imprisoned in Havanna and
brought back to Belgium in 1882. In April, 1884, the dispute
of the bishops was definitively closed by the judgment of
the supreme tribunal, according to which Dumont, having been
legitimately deposed, has no more claim to the title and revenues
of his earlier office; and in 1886 the supreme court of appeal
at Brussels condemned Bernard “on account of serious breach of
trust” to three years’ imprisonment.
§ 200.8. =The Protestant Church= was represented in Belgium
only by small congregations in the chief cities and some Reformed
Walloon village congregations. But for several decades, by the
zealous exertions of the Evangelical Society at Brussels with
thirty-four pastors and evangelists, the work of evangelization
not only among Catholic Walloons, but also among the Flemish
population, has made considerable progress, notwithstanding all
agitation and incitement of the people by the Catholic clergy,
so that several new evangelical congregations, consisting mostly
of converts, have been formed. In two small places indeed the
whole communities, roused by episcopal arbitrariness, have gone
over.--The pastor Byse employed by the Evangelical Society at
Brussels has taken up the idea that all men by the fall have
lost their immortality, and that it could be restored again by
faith in Christ, while all the unreconciled are given over to
annihilation, the second death of Revelation ii. 11, xx. 15. So
long as he maintained this theory merely as a private opinion
the society took no offence at it, but when he began to proclaim
it in his preaching and in his instruction of the young, and
declined to yield to all advice on the matter, the synod of 1882
resolved upon his dismissal. But a great part of his congregation
still remain faithful to him.
§ 201. THE SCANDINAVIAN COUNTRIES.
Notwithstanding the common Scandinavian-national and
Lutheran-ecclesiastical basis on which the civil and religious life is
developed, it assumed in the three Scandinavian countries a completely
diversified course. While in Denmark the civil life bore manifold traces
of democratic tendencies and thereby the relations between church and
state were loosened, Sweden, with a tenacity almost unparalleled in
Protestant countries, has for a long period held fast in exclusive
attachment to the idea of a state church. On the other hand Denmark
was far more open to influences from without hostile to the church,
on the one side those of rationalism, on the other, those of the
anti-ecclesiastical sects, especially of the Baptists and Mormons, than
Sweden, which in its certainly barren, if not altogether dead orthodoxy
till after the middle of the century was almost hermetically sealed
against all heterogeneous influences, but yet could not altogether
over-master the pietistically or methodistically coloured movements
of religious yearning that arose among her own people. Norway, again,
although politically united with Sweden, has, both in national character
and in religious development, shown its more intimate relationship with
Denmark.
§ 201.1. =Denmark.=--From the close of last century rationalism
has had a home in Denmark. In 1825 Professor Clausen, a moderate
adherent of the neological school, published a learned work on
the opposition of “Catholicism and Protestantism,” identifying
the latter with rationalism. First of all in that same year
Pastor =Grundtvig= (died 1872), “a man of poetic genius, and
skilled in the ancient history of the land,” inspired with
equal enthusiasm for the old Lutheranism of his fathers and for
patriotic Danism, entered the lists and replied with powerful
eloquence, lamenting the decay of Christianity and the church.
He was condemned by the court of justice as injurious, after he
had during the process resigned his pastoral office. A like fate
befell the orientalist Lindberg, who charged Clausen with the
breach of his ordination vow. The adherents of Grundtvig met
for mutual edification in conventicles, until at last in 1832
he obtained permission again to hold public services. Not less
influential was the work of Sören =Kierkegaard= (died 1855), who,
largely in sympathy with Grundtvig, without ecclesiastical office,
in his writings earnestly pled for a living subjective piety
and unweariedly maintained an uncompromising struggle against
the official Christianity of the secularized clergy. The wild,
unmeasured Danomania of 1848-1849, during the military conflict
with Germany, drew opponents together and made them friends.
Grundtvig declaimed against everything German, and of the two
factors, which he had formerly regarded as the pivots on which
universal history turned, Danism and Lutheranism, he now let
go Lutheranism as of German origin. He therefore proposed the
abrogation of the distinctive German-Lutheran confessions, placed
the Apostles’ Creed before and above the Bible and, pressing
in a one-sided manner the doctrine of baptismal grace, demanded
a “joyous Christianity,” denied the necessity of continued
preaching and exercise of repentance, and wished especially to
introduce into the schools the Norse mythology as introductory
to the study of Christianity. His adherents wrought with the
anti-church party for the abolition of the union of church
and state. The Danish constitutional law of 1849 abolished
the confessional churches of the state church, and Catholics,
Reformed, Moravians, and Jews were granted equal civil rights
with the Lutherans. Since then the Catholic church has made slow
but steady progress in the country, and the increasing Baptist
movement was also favoured by a law of the Volkthing of 1857,
which abolished compulsory baptism, and only required the
enrolment of all children in the church books of their respective
districts within the period of one year. Civil marriage had also
been granted to dissenters in 1851, and in 1868 the peculiar
institution of “electing communities” was founded, by means of
which twenty families from one or more parishes which declare
themselves dissatisfied with the pastors appointed them,
may, without leaving the national church, form an independent
congregation under pastors chosen by themselves and maintained
at their own cost. The =Schleswig-Holstein= revolution in
1848, occasioned enormous confusion and disturbance in the
ecclesiastical conditions of the district. Over a hundred German
pastors were expelled and forty-six Schleswig parishes deprived
of the use of the German language in church and school. In 1864
both provinces were at last by the Austrian and Prussian alliance
rent from the Danish government, and in consequence of the German
war of 1866 were incorporated with Prussia.
§ 201.2. =Sweden.=--In Sweden there was formed in 1803, in
opposition to the barren orthodoxy of the state church, a
religious association which, if not altogether free of pietistic
narrowness, was yet without any heretical doctrinal tendency,
and exercised a quiet and wholesome influence. From the diligent
_reading_ of Scripture and the works of Luther that prevailed
among its members it obtained the name of _Läsare_. The state
proceeded against its members with fines and imprisonment,
according to the old conventicle law of 1726, and the mob treated
them with insults and violence. But in 1842 a fanatical tendency
began to show itself under the leadership of a peasant, Erich
Jansen, who induced many “_Readers_” to quit the church and to
cast into the fire even Luther’s Postils and Catechism as quite
superfluous alongside of Holy Scripture. They mostly emigrated
to America in 1846. The law of the land since 1686 threatened
every Swede who seceded from the Lutheran state church with
imprisonment and exile, loss of civil privileges and the right
of inheritance. As might therefore be supposed the French Marshal
Bernadotte, who in 1818, under the name of Charles XIV., ascended
the throne of Sweden, had been previously in 1810 obliged to
repudiate the Catholic confession. Even in 1857 the Reichstag
rejected a royal proposal to set aside the Secession as well
as the Conventicle Act. But in the very next year, the holding
of conventicles under clerical supervision, and in 1860, the
secession to other ecclesiastical denominations, were allowed by
law. The constitution of 1865 still indeed made adherence to the
Lutheran confession a condition of qualification for a seat in
either of the chambers. The Reichstag of 1870 at last sanctioned
the admission of all Christian dissenters and also of Jews to all
offices of state as well as to the membership of the Reichstag.
On behalf of dissenters, especially of the numerous Baptists
and Methodists, the right of civil marriage was granted in
1879. In 1877, Waldenström, head-master of the Latin school
at Gefle, without ecclesiastical ordination, began zealously
and successfully by speech and writings (to secure the widest
possible circulation of which a joint stock company with large
capital was formed) to work for the revival of the Christian life
in the Lutheran national church. He vigorously contended against
the church doctrine of atonement and justification, repudiating
the idea of vicarious penal suffering, and broke through all
church order by allowing the sacrament of the Lord’s supper to
be dispensed by laymen. He thus put himself, with his numerous
following, directed by lay preachers in their own prayer meetings
and mission halls, into direct opposition to the church, but by
the wise forbearance of the ecclesiastical authorities he has not
yet been formally ejected.[555]
§ 201.3. =Norway.=--In Norway, toward the end of last century,
rationalism was dominant in almost all the pulpits, and only a
few remnants of Moravian revivalism raised a voice against it.
But in 1796, a simple unlearned peasant =Hans Nielsen Hauge=,
then in his twenty-fifth year, made his appearance as a revival
preacher, creating a mighty spiritual movement that spread among
the masses throughout the whole land. He had obtained his own
religious knowledge from the study of old Lutheran practical
theology, and arising at a period of extraordinary spiritual
excitement, “his call,” as Hase says, “to be a prophet was
like that of the herdsman of Tekoa.” From 1799 he continued
itinerating for five years, persecuted, reproached, and
calumniated by the rationalistic clergy, ten times cast into
prison, under a law of 1741, which forbad laymen to preach, and
then set free, until he had gone over all Norway even to its
farthest and remotest corners, preaching unweariedly everywhere
in houses and in the open air often three or four times a
day, and nourishing besides the flame which he had kindled by
voluminous writings and an extensive correspondence. He directed
his preaching not only against the rationalism of the state
clergy, but also against the antinomian religion of feeling, of
“Blood and Wounds” theology introduced in earlier days by the
Moravians, with a one-sided emphasis and exaggeration indeed, but
still in all essentials maintaining the basis and keeping within
the lines of Lutheran orthodoxy. In 1804 he was charged with
tendencies dangerous to church and state, obtaining money from
peasants on false pretences, inciting the people against the
clergy, etc., and again cast into prison. The trial this time was
carried on for ten years, until at last in 1814 the supreme court
sentenced him on account of his invectives against the clergy to
pay a fine, but pronounced him not guilty on the other charges.
Broken down in spirit and body by his long imprisonment, he could
not think of engaging again in his former work. He died in 1824.
Numerous peasant preachers, however, issuing from his school
were ready to go forth in his footsteps, and till this day the
salutary effects of his and their activity are seen in wide
circles. The law of 1741 which had been made to tell against them
was at last abrogated by the Storthing in 1842. In 1845 the right
of forming Christian sects was recognised, and in 1851 even the
Jews were allowed the right of settlement previously refused them,
and the security of all civil privileges. Since that time even
in Norway the Catholic church has made considerable progress;
in June, 1878, it had eleven churches and fourteen priests.
§ 202. GREAT BRITAIN AND IRELAND.
During the course of the century a breach from without was made upon
the stronghold of the Anglican established church and its legal standing
throughout the United Kingdom. The strong coherence of the Anglican
episcopal church had already been weakened internally by the rise within
its own bosom of High, Low, and Broad tendencies. The advance of the
first-named party to tractarianism and ritualism opened the door to
Romish sympathies, while in the last-named school German rationalism and
criticism found favour, and the low church party was not ashamed to go
hand-in-hand with the evangelical pietistic and methodistic tendencies
of the dissenters. There followed numerous conversions to Rome,
especially from the aristocratic ranks of the upper ten thousand. The
Emancipation Act of 1829 opened the door to both Houses of Parliament to
the Catholics, and in 1858 the same privileges were extended to the Jews.
Also the bulwarks which the state church had in the old universities
of Oxford and Cambridge were undermined, and in 1871 were completely
overthrown by the legal abolition of all confessional tests. Down to
1869 the hierarchy of the episcopal state church, though clearly alien
to the country, maintained its legal position in Catholic Ireland, till
at last the Irish Church Bill brought it there to an end. Repeatedly
have bills been introduced in the House of Commons, though hitherto
without success, by members of the incessantly agitating Liberation
Society, to disestablish the churches of England, Scotland, and
Wales.[556]
§ 202.1. =The Episcopal State Church.=--The two opposing parties
of the state church corresponded to the two political parties
of Tories and Whigs. The _high church party_, which has its most
powerful representatives in the aristocracy, holds aloof from
the dissenters, seeks to maintain the closest connexion between
church and state, and eagerly contends for the retention of all
old ecclesiastical forms and ordinances in constitution, worship,
and doctrine. On the other hand the _evangelical or low church
party_, which is more or less methodistically inclined, holds
free intercourse with dissenters, associating with them in
home and foreign mission work, etc., and with various shades
of differences advocates the claims of progress against those
of immobility, the independence of the church against its
identification with the state, the evangelical freedom and
general priesthood of believers against orthodoxy and hierarchism.
From their midst arose a movement in 1871, occasioned by the
Oxford “Essays and Reviews” and the works of Bishop Colenso,
which resulted in the publication, under the authority of
the bishops, of the “Speaker’s Commentary,” so-called because
suggested by Denison, who had long been speaker of the House
of Commons. It is a learned, thoroughly conservative commentary
on the whole Bible by the ablest theologians of England. On the
revision of the English translation of the Bible see § 181, 4.
Besides these two parties, however, there has arisen a third,
the broad church party. It originated with the distinguished
poet and philosopher, Coleridge (died 1834), and includes many of
the most excellent and scholarly of the clergy, especially those
most eminent for their acquaintance with German theology and
philosophy. They do not form an organized ecclesiastical party
like the evangelicals and high church men, but endeavour not
only to overcome the narrowness and severity of the former, but
also to secure a broader basis and a wider horizon for theology
as well as for the church.[557]--The struggle for the legalizing
of marriage with a deceased wife’s sister has been energetically
pressed since 1850, but though the House of Commons has
repeatedly passed the bill, it has been hitherto by small
majorities, under the influence of the bishops, rejected by
the House of Lords.--A non-official =Pan-Anglican Council=
of English bishops from all parts of the world, excluding
the laity and inferior clergy, with pre-eminently anti-Romish
and anti-ritualistic tendencies, was held in London in 1867
(cf. § 175, 5). When it met the second time in 1878, it was
attended by nearly one hundred bishops, one of them a negro. Of
the three weeks’ debates and their results, however, no detailed
account has been published.
§ 202.2. =The Tractarians and Ritualists.=--The activity of
the dissenters and the episcopal evangelical party’s attachment
to them stirred up the adherents of the high church party to
vigorous guarding of their interests, and drove them into a
one-sided exaggerated accentuation of the Catholic element. The
centre of this movement since 1833 was the university of Oxford.
Its leaders were Professors Pusey and Newman, its literary organ
the _Tracts for the Times_, from which the party received the
name of =Tractarians=. This was a series of ninety treatises,
published 1833-1841, on the basis of Anglo-Catholicism, which
sought, while holding by the Thirty-nine Articles, to affirm
with equal decidedness the genuine Protestantism over against
the Roman papacy, and, in the importance which it attached to
the apostolical succession of the episcopate and priesthood
and the apostolical tradition for the interpretation of
Scripture, the genuine Catholicism over against every form
of ultra-Protestantism. In this way, too, their dogmatics in
all the several doctrines, as far as the Thirty-nine Articles
would by any means allow, was approximated to the Roman Catholic
doctrine, and indeed by-and-by passed over entirely to that type
of doctrine. Newman’s Tract 90 caused most offence, in which,
with thoroughly jesuitical sophistry, it was argued that the
Thirty-nine Articles were capable of an explanation on the basis
of which they might be subscribed even by one who occupied in
regard to the church doctrine and practice an essentially Roman
Catholic standpoint. The university authorities now felt obliged
to declare publicly that the tracts were by no means sanctioned
by them, and that especially the application of the principles of
Tract 90 to the conduct of students in the matter of subscription
of the Thirty-nine Articles is not allowable. Bishop Bagot of
Oxford, hitherto favourable to the tractarians, refused to permit
the continued issue of the tracts. The other bishops also for
the most part spoke against them in their pastorals, and a flood
of controversial pamphlets roused the wrath of the non-Catholic
populace. But on the other hand tractarianism still found favour
among the higher clergy and the aristocracy. In 1845 Newman went
over to the Catholic church, and has since led a retired life
devoted to theological study. Pius IX. paid him no attention,
but in 1879 Leo XIII. acknowledged and rewarded his services to
the Catholic church by elevating him to the rank of cardinal.
The majority of the tractarians disapproved of Newman’s step and
remained in the Anglican church. Thus acted Pusey (died 1882),
the recognised leader of the party, after whom they were now
called =Puseyites=. Many, however, followed Newman’s example,
so that by the end of 1846 no less than one hundred and fifty
clergymen and prominent laymen were received into the widely
opened door of the Catholic church.[558]--The following twelve
years, 1846-1858, were occupied by two dogmatico-ecclesiastical
conflicts vitally affecting the interests of the tractarians.
1. =The Gorham Case.= The Thirty-nine Articles took essentially
Lutheran ground in treating of baptism, recognising it
as a vehicle of regeneration and divine sonship, and the
tractarians laid uncommonly great stress upon this article.
So also the Bishop of Exeter, Dr. Philpotts, refused to
institute the Rev. Cornelius Gorham because of his views on
this subject. Gorham accused him before the Archbishop of
Canterbury, but the Court of Arches decided in favour of the
bishop. The Court of Appeal, however, the judicial committee
of the Privy Council, annulled the episcopal judgment, and
ordered that Gorham should be installed in his office. In
vain did Philpotts, by a protest before the Court of Queen’s
Bench, and then before the Court of Common Pleas, against
the jurisdiction of the Privy Council in this case, in
vain, too, did Blomfield, Bishop of London, insist upon the
revival of Convocation, which for one and a half centuries
had been inoperative as a spiritual parliament with upper
and lower houses, and in vain did a tractarian assembly of
more than 1,500 distinguished clergymen and laymen lodge
a solemn protest. The judgment of the Privy Council stood,
and Gorham was inducted to his office in 1850. Many of
the protesters now went over to the Catholic church, and
about 600 others, like the Puritan Pilgrim Fathers 230
years before (§ 143, 4), under ecclesiastical oppression,
emigrated to New Zealand.
2. =The Denison Eucharist Case.=--The Puseyite Archdeacon
Denison of Taunton, in the diocese of Bath and Wells, had
in 1851 in open defiance of the Thirty-nine Articles, which
represent Calvin’s views of the Lord’s Supper, affirmed in
preaching and writing that unbelievers as well as believers
eat and drink the body and blood of the Lord. Over this
he was involved in a sharp discussion with a neighbouring
clergyman called Ditcher. In 1854 Ditcher accused Denison
before his bishop, who, after vain efforts to reconcile
the parties, referred the matter to the Court of Arches,
which sought, but in vain, to end the strife by compromise.
Ditcher now in 1856 brought his complaint before the
_Queen’s Bench_, which obliged the archbishop to take up the
matter again. A commission appointed by him declared that
the complaint was quite justifiable, and threatened Denison,
when he refused any sort of retraction, with deposition.
But the Court of Appeal in 1858 stayed the judgment on
the ground of a technical error in procedure, and Denison
remained in office.
§ 202.3. From the middle of 1850 the tractarians, who had
hitherto confined themselves to the development of the Romanizing
system of doctrine, began to apply its consequences to the church
ritual and the Christian life, and so won for themselves the name
of =Ritualists=, which has driven out their earlier designation.
Wherever possible they showed their Catholic zeal by introducing
images, crucifixes, candles, holy water, mass dresses, mass
bells, and boy choristers, urged the restoration of the seven
sacraments, especially of extreme unction, auricular confession,
the sacrificial theory and Corpus Christi day, of prayers for
the dead and masses for souls, invocation of saints and the
blessed Virgin; they also praised celibacy and monasticism,
etc. Ritualism has from the first shown singular skill in party
organization. The _English Church Union_, founded in 1860, has
now nearly 200,000 members, of these about 3,000 clergymen and
50 bishops, and it embraces 300 branches over the whole domain
of the Anglican church. Numerous brotherhoods and sisterhoods,
guilds and orders, organized after the style of Roman Catholic
monasticism, promote the interests of ritualism, and zealously
prosecute home and foreign mission work. The _Confraternity
of the Blessed Sacrament_ originated in 1862, was able in 1882
to celebrate Corpus Christi day in 250 churches along with the
Romish church, dispensing only with the procession. The _Society
of the Holy Cross_, founded in 1873 consists only of priests,
and forms a kind of directory for all branches of the ritualistic
propaganda. The _English Order of St. Augustine_ has a threefold
division, into spiritual brothers who are preparing for priests’
orders, lay brothers who are being qualified as lay preachers,
both under the strictest vows, and a sort of tertiaries, who are
free from vows. Among the sisterhoods which already supply nurses
to all the great hospitals of the capital, the most important is
that called “by the name of Jesus.” They take, like the Beguines
of the middle ages, the three vows, but not as binding for life.
By the ultra high church party the genuine apostolic succession
of the ordination of the first Protestant archbishop, Matthew
Parker, and so the genuineness of all subsequent ordinations
going back to him, were doubted; three Anglican bishops are
said to have had episcopal consecration anew conferred on them
by a Greek Catholic bishop. The reckless and wilful procedure
of the ritualists in imitating the Roman Catholic ritual in
public worship called forth frequent violent disturbances at
their services, and noisy crowds flocked to their churches.
Most frequent and violent were the riots in 1859 and 1860 in the
parish of St. George’s, London, where scarcely any service was
held without disgraceful scenes of hissing, whistling, stamping,
and cries of “No popery.” The offscouring of all London flocked
to the Sunday services as to a public entertainment. Instead of
hymns, street songs were sung, instead of responses blasphemous
cries were shouted forth, while cushions and prayer-books
were hurled at the altar decorations, etc. These unseemly
proceedings were caused by the ritualistic rector, Bryan King,
who had introduced the objectionable ceremonial, and obstinately
continued it in spite of the decided opposition and protests
of his colleague, Mr. Allen. King’s removal in 1860 first
put an end to these disturbances, which police interference
proved utterly unable to check. The ritualistic _Church Union_,
called into existence by these proceedings, was opposed by an
anti-ritualistic _Church Association_, and from both multitudes
of complaints and appeals were brought before the ecclesiastical
and civil tribunals. The first case they brought up was that of
Rev. A. H. MacConochie, of Holborn, who, having been admonished
by the ecclesiastical courts on account of his ritualistic
practices in 1867, appealed to the Privy Council. And although
this court decided in 1869 that all ceremonies not authorized
by the prayer-book are to be regarded as forbidden, he and
his followers continued to act on the principle that whatever
is not there expressly prohibited ought to be permitted. The
_Public Worship Regulation Bill_, introduced by Archbishop Tait,
and passed by Parliament, which legislatively determined the
procedure in ritualistic cases, did not prevent the constant
advance of this movement. The _Court of Arches_ now issued a
suspension against the accused, and condemned them to prison
when they continued to officiate, until they declared themselves
ready to obey or to demit their office. Tooth of Hatcham, Dale of
London, Enraght of Bordesdale, and Green of Miles Platting were
actually sent to prison in 1880. But the first three were soon
liberated by the Court of Appeal finding some technical flaw
in the proceedings against them, while Green, in whose case no
such flaw appeared, lay in confinement for twenty months. The
ritualists still persistently continued their practice, and their
opponents renewed their prosecutions; these were followed by
appeals to the higher courts, presenting of petitions to both the
Houses of Parliament, addresses with vast numbers of signatures
for and against to the Archbishop of Canterbury, to Convocation
which had meanwhile been restored, to the Cabinet, to the
Queen, etc. The result was that many cases were abandoned, some
obnoxious parties transferred elsewhere, and a very few deposed.
§ 202.4. =Liberalism in the Episcopal Church.=--The more liberal
tendency of the broad church party had also many supporters who
scrupled not to pass beyond the traditional bounds of English
orthodoxy. In opposition to the orthodoxy zealousy inculcated
at Oxford, rationalism found favour at the rival university of
Cambridge, and vigorous support was given to the views of the
Tübingen school of Baur in the London _Westminster Review_. And
even in high church Oxford, there were not wanting teachers in
sympathy with the critical and speculative rationalism of Germany.
Great excitement was caused in 1860 by the “_Essays and Reviews_,”
which in seven treatises by so many Oxford professors contested
the traditional apologetics and hermeneutics of English theology,
and set a sublimated rationalism in its place. In Germany these
not very important treatises would probably have excited little
remark, but in the English church they roused an unparalleled
disturbance; more than nine thousand clergymen of the episcopal
church protested against the book, and all the bishops
unanimously condemned it. The excitement had not yet subsided
when from South Africa oil was poured upon the flames. Bishop
Colenso of Natal (died 1883), who had zealously carried on the
mission there, but had openly expressed the conviction that
it is unwise, unscriptural, and unchristian to make repudiation
by Caffres living in polygamy, of all their wives but one, a
condition of baptism, had occasioned still greater offence by
publishing in 1863 in seven vols. a prolix critical disquisition
on the Pentateuch and the Book of Joshua, in which he contested
the authenticity and unconditional credibility of these books
by arguments familiar long ago but now quite antiquated and
overthrown in Germany. During a journey to England undertaken for
his defence he was excommunicated and deposed by a synod of the
South African bishops in Capetown. The Privy Council, as supreme
ecclesiastical court in England, cleared him, as well as the
authors of the Essays, from the charge of heresy. An important
aid for the dissemination of liberal religious views is afforded
by the Hibbert Lectureship. Robert Hibbert (died 1849), a wealthy
private gentleman in London, assigned the yearly interest of
a considerable sum for “the spreading of Christianity in its
simplest form as well as the furthering of the unfettered
exercise of the individual judgment in matters of religion.”
The Hibbert trustees are eighteen laymen who dispense the
revenues in supplementing the salaries of poorly paid clergymen
of liberal views, in providing bursaries for theological students
at home and abroad, and in other such like ways, but since 1878
especially, by advice of distinguished scholars, in the endowment
of annual courses of lectures, afterwards published, on subjects
in the domain of philosophy, biblical criticism, the comparative
science of religion and the history of religion. The first
Hibbert Lecturer was the celebrated Oxford professor, Max Müller,
in 1878. Among other lecturers may be named Renan of Paris in
1880; Kuenen of Leyden in 1882; Pfleiderer of Berlin, in 1885.
The battle waged with great passionateness on both sides since
1869 for and against the removal of the Athanasian Creed, or at
least its anathemas, from the liturgy has not yet been brought
to any decided result.
§ 202.5. =Protestant Dissenters in England.=--Down nearly to the
end of the eighteenth century all the enactments and restrictions
of the Toleration Act of 1689 (§ 155, 3) continued in full force.
But in 1779 the obligation of Protestant dissenters to subscribe
the Thirty-nine Articles was abolished, and the acknowledgment
of the Bible as God’s revealed word substituted. The right of
founding schools of their own, hitherto denied them, was granted
in 1798. In 1813 the Socinians were also included among the
dissenters who should enjoy these privileges. After a severe
struggle the _Corporation and Test Acts_ were set aside in 1826,
affording all dissenters entrance to Parliament and to all civil
offices. The necessity of being married and having their children
baptized in an episcopal church was removed by the Marriage and
Registration Act of 1836 and 1837, and divorce suits were removed
from the ecclesiastical to a civil tribunal in 1857. In 1868
compulsory church rates for the episcopal parish church were
abolished. Lord Russell’s University Bill of 1854, by restricting
subscription of the Thirty-nine Articles to the theological
students, opened the universities of Oxford and Cambridge
to dissenters, while the University Tests Bill of 1871 made
the adherents of all religious confessions eligible for all
university honours and emoluments at both seminaries. Thus
one restriction after another was removed, so that at last the
episcopal church has nothing of her exclusive privileges left
beyond the rank and title of a state church, and the undiminished
possession of all her ancient property, from which her prelates
draw princely revenues.
§ 202.6. =Scotch Marriages in England.=--The saints of the
English Revolution had indeed resolved in 1653 to introduce
civil marriage (§ 162, 1). But the reaction under Cromwell set
this unpopular law aside, and the Restoration made marriage by
an Anglican clergyman, even for dissenters, an indispensable
condition of legal recognition. But in no country, especially
among the higher orders, were private marriages, without the
knowledge and consent of the family, so frequent as here,
and clergymen were always to be found unscrupulous enough to
celebrate such weddings in taverns or other convenient places.
When an end had been put to such irregularities on English soil
by an Act of Parliament of 1753, lovers seeking secret marriage
betook themselves to Scotland. In that country there prevailed,
and still prevails, the theory that a declaration of willingness
on both sides constitutes a perfectly valid marriage. The
Scottish ecclesiastical law indeed requires church proclamation
and ceremony, but failure to observe this requirement is
followed only by a small pecuniary fine. Fugitive English couples
generally made the necessary declaration before a blacksmith
at Gretna-Green, who was also justice of the peace in this
small border village, and were then legitimately married people
according to Scottish law. Only in 1856 were all marriages
performed in this manner without previous residence in Scotland
pronounced by Act of Parliament invalid.
§ 202.7. =The Scottish State Church.=--The Presbyterian Church of
Scotland, from the beginning strictly Calvinistic in constitution,
doctrine and practice, has, generally speaking, preserved
this character. Only in recent times has the endeavour of the
so-called _Moderates_ to introduce a milder type of doctrine won
favour. The Established Church, as a national church properly
so-called and recognised by law, dates from the political union of
England and Scotland in the kingdom of Great Britain in 1707, and
the Anglican Episcopal Church there was then reduced to a feebly
represented dissenting denomination. Patronage, set aside indeed
in the Reformation age, but restored under Queen Anne in 1712,
and since then, in spite of all opposition from the stricter
party, continued, because often misused to secure the intrusion
of inacceptable ministers upon congregations, gave occasion
to repeated secessions. Thus the _Secession Church_ broke off
in 1732, and the _Relief Church_ in 1752, the latter going
beyond the former’s protest against patronage by unconditional
repudiation of Erastianism, _i.e._ the theory of the necessary
connection of Church and State (§ 144, 1), and the assertion
of the spiritual independence of the church, and expressed
firmly the principles of Voluntaryism, _i.e._ the payment of all
ecclesiastical officers, etc., by voluntary contributions. Both
parties united in 1847 in the _United Presbyterian Church_, which
now embraces one-fifth of the population.--Twice that number
joined the secession of the Free Church in 1843. The General
Assembly of the Church of Scotland granted to congregations in
1834 the right of vetoing presentations to vacancies. The civil
courts, however, upheld the absolute right of patrons, and at
the Assembly of 1843 about two hundred of the most distinguished
ministers, with the great Dr. Chalmers (died 1847) at their head,
left the state church, and, as _Non-Intrusionists_, founded
the _Free Church of Scotland_, which at its own cost formed new
parishes and distinguished itself by Christian zeal in every
direction. It differs from the _United Presbyterian Church_ in
restricting its opposition to the abuse of patronage, without
repudiating right off every sort of state aid and endowment as
unevangelical. But even to it the law passed in 1846, granting
to all congregations the right of veto, seemed now no longer
a sufficient motive to return to the state church. Even when
in 1874, parliament, at the call of the government, formally
abolished the rights of patronage through all Scotland and gave
to the congregations the right of choosing their own ministers,
the General Assembly of the Free Church by a great majority
refused to reunite with the state church brought so near
it, because it conceded to the civil courts unwarrantable
interference with its internal affairs, especially the right
of suspending its clergy.[559]
§ 202.8. =Scottish Heresy Cases.=--The Glasgow presbytery
lodged before the United Presbyterian Synod in Edinburgh of
1878 a charge against the Rev. Fergus Ferguson of heresy,
because his teaching was in conflict with the church doctrine
of the atonement in saying that sinners, apart from Christ’s
intervention, would not suffer eternal punishment but extinction,
and that the same fate still lay before unbelievers and the
impenitent. After five days’ violent discussion, the majority of
the synod, while strongly dissenting from his views and urging
him to avoid it in his preaching and catechising, resolved
to retain him in office as having proved his adherence to the
orthodox doctrine of the atonement. But when, at next year’s
synod, the Rev. D. Macrae of Gourock asserted that, in spite of
the Westminster Confession, it was allowable for ministers to
deny the eternity of punishment, and would not promise to preach
otherwise, he was unanimously deposed.--Far more exciting and
long continued were the proceedings begun in the Free Church
in 1876, against Professor Robertson Smith of Aberdeen, who was
charged before his presbytery with offensive statements about
angels, but especially with contradicting the inspiration of
Scripture by contesting the Mosaic authorship of Deuteronomy.
After various proposals of deposition, suspension, rebuke,
acquittal, had been made, the General Assembly of 1880, after
much deliberation and discussion, by a majority found the charge
of heterodoxy not proven, but earnestly exhorted the accused
to greater circumspection and moderation, and the decision was
greeted with thundering applause from the students and waving of
handkerchiefs from the ladies present. But when, very soon after
this acquittal, several other contributions by him appeared
in the _Encyclopædia Britannica_, on the Hebrew Language and
Literature, and Haggai, in the spirit of the Wellhausen criticism
(§ 182, 18), as also an article on Animal Worship among the
Arabians and in the Old Testament, in the _Journal of Philology_,
the _Commission_ sitting in Edinburgh reinstituted proceedings
against him. In October, 1880, Smith vindicated before that court
his scientific attitude toward the Old Testament, maintaining
that a moderate criticism of the biblical books was reconcilable
with the maintenance of their inspired authority. The majority of
the Commission, however, voted for his expulsion from his chair.
Smith protested both against the competence and against the
judgment of the Commission, but declared himself ready to submit
to the judgment of the General Assembly. Meanwhile he accepted
an invitation from Glasgow to deliver public lectures there on
the Old Testament, which were received with extraordinary favour.
This course was published under the title: “_The Old Testament
in the Jewish Church_.” The General Assembly of May, 1881, now
decided by a large majority to remove him from his academical
chair, with retention of his license and his professor’s
salary, which latter, however, Smith declined. But his numerous
sympathizers presented him with a scientific library worth
£3,000, and promised an annual stipend equal to his former salary.
In 1883 he received the appointment as Professor of Arabic in
Cambridge and the large revenues of that office allowed him to
decline the offer of his friends.[560]
§ 202.9. =The Catholic Church in Ireland.=--The Catholic
inhabitants of Ireland under Protestant proprietors, and forced
to pay tithes for the support of the Protestant clergy, were
always deprived of civil rights. In 1809 O’Connell (died 1847),
an agitator of great popular eloquence, placed himself at the
head of the oppressed people, in order in a constitutional way
to secure religious and political freedom and equality. At last,
in 1829, the Emancipation Bill, supported by Peel and Wellington,
was passed, which on the basis of the formal declaration of the
whole Catholic episcopate that papal infallibility and papal
sovereignty in civil matters was not part of the Catholic faith
nor could be joined therewith either in Ireland or anywhere else
in the Catholic world, gave to Catholics admission to parliament
and to all civil and military appointments. But the hated tithes
remained, and were enforced, when refused, by military force.
After long debates in both houses of parliament, the Tithes Bill
was adopted in 1838, which transferred the tithe as a land-tax
from tenants to proprietors, which, however, was only a
postponing of the question. It was thus regarded by O’Connell. He
declared that justice for Ireland could only be got by abolishing
the legislative union with Great Britain existing since 1800,
and restoring her independent parliament. For this purpose
he organized the Repeal Association. In 1840 another no less
powerful popular agitator arose in the person of the Irish
Capuchin, Father Mathew, the apostle of temperance, who with
unparalleled success persuaded thousands of those degraded by
drink to take vows of abstinence from spirituous liquors. He
kept apart from all political agitation, but the fruits of his
exertions were all in its favour. O’Connell in 1843 organized
monster meetings, attended by hundreds of thousands. The
government had him tried, the jury found him guilty, but the
House of Lords quashed the conviction and liberated him from
prison in 1844. The Peel ministry now sought to soothe the
excitement by passing in 1845 the Legacy Act, which allowed
Catholics to hold property in their own names, and the Maynooth
Bill, by which the theological seminary at Maynooth received a
rich endowment from the State. Continued famine, and consequent
emigration of several hundreds of thousands to America and
Australia, relieved Ireland of a considerable portion of its
Catholic population, while Protestant missions by Bible and
tract circulation and by schools had some success in evangelizing
those who remained. On November 5th, 1855, the anniversary of
the Gunpowder Plot, the Redemptorists at Kingstown, near Dublin,
erected and burnt a great bonfire in the public streets of Bibles
which they had seized, and the primate archbishop of Ireland
justified it by reference to the example of the believers at
Ephesus (Acts xix. 19).
§ 202.10. The Fenian movement, originating among the American
Irish, which since 1863 created such terror among the English,
was the result of political rather than religious agitation.
Although this movement failed in its proper end, namely the
complete separation of Ireland from England, it yet forced
upon the government the conviction of the absolute necessity of
meeting the just demands of the Irish by thorough-going reforms
and putting an end to the oppressions which the native farmers
suffered at the hands of foreign landowners, and the grievances
endured by the Catholic church by the maintenance of the Anglican
church established in Ireland. The carrying out of these reforms
was the service rendered by the Gladstone ministry. By the Irish
Land Bill of 1870 the land question was solved according to
the demands of justice, and by the Irish Church Bill of 1869,
which deprived the Anglican church in Ireland of the character
of a state church and put it on the same footing as other
denominations, the church question was similarly settled. The
dignitaries of the Anglican church thus lost their position as
state officials and their seats in the House of Lords. The rich
property of the hitherto established church was calculated and
applied partly to compensating for losses caused by this reform,
partly to creating benevolent institutions for the general
good. But neither the Church Bill, nor the Land Bill, nor the
Universities Bill, which in 1880 founded by state aid a Catholic
university in Dublin, secured the reconciliation of the Irish.
“Eternal hatred of England” was and is the battle cry; “Ireland
for the Irish, and only for them,” is their watchword. In order
to carry out this scheme an Irish “National League” was formed,
and innumerable secret “Moonlighters,” under the supposed
leadership of “Captain Moonshine,” committed atrocities by
burning farm steadings and mutilating cattle, murdering and
massacring by dagger and revolver, petroleum and dynamite, and
directed their operations against the representatives of the
government, against proprietors who sought rent, against tenants
who paid rent, against officials who endeavoured to enforce it,
and against everything that was, or was called, English. In order
to cut at the root of this lawlessness, which by proclamation
of a state of siege was only restricted, not overthrown, the
government of 1881 passed further agrarian reforms: All tenant
rights were to be purchased by the surplus of the fund formed by
the disestablishment of the Irish church, and where this did not
suffice, by state grants, and the right to conclude contracts
for rent and to determine its amount was transferred from the
proprietors to a newly-constituted land court, without whose
permission, after the lapse of the fifteen years’ term, no rent
contract could be made. But even this did not stop almost daily
repeated murders and acts of destruction. The government now
sought the aid of the pope through the mediation of a Catholic
member of parliament on a visit to Rome; but these merely
confidential negotiations led to no considerable result. In May,
1883, the curia, on the occasion of a collection promoted by the
National League as a magnificent national present to the great
(Protestant) leader of the agitation, Mr. Parnell, in a circular
letter, forbad “_proprio motu_,” the bishops in the strictest
manner taking any part in the movement, and urged them to
dissuade their members from doing so. But only Archbishop McCabe
of Dublin (died 1885), from the first an opponent of the League,
issued a pastoral against it to be read in all the pulpits of his
diocese. The other bishops ignored the papal command, and among
the Catholic people the opinion obtained that they owed to the
pope obedience in spiritual but not in political matters. The
collections for the Parnell fund were continued with redoubled
zeal. The attempts of dynamitards, supplied with materials by
their American compatriots, and other agrarian offences have not
yet been finally stopped.
§ 202.11. =The Catholic Church in England and Scotland.=--The
Emancipation Act, passed mainly for the relief of the Irish,
naturally also benefited English Catholics, who in 1791 had been
allowed to hold Catholic services. Led by the numerous accessions
of Puseyites to entertain the most extravagant hopes, Pius IX.
in 1850 issued a bull, by which the Roman Catholic hierarchy
in England was reinstituted with twelve suffragan bishoprics
under one archbishop of Westminster. The bull occasioned great
excitement in the Protestant population (_Anti-Papal Aggression_),
and the _Ecclesiastical Titles Bill_ forbade the use of
ecclesiastical titles not sanctioned by the law of the land.
After the first excitement had passed, the Catholic bishops,
at their head the learned and brilliant and zealous ultramontane
Cardinal Archbishop Wiseman (died 1865), and his successor,
surpassing him, if not in genius and learning, at least in
ultramontane zeal, the Puseyite convert Manning, made a cardinal
in 1875, used with impunity their condemned titles, until in 1871
the Ecclesiastical Titles Bill was formally revoked by act of
parliament. Conversions in noble families were particularly
numerous in the later decades. Since 1850 the number of Catholics
in England and Scotland has quadrupled. This has been caused in
great part by Irish emigration, for the middle and lower ranks of
the English have scarcely been affected by the conversion fever,
which as the latest form of the fitful humour of the English had
so rich a harvest in the families of the nobility. In 1780 all
London had only one Catholic place of worship, the chapel of the
Sardinian embassy, which on June 2nd of that year was wrecked and
burnt by a raging mob. Now the English capital has two episcopal
dioceses, ninety-four Catholic churches and chapels (besides
about 900 Anglican churches) with 313 clergymen, and forty-four
cloisters. In the House of Lords sit twenty-eight Roman Catholic
peers, and in both countries there are forty-seven Catholic
baronets. Since 1847 England has a specifically Catholic
university at Kensington, under the episcopate, and with the
pope as its supreme head, which, however, with its poor staff
of teachers and its expensive course attracts but a few of
the Catholic youth of England. Since the Anti-Papal Aggression
of 1850 failed, the Protestant people have shown themselves
comparatively indifferent to such assumptions of the papacy.--In
the Act of Union of 1707 (§ 155, 3), =Scotland= was guaranteed
the absolute exclusion of every sort of Roman Catholic hierarchy
for all time to come. But in recent times the number of its
Catholic inhabitants so greatly increased, that Pius IX. in his
last years, not unaided by the English government, eagerly urged
the re-establishment of the hierarchy, and Leo XIII. was able at
his first consistory of the college of cardinals in March, 1878,
to make appointments to the two newly-erected archdioceses and
their bishoprics. On the following Easter Sunday the allocution
relating thereto was read in all Catholic churches in Scotland.
The restoration was thus carried out in spite of all protests and
demonstrations of Scottish Protestants.
§ 202.12. =German Lutheran Congregations in Australia.=--Besides
the dominant Anglican church, emigration has led to the formation
of a considerable number of German Lutheran congregations, which
are distributed in three synods.
1. The Victoria Synod was founded in 1852 by pastor Göthe.
It adopted at first the union platform, but subsequently
attached itself more decidedly to the Lutheran confession.
2. Pastor Karch, who in 1830 emigrated with a number of Prussian
Lutherans, in order to avoid the union, laid the foundation
of the Immanuel Synod. Since 1875 it has been supplied with
preachers from the missionary institute of Neuendettelsau.
It is distinguished by its missionary zeal for the conversion
of the natives, pursues with special interest the study of
the prophetic word, and makes chiliasm an open question which
need not rend the church.
3. The South Australian Synod, on the other hand, is the decided
opponent of any sort of chiliasm, and has assumed an attitude
of violent antagonism to the Immanuel Synod.
§ 203. FRANCE.
In France, lauded as the eldest daughter of the church after the
overthrow of the first Empire, ultramontanism, under the secret and
open co-operation of the Jesuits, has ever arisen with revived youth
and vigour out of all the political convulsions which have since passed
over the land. And though indeed Gallicanism seemed again to obtain
strength under the second Empire and, down to the close of that period,
found many able champions among learned theologians like Bishop Maret
(§ 189, 1), and even among exalted prelates like the noble Archbishop
Darboy of Paris, a martyr of his office under the Commune (§ 212, 4),
its influence faded gradually, and in the latest phase of France’s
political development, the third republic, seems utterly to have
disappeared, so that even the “_Kulturkampf_” which broke out in 1879
could not give it life again.--The number of Protestant churches and
church members, in spite of bloody persecutions during the Bourbon
restoration, and many arbitrary restrictions by Catholic prefects under
the citizen king and the second Empire, by numerous accessions of whole
congregations and groups of congregations through zealous evangelization
efforts, by means of school instruction, itinerant preaching, and Bible
colportage, has increased during the century fourfold. In the Reformed
church the opposition of methodistically tinctured orthodoxy, reinforced
from England and French Switzerland, and rationalistic freethinking,
led to sharp conflicts. Also in the Lutheran church, more strongly
influenced by Germany, similar discussions arose, but a more
conciliatory spirit prevailed and violent struggles were avoided.
§ 203.1. =The French Church under Napoleon I.=--In 1801 Napoleon
as Consul concluded with Pius VII. a =Concordat= which, adopting
the concordat of Francis I. (§ 110, 14), abandoning the pragmatic
sanction of Bourges, and only haggling about the limits to be
fixed for the two powers, gave no consideration to the idea of
a wholesome internal reform of the French Church: Catholicism is
the acknowledged religion of the majority of the French people;
the church property belongs to the state, with the obligation to
maintain the clergy and ordinances; the clergy who had taken the
oath and those who were expatriated were all to resign, but were
eligible for election; new boundaries were to be marked out for
the episcopal dioceses with reference to the political divisions
of the country; the government elects and the pope confirms the
bishops, and these, with approval of the government, appoint the
priests. The one-sided =Organic Articles= of the first Consul of
1802, which were annexed to the publication of the Concordat as
a code of explanatory regulations, made any proclamation of papal
orders and decrees of all foreign councils dependent on previous
permission of the government, as also the calling of synods and
consultative assemblies of the clergy. They further ordained that
all official services of the clergy should be gratuitous, and
transferred to the civil council the right and duty of strict
inquiry into any clerical breach of civil laws and any misuse
or excessive exercise of clerical authority. The thirty-first
article, however, created that unhappy order of _Desservants_
or curates, the result of which was that interim appointments
were made to most of the benefices in order to squeeze state pay
in supplement to the inadequate ecclesiastical endowments, and
so their holders were at the absolute mercy of the bishops who
could transport or dispense with them at any moment. For further
particulars about the friendly and hostile relations of Napoleon
and the pope, see § 185, 1. By an imperial decree of 1810, the
four articles of the Gallican Church (§ 156, 3) were made laws
of the Empire; and a French National Council of 1811 sought to
complete the reconstruction of the church according to Napoleon’s
ideas, but proved utterly incapable for such a task, and was
therefore dissolved by the emperor himself.--To pacify the
Protestants, dissatisfied with the Concordat, amid flattering
acknowledgment of their services to the state, to science and
to the arts, an appendix was attached to the Organic Articles,
securing to them liberty of religious worship and political and
municipal equality with Catholics. For training ministers for the
Reformed Church a theological seminary was founded at Montauban,
and for Lutherans an academy with a seminary at Strassburg.
Napoleon also afterwards proved himself on every occasion ready
to help the Protestants. He was equally forward in recognising
public opinion in France. The National Institute of France in
1804 offered a prize for an essay on the influence of Luther’s
Reformation on the formation and advance of European national
life, and awarded it to the treatise of the Catholic physician
Villers (_Essai sur l’influence de la réf. de Luther_, etc.),
which in all respects glorified Protestantism. Even the Catholic
clergy during the first Empire exhibited an easy temper and
tolerance such as was never shown before or since. The obligatory
civil marriage law introduced by the Revolution in 1792, obtained
place in the _Code Napoléon_ in 1804, and was with it introduced
in Belgium and the provinces of the Rhine.[561]
§ 203.2. =The Restoration and the Citizen Kingdom.=--The =Charter=
of the Bourbon Restoration under Louis XVIII. (1814-1824) and
Charles X. (1824-1830) made Catholicism the state religion and
granted toleration and state protection to the other confessions.
A new concordat concluded with Pius VII. in 1817, by which that
of Napoleon of 1801, with the Organic Articles of the following
year, were abrogated, and the state of matters previous to 1789
restored, was so vigorously opposed by the nation, that the
ministry were obliged to withdraw the measure introduced in both
chambers for giving it legislative sanction. Ultramontanism,
however, in its boldest form, steadily favoured by the
government, soon prevailed among the clergy to such an extent
that any inclination to Gallicanism was denounced as heresy and
intolerance of Protestantism lauded as piety. In southern France
the rekindled hatred of the Catholic mob against the Reformed
broke out in 1815 in brutal and bloody persecution. The
government kept silence till the indignation of Europe obliged
it to put down the atrocities, but the offenders were left
unpunished. Connivance in such lawlessness on the part of the
government contributed largely to its overthrow in the July
revolution of 1830. The Catholic Church then lost again the
privilege of a state religion, and the hitherto persecuted and
oppressed Protestants obtained equal rights with the Catholics.
But even under the new constitutional government of Orleans,
ultramontanism soon reasserted itself. The Protestants had to
complain of much injury and injustice from Catholic prefects,
and the Protestant minister Guizot claimed for France the
protectorate of the whole Catholic world. The Reformed Church
meanwhile flourished, though vacillating between methodistic
narrowness and rationalistic shallowness, growing both inwardly
and outwardly, and also the Lutheran communities, which outside
of Alsace were only thinly scattered, enjoyed great prosperity.
In the February revolution of 1848 the Catholic clergy readily
yielded obedience to the citizen king Louis Philippe, and,
on the ground that the Catholic church is suited to any form
of government which only grants liberty to the church, did
not refuse their benediction to the tree of freedom with the
sovereign people at the barricades.
§ 203.3. =The Catholic Church under Napoleon III.=--Louis
Napoleon, as president of the new republic (1848-1852), and still
more decidedly as emperor (1852-1870), inclined to follow the
traditions of his uncle, regarded the concordat of 1801 as still
legally in force and seemed specially anxious to arouse zeal
for the Gallican liberties. Although his bayonets secured the
pope’s return to Rome (§ 185, 2) and even afterwards supported
his authority there, he did not fulfil the heart’s wish of the
emperor by the people’s grace to place the imperial crown upon
his head in his own person. Severely strained relations between
the imperial court and the episcopate resulted in 1860 from a
pamphlet against the papacy inspired by the government (§ 185, 3).
Dupanloup, Bishop of Orleans, was one of the oldest and most
determined defenders of the interests of the papal see, and from
Poitiers the emperor was pretty openly characterized as a second
Pilate. The government did not venture directly to interfere
between the two, but reminded the bishops that the emperor’s
differences with the pope referred only to temporal affairs. It
also forbade the forming of separate societies for the collecting
of Peter’s pence, and dissolved the societies of St. Vincent,
instituted for benevolent purposes, but misused for ultramontane
agitations. When Archbishop Desprez of Toulouse, like his
predecessors in 1662 and 1762, on May 16th, 1862, with pompous
phrases of piety appointed the jubilee festival of the “_fait
glorieux_,” by which at Toulouse three hundred years before,
by means of shameful treachery and base breach of pledges 4,000
Protestants were murdered (§ 139, 15), a shout of indignation
rose from almost all French journals and the government forbade
the ceremonial. It also refused permission to proclaim the papal
encyclical with the syllabus (§ 185, 2) and condemned several
bishops who disobeyed for misuse of their office. Under the
influence of the ultramontane empress Eugenie, however, the
relation of the government to the curia and the higher clergy of
the empire, since the one could not do without the other, became
more friendly and intimate, till the day of Sedan, September 2nd,
1870, put an end to the Napoleonic empire and the temporal power
of the papacy which it had maintained.
§ 203.4. =The Protestant Churches under Napoleon III.=--After the
revolution of 1848, the Lutherans at an assembly in Strassburg
and the Reformed in Paris consulted about a new organization of
their churches. But as the latter resolved in order to maintain
constitutional union amid doctrinal diversity, entirely to set
aside symbol and dogma, pastor Fr. Monod and Count Gasparin,
the noble defenders of French Protestantism, lodged a protest,
and with thirty congregations of the strict party constituted
a new council at Paris in 1849, independent of the state, as the
_Union des églises évangéliques de France_ with biennial synods.
Louis Napoleon gave to the Reformed Church a central council in
Paris with consistories and presbyteries; to the Lutheran, an
annual general consistory as a legislative court and a standing
directory as an administrative court. The Lutheran theological
faculty at Strassburg with its vigorous unconfessional science
represents the westernmost school of Schleiermacher’s theology.
The academy at Montauban, with Adolph Monod at its head,
represents Reformed orthodoxy, not strictly confessional but
coloured by methodistic piety, and Coquerel in Paris, was the
head of the rationalistic party of the Reformed national church.
The lead in the reaction against rationalism since 1830 has
been taken by the _Société évangélique_ at Paris, which, aiming
at the Protestantising of France, and using for this end Bible
colportage, tract distribution, the sending out of evangelists,
school instruction, etc., has developed an extraordinarily
restless and successful activity. It has been powerfully
supported by the evangelical society of Geneva. The number of
Protestant clergymen in France has steadily risen, and almost
every year in and out of the Catholic population new evangelical
congregations have been formed, in spite of endless difficulties
put in the way by Catholic courts. In Strassburg, in 1854, the
Jesuits persuaded the Catholic prefects to recall and arrest
the revenues of the former St. Thomas institute, which since the
Reformation had been applied to the maintenance of a Protestant
gymnasium. The prefect of Paris, however, was instructed to
desist from his claims. In the speech from the throne in 1858,
the emperor declared that the government secured for Protestants
full liberty of worship, without forgetting, however, that
Catholicism is the religion of the majority, and the _Moniteur_
commented on this imperial speech so evidently in the spirit
of the _Univers_, that the prefects could not be in doubt how
to understand it. By General Espinasse, who, after the Orsini
attempt on the emperor’s life in 1858, officiated for a long
time as Minister of the Interior, the prefects were expressly
instructed, to extend their espionage of the ill-affected press
to the proceedings of the evangelical societies, and to prohibit
the colportage of Protestant Bibles. On a change of minister,
however, the latter enactment was withdrawn, and only agents
of foreign Bible societies were interfered with. By an imperial
decree of 1859, the right of permitting of the opening of new
Protestant churches and chapels was taken from the local courts
and transferred to the imperial council of state. For every
Protestant congregation, so soon as it numbered 400 souls, the
legal state salary for the clergymen would be paid.
§ 203.5. =The Catholic Church in the Third French
Republic.=--The Gambetta government, the national vindication
of the 4th September, 1870, resigned its power in February, 1871,
into the hands of the National Assembly elected by the whole
nation, which, although through clerical influence upon the
electors predominantly monarchical and clerical, appointed
the old Voltairean Thiers (died, 1877), formerly ministerial
president under Louis Philippe, as alone qualified for the
difficult post of president of the republic. In the necessary
second vote, indeed, there was a considerable increase of the
republican and as such thoroughly anti-clerical party; but even
in its ranks it was admitted that the establishment of France
as leader of all Europe in the fight against ultramontanism
and the co-operation therein of the clergy were the absolutely
indispensable means for the political _Revanche_, after which
the hearts of all Frenchmen longed as the hart for the water
streams. A petition from five bishops and other dignitaries
to the National Assembly for the restoration of the temporal
power of the pope was set aside as inopportune. But Archbishop
Guibert of Paris, without asking the government, proclaimed the
infallibility dogma, and the minister of instruction, Jules Simon,
contented himself with warning the episcopate in a friendly way
against any further illegal steps of that kind. The clerical
party was also successful in its protest to the National Assembly
against the education law, which by raising the standard of
instruction, placing it under the supervision of the state and
making inspection of schools obligatory, proposed to put an end
to the terrible ignorance of the French people as the chief cause
of their deep decay. Bishop Dupanloup of Orleans was appointed
president of the commission for examining it, and so its fate
was sealed. Meanwhile the people, by frequent manifestations of
the Virgin, were roused to a high pitch of religious excitement.
Crowds of pilgrims encouraged by miraculous healings flocked
to our Lady of La Salette, at Lourdes, etc. (§ 188, 6), and the
consecration of _Notre Dame de la Deliverance_ at Bayeux was
celebrated as a brilliant national festival. When in May, 1873,
Thiers gave way before the machinations of his opponents and,
under the new president, Marshal Macmahon, the thoroughly
clerical ministry of the Duc de Broglie got the helm of affairs,
the pilgrimage craze, mariolatry and ultramontane piety, aided
by the prefects and mayors, increased to an unparalleled extent
among all ranks. Under the Buffet ministry of 1875 the influence
of clericalism was unabated. To him it owed its most important
acquisition, the right of creating free Catholic universities
wholly independent of the State, with the privilege of conferring
degrees. But when in 1876 the new elections for the National
Assembly gave an anti-clerical majority, Buffet was obliged to
resign. The new Dufaure ministry, with the Protestant Waddington
as minister of instruction, declared indeed that it continued
the liberty of instruction, but decidedly refused the right
of conferring degrees. The proposal to this effect met with
the hearty support of the new chamber of deputies. But all the
greater was the jubilation of the clericals when the senate by
a small majority refused its consent, and all the more eagerly
was the founding of new free Catholic universities carried on,
at Paris, Angers, Lyons, Lille and Toulouse, but notwithstanding
every effort they only attracted a very small number of
scholars,--in 1879, when they flourished most, at all the five
there were only 742 students.
§ 203.6. =The French “Kulturkampf,” 1880.=--The Dufaure ministry
was succeeded in December, 1876, by the semi-liberal ministry
of Jules Simon, which again was driven out in a summary fashion
by president Macmahon on May 16th, 1877, and replaced, on the
dissolution of the chamber, by a clerical ministry under Duc
de Broglie. But in the newly elected chamber the republican
anti-clerical majority was so overwhelming that Macmahon, on
January 30th, 1879, abandoning his motto of government, _J’y
suis et j’y reste_, was at last obliged, between the alternatives
offered him by Gambetta, _Se soumettre ou se démettre_, to choose
the latter. His successor was Grévy, president of the Chamber,
who entrusted the protestant Waddington with the forming of a new
ministry in which Jules Ferry was minister of instruction. Ferry
brought in a bill in March to abolish the representation of the
clergy in the High Council of Education by four archiepiscopal
deputies, continuing indeed the free Catholic universities,
but requiring their students to enroll in a state university
which alone could hold examinations and give degrees, and
finally enacting by Article 7 that the right of teaching in all
educational institutions should be refused to members of all
religious orders and congregations not recognised by the state.
The chamber deputies accepted this bill without amendment on
July 9th, but the senate on March 7th, 1880, after passing
six articles refused to adopt the seventh. On March 29th, the
president of the republic issued on his own authority two decrees,
based indeed upon earlier enactments (1789-1852), gone into
desuetude indeed, but never abrogated (§ 186, 2), demanded the
dissolution of the Society of Jesus, containing 1,480 members
in 56 institutions, within three months, and insisted that the
orders and congregations not recognised by the State, embracing
14,033 sisters in 602 institutions and 7,444 brothers in 384
institutions, in the same time should by production of their
statutes and rules seek formal recognition or else be broken
up. A storm of protests on the part of the bishops greeted these
“_March Decrees_,” and riotous demonstrations made before the
Minister of Instruction at his residence at Lille expressed the
protests of the students of the Catholic university there. The
pope now broke his reserve and by a nuncio sent the president
of the republic a holograph letter in which he declared that he
must interfere on behalf of the Jesuits and the threatened orders,
because they were indispensably necessary to the wellbeing of
the church. He did not wish that they should have recourse to
unlawful means, but it must be understood that they would appeal
to the courts for protection of their threatened civil liberties.
When therefore on the morning of June 30th the police began their
work of expelling the Jesuits from their houses, these lodged a
complaint before the courts of invasion of their domestic peace
and infringement of their personal liberty. Their schools were
closed on August 31st, the end of the school year; meanwhile
they had taken the precaution to transfer most of them to such as
would be ready afterwards to restore them. The enforcement of the
second of the March Decrees against the other orders was delayed
for a while. A compromise proposed by the episcopate, favoured
by the pope and not absolutely rejected even by the minister
Freycinet, Waddington’s successor, according to which instead
of the required application for recognition all these orders
should sign a declaration of loyalty, undertaking to avoid all
participation in political affairs and to do nothing opposed to
existing order, brought about the overthrow of this ministry in
September, 1880, by the machinations from other motives of the
president of the chamber and latent dictator, Leon Gambetta. At
the head of the new ministry was Ferry, who held the portfolio of
instruction, and under him the carrying out of the second March
Decree began on October 16th, 1880. Up to the meeting of the
chamber in November 261 monasteries had been vacated; the rest,
as from the first all female congregations, were spared, so that
France with its colonies and mission stations still number
4,288 male and 14,990 female settlements of spiritual orders,
the former with about 32,000, the latter with about 166,200
inmates.--The expulsion of the Jesuits, as well as the more
recent of the other orders, was, however, stoutly opposed. The
police told off for this duty found doors shut and barricaded
against them or defended by fanatical peasants and mobs of
shrieking women, so that they had often to be stormed and broken
up by the military. Still more threatening than this opposition
was the reaction which began to assert itself at the instance
of the almost thoroughly ultramontane jurists of the country, a
survival of the times of Napoleon III. and Macmahon. An advocate
Rousse, who publicly stated the opinion that the March Decrees
were illegal and therefore not binding, was supported by 2,000
attorneys and over 200 corporations of attorneys and by many
distinguished university jurists. More than 200 state officials
and many judiciary and police officers, together with several
officers of the army, tendered their resignations so as to avoid
taking part in the execution of the decrees. When it became clear
that unfavourable verdicts would be given by the courts invoked
by the Jesuits against the executors of the decree, as indeed was
soon actually done by several courts, the government lodged an
appeal against their competence before the tribunal of conflicts
which also actually in regard to all such cases pronounced them
incompetent and their decisions therefore null and void; but the
complainers insisted that their complaints should be taken to a
Council of State as the only court suitable to deal with charges
against officials, which, as might be expected, was not done.
§ 203.7. In the future course of the French “Kulturkampf” the
most important proceedings of the government were the following:
The abolition of the institute of military chaplains, highly
serviceable in ultramontanizing the officers, was carried out
in 1880, as well as the requirement that the clergy and teachers
should give military service for one year, and subsequently also
military escorts to the Corpus Christi procession were forbidden.
In 1880 the Municipal Council of Paris, with the concurrence of
the prefect of the Seine, forbad the continuance of the beautiful
building of the church of the Heart of Jesus begun in 1875 on
Montmartre (§ 188, 12), confiscating the site that had been
granted for it. In 1881 the churchyards were relieved of their
denominational character, and the following year the right of
managing them, with permission of merely civil interment without
the aid of a clergyman, was transferred from the ecclesiastical
to the civil authorities. By introducing in 1880 high schools
for girls with boarding establishments an end was put to the
education of girls of the upper ranks in nunneries, which had
hitherto been the almost exclusive practice. Far more sweeping
was the School Act brought in by the radical minister of worship,
Paul Bert, and first enforced in October, 1886, which made
attendance compulsory, relegated religious instruction wholly to
the church and home, and absolutely excluded all the clergy from
the right of giving any sort of instruction in the public schools,
and demanded the removal of all crucifixes and other religious
symbols from the school buildings. In December, 1884, a tax was
imposed on the property of all religious orders, also the state
allowance for the five Catholic seminaries with only thirty-seven
students was withdrawn, and many other important deductions made
upon the budget for Catholic worship, which at first the senate
opposed, but at last agreed to. The Divorce Bill frequently
introduced since 1881, which permitted parties to marry again,
and gave disposal of the matter to the civil court, got the
assent of the senate only in the end of July, 1884. The clericals
were also greatly offended by the decree passed in May, 1885,
which closed the church of St. Genoveva, the former Pantheon,
as a place of worship and made it again a burial place for
distinguished Frenchmen. This resolution was first carried out
by placing there the remains of Victor Hugo. Amid these and many
other injuries to its interests the Roman curia, concentrating
all its energies upon the German “Kulturkampf,” endeavoured to
keep things back in a moderate way. Yet in July, 1883, the pope
addressed to president Grévy a friendly but earnest remonstrance,
which he treated simply as a private letter and, without
communicating it officially to his cabinet, answered that apart
from parliament he could not act, but that so far as he and
his ministry were able they would seek to avoid conflict with
the holy see. And in fact the government, especially after the
overthrow of the Gambetta ministry in 1882, often successfully
opposed the proposal of the radical chamber, _e.g._ the
separation of church and state, the abrogation of the concordat,
the recall of the embassy to the Vatican, the abolition of
religious oaths in the proceedings of the courts, the stopping of
the state subvention of a million francs for payment of salaries
in seminaries for priests, etc.
§ 203.8. =The Protestant Churches under the Third
Republic.=--Since the French Reformed began to emulate their
Catholic countrymen in wild Chauvinism, fanatical hatred of
Germany and unreasoning enthusiasm for the _Revanche_, they
were left by the advancing clerical party unmolested in respect
of life, confession and worship during the time of war. The
Lutherans on the other hand, consisting, although on French
territory, mainly of German emigrants and settlers, even their
French members not so disposed to Chauvinistic extravagance,
were obliged to atone for this double offence by expulsion from
house and home and by various injuries to their ecclesiastical
interests. After the conclusion of peace, especially under
Thiers’ moderate government, this fanaticism gradually cooled
down, so that the expelled Germans returned and the churches and
institutions that had been destroyed were restored, so far as
means would allow. By the decree of Waddington, the minister
of instruction, of date March 27th, 1877, instead of the
theological faculty of Strassburg, now lost for the French
Lutheran church, one for both Protestant churches was founded
in Paris.--The =Lutheran Church=, in consequence of the cession
of Alsace-Lorraine, had only sixty-four out of 278 pastorates
and six out of forty-four consistories remaining. At the general
synod convened at Paris, in July, 1872, by the government for
reorganising the Lutheran church it was resolved: To form two
inspectorates independent of each other--Paris, predominantly
orthodox, Mömpelgard, predominantly liberal; the general assembly,
which meets every third year alternately at Mömpelgard and Paris,
to consist of delegates from both. The two inspectorates are to
correspond in administrative matters directly with the minister
of public instruction, but in everything referring to confession,
doctrine, worship and discipline, the general assembly is the
supreme authority. In regard to the confessional question they
agreed to the statement, that the holy Scripture is the supreme
authority in matters of faith, and the Augsburg Confession
the basis of the legal constitution of the church. An express
undertaking on the part of the clergy to this effect is not,
however, insisted upon. Only in 1879 could this constitution
obtain legal sanction by the State, and that only after
considerable modification in the direction of liberalism,
especially in reference to electoral qualification. In
consequence of this the first ordinary general assembly held
in Paris in May, 1881, found both parties in a conciliatory
mood.--=The Reformed Church=, with about 500 pastorates and
105 consistories, summoned by order of government a newly
constituted General Assembly at Paris, in June, 1872. Prominent
among the leaders of the orthodox party was the aged ex-minister
Guizot; the leaders of the liberals were Coquerel and Colani.
The former supported the proposal of Professor Bois of Montauban,
who insisted on the frank and full confession of holy Scripture
as the sovereign authority in matters of faith, of Christ as
the only Son of God, and of justification by faith as the legal
basis of instruction, worship and discipline; while the latter
protested against every attempt to lay down an obligatory and
exclusive confession. The orthodox party prevailed and the
dissenters who would not yield were struck off the voting lists.
When now in consequence of the complaint of the liberal party
the summoning of an ordinary general assembly was refused by
the government, the orthodox party repeatedly met in “official”
provincial and general assemblies without state sanction. The
council of state then declared all decisions regarding voting
qualifications passed by the synod of 1872 to be null and void,
the minister of worship, Ferry, ordered the readmission of
electors struck from the lists, and his successor Bert legalized,
by a decree of March 25th, 1882, the division of the Parisian
consistorial circuit into two independent consistories of Paris
and Versailles, moved for by the liberal party but opposed by the
orthodox. But upon the elections for the new consistory of Paris,
ordered in spite of all protests, and for the presbyteries of the
eight parishes assigned to it, contrary to all expectation, in
seven of these the elections with great majorities were in favour
of the orthodox, and the first official document issued by the
new consistory was a solemn protest against the decree to which
it owed its existence. Under such circumstances the government
as well as the liberal party had no desire for the calling of an
official general assembly, and the latter resolved at a general
assembly at Nimes, in October, 1882, to institute official
synods of their own for consultation and protection of their
own interests.
§ 204. ITALY.
In Italy matters returned to their old position after the
restoration of 1814. But liberalism, aiming at the liberty and unity
of Italy, gained the mastery, and where for the time it prevailed, the
Jesuits were expelled, and the power of the clergy restricted; where
it failed, both came back with greatly increased importance. The arms
of Austria and subsequently also of France stamped out on all sides
the revolutionary movements. Pius IX., who at first was not indisposed,
contrary to all traditions of the papacy, to put himself at the head of
the national party, was obliged bitterly to regret his dealings with the
liberals (§ 185, 2). Sardinia, Modena and Naples put the severest strain
upon the bow of the restoration, while Parma and Tuscany distinguished
themselves by adopting liberal measures in a moderate degree. Sardinia,
however, in 1840 came to a better mind. Charles Albert first broke
ground with a more liberal constitution, and in 1848 proclaimed himself
the deliverer of Italy, but yielded to the arms of Austria. His son
Victor Emanuel II. succeeded amid singularly favourable circumstances
in uniting the whole peninsula under his sceptre as a united kingdom of
Italy governed by liberal institutions.
§ 204.1. =The Kingdom of Sardinia.=--Victor Emanuel I. after
the restoration had nothing else to do but to recall the Jesuits,
to hand over to them the whole management of the schools, and,
guided and led by them in everything, to restore the church and
state to the condition prevailing before 1789. Charles Felix
(1821-1831) carried still further the absolutist-reactionary
endeavours of his predecessor, and even Charles Albert (1831-1849)
refused for a long time to realize the hopes which the liberal
party had previously placed in him. Only in the second decade
of his reign did he begin gradually to display a more liberal
tendency, and at last in 1848 when, in consequence of the French
Revolution, Lombardy rose against the Austrian rule, he placed
himself at the head of the national movement for freeing Italy
from the yoke of strangers. But the king gloried in as “the sword
of Italy” was defeated and obliged to abdicate. Victor Emanuel II.
(1849-1878) allowed meanwhile the liberal constitution of his
father to remain and indeed carried it out to the utmost. The
minister of justice, Siccardi, proposed a new legislative code
which abolished all clerical jurisdiction in civil and criminal
proceedings, as also the right of asylum and of exacting
tithes, the latter with moderate compensation. It was passed
by parliament and subscribed by the king in 1850. The clergy,
with archbishop Fransoni of Turin at their head, protested with
all their might against these sacrilegious encroachments on the
rights of the church. Fransoni was on this account committed for
a month to prison and, when he refused the last sacrament to a
minister, was regularly sentenced to deposition and banishment
from the country. Pius IX. thwarted all attempts to obtain a
new concordat. But the government went recklessly forward. As
Fransoni from his exile in France continued his agitation, all
the property of the archiepiscopal chair was in 1854 sequestered
and a number of cloisters were closed. Soon all penalties in
the penal code for spreading non-Catholic doctrines were struck
out and non-Catholic soldiers freed from compulsory attendance
at mass on Sundays and festivals. The chief blow now fell on
March 2nd, 1855, in the Cloister Act, which abolished all orders
and cloisters not devoted to preaching, teaching, and nursing
the sick. In consequence 331 out of 605 cloisters were shut up.
The pope ceased not to condemn all these sacrilegious and church
robbing acts, and when his threats were without result, thundered
the great excommunication in July, 1855, against all originators,
aiders, and abettors of such deeds. Among the masses this indeed
caused some excitement, but it never came to an explosion.
§ 204.2. =The Kingdom of Italy.=--Amid such vigorous progress
the year 1859 came round with its fateful Franco-Italian war.
The French alliance had not indeed, as it promised, made Italy
free to the Adriatic, but by the peace of Villafranca the whole
of Lombardy was given to the kingdom of Sardinia as a present
from the emperor of the French. In the same year by popular vote
Tuscany, including Modena and Parma, and in the following year
the kingdom of the two Sicilies, as well as the three provinces
of the States of the Church, revolted and were annexed, so that
the new kingdom of Italy embraced the whole of the peninsula,
with the exception of Venice, Rome and the Campagna. Prussia’s
remarkable successes in the seven days’ German war of 1866 shook
Venice like ripe fruit into the lap of her Italian ally, and the
day of Sedan, 1870, prepared the way for the addition of Rome
and the Campagna (§ 185, 3).--In Lombardy and then also in
Venice, immediately after they had been taken possession of, the
concordat with Austria was abrogated and the Jesuits expelled.
Ecclesiastical tithes on the produce of the soil were abolished
throughout the whole kingdom, begging was forbidden the mendicant
friars as unworthy of a spiritual order, ecclesiastical property
was put under state control and the support of the clergy
provided for by state grants. In 1867 the government began
the appropriation and conversion of the church property; in
1870 all religious orders were dissolved, with exception for
the time being of those in Rome, wherever they did not engage
in educational and other useful works. In May, 1873, this law
was extended to the Roman province, only it was not to be applied
to the generals of orders in Rome. Nuns and some monks were
also allowed to remain in their cloisters situated in unpeopled
districts. The amount of state pensions paid to monks and nuns
reached in 1882 the sum of eleven million lire, at the rate
of 330 lire for each person. The abolition of the theological
faculties in ten Italian universities in 1873, because these
altogether had only six students of theology, was regarded by
the curia rather as a victory than a defeat. The newly appointed
bishops were forbidden by the pope to produce their credentials
for inspection in order to obtain their salaries from the
government. The loss of temporalities thus occasioned was made
up by Pius IX. out of Peter’s pence flowing in so abundantly from
abroad; each bishop receiving 500 and each archbishop 700 lire in
the month. Leo XIII., however, felt obliged in 1879, owing to the
great decrease in the Peter’s pence contributions, to cancel this
enactment and to permit the bishops to accept the state allowance.
In consequence of the civil marriage law passed in 1866 having
been altogether ignored by the clergy, nearly 400,000 marriages
had down to the close of 1878 received only ecclesiastical
sanction, and the offspring of such parties would be regarded
in the eye of the law as illegitimate. To obviate this difficulty
a law was passed in May, 1879, which insisted that in all cases
civil marriage must precede the ecclesiastical ceremony, and
clergymen, witnesses and parties engaging in an illegal marriage
should suffer three or six months’ imprisonment; but all
marriages contracted in accordance merely with church forms
before the passing of this law might be legitimized by being
entered on the civil register.--Finally in January, 1884, the
controversy pending since 1873 as to whether the rich property of
the Roman propaganda (§ 156, 9) amounting to twenty million lire
should be converted into state consols was decided by the supreme
court in favour of the curia, which had pronounced these funds
international because consisting of presents and contributions
from all lands. But not only was the revenue of the propaganda
subjected to a heavy tax, but also all increase of its property
forbidden. In vain did the pope by his nuncios call for the
intervention of foreign nations. None of these were inclined to
meddle in the internal affairs of Italy. The curia now devised
the plan of affiliating a number of societies outside of Italy to
the propaganda for receiving and administering donations and
presents.
§ 204.3. =The Evangelization of Italy.=--Emigrant Protestants
of various nationalities had at an early date, by the silent
sufferance of the respective governments, formed small
evangelical congregations in some of the Italian cities;
in Venice and Leghorn during the seventeenth century, at Bergamo
in 1807, at Florence in 1826, at Milan in 1847. Also by aid of
the diplomatic intervention of Prussia and England, the erection
of Protestant chapels for the embassy was allowed at Rome in 1819,
at Naples in 1825, and at Florence in 1826. When in 1848 Italy’s
hopes from the liberal tendencies of Pius IX. were so bitterly
disappointed, Protestant sympathies began to spread far and
wide through the land, even among native Catholics, fostered by
English missionaries, Bibles and tracts, which the governments
sought in vain to check by prisons, penitentiaries and exile.
Persecution began in 1851 in Tuscany, where, in spite of the
liberty of faith and worship guaranteed by the constitution of
1848, Tuscan subjects taking part in the Italian services in the
chapel of the Prussian embassy at Florence were punished with
six months’ hard labour, and in the following year the pious pair
Francesco and Rosa Madiai were sentenced to four years’ rigorous
punishment in a penitentiary for the crime of having edified
themselves and their household by reading the Bible. In vain did
the Evangelical Alliance remonstrate (§ 178, 3), in vain did even
the king of Prussia intercede. But when, stirred up by public
opinion in England, the English premier Lord Palmerston offered
to secure the requirement of Christian humanity by means of
British ships of war, the grand-duke got rid of both martyrs by
banishing them from the country in 1853. In proportion as the
union of Italy under Victor Emanuel II. advanced, the field for
evangelistic effort and the powers devoted thereto increased.
So it was too since 1860 in Southern Italy. But when in 1866 a
Protestant congregation began to be formed at Barletta in Naples,
a fanatical priest roused a popular mob in which seventeen
persons were killed and torn in pieces. The government put down
the uproar and punished the miscreants, and the nobler portion of
the nation throughout the whole land collected for the families
of those murdered. The work of evangelization supported by
liberal contributions chiefly from England, but also from Holland,
Switzerland, and the German _Gustav-Adolf-Verein_ (§ 178, 1),
advanced steadily in spite of occasional brutal interferences
of the clergy and the mob, so that soon in all the large cities
and in many of the smaller towns of Italy and Sicily there were
thriving and flourishing little evangelical congregations of
converted native Catholics, numbering as many as 182 in 1882.
§ 204.4. The chief factor in the evangelization of Italy as far
as the southern coast of Sicily was the old =Waldensian Church=,
which for three hundred years had occupied the Protestant
platform in the spirit of Calvinism (§ 139, 25). Remnants
consisting of some 200,000 souls still survived in the valleys
of Piedmont, almost without protection of law amid constant
persecution and oppressions (§ 153, 5), moderated only by
Prussian and English intervention. But when Sardinia headed
Italian liberalism in 1848 religious liberty and all civil
rights were secured to them. A Waldensian congregation was then
formed in the capital, Turin, which was strengthened by numerous
Protestant refugees from other parts of Italy. But in 1854 a
split occurred between the two elements in it. The new Italian
converts objected, not altogether without ground, against the old
Waldensians that by maintaining their church government with its
centre in the valleys, the so-called “Tables” and their old forms
of constitution, doctrine and worship, much too contracted and
narrow for the enlarged boundaries of the present, they thought
more of Waldensianizing than of evangelizing Italy. Besides,
their language since 1630, when a plague caused their preachers
and teachers to withdraw from Geneva, had been French, and
the national Italian pride was disposed on this domain also to
unfurl her favourite banner “_Italia farà da se_.” The division
spread from Turin to the other congregations. At the head of the
separatists, afterwards designated the “_Free Italian Church_”
(_Chiesa libera_), stood Dr. Luigi Desanctis, a man of rich
theological culture and glowing eloquence, who, when Catholic
priest and theologian of the inquisition at Rome, became
convinced of the truth of the evangelical confession, joined
the evangelical church at Malta in 1847 and wrought from 1852
with great success in the congregation at Turin. After ten years’
faithful service in the newly formed free church he felt obliged,
owing to the Darbyite views (§ 211, 11) that began to prevail
in it, to attach himself again in 1864 to the Waldensians, who
meanwhile had been greatly liberalised. He now officiated for
them till his death in 1869 as professor of theology at Florence,
and edited their journal _Eco della verità_. This journal was
succeeded in 1873 by the able monthly _Rivista Cristiana_, edited
at Florence by Prof. Emilio Comba.--After Desanctis left the
_Chiesa libera_ its chief representative was the ex-Barnabite
father Alessandro Gavazzi of Naples. Endowed with glowing
eloquence and remarkable popularity as a lecturer, he appeared
at Rome in 1848 as a politico-religious orator, attached himself
to the evangelical church in London in 1850, and undertook the
charge of the evangelical Italian congregation there. He returned
to Italy in 1860 and accompanied the hero of Italian liberty,
Garibaldi, as his military chaplain, preaching to the people
everywhere with his leonine voice with equal enthusiasm of Victor
Emanuel as the only saviour of Italy and of Jesus Christ as
the only Saviour of sinners. He then joined the _Chiesa libera_,
and, as he himself obtained gradually fuller acquaintance
with evangelical truth, wrought zealously in organizing the
congregations hitherto almost entirely isolated from one another.
At a general assembly at Milan in 1870, deputies from thirty-two
congregations drew up a simple biblical confession of faith,
and in the following year at Florence a constitutional code was
adopted which recognised the necessity of the pastoral office,
of annual assemblies, and a standing evangelization committee.
They now took the name “=Unione della Chiesa libere in Italia=.”
The predominantly Darbyist congregations, which had not taken
part in these constitutional assemblies, have since formed a
community of their own as =Chiesa Cristiana=, depending only on
the immediate leading of the Holy Spirit, rejecting every sort of
ecclesiastical and official organization, and denouncing infant
baptism as unevangelical.--Besides these three national Italian
churches, English and American Methodists and Baptists carry on
active missions. On May 1st, 1884, the evangelical denominations
at a general assembly in Florence, with the exception only of the
Darbyist _Chiesa Cristiana_, joined in a confederation to meet
annually in an “Italian Evangelical Congress” as a preparation
for ecclesiastical union. When, however, the various Methodist
and Baptist denominations began to check the progress of the work
of union, the two leading bodies, the Waldensians and the Free
Church party, separated from them. A committee chosen from these
two sketched at Florence in 1885 a basis of union, according to
which the Free Church adopted the confession and church order
of the Waldensians, subject to revision by the joint synods,
their theological school at Rome was to be amalgamated with the
Waldensian school at Florence, and the united church was to take
the name of the “Evangelical Church of Italy.” But a Waldensian
synod in September, 1886, resolved to hold by the ancient name
of the “Waldensian Church.” Whether the “Free Church” will agree
to this demand is not yet known.
§ 205. SPAIN AND PORTUGAL.
No European country has during the nineteenth century been the
scene of so many revolutions, outbreaks and civil wars, of changes
of government, ministries and constitutions, sometimes of a clerical
absolutist, sometimes of a democratic radical tendency, and in none
has revolution gone so unsparingly for the time against hierarchy,
clergy and monasticism, as in unfortunate Spain. Portugal too passed
through similar struggles, which, however, did not prove so dreadfully
disordering to the commonwealth as those of Spain.
§ 205.1. =Spain under Ferdinand VII. and Maria Christina.=--Joseph
Bonaparte (1808-1813) had given to the Spaniards a constitution
of the French pattern, abolishing inquisition and cloisters.
The constitution which the Cortes proclaimed in 1812 carried
out still further the demands of political liberalism, but still
declared the apostolic Roman Catholic religion as alone true to
be the religion of the Spanish nation and forbad the exercise of
any other. Ferdinand VII., whom Napoleon restored in December,
1813, hastened to restore the inquisition, the cloisters and
despotism, especially from 1815 under the direction of the
Jesuits highly esteemed by him. The revolution of 1820 indeed
obliged him to reintroduce the constitution of 1812 and to banish
the Jesuits; but scarcely had the feudal clerical party of the
apostolic Junta with their army of faith in the field and Bourbon
French intervention under the Duke of Angoulême again made his
way clear, than he began to crush as before by means of his
Jesuit Camarilla every liberal movement in church and state.
But all the more successful was the reaction of liberalism in
the civil war which broke out after Ferdinand’s death under
the regency of his fourth wife, the intriguing Maria Christina
(1833-1837). The revolution now erected an inquisition, but it
was one directed against the clergy and monks, and celebrated
its _autos de fe_; but these were in the form of spoliation of
cloisters and massacres of monks. Ecclesiastical tithes were
abolished, all monkish orders suspended, the cloisters closed,
ecclesiastical goods declared national property, and the papal
nuncio sent over the frontier. A threatening papal allocution
of 1841 only increased the violence of the Cortes, and when
Gregory XVI. in 1842 pronounced all decrees of the government
null and void, it branded all intercourse with Rome as an offence
against the state.
§ 205.2. =Spain under Isabella II., 1843-1865.=--Ferdinand VII.,
overlooking the right of his brother Don Carlos, had, by
abolishing the Salic law, secured the throne to Isabella, his
own and Maria Christina’s daughter. After the Cortes of 1843
had declared Isabella of age in her thirteenth year, the Spanish
government became more and more favourable to the restoration.
After long negotiations and vacillations under constantly
changing ministries a concordat was at last drawn up in 1851,
which returned the churches and cloisters that had not been
sold, allowed compensation for what had been sold, reduced the
number of bishoprics by six, put education and the censorship of
the press under the oversight of the bishops, and declared the
Catholic religion the only one to be tolerated. But although
in 1854 the Holy Virgin was named generalissima of the brave
army and her image at Atocha had been decorated by the queen
with a band of the Golden Fleece, a revolution soon broke
out in the army which threatened to deal the finishing stroke
to ultramontanism. Meanwhile it had not fully permeated the
republican party. The proposal of unrestricted liberty to all
forms of worship was supported by a small minority, and the new
constitution of 1855 called upon the Spanish nation to maintain
and guard the Catholic religion which “the Spaniards profess;”
yet no Spaniard was to be persecuted on account of his faith, so
long as he did not commit irreligious acts. A new law determined
the sale of all church and cloister property, and compensation
therefore by annual rents according to the existing concordat.
Several bishops had to be banished owing to their continued
opposition; the pope protested and recalled his legates. Clerical
influence meanwhile regained power over the queen. The sale of
church and cloister property was stopped, and previous possessors
were indemnified for what had been already sold. Owing to
frequent change of ministry, each of which manifested a tendency
different from its predecessor, it was only in 1859 that matters
were settled by a new concordat. In it the government admitted
the inalienability of church property, admitted the unrestricted
right of the church to obtain new property of any kind, and
declared itself ready to exchange state paper money for property
that had fallen into decay according to the estimation of the
bishops. The queen proved her Catholic zeal at the instigation
of the nun Patrocinio by fanatical persecution of Protestants,
and hearty but vain sympathies for the sufferings of the pope
and the expatriated Italian princes. Pius IX. rewarded Isabella,
who seemed to him adorned with all the virtues, by sending her
in 1868 the consecrated rose at a time when she was causing
public scandal more than ever by her private life, and by her
proceedings with her paramour Marforio had lost the last remnant
of the respect and confidence of the Spanish nation. Eight months
later her reign was at an end. The provisional government now
ordered the suppression of the Society of Jesus, as well as
of all cloister and spiritual associations, and in 1869 the
Cortes sanctioned the draught of a new civil constitution, which
required the Spanish nation to maintain the Catholic worship,
but allowed the exercise of other forms of worship to strangers
and as cases might arise even to natives, and generally made all
political and civil rights independent of religious profession.
§ 205.3. =Spain under Alphonso XII., 1875-1885.=--When Isabella’s
son returned to Spain in January, 1875, in his seventeenth
year, he obtained the blessing of his sponsor the pope on his
ascending the throne, promised to the Catholic church powerful
support, but also to non-Catholics the maintenance of liberty
of worship. How he meant to perform both is shown by a decree
of 10th February, 1875, which, abolishing the civil marriage law
passed by the Cortes in 1870, gave back to the Catholic church
the administration of marriage and matters connected therewith;
for all persons living in Spain, however, “who professed another
than the true faith,” as well as for “the bad Catholics,” to whom
ecclesiastical marriage on account of church censures is refused,
liberty was given to contract a civil marriage; but this did not
apply to apostate priests, monks, and nuns, to whom any sort of
marriage is for ever refused, and whose previously contracted
marriages are invalid, without, however, affecting the legitimacy
of children already born of such connections.--Against the
draught of the new constitution, whose eleventh article indeed
affords toleration to all dissenting forms of worship, but
prohibits any public manifestation thereof outside of their place
of worship and burial grounds, Pius IX. protested as infringing
upon the still existing concordat in its “noblest” part, and
aiming a serious blow at the Catholic church. The Cortes, however,
sanctioned it in 1876.
§ 205.4. =The Evangelization of Spain.=--A number of Bibles
and tracts, as well as a religious paper in Spanish called _el
Albo_, found entrance into Spain from the English settlement at
Gibraltar, without Spain being able even in the most flourishing
days of the restoration to prevent it, and evangelical sympathies
began more or less openly to be expressed. Franc. Ruat, formerly
a lascivious Spanish poet, who was awakened at Turin by the
preaching of the Waldensian Desanctis, and by reading the Bible
had obtained knowledge of evangelical truths, appeared publicly
after the publication of the new constitution of 1855 as a
preacher of the gospel in Spain. The reaction that soon set in,
however, secured for him repeated imprisonments, and finally in
1856 sentence of banishment for life. He then wrought for several
years successfully in Gibraltar, next in London, afterwards in
Algiers among Spanish residents, till the new civil constitution
of 1868 allowed him to return to Spain, where, in the service
of the German mission at Madrid, he gathered around him an
evangelical congregation, to which he ministered till his death
in 1878. While labouring in Gibraltar he won to the evangelical
faith among others the young officer Manuel Matamoros, living
there as a political refugee. This noble man, whose whole career,
till his death in exile in 1866, was a sore martyrdom for the
truth, became the soul of the whole movement, against which
the government in 1861 and 1862 took the severest measures. By
intercepted correspondence the leaders and many of the members
of the secret evangelical propaganda were discovered and thrown
into prison. The final judgment condemned the leaders of the
movement to severe punishment in penitentiaries and the galleys.
Infliction of these sentences had already begun when the
queen found herself obliged, by a visit to Madrid in 1863 of a
deputation of the Evangelical Alliance (§ 178, 3), consisting of
the most distinguished and respected Protestants of all lands, to
commute them to banishment.--After Isabella’s overthrow in 1868,
permission was given for the building of the first Protestant
church in Madrid, where a congregation soon gathered of more than
2,000 souls. In Seville an almost equally strong congregation
obtained for its services what had been a church of the Jesuits.
Also at Cordova a considerable congregation was collected, and
in almost all the other large cities there were largely attended
places of worship. Several of those banished under Isabella,
who had returned after her overthrow, Carrasco, Trigo, Alhama,
and others, increased by new converts who had received their
theological training at Geneva, Lausanne, etc., and supported
by American, English and German fellow-labourers, such as the
brothers F. and H. Fliedner, wrought with unwearied zeal as
preachers and pastors, for the spreading and deeper grounding
of the gospel among their countrymen. With the restoration of the
monarchy in 1875, the oppression of the Protestants was renewed
with increasing severity. The widest possible interpretation
was given to the prohibition of every public manifestation
of dissenting worship in Article XI. of the constitution. The
excesses and insults of the mob, whose fanaticism was stirred up
by the clergy, were left unpunished and uncensured. Even the most
sorely abused and injured Protestants were themselves subjected
to imprisonment as disturbers of the peace. No essential
improvement in their condition resulted from the liberal ministry
of Sagasta in 1881. Nevertheless the number of evangelical
congregations continued steadily though slowly to increase, so
that now they number more than sixty, with somewhere about 15,000
native Protestant members.--Besides these an _Iglesia Española_
arose in 1881, consisting of eight congregations, which may
be regarded to some extent as a national Spanish counterpart
to the Old Catholicism of Germany. Its founder and first bishop
is Cabrera, formerly a Catholic priest, who, after having
wrought from 1868 in the service of the Edinburgh (Presbyterian)
Evangelization Society as preacher in Seville, and then in Madrid,
received in 1880 episcopal consecration from the Anglican bishop
Riley of Mexico (§ 209, 1), then visiting Madrid. Although thus
of Anglican origin, the church directed by him wishes not to be
Anglican, but Spanish episcopal. It attaches itself therefore,
while accepting the thirty-nine Articles of the Anglican Church,
in the sketch of its order of service in the Spanish language,
more to the old Mozarabic ritual (§ 88, 1) than to the Anglican
liturgy.[562]
§ 205.5. =The Church in Portugal.=--Portugal after some months
followed the example of the Spanish revolution of 1820. John VI.
(1816-1826) confirmed the new constitution, drawn up after the
pattern of the democratic Spanish constitution of 1812, enacting
the seizure of church property and the suppression of the
monasteries. But a counter revolution, led by the younger son of
the king, Dom Miguel, obliged him in 1823 to repudiate it and to
return to the older constitution. But he persistently resisted
the reintroduction of the Jesuits. After his death in 1826, the
legitimate heir, Pedro I. of Brazil, abandoned his claims to the
Portuguese throne in favour of his daughter Donna Maria II. da
Gloria, then under a year old, whom he betrothed to his brother
Dom Miguel. Appointed regent, Dom Miguel took the oath to
the constitution, but immediately broke his oath, had himself
proclaimed king, recalled the Jesuits, and, till his overthrow
in 1834, carried on a clerical monarchical reign of terror. Dom
Pedro, who had meanwhile vacated the Brazilian throne, as regent
again suppressed all monkish orders, seized the property of
the church, and abolished ecclesiastical tithes, but died in
the same year. His daughter Donna Maria, now pronounced of age
and proclaimed queen (1834-1853), amid continual revolutions
and changes of the constitution, manifested an ever-growing
inclination to reconciliation with Rome. In 1841 she negotiated
about a concordat, and showed herself so submissive that the pope
rewarded her in 1842 with the consecrated golden rose. But the
liberal Cortes resisted the introduction of the concordat, and
maintained the right of veto by the civil government as well as
the rest of the restrictions upon the hierarchy, and the _Codigo
penal_ of 1882 threatened the Catholic clergy with heavy fines
and imprisonment for every abuse of their spiritual prerogatives
and every breach of the laws of the State. In 1857 a concordat
was at last agreed to, which, however, was adopted by the
representatives of the people not before 1859, and then only by
a small majority. Its chief provisions consist in the regulating
of the patronage rights of the crown in regard to existing and
newly created bishoprics. The relation of government to the curia,
however, still continued strained. The constitution declares
generally that the Catholic Apostolic Romish Church is the
state religion. A Portuguese who passes over from it to another
loses thereby his civil rights as a citizen. Yet no one is to be
persecuted on account of his religion. The erection of Protestant
places of worship, but not in church form, and also of burial
grounds, where necessary, is permitted.--Evangelization has
made but little progress in Portugal. The first evangelical
congregation, with Anglican episcopal constitution, was founded
at Lisbon by a Spanish convert, Don Angelo Herrero de Mora, who
in the service of the Bible Society had edited a revision of the
old Spanish Bible in New York, and had there been naturalized
as an American citizen. Consisting originally of American and
English Protestants, about a hundred Spanish and Portuguese
converts have since 1868 gradually attached themselves to it,
the latter after they had been made Spanish instead of Portuguese
subjects. After the pattern of this mother congregation, two
others have been formed in the neighbourhood of Lisbon and one
at Oporto.
§ 206. RUSSIA.
The Russian government since the time of Alexander I. has sought
amid many difficulties to advance the education and enlightenment of
the people, and to elevate the orthodox church by securing a more highly
cultured clergy, and to increase its influence upon the life of the
people; a task which proved peculiarly difficult in consequence of the
wide-spread anti-ecclesiastical spirit (§ 210, 3) and the incomparably
more dangerous antichristian Nihilism (§ 212, 6).--The Catholic church,
mainly represented in what had before been the kingdom of Poland, had,
in consequence of the repeated revolutionary agitation of the Poles,
in which the clergy had zealously taken part by stirring up fanaticism
among the people and converting their religion and worship into a
vehicle of rebellion, so compromised itself that the government, besides
taking away the national political privileges, reduced more and more
the rights and liberties granted to the church as such.--The prosperous
development of the evangelical church in Russia, which, through the
absolutely faultless loyalty of its members, had hitherto enjoyed the
hearty protection of the government, in 1845 and 1846, and afterwards
in 1883, in consequence of numerous conversions among Esthonian and
Livonian peasants, was checked by incessant persecutions.
§ 206.1. =The Orthodox National Church.=--The evangelical
influences introduced from the West during the previous century,
especially among the higher clergy, found further encouragement
under Alexander I., A.D. 1801-1825. Himself affected by the
evangelical pietism of Madame Krüdener (§ 176, 2), he aimed at
the elevation of the orthodox church in this direction, founded
clerical seminaries and public schools, and took a lively
interest in Bible circulation among the Russian people. But under
Nicholas I., A.D. 1825-1855, a reaction proceeding from the holy
synod set in which unweariedly sought to seal the orthodox church
hermetically against all evangelical influences. Also during
the reign of Alexander II., A.D. 1855-1881, a reign singularly
fruitful in civil reforms, this tendency was even more rigidly
illustrated, while with the consent and aid of the holy synod
every effort was put forth to improve the church according to its
own principles. Specially active in this work was Count Tolstoi,
minister of instruction and also procurator of the holy synod. A
committee presided over by him produced a whole series of useful
reforms in 1868, which were approved by the synod and confirmed
by the emperor. While the inferior clergy had hitherto formed
an order by themselves, all higher ranks of preferment were
now opened to them, but, on the other hand, the obligation
of priests’ sons to remain in the order of their fathers was
abolished. The clamant abuse of putting mere clerks and sextons
to do the work of priests was also now put a stop to, and
training in clerical seminaries or academies was made compulsory.
Previously only married men could hold the offices of deacon and
priest; now widowers and bachelors were admitted, so soon as they
reached the age of forty years. In order to increase the poor
incomes many churches had not their regular equipment of clergy,
and instead of the full set of priest, deacon, sub-deacon, reader,
sexton, and doorkeeper, in the poorer churches there were only
priest and reader. Order was restored to monastic life, now
generally grown dissolute, by a fixed rule of a common table
and uniform dress, etc. In 1860 an Orthodox Church Society for
Missions among the peoples of the Caucasus, and in 1866 a second
for Pagans and Mohammedans throughout the empire, were founded,
both under the patronage of the empress. The Russian church
also cleverly took advantage of political events to carry on
missionary work in Japan (§ 184, 6). A society of the “Friends
of Intellectual Enlightenment,” founded in St. Petersburg
in 1872, aimed chiefly at the religious improvement of the
cultured classes in the spirit of the orthodox church by means
of tracts and addresses, while agreeing with foreign confessions
as to the nature and characteristics of the true church.
Under Alexander III., since A.D. 1881, the emperor’s former
tutor Pobedownoszew, with the conviction of the incomparable
superiority of his church, and believing that by it and only
by it could the dangerous commotions of the present be overcome
(§ 212, 6) and Russia regenerated, as procurator of the holy
synod has zealously wrought in this direction.--But meanwhile a
new impulse was given to the evangelical movement in aristocratic
circles by Lord Radstock, who appeared in St. Petersburg in 1870.
The addresses delivered by him in French in the salons of the
fashionable world won a success scarcely to be looked for. The
most famous gain was the conversion of a hitherto proud, worldly,
rich and popular Colonel of the Guards, called Paschcow, who now
turned the beautiful ball-room of his palatial residence into a
prayer-meeting room, and with all the enthusiasm of a neophyte
proclaimed successfully among high and low the newly won saving
truth in a Biblical evangelical spirit, though not without a
methodistic flavour. The excitement thus created led to police
interference, and finally, when he refused to abstain from
spreading his religious views among the members of the orthodox
church by the circulation of evangelical tracts in the Russian
language, he was, at the instigation of the holy synod and its
all powerful procurator, banished first from St. Petersburg and
then in 1884 from the empire, whereupon he withdrew to London.
§ 206.2. =The Catholic Church.=--After the Greeks in the old
West Russian provinces (§ 151, 3), who had been forcibly united
to Rome in 1596, had again in 1772, in consequence of the first
partition of Poland, come under Russian rule, the government
sought to restore them also to the orthodox national church.
This was first accomplished under Nicholas I., when at the synod
of Polosk in 1839 they themselves spontaneously expressed a wish
to be thus reunited with the mother church. Rome thus lost two
million members. But the allocution directed against this robbery
by Gregory XVI. was without effect, and the public opinion
of Europe saw a case of historical justice in this reunion,
though effected not without severe measures against those who
proved obstinate and rebellious. Yet there always remained a
considerable remnant, about one-third of a million, under the
bishop of Chelun, in the Romish communion. But even these in 1875,
after many disturbances with the prelate Popiel at their head,
almost wholly severed their connection with the pope, and were
again received into the bosom of the orthodox national church.
In a memorial addressed to the emperor for this purpose, they
declared they were led to this on the one hand by the continual
endeavour of the curia and its partisans, by Latinizing their old
Greek liturgy and Polandizing the people, to overthrow their old
Russian nationality, and on the other hand, by their aversion to
the new papal dogmas of the immaculate conception of Mary and the
infallibility of the pope.--The insurrection of the Poles against
Russian rule in 1830, which even Pope Gregory XVI. condemned,
bore bitter fruits for the Catholic church of that country.
The organic statute of 1832 indeed secured anew to the Poles
religious liberty, but the bishops were prohibited holding
any direct communication with Rome, the clergy deprived of all
control over the schools, and the Russian law regarding mixed
marriages made applicable to that province. By an understanding
with the curia in 1847 the choice of the bishops was given to the
emperor, their canonical investiture to the pope. The mildness
with which Alexander II. treated the Poles and the political
troubles in the rest of Europe fostered the hope of restoring
the old kingdom of Poland. Reckless demonstrations were made in
the beginning of 1861, pilgrimages to the graves of the martyrs
of freedom were organized, political memorial festivals were
celebrated in churches, a general national mourning was enjoined,
mourning services were held, revolutionary songs were sung
in churches, etc. The Catholic clergy headed the movement and
canonized it as a religious duty. In vain the government sought
to put it down by making liberal concessions, in vain they
applied to Pius IX. to discountenance it. When in October the
country lay in a state of siege, and the military forced their
way into the churches to apprehend the ringleaders of rebellion,
the episcopal administrator, Bialobezeski, denounced that as
church profanation, had all the Catholic churches in Warsaw
closed, and answered the government’s request to reopen them by
making extravagant demands and uttering proud words of defiance.
The military tribunal sentenced him to death, but the emperor
commuted this to one year’s detention in a fortress, with loss
of all his dignities and orders. Meanwhile the eyes of the pope
had at length been opened. He now confirmed the government’s
appointment of Archbishop Felinsky, who entered Warsaw in
February, 1862, and reopened the churches. After the suppression
of the revolt in 1864, almost all cloisters, as nurseries of
revolution, were abolished; in the following year the whole
property of the church was taken in charge by the State, and
the clergy supported by state pay. The pope, enraged at this,
gave violent expression to his feelings to the Russian ambassador
at Rome during the New Year festivities of 1866, whereupon the
government completely broke off all relations with the curia.
Consequently in 1867 all the affairs of the Catholic church
were committed to the clerical college at St. Petersburg, and
intercourse between the clergy and the pope prohibited. Hence
arose many conflicts with Catholic bishops, whose obstinacy was
punished by their being interned in their dioceses. In 1869 the
Russian calendar was introduced, and Russian made the compulsory
language of instruction. But in 1870 greater opposition was
offered to the introduction of Russian in the public services by
means of translations of the common Polish prayer and psalm-books.
Pietrowitsch, dean of Wilna, read from the pulpit the ukase
referring to this matter, but then cast it together with the
Russian translations into the flames, with violent denunciations
of the government, and gave information against himself to the
governor-general. He was agreeably to his own desire imprisoned,
and then transported to Archangel. The same sentence was
pronounced against several other obstinate prelates and clergy,
among them Archbishop Felinsky, and thus further opposition was
stamped out.--Leo XIII. soon after entering on his pontificate
in 1878 took the first step toward reconciliation. His efforts
reached a successful issue first in February, 1883. The deposed
prelates were restored from their places of banishment, with
promise of a liberal pension, and were allowed to choose their
residences as they pleased, only not within their former dioceses.
In their stead the pope consecrated ten new bishops nominated
by the emperor, who amid the jubilation of the people entered
their episcopal residences. With reference to the Roman Catholic
seminaries and clerical academies at Warsaw, the curia granted
to the government the right of control over instruction in
the Russian language, literature and history, but committed
instruction in canonical matters solely to the bishops, who,
after obtaining the approval of the government, appointed the
rector and inspector and canonical teachers. Vacant pastorates
were filled by the bishops, and only in the case of the more
important was the approval of the government required. As to the
language to be used, it was resolved that only where the people
speak Russian were the clergy obliged to employ that language in
preaching and in their pastoral work.
§ 206.3. =The Evangelical Church.=--The Lutheran church in Russia,
comprising two and a half millions of Germans, Letts, Esthonians
and Finns, is strongest in Livonia, Esthonia and Courland, is the
national church in Finland, and is also largely represented in
Poland, in the chief cities of Russia, and in the numerous German
colonies in South Russia. In 1832 it obtained, for the Baltic
provinces and the scattered congregations in central Russia, a
church constitution and service book, the latter on the basis of
the old Swedish service book, the former requiring all religious
teachers in church and school to accept the Formula of Concord.
Annual provincial synods have the initiative in calling in,
when necessary for legislative purposes, the aid of the general
synod.--In Poland the Reformed and Lutheran churches were in 1828
united under one combined consistory. By an imperial ukase of
1849, however, the independent existence of both churches was
restored. Protestants enjoyed all civil rights and had absolute
liberty in the exercise of their religion; but in central Russia
down to recent times, when a more liberal spirit began to prevail,
they were prohibited putting bells in their churches. The old
prohibition of evangelical preaching and the teaching of religion
in the Russian tongue also continued; but the attempt made for
some decades in St. Petersburg and the surrounding district to
preach the gospel to Germans who had lost their mother tongue, in
the Russian language, has been hitherto ungrudgingly allowed by
the government. Quitting the national church or returning from
it to a church that had been left before, is visited by severe
penalties, and children of mixed marriages, where one parent
belongs to the national orthodox church, are claimed by law for
that church. Only Finland counts among her privileges the right
of assigning children of mixed marriages to the church of the
father. The Lutheran church in Livonia, with the island of Oesel,
suffered considerable, and according to the law of the land
irreparable, loss by the secession of sixty or seventy thousand
Letts and Esthonians to the orthodox church under the widespread
delusion that thereby their economic position would be improved.
Disillusions and regret came too late, and the ever increasing
desire for restoration to the church forsaken in a moment
of excitement could only obtain arbitrary and insufficient
satisfaction in Lutheran baptism of infants seemingly near death,
and in permission at irregular intervals and without previous
announcement to sit at the Lord’s Table according to the Lutheran
rite. In 1865, not indeed legislatively but administratively,
the contracting of mixed marriages in the Baltic provinces
was permitted without the enforcement of the legal enactment
requiring that the children should be trained in the Greek
church. In Esthonia, however, in 1883 there was a new outbreak
of conversions in Leal, where five hundred peasants went over to
the orthodox church, declaring their wish to be of the same faith
as the emperor and the whole of the Russian people. By imperial
decree in 1885 the suspension of the law against withdrawing
again from the national church, which had existed for twenty
years, was abolished. At the instigation of Pobedownoszew the
Imperial Council granted an annual subsidy of 100,000 roubles for
furthering orthodoxy in the Baltic provinces. No evangelical
church could be built in these provinces without the approval of
the orthodox bishop of the diocese, and any evangelical pastor
who should dissuade a member of his church from his purpose
of joining the orthodox church, was liable to punishment.--In
order to supply the want of churches and schools, preachers
and teachers in the Lutheran congregations of Russia, a society
was formed in 1858 similar to the _Gustav-Adolfs-Verein_, under
the supervision of the General Consistory of St. Petersburg,
which has laboriously and zealously endeavoured to improve the
condition of the oppressed church.[563]
§ 207. GREECE AND TURKEY.
In the spirited struggle for liberty Greece freed herself from the
tyranny of the Turkish Mohammedan rule and obtained complete civil
independence. But the same princes representing all the three principal
Christian confessions, who in 1830 gave their sanction to this
emancipation within lamentably narrow limits, in 1840 conquered again
the Holy Land for the Turks out of the hands of a revolting vassal.
And so inextricable were, and still are, the political interests of
the Christian States of Europe with reference to the East, that in
the London parliament of 1854 it could be affirmed that the existence
of Turkey in a condition of utter impotence was so necessary, that
if it did not exist, it would require to be created. On two occasions
has Russia called out her whole military force to emancipate from the
Turkish yoke her Slavic brethren of a common race and common faith,
without being able to give the finishing blow to the “sick man” who
had the protection of European diplomacy.
§ 207.1. =The Orthodox Church of Greece.=--Deceived in their
expectations from the Vienna Congress, the Greeks tried to
deliver themselves from Turkish tyranny. In 1814 a _Hetairia_ was
formed, branches of which spread over the whole land and fostered
among the people ideas of freedom. The war of independence broke
out in 1821. Its first result was a fearful massacre, especially
in Constantinople. The patriarch Gregorius [Gregory] with his
whole synod and about 30,000 Christians were in three months
with horrid cruelty murdered by the Turks. The London Conference
of 1830 at last declared Greece an independent state, and
an assembly of Greek bishops at Nauplia in 1833 freed the
national church of Greece from the authority of the patriarch of
Constantinople, who was under the control of Turkey. Its supreme
direction was committed to a permanent Holy Synod at Athens,
instituted by the king but in all internal matters absolutely
independent. The king must belong to the national church, but
otherwise all religions are on the same footing. Meanwhile the
orthodox church is fully represented, the Roman Catholic being
strongest, especially in the islands. The University of Athens,
opened in 1856 with professors mostly trained in Germany, has not
been unsuccessful in its task even in the domain of theology.
§ 207.2. =Massacre of Syrian Christians, 1860.=--The Russo-Turkish
war ending in the beginning of 1856, in which France and England,
and latterly also Sardinia took the part of the sick man, left
the condition of the Christians practically unchanged. For though
the Hatti Humayun of 1856 granted them equal civil rights with
the Moslems, this, however well meant on the part of the Sultan
of that time, practically made no improvement upon the equally
well meant Hatti Sherif of Gülhane of 1839. The outbreak of 1860
also proved how little effect it had in teaching the Moslems
tolerance towards the Christians. Roused by Jesuit emissaries
and trusting to French support, the Maronites of Lebanon indulged
in several provoking attacks upon their old hereditary foes the
Druses. These, however, aided by the Turkish soldiery were always
victorious, and throughout all Syria a terrible persecution
against Christians of all confessions broke out, characterized by
inhuman cruelties. In Damascus alone 8,000, in all Syria 16,000
Christians were murdered, 3,000 women taken to the harems, and
100 Christian villages destroyed. After the massacre had been
stopped, 120,000 Christians wandered about without food, clothing,
or shelter, and fled hither and thither in fear of death. Fuad
Pasha was sent from Constantinople to punish the guilty, and
seemed at first to proceed to business energetically; but his
zeal soon cooled, and French troops, sent to Syria to protect
the Christians, were obliged, yielding to pressure from England,
where their presence was regarded with suspicion, to withdraw
from the country in June, 1861.
§ 207.3. =The Bulgarian Ecclesiastical Struggle.=--The Bulgarian
church, with somewhere about two and a half million souls, was
from early times subject to the patriarch of Constantinople
(§ 73, 3), who acted toward it like a pasha. He sold the Bulgarian
bishoprics and archbishoprics to the highest bidders among
the Greek clergy, who were quite ignorant of the language of
the country, and had only one end in view, namely to recoup
themselves by extorting the largest possible revenue. No thought
was given to the spiritual needs of the Bulgarians, preaching
was wholly abandoned, the liturgy was read in a language unknown
to the people. It was therefore not to be wondered at that the
Bulgarian church was for years longing for its emancipation and
ecclesiastical independence, and made every effort to obtain this
from the Porte. Turkey, however, sympathized with the patriarch
till the revolt in Crete in 1866-1869 and threatening political
movements in Bulgaria broke out. Then at last in 1870 the sultan
granted the establishment of an independent Slavic ecclesiastical
province under the designation of the Bulgarian Exarchate, with
liberty to attach itself to the other Slavic provinces upon a
two-thirds majority of votes. The patriarch Gregorius [Gregory]
protested, but the Sublime Porte would not thereby be deterred,
and in May, 1872, Anthimos the Exarch elect was installed. The
patriarch and his synod now stigmatized _Phyletism_, the struggle
for a national church establishment, as accursed heresy, and
excommunicated the exarch and the whole Bulgarian church. Only
the patriarch Cyril of Jerusalem dissented, but he was on that
account on his return home treated with indignity and abuse and
was deposed by a synod at Jerusalem.
§ 207.4. =The Armenian Church.=--To the Gregorian-Armenian
patriarch at Constantinople (§ 64, 3), equally with his orthodox
colleague (§ 67, 7), had been assigned by the Sublime Porte
civil jurisdiction as well as the primacy over all members
of his church in the Turkish empire. When now in 1830, at the
instigation of France, an independent patriarchate with equal
rights was granted to the United Armenians (§ 72, 2), the
twofold dependence on the Porte and on the Roman curia created
difficulties, which in the meantime were overcome by giving the
patriarch, who as a Turkish official exercised civil jurisdiction,
a primacy with the title of archbishop as representative of the
pope. The United Armenians, like the other united churches of
the East, had from early times enjoyed the liberty of using their
ancient liturgy, their old ecclesiastical calendar, and their
own church constitution with free election of their bishops and
patriarchs, and these privileges were left untouched down to 1866.
But when in that year the Armenian Catholic patriarch died,
the archbishop Hassun was elected patriarch, and then a fusion
of the two ecclesiastical powers was brought about, which was
expected to lead to absolute and complete subjection under
papal jurisdiction and perfect assimilation with the Romish
constitution and liturgy, at the same time Hassun with a view
to securing a red hat showed himself eager and zealous in this
business. By the bull _Reversurus_ of 1867 Pius IX. claimed the
right of nominating the patriarchs of all united churches of
the East, of confirming bishops chosen by these patriarchs, in
cases of necessity even choosing these himself, and deciding
all appeals regarding church property. But the Mechitarists of
St. Lazzaro (§ 164, 2) had already discovered the intriguing
designs of France and made these known among their countrymen
in Turkey. These now, while Monsignore Hassun was engaged
combating the infallibility dogma at the Vatican Council of
1870, drove out his creatures and constituted themselves into
a church independent of Rome, without however, joining the
Gregorian-Armenians. The influence of France being meanwhile
crippled by the Prussian victory, the Porte acquiesced in
the accomplished fact, confirmed the appointment of the newly
chosen patriarch Kupelian, and refused to yield to the pope’s
remonstrances and allocutions. In 1874, however, it also
recognised the Hassun party as an independent ecclesiastical
community, but assigned the church property to the party of
Kupelian, and banished Hassun as a fomenter of disturbance, from
the capital. The hearty sympathies which on the outbreak of the
Russo-Turkish war the Roman curia expressed so loudly and openly
for the victory of the crescent over the schismatic Russian cross,
made the Sublime Porte again regard the Hassunites with favour,
so that Hassun in September, 1877, returned to Constantinople,
where the churches were given over to his party and a great
number of the Kupelianists were won over to his side. He was
eagerly aided not only by the French but also by the Austrian
ambassador, and the patriarch Kupelian, now sorely persecuted
from every side, at last resigned his position and went in March,
1879, to Rome to kneel as a penitent before the pope. By an irade
of the sultan, Hassun was now formally restored, and in 1880 he
was adorned with a red hat by Leo XIII. Shortly before this the
last of the bishops of the opposing party, with about 30,000
souls, had given in his submission.
§ 207.5. =The Berlin Treaty, 1878.=--Frequent and severe
oppression, refusal to administer justice, and brutal violence
on the part of the Turkish government and people toward the
defenceless vassals drove the Christian states and tribes of
the Balkan peninsula in 1875 into a rebellion of desperation,
which was avenged, especially in Bulgaria in 1876, by
scandalous atrocities upon the Christians. When the half-hearted
interference of European diplomacy called forth instead of actual
reforms only the mocking sham of a pretended free representative
constitution, Russia held herself under obligation in 1877 to
avenge by arms the wrongs of her brethren by race and creed, but
owing to the threats of England and Austria could not fully reap
the fruits of her dearly bought victory as had been agreed upon
in the Treaty of San Stefano. By the =Berlin Conference=, however,
of 1878 the principalities of Roumania, Servia, and Montenegro,
hitherto under the suzerainty of Turkey, were declared
independent, and to them, as well as to Greece, at the cost of
Turkey, a considerable increase of territory was granted, the
portion between the Balkans and the Danube was formed into the
Christian principality of Bulgaria under Turkish suzerainty, but
East Roumelia, south of the Balkans, now separated from Bulgaria,
obtained the rank of an autonomous province with a Christian
governor-general. To Thessaly, Epirus, and Crete were granted
administrative reforms and throughout the European territory
left to the Porte it was stipulated that full religious and
political rights be granted to members of all confessions.
The administration of Bosnia and Herzegovina was given over
to Austria, and that of Cyprus, by means of a separate treaty,
to England. The greater part of Armenia, lying in Asia, belongs
to Russia.
§ 208. THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA.[564]
The Republic of the United States of America, existing since the
Declaration of Independence in 1776, and recognised by England as
independent since the conclusion of Peace in 1783, requires of her
citizens no other religious test than belief in one God. Since the
settlers had often left their early homes on account of religious
matters, the greatest variety of religious parties were gathered
together here, and owing to their defective theological training
and their practical turn of mind, they afforded a fruitful field
for religious movements of all sorts, among which the revivals
systematically cultivated by many denominations play a conspicuous
part. The government does not trouble itself with religious questions,
and lets every denomination take care of itself. Preachers are therefore
wholly dependent on their congregations, and are frequently liable to
dismissal at the year’s end. Yet they form a highly respected class,
and nowhere in the Protestant world is the tone of ecclesiastical
feeling and piety so prevailingly high. In the public schools, which are
supported by the State, religious instruction is on principle omitted.
The Lutheran and Catholic churches have therefore founded parochial
schools; the other denominations seek to supply the want by Sunday
schools. The candidates for the ministry are trained in colleges and
in numerous theological seminaries.
§ 208.1. =English Protestant Denominations.=--The numerous
Protestant denominations belong to two great groups, English
and German. Of the first named the following are by far the most
important:
1. =The Congregationalists= are the descendants of the Pilgrim
Fathers who emigrated in 1620 (§ 143, 4). They profess the
doctrines of the Westminster Confession (§ 155, 1).
2. =The Presbyterians=, of Scotch origin, have the same
confession as the Congregationalists, but differ from them
by having a common church government with strict Synodal
and Presbyterial constitution. By rejecting the doctrine of
predestination the Cumberland Presbyterians in 1810 formed
a separate body and have since grown so as to embrace in the
south-western states 120,000 communicants.
3. =The Anglican Episcopal Church= is equally distinguished
by moderate and solid churchliness. Even here, however,
Puseyism has entered in and the Romish church has made
many proselytes. But when at the general conference of the
Evangelical Alliance at New York in 1873, bishop Cummins
of Kentucky took part in the administration of the Lord’s
Supper in the Presbyterian church and was violently attacked
for this by his Puseyite brethren, he laid the foundation
of a “Reformed Episcopal Church,” in which secession other
twenty-five Episcopal ministers joined. They regard the
episcopal constitution as an old and wholesome ordinance
but not a divine institution, also the Anglican liturgy
and _Book of Common Prayer_, though capable of improvement,
while they recognise the ordinations of other evangelical
churches as valid, and reject as Puseyite the doctrine of
a special priesthood of the clergy, of a sacrifice in the
eucharist, the presence of the body and blood of Christ in
the elements, and of the essential and invariable connection
between regeneration and baptism.
4. =The Episcopal Methodists= in America formed since 1784
an independent body (§ 169, 4). Their influence on the
religious life in the United States has been extraordinarily
great. They have had by far the most to do with the revivals
which from the first they have carried to a wonderful
pitch with their protracted meetings, inquiry meetings,
camp meetings, etc. They reached their climax in the camp
meetings which, under the preaching mostly of itinerant
Methodist preachers frequently in the forest under the
canopy of heaven, produced religious awakening among the
multitudes gathered from all around. Day and night without
interruption they continued praying, singing, preaching,
exhorting; all the horrors of hell are depicted, the
excitement increases every moment, penitent wrestlings with
sighs, sobs, groans, convulsions and writhings, occur on
every side; grace comes at last to view; loud hallelujahs,
thanksgivings and ascription of praise by the converted
mix with the moanings of those on “the anxious bench”
pleading for grace, etc. In San Francisco in 1874 there were
“=Baby-Revivals=,” at which children from four to twelve
years of age, who trembled with the fear of hell, sang
penitential hymns, made confession of sin, and wrote their
names on a sheet in order to engage themselves for ever
for Jesus. Since 1847 the Methodist church had been divided
into two hostile camps, a southern and a northern. The
first named tolerated slavery, while the members of the
latter were decided abolitionists and excommunicated all
slave-owners as unworthy of the name of Christian. Another
party, the Protestant Methodists, has blended the episcopal
and congregational constitution.
5. =The Baptists= are split up into many sects. The most
numerous are the Calvinistic Baptists. Their activity in
proselytising is equally great with their zeal for missions
to the heathen. In opposition to them the Free-Will Baptists
are Arminian and the Christian Baptists have adopted
Unitarian views.[565]
§ 208.2. =The German Lutheran Denominations.=--The German
emigration to America began in Penn’s time. In the organization
of church affairs, besides Zinzendorf and the Herrnhut
missionaries, a prominent part was taken by the pastor
Dr. Melchior Mühlenberg (died 1787), a pupil of A. H. Francke,
and the Reformed pastor Schlatter from St. Gall; the former
sent by the Halle Orphanage, the latter by the Dutch church.
The Orphanage sent many earnest preachers till rationalism broke
in upon the society. As at the same time the stream of German
emigration was checked almost completely for several decades,
and so all intercourse with the mother country ceased, crowds
of Germans, impressed by the revivals, went over to the
Anglo-American denominations, and in the German denominations
themselves along with the English language entered also English
Puritanism and Methodism. In 1815 German emigration began again
and grew from year to year. At the synod of 1857 the Lutheran
church with 3,000 pastors divided into three main divisions:
1. The American Lutheran church had become in language,
customs, and doctrine thoroughly Anglicised and Americanized;
Zwinglian in its doctrine of the sacraments, it was Lutheran
in scarcely anything but the name, until in its chief
seminary at Gettysburg in Pennsylvania in 1850 a reaction
set in in favour of genuine Lutheran and German tendencies.
2. A greatly attenuated Lutheranism with unionistic sympathies
and frequent abandonment of the German language also found
expression in the congregations of the Old Pennsylvanian
Synod.
3. On the other hand, the strict Lutheran church held
tenaciously to the exclusive use of the German language
and the genuine Lutheran confession. The Prussian emigration
with Grabau and the Saxon Lutheran settlers with Stephan
constituted its backbone (§ 194, 1). To them a number of
Bavarian Lutherans attached themselves who had emigrated
under the leadership of Löhe, whose missionary institute
at Neuendettelsau supplied them with pastors. The Saxon
Lutherans were meanwhile grouped together in the Missouri
Synod, which Löhe’s missionaries also joined, so that it
soon acquired much larger proportions than the Buffalo Synod
formed previously by the Prussian Lutherans under Grabau.
But very soon the two synods had a violent quarrel over
the idea of office and church which, owing to the reception
by the Missouri Synod of several parties excommunicated
by the Buffalo Synod, led to the formal breach of church
fellowship between the two parties. The Missouri Synod, with
Dr. Walther at its head, attached all importance to sound
doctrine; the clerical office was regarded as a transference
of the right of the congregation and excommunication as
a congregational not a clerical act. The Buffalo Synod,
on the other hand, in consequence of serious conflict with
pietistic elements, had been driven into an overestimation
of external order, of forms of constitution and worship, and
of the clerical office as of immediately divine authority,
and carried this to such a length as led to the dissolution
of the synod in 1877. Löhe’s friends, who had not been able
to agree with either party, formed themselves into the Synod
of Iowa, with their seminary at Wartburg under Fritschel.
On all questions debated between the synods they took
a mediating position. The Missourians, however, would
have nothing to do with them, while those of Buffalo long
maintained tolerably friendly relations with them. But the
historical view of the symbols taken by the Iowans, their
inclination toward the new development of Lutheran theology,
and above all their attitude toward biblical chiliasm, which
they wished to treat as an open question, seemed to those of
Buffalo, as well as to the Missourians, a falling away from
the church confession, and led to their excommunication by
that party also.
In opposition to all this splitting up into sections a General
Council of the Lutheran Church in America was held in 1866, which
sought to combine all Lutheran district synods, of which twelve,
out of fifty-six, with 814 clergymen, joined it, Iowa assuming
a friendly and Missouri a distinctly hostile attitude. The
ninth assembly at Galesburg in Illinois in 1875 laid down as
its fundamental principle, “Lutheran pulpits only for Lutheran
preachers, and Lutheran altars only for Lutheran communicants.”
The native Americans, however, insisted upon exceptions being
allowed, _e.g._ in peril of death, etc. On the question of the
limits of these exceptions, however, subsequent assemblies have
not been able to agree.
§ 208.3. But also in the Synodal Conference founded and
led by the Missouri Synod, embracing five synods, doctrinal
controversies sprang up in 1860. A large number with Dr. Walther
at their head held a strict doctrine of =predestination= which
they regarded as the mark of genuine Lutheranism. God has,
they taught, chosen a definite number of men from eternity to
salvation; these shall and must be saved. Salvation in Christ
is indeed offered to all, but God secures it only for His elect,
so that they are sure of it and cannot lose it again, not indeed
_intuitu fidei_ but only according to His sovereign grace.
Even one of the elect may seem temporarily to fall from grace,
but he cannot die without returning into full possession of it.
Prof. Fritschel protested against this in 1872 as essentially
Calvinistic, and opposition also arose in the Missouri Pastoral
Conference. Prof. Asperheim, of the seminary of the Norwegian
Synod at Madison in Wisconsin, who first pronounced against it
in 1876, was deprived of his office and obliged to withdraw from
the synod. The controversy broke out in a violent form at the
conferences of about 500 pastors held at Chicago in 1880 and
at Milwaukee three months later in 1881, at the former of which
Prof. Stellhorn of Fort Wayne, at the latter Prof. Schmidt
of Madison, offered a vigorous opposition. Walther closed the
conference with the words: “You ask for war, war you shall have.”
The result was that the whole of the Ohio Synod and a large
portion of the Norwegian Wisconsin Synod, broke away from
communion with the Missouri Synod.--Walther and his adherents
went so far in their fanaticism as to pronounce not only their
American opponents but all the most distinguished Lutheran
theologians of Germany, Philippi as well as Hofmann, Luthardt
as well as Kahnis, Vilmar as well as Thomasius, Harms as well
as Zöckler, etc., bastard theologians, semipelagians, synergists
and rationalists, and to refuse church fellowship not only with
all Lutheran national churches in Europe, but also with German
Lutheran Free Churches, which did not unconditionally attach
themselves to them. These Missouri separatist communities, though
everywhere quite unimportant, are in Europe strongest in the
kingdom of Saxony; they have also a few representatives in Nassau,
Baden, Württemberg, Bavaria and Hesse.
§ 208.4. =German-Reformed and other German-Protestant
Denominations.=--The German-Reformed church has its seminary
at Mercersburg in Pennsylvania. Its confession of faith is
the Heidelberg Catechism, its theology an offshoot of German
evangelical union theology, but with a distinctly positive
tendency. Although the union theology there prevailed among the
Reformed as well as the Lutherans, a German Evangelical Church
Union was formed at St. Louis in 1841 which wished to set aside
the names Reformed and Lutheran. It established a seminary at
Marthasville in Missouri. The Herrnhuters are also represented in
America. Several German Methodist sects have recently sprung up:
1. The “United Brethren in Christ,” with 500 preachers, founded
by a Reformed preacher Otternbein (died 1813).
2. The “Evangelical Communion,” commonly called
_Albrechtsleute_, founded by Jac. Albrecht, originally a
Lutheran layman, whom his own followers ordained in 1803,
with 500 or 600 preachers working zealously and carrying
on mission work also in Germany (§ 211, 1).
3. The Weinbrennians or Church of God, founded by an
excommunicated Reformed pastor of that name in 1839. They
carry the Methodist revivalism to the most extravagant
excess and are also fanatical opponents of infant baptism.
§ 208.5. =The Catholic Church.=--A number of English Catholics
under Lord Baltimore settled in Maryland in 1634. The little
community grew and soon filled the land. There alone in the whole
world did the Roman Catholic church though dominant proclaim
the principle of toleration and religious equality. Consequently
Protestants of various denominations crowded thither, outnumbered
the original settlers, and rewarded those who had hospitably
received them with abuse and oppression. The Catholics were
also treated in other states as idolaters and excluded from
public offices and posts of honour. Only after the Declaration
of Independence in 1783 was this changed by the sundering of the
connection of church and state and the proclamation of absolute
religious liberty. The number of Catholics was greatly increased
by numerous emigrations, specially from Ireland and Catholic
Germany. They now claim seven million members, with a cardinal
at New York, 13 archbishops, 64 bishops, about 7,000 churches and
chapels. A beautiful cathedral was erected in New York in 1879,
the immense cost of which, exceeding all expectation, was at last
defrayed by very unspiritual and unecclesiastical methods, _e.g._
lotteries, fairs, dramatic exhibitions, concerts, and even dearly
sold kisses, etc. The Roman Catholics have also a university at
St. Louis, 80 colleges, and 300 cloisters.
§ 209. THE ROMAN CATHOLIC STATES OF SOUTH AMERICA.
To the predominantly Protestant North America the position of the
Roman Catholic states of South America forms a very striking contrast.
Nowhere else was the influence and power of the clergy so wide-spread
and deeply rooted, nowhere else has the depravation of Catholicism
reached such a depth of superstition, obscurantism, and fanaticism.
During the second and third decades of our century the Spanish states,
favoured by the revolutionary movement in the mother country, one
after another asserted their independence, and the Portuguese Brazil
established herself as an independent empire under the legitimate
royal prince of Portugal, Pedro I. in 1822. Although the other new
states adopted a republican constitution, they could not throw aside
the influence of the Catholic clergy and carry out the principles of
religious freedom proclaimed in their constitutions. The Catholicism of
the Creoles, half-castes, and mulattoes was of too bigoted a kind and
the power of the clergy too great to allow any such thing. Mexico went
furthest in the attempt, and Brazil, under Dom Pedro II. from 1831,
astonished the world by the vigorous measures of its government
in 1874 against the assumptions of the higher clergy.--In spite of
all hindrances a not inconsiderable number of small evangelical
congregations have been formed in Romish America, partly through
emigration and partly by evangelization.
§ 209.1. =Mexico.=--Of all the American states, Mexico, since its
independence in 1823, has been most disturbed by revolutions and
civil wars. The rich and influential clergy, possessing nearly
a half of all landed property, was the factor with which all
pretenders, presidents and rulers had to reckon. After most
of the earlier governments had supported the clergy and been
supported by them, the ultimately victorious liberal party
under president Juarez shook off the yoke in 1859. He proclaimed
absolute religious freedom, introduced civil marriage, abolished
cloisters, pronounced church possessions national property and
exiled the obstinate bishops. The clerical party now sought
and obtained foreign aid. Spain, France and England joined in
a common military convention in 1861 in supporting certain claims
of citizens repudiated by Juarez. Spain and England soon withdrew
their troops, and Napoleon III. openly declared the purpose of
his interference to be the strengthening of the Latin race and
the monarchical principle in America. At his instigation the
Austrian Grand-Duke Maximilian was elected emperor, and that
prince, after receiving the pope’s blessing in Rome, began
his reign in 1864. Distrusted by all parties as a stranger,
in difficulties with the curia and clergy because he opposed
their claims to have their most extravagant privileges restored,
shamefully left in the lurch by Napoleon from fear of the
threatening attitude of the North American Union, and then
sold and betrayed by his own general Bazaine, this noble
but unfortunate prince was at last sentenced by Juarez at a
court-martial to be shot in 1867. Juarez now maintained his
position till the end of his life in 1872, and strictly carried
out his anticlerical reforms. After his death clericalism again
raised her head, and the Jesuits expelled from Guatemala swarmed
over the land. Yet constitutional sanction was given to the
Juarez legislation at the congress of 1873. The Jesuits were
driven across the frontiers, obstinate priests as well as a great
number of nuns, who had gathered again in cloisters and received
novices, were put in prison.--Also =Evangelization= advanced
slowly under sanction of law, though regarded with disfavour
by the people and interfered with often by the mob. It began
in 1865 with the awakening of a Catholic priest Francisco
Aguilar and a Dominican monk Manuel Aguas, through the reading
of the Scriptures. They laid the foundation of the “_Iglesia
de Jesus_” of converted Mexicans, with evangelical doctrine and
apostolic-episcopal constitution, which has now 71 congregations
throughout the whole country with about 10,000 souls. This
movement received a new impulse in 1869, when a Chilian-born
Anglican episcopal minister of a Spanish-speaking congregation
in New York, called Riley, took the control of it and was in 1879
consecrated its bishop. Besides this independent “_Church of
Jesus_” North American missionaries of various denominations
have wrought there since 1872 with slow but steady success.
§ 209.2. =In the Republics of Central and Southern America=, when
the liberal party obtained the helm of government through almost
incessant civil wars, religious freedom was generally proclaimed,
civil marriage introduced, the Jesuits expelled, cloisters shut
up, etc. But in =Ecuador=, president Moreno, aided by the clergy,
concluded in 1862 a concordat with the curia by which throughout
the country only the Catholic worship was tolerated, the bishops
could condemn and confiscate any book, education was under the
Jesuits, and the government undertook to employ the police in
suppressing all errors and compelling all citizens to fulfil all
their religious duties. And further the public resolved in 1873,
although unable to pay the interest of the national debt, to hand
over a tenth of all state revenues to the pope. But Moreno was
murdered in 1875. The Jesuits, who were out of favour, left Quito.
The tithe hitherto paid to the pope was immediately withheld,
and in 1877 the concordat was abrogated. As Ecuador in Moreno,
so =Peru= at the same time in Pierola had a dictator after the
pope’s own heart. The republic had his misgovernment to thank for
one defeat after another in the war with Chili.--=Bolivia=
in 1872 declared that the Roman Catholic religion alone would
be tolerated in the country, and suffered, in common with Peru,
annihilating defeats at the hand of Chili.--When at St. Iago in
Chili, during the festival of the Immaculate Conception in 1863,
the Jesuit church La Compania was burnt and in it more than 2,000
women and children consumed, the clergy pronounced this disaster
an act of grace of the blessed Virgin, who wished to give the
country a vast number of saints and martyrs. But here, too,
the conflicts between church and state continued. In 1874 the
Chilian episcopate pronounced the ban against the president and
the members of the national council and of the Lower House who
had favoured the introduction of a new penal code which secured
liberty of worship, but it remained quite unheeded. When then the
archiepiscopal chair of St. Iago became vacant in 1878, the pope
refused on any condition to confirm the candidate appointed by
the government. After the decisive victory over Peru and Bolivia,
the government again in December, 1881, urgently insisted upon
their presentation. The curia now sent to Chili, avowedly to
obtain more accurate information, an apostolic delegate who
took advantage of his position to stir up strife, so that the
government was obliged to insist upon his recall. As the curia
declined to do so, his passports were sent to the legate in
January, 1883, and a presidential message was addressed to the
next congress which demanded the separation of the church and
state, with the introduction of civil marriage and register of
civil station, as the only remaining means for putting down the
confusion caused by papal tergiversation. The result of the long
and heated debates that followed was the promulgation of a law
by which Catholicism was deprived of the character of the state
religion and the perfect equality of all forms of worship was
proclaimed.--=Guatemala= in 1872 expelled the Jesuits whose power
and wealth had become very great. In 1874 the president Borrias
opened a new campaign against the clergy by forbidding them to
wear the clerical dress except when discharging the duties of
their office, and closing all the nunneries.--In =Venezuela=, in
1872, Archbishop Guevara of Caracas, who had previously come into
collision with the government by favouring the rebels, forbade
his clergy taking part in the national festival, and put the
cathedral in which it was to be celebrated under the interdict.
Deposed and banished on this account, he continued from the
British island of Trinidad his endeavours to stir up a new
rebellion. The president, Guzman Blanco, after long fruitless
negotiations with the papal nuncio, submitted in May, 1876, to
the congress at St. Domingo the draft of a bill, which declared
the national church wholly independent of Rome. The congress
not only homologated his proposals, but carried them further,
by abolishing the episcopal hierarchy and assigning its revenues
to the national exchequer, for education. Now at last the Roman
curia agreed to the deposition of Guevara and confirmed the
nomination of his previously appointed successor. But president
Blanco now asked congress to abolish the law, and this was agreed
to.--In the United States of =Colombia= since 1853, and in the
=Argentine Republic= since 1865, perfect liberty of faith and
worship have been constitutionally secured. From the latter state
the Jesuits had been banished for a long time but had managed
to smuggle themselves in again. When in the beginning of 1875
Archbishop Aneiros of Buenos Ayres addressed to the government
which favoured the clerical party rather than to the congress
which was the only competent court, a request to reinvest the
Jesuits with the churches, cloisters, and properties held by them
before their expulsion, a terrible outbreak took place, which
the archbishop intensified to the utmost by issuing a violent
pastoral. A mob of 30,000 men, convened by the students of the
university, wrecked the palace of the archbishop, then attacked
the Jesuit college, burnt all its furniture and ornaments on
the streets and by means of petroleum soon reduced the building
itself to flames. Only with difficulty did the military succeed
in preventing further mischief. In October, 1884, the papal
nuncio was expelled, because, when the government decidedly
refused his request to prevent the spread of Protestant teaching
and to place Sunday schools under the oversight of the bishops,
he replied in a most violent and passionate manner. About the
same time the republic of =Costa-rica= issued a law forbidding
all religious orders, pronouncing all vows invalid, and
threatening banishment against all who should contravene these
enactments, and also an education act which forbade all public
instruction apart from that provided by the State.
§ 209.3. =Brazil.=--In Brazil down to 1884, the “Catholic
Apostolic Roman Religion” was, according to the constitution,
the religion of the empire. But from 1828 there was a Protestant
congregation in Rio de Janeiro, and through the inland districts,
in consequence of immigration, there were 100 small evangelical
congregations, with twenty-five ordained pastors, whose forms
of worship were of various kinds. In earlier times Protestant
marriage was regarded as concubinage, but in 1851 a law was
passed which gave it civil recognition. But the bishops held
to their previous views and demanded of married converts a
repetition of the ceremony. Since 1870, however, the government
has energetically opposed the claims of the clergy who wished
only to acknowledge the authority of Rome. Protestant marriages
were pronounced equally legitimate with Catholic marriages,
no civil penalties are incurred by excommunication, all papal
bulls are subject to the approval of the government, and it was
insisted that announcement should be made of all clergy nominated.
The clergy considered freemasonry the chief source of all this
liberal current, and against it therefore they directed all their
forces. The pope assisted by his brief of May, 1873, condemning
freemasonry. At the head of the rebel prelates stood Don
Vitalis Gonsalvez de Oliveira, bishop of Olinda and Pernambuco.
He published the papal brief without asking the imperial
permission, pronounced the ban upon all freemasons and suspended
the interdict over all associations which refused to expel
masonic brothers from their membership. In vain the government
demanded its withdrawal. It then accused him of an attack
upon the constitution. The supreme court ordered his detention,
and he was placed in the state prison at Rio de Janeiro in
January, 1874. The trial ended by his being sentenced to four
years’ imprisonment, which the emperor as an act of grace
commuted to detention in a fortress, and set him free in a
year and a half. In consequence of this occurrence the Jesuits
were, in 1874, expelled from the country. The increasing advent
of monks and nuns from Europe led the government, in 1884, to
appoint a commission to carry out the law already passed in 1870,
for the secularization of all monastic property after providing
pensions for those entitled to support. In the same year all
naturalized non-Catholics were pronounced eligible for election
to the imperial parliament and to the provincial assemblies. The
members belonging to the evangelical churches now number about
50,000, of whom 30,000 are Germans.[566]
V. Opponents of Church and of Christianity.
§ 210. SECTARIANS AND ENTHUSIASTS IN THE ROMAN CATHOLIC
AND ORTHODOX RUSSIAN DOMAINS.
It cannot be denied that since the Tridentine attempt to define
the church doctrine far fewer sects condemning the church as such
have sprung from Roman Catholicism than from Protestantism. Yet such
phenomena are not wanting in the nineteenth century. Their scarcity
is abundantly made up for by the numberless degenerations and errors
(§ 191) which the Catholic church or its representatives in the
higher and lower grades of the clergy not only fell into, but actually
provoked and furthered, and thus encouraged an unhealthy love for
religious peculiarities. Were the absence of new heretical, sectarian
and fanatical developments something to be gloried in for itself alone,
the Eastern church, with its absolute stability, would obtain this
distinction in a far higher degree. In the Russian church, however,
the multitude of sects which amid manifold oppressions and persecutions
continue to exist to the present day, in spite of many persistent and
even condemnable errors, witnesses to a deep religious need in the
Russian people.
§ 210.1. =Sects and Fanatics in the Roman Catholic Domain=
(§ 187, 6-8, § 190).--On the Catholic Irvingites see § 211, 10.
1. =The Order of New Templars= sprang from the Freemasons
(§ 172, 2). Soon after their establishment in France the
Jesuits sought to carry out their own hierarchical ideas.
The fable of an uninterrupted connection between freemasonry
as a “temple of humanity” and the Templars of the Middle
Ages, and the introduction therewith in their secret
ceremonies of exercises, borrowed from the chivalry of
romance, afforded a means toward this end. The idea was
started in the Jesuit college at Claremont and was approved
and accepted by the local lodge. In A.D. 1754 a great
number of their noble members, who were disgusted with the
Jesuit templar farce, withdrew in order as “New Templars”
to continue the old order in the spirit of modern times. In
consequence, however, of the revolution that broke out in
A.D. 1789 they could no longer hold their ground as a band
of nobles. Napoleon favoured the reorganization of the order
freed from those limits. The day of Molay’s death (§ 112, 7)
was publicly celebrated with great pomp in Paris, A.D. 1808
and the order spread among all French populations. On the
Bourbon restoration the grand-master was, at the instigation
of the Jesuits, cast into prison and the order suppressed.
After the July revolution he was liberated and a new temple
was opened in Paris in A.D. 1833. The show-loving Parisians
for a long time took pleasure in the peculiar rites and
costume of the templars. When this interest declined the
order passed out of view. Its religion, which professed
to be a primitive revelation carried down in the Greek and
Egyptian mysteries, from which Moses borrowed, then further
developed by Christ and transmitted in esoteric tradition by
John and his successors the grand-masters of the templars,
taught a divine trinity of being, act and consciousness, the
eternity of the world alongside of God and an indwelling of
God in man. It declared the Roman Catholic church to be the
only true Christianity (_église chrétienne primitive_). Its
sacred book consisted of an apocryphal gospel of John in
accordance with its own notions.
2. On the communistic society of =St. Simonians=, which also
sprang up in France, see § 212, 2.
3. St. Simon’s secretary was =Aug. Comte=, the founder of the
Positivist philosophical school (§ 174, 2) and he maintained
intimate relations with his master all through life. In
his later years he undertook by carrying his philosophical
doctrine into the practical domain to sketch out a “religion
of humanity,” and thus became the founder of a Positivist
religious sect. The men of science indeed who had adopted
his philosophical principles (Littré, Renan, Taine, Lewes,
Leslie Stephens, Tyndall, Huxley, Draper, etc.), repudiate
it; but in the middle and lower ranks some were found
longing for an object of worship, who endeavoured on the
basis of his _Calendrier positiviste_ and _Catechisme
positiviste_ to form a religious society for the worship
of humanity. His festival calendar divides the year into
thirteen months of four weeks each, named after the thirteen
great benefactors of mankind (among whom Christ does not
appear), while the weeks are named after lesser heroes. By
the profound veneration of woman, which savours greatly of
Mariolatry, as well as by the fantastic worship of heroes,
geniuses and scholars, which is a mimicry of the popish
saint worship, and by the adoption of a sacerdotalism like
that of Catholicism, this religion of humanity shows itself
to be an antichristian growth on Roman Catholic soil.
§ 210.2.
4. =Thomas Pöschl=, in the second decade of the century,
presents an instance of a degeneration of originally
pietistic tendencies into mischievous fanaticism. A
Catholic priest at Ampfelwang near Linz, he sought under
the influence of Sailer’s mysticism to awaken in his
congregation a more lively Christianity by means of
prayer meetings and the circulation of tracts, in which
he proclaimed the approaching end of the world. When the
district in which he lived was, in 1814, attached to Austria,
he was committed to prison, and his followers accepted as
their leader the peasant =Jos. Haas=, who led them further
still into fanatical excesses. His fanaticism at length went
so far that on Good Friday of 1817 a young maiden belonging
to their party suffered a voluntary death after the example
of Christ for her brothers and sisters. Pöschl professed the
deepest horror at this cruel deed for which he was blamed.
He died in close monastic confinement in 1837.
5. The Antinomian sect of the =Antonians=, most numerous in
the Canton Bern, had its beginning among the Roman Catholics.
Its founder was Antoni Unternährer, born and reared at
Shüpfheim, near Lucerne, in the Catholic faith. From 1802
he resided at Amfoldingen, near Thun, where he stood in
high repute among the peasants as a quack doctor, gave
himself out as the son of God a second time become man, and
proclaimed by word and writing the perfect redemption from
the curse of the law by the introduction of the true freedom
of the sons of God, which was to show itself first of all
in the absolutely unrestricted intercourse of the sexes.
After two years’ confinement in a house of correction he was
banished from the Canton Bern and transported to his native
place, where, abandoning all pastoral duties, he died in a
police cell in 1814. The sect, which had meanwhile spread
widely, and at Gsteig near Interlaken had obtained a new
leader in the person of Benedict Schori, a third incarnation
of Christ, could not be finally suppressed, notwithstanding
the liberal use of the prison, till the beginning of 1840.
Even at this day scattered remnants of Antonians are to be
found in Canton Bern.
6. When the Austrian constitution of 1849 gave unconditional
religious toleration, the Bohemian =Adamites= (§ 115, 5),
of whom remnants under the mask of Catholicism had continued
down to the nineteenth century, ventured again publicly
to engage in proselytising efforts. An official enquiry
instituted on this occasion declared that the sect,
consisting of Bohemian peasants and artisans, had its
headquarters among the mystics of the Krüdener school,
that its religious doctrine was a mixture of communism,
freethinking and quietism, and that its members were in
their ordinary public life blameless, but that in their
secret nightly assemblies, where they dispensed with
clothes, they celebrated orgies regardless of marriage
or relationship.
7. =David Lazzaretti=, formerly a carrier in Tuscany,
appeared in his native place after an absence of several
years, in 1872, declaring that he was descended from a
natural son of Charlemagne and had been entrusted by the
Apostle Peter with a message to the pope, pointing to a
cross that had been burnt upon his brow by the apostle
himself. He startled those of the Vatican, where he was
quite unknown, by declaring that the bones of his ancestors
lay under the ruins of an old Franciscan cloister in Sabina,
of whose existence nobody was aware, the discovery of
which seemed to vouch for his claims. These were all the
more readily admitted when it was found that he made the
restoration of the Pope’s temporal power his main task. The
number of his adherents, mostly peasants, soon increased
immensely, reaching, it is said, 40,000. On Monte Labro they
built a church with a strong “David’s Tower,” over which
“St. David” appointed two priests who, when they had made
certain changes in worship at the call of the prophet, were
excommunicated by the bishop. David now began to spread
his socialistic and communistic ideas. He insisted that
his adherents should surrender their goods to him as
representative of the society, and promised down to
December 31st, 1890, the introduction of community of goods
throughout Italy and afterwards in other countries. In
Arcidosso, the prophet’s birthplace, a beginning was to be
made, but in its overthrow on August 18th, 1878, he met his
death, and his befooled followers waited in vain for the
fulfilment of his dying promise that he would rise again
on the third day.
§ 210.3. =Russian Sects and Fanatics.=--After the attempt under
Nicholas I. at the forcible conversion of the =Raskolniks=,
especially the purely schismatic =Starowerzians= or Old Believers
(§ 163, 10), had proved fruitless, the government of Alexander II.
by patience and concession took a surer way to reconciliation and
restoration. In October, 1874, their marriages, births and deaths,
which had hitherto been without legal recognition, were put on
the regular register and so their lawful rights of inheritance
were secured. Under Alexander III. in 1883 an imperial decree was
issued, which gave them permission to celebrate divine service
after their own methods in their chapels, which had not before
the legal standing of churches, and declared them also eligible
for public appointments.--To the =Duchoborzians= (§ 166, 2),
sorely oppressed under Catherine II. and Paul I., Alexander I.,
after they had laid before him the confession which they had
adopted, granted toleration, but assigned them a separate
residence in the Taurus district. Under Nicholas I. they were to
the number of 3,000 transported to the Transcaucasian mountains
in 1841, where they were called Duchoborje.--The Württemberg
Pietist colonists of South Russia originated among the peasants
the widespread sect of the =Stundists= soon after the abolition
of serfdom in 1863. The originator of those separatist meetings
for the study of Scripture, which led first of all to the
condemnation of image worship and making the sign of the cross
as unbiblical, and subsequently to a complete withdrawal from the
worship of the orthodox church and the forming of conventicles,
was the peasant and congregational elder Ratusny of Osnowa near
Odessa, to whom, at a later period, with equal propagandist zeal,
the peasant Balabok attached himself. The latter was, in 1871,
sentenced to one year’s imprisonment at Kiev and the loss
of civil rights, and in 1873, at Odessa, a great criminal
prosecution was instituted against Ratusny and all the other
leaders of the sect, which, however, after proceeding for five
years ended in a verdict of acquittal. A process started in 1878
against the so-called =Schaloputs= had a similar issue. This sect,
spread most widely among the Cossacks of Cuban, rejects the Old
Testament, the sacraments and the doctrine of the resurrection,
but believes in a continued effusion of the Holy Spirit upon the
prophets of the church who have prepared themselves for their
vocation by complete abstinence from flesh and spirituous liquor
as well as by incessant prayer and frequent fasting.
§ 210.4. About the middle of the eighteenth century among the
“_Men of God_,” the strict interpretation of the prescriptions of
their founder Danila Filipow (§ 163, 10) had led many to abstain
wholly from sexual relations; when a peasant Andrew Selivanov
appeared as a reformer and founded the sect of the =Skopzen=
or mutilators, who, building on misinterpreted passages of
Scripture (Matt. v. 28-30, xix. 12; Rev. xiv. 4) insisted upon
the destruction of sexual desire by castration and excision of
the female breasts, generally performed under anæsthetics, as a
necessary condition of entrance into the kingdom of heaven. The
first Skopzic congregation was gathered round him in the village
of Sosnowka. The “men of God” enraged at his success denounced
him to the government. He was punished with the knout and
condemned in 1774 to hard labour at Irkutzk. The idea that
Peter III., who died in 1762, was still alive, then widely
prevailed. The “men of God” had also adopted this opinion,
and proclaimed him their last-appearing Christ, who would soon
return from his hiding-place to call to account all unbelievers.
Selivanov, who knew of this, now gave himself out for the exiled
monarch, and was accepted as such by his adherents in his native
place. When Paul I., Peter’s son, assumed the reins of government
in 1796, a Skopzic merchant of Moscow told him secretly that his
father was living at Irkutzk under the name of Selivanov. The
emperor therefore brought him to Petersburg and shut him up as an
imbecile in an asylum. After Paul’s death, however, his adherents
obtained his release. He now lived for eighteen years in honour
at Petersburg, till in 1820 the court again interfered and had
him confined in a cloister at Suzdal, where after some years
he died. Sorely persecuted by Nicholas I. many of his followers
migrated to Moldavia and Walachia where they, dwelling in
separate quarters at Jassy, Bucharest and Galatz, lived as owners
of coach-hiring establishments, and by rich presents obtained
proselytes. Still more vigorously was the propaganda carried on
in the Moscow colonies on the Sea of Azov. There in Morschansk
lived the spiritual head of all Russian Skopzen, the rich
merchant Plotizyn. After the government got on the track of
this society, Plotizyn’s house was searched and a correspondence
revealing the wide extension of the sect was found, together with
a treasure of several, some say as much as thirty, millions of
roubles, which, however, in great part again disappeared in a
mysterious manner. Plotizyn and his companions were banished
to Siberia and sentenced to hard labour, the less seriously
implicated to correction in a cloister.--The secret doctrine of
the Skopzen so far as is known is as follows: God had intended
man to propagate not by sexual intercourse but by a holy kiss.
They broke this command and this constituted the fall. In the
fulness of time God sent his Son into the world. The central
point of his preaching transmitted to us in a greatly distorted
form was the introduction of the baptism of fire (Matt. iii. 11),
_i.e._ mutilation by hot irons for which, in consideration
of human weakness, a baptism of castration may be substituted
(Matt. xix. 12). Origen is regarded by them as the greatest saint
of the ancient church; to his example all saints conformed who
are represented as beardless or with only a slight beard. The
promised return of the Christ (in this alone diverging from the
doctrine of the “men of God”), took place in the person of the
emperor Peter III. whom an unstained virgin bore, who was called
the empress Elizabeth Petrovna. The latter after some years
transferred the government to a lady of the court resembling her
and retired into private life under the name of Akulina Ivanovna,
where she still remains invisible behind golden walls, waiting
for the things that are to come. Her son Peter III., who had
also himself undergone the baptism of fire, escaped the snares of
his wife, reappeared under the name of Selivanov, performed many
miracles and converted multitudes, obtained as a reward the knout,
and was at last sent to Siberia. Emperor Paul recalled him and
was converted by him. Under Alexander I. he was again arrested
and imprisoned in the cloister of Suzdal. But he was conveyed
thence by a divine miracle to Irkutzk, where he now lives in
secret, whence at his own time he shall return to judge the
living and the dead.--They kept up an outward connection with the
state church although they regarded it as the apocalyptic whore
of Babylon. In their own secret services inspired psalms were
sung, and after exciting dances prophecies were uttered.[567]
§ 211. SECTARIES AND ENTHUSIASTS IN THE PROTESTANT DOMAIN.
The United States of America with their peculiar constitution formed
the favourite ground for the gathering and moulding of sects during
this age. There, besides the older colonies of Quakers, Baptists and
Methodists from England, we meet with Swedenborgianism and Unitarianism,
while Baptists and Methodists began to send missionaries into Europe,
and from England the Salvation Army undertook a campaign for the
conquest of the world. But also on the European continent independent
fanatical developments made their appearance.--A new combination of
communism with religious enthusiasm is represented by the Harmonists and
by the Perfectionists in North America. The Grusinian Separatists and
the Bavarian Chiliasts are millenarians of German extraction, of whom
the former sought deliverance from the prevailing antichristian spirit
in removal from, and the latter in removal to, South Russia. The
Amen churches sought to gather God’s people of the Jewish Christian
communities together in Palestine, while the so-called German Temple
sought to gather the Gentile Christians. As Latter Day Saints, besides
the Adventists, the Darbyites established themselves on an independent
basis; the Irvingites, with revival of the apostolic offices and
charisms, and their American caricature, the Mormons, with the addition
of socialistic and fantastic gnostic tendencies. The religion of the
Taiping rebellion in China presented the rare phenomenon of a national
Chinese Christianity of native growth, and a still rarer manifestation
is met with in American-European spiritualism with pretended spirit
revelations from the other world.
§ 211.1. =The Methodist Propaganda.=--From 1850 the American
Methodists, both the Albrechtsleute (§ 208, 4) and the Episcopal
Methodists, have sent out numerous missionaries, mostly Germans
into Germany, whose zeal has won considerable success among
the country people. In North-West Germany Bremen is their chief
station, whence they have spread to Sweden, Central and Southern
Germany, and Switzerland, and have stations in Frankfort,
Carlsruhe, Heilbronn, and Zürich.--Of a more evanescent character
was the attempt made on Germany by the so-called =Oxford Holiness
Movement=. In 1866 the North American Methodists celebrated their
centenary in New York by the appointment of a great revival and
holiness committee, in which were also members of many other
denominations. Among them the manufacturer, =Pearsall Smith=, of
Philadelphia, converted in 1871, exhibited extraordinary zeal. In
September, 1874, he held at Oxford great revival meetings, from
which the designation of the Oxford movement had its origin. By
some Germans there present his opinions were carried to Germany.
In spring, 1875, he began his second European missionary tour.
While his two companions, the revivalists Moody and Sankey,
travelled through England for the conversion of the masses, Smith
went to Germany, and proceeding from Berlin on to Switzerland,
gave addresses in English, that were interpreted, in ten of the
large cities. The most pious among clergy and laity flocked from
far and near to hear him. The new apostle’s journey became more
and more a triumphal march. He was lauded as a reformer called
to complete the work of Luther; as a prophet, who was to fructify
the barren wastes of Germany with the water of life. The core of
his doctrine was: Perfect holiness and the attainment of absolute
perfection, not hereafter, but now! now! now! with the constant
refrain: “_Jesus saves me now_;” not remission of sins through
justification by faith in the atoning efficacy of Christ’s blood,
which only avails for outward sinful actions, but immediate
extinction of sins by Christ in us, proved in living, unfaltering,
inner, personal experience, etc. By a great international and
interconfessional meeting at Brighton, lasting for ten days, in
June, 1875, at which many German pastors, induced by the payment
of travelling expenses, were present, the crown was put upon
the work. But at the height of his triumph, under the daily
increasing tension and excitement the apostle of holiness showed
himself to be a poor sinful son of man, for he strayed into
errors, “if not practically, at least theoretically,” which his
admirers at first referred to mental aberration, but which they
hid from the eyes of the world under a veil of mystery. Toward
the end of the Brighton conference he declared to his hearers:
“Thus plunge into a life of divine unconcern!” and, “All Europe
lies at my feet.” And in subsequent private conversations he
developed a system of ethics that “would suit Utah rather than
England,” to which he then so conformed his own conduct that
his admirers, “although satisfied of the purity of his own
intentions,” were obliged energetically to repudiate and with
all speed send away across the sea the man whom their own
unmeasured adulation had deceived.
§ 211.2. =The Salvation Army.=--An extremely fantastic caricature
of English Methodism is the =Salvation Army=. The Methodist
evangelist, =William Booth=, who in 1865 founded in one of the
lowest quarters of London a new mission station, fell upon the
idea in 1878, in order to make an impression on the rude masses,
to give his male and female helpers a military organisation,
discipline and uniform, and with military banners and music
to undertake a campaign against the kingdom of the devil. The
General of the Salvationists is Booth himself, his wife is his
adjutant, his eldest daughter field-marshal; his fellow-workers
male and female are his soldiers, cadets and officers of various
ranks; chief of the staff is Booth’s eldest son. Their services
are conducted according to military forms; their orchestra of
trombone, drum and trumpet is called the Hallelujah Brass Band.
Their journal, with an issue of 400,000, is the _War Cry_;
another for children, is _The Little Soldier_, in which Jane,
four years old, dilates on the experiences of her inner life; and
Tommy, eleven years old, is sure that, having served the devil
for eleven years, he will now fight for King Jesus; and Lucy,
nine years old, rejoices in being washed in the blood of the Lamb.
The army attained its greatest success in England. Its numerous
“prisoners of war” from the devil’s army (prostitutes, drunkards,
thieves, etc.) are led at the parade as trophies of war, and
tell of their conversion, whereupon the command of the general,
“Fire a Volley,” calls forth thousands of hallelujahs. Liberal
collections and unsought contributions, embracing several
donations of a £1,000 and more, are given to the General, not
only to pay his soldiers, but also to rent or to purchase and fit
up theatres, concert halls, circuses, etc., for their meetings,
and to build large new “barracks.” Its wonderful success has
secured for the army many admirers and patrons, even in the
highest ranks of society. Queen Victoria herself testified to
Mrs. Booth her high satisfaction with her noble work. At the
Convocation, too, in the Upper as well as the Lower House,
distinguished prelates spoke favourably of its methods and
results, and so encouraged the formation of a Church Army, which,
under the direction of the mission preacher Aitken, pursues
similar ways to those of the Salvation Army, without, however,
its spectacular displays, and has lately extended its exertions
to India. The temperance party after the same model has formed a
Blue Ribbon Army, the members of which, distinguished by wearing
a piece of blue ribbon in the buttonhole, confine themselves
to fighting against alcohol. In opposition to it public-house
keepers and their associates formed a Yellow Ribbon Army, which
has as its ensign the yellow silk bands of cigar bundles. Soon
after the first great success of the Salvation Army, a Skeleton
Army was formed out of the lowest dregs of the London mob,
which, with a banner bearing the device of a skeleton, making
a noise with all conceivable instruments, and singing obscene
street songs to sacred melodies, interrupted the marches of the
Salvation, and afterwards of the Church, Army: throwing stones,
filthy rotten apples and eggs, and even storming and demolishing
their “barracks.”--In 1880 a detachment of the Salvation
Army, with Railton at its head, assisted by seven Hallelujah
Lasses, made a first campaign in America, with New York as
its head-quarters. In the following year, under Miss Booth, it
invaded France, where it issues a daily bulletin, “_En Avant_.”
In 1882 it appeared in Australia, then in India, where Chunder
Sen, the founder of the Brama-Somaj, showed himself favourable.
In Switzerland it broke ground in 1882, in Sweden in 1884, and
in Germany, at Stuttgart, in November, 1886. Africa, Spain, Italy,
etc., followed in succession. These foreign corps outside of
England also found considerable success. Almost everywhere they
met with opposition, the magistrates often forbidding their
meetings, and inflicting fines and imprisonment, and the mob
resorting to all sorts of violent interference. Nowhere were both
sorts of opponents so persistent as in Switzerland in 1883 and
1884, especially in Lausanne, Geneva, Neuenburg, Bern, Beil, etc.
Although General Booth himself at the annual meeting in April,
1884, boasted that £393,000 had been collected during the past
year for the purposes of the army, and over 846 barracks in
eighteen countries of the world had been opened, and now even
spoke of strengthening the army by establishing a Salvation Navy,
the increasing extravagances caused by the army itself, as well
as the far greater improprieties of those more or less associated
with it, has drawn away many of its former supporters.
§ 211.3. =Baptists and Quakers.=--=Baptist= sympathies
and tendencies often appeared in Germany apart from an
anti-ecclesiastical pietism or mysticism. But this aberration
first assumed considerable proportions when a Hamburg merchant,
Oncken, who had been convinced by his private Bible reading of
the untenableness of infant baptism, was baptized by an American
baptist in 1834, and now not only founded the first German
baptist congregation in Hamburg, but also proved unwearied in
his efforts to extend the sect over all Germany and Scandinavia
by missions and tract distribution. Oncken died in 1884. Thus
gradually there were formed about a hundred new Baptist German
congregations in Mecklenburg, Brandenburg (Berlin), Pomerania,
Silesia, East Prussia (Memel, Tilsit, etc.), Westphalia,
Wupperthal, Hesse, Württemberg and Switzerland. In Sweden
(250 congregations with 18,000 souls) they were mainly recruited
from the “Readers,” who after 1850 went over in crowds (§ 201, 2).
They also found entrance into Denmark and Courland, but in
all cases almost exclusively among the uncultured classes
of labourers and peasants. After long but vain attempts at
suppression by the governments during the reactionary period
of 1850, they obtained under the liberal policy of the next two
decades more or less religious toleration in most states. They
called themselves the society of “baptized Christians,” and
maintained that they were “the visible church of the saints,”
the chosen people of God, in contrast to the “hereditary
church and the church of all and sundry,” in which they saw the
apocalyptic Babylon. Even the Mennonites who “sprinkle,” instead
of immersing, “all,” _i.e._ without proper sifting, they regard
as a “hereditary” church. With the Anglo-American Baptists they
do indeed hold fellowship, but take exception to them in several
points, especially about open communion.--A peculiar order of
Baptists has arisen in Hungary in the =Nazarenes= or Nazirites,
or as they call themselves: “Followers of Christ.” Founded
in 1840 by Louis Henefey originally a Catholic smith, who had
returned home from Switzerland, the sect obtained numerous
adherents from all three churches, most largely from the Reformed
church, favoured perhaps by the not yet altogether extinguished
reminiscences of the Baptist persecutions of the eighteenth
century (§ 163, 2). They practised strict asceticism, refused
to take oaths or engage in military service, and kept the bare
Puritan forms of worship, in which any one was allowed to preach
whom the Holy Spirit enlightened. Their congregations embraced
weak and strong friends, and also weak and strong brethren.
The strong friends after receiving baptism joined the ranks of
weak brethren, and then again became strong brethren on their
admission to the Lord’s Supper. The church officers were singers,
teachers, evangelists, elders, and bishops.--In North America
=Quakerism=, under the influence of increasing material
prosperity, had lost much of its primitive strictness in life
and manners. The more lax were styled _Wet-_, and their more
rigorous opponents _Dry-Quakers_. Enthusiasm over the American
War of Independence of 1776-1783, spreading in their ranks, led
to further departures from the rigid standard of early times.
Those who took weapons in their hands were designated _Fighting
Quakers_. The General Assembly disapproved but tolerated these
departures; neither the Wet nor the Fighting Quakers were
excommunicated, but they were not allowed any part in the
government of the community. In 1822 a party appeared among
them, led by Elias Hicks, which carried the original tendency of
Quakerism to separate itself from historical Christianity so far
as to deny the divinity of Christ, and to allow no controlling
authority to Scripture in favour of the unrestricted sway
of reason and conscience. This departure from the traditions
of Quakerism, however, met with vigorous opposition, and the
protesting party, known as _Evangelical Friends_, pronounced more
decidedly than ever for the authority of Scripture. In England,
notwithstanding the wealth and position of its adherents,
Quakerism, since the second half of the eighteenth century, has
suffered a slow but steady decrease, while even in America, to
say the least, no advance can be claimed. In Holland, Friesland,
and Holstein, Quaker missionaries had found some success
among the Mennonites, without, however, forming any separate
communities. In 1786 some English Quakers succeeded in winning
a small number of proselytes in Hesse, who in 1792, under the
protection of the prince of Waldeck, formed a little congregation
at Friedersthal, near Pyrmont, which still maintains its
existence.--On the sects of Jumpers and Shakers, variously
related to primitive, fanatical Quakerism, see § 170, 7.[568]
§ 211.4. =Swedenborgians and Unitarians.=--In the nineteenth
century =Swedenborgianism= has found many adherents. In England,
Scotland and North America the sect has founded many missionary
and tract societies. In Württemberg the procurator Hofacker
and the librarian Tafel, partly by editions and translations of
the writings of Swedenborg, partly by their own writings, were
specially zealous in vindicating and spreading their views. A
general conference of all the congregations in Great Britain and
Ireland in 1828 published a confession of faith and catechism,
and thirteen journals (three English, seven American, Tafel’s
in German, one Italian and one Swedish) represent the interests
of the party. The liberal spirit of modern times has in various
directions introduced modifications in its doctrine. Its
Sabellian opposition to the church doctrine of the Trinity
and its Pelagian opposition to the doctrine of justification,
have been retained, and its spiritualising of eschatological
ideas has been intensified, but the theosophical magical
elements have been wholly set aside and scarcely any reference
is ever made to revelations from the other world.--From early
times the =Unitarians= had a well ordered and highly favoured
ecclesiastical institution in Transylvania (§ 163, 1). But in
England the law still threatened them with a death sentence. This
law had not indeed for a long time been carried into effect, and
in 1813 it was formally abrogated. There are now in England about
400 small Unitarian congregations with some 300,000 souls. The
famous chemist Jos. Priestly may be regarded as the founder of
North American Unitarianism (§ 171, 1), although only after his
death in 1804 did the movement which he represented spread widely
through the country. Then in a short time hundreds of Unitarian
congregations were formed. Their most celebrated leaders were
W. Ellery Channing, who died in 1842, and Theodore Parker, who
died in 1860, both of Boston.
§ 211.5. =Extravagantly Fanatical Manifestations.=--The English
woman Johanna Southcote declared that she was the “woman in the
sun” of Revelation xii. or the Lamb’s wife. In 1801 she came
forth with her prophecies. Her followers, the =New Israelites= or
Sabbatarians, so called because they observed the Old Testament
law of the Sabbath, founded a chapel in London for their worship.
A beautiful cradle long stood ready to receive the promised
Messiah, but Johanna died in 1814 without giving birth to him.--A
horrible occurrence, similar to that recorded in § 210, 2, took
place some years later, in 1823, in the village of Wildenspuch in
Canton Zürich. =Margaret Peter=, a peasant’s daughter, excited by
morbid visions in early youth, was on this account expelled from
Canton Aargau, and was carried still farther in the direction
of extreme mysticism by the vicar John Ganz, by whom she was
introduced to Madame de Krüdener (§ 176, 2). Amid continual
heavenly visions and revelations, as well as violent conflicts
with the devil and his evil spirits, she gathered a group of
faithful followers, by whom she was revered as a highly gifted
saint, among them a melancholy shoemaker, Morf, whom Ganz
introduced to her. The spiritual love relationship between the
two in an unguarded hour took a sensual form and led to the
birth of a child, which Morf’s forbearing wife after successfully
simulating pregnancy adopted as her own. This deep fall, for
which she wholly blamed the devil, drove her fanaticism to
madness. The ridiculous proceedings in her own house, where for a
whole day she and her adherents beat with fists and hammers what
they supposed to be the devil, led the police to interfere. But
before orders arrived from Zürich, she found refuge in an asylum,
and there the end soon came. Margaret assured her followers that
in order that Christ might fully triumph and Satan be overthrown,
blood must be shed for the salvation of many thousand souls. Her
younger sister Elizabeth voluntarily allowed herself to be slain,
and she herself with almost incredible courage allowed her hands
and feet to be nailed to the wood and then with a stroke of the
knife was killed, under the promise that she as well as her
sister should rise again on the third day. The tragedy ended
by the apprehension and long confinement of those concerned in
it.--The sect of =Springers= in Ingermannland had its origin
in 1813. Arising out of a religious excitement not countenanced
by the church authorities, they held that each individual
needed immediate illumination of the Holy Spirit for his soul’s
salvation. So soon as they believed that this was obtained,
the presence of the Spirit was witnessed to by ecstatic prayer,
singing and shouting joined with handshaking and springing
in their assemblies. The special illumination required as its
correlate a special sanctification, and this they sought not only
in repudiation of marriage, but also in abstinence from flesh,
beer, spirits and tobacco. The “holy love,” prized instead of
marriage, however, here also led to sensual errors, and the
result was that many after the example of the Skopzen (§ 210, 4)
resorted to the surer means of castration.--Among the Swedish
peasants in 1842 appeared the singular phenomenon of the =Crying
Voices= (_Röstar_). Uneducated laymen, and more particularly
women and even children, after convulsive fits broke out into
deep mutterings of repentance and prophesyings of approaching
judgment. The substance of their proclamations, however, was not
opposed to the church doctrine, and the criers were themselves
the most diligent frequenters of church and sacrament.--In the
beginning of 1870 the wife of a settler at Leonerhofe, near San
Leopoldo in Brazil, =Jacobina Maurer=, became famous among the
careless colonists of that region as a pious miracle-working
prophetess. In religious assemblies which she originated, she
gave forth her fantastic revelations based upon allegorical
interpretations of Scripture, and founded a congregation of the
“elect” with a communistic constitution, in which she assumed
to herself all church offices as the Christ come again. Rude
abuse and maltreatment of these “Muckers” on the part of the
“unbelieving,” and the interference of the police, who arrested
some of the more zealous partisans of the female Christ, brought
the fanaticism to its utmost pitch. Jacobina now declared it the
duty of believers to prepare for the bliss of the millennium by
rooting out all the godless. Isolated murders were the prelude
of the night of horror, June 25th-26th, 1874, on which well
organized Mucker-bands, abundantly furnished with powder and shot,
went forth murdering and burning through the district for miles
around. The military sent out against them did not succeed in
putting down the revolt before August 2nd, after the prophetess
with many of her adherents had fallen in a fanatically brave
resistance.
§ 211.6. =Christian Communistic Sects.=--The only soil upon which
these could flourish was that of the Free States of North America.
Besides the small Shaker communities (§ 170, 7) still surviving
in 1858, the following new fraternities are the most important:
1. The =Harmonites=. The dissatisfaction caused among the
Württemberg Pietists by the introduction of liturgical
innovations led to several migrations in the beginning
of the century. Geo. Rapp, a simple peasant from the
village of Iptingen, went to America in 1803 or 1804
with about six hundred adherents, and settled in the valley
of Connoquenessing, near Pittsburg in Pennsylvania. As a
fundamental principle of this “Harmony Association,” which
honoured father Rapp as autocratic patriarch, prophet and
high priest, and with him believed in the near approach of
the second advent, the community of goods holds a prominent
place. By diligence and industry in agriculture, labour
and manufactures, they reached great prosperity under the
able leadership of their patriarch. In 1807 the community,
by a resolution of its own to which Rapp agreed, resolved
to abstain from marriage, so that henceforth no children
were born nor marriages performed. A falling off in numbers
was made up in 1817 by new arrivals from Württemberg and
afterwards by the adoption of children. Industrial reasons
led the community in 1814 to colonize Wabashthal in Indiana,
where they built the town of Harmony, which, however, in
1823, on account of its unhealthy situation, they sold
to the Scotchman Robert Owen (§ 212, 3), and then founded
for themselves the town of Economy, not far from Pittsburg,
where they still reside. In 1831 an adventurer, Bernard
Müller, appeared among them, who, at Offenbach, had, for
a long time, under the name of Proli, played a brilliant
part as a prophet called to establish universal spiritual
monarchy, and then, when in danger from the courts of law,
had fled to America. In Economy, where he passed himself
off as Count Maximilian von Leon, persecuted on account
of his belief in the second coming, he found as such a
hearty welcome, and within a year, by his agitation for
the reintroduction of marriage and worldly enjoyments, drew
away a third part of the community, embracing 250 souls.
The dissentients with 105,000 dollars from the common
purse withdrew and settled under the leadership of the
pseudo-count as a New Jerusalem society in the neighbouring
village of Philippsburg. But the new patriarch conducted
himself so riotously that he was obliged in 1833 to flee to
Louisiana, where in the same year he died of cholera. His
people now in deep distress turned to Dr. Keil, a mystic
come from Prussia, who reorganised them after the pattern
of Rapp’s communistic society, but with liberty to marry,
and brought them to a prosperous condition in two colonies
mainly founded by him at Bethel in Missouri and Aurora
in Oregon. Economy, too, flourished in spite of the heavy
losses it sustained, so that now the common property of the
populace, which through celibacy had been reduced to about
eighty persons, amounts to eight million dollars. Father
Rapp died in 1847, in his ninetieth year, confident to the
end that he would guide his church unto the hourly expected
advent of Christ.
2. When in 1831 a wave of revival passed over North America,
J. H. Noyes, an advocate’s assistant, applied himself to the
study of the Bible and became the founder of a new sect, the
=Bible Communists= or =Perfectionists= of the Oneida Society.
He taught that the promised advent of Christ took place
spiritually soon after the destruction of Jerusalem; by it
the kingdom of Adam was ended and the kingdom of God in the
heart of those who knew and received him was established.
The official churches were only state churches, but the
true church was scattered in the hearts of individual saints,
until Noyes collected and organized it into a Bible family.
For them there is no more law, for laws are for sinners
and the saints no longer sin. Each saint can do and suffer
whatever the Spirit of God moves him to. All the members of
the congregation constitute one family, live, eat, and work
together. Goods, wives and children are in common. It lies
with the wife to accept or refuse the approaches of a man.
But soon this proclaimed freedom from law sent everything
into confusion and disunion; schism―apostasy prevailed.
But Father Noyes now saved his church from destruction
by introducing a correction to this freedom from law in
_Sympathy_, _i.e._ in the agreement of all members of
the family. The odium which fell upon the community from
without on account of its “complex marriages,” induced him
at last in August, 1879, although he still always maintained
the soundness of his principle of free love and its final
victory over prejudice, to ordain the introduction of
monogamic marriages, and the community acquiesced. With
regard to community of goods, meals and children, however,
they kept to the old lines. The parent community has its
seat at Lenox in Oneidabach in New York State. Alongside of
it are three daughter communities. They have their prophets
and prophetesses, but no ritual service and no Sunday. Their
employment (they number about 300 souls) is mainly fruit
culture and the manufacture of snares of every kind for wild
and other animals.[569]
§ 211.7. =Millenarian Exodus Communities.=
1. The =Georgian Separatists=. The stream of Württemberg
emigrants above referred to turned also toward Southern
Russia. The settlers in Transcaucasian Georgia in the long
absence of regular pastors fell into fanatical separation,
which the clergy who followed in 1820 could not overcome.
Under the direction of three elders (one of them an old
woman) as representing the Holy Trinity, they lived quietly,
refused to baptize their children, to give their dead burial
according to the rites of the church, to call in physicians
in sickness, and at last rejected the marriage relation. In
1842 their female elder, Barbara Spohn, wife of a cartwright,
appeared in the rôle of a prophet, proclaiming the near
approach of the end of the world and calling upon her
followers to pass through the wilderness to the promised
land, there to enter into the millenial kingdom. They were
to take with them no money, no bread, etc., but only a staff;
their clothes and shoes would not wear old in the desert,
they could eat manna and quails, and in the holy land Christ
would dress them in the bridal robe. The government sought
in vain to bring them to reason and to obstruct their way,
when about three hundred of them wished at Pentecost, 1843,
to start on their journey. They were allowed to send three
men to Constantinople and Palestine to seek permission from
the Turkish government to settle in a spot near Jerusalem.
But these returned before the close of the year with the
news, that Palestine is not the land that would suit them.
This brought the majority to their senses and they rejoined
the church.
2. Equally unfortunate was the attempt at colonization made
in 1878 by some =Bavarian Chiliasts=. The pastor Clöter
in Illenschwang had for a long time in the “_Brüderbote_,”
edited by him, urged the emigration of believers to
South Russia, where, according to his exposition of the
apocalyptic prophecy, a secure place of refuge had been
provided by God for believers of the last times during the
near approaching persecutions of antichrist. In June, 1878,
the tailor Minderlein with his family and nineteen other
persons started to go thither. Minderlein died by the way,
and his companions after enduring great hardships were
obliged to return, and reached Nuremberg again in October,
absolutely destitute. Clöter, however, was not discouraged
by this misfortune. In December he called his adherents
from Bavaria, Württemberg and Switzerland, together to a
conference at Stuttgart, where they formed themselves into
the “=German Exodus Church=.” In the summer, 1880, Clöter
himself travelled to South Russia and thought that he found
in the Crimea the fittest place of refuge. On his return he
was banished, but after some days liberated, though deprived
of his clerical office. A final stop was then put to the
exodus movement.
§ 211.8.
3. The =Amen Community= owed its feeble existence to a
Christian Jew, Israel Pick of Bohemia. Believing that he
was not required in baptism to renounce his Judaism, but
that rather thereby he first became a true Jew, through
a onesided interpretation of Old Testament promises to his
nation, he wished to found a colony of the people of God
in the Holy Land on Jewish-Christian principles. The whole
Mosaic law, excluding the observance of the Sabbath and
circumcision, was to be the basis, together with baptism and
the Lord’s Supper, of ecclesiastical and civil organization.
He succeeded in winning a few converts here and there, to
whom he gave the name of the Amen Community, because in
Christ (the אֱלֹהֵי אָמֵן Isa. lxv. 16) all the prophecies of
the old covenant are Yea and Amen. Its chief seat was at
Munich-Gladbach. In 1859 Pick travelled to Palestine in
order to choose a spot for the settlement of his followers
and there all trace of him was lost.
4. The founder of the =German Temple Communities= in Palestine
was Chr. Hoffmann, brother of General Superintendent
Hoffmann of Berlin, and son of the founder of the Kornthal
Community (§ 196, 5), in connection with Chr. Paulus, nephew
of the well known Heidelberg professor Paulus (§ 182, 2).
In 1854 they issued an invitation to a conference at
Ludwigsburg, for consultation about the means for gathering
the people of God in Palestine. A great crowd of believers
from all parts, numbering some 10,000 families, was to
embark for the holy land to form there a new people of God
which, on the foundation of prophets and apostles, should
strictly practise the public law of the old covenant in
all points of civil administration, including the laws
of the sabbath and the jubilee. The conference besought
of the German League that it would use its influence with
the Sultan to secure permission for colonization with
self-government and religious freedom. As the German League
simply declined the request, the committee bought the estate
of Kirschenhardthof near Marbach, in order there temporarily
and in a small way to form a social commonwealth observing
the Mosaic law. In 1858 Hoffmann went with two of his
followers to Jerusalem in order to look out a place there
suitable for their purpose. The result was unsatisfactory.
Therefore he issued in 1861 a summons to take part in a
German Temple. Consequently a number of men from Württemberg,
Bavaria, and Baden, Protestants and Catholics, forsook
their churches, ordained priests and elders, and appointed
Hoffmann their bishop and held regular synods. The final
aim of this procedure, however, was always still to find
a settlement in Palestine and erect a temple in Jerusalem
which, according to prophecy, is to form the central
sanctuary for the whole world. Colonization in the East
was tried as a means to this end. Since 1869 there have
been five organized colonies, with a Temple Chief and
a congregational school, embracing about 1,000 souls,
established in Palestine, _viz._ at Jaffa, Haifa, Sarona,
Beyrout, and in 1878 even in Jerusalem, whither the original
colony at Jaffa was transferred. The German Imperial
Government refused indeed in 1879 to give the recognition
sought for to the civil and political organization of the
Palestinian colonies, as in a foreign country beyond its
jurisdiction, but granted to its Lyceum at Jerusalem a
yearly contribution of 1,500 marks and to the schools
of Jaffa, Haifa and Sarona from 650 to 1,000. In 1875
Hoffmann published at Stuttgart a large apologetical and
polemical work, “_Occident und Orient_,” which contained
many thoughtful remarks. But since then, in the central
organ of all the Temple Communities inspired by him,
the “_Süddeutsche Warte_,” he has openly and distinctly
attached himself to Ebionitic rationalism, by denying
and opposing the fundamental evangelical doctrine of the
trinity, redemption, and the sacraments. These theological
views, however, were by no means shared in by all the
Templars, and caused a split in the community, one section
at Haifa with the chief templar there, Hardegg, at its
head, separating from the central body as an independent
“Imperial Brotherhood.” The seceders, joined by many German
and American templar friends, again drew nearer to the
Evangelical church and ultimately became reconciled with
it. But Hoffmann has, in his last work, _Bibelforschungen_
i. ii.: _Röm.- u. Kol. br., Jerus._ 1882, 1884, carried his
polemic against the church doctrine to the utmost extreme of
cynical abuse. He died in December, 1885. At the head of the
denomination now stands his fellow-worker Paulus. From year
to year several drop back into the Evangelical church so
that the community is evidently approaching extinction.
§ 211.9. =The Community of “the New Israel.”=--The Jewish
advocate Jos. Rabinowitsch at Kishenev in Bessarabia, who had
long occupied himself with plans for the improvement of the
spiritual and material circumstances of his fellow-countrymen,
at the outbreak of the persecution of the Jews in 1882 in South
Russia eagerly urged their return to the holy land of their
fathers and himself undertook a journey of inspection. There
definite shape seems to have been given to the long cherished
thought of seeking the salvation of his people in an independent
national attachment to their old sacred historical development,
broken off 1850 years before, by acknowledging the Messiahship
of Jesus. At least after his return he gave expression to the
sentiment, based on Romans xi.: “The keys of the holy land are
in the hands of our brother Jesus,” which, in consequence of
the high esteem in which he was held by his countrymen, was
soon re-echoed by some 200 Jewish families. His main endeavour
now was the formation of independent national Jewish-Christian
communities, after the pattern of the primitive church of
Jerusalem, as “_New Israelites_,” observing all the old Jewish
rites and ordinances compatible with New Testament apostolic
preaching and reconcilable with modern civil and social
conditions. The Torah, the prophets of the Old Testament and the
New Testament writings, are held as absolutely binding, whereas
the Talmud and the post-apostolic Gentile Christian additions to
doctrine, worship, and constitution are not so regarded. Jesus,
Rabinowitsch teaches, is the true Messiah who, as Moses and
prophets foretold, was born as Son of David by the Spirit of God
and in the power of that Spirit lived and taught in Israel, then
for our salvation suffered, was crucified and died, rose from the
dead, and ascended to the right hand of the Father in heaven. The
trinity of persons in God as well as the two natures in Christ
he rejects, as not taught in the New Testament and originating
in Gentile Christian speculation. Baptism and the Lord’s Supper
(and that “according to the example of Christians of the pure
Evangelical confession in England and Germany”) are recognised
as necessary means of grace; but the Lord’s Supper is to
be, according to its institution, a real meal with the old
Jewish prayers. As to the doctrine of the Supper, Rabinowitsch
agrees with the views of the Lutheran church. Circumcision and
the observance of the Sabbath and the feasts (especially the
Passover), are retained, not indeed as necessary to salvation,
therefore not binding on Gentile Christians, but patriotically
observed by Jewish-Christians as signs of their election from and
before all nations as the people of God. In January, 1885, with
consent of the Russian Government, the newly-erected synagogue
of “the holy Messiah Jesus Christ” for the small congregation
of Rabinowitsch’s followers at Kishenev was solemnly opened,
the Russian church authorities, the Lutheran pastor Fultin and
many young Jews taking part in the service. Soon afterwards
Rabinowitsch received Christian baptism in the chapel of the
Bohemian church at Berlin at the hands of Prof. Mead of Andover,
probably in recognition of the aid sent from America.--A
Jewish-Christian religious communion with similar tendencies
has been formed in the South Russian town of Jellisawetgrad under
the designation of a “_Biblical Spiritual Brotherhood_.”
§ 211.10. =The Catholic Apostolic Church of the
Irvingites.=--Edward Irving, 1792-1834, a powerful and popular
preacher of the Scotch-Presbyterian church in London, maintained
the doctrine that the human nature of Christ like our own was
affected by original sin, which was overcome and atoned for
by the power of the divine nature. At the same time he became
convinced that the spiritual gifts of the apostolic church could
and should still be obtained by prayer and faith. A party of his
followers soon began to exercise the gift of tongues by uttering
unintelligible sounds, loud cries, and prophecies. His presbytery
suspended him in 1832 and the General Assembly of the Church of
Scotland excommunicated him. Rich and distinguished friends from
the Episcopal church, among them the wealthy banker, Drummond,
afterwards prominent as an apostle (died 1859), rallied round
the man thus expelled from his church, and gave him the means to
found a new church, but, in spite of Irving’s protests, brought
with them high church puseyite tendencies, which soon drove
out the heretical as well as the puritanic tendencies, and
modified the fanatical element into a hierarchical and liturgical
formalism. The restoration of the office of apostle was the
characteristic feature of the movement. After many unsuccessful
attempts they succeeded by the divine illumination of the
prophets in calling twelve apostles, first and chief of whom
was the lawyer Cardale (died 1877). By the apostles, as chief
rulers and stewards of the church, evangelists and pastors (or
angels, Rev. ii. 1, 8, etc.) were ordained in accordance with
Eph. iv. 11; and subordinate to the pastors, there were appointed
six elders and as many deacons, so that the office bearers of
each congregation embraced thirteen persons, after the example
of Christ and His twelve disciples. In London seven congregations
were formed after the pattern of the seven apocalyptic churches
(Rev. i. 20). Prominent among their new revelations was the
promise of the immediately approaching advent of the Lord. The
Lord, who was to have come in the lifetime of the first disciples
and so was looked for confidently by them, delayed indefinitely
His return on account of abounding iniquity and prevented the
full development of the second apostolate designed for the
Gentiles and meanwhile represented only by Paul, because the
church was no longer worthy of it. Now at last, after eighteen
centuries of degradation, in which the church came to be the
apocalyptic Babylon and ripened for judgment, the time has
come when the suspended apostolate has been restored to prepare
the way for the last things. Very confidently was it at first
maintained that none of their members should die, but should live
to see the final consummation. But after death had removed so
many from among them, and even the apostles one after another,
it was merely said that those are already born who should see the
last day. It may come any day, any hour. It begins with the first
resurrection (Rev. xx. 5) and the “changing” of the saints that
are alive (the wise virgins, _i.e._ the Irvingites), who will
be caught up to the Lord in the clouds and in a higher sphere be
joined with the Lord in the marriage supper of the Lamb. They are
safely hidden while antichrist persecutes the other Christians,
the foolish virgins, who only can be saved by means of painful
suffering, and executes judgment on Babylon. This marks the end
of the Gentile church; but then begins the conversion of the Jews,
who, driven by necessity and the persecution of sinful men, have
sought and found a refuge in Palestine. After a short victory of
antichrist the Lord visibly appears among the risen and removed.
The kingdom of antichrist is destroyed, Satan is bound, the
saints live and reign with Christ a thousand years on the earth
freed from the curse. Thereafter Satan is again let loose for
a short time and works great havoc. Then comes Satan’s final
overthrow, the second resurrection and last judgment. Their
liturgy, composed by the apostles, is a compilation from the
Anglican and Catholic sources. Sacerdotalism and sacrifice are
prominent and showy priestly garments are regarded as requisite.
Yet they repudiate the Romish doctrine of the bloodless
repetition of the bleeding sacrifice, as well as the doctrine of
transubstantiation. But they strictly maintain the contribution
of the tenth as a duty laid upon Christians by Heb. vii. 4.
Their typical view of the Old Testament history and legislation,
especially of the tabernacle, is most arbitrary and baseless.
Their first published statement appeared in 1836 in an apostolic
“_Letter to the Patriarchs, Bishops, and Presidents of the Church
of Christ in all Lands, and to emperors, kings, and princes of
all baptized nations_,” which was sent to the most prominent
among those addressed, even to the pope, but produced no result.
After this they began to prosecute their missionary work openly.
But they gave their attention mainly to those already believers,
and took no part in missions to the heathen, as they were sent
neither to the heathen nor to unbelievers, but only to gather and
save believers. In their native land of England, where at first
they had great success, their day seems already past. In North
America they succeeded in founding only two congregations. They
prospered better in Germany and Switzerland, where they secured
several able theologians, chief of all Thiersch, the professor
of Theology in Marburg, the Tertullian of this modern Montanism
(died 1885), and founded about eighty small congregations with
some 5,000 members, chief of which are those of Berlin, Stettin,
Königsberg, Leipzig, Marburg, Cassel, Basel, Augsburg, etc.
Even among the Catholic clergy of Bavaria this movement found
response; but that was checked by a series of depositions and
excommunications during 1857.--In 1882 the Lutheran pastor
Alpers of Gehrden in Hanover was summoned to appear before the
consistory to answer for his Irvingite views. He denied the
charge and referred to his good Lutheran preaching. As, however,
he had taken the sacramental “sealing” from Irvingite apostles,
the court regarded this as proof of his having joined the party
and so deposed him.[570]
§ 211.11. =The Darbyites and Adventists.=--Related on the
one hand to Irvingism by their expectation of the immediately
approaching advent and by their regarding themselves as the
saints of the last time who would alone be saved, the =Darbyites=,
on the other hand, by their absolute independentism form a
complete contrast to the Irvingite hierarchism. John Darby,
1800-1882, first an advocate, then a clergyman of the Anglican
church, breaking away from Anglicanism, founded between 1820 and
1830 a sectarian, apocalyptic, independent community at Plymouth
(whence the name =Plymouth Brethren=), but in 1838 settled in
Geneva, and in 1840 went to Canton Vaud, where Lausanne and Vevey
have become the headquarters of the sect. All clerical offices,
all ecclesiastical forms are of the evil one, and are evidence
of the corruption of the church. There is only one office, the
spiritual priesthood of all believers, and every believer has
the right to preach and dispense the sacraments. Not only the
Catholic, but also the Protestant church is a “Balaam Church,”
and since the departure of the apostles no true church has
existed. In doctrine they are strictly Calvinistic.[571]--The
=Adventists=. Regarding the 2,300 days of Dan. viii. 14 as so
many years, W. Miller of New York and Boston proclaimed in 1833
that the second advent would take place on the night of October
23rd, 1847, and convinced many thousands of the correctness of
his calculations. When at last the night referred to arrived
the believers continued assembled in their tabernacles waiting,
but in vain, for the promise (Matt. xxiv. 30, 31; 1 Cor. xv. 52;
1 Thess. iv. 16, 17), at “the voice of the archangel and the
trump of God to be caught up in the clouds to meet the Lord
in the air.” This miscalculation, however, did not shake the
Adventists’ belief in the near approach of the Lord, but their
number rather increased from year to year. Most zealous in
propagating their views by journals and tracts, evangelists
and missionaries, is a branch of the sect founded by James White
of Michigan, whose adherents, because they keep the Sabbath in
place of the Lord’s Day, are called _Seventh Day Adventists_.
§ 211.12. =The Mormons or Latter Day Saints.=--Jos. Smith, a
broken down farmer of Vermont, who took to knavish digging for
hid treasures, affirmed in 1825, that under direction of divine
revelations and visions, he had excavated on Comora hill in
New York State, golden tablets in a stone kist on which sacred
writings were engraved. A prophet’s spectacles, _i.e._, two
pierced stones which as a Mormon Urim and Thummim lay beside
them, enabled him to understand and translate them. He published
the translation in “the Book of Mormon.” According to this
book, the Israelites of the ten tribes had migrated under their
leader, Lehi, to America. There they divided into two peoples;
the ungodly Lamanites, answering to the modern Redskins, and
the pious Nephites. The latter preserved among them the old
Israelitish histories and prophecies, and through miraculous
signs in heaven and earth obtained knowledge of the birth
of Christ that had meanwhile taken place. Toward the end
of the fourth century after Christ, however, the Lamanites
began a terrible war of extermination against the Nephites,
in consequence of which the latter were rooted out with the
exception of the prophet Mormon and his son Moroni. Mormon
recorded his revelations on the golden tablets referred to, and
concealed them as the future witness for the saints of the last
days on the earth. Smith proclaimed himself now called on of God,
on the basis of these documents and the revelations made to him,
to found the church of _The Latter Day Saints_. The widow of a
preacher in New York proved indeed that the Book of Mormon was
almost literally a plagiarism from a historico-didactic romance
written by her deceased husband, Sal. Spaulding. The MS. had
passed into the hands of Sidney Rigdon, formerly a Baptist
minister and then a bookseller’s assistant, subsequently Smith’s
right-hand man. But even this did not disturb the believers. In
1831 Smith with his followers settled at Kirtland in Ohio. To
avoid the daily increasing popular odium, he removed to Missouri,
and thence to Illinois, and founded there, in 1840, the important
town of Nauvoo with a beautiful temple. By diligence, industry
and good discipline, the wealth, power and influence of their
commonwealth increased, but in the same proportion the envy,
hatred and prejudices of the people, which charged them with
the most atrocious crimes. In 1844, to save bloodshed the
governor ordered the two chiefs, Jos. and Hiram Smith, to
surrender to voluntary imprisonment awaiting a regular trial.
But furious armed mobs attacked the prison and shot down both.
The roughs of the whole district then gathered in one great troop,
destroyed the town of Nauvoo, burned the temple and drove out
the inhabitants. These, now numbering 15,000 men, in several
successive expeditions amid indescribable hardships pressed on
“through the wilderness” over the Rocky Mountains, in order to
erect for themselves a Zion on the other side. Smith’s successor
was the carpenter, Brigham Young. The journey occupied two full
years, 1845-1847. In the great Salt Lake basin of Utah they
founded _Salt Lake City_, or the New Jerusalem, as the capital
of their wilderness state _Deseret_. The gold digging of the
neighbouring state of California did not allure them, for their
prophet told them that to pave streets, build houses and sow
fields was better employment than seeking for gold. So here
again they soon became a flourishing commonwealth.
§ 211.13. In common with the Irvingites, who recognised in them
their own diabolic caricature, the Mormons restored the apostolic
and prophetic office, insisted upon the continuance of the gift
of tongues and miracles, expected the speedy advent of the Lord,
reintroduced the payment of tithes, etc. But what distinguished
them from all Christian sects was the proclamation of polygamy as
a religious duty, on the plea that only those women who had been
“sealed” to a Latter-day Saint would share in the blessedness
of life eternal. This was probably first introduced by Young in
consequence of a new “divine revelation,” but down to 1852 kept
secret and denied before “the Gentiles.” The ambiguous book of
Mormon was set meanwhile more and more in the background, and
the teachings and prophecies of their prophet brought more and
more to the front. “The Voice of Warning to all Nations” of the
zealous proselyte Parly Pratt, formerly a Campbellite preacher,
exercised a great influence in spreading the sect. But the most
gifted of them all was Orson Pratt, Rigdon’s successor in the
apostolate. To him mainly is ascribed the construction of its
later, highly fantastic religious system which, consisting of
elements gathered from Neo-platonism, gnosticism, and other forms
of theosophical mysticism, embraces all the mysteries of time and
eternity. Its fundamental ideas are these: There are gods without
number; all are polygamists and their wives are sharers of their
glory and bliss. They are the fathers of human souls who here on
earth ripen for their heavenly destiny. Jesus is the first born
son of the highest god by his first wife; he was married on earth
to Mary Magdalene, the sisters Martha and Mary and other women.
Those saints who here fulfil their destiny become after death
gods, while they are arranged according to their merit in various
ranks and with prospect of promotion to higher places. At the
end of this world’s course, Jesus will come again, and, enthroned
in the temple of Salt Lake City, exercise judgment against all
“Gentiles” and apostates, etc.--The constitution of the Mormon
State is essentially theocratic. At the head stood the president,
Brigham Young, as prophet, patriarch, and priest-king, in whose
hands are all the threads of the spiritual as well as secular
administration. A high council alongside of him, consisting of
seventy members, as also the prophets and apostles, bishops and
elders, and generally the whole richly organized hierarchy, are
only the pliable instruments of his all-commanding will. Every
one on entering the society surrenders his whole property, and
after that contributes a tenth of his yearly income and personal
labour to the common purse of the community. Soon numerous
missionaries were sent forth who crossed the Atlantic, and
attained great success, especially in Scotland, England and
Scandinavia, but also in North-West Germany and in Switzerland.
On removing the misunderstanding that prevailed about their
social and political condition, and supplying the penniless out
of the rich immigration fund with the means to make the journey,
they persuaded great crowds of their new converts to accompany
them to Utah.
§ 211.14. In 1849 the Mormons had asked Congress for the
apportioning of the district colonized by them as an independent
and autonomous “State” in the union, but were granted, in
1850, only the constitution of a “territory” under the central
government at Washington, and the appointment of their patriarch,
Young, as its governor. Accustomed to absolute rule, in two years
he drove out all the other officers appointed by the union. He
was then deprived of office, but the new governor, Col. Sefton,
appointed in 1854, with the small armament supplied him could not
maintain his position and voluntarily retired. When afterwards in
1858 Governor Cumming, appointed by president Buchanan, entered
Utah with a strong military force, Young armed for a decisive
struggle. A compromise, however, was effected. A complete amnesty
was granted to the saints, the soldiers of the union entered
peacefully into the Salt-Lake City, and Young assumed tolerably
friendly relations with the governor, who, nevertheless, by the
erection of a fort commanding the city made the position safe for
himself and his troops. On the outbreak of the war of Secession
in 1861 the troops of the union were for the most part withdrawn.
But all the more energetically did the central government at the
close of the war in 1865 resolve upon the complete subjugation of
the rebel saints, having learnt that since 1852 numerous murders
had taken place in the territory, and that the disappearance of
whole caravans of colonists was not due to attacks of Indians,
who would have scalped their victims, but to a secret Mormon
fraternity called Danites (Judges xviii.), brothers of Gideon
(Judges vi. ff.) or Angels of Destruction, which, obedient to
the slightest hint from the prophet, had undertaken to avenge
by bloody terrorism any sign of resistance to his authority,
to arrest any tendency to apostasy, and to guard against the
introduction of any foreign element. The Union Pacific Railway
opened in 1869 deprived the “Kingdom of God” of its most powerful
protection, its geographical isolation, while the rich silver
mines discovered at the same time in Utah, peopled city and
country with immense flocks of “Gentiles.” The nemesis, which
brought the Mormon bishop Lee, twenty years after the deed,
under the lash of the high court of justiciary as involved in
the horrible massacre of a large party of emigrants at Mountain
Meadows in 1857, would probably have also befallen the prophet
himself as the main instigator of this and many other crimes had
he not by a sudden death two months later, in his seventy-fifth
year, escaped the jurisdiction of any earthly tribunal (died
1877). A successor was not chosen, but supreme authority is
in the hands of the college of twelve apostles with the elder
John Taylor at their head.--Repeated attempts made since 1874
by the United States authorities by penal enactments to root out
polygamy among the Mormons have always failed, because its actual
existence could never be legally proved. The witness called could
or would say nothing, since the “sealing” was always secretly
performed, and the women concerned denied that a marriage had
been entered into with the accused, or if one confessed herself
his married wife she refused to give any evidence about his
domestic relations.--Recently a split has occurred among the
Mormons. By far the larger party is that of the “Salt Lake
Mormons,” which holds firmly by polygamy and all the other
institutions introduced by Young and since his time. The other
party is that of the Kirtland, or Old Mormons, headed by the son
of their founder, Jos. Smith, who had been passed over on account
of his youth, which repudiates all these as unsupported novelties
and restores the true Mormonism of the founder. The Old Mormons
not only oppose polygamy, but also all more recently introduced
doctrines. They are called Kirtland Mormons from the first temple
built by their founder at Kirtland in 1814, which having fallen
into ruins, was restored by Geo. Smith, jun., and became the
centre of the Old Mormon denomination. In April 1885 they held
there their first synod, attended by 200 deputies.[572]
§ 211.15. =The Taepings in China.=--Hung-sen-tsenen, born in
1813 in the province of Shan-Tung, was destined for the learned
profession but failed in his examination at Canton. There he
first, in 1833, came into contact with Protestant missionaries,
whose misunderstood words awakened in him the belief that he was
called to perform great things. At the same time he there got
possession of some Christian Chinese tracts. Failing in his
examination a second time in 1837, he fell into a dangerous
illness and had a series of visions in which an old man with a
golden beard appeared, handing to him the insignia of imperial
rank, and commanding him to root out the demons. After his
recovery he became an elementary teacher. A relative called Li
visited him in 1843. The Christian tracts were again sought out
and carefully studied. Sen now recognised in the old man of his
visions the God of the Christians and in himself the younger
brother of Jesus. The two baptized one another and won over
two young relatives to their views. Expelled from their offices,
they went in 1844 to the province of Kiang Se as pencil and
ink sellers, preached diligently the new doctrine and founded
numerous small congregations of their sect. The American
missionaries at Canton heard of the success of their preaching,
and Sen accepted an invitation to join them in 1847. The
missionary Roberts had a great esteem for him and intended to
baptize him, when in consequence of stories spread about him
their relations became strained. Sen now returned in 1848 to
his companions in Kiang Se, who had diligently and successfully
continued their preaching. In 1850 they began to attract
attention by the violent destruction of idols. When now all the
remnants of a pirate band joined them as converts, they were in
common with these persecuted by the government and proclaimed
rebels. The expulsion of the hated Mantshu dynasty, which two
hundred years before had displaced the Ming dynasty, and the
overthrow of idolatry were now their main endeavour, and in 1857
they organized under Sen a regular rebellion for the setting up
of a Taeping dynasty, _i.e._, of universal peace. The Taeping
army advanced unhindered, all Mantschu soldiers who fell into
its hands were massacred, and of the inhabitants of the provinces
conquered, only those were spared who joined their ranks. In
March, 1853, they stormed the second capital of the empire,
Nankin, the old residence of the Ming dynasty. There Sen fixed
his residence and styled himself Tien-Wang, the Divine Prince.
He assigned to ten subordinate princes the government of the
conquered provinces, almost the half of the immense empire.
Thousands of bibles were circulated; the ten commandments
proclaimed as the foundation of law, many writings, prayers
and poems composed for the instruction of the people, and these
with the bible made subjects of examination for entrance to the
learned order. An Arian theory of the trinity was set forth; the
Father is the one personal God, whose likeness in bodily human
form Sen strictly forbade, destroying the Catholic images as well
as the Chinese idols. Jesus is the first-born son of God, yet
not himself God, sent by the Father into the world in order to
enlighten it by his doctrine and to redeem it by his atoning
sufferings. Sen, the younger brother of Jesus, was sent into the
world to spread the doctrine of Jesus and to expel the demons,
the Mantschu dynasty. Reception takes place through baptism. The
Lord’s Supper was unknown to them. Bloody and bloodless offerings
were still tolerated. The use of wine and tobacco was forbidden;
the use of opium and trafficking in it were punished with death.
But polygamy was sanctioned. Saturday, according to the Old
Testament, was their holy day. Their service consisted only
of prayer, singing and religious instruction; but also written
prayers were presented to God by burning.
§ 211.16. Sen himself had no more visions after 1837. But other
ecstatic prophets arose, the eastern prince Yang and the western
prince Siao. The revelations of the latter were comparatively
sober, but those of the former were in the highest degree
blasphemously fanatical. He declared himself the Paraclete
promised by Jesus, and taught that God himself, as well as Jesus,
had a wife with sons and daughters. He was at the same time a
brave and successful general, and the mass of the Taepings were
enthusiastically attached to him. Sen humbly yielded to the
extravagances of this fanatic, even when Yang sentenced him to
receive forty lashes. Sen’s overthrow was already resolved upon
in Yang’s secret council, when Sen took courage and gave the
northern prince secret orders to murder Yang and his followers
in one night. This was done, and Sen was weak enough to allow the
executioner of his secret order to be publicly put to death so as
to appease the excited populace. But he thus again in 1856 became
master of the situation.--One of the oldest apostles of Sen,
his near relative Hung Yin, had been turned off at Hong Kong.
He there attached himself to the Basel missionary, Hamberg, who
in 1852 baptized him and made him his native helper. In hope of
winning his cousin to the true Christian faith, he travelled in
1854 to Nankin, which however he did not reach till January, 1859.
Sen received him gladly and made him his war minister. But his
efforts to introduce a purer Christianity among the Taepings were
unsuccessful, for he tried the slippery way of accommodation, and
under pressure from Sen set up for himself a harem. In October,
1860, on Sen’s repeated invitation, his former teacher, the
missionary Roberts of Nankin, arrived and was immediately made
minister for foreign affairs. The Shanghai missionaries, several
of whom visited Nankin, had interesting interviews with Yin in
1860, but not with the emperor, as they refused to go on their
knees before him. They were encouraged by Yin to hope for a
future much needed purifying of Taeping Christianity. Yang’s
revelations, however, held their ground after as well as
before, and were increased by further absurdities. To such
crass fanaticism was now added the inhuman cruelty with which
they massacred the vanquished and wasted the conquered cities
and districts. Had the European powers ranged themselves in a
friendly and peaceful attitude alongside of the Taepings, China
might now have been a Christian empire. Instead of this the
English, on account of the extreme opposition of the Taepings
to the opium traffic, took up a hostile position toward them,
while they were also in disfavour with the French, who had been
denounced by them as idolaters on account of their Romish image
worship. Down to the beginning of 1862, however, Yin’s influence
had prevented any hostile proceedings against the Europeans in
spite of many provocations given. But after that the Taepings
refused them any quarter. Roberts fled by night to save his life.
Against disciplined European troops the rebels could not hold
their ground. One city after another was taken from them, and at
last, in July 1864, their capital Nankin. Sen was found poisoned
in his burning palace.[573]
§ 211.17. =The Spiritualists.=--The shoemaker’s apprentice,
Andrew Jackson Davis of Poughkeepsie on the Hudson, in his
nineteenth year fell into a magnetic sleep and composed his
first work, “The Principles of Nature, Her Divine Revelations
and a Voice to Mankind,” in 1845. He declared its utterances
to be spiritual revelations from the other world. But his
later writings composed in working hours made the same claim,
especially the five volume work, “Great Harmonia, being a
Philosophical Revelation of the Natural, Spiritual, and Celestial
Universe,” 1850 ff. Both went through numerous editions and
were translated into German. The great spiritual manifestation
promised in the first work was not long delayed. In a house
bought by the family of Fox in Hydesville in New York State a
spectral knocking was often heard. Through the intercourse which
the two youngest daughters, aged nine and twelve years, had with
the ghosts, the skeleton of a murdered five years’ old child of
a pedlar was discovered buried in the cellar, and when the family
soon thereafter left the house, the ghosts went with them and
continued their communications by table turning, table rapping,
table writing, etc. The thing now became epidemic. Hundreds
and thousands of male and female _mediums_ arose and held an
extremely lively and varied intercourse with innumerable departed
ones of earlier and later times. The believers soon numbered
millions, including highly educated persons of all ranks, even
such exact chemists as Mapes and Hare. An abundant literature
in books and journals, as well as Sunday services, frequent
camp-meetings and annual congresses formed a propaganda for
the alleged spiritualism, which soon found its way across the
ocean and won enthusiastic adherents for all confessions in
all European countries, especially in London, Paris, Brussels,
St. Petersburg, Vienna, Dresden, Leipzig, etc. They now broke
up into two parties called respectively Spiritualists and
Spiritists. The former put in the foreground physical experiments
with astonishing results and miraculous effects; the latter,
with the Frenchman Allan Kardec (_Rivail_) as their leader, give
prominence to the teaching of spirits by direct communication.
The former in reference to the origin of the human soul held by
the theory of traducianism; the latter to that of pre-existence
in connection with a doctrine of re-incarnation of spirits
by reason of growing purity and perfection. The latter see
in Christ the incarnation of a spirit of the highest order;
the former merely the purest and most perfect type of human
nature. But neither admit the real central truth of Christianity,
the reconciliation of sinful humanity with God in Christ.
Both evaporate the resurrection into a mere spectral spirit
manifestation; and the disclosures and utterances of the spirits
with both are equally trivial, silly, and vain.--In England the
famous palæontologist and collaborateur of Darwin, Alfr. Russel
Wallace, and the no less celebrated physicist Wm. Crookes, are
apologists of spiritualism. The latter declared in 1879 that
to the three well-known conditions of matter, solid, fluid and
gaseous, should be added a fourth, “radiant,” and that there is
the borderland where force and matter meet. And in Germany the
acute Leipzig astrophysicist Fr. Zöllner, after a whole series
of spiritualistic séances conducted by the American medium
Slade in 1877 and 1878 had been carefully scrutinized and
tested by himself and several of his most accomplished scientific
colleagues, was convinced of the existence and reality of higher
“four dimension” space in the spirit world, to which by reason
of its fourth dimension the power belonged of passing through
earthly bodily matter. The philosophers I. H. Fichte of Stuttgart
and Ulrici of Halle have admitted the reality of spiritualistic
communications and allege them as proofs of immortality.
Among German theologians Luthardt of Leipzig regards it all
as the work of demons who take advantage for their own ends
of the moral-religious dissolution of the modern world and its
consequent nerve shaking that prevails, just as in the ancient
world in the beginnings of Christianity. Zöckler of Greifswald
finds an analogy between it and the demoniacal possession of
New Testament times; so too Martensen in his “Jacob Boehme,”
and on the Catholic side W. Schneider; while Splittgerber refers
most of the manifestations in question to a merely subjective
origin in “the right side of the human soul life,” but puts
the materialization of spirits in the category of delusive
jugglery. Spiritualism has scarcely rallied from the obloquy
cast upon it by the unmasking of the tricks of the famous medium
Miss Florence Cook in London in 1880 and of the distinguished
spirit materialiser Bastian by the Grand-duke John of Austria
in 1884.[574]
§ 211.18. To the domain of unquestionable illusion belongs
also the spiritualistic movement of Indian =Theosophism= or
=Occultism=. The American Col. Olcott of New York had already
moved for twenty-two years in spiritualist circles when in 1874
he met with Madame Blavatsky, widow of a Russian general who had
been governor of Erivan in Armenia. She professed to have been
from her eighth year in communication with spirits, then to
have had secret intercourse with the Mahatmas, _i.e._ spirits
of old Indian penitents, during a seven years’ residence on the
Himalayas. She now promised to introduce the colonel to them.
Olcott and Blavatsky founded at New York in 1875 a society for
research in the department of the mystic sciences, travelled in
1878 to Further India and Ceylon, and settled finally in Madras,
whence by word and writing they proclaimed through the whole
land theosophism or occultism as the religion of the future,
which, consisting in a medley of Hinduism and Buddhism, enriched
by spiritualistic revelations of Mahatmas, vouched for by
spiritualistic signs and miracles and conformed to the most
recent philosophical and scientific researches in America and
Europe, aimed at heaping contempt upon Christianity and finally
driving it from the field. As fanatical opponents of Christian
missions in India they were strongly supported by the Brahman
and Buddhist hierarchy, and soon obtained for the theosophical
society founded by them not only numerous adherents from
among the natives, but also many Englishman befooled by their
spiritualistic swindle. As apostle and literary pioneer of the
new religion appeared an Anglo-Indian called Sinnett. In spring,
1884, Madame Blavatsky and Col. Olcott went on a propagandist
tour to Europe, where, in England, France, Austria, and Hungary,
they won many converts, while Col. Olcott at Elberfeld and
Madame Blavatsky at Odessa founded branches of their theosophical
society.--But meanwhile in India affairs assumed a threatening
aspect. Blavatsky on her departure had entrusted the keys of
her dwelling and her mysterious cabinet with its various panels,
falling doors, etc., to Mr. and Mrs. Coulomb, who had been
hitherto her assistants in all her juggleries. Madame Coulomb,
however, quarrelled with the board of theosophists at Madras, and
revenged herself by placing in the hands of the Scottish mission
letters addressed by Blavatsky to herself and her husband which
supplied evidence that all her spiritualistic manifestations
were only common tricks. In addition she gave public exhibitions
in which she demonstrated to the spectators _ad oculos_ the
spiritual manifestations of the Mahatmas, and subsequently
published an “Account of My Acquaintanceship with Madame
Blavatsky, 1872-1884,” with discoveries of her earlier rogueries.
Meanwhile the swindler had herself in December, 1884, returned to
Madras in company with several believers gathered up in England,
among others a young English clergyman, Leadbeater, who some
days previously in Ceylon had formally adopted Buddhism. The
theosophists now demanded that the reputed cheat and deceiver
should be brought before a civil court. The president, however,
declared that the investigations and judgment of a profane
court of law could not be accepted to the mysteries of occultism,
but promised a careful examination by a commission appointed by
himself, and Blavatsky thought it advisable “for the restoration
of her health in a cooler climate” to make off from the scene of
conflict.[575]
§ 212. ANTICHRISTIAN SOCIALISM AND COMMUNISM.
While the antichristian spirit of the age breaks out in various
theoretical forms in our literature, there also abound social and
communistic movements of a practical kind. Socialism and communism both
aim at a thorough-going reform of the rights of property and possession
in strict proportion to the labour spent thereon. They are, however,
distinguished in this, that while communism declares war against all
private property and demands absolute community of goods, socialism, at
least in its older and nobler forms, proceeding from the idea of precise
correspondence between capital and labour, seeks to have expression
given to this in fact. From the older socialism, which endeavoured
to reach its end in a peaceful way within the existing lines of civil
order, a later social democracy is to be distinguished by its decidedly
politico-revolutionary character and tendency to attach itself more
to communism. This modern socialism thinks to open the way to the
realization of its hare-brained ideas by the confusion and overthrow
of existing law and order.
§ 212.1. =The Beginnings of Modern Communism.=--As early as
1796 Babeuf published in Paris a communistic manifesto which
maintained the thesis that natural law gives all men an equal
right to the enjoyment of all goods. His ideas were subsequently
systematized and developed by Fourier, Proudhon, Cabet, and Louis
Blanc in France, and by Weibling and Stirner in Germany. In
a treatise of 1840 Proudhon answered the question, _Qu’est-ce
que la propriété?_ in words which afterwards became proverbial,
and formed the motto of communism: _La propriété c’est le vol._
But the mere negation of property affords no permanent standing
ground. All altars must be thrown down; all religion rooted
out as the plague of humanity; the family and marriage, as the
fountain of all selfishness, must be abolished; all existing
governments must be overthrown; all Europe must be turned into
one great social democracy. A secret communistic propaganda
spread over all western Europe, had its head centres in Belgium
and Switzerland, crossed the Alps and the Pyrenees, as well as
the Channel, and found a congenial soil even in Russia.
§ 212.2. =St. Simonism.=--The Count St. Simon of Paris, reduced
to poverty by speculation, proposed by means of a thorough
organization of industry to found a new and happy state of things
in which there would be pure enjoyment without poverty and care.
An attempted suicide, which led however to his death in 1825,
made him in the eyes of his disciples a saviour of the world. The
July revolution of 1830 gave to the new universal religion, which
reinstated the flesh in its long lost rights and sought to assign
to each individual the place in the commonwealth for which he
was fitted, some advantage. “Father” Enfantin, whom his followers
honoured as the highest revelation of deity, contended with
pompous phrases and in fantastic style for the emancipation of
woman and against the unnatural institution of marriage. But
St. Simonism soon excited public ridicule, was pronounced immoral
by the courts of justice, and the remnants of its votaries fled
from the scorn of the people and the vengeance of the law to
Egypt, where they soon disappeared.
§ 212.3. =Owenists and Icarians.=--The Scotch mill-owner
=Rob. Owen= went in 1829 to America, in order there, unhindered
by religious prejudices, clerical opposition, and police
interference, to work out on a large scale his socialistic
schemes for improving the world, which in a small way he believed
he had proved already among his Scotch mill-operatives. He
bought for this purpose from the Württemberger Rapp the colony
of Harmony (§ 211, 6); but wanting the necessary capital for
the socialistic commonwealth there established, and failing to
realize his expectations, discontent, disorder, and opposition
got the upper hand, and in 1826 Owen was obliged to abandon all
his property. He now returned to England, and addressed himself
in treatises, tracts, and lectures to the working classes of
the whole land, in order to win them over to his ideas. A vast
brotherhood for mutual benefit and for the enjoyment of their
joint earnings was to put an end to earth’s misery, which the
positive religions had not lessened but only increased. In 1836,
in the great industrial cities socialist unions with nearly half
a million members were formed, with their head centre and annual
congress at Birmingham. The practical schemes of Owen, however,
had no success in England, and his societies no permanency. He
died in 1858.--Still more disastrous was the fate of the Icarian
Colony, founded in Texas in 1848 by the Frenchman =Stephen Cabet=,
author of “_Voyage en Icarie, Roman philos. et social_,” 1840,
as an attempt to realize his communistic-philanthropic ideas on
the other side of the Atlantic. The colonists soon found their
sanguine hopes bitterly disappointed, and hurled against their
leader reproaches and threats. Some ex-Icarians accused him in
1849 before the Paris police-court as a swindler, and he was
condemned to two years’ imprisonment and five years’ loss of
civil privileges. Cabet now hastened to France, and on appeal
obtained reversion of his sentence in 1851. Returning to America,
he founded a new Icarian colony at Nauvoo in Illinois. But there,
too, everything went wrong, and a revolt of the colonists obliged
him to flee. He died in 1856.[576]
§ 212.4. =The International Working-Men’s Association.=--Local
and national working-men’s unions with a socialistic organization
had for a long time existed in England, France, and Germany.
The idea of a union embracing the whole world was first broached
at the great London Exhibition in 1862, and at a conference in
London on September 28th, 1864, at which all industrial countries
of Europe were represented, it assumed a practical shape by the
founding of a universal international working-men’s association.
Its constitution was strictly centralistic. A directing committee
in London, Carl Marx of Treves, formerly _Privatdocent_ of
philosophy at Bonn, standing at its head as dictator, represented
the supreme legislative and governing authority, while alongside
of it a general standing council held the administrative and
executive power. The latter was divided into eight sections,
English, American, French, German, Belgian, Dutch, Italian,
and Spanish, and annual international congresses at Geneva,
Lausanne, Brussels, Basel, and the Hague gave opportunity for
general consultation on matters of common interest. Reception as
members was granted by the giving of a diploma after six months’
trial, and involved unconditional obedience to the statutes
and ordinances of the central authorities and the payment of
an annual fee. The number of members, not, however, exclusively
drawn from the working classes, is said to have reached two and
a half millions. The society adopted the current socialistic
and communistic ideas and tendencies. The religious principle
of the association was therefore: atheism and materialism; the
political: absolute democracy; the social: equal rights of labour
and profit, with abolition of private property, hereditary rights,
marriage, and family; and as means for realizing this programme,
unaccomplishable by peaceable methods, revolution and rebellion,
fire and sword, poison, petroleum and dynamite. Such means have
been used already in various ways by the international throughout
the Romance countries; but specially in the brief Reign of Terror
of the Paris Commune, March and April, 1871, in the relatively
no less violent attempted revolt at Alcoy in Southern Spain in
July, 1873. But meanwhile differences appeared within the society,
which were formulated at the Hague Congress in 1872, and led to
splits, which greatly lessened its unity, influence, and power to
do mischief, so that this congress may perhaps be regarded as the
first beginning of its end.[577]
§ 212.5. =German Social Democracy.=--=Ferd. Lassalle=, son of
a rich Jewish merchant of Breslau, after a full course of study
in philosophy and law, began in 1848 to take a lively part in
the advanced movements of the age, and when he found among the
liberal citizens no favour for his socialistic ideas turned
exclusively to the working classes. In answer to the question
as to what was to be done, by the central committee of a
working-men’s congress at Leipzig, he wrought out in 1863 with
great subtlety in an open letter the fundamental idea of his
universal redemption. All plans of self-help to relieve the
distress of working men hitherto proposed (specially that of
Schulze-Delitzsch) break down over the “iron economic law of
wages,” in consequence of which under the dominion of capital and
the large employers of labour wages are always with fatalistic
necessity reduced to the point indispensable for supplying a
working man’s family with the absolute necessaries of life.
The working classes, however, have the right according to the
law of nature to a full equivalent for their labour, but in
order to reach this they must be their own undertakers, and
where self-help is only a vain illusion, state help must afford
the means. By insisting on the right to universal suffrage
the working classes have obtained a decided majority in the
legislative assemblies, and there secured a government of the
future in accordance with their needs. On these principles the
Universal German Society of Working Men was constituted, with
Lassalle as its president, which position he held till his
death in a duel in 1864. Long internal disputes and personal
recriminations led to a split at the Eisenach Congress in
1869. The malcontents founded an independent “Social Democratic
Working-Men’s Union,” under the leadership of Bebel and
Liebknecht, which, particularly successful in Saxony, Brunswick,
and South Germany, represents itself as the German branch
of the “International Working-Men’s Association.” It adhered
indeed generally to Lassalle’s programme, but objected to the
extravagant adulation claimed for Lassalle by their opponents,
the proper disciples of Lassalle, who had Hasenclaver as
their leader and Berlin as their headquarters, substituted a
federal for a centralistic organization, and instead of a great
centralised government in the future desired rather a federal
republic embracing all Europe. But both declared equally in
favour of revolution; they vied with one another in bitter hatred
of everything bearing the name of religion; and wrought out
with equal enthusiasm their communistic schemes for the future.
At the Gotha Congress of 1875 a reconciliation of parties was
effected. The social-democratic agitation thus received a new
impulse and assumed threatening proportions. Yet it required such
extraordinary occurrences as the twice attempted assassination of
the aged emperor, by Hodel on May 11th, and Nobiling on June 2nd,
1878, to rouse the government to legislative action. On the basis
of a law passed in October, 1878, for two and a half years (but
in May, 1880, continued for other three and a half years, and in
May, 1884, and again in April, 1886, on each occasion extended
to other two years), 200 socialist societies throughout the
German empire were suppressed, sixty-four revolutionary journals,
circulated in hundreds of thousands and with millions of readers,
and about 800 other seditious writings, were forbidden. But that
the social- democratic organization and agitation was not thereby
destroyed is proved by the fact that in August, 1880, in an
uninhabited Swiss castle lent for the purpose, in Canton Zürich,
a congress was held, attended by fifty-six German socialists,
with greetings by letter from sympathisers in all European
countries, which among other things passed the resolution
unanimously, no longer as had been agreed upon at Gotha, to seek
their ends by lawful methods, as by the law of the socialists
impossible, but by the way of revolution.--On the other hand, the
German Imperial Chancellor Prince Bismarck in the Reichstag, 1884,
fully admitted the “right of the worker to work,” as well as the
duty of the state to ameliorate the condition of working men as
far as possible, and in three propositions: “Work for the healthy
workman, hospital attendance to the sick, and maintenance to the
invalided,” granted all that is asked for by a healthy social
policy.
§ 212.6. =Russian Nihilism.=--In Russia, too, notwithstanding a
strictly exercised censorship, the philosophico-scientific gospel
of materialism and atheism found entrance through the writings
of Moleschott, Feuerbach, Büchner, Darwin, etc. (§ 174, 3),
especially among the students. In 1860, Nihilism, springing
from this seed, first assumed the character of a philosophical
and literary movement. It sought the overthrow of all religious
institutions. Then came the women’s question, claiming
emancipation for the wife. The example of the Paris Commune
of 1871 contributed largely to the development of Nihilistic
idealism, its political revolutionary socialism. The Nihilist
propaganda, like an epidemic, now seized upon the academic youth,
male and female, was spread in aristocratic families by tutors
and governesses, won secret disciples among civil servants as
well as officers of the army and navy, and was enthusiastically
supported by ladies in the most cultured and exalted ranks. In
order to spread its views among the people, young men and women
disguised in peasant’s dress went out among the peasants and
artisans, lived and wrought like them, and preached their gospel
to them in their hours of rest. But their efforts failed through
the antipathy and apathy of the lower orders, and the energetic
interference of the government by imprisonment and banishment
thinned the ranks of the propagandists. But all the more closely
did those left bind themselves together under their central
leaders as the “Society for Country and Freedom,” and strove
with redoubled eagerness to spread revolutionary principles
by secretly printing their proclamations and other incendiary
productions, and scattering them in the streets and houses. On
January 24th, 1878, the female Nihilist _Vera Sassulitsch_ from
personal revenge dangerously wounded with a revolver General
Trepoff, the dreaded head of the St. Petersburg police. Although
she openly avowed the deed before the court and gloried in it,
she was amid the acclamations of the public acquitted. This was
the hour when Nihilism exercised its fellest terrorism. The fair,
peaceful phrase, “To work, fight, suffer, and die for the people,”
was silenced; it was now, sword and fire, dagger and revolver,
dynamite and mines for all oppressors of the people, but above
all for the agents of the police, for their spies, for all
informers and apostates. An “executive committee,” unknown to
most of the conspirators themselves, issued the death sentence;
the lot determined the executioner, who himself suffered death
if he failed to accomplish it. What was now aimed at was the
assassination of higher state officials; then the sacred person
of the emperor. Three bold attempts at assassination miscarried;
the revolver shot of Solowjews on April 14th, 1879; the mine on
the railway near Moscow that exploded too late on November 30th,
1879; the horrible attempt to blow up the Winter Palace with
the emperor and his family on February 17th, 1880; but the
fourth, a dynamite bomb thrown between the feet of the emperor
on March 13th, 1881, destroyed the life of this noble and humane
monarch, who in 1861-1863 had freed his people from the yoke of
serfdom. As for years nothing more had been heard of Nihilist
attempts, it was hoped that the government had succeeded in
putting down this diabolical rebellion, but in 1887 the news
spread that an equally horrible attempt had been planned for
the sixth anniversary of the assassination of Alexander II.,
but fortunately timely precautions were taken against it.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLES.
FIRST CENTURY.
A.D.
14-37. The Emperor Tiberius, § 22, 1.
41-54. The Emperor Claudius, § 22, 1.
44. Execution of James the Elder, § 16.
51. The Council at Jerusalem, § 18, 1.
54-68. The Emperor Nero, § 23, 1.
61. Paul’s Arrival at Rome, § 15.
63. Stoning of James the Just, § 16, 3.
64. Persecution of Christians in Rome, § 22, 1.
66-70. Jewish War, § 16.
81-96. The Emperor Domitian, § 22, 1.
SECOND CENTURY.
98-117. The Emperor Trajan, § 22, 2.
115. (?) Ignatius of Antioch, Martyr, § 22, 2.
117-138. The Emperor Hadrian, § 22, 2.
Basilides, Valentinus, § 22, 2, 4.
132-135. Revolt of Barcochba [Bar-Cochba], § 25.
Abt. 150. Celsus, § 23, 3.
Marcion, § 27, 11.
138-161. The Emperor Antoninus Pius, § 22, 2.
155. Paschal Controversy between Polycarp and Amicetus
[Anicetus], § 37, 2.
161-180. The Emperor Marcus Aurelius, § 22, 3.
165. Justin Martyr, § 30, 9.
166. (155?) Martyrdom of Polycarp, § 22, 3.
172. (156?) Montanus appears as a Prophet, § 40, 1.
177. Persecution of Christians at Lyons and Vienne,
§ 22, 3.
178. Irenæus made Bishop of Lyons, § 31, 2.
180-192. The Emperor Commodus, § 22, 3.
196. Paschal Controversy between Victor and Polycrates,
§ 37, 2.
THIRD CENTURY.
202. Tertullian becomes Montanist, § 40, 2.
Pantænus dies, § 31, 4.
220. Clement of Alexandria dies, § 31, 4.
235. Settlement of the Schism of Hippolytus, § 41, 1.
235-238. The Emperor Maximinus Thrax, § 22, 4.
243. Ammonius Saccus [Saccas] dies, § 25, 2.
244. Arabian Synod against Beryllus, § 33, 7.
249-251. The Emperor Decius, § 22, 5.
250. The Schism of Felicissimus, § 41, 2.
251. The Novatian Schism, § 41, 3.
253-260. The Emperor Valerian, § 22, 5.
254. Origen dies, § 31, 5.
255-256. Controversy about Heretics’ Baptism, § 35, 5.
258. Cyprian dies, § 31, 11.
260-268. The Emperor Gallienus.
The Toleration Edict, § 22, 5.
262. Synod at Rome against Sabellius and Dionysius of
Alexandria, § 33, 7.
269. Third Synod of Antioch against Paul of Samosata,
§ 33, 8.
276. Mani dies, § 29, 1.
284-305. The Emperor Diocletian, § 22, 6.
FOURTH CENTURY.
303. Beginning of Diocletian Persecution, § 22, 6.
306. Synod of Elvira, § 38, 3; 45, 2.
Meletian Schism in Egypt, § 41, 4.
Constantius Chlorus dies, § 22, 7.
311. Galerius dies, § 22, 6.
312. Constantine’s Expedition against Maxentius, § 22, 7.
Donatist Schism in Africa, § 63, 1.
313. Edict of Milan, § 22, 7.
318. Arius is Accused, § 50, 1.
323-337. Constantine the Great, Sole Ruler, § 42, 2.
325. First Œcumenical Council at Nicæa, § 50, 1.
330-415. Meletian Schism at Antioch, § 50, 8.
335. Synod at Tyre, § 50, 2.
336. Athanasius Exiled. Arius dies, § 50, 2.
341. Council at Antioch, § 50, 2.
343. Persecution of Christians under Shapur [Sapor] II.,
§ 64, 2.
344. Synod at Sardica, § 46, 3; 50, 2.
346. Council at Milan against Photinus, § 50, 2.
348. Ulfilas, Bishop of the Goths, § 76, 1.
350-361. Constantius, Sole Ruler, § 42, 2.
351. First Council at Sirmium against Marcellus, § 50, 2.
357. Second Council at Sirmium, Homoians, § 50, 3.
358. Third Council at Sirmium, § 50, 3.
359. Synods at Seleucia and Rimini, § 50, 3.
361-363. Emperor Julian the Apostate, § 42, 3.
362. Synod at Alexandria against Athanasius, § 50, 4.
366-384. Damasus I., Bishop of Rome, § 46, 4.
368. Hilary of Poitiers dies, § 47, 14.
373. Athanasius dies, § 47, 3.
379. Basil the Great dies, § 47, 4.
379-395. Theodosius the Great, Emperor, § 42, 4.
380. Synod at Saragossa, § 54, 2.
381. Second Œcumenical Council at Constantinople, § 50, 4.
Ulfilas dies, § 76, 1.
384-398. Siricius, Bishop of Rome, § 46, 4.
385. Priscillian beheaded at Treves, § 54, 2.
390. Gregory Nazianzen dies, § 47, 4.
391. Destruction of the Serapeion at Alexandria, § 42, 6.
393. Council at Hippo Rhegius, § 59, 1.
397. Ambrose dies, § 47, 15.
399. Rufinus Condemned at Rome as an Origenist, § 51, 2.
400. Martin of Tours dies, § 47, 15.
FIFTH CENTURY.
402-417. Innocent I. of Rome, § 46, 5.
403. _Synodus ad Quercum_, § 51, 3.
Epiphanius dies, § 47, 10.
407. Chrysostom dies, § 47, 8.
408-450. Theodosius II. in the East, § 52, 3.
411. _Collatio cum Donatistis_, § 63, 1.
412. Synod at Carthage against Cœlestius, § 53, 4.
415. Synods at Jerusalem and Diospolis against Pelagius,
§ 53, 4.
416. Synods at Mileve and Carthage against Pelagius,
§ 53, 4.
418. General Assembly at Carthage, § 53, 4.
Roman Schism of Eulalius and Bonifacius, § 46, 6.
420. Jerome dies, § 47, 16.
Persecution of Christians under Behram [Bahram] V.,
§ 64, 2.
422-432. Cœlestine I., Bishop of Rome, § 46, 6.
428. Nestorius is made Patriarch of Constantinople,
§ 52, 3.
429. Theodore of Mopsuestia dies, § 47, 9.
The Vandals in North Africa, § 76, 3.
430. Cyril’s Anathemas, § 52, 3.
Augustine dies, § 47, 18.
431. Third Œcumenical Council at Ephesus, § 52, 3.
432. St. Patrick in Ireland, § 77, 1.
John Cassianus dies, § 47, 21.
440-461. Leo I., the Great, § 46, 7; 47, 22.
444. Cyril of Alexandria dies, § 47, 6.
Dioscurus succeeds Cyril, § 52, 4.
445. Rescript of Valentinian III., § 46, 7.
448. Eutyches excommunicated at Constantinople, § 52, 4.
449. Robber Synod at Ephesus, § 52, 4.
Attack of Angles and Saxons upon Britain, § 77, 4.
451. Fourth Œcumenical Synod at Chalcedon, § 52, 4.
457. Theodoret dies, § 47, 9.
475. Semipelagian Synods at Arles and Lyons, § 53, 5.
476. Overthrow of the West Roman Empire, § 46, 8; 76, 6.
Monophysite Encyclical of Basiliscus, § 52, 5.
482. Henoticon of the Emperor Zeno, § 52, 5.
Severinus dies, § 76, 6.
484-519. The Thirty-five Years’ Schism between the East and
West, § 52, 5.
492-496. Gelasius I., Bishop of Rome, § 46, 8; 47, 22.
496. Battle of Zülpich. Clovis baptized, § 76, 9.
SIXTH CENTURY.
502. _Synodus Palmaris_, § 46, 8.
517. Council at Epaon, § 76, 5.
527-565. Justinian I., Emperor, § 46, 9; 52, 6.
529. Synods at Oranges and Valence, § 53, 5.
Monastic Rule of Benedict of Nursia, § 85.
Suppression of the University of Athens, § 42, 4.
533. The Theopaschite Controversy, § 52, 6.
Overthrow of the Vandal Empire, § 76, 3.
544. Condemnation of the “Three Chapters,” § 52, 6.
553. Fifth Œcumenical Council at Constantinople, § 52, 6.
554. Overthrow of the Ostrogoth Empire in Italy, § 76, 7.
563. Council at Braga, § 54, 2.
St. Columba among the Picts and Scots. § 77, 2.
567. Founding of the Exarchate of Ravenna, § 46, 9.
568. The Longobards under Alboin in Italy, § 76, 8.
589. Council at Toledo under Reccared, § 76, 2.
Columbanus and Gallus in the Vosges Country, § 77, 7.
590-604. Gregory I., the Great, § 46, 10; 47, 22.
595. Gregory of Tours dies, § 90, 2.
596. Augustine goes as Missionary to the Anglo-Saxons,
§ 77, 4.
597. St. Columba dies, § 77, 2.
Ethelbert baptized, § 77, 4.
SEVENTH CENTURY.
606. Emperor Phocas recognises the Roman Primacy, § 46, 10.
611-641. Heraclius, Emperor, § 52, 8.
615. Columbanus dies, § 77, 7.
622. Hejira, § 65.
625-638. Honorius I., Pope, § 46, 11.
636. Isidore of Seville dies, § 90, 2.
637. Omar conquers Jerusalem, § 65.
638. Monothelite Ecthesis of Heraclius, § 52, 8.
640. Omar conquers Egypt, § 65.
642-668. Constans II., Emperor, § 52, 8.
646. St. Gallus dies, § 78, 1.
648. The Typus of Constans II., § 52, 8.
649-653. Martin I., Pope, § 46, 11.
649. First Lateran Council under Martin I., § 52, 8.
652. Emmeran at Regensburg, § 78, 2.
657. Constantine of Mananalis, § 71, 1.
662. Maximus Confessor, dies, § 47, 13.
664. Synod at Streoneshalch (_Syn. Pharensis_), § 77, 6.
668-685. Constantinus Pogonnatus, § 52, 8; 71, 1.
677. Wilfrid among the Frisians, § 78, 3.
678-682. Agatho, Pope, § 46, 11.
680. Sixth Œcumenical Council at Constantinople
(Trullanum I.), § 52, 8.
690. Wilibrord among the Frisians, § 78, 3.
692. Concilium Quinisextum (Trullanum II.), § 63, 2.
696. Rupert in Bavaria (Salzburg), § 78, 2.
EIGHTH CENTURY.
711. The Saracens conquer Spain, § 81.
715-731. Pope Gregory II., § 66, 1; 78, 4.
716. Winifrid goes to the Frisians, § 78, 4.
717-741. Leo III., the Isaurian, Emperor, § 66, 1.
718. Winifrid in Rome, § 78, 4.
722. Winifrid in Thuringia and Hesse, § 78, 4.
723. Winifrid a second time at Rome, consecrated Bishop,
etc., § 78, 4.
724. Destruction of the Wonder-working Oak at Geismar,
§ 78, 4.
726. Leo’s First Edict against Image Worship, § 66, 1.
730. Leo’s Second Edict against Image Worship, § 66, 1.
731. Gregory III., Pope, § 66, 1; 78, 4; 82, 1.
732. Boniface, Archbishop and Apostolic Vicar, § 78, 4.
Battle at Poitiers, § 81.
Separation of Illyria from the Roman See by Leo the
Isaurian, § 66, 1.
735. The Venerable Bede dies, § 90, 2.
739. Wilibrord dies, § 78, 3.
741. Charles Martel dies, § 78, 5.
Gregory III. dies. Leo the Isaurian dies.
741-752. Pope Zacharias, § 78, 5, 7; 82, 1.
741-775. Constantinus Copronymus, Emperor, § 66, 2.
742. Concilium Germanicum, § 78, 5.
743. Synod at Liptinä, § 78, 5; 86, 2.
744. Synod at Soissons, § 78, 5.
745. Boniface, Archbishop of Mainz, § 78, 5.
752. Childeric III. deposed, Pepin the Short, King,
§ 78, 5; 82, 1.
754. Iconoclastic Council at Constantinople, § 66, 2.
Pepin’s donation to the Chair of St. Peter, § 82, 1.
755. Boniface dies, § 78, 7.
Abt. 760. Rule of St. Chrodegang of Metz, § 84, 4.
767. Synod at Gentilliacum, § 91, 2; 92, 1.
768-814. Charlemagne, § 82, 2, 4; 90, 1, etc.
772-795. Pope Hadrian I., § 82, 2.
772. Destruction of Eresburg, § 78, 9.
774. Charlemagne’s donation to the Chair of St. Peter,
§ 82, 2.
785. Wittekind and Alboin are baptized, § 78, 9.
787. Seventh Œcumenical Council at Nicæa, § 66, 3.
Founding of Cloister and Cathedral Schools, § 90, 1.
790. _Libri Carolini_, § 92, 1.
792. Synod at Regensburg, § 91, 1.
794. General Synod at Frankfort, § 91, 1; 92, 1.
795-816. Leo III., Pope, § 82, 3.
799. Alcuin’s disputation with Felix at Aachen, § 91, 1.
800. Leo III. crowns Charlemagne, § 82, 3.
NINTH CENTURY.
804. End of the Saxon War, § 78, 9.
Alcuin dies, § 90, 3.
809. Council at Aachen, on the _Filioque_, § 91, 2.
813-820. Leo the Armenian, Emperor, § 66, 4.
814-840. Louis the Pious, § 82, 4.
817. Reformation of Monasticism by Benedict of Aniane,
§ 85, 2.
820-829. Michael Balbus, Emperor, § 66, 4.
825. Synod at Paris against Image Worship, § 92, 1.
826. Theodorus Studita dies, § 66, 4.
Ansgar in Denmark, § 80, 1.
827. Establishment of Saracen Sovereignty in Sicily, § 81.
829-842. Theophilus, Emperor, § 66, 4.
833. Founding of the Archbishopric of Hamburg, § 80, 1.
835. Synod at Didenhofen, § 82, 4.
839. Claudius of Turin dies. Agobard of Lyons dies,
§ 90, 4.
840-877. Charles the Bald, § 90, 1.
842. Feast of Orthodoxy, § 66, 4.
Theodora recommends the out-rooting of the
Paulicians, § 71, 1.
843. Compact of Verdun, § 82, 5.
844. Eucharist Controversy of Paschasius Radbertus,
§ 91, 3.
845-882. Hincmar of Rheims, § 83, 2; 90, 5.
847. Archbishopric of Hamburg-Bremen, § 80, 1.
848. Synod of Mainz against Gottschalk, § 91, 5.
850-859. Persecution of Christians in Spain, § 81, 1.
851-852. The Decretals of the Pseudo-Isidore, § 87, 2, 3.
853. Synod of Quiersy. _Capitula Carisiaca_, § 91, 5.
855. Synod at Valence in favour of Gottschalk, § 91, 5.
856. Rabanus Maurus dies, § 90, 4.
858-867. Pope Nicholas I., § 82, 7.
858. Photius, Patriarch of Constantinople, § 67, 1.
859. Synod of Savonnières, § 91, 5.
861. Methodius goes to the Bulgarians, § 73, 3.
863. Cyril and Methodius go to Moravia, § 79, 2.
865. Ansgar dies, § 80, 1.
866. Encyclical of Photius, § 67, 1.
867-886. Basil the Macedonian, Emperor, § 67, 1.
867-872. Hadrian II., Pope, § 82, 7.
869. Eighth Œcumenical Council of the Latins at
Constantinople § 67, 1.
870. Treaty of Mersen, § 82, 5.
871. Basil the Macedonian puts down the Paulicians,
§ 71, 1.
Borziwoi and Ludmilla baptized, § 79, 3.
871-901. Alfred the Great, § 90, 9.
875. John VIII. crowns Charles the Bald Emperor, § 82, 8.
879. Eighth Œcumenical Council of the Greeks at
Constantinople, § 67, 1.
886-911. Leo the Philosopher, Emperor, § 67, 2.
891. Photius dies, § 67, 1.
TENTH CENTURY.
910. Abbot Berno founds Clugny, § 98, 1.
911. The German Carolingians die out, § 82, 8.
911-918. Conrad I., King of the Germans. § 96, 1.
914-928. Pope John X., § 96, 1.
919-936. Henry I., King of the Germans, § 96, 1.
934. Henry I. enforced toleration of Christianity in
Denmark, § 93, 2.
936-973. Otto I., Emperor, § 96, 1.
942. Odo of Clugny founds the Clugniac Congregation,
§ 98, 1.
950. Gylas of Hungary baptized, § 93, 8.
955. Olga baptized in Constantinople, § 73, 4.
960. Atto of Vercelli dies, § 100, 2.
962. Founding of the Holy Roman Empire of the German
Nation, § 96, 1.
963. Synod at Rome deposes John XII., § 96, 1.
966. Miecislaw of Poland baptized, § 93, 7.
968. Founding of Archbishopric of Magdeburg, § 93, 9.
970. Migration of Paulicians to Thrace, § 71, 1.
973-983. Otto II., Emperor, § 96, 2.
974. Ratherius of Verona dies, § 100, 2.
983-1002. Otto III., Emperor, § 96, 2, 3.
983. Mistewoi destroys all Christian establishments among
the Wends, § 93, 9.
987. Hugh Capet is made King of France, § 96, 2.
988. Wladimir Christianizes Russia, § 73, 4.
992-1025. Boleslaw Chrobry of Poland, § 93, 7.
996-999. Pope Gregory V., § 96, 2.
997-1038. Stephen the Saint, § 93, 8.
997. Adalbert of Prague, Apostle of Prussia, dies,
§ 93, 13.
999-1003. Pope Sylvester II., § 96, 3.
1000. Olaf Tryggvason dies, § 93, 4.
Christianity introduced into Iceland and Greenland,
§ 93, 5.
Stephen of Hungary secures the throne, § 93, 8.
ELEVENTH CENTURY.
1002-1024. Henry II., Emperor, § 96, 4.
1008. Olaf Skautkoning of Sweden baptized, § 93, 3.
1009. Bruno martyred, § 93, 13.
1012-1024. Pope Benedict VIII., § 96, 4.
1014-1036. Canute the Great, § 93, 2.
1018. Romuald founds the Camaldulensian Congregation,
§ 98, 1.
1024-1039. Conrad II., Emperor, § 96, 4.
1030. Olaf the Thick of Norway dies, § 93, 4.
1031. Overthrow of the Ommaides in Spain, § 95, 2.
1039-1056. Henry II., Emperor, § 96, 4, 5.
1041. Treuga Dei, § 105, 1.
1046. Synod at Sutri, § 96, 4.
1049-1054. Pope Leo IX., § 96, 5.
1050. Synods at Rome and Vercelli against Berengar,
§ 101, 2.
1053. Epistle of Michael Cærularius, § 67, 3.
1054. Excommunication of Greek Church by Papal Legates,
§ 67, 3.
1056-1106. Henry IV., Emperor, § 96, 6-11.
1059. Pope Nicholas II. assigns the choice of Pope to the
College of Cardinals, § 96, 6.
1060. Robert Guiscard founds the Norman Sovereignty in
Italy, § 95, 1.
1066. Murder of Gottschalk, King of the Wends, § 93, 9.
1073-1085. Pope Gregory VII., § 96, 7-9.
1075. Gregory’s third Investiture Enactment, § 96, 7.
1077. Henry IV. as a Penitent at Canossa, § 96, 8.
1079. Berengar subscribes at Rome the doctrine of
Transubstantiation, § 101, 2.
1086. Bruno of Cologne founds the Carthusian Order, § 98, 2.
1088-1099. Pope Urban II., § 96, 10.
1095. Synod at Clermont, § 94.
1096. First Crusade. Godfrey of Boulogne, § 94, 1.
1098. Synod at Bari. Anselm of Canterbury, § 67, 4.
Robert of Citeaux founds the Cistercian Order,
§ 98, 1.
1099. Conquest of Jerusalem, § 94, 1.
1099-1118. Pope Paschalis II., § 96, 11.
TWELFTH CENTURY.
1106-1125. Henry V., Emperor, § 96, 11.
1106. Michael Psellus dies, § 68, 5.
1109. Anselm of Canterbury dies, § 101, 1, 3.
1113. Bernard, Abbot of Clairvaux, § 98, 1; 102, 3.
1118. Founding of the Order of Knights Templar.
Knights of St. John, § 98, 7.
Basil, head of Bogomili, sent to the stake, § 71, 4.
1119-1124. Calixtus II., Pope, § 96, 11.
1121. Norbert founds the Præmonstratensian Order, § 98, 2.
1122. Concordat of Worms, § 96, 11.
1123. Ninth Œcumenical Council (First Lateran), § 96, 11.
1124. First Missionary Journey of Otto of Bamberg,
§ 93, 10.
1126. Peter of Bruys burnt, § 108, 7.
1128. Second Missionary Journey of Otto of Bamberg,
§ 93, 10.
1130-1143. Pope Innocent II., § 96, 13.
1135. Rupert of Deutz dies, § 102, 8.
1139. Tenth Œcumenical Council (Second Lateran), § 96, 13.
1141. Synod at Sens condemns Abælard’s writings, § 102, 2.
Hugo St. Victor dies, § 102, 4.
1142. Abælard dies, § 102, 2.
1143. Founding of the Roman Commune, § 96, 13.
1145-1153. Pope Eugenius III., § 96, 13.
1146. Fall of Edessa, § 94, 2.
1147. Second Crusade. Conrad III. Louis VII., § 94, 2.
1149. Henry of Lausanne dies, § 108, 7.
1150. _Decretum Gratiani_, § 99, 5.
1152-1190. Frederick I., Barbarossa, § 96, 14.
1153. Bernard of Clairvaux dies, § 102, 3.
1154. Vicelin [Vicelinus] dies, § 93, 9.
1154-1159. Hadrian IV., Pope, § 96, 14.
1155. Arnold of Brescia put to death, § 96, 14.
1156. Peter the Venerable dies, § 98, 1.
Founding of Carmelite Order, § 98, 3.
1157. Introduction of Christianity into Finland, § 93, 11.
1159-1181. Pope Alexander III., § 96, 15, 16.
1164. Peter the Lombard dies, § 102, 5.
Council of Clarendon, § 96, 16.
1167. Council at Toulouse (Cathari), § 108, 2.
1168. Christianity of the Island of Rügen, § 93, 10.
1169. Gerhoch of Reichersberg dies, § 102, 6, 7.
1170. Thomas Becket murdered, § 96, 16.
Founding of the Waldensian sect, § 108, 10.
1176. Battle of Legnano, § 96, 15.
1179. Eleventh Œcumenical Council (Third Lateran), § 96, 15.
1180. John of Salisbury dies, § 102, 9.
1182. Maronites are attached to Rome, § 73, 3.
1184. Meinhart in Livonia, § 93, 12.
1187. Saladin conquers Jerusalem, § 94, 3.
1189. Third Crusade. Frederick Barbarossa, § 94, 3.
1190-1197. Henry VI., Emperor, § 96, 16.
1190. Founding of Order of Teutonic Knights, § 98, 8.
1194. Eustathius of Thessalonica dies, § 68, 5.
1198-1216. Pope Innocent III., § 96, 17, 18.
THIRTEENTH CENTURY.
1202. Joachim of Floris dies, § 108, 5.
Founding of Order of the Brothers of the Sword,
§ 93, 12.
Genghis Khan destroys Kingdom of Prester John,
§ 72, 1.
1204-1261. Latin Empire in Constantinople, § 94, 4.
1207. Stephen Langton, Archbishop of Canterbury, § 96, 18.
1208. Peter of Castelnau slain, § 109, 1.
1209-1229. Albigensian Crusade, § 109, 1.
1209. Council of Paris against Sect of Amalrich of Bena,
§ 108, 4.
1212. Battle at Tolosa, § 95, 2.
1213. John Lackland receives England as a Papal Fief,
§ 96, 18.
1215-1250. Frederick II., Emperor, § 96, 17, 19, 20.
1215. Twelfth Œcumenical Council (Fourth Lateran),
§ 96, 18.
1216. Confirmation of the Dominican Order, § 98, 5.
1216-1227. Pope Honorius III., § 96, 19.
1217. Fourth Crusade. Andrew II. of Hungary, § 94, 4.
1223. Confirmation of Franciscan Order, § 98, 3.
1226. Francis of Assisi dies, § 98, 3.
1226-1270. Louis IX., the Saint, § 94, 6; 93, 15.
1227-1241. Pope Gregory IX., § 96, 19.
1228. Fifth Crusade. Frederick II., § 94, 5.
Settlement of the Teutonic Knights in Prussia,
§ 93, 13.
1229. Synod at Toulouse, § 109, 2.
1231. St. Elizabeth dies, § 105, 3.
1232. Inquisition Tribunal set up, § 109, 2.
1233. Conrad of Marburg slain, § 109, 3.
1234. Crusade against Stedingers, § 109, 3.
1237. Union of the Order of Sword with that of Teutonic
Knights, § 98, 8.
1243-1254. Pope Innocent IV., § 96, 20.
1245. Thirteenth Œcumenical Council (first of Lyons),
§ 96, 20.
Alexander of Hales died, § 103, 4.
1248. Foundation stone of Cathedral of Cologne laid,
§ 104, 13.
Sixth Crusade, Louis IX., § 94, 6.
1253. Robert Grosseteste dies, § 103, 1.
1254. Condemnation of the “_Introductorius in evangelium
æternum_,” § 108, 5.
1260. First Flagellant Campaign in Perugia, § 107, 1.
1260-1282. Michael Paläologus, Emperor, § 67, 4.
1261-1264. Urban IV., Pope, § 96, 20.
1262. Arsenian Schism, § 70, 1.
1268. Conradin on the Scaffold. § 96, 20.
1269. Pragmatic Sanction of Louis IX., § 96, 21.
1270. Seventh Crusade, Louis IX., § 94, 6.
1271-1276. Pope Gregory X., § 96, 21.
1272. Italian Mission to the Mongols. Marco Polo, § 93, 15.
David of Augsburg dies, § 103, 10.
Bertholdt [Berthold] of Regensburg dies, § 104, 1.
1273-1291. Rudolph of Hapsburg, Emperor, § 96, 21, 22.
1274. Fourteenth Œcumenical Council (second of Lyons),
§ 96, 21.
Thomas Aquinas dies, § 103, 6.
Bonaventura dies, § 103, 4.
1275. Strassburg Minster, § 104, 13.
1280. Albert the Great dies, § 103, 5.
1282. Sicilian Vespers, § 96, 22.
1283. Prussia subdued, § 93, 13.
1286. Barhabraeus [Barhebræus] dies, § 72, 2.
1291. Fall of Acre, § 94, 6.
John of Montecorvino among the Mongols, § 93, 16.
1294. Roger Bacon dies, § 103, 8.
1294-1303. Boniface VIII., Pope, § 110, 1.
1296. Bull _Clericis laicos_, § 110, 1.
1300. First Roman Jubilee, § 117.
Lollards at Antwerp, § 116, 2.
Gerhard Segarelli burnt, § 108, 8.
FOURTEENTH CENTURY.
1302. Bull _Unam Sanctam_, § 110, 1.
1305-1314. Pope Clement V., § 110, 2.
1307. Dolcino burnt, § 108, 4.
1308. Duns Scotus dies, § 113, 1.
1309-1377. Residence of Popes at Avignon, § 110, 2-4.
1311-1312. Fifteenth Œcumenical Council at Vienne, § 110, 2.
Suppression of Templar Order, § 112, 7.
1314-1347. Louis the Bavarian, Emperor, § 110, 3, 4.
1315. Raimund Lullus dies, § 93, 16; 103, 5.
1316-1334. Pope John XXII., § 110, 3; 112, 2.
1321. Dante dies, § 115, 10.
1322. Split in the Franciscan Order, § 112, 2.
1327. Meister Eckhart dies, § 114, 1.
1334-1342. Pope Benedict XII., § 110, 4.
1335. Bishop Hemming in Lapland, § 93, 11.
1338. Electoral Union at Rhense, § 110, 5.
1339. Union negotiations at Avignon. Barlaam, § 67, 5.
1340. Nicholas of Lyra dies, § 113, 7.
1341-1351. Hesychast Controversy in Constantinople, § 69, 1.
1342-1352. Pope Clement VI., § 110, 4.
1346-1378. Charles IV., Emperor, § 110, 4.
1347. Rienzi, § 110, 4.
Emperor Louis dies, § 110, 4.
1348. Founding of University of Prague, § 119, 3.
1348-1350. Black Death. Flagellant Campaign, § 116, 3.
1349. Thomas Bradwardine dies, § 113, 2.
1352-1362. Pope Innocent VI., § 110, 4.
1356. Charles IV. issues the Golden Bull, § 110, 4.
1360. Wiclif against the Begging Friars, § 119, 1.
1361. John Tauler dies, § 114, 2.
1362-1370. Pope Urban V., § 110, 4.
1366. Henry Suso dies, § 114, 5.
1367-1370. Urban V. in Rome, § 110, 4.
1369. John Paläologus passes over to the Latin Church,
§ 67, 5.
1370-1378. Pope Gregory XI., § 110, 4.
1374. Dancers, § 116, 3.
1377. Return of the Curia to Rome, § 110, 4.
1378-1417. Papal Schism, § 110, 6.
1380. Catharine of Siena dies, § 112, 4.
1384. Wiclif dies, § 119, 1.
Gerhard Groot dies, § 112, 9.
1386. Introduction of Christianity into Lithuania,
§ 93, 14.
1400. Florentius Radewin dies, § 112, 9.
FIFTEENTH CENTURY.
1402. Hus becomes Preacher in the Bethlehem Chapel,
§ 119, 3.
1409. Œcumenical Council at Pisa, § 110, 6.[578]
Withdrawal of the Germans from Prague, § 119, 3.
1410-1415. John XXIII., Pope, § 110, 7.
1410-1437. Sigismund, Emperor, § 110, 7, 8.
1412. Traffic in Indulgences in Bohemia, § 119, 4.
1413. Papal Ban against Hus, § 119, 4.
1414-1418. Sixteenth Œcumenical Council at Constance, § 110, 6;
119, 5.
1415. Hus obtains the crown of martyrdom, § 119, 5.
1416. Jerome of Prague martyred, § 119, 5.
1417-1431. Pope Martin V., § 110, 7.
1420. Calixtines and Taborites, § 119, 7.
1423. General Councils at Pavia and Siena, § 110, 7.
1424. Ziska dies, § 119, 7.
1425. Peter D’Ailly dies, § 118, 3.
1429. Gerson dies, § 118, 3.
1431-1447. Pope Eugenius IV., § 110, 7.
1431-1449. Seventeenth Œcumenical Council at Basel, § 110, 8;
119, 5-7.
1433. Basel Compacts, § 119, 7.
1434. Overthrow of Hussites at Böhmischbrod, § 119, 7.
1438. Papal Counter-Council at Ferrara, § 110, 8.
Pragmatic Sanction of Bourges, § 110, 9.
1439. Council at Florence, § 67, 6.
1448. Concordat of Vienna, § 110, 9.
1453. Fall of Constantinople, § 67, 6.
1457. Laurentius Valla dies, § 120, 1.
1458-1464. Pope Pius II., § 110, 11.
1459. Congress of Princes at Mantua, § 110, 10.
1464-1471. Pope Paul II., § 110, 11.
1467. Convention of Bohemian Brethren at Lhota, § 119, 8.
1471. Thomas à Kempis dies, § 114, 5.
1471-1484. Sixtus IV., Pope, § 110, 11.
1483. Luther born on November 10th, § 122, 1.
Spanish Inquisition, § 117, 1.
Close of _Corpus juris canonici_, § 99, 5.
1484-1492. Innocent VIII., Pope, § 110, 11.
1484. Zwingli born January 1st, § 130, 1.
Bull _Summis desiderantes_, § 117, 4.
1485. Rudolph Agricola dies, § 120, 3.
1489. John Wessel dies, § 119, 10.
1492-1503. Alexander VI., Pope, § 110, 12.
1492. Fall of Granada, § 95, 2.
1493-1519. Maximilian I., Emperor, § 110, 13.
1497. Melanchthon born, § 122, 5.
1498. Savonarola sent to the stake, § 119, 11.
SIXTEENTH CENTURY.
1502. Founding of University of Wittenberg, § 122, 1.
1508-1513. Pope Julius II., § 110, 13.
1506. Rebuilding of St. Peter’s at Rome, § 115, 13.
1508. Luther becomes Professor at Wittenberg, § 122, 1.
1509. Calvin born on July 10th, § 138, 2.
1509-1547. Henry VIII. of England, § 139, 4.
1511. Luther’s journey to Rome, § 122, 1.
Council at Pisa, § 110, 13.
1512. Luther made Doctor of the Holy Scriptures and
Preacher, § 112, 1.
1512-1517. Fifth Lateran Council, § 110, 13, 14.
1513-1521. Pope Leo X., § 110, 14.
1514. Reuchlin’s contest with the Dominicans, § 120, 4.
1516. _Epistolæ Obscur. virorum_, § 120, 5.
Erasmus edits the New Testament, § 120, 6.
Zwingli preaches at Mariä Einsiedeln, § 130, 1.
1517. Luther’s Theses, October 31st, § 122, 2.
1518. Luther at Heidelberg and before Cajetan at Augsburg,
§ 122, 3.
Melanchthon Professor at Wittenberg, § 122, 5.
1519. Miltitz, § 122, 3.
Disputation at Leipzig, § 122, 4.
Zwingli in Zürich, § 130, 1.
Olaf and Laurence Peterson in Sweden, § 139, 1.
1519-1556. Emperor Charles V., § 123, 5.
1520. Bull of Excommunication against Luther, § 123, 2.
Christian II. in Denmark, § 139, 2.
1521. Luther at Worms, § 123, 7.
Melanchthon’s _Loci_, § 124, 1.
Beginning of Reformation in Riga, § 139, 3.
1521-1522. The Wartburg Exile, § 123, 8.
1522. The Prophets of Zwickau in Wittenberg, § 124, 1.
Reuchlin dies, § 120, 4.
1522-1523. Pope Hadrian VI., § 126, 1.
1523. Thomas Münzer in Allstädt, § 124, 4.
Luther’s contest with Henry VIII., § 125, 3.
First Martyrs, Voes and Esch, § 128, 1.
Sickingen’s defeat, § 124, 2.
1523-1534. Pope Clement VII., § 149, 1.
1524. Staupitz dies, § 112, 2.
Carlstadt in Orlamünde, § 124, 3.
Erasmus against Luther, § 125, 2.
Diet of Nuremberg, § 126, 2.
Regensburg League, § 126, 3.
Hans Tausen in Denmark, § 139, 2.
Founding of Theatine Order, § 149, 7.
1525. Eucharist Controversy, § 131, 1.
Luther’s Marriage, § 129.
Albert of Prussia, Hereditary Duke, § 126, 4.
Founding of the Capuchin Order, § 149, 7.
1525-1532. John the Constant, Elector of Saxony, § 124, 5.
1526. Synod at Hamburg, § 127, 2.
Torgau League, § 126, 5.
Diet at Spires, § 126, 6.
Disputation at Baden, § 130, 6.
1527. Diet at Odense, § 139, 2;
and at Westeräs, § 139, 1.
1528. The Pack incident, § 132, 1.
Disputation at Bern, § 130, 7.
1529. Church Visitation of Saxony, § 127, 1.
Diet at Spires, § 132, 3.
Marburg Conference, § 132, 4.
First Peace of Cappel, § 130, 9.
1530. Diet at Augsburg. _Conf. Augustana_, June 25th,
§ 132, 6, 7.
1531. Schmalcald League, § 133, 1.
Zwingli dies. Second Peace of Cappel, § 130, 10.
1532-1547. John Frederick the Magnanimous, Elector of Saxony,
§ 133, 2.
1532. Religious Peace of Nuremberg, § 133, 2.
Farel at Geneva, § 138, 1.
Henry VIII. renounces authority of the Pope, § 139, 4.
1534. Luther’s complete Bible Translation, § 129, 1.
Reformation in Württemberg, § 133, 3.
1534-1535. Anabaptist Troubles in Münster, § 133, 6.
1534-1549. Pope Paul III., § 149, 2.
1535. Vergerius in Wittenberg, § 134, 1.
Calvin’s _Institutio rel. Christ._, § 138, 5.
1536. Erasmus dies, § 120, 6.
Wittenberg Concord, § 133, 8.
Calvin in Geneva, § 138, 2.
Diet at Copenhagen, § 139, 2.
Menno Simons baptized, § 147, 1.
1537. Schmalcald Articles, § 134, 1.
Antinomian Controversy, § 141, 1.
1538. Nuremberg League, § 134, 2.
Calvin Expelled from Geneva, § 138, 3.
1539. Outbreak at Frankfort, § 134, 3.
Reformation in Albertine Saxony, § 134, 4.
Joachim II. reforms Brandenburg, § 134, 5.
Diet at Odense, § 139, 2.
1540. The Society of Jesus, § 149, 8.
Double Marriage of the Landgrave, § 135, 1.
Religious Conferences at Spires, Hagenau, and Worms,
§ 135, 2.
1541. Carlstadt dies, § 124, 3.
Interim of Regensburg, § 135, 3.
Naumburg Episcopate, § 135, 5.
Calvin returns to Geneva, § 138, 3, 4.
1542. Reformation in Brunswick, § 135, 6.
National Assembly at Bonn, § 135, 7.
Francis Xavier in the East Indies, § 150, 1.
Roman Inquisition, § 139, 23.
1544. Diet at Spires, Peace of Crespy, Wittenberg
Reformation, § 135, 9.
Diet at Westeräs, § 139, 1.
1545. Synod at Erdöd, § 139, 20.
1545-1547. Nineteenth Œcumenical Council at Trent, § 136, 4;
149, 2.
1546. Regensburg Conference: Murder of John Diaz, § 135, 10.
Luther dies, February 18th, § 135, 11.
Reformation in the Palatinate, § 135, 6.
1546-1547. Schmalcald War, § 136.
1547-1553. Edward VI. of England, § 139, 5.
1547. Hermann of Cologne resigns, § 136, 2.
1548-1572. Sigismund Augustus, of Poland, § 139, 18.
1548. Interim of Augsburg, § 136, 5.
Adiaphorist Controversy, § 141, 5.
Priests of the Oratory, § 149, 7.
1549. _Consensus Tigurinus_, § 138, 7.
Andrew Osiander at Königsburg, § 141, 2.
Jesuit Mission in Brazil, § 150, 3.
The first Jesuits in Germany (Ingolstadt), § 151, 2.
1550-1555. Pope Julius III., § 136, 8.
1550. Brothers of Mercy, § 149, 7.
1551. Resumption of Tridentine Council, § 136, 8; 149, 2.
1552. Compact of Passau, § 137, 3.
Outbreak of Crypto-Calvinist Controversy, § 141, 9.
Francis Xavier dies, § 150, 1.
1553-1558. Mary the Catholic of England, § 139, 5.
1553. Elector Maurice dies, § 137, 4.
Servetus burnt, § 148, 2.
1554. _Consensus Pastorum Genevensium_, § 138, 7.
John Frederick the Magnanimous dies, § 137, 3.
1555. Religious Peace of Augsburg, § 137, 5.
Outbreak of Synergist Controversies, § 141, 7.
1555-1598. Philip II. of Spain, § 139, 21.
1556-1564. Ferdinand I, Emperor, § 137, 8.
1556. Loyola dies, § 149, 8.
1557. National Assembly at Clausenburg and _Confessio
Hungarica_, § 139, 20.
1558. Frankfort Recess, § 141, 11.
1558-1603. Elizabeth of England, § 139, 6.
1559. Gustavus Vasa’s Mission to the Lapps, § 142, 7.
_Confessio Gallicana_, § 139, 14.
The English Act of Uniformity, § 139, 6.
1560-1565. Pope Pius IV., § 149, 2.
1560. _Confessio Scotica_, § 139, 9.
John a Lasco dies, § 139, 18.
Calvinizing of the Palatinate, § 144, 1.
Melanchthon dies, § 141, 10.
1561. Gotthard Kettler, Duke of Courland, § 139, 3.
Religious Conference at Poissy, § 139, 14.
Mary Stuart in Scotland, § 139, 10.
Princes’ Diet at Naumburg, § 141, 11.
1562-1563. Resumption and Close of Tridentine Council, § 149, 2.
1562. _Confessio Belgica_, § 139, 12.
The XXXIX. Articles of the English Church, § 139, 6.
Calvinizing of Bremen, § 144, 2.
Heidelberg Catechism, § 144, 1.
Lælius Socinus dies, § 148, 4.
1564. Calvin dies, § 138, 4.
_Professio fidei Tridentinæ_, § 149, 14.
Cassander’s Union Proposals, § 137, 8.
Maulbronn Convention, § 144, 1.
1564-1576. Emperor Maximilian II., § 137, 8.
1566. _Catechasimo Romanus_, § 149, 10.
_Confessio Helvetica posterior_, § 138, 7.
The League of “the Beggars,” § 139, 12.
1567. The writings of Michael Baius condemned, § 149, 13.
1570. General Synod at Sendomir, § 139, 13.
Peace of St. Germains, § 139, 15.
1572-1585. Pope Gregory XIII., § 149, 3.
1572. John Knox dies, § 139, 11.
Bloody Marriage of Paris, August 24th, § 139, 16.
1573. _Pax dissidentium_ in Poland, § 139, 18.
1574. Maulbronn Convention, § 141, 12.
Restoration of Catholicism in Eichsfelde, § 151, 1.
1575. _Confessio Bohemica_, § 139, 19.
1576. Book of Torgau, § 141, 12.
Pacification of Ghent, § 139, 12.
1576-1612. Rudolph II., Emperor, § 137, 8.
1577. The Formula of Concord, § 141, 12.
Restoration of Catholicism in Fulda, § 151, 1.
1578. The Jesuit Possevin in Sweden, § 151, 3.
1579. The Union of Utrecht, § 139, 12.
1580. Book of Concord, § 141, 12.
1582. Second Attempt at Reformation in Cologne, § 137, 6.
Matthew Ricci in China, § 150, 1.
Reform of Calendar, § 149, 3.
1585-1590. Pope Sixtus V., § 149, 3.
1587. Mary Stuart on the Scaffold, § 139, 10.
1588. Louis Molina, § 149, 13.
1589-1610. Henry IV. of France, § 139, 17.
1589. Patriarchate at Moscow, § 73, 4.
1592. Saxon Articles of Visitation, § 141, 13.
1593. Assembly of Representatives at Upsala, § 139, 1.
1595. Synod at Thorn, § 139, 18.
1596. Synod at Brest, § 151, 3.
1597. Calvinizing the Principality of Anhalt, § 144, 3.
_Congregatio de auxiliis_, § 149, 13.
1598. Edict of Nantes, § 139, 17.
1600. Giordano Bruno at the Stake, § 146, 3.
SEVENTEENTH CENTURY.
1604. Faustus Socinus dies, § 148, 4.
1605. Landgrave Maurice calvinizes Hesse Cassel, § 154, 1.
Gunpowder Plot, § 153, 6.
1606. The Treaty of Vienna, § 139, 10.
Interdict on the Republic of Venice, § 156, 2.
1608. Founding the Jesuit State of Paraguay, § 156, 10.
1609. The Royal Letter, § 139, 19.
1610-1643. Louis XIII. of France, § 153, 3.
1610. Remonstrants and Counter-Remonstrants, § 160, 2.
1611. Pères de l’Oratoire, § 156, 7.
1612-1619. Matthias, Emperor, § 153, 1.
1613. Elector John Sigismund of Brandenburg goes over to
Reformed Church, § 154, 3.
George Calixtus in Helmstädt [Helmstadt], § 159, 2.
1614. _Confessio Marchica_, § 154, 3.
1616. Leonard Hutter dies, § 159, 4.
1618. Monks of St. Maur in France, § 156, 7.
1618-1648. The Thirty Years’ War, § 153, 2.
1618-1619. Synod of Dort, § 161, 2.
1619-1637. Ferdinand II., Emperor, § 153, 2.
1620. The Valteline Massacre, § 153, 3.
The Pilgrim Fathers, § 143, 2.
1621. John Arndt dies, § 160, 1.
1622. Francis de Sales dies, § 157, 1.
_Congregatio de propaganda fide_, § 156, 9.
1624. End of Controversy over κένωσις and κρύψις, § 159, 1.
Jac. Böhme dies, § 160, 2.
1628. Adam Schall in China, § 156, 12.
1629. Edict of Restitution, § 153, 2.
1631. Religious Conference at Leipzig, § 154, 4.
1632. Gustavus Adolphus falls at Lützen, § 153, 2.
1637. John Gerhard dies, § 159, 4.
Rooting out of Christianity in Japan, § 156, 11.
1638. Overthrow of Racovian Seminary, § 148, 4.
Cyril Lucar strangled, § 152, 2.
Scottish Covenant, § 155, 1.
1641. Irish Massacre, § 153, 5.
1642. Condemnation of the “Augustinus” of Jansen, § 157, 5.
1643-1715. Louis XIV. of France, § 153, 2; 157, 2, 3, 5.
1643. Orthodox Confession of Peter Mogilas, § 152, 3.
Opening of Westminster Assembly, § 155, 1.
1645. Hugo Grotius dies, § 153, 7.
Religious Conference at Thorn, § 153, 7.
Peace of Linz, § 153, 3.
1645-1742. Accommodation Controversy, § 156, 12.
1647. George Fox appears as Leader of the Quakers, § 163, 4.
1648. Peace of Westphalia, § 153, 2.
Close of Westminster Assembly, § 155, 1.
1649. Execution of Charles I. of England, § 155, 1.
1650. Descartes dies, § 164, 1.
1652. Liturgical Reform of the Patriarch Nikon, § 163, 10.
1653. Innocent X. condemns the Five Propositions of Jansen,
§ 157, 5.
Barebones’ Parliament, § 155, 2.
1654. Christina of Sweden becomes a Catholic, § 153, 1.
John Val. Andreä dies, § 160, 1.
1655. The Bloody Easter in Piedmont, § 153, 5.
_Consensus repetitus fidei vere Lutheranæ_, § 159, 2.
1656. George Calixtus dies, § 159, 2.
Pascal’s _Lettres Provinciales_, § 157, 5.
1658. Outbreak of Cocceian Controversies, § 161, 5.
1660. Vincent de Paul dies, § 156, 8.
Restoration of Royalty and Episcopacy in England,
§ 155, 3.
1661. Religious Conference at Cassel, § 154, 4.
1664. Founding of Order of Trappists, § 156, 8.
1669. Cocceius dies, § 161, 3.
1670. The Labadists in Herford, § 163, 7.
1673. The Test Act, § 153, 6.
1675. _Formula consensus Helvetici_, § 161, 2.
Spener’s _Pia Desideria_, § 159, 3.
1676. Paul Gerhardt dies, § 154, 4.
Voetius dies, § 161, 3.
1677. Spinoza dies, § 164, 1.
1682. _Quatuor propositiones Cleri Gallicani_, § 156, 1.
Founding of Pennsylvania, § 163, 4.
1685. Revocation of Edict of Nantes and Expulsion of
Waldensians from Piedmont, § 153, 4, 5.
1686. Spener at Dresden and _Collegia philobiblica_ in
Leipzig, § 159, 3.
Abraham Calov dies, § 159, 4.
1687. Michael Molinos forced to Abjure, § 157, 2.
1689. English Act of Toleration, § 155, 3.
Return of banished Waldensians, § 153, 5.
1690. The Pietists Expelled from Leipzig, § 159, 3.
1691. Spener in Berlin, § 159, 3.
1694. Founding of University of Halle, § 159, 3.
1697. Frederick Augustus the Strong of Saxony becomes
Catholic, § 153, 1.
1699. Propositions of Fénelon Condemned, § 157, 3.
EIGHTEENTH CENTURY.
1701. Thomas of Tournon in the East Indies, § 156, 12.
1702. Löscher’s “_Unschuldige Nachrichten_,” § 167, 1.
Buttlar Fanatical Excesses, § 170, 4.
1703. _Collegium caritativum_ at Berlin, § 169, 1.
Peter Codde deposed, § 165, 8.
1704. Bossuet dies, § 153, 7; 157, 3.
1705. Spener dies, § 159, 3.
1706. Founding of Lutheran Mission at Tranquebar, § 167, 9.
1707. The Praying Children at Silesia, § 167, 8.
1709. Port Royal suppressed, § 157, 5.
1712. Richard Simon dies, § 158, 1.
Mechitarist Congregation, § 165, 2.
1713. The Constitution _Unigenitus_, § 165, 7.
1717-1774. Louis XV. of France, § 165, 5.
1715. Fénelon dies, § 157, 3.
1716. Leibnitz dies, § 164, 2.
1717. French Appellants, § 165, 7.
Madame Guyon dies, § 157, 3.
Gottfried Arnold dies, § 160, 2.
Inspired Communities in the Cevennes, § 170, 2.
1721. Holy Synod of St. Petersburg, § 166.
Hans Egede goes as Missionary to Greenland, § 167, 9.
1722. Founding of Herrnhut, § 168, 2.
1727. A. H. Francke dies, § 167, 8.
Thomas of Westen dies, § 160, 7.
Founding of the Society of United Brethren, § 168, 2.
1728. Callenberg’s Institute for Conversion of Jews,
§ 167, 9.
1729. Buddeus dies, § 168, 2.
Methodist Society formed, § 169, 4.
1731. Emigration of Evangelicals of Salzburg, § 165, 4.
1740-1786. Frederick II. of Prussia, § 171, 4.
1741. Moravian Special Covenant with the Lord Jesus,
§ 168, 4.
1750. Sebastian Bach dies, § 167, 7.
End of Jesuit State of Paraguay, § 165, 3.
1751. Semler, Professor in Halle, § 171, 6.
1752. Bengel dies, § 167, 4.
1754. Christ. v. Wolff dies, § 167, 3.
Winckelmann becomes a Roman Catholic, § 165, 6.
1755. Mosheim dies, § 167, 3.
1758-1769. Pope Clement XIII., § 165, 9.
1759. Banishment of Jesuits from Portugal, § 165, 9.
1760. Zinzendorf dies, § 168, 3.
1762. Judicial Murder of Jean Calas, § 165, 5.
1765. Universal German Library, § 171, 4.
1769-1774. Pope Clement XIV., § 165, 9.
1772. Swedenborg dies, § 170, 5.
1773. Suppression of Jesuit Order, § 165, 9.
1774. Wolfenbüttel Fragments, § 171, 6.
1775-1799. Pius VI., Pope, § 165, 9, 10.
1775. C. A. Crusius dies, § 167, 3.
1776. Founding of the Order of the Illuminati, § 165, 13.
1778. Voltaire and Rousseau die, § 165, 14.
1780-1790. Joseph II., sole ruler, § 165, 10.
1781. Joseph’s Edict of Toleration, § 165, 10.
1782. Pope Pius VI. in Vienna, § 165, 10.
1786. Congress at Ems and Synod at Pistoja, § 165, 10.
1787. Edict of Versailles, § 165, 4.
1788. The Religious Edict of Wöllner, § 171, 5.
1789. French Revolution, § 165, 15.
1791. Wesley dies, § 169, 5.
Semler dies, § 171, 6.
1793. Execution of Louis XVI. and his Queen. Abolition of
Christian reckoning of time and of the Christian
religion in France. _Temple de la Raison_,
§ 165, 15.
1794. _Le peuple français reconnait l’Etre suprème et
l’immortalité de l’âme_, § 165, 15.
1795. Founding of London Missionary Society, § 172, 5.
1799. Schleiermacher’s “_Reden über die Religion_,”
§ 182, 1.
1800. Stolberg becomes a Roman Catholic, § 165, 6.
NINETEENTH CENTURY.
1800-1823. Pope Pius VII., § 185, 1.
1801. French Concordat, § 203, 1.
1803. Recess of Imperial Deputies, § 192, 1.
1804. Founding of British and Foreign Bible Society,
§ 183, 4.
Kant dies, § 171, 10.
1806. End of Catholic German Empire, § 192.
1809. Napoleon under Ban; the Pope Imprisoned, § 185, 1.
1810. Founding of American Missionary Society at Boston,
§ 184, 1.
Schleiermacher professor at Berlin, § 182, 1.
1811. French National Council, § 185, 1.
1814. Vienna Congress. Restoration of the Pope, § 185, 1.
Restoration of the Jesuits, § 186, 1.
1815. The Holy Alliance, § 173.
1816. Mission Seminary at Basel, § 184, 1.
1817. The Theses of Harms, § 176, 1.
Union Interpellation of Frederick William III.,
§ 177, 1.
1822. Introduction of the Prussian Service Book, § 176, 1.
Lyons Association for Spreading the Faith, § 186, 7.
1823-1829. Pope Leo XII., § 185, 1.
1825. Book of Mormon, § 211, 12.
1827. Hengstenberg’s _Evangel. Kirchenzeitung_, § 176, 1.
1829. English Catholic Emancipation Bill, § 202, 9.
Founding of Barmen Missionary Institute, § 184, 1.
1829-1830. Pope Pius VIII., § 185, 1.
1830. July Revolution, § 203, 2.
Halle Controversy, § 176, 1.
Abbé Chatel in Paris, § 187, 6.
1831-1846. Gregory XVI., Pope, § 185, 1.
1831. Hegel dies, § 174, 1.
1833. Beginning of Puseyite Agitation, § 203, 2.
1834. Conflict at Hönigern, § 177, 2.
Schleiermacher dies, § 182, 1.
1835. Strauss’ first Life of Jesus, § 182, 6.
Condemnation of Hermesianism, § 193, 1.
Edward Irving dies, § 211, 10.
Persecution of Christians in Madagascar, § 184, 3.
1836. Founding of Dresden Missionary Institute, § 184, 1.
1837. Emigrants of Zillerthal, § 198, 1.
Beginning of Troubles at Cologne, § 193, 1.
1838. Archbishop Dunin of Posen, § 193, 1.
Rescript of Altenburg, § 194, 2.
J. A. Möhler dies, § 191, 4.
English Tithes’ Bill, § 202, 9.
1839. Call of Dr. Strauss to Zürich, § 199, 4.
Bavarian order to give Adoration, § 195, 2.
Synod at Polozk, § 206, 2.
1810-1861. Frederick William IV. of Prussia, § 193.
1841. Schelling at Berlin, § 174, 1.
Constitution of Lutherans separated from National
Church of Prussia, § 177, 2.
Founding of Evangelical Bishopric of Jerusalem,
§ 184, 8.
Founding of Gustavus Adolphus Association, § 178, 1.
1843. Disruption and Founding of the Free Church of
Scotland, § 202, 7.
1844. German-Catholic Church, § 187, 1.
Wislicenus’ “Ob Schrift, ob Geist?” § 176, 1.
1845. Founding Free Church of Vaud, § 199, 2.
1845-1846. Conversions in Livonia, § 206, 3.
1846-1878. Pope Pius IX., § 185, 2-4.
1846. Founding of Evangelical Alliance in London, § 178, 3.
Fruitless Prussian General Synod in Berlin, § 193, 3.
1847. Prussian Patent of Toleration, § 193, 3.
War of Swiss Sonderbund, § 199, 1.
1848. Revolution of February and March, § 192, 4.
Founding of _Evangel. Kirchentag_, § 178, 4.
Founding of Catholic “Pius Association,” § 186, 3.
Bishops’ Congress of Würzburg, § 192, 4.
1849. Roman Republic, § 185, 2.
First Congress for Home Missions, § 183.
1850. Institution of Berlin “Oberkirchenrat,” § 193, 4.
Return of Pope to Rome, § 185, 2.
English Ecclesiastical Titles Bill, § 202, 11.
1851. Memorial of Upper Rhine Bishops, § 196, 1.
Taeping Rebellion in China, § 211, 15.
1852. Conference at Eisenach, § 178, 2.
1852-1870. Napoleon III., Emperor of the French, § 203, 3, 5.
1853. The _Kirchentag_ at Berlin acknowledges the
_Augustana_, § 178, 4.
Missionary Institute at Hermannsburg, § 185, 1.
New Organization of the Catholic Hierarchy in
Holland, § 200, 4.
1855. Sardinian Law about Monasteries, § 204, 1.
Austrian Concordat, § 198, 2.
1857. The Evangelical Alliance in Berlin, § 178, 3.
1858. Disturbances in Baden about Service Book, § 196, 3.
The Mother of God at Lourdes, § 188, 7.
1859. Franco-Austrian War in Italy, § 204, 2.
1860. Persecution of Syrian Christians, § 207, 2.
Abrogation of Baden Concordat, § 196, 2.
1861. The Austrian Patent, § 198, 3.
Introduction of a Constitutional Church Order into
Baden, § 196, 3.
Radama II. in Madagascar, § 184, 3.
Schism among Separatist Lutherans in Prussia,
§ 177, 3.
1862. Hanoverian Catechism Scandal, § 194, 3.
Renan’s Life of Jesus, § 182, 8.
Württemberg Ecclesiastical Law, § 196, 6.
1863. Congress of Catholic Scholars at Munich, § 191, 10.
1864. Encyclical and Syllabus, § 185, 2.
Strauss’ and Schenkel’s Life of Jesus, § 182, 8, 17.
1865. The first _Protestantentag_ at Eisenach, § 180, 1.
1866. Founding of the North German League.
1867. St. Peter’s Centenary Festival at Rome, § 185, 2.
1869. Irish Church Bill, § 202, 10.
Opening of Vatican Council, § 189, 2.
1870. Proclamation of Doctrine of Infallibility, July 18th,
§ 189, 3.
Revocation of the Austrian Concordat. § 198, 2.
Overthrow of the Church States, § 185, 3.
1871. Founding of the new German Empire, January 18th,
§ 197.
The first Old Catholic Congress at Munich, § 190, 1.
“The Kanzelparagraph,” § 197, 4.
First Lutheran National Synod in the kingdom of
Saxony, § 194, 1.
1872. Dr. Falk, Prussian Minister of Worship, § 193, 5.
The Prussian School Inspection Law, § 199, 3.
The Roman Disputation, § 175, 3.
The German Jesuit Law, § 197, 4.
Epidemic of Manifestations of the Mother of God in
Alsace-Lorraine, § 188, 6.
1873. The four Prussian Ecclesiastical Laws, § 197, 5.
Mermillod and Lachat Deposed from office, § 199, 2, 3.
Constitution of Old Catholic Church in German Empire,
§ 190, 1.
1874. The Austrian Ecclesiastical Laws, § 198, 6.
Union Conference at Bonn, § 175, 6.
1875. The Encyclical _Quod numquam_ and the Embargo Act,
§ 197, 8.
Berlin Extraordinary General Synod, § 193, 5.
Pearsall Smith, § 211, 1.
1876. Marpinger Mother-of-God trick, § 188, 7.
The Dutch University Law, § 202, 2.
1878. Leo XIII. ascends the Papal chair, § 185, 5.
Organization of a Catholic Hierarchy in Scotland,
§ 202, 11.
Congress of Berlin, § 207, 5.
Amnesty to the recalcitrant Clergy of the Jura,
§ 199, 3.
First appearance of the Salvation Army, § 205, 2.
1879. The Belgian Liberal Education Act, § 200, 6.
1880. Abolition of the “_Kulturexamen_” in Baden, § 197, 14.
French Decree of March, § 203, 6.
1881. Robertson Smith’s Heresy Case, § 202, 8.
1882. The Confessional Lutheran Conflict with the Ritschlian
School, § 182, 21.
1883. The Luther Jubilee, § 175, 10.
1884. The Belgian Clerical Education Act, § 200, 6.
Conclusion of the “Kulturkampf” in Switzerland,
§ 199, 2, 3.
1887. Prussian and Hessian Governments conclude Peace with
Papal Curia, § 197, 13, 15.
Founding of Evangelical _Bund_, § 178, 5.
INDEX.
Aachen, Council of, § 91, 1, 2.
Aargau, § 199, 1.
Abælard, § 102, 1, 2; 104, 10.
Abbacomites, § 85, 5.
Abbadie, § 161, 7.
Abbate, Abbé, § 111, 2.
Abbo of Fleury, § 100, 2.
Abbot, § 44, 3.
Abbuna, § 52, 7.
Abdas of Susa, § 64, 2.
Abdelmoumen, § 95, 2.
Abderrhamann [Abderrhaman], § 81; 95, 2.
Abdias, § 32, 5.
Abel, von, § 195, 2.
Abelites, § 44, 7.
Abgar Bar Maanu, § 21.
” of Edessa, § 13, 2.
About, E., § 185, 3.
Abraham a St. Clara, § 158, 2.
Abrahamites, § 165, 16.
Abrasax, § 27, 3.
Abrenunciatio diaboli, § 35; 58, 1.
Absolution, Formula of, § 89, 5.
Abstinence, Days of, § 56, 2.
Abulfarajus, § 72, 2.
Abyssinian Church, § 64, 1; 72, 2; 150, 4; 152, 1; 160, 7;
166, 3; 184, 9.
Acacius of Amida, § 64, 2.
Acacius of Constantinople, § 52, 5.
Acceptants, § 165, 7.
Accommodation Controversy, § 156, 12.
Acceptants, § 165, 7.
d’Achery, § 158, 2.
Achterfeld, § 191, 1.
Acindynos, § 69, 2.
Acoimetæ, § 44, 3; 52, 5, 6.
Acolytes, § 34, 3.
Acominatus, § 68, 5.
Acosta, Uriel, § 156, 14.
_Acta facientes_, § 22, 5.
Acta Pilati, § 22, 7; 32, 4.
Acta Sanctorum, § 158, 2.
Acton, Lord, § 189, 2.
Acts of Apostles, Apocryphal, § 32, 5, 6.
Acts of Martyrs, § 32, 8.
Adalbert of Bremen, § 96, 6; 97, 2.
” the Heretic, § 78, 6.
” of Prague, § 93, 13.
” of Tuscany, § 96, 1.
Adam, Book of, § 32, 3.
Adam, St. Victor, § 104, 10.
Adamantius (Origen), § 31, 5.
Adamites, § 27, 8.
” Bohemian, § 116, 5; 210, 2.
Adamnan, § 77, 8.
Addai [Addæi], § 32, 6.
Adeodatus, § 47, 18.
Adiaphorist Controversy, § 141, 5.
Adoptionists, § 91, 1; 102, 6.
Adrianus, § 48, 1.
Adrumetum, § 53, 5.
Advent, § 56, 5.
Adventists, § 211, 11.
Advocatus diaboli, § 104, 8.
” ecclesiæ, § 86.
Aedesius, § 64, 1.
Aelfric, § 100, 1.
Aeneas [Æneas] of Gaza, § 47, 7.
” [Æneas] of Sylvius, _see_ Pius II.
Aeons [Æons], § 26, 2.
Aepinus [Æpinus], § 141, 3.
Aërius, § 62, 2.
_Aeternus [Æternus] ille_, § 149, 4.
Aetius [Aëtius], § 50, 3.
Africa, § 76, 3.
Africanus, § 31, 8.
Agape, § 17, 7; 36, 1.
Agapetæ, § 39, 3.
Agapetus, § 46, 9; 52, 6.
Agathangelos, § 64, 3.
Agatho, § 46, 11; 52, 8.
Agenda Controversy in Prussia, § 177, 1.
Agenum, Synod of, § 50, 3.
Agilulf, § 76, 8.
Agnostics, § 174, 2.
Agobard, § 90, 4, 9; 91, 1; 92, 2.
Agreda, § 156, 5.
Agricola, John, § 141, 1.
” Rudolph, § 120, 3.
Agrippa of Nettesheim, § 146, 2.
Aguas, § 209, 1.
Aguilar, § 209, 1.
Aguirre, § 158, 2.
Ahle, Rud., § 160, 5.
Aidan, § 77, 5.
d’Ailly, § 110, 7; 118, 4; 119, 5.
Aistulf, § 82, 1.
Aizanas, § 64, 1.
Ἀκέφαλοι, § 52, 5.
Ἀκρόασις, § 39, 2.
Ἀκροώμενοι, § 35, 1.
Alacoque, § 156, 6.
Alanus ab Insulis, § 102, 5.
Alaric, § 76, 2.
Alaviv, § 76, 1.
Alba, § 59, 7.
” Duke of, § 136, 3; 139, 12.
_Albati_, § 116, 3.
Alberich, § 96, 1.
Albert the Great, § 103, 5.
” of Apeldern, § 93, 12.
” the Bear, § 93, 9.
” of Buxhöwden, § 93, 12.
” of Franconia-Brandenburg, § 137, 2, 4.
” of Mainz, § 122, 2; 123, 8; 134, 5.
” of Prussia, § 126, 4; 127, 3; 141, 2.
” of Suerbeer, § 73, 6; 93, 12.
Alberti, § 160, 3.
Albigensians, § 109, 1.
Albinus, § 160, 4.
Alboin, § 76, 8.
Albrechtsleute, § 208, 4; 211, 1.
Alcantara, Peter of, § 149, 16.
Alcantarmes [Alcantara], § 98, 8; 149, 6.
Alcibiades, § 40, 1.
Alcuin, § 90, 3; 91, 1, 2; 92, 1.
Aldgild, § 78, 3.
Aleander, § 123, 6, 7.
d’Aleman, Cardinal, § 110, 8; 118, 4.
Alemanni, § 78, 1.
d’Alembert, § 165, 14.
Alexander II., § 96, 6.
” III., § 96, 15, 16.
” IV., § 96, 20.
” V., § 110, 6; 119, 4.
” VI., § 110, 12.
” VII., § 156, 1, 2, 4, 5; 157, 5.
” VIII., § 156, 1, 3.
” I., Czars I., II., III., § 203, 1; 207, 3.
” of Alexandria, § 50, 1.
” ” Antioch, § 50, 8.
” ” Hales, § 103, 4.
” ” Newsky, § 73, 6.
” ” Parma, § 139, 12.
” Severus, § 22, 3.
Alexandrian School, § 31, 4; 47, 2, 3.
Alexis, § 73, 5.
Alexius Comnenus, § 71, 1, 4.
Alfarabi, § 103, 1.
Alfred the Great, § 90, 10.
Algazel, § 103, 1, 2.
Alger of Liege, § 102, 7.
Alkindi, § 103, 1.
Allatius, Leo, § 158, 2.
Allégri, § 158, 3.
Allen, W., § 139, 6.
Allendorf, § 167, 6.
Alliance, The Holy, § 173.
” The Evangelical, § 178, 2.
All Saints’ Day, § 57, 1; 88, 5.
All Souls’ Day, § 104, 7.
Almansor, § 95, 2.
Almohaden [Almohades], § 95, 2.
Almoravides, § 95, 2.
Alms, Dispensers of, § 17, 2.
Alogians, § 33, 2.
Alpers, § 211, 10.
Alphonso the Catholic, § 81, 1.
” the Chaste, § 81, 1.
” of Aragon [Arragon], Castile, and Portugal, § 95, 2.
Alphonso XII., § 205, 3.
Alsace-Lorraine, § 196, 7.
Altar, § 38; 60, 5; 88, 5.
Altenburg, § 194, 2.
Alting, § 160, 7.
Alumbrados, § 149, 16.
Alvarus, § 81, 1; 90, 6.
” Pelagius, § 118, 2.
Alzog, § 5, 6.
Amadeus of Savoy, § 110, 8.
Amalarius, § 90, 4; 91, 5.
Amalrich of Bena, § 108, 4.
Amandus, § 78, 3.
Ambo, § 60, 5.
Ambrose, § 47, 15; 50, 4; 57, 2, 3; 59, 5.
Ambrosian Chant, § 59, 5.
Ambrosiaster, § 47, 15.
Amen Sect, § 211, 8.
America, § 150, 3; 208; 209.
Amesius, § 161, 7; 162, 4.
Amling, § 144, 3.
Ammon, § 182, 2.
Ammonius, § 44, 3.
” Saccas, § 24, 2.
Amort, § 165, 12.
Amsdorf, § 127, 4; 135, 5; 141, 4, 6, 7.
Amulets, § 188, 13.
Amyrald [Amyrault], § 161, 3, 7.
Anabaptists, § 124, 1; 130, 5; 133, 6; 147; 148, 1; 163, 1, 2.
Anacletus I., § 17, 1.
” II., § 96, 13.
Ἀνάδοχαι, § 35, 3.
Ἀναγνώσται, § 34, 3.
Anastasius Biblioth. [ Bibliothecarius], § 90, 6.
” I., § 46, 4; 51, 2.
” II., § 46, 8.
” IV., § 96, 10.
” Sinaita, § 47, 12; 60, 6.
Anathema, § 52, 3.
Anatolius, § 46, 7.
Anchorets, § 44.
Ancyra, Council of, § 50, 3.
Anderledy [Anderlady], § 182, 1.
Anderson, § 139, 1.
Andreä, Jac., § 141, 12.
” Val., § 160, 1.
Andrew II. of Hungary, § 94, 4.
” of Crain, § 110, 11.
” “ Crete, § 70, 2.
Andronicus Paläologus, § 67, 5.
Angela of Brescia, § 149, 7.
Angelicals, § 149, 7.
Angels, Worship of, § 57, 3.
Angelo, Michael, § 115, 13; 149, 15.
Angelus Silesius, § 157, 4; 160, 3.
Angilram [Angilramnus], § 87, 1.
Anglican Church, § 139, 6; 155; 202.
Anglo-Saxon Church, § 77, 4, 5, 6.
Anhalt, Reformation in, § 133, 4; 144, 3.
Anicetus, § 37, 2.
Anjou, § 96, 21, 22.
Ann, Veneration of St., § 57, 2; 115, 1.
Anna of Russia, § 73, 4.
” ” Prussia, § 154, 3.
Annats, § 110, 15.
Anno of Cologne, § 96, 6; 97, 2.
Annunciation, Order of the, § 112, 8.
Anomæans [Anomœans], § 50, 3.
Ansbert [Ausbert] of Milan, § 83, 3.
Ansegis, § 87, 1.
Anselm of Canterbury, § 67, 4; 96, 12; 101, 1, 3.
Anselm of Havelberg, § 67, 4.
” ” Laon, § 101, 1.
” ” Lucca, § 96, 6.
Ansgar, § 80, 1.
Anthimus of Constantinople, § 52, 6.
Anthimus [Anthimos], Exarch, § 207, 3.
Anthony, St., § 44, 1.
” of Padua, § 98, 4.
” Order of St., § 98, 2.
Anthusa, § 47, 1.
Antidicomarianites, § 62, 2.
Ἀντίδωρα, § 58, 4.
Antilegomena, § 36, 8.
Ἀντιμήνσιον, § 60, 5.
Antinomianism, § 27, 8.
Antinomian Controversy, § 141, 1.
Antioch, Council of, § 50, 2.
Antiochean School, § 31, 1; 47, 1; 52, 2.
Antiphonal Music, § 59, 5.
_Antiphonarium_, § 59, 5.
Antitrinitarians, § 148.
Anton of Bourbon, § 139, 14.
Anton Paul, § 159, 3.
Antonelli, § 185, 2, 4; 189, 1; 196, 7; 197.
Antonians, § 207, 2.
Antoninus Pius, § 22, 3.
” [Antonine] of Florence, § 113, 7.
Apelles, § 27, 12.
Aphraates, § 47, 13.
Apiarius, § 46, 5, 6.
Apocrisiarians, § 46, 1.
Apocrypha, Non-Canonical, § 32.
” Deutero-Canonical, § 59, 1; 136, 4.
Apocryphal Controversy, § 161, 8; 183, 4.
Apollinaris, § 47, 5; 52, 1.
” Claudius, § 30, 8.
Apollonius of Tyana, § 24, 1.
Apollos, § 18, 3.
Apologists, Early Christian, § 30, 8.
Apology of Augsburg Confession, § 132, 7.
Apostles of the Lord, §§ 14-16.
Apostles, New Testament Office of, § 17, 5; 37, 1.
Apostles, Teaching of XII., § 30, 7.
Apostles, Doctrine of the, § 18, 2.
Apostles’ Creed, § 35, 2; 59, 2.
Apostolic Age, Beginning and Close of, § 14.
Apostolic Church, Constitution of, § 17.
Apostolic Epistles, § 32, 7.
” Fathers, § 30, 3-6.
” Constitutions and Canons, § 43, 4.
Apostolics, § 62, 1.
Appellants, § 165, 7.
_Appellatio ab abusu_, § 185, 4; 192, 4; 197, 9.
Appenfeller, § 170, 4.
Apse, § 60, 1.
Aquarii, § 27, 10.
Aquaviva, § 149, 8, 10, 12; 156, 13.
Arabia, § 21.
Arbues [Arbires], § 117, 2.
Arcadius, Emperor, § 42, 4; 51, 3.
Archbishop, § 46, 1.
Arch-chaplain, § 84, 1.
Archdeacon, § 45, 3; 84, 2; 97, 3.
Archelaus of Cascar, § 29, 1.
Archimandrite, § 44, 3.
Architecture, § 60, 1; 88, 6; 104, 12; 115, 13; 149, 15;
158, 3; 174, 9.
Archpresbyter, § 45, 3.
Areopagite, Dionysius the, § 47, 11.
Arialdus [Ariald], § 97, 5.
Arians, § 50; 76.
Aribert, § 76, 8.
Aristides, § 30, 8.
Aristobulus, § 10, 1.
Ariston of Pella, § 30, 8.
Aristotle, § 7, 4; 68, 2; 103, 1.
Arius, § 50, 1, 2.
Arles, Synod at, § 50, 2.
Armenian Church, § 64, 3; 72, 2; 82, 8; 207, 4.
Arminians, § 161, 2.
Arnaud, § 153, 4.
Arnauld, § 157, 5.
Arndt, E. M., § 174, 6; 181, 1.
” John, § 160, 1.
Arno of Salzburg, § 79, 1.
” ” Reichersberg, § 102, 6, 7.
Arnobius, § 31, 12,
” the Younger, § 53, 5.
Arnold of Brescia, § 96, 13.
” ” Citeaux, § 109, 1.
” the Dominican, § 108, 6.
” Gottfried, § 5, 3; 159, 4; 160, 2, 4.
Arnoldi, Bishop, § 187, 6.
Arnoldists, § 108, 7.
Arnulf of Carinthia, § 82, 8.
” ” Rheims, § 96, 2.
Arran, Earl of, § 139, 8.
Ars Magna, § 103, 7.
” Moriendi, § 115, 5.
Arsacius, § 51.
Arsenius, § 70, 1.
Art, Early Christian and Mediæval, § 38, 3; 60.
Artemon, § 33, 3.
Articles of English Church, The XXXIX., § 139, 6.
Articles, Organic, § 203, 1.
Artotyrites, § 40, 4.
Ascension, Festival of, § 56, 4.
” of Mary, § 32, 4; 57, 2.
Asceticism, § 39, 3; 44, 6; 70, 3; 107.
Aschaffenberg [Aschaffenburg] Concord, § 110, 8.
Ash Wednesday, § 56, 4.
Asia Minor, Theological School of, § 31, 1.
Asinarii, § 23, 2.
Asseburg, § 170, 1.
Assemani, § 165, 12.
Assenath, § 32, 3.
Asses, Feast of, § 105, 2.
Asterius, § 50, 6.
” of Amasa, § 57, 4.
Astruc, § 165, 11.
Asylum, Right of, § 43, 1.
Athanaric, § 76.
Athanasian Creed, § 59, 2.
Athanasius, § 44; 47, 3; 50; 52, 2.
Athenagoras, § 30, 10.
Athos, Monks of Mount, § 70, 3; 69, 1.
_Atrium_, § 60, 1.
Attila, § 46, 7.
Atto of Vercelli, § 100, 2.
d’Aubigné, Merle, § 178, 2.
” Th. A., § 139, 17.
Audians, § 62, 1.
_Audientes_, § 35, 1.
_Audientia episc._, § 43, 1.
Augsburg Confession, § 132, 7.
Augsburg Religious Peace, § 137, 5.
Augustus of Saxony, § 141, 12.
Augusta, § 139, 19.
Augusti, § 182, 5.
Augustine, § 47, 18, 19; 53, 2-5; 54, 1; 61, 1, 4; 63, 1.
Augustine, Missionary to England, § 77, 4.
Augustinus Triumphus, § 118, 2.
Augustinian Order, § 98, 6; 112, 5.
August Conference, § 179, 1.
Aurelian, Emperor, § 22, 5; 33, 8.
” Bishop, § 63, 1.
Auricular Confession, § 61, 1; 104, 4.
Aurifaber, § 129, 1.
_Ausculta fili_, § 110, 1.
Australia, § 184, 7; 202, 12.
Austria, § 165, 9; 190, 3; 198.
Autbert, § 81, 1.
Auto al nasciemento, § 115, 12.
” de fé, § 117, 2.
” sacramentale, § 115, 12.
Autocephalic Bishops, § 46, 1.
Auxentius of Dorostorus, § 76, 1.
” of Milan, § 47, 14.
Avars, § 79, 1.
Avenarius, § 142, 6.
Aventin [Aventinus], § 120, 3.
Averrhoes [Averroes], § 103, 1, 2.
Avicenna, § 103, 1, 2.
Avignon, § 110, 2-5.
Avitus, § 53, 5; 76, 5.
Azimites [Azymites], § 67, 3.
Baader, Francis, § 175, 5; 187, 3; 191, 2.
Baanes, § 71, 1.
Babäus, § 52, 3.
Babeuf, § 212, 1.
Babylonian Exile of Popes, § 110, 2-5.
Bach, Sebastian, § 167, 7.
Bacon, Roger, § 103, 8.
Bacon, Lord Verulam, § 164, 1.
Baden, § 196, 2, 3; 197, 13.
Bahrdt, § 170, 4, 7.
Baius, Michael, § 149, 13.
Bajazet, § 110, 11.
Baläus, § 48, 7.
Balde, Jac., § 158, 3.
Baldwin of Jerusalem, § 94, 1; 98, 7.
” of Flanders, § 94, 4.
” the Heretic, § 108, 4.
Balsamon, § 68, 5.
Balthazar of Fulda, § 151, 2.
Baltic Provinces of Russia, § 139, 3; 206, 3.
Baltimore, Lord, § 208, 5.
Baltzer, § 191, 1, 3.
Baluzius, § 158, 2.
Bampfield, § 163, 3.
Ban, § 89, 6; 106, 1.
Bañez, § 149, 13.
Bangor, § 85, 4.
Baphomet, § 112, 7.
Baptism, § 35, 2-4; 58, 1, 4; 141, 13.
Baptismal Font, § 60, 4; 88, 5.
_Baptismus Clinicorum_, § 35, 3.
Baptists, § 163, 3; 170, 6; 208, 1; 211, 3.
Baptistries, § 60, 4.
Bär, David, § 170, 4.
Baradai, § 52, 7.
Barbatianus, § 62, 2.
Barbs, § 108, 10.
Barckhausen, § 169, 1.
Barclay, § 163, 5.
Bar-Cochba, § 25.
Bardesanes, § 27, 5.
Barefooted Friars, § 98, 3; 149, 6.
Bar Hanina, § 47, 15.
Bar Hebræus, § 72, 2.
Bari, Synod at, § 67, 4.
Barkers, § 170, 7.
Barlaam, § 67, 5; 69, 2.
Barlaam and Josaphat, § 68, 6.
Barletta, § 115, 2.
Barnabas, § 14; 30, 4.
Barnabites, § 149, 7.
Barnim, § 133, 4.
Baronius, § 5, 2; 149, 14.
Barriere [Barrière], § 149, 6.
Barrow, § 143, 4.
Barsumas, § 52, 3.
Bartholomew, Massacre of St., § 139, 16.
Bartholomew of Pisa, § 98, 3.
Bartolemeo [Bartolomeo], Fra, § 115, 13.
Basedow, § 171, 4.
Basel, § 130, 3, 8; 196, 4.
” Council of, § 110, 8, 9; 119, 7.
Basil the Great, § 44; 47, 4; 59, 6.
” chief of Bogomili, § 71, 4.
” of Ancyra, § 50, 3.
” the Macedonian, § 67, 1; 68, 1; 71, 1; 73, 1.
Basilica, § 60, 1, 2.
Basilicus, § 139, 26.
Basilides, the Gnostic, § 27, 2.
” the Martyr, § 22, 4.
Basnage, § 5, 2; 161, 7.
Basrelief [Bas-relief], § 60, 6.
Bassi, § 149, 6.
Bathori, Steph., § 139, 18.
Bauer, Bruno, § 174, 1; 182, 6.
” Lor., § 171, 7.
Baumgarten-Crusius, § 182, 4.
” M., § 180, 1; 194, 6.
” Sigism. Jac., § 167, 4.
Baumstark, § 175, 7.
Baur, Chr. F., § 182, 7; 5, 4.
” Gust., § 194, 1.
Bautain, § 91, 1.
Bavaria, § 78, 2; 151, 2; 165, 10; 195; 197, 14.
Bavo, § 78, 3.
Baxter, § 162, 3.
Bayle, § 164, 4.
Bayly, Lewis, § 162, 3.
Beatification, § 104, 8.
Beaton, § 139, 8.
Beaumont, § 165, 7.
Bebel, § 212, 5.
Bebenburg, § 118, 2.
Beccus, § 67, 4.
Beck, Tob., § 182, 12.
Becket, § 96, 16.
Bede, The Venerable, § 90, 2.
Beethoven, § 174, 10.
Begging Friars, § 98, 3-6; 103, 3-6; 112, 2-6.
Beghards and Beguins [Beguines], § 98, 7; 116, 5.
Bekker, Balthaz., § 161, 5.
Belgium, § 200, 4-7.
Bellarmine, § 149, 4, 10, 14.
Beller, Card., § 188, 13.
Bellini, § 115, 13.
Bells, § 60, 5.
” Baptism of, § 88, 5.
Βῆμα, § 60, 1.
Bembo, § 120, 1.
Benard [Bernard], Lor., § 156, 7.
Bender, § 176, 4.
Benedetto of Mantova, § 139, 23.
Benedict III., § 82, 5.
” V., § 96, 1.
” VI., VII., § 96, 2.
” VIII., IX., 96, 4.
” X., § 96, 6.
” XI., § 110, 1.
” XII., § 110, 4; 67, 5; 112, 1.
” XIII., XIV., § 165, 1.
” of Aniane, § 85, 2.
” Levita, § 87, 1.
” of Nursia, § 85, 1.
Benedictines, § 85; 98, 1; 112, 1; 186, 2.
Benedict Medal, § 188, 13.
Benefice System, § 86, 2.
Bengel, § 167, 3.
Benno of Meissen, § 93, 9; 129, 1.
Berengar, § 101, 1, 2.
Berengar, I., II., § 96, 1.
Berg, John, § 153, 7.
” Book of, § 141, 12.
Berlage, § 188, 6.
Berleburger [Berleburg] Bible, § 170, 1.
Bern, § 130, 4; 199, 3, 4.
Bernard of Clairvaux, § 102, 2, 3; 94, 2; 96, 13; 104, 10;
108, 2, 3, 7; 109.
Bernard the Missionary, § 93, 10.
” Sylvester, § 102, 9.
” de Saisset, § 110, 1.
” Tolomei, § 112, 1.
Bernardino of Siena, § 112, 3.
Bernardines, § 98, 1.
Berno of Clugny, § 98, 1.
Berruyer, § 165, 14.
Bertha, § 77, 4.
Bertheau, § 182, 11.
Berthold of Limoges, § 98, 6.
” of Loccum, § 93, 12.
” of Regensburg, § 104, 1.
” Leonard, § 171, 7.
Berti, § 165, 15.
Bertrada, § 96, 10.
Bertrand de Got, § 110, 2.
Berylle [Barylla], Pet., § 156, 7.
Beryllus, § 33, 6.
Bespopowtschini, § 163, 10.
Bessarion, § 67, 6; 68, 2; 120, 1.
Besser, § 181, 4.
Bestmann, § 182, 21.
Bethel, § 183, 1.
Bethman [Bethmann]-Hollweg, § 193, 4.
Beuggen, § 183, 1.
Beust, von, § 198, 2, 4.
Beyschlag, § 182, 10.
Beza, § 138, 8; 139, 14; 143, 2, 5.
Bianchi, § 116, 3.
Bible Societies, § 183, 4; 185, 1.
” Communists, § 211, 6.
” Revision, § 181, 4.
” Translations, § 37, 1; 59, 1; 115, 4.
Bible reading forbidden, § 105, 3; 185, 1.
_Biblia pauperum_, § 115, 3.
Bickell, § 194, 4.
Biedermann, § 182, 19.
Biel, Gebr [Gabriel], § 113, 3.
Bienemann, § 142, 4.
Bilderdijk, § 200, 2.
Billicanus, § 122, 2.
Bilocation, § 105, 4.
Bingham, § 169, 6.
Bischof, Conrad, § 175, 2.
Bishops, § 17, 5; 34, 2; 45; 84; 97.
” Election of, § 34, 3; 45; 84; 97, 3.
Bishops’ Bible, § 202, 1.
” Paragraph, § 197, 11, 12.
Bismarck, § 197; 212, 5.
Bittner, § 175, 2.
Blackburne, § 171, 1.
Blahoslaw, § 139, 19.
Blanc, Louis, § 212, 1.
Blandina, § 22, 3.
Blandrata, § 148, 3.
Blasilla, § 44, 4.
Blastus, § 37, 2.
Blau, Dr., § 165, 13.
Blaurer, § 125, 1; 133, 3; 143, 2.
Blaurock, § 147, 3.
Blavatski [Blavatsky], § 211, 18.
Bleek, § 182, 11.
Blondel, § 161, 7.
Blood vases, § 35, 2.
” baptism, § 35, 4.
” revenge, § 88, 5.
Bloody Marriage, § 139, 16.
Blot-Sweyn, § 93, 3.
Blount, § 168, 3.
Blue Ribbon Army, § 211, 2.
Blum, Bishop, § 197, 6, 11.
Blumhardt, § 196, 5.
Bluntschli, § 180, 1; 196, 3.
Boabdil, § 95.
Bobadilla, § 149, 8.
Bobbio, § 78, 1; 85, 4.
Boccaccio, § 115, 10.
Bochart, § 161, 6.
Bodelschwingh, § 183, 1.
Bodin, § 117, 4; 148, 3.
Boeckh, § 181, 3.
Boethius [Boëthius], § 47, 23.
Bogatzky [Bogatsky], § 167, 6, 8.
Bogomili, § 71, 4.
Bogoris, § 72, 3.
Böhl v. Faber, § 174, 7.
Böhme, Jacob, § 160, 2.
” Mart., § 142, 4.
Bohemia, § 79, 3; 93, 6; 139, 19; 153, 2.
Bohemian Brethren, § 119, 8; 139, 19.
Böhmer, § 167, 5.
Böhringer, § 5, 4.
Bois, Professor, § 203, 8.
Bolanden, Cour. v., § 175, 2.
Boleslaw of Poland, § 93, 7.
” ” Bohemia, § 93, 6.
” Chrobry, § 93, 7.
Boleyn, Anne, § 139, 4.
Bolingbroke, § 170, 1.
Bolivia, § 209, 2.
Bollandists, § 158, 2.
Bolsec, § 138, 3.
Bolsena, Mass of, § 104, 7.
Bomberg, § 120, 9.
Bomelius, § 125, 2.
Bona, § 158, 2.
Bonald, § 188, 1.
Bonaventura, § 103, 4; 104, 10.
Boniface, Apostle of Germany, § 78, 4-8.
” I., § 46, 6.
” II., § 46, 8.
” III., IV., § 46, 10.
” VI., § 82, 8.
” VII., § 96, 2.
” VIII., § 110, 1; 99, 4; 117, 1.
” IX., § 110, 6; 117, 2.
_Boni homines_, § 108, 2.
Bonner, Bp., § 139, 4, 5.
Bonosus, § 62, 2.
Book of Discipline, § 139, 9.
Boos, Mart., § 187, 2.
Booth, General, § 211, 2.
Bordelum, Sectaries at, § 170, 4.
Borgia, § 110, 10, 12.
” Francis, § 149, 8.
Borromeo, § 149, 17; 151, 2.
” Society, § 186, 4.
Borsenius, § 170, 4.
Boruth, § 79, 1.
Borziwoi, § 79, 3.
Bosio, Ant., § 38, 1.
Boso, § 95, 3.
Bossuet, § 5, 2; 153, 7; 156, 3; 157, 3; 158, 2.
Bost, Pastor, § 156, 1.
Bothwell, § 139, 10.
Bourdaloue, § 159, 2.
Bourgos, Pragmatic Sanction of, § 110, 9.
Bourignon, § 157, 4.
Bouthillier de Rancé, § 156, 8.
Boyle, § 164, 3.
Bradacz, M. v., § 119, 8.
Bradwardine, § 113, 2.
Braga, Syn. of, § 76, 4.
Brakel, § 169, 2.
Bramante, § 115, 3; 149, 15.
Brandenburg, § 134, 5; 154, 3.
Brandt, § 181, 4.
Braniss, § 174, 2.
Brant, Seb., § 115, 11.
Braun, Hermesian, § 191, 1.
Brazil, § 150, 3; 209, 3.
Breckling, § 163, 9.
Breithaupt, § 159, 3.
Breitinger, § 162, 6.
Bremen, § 127, 4; 144, 2.
Brendel, § 151, 1.
Brentano, § 188, 3.
Brenz, § 131, 1; 133, 3; 141, 8; 142, 2, 6.
Brest, Synod of, § 72, 4; 151, 3.
Brethren, The four long, § 51, 3.
” of the Free Spirit, § 116, 5.
” of the Common Life, § 112, 9.
” Bohemian and Moravian, § 119, 7.
” The United, § 168.
Bretschneider, § 174, 3; 182, 2.
Bretwalda, § 77, 4.
Breviary, § 56, 2; 149, 14.
Briçonnet, § 120, 8; 138, 1.
Bridaine, § 158, 1.
Bridge-Brothers, § 98, 9.
Bridget, St., § 110, 5; 112, 4, 8.
Bridgewater Treatises, § 174, 3.
Brief, Papal, § 110, 16.
Briesmann, § 139, 3.
Brinckerinck, § 112, 9.
Brinkmann, § 197, 6, 11.
Britons, Ancient, § 77.
Broad Churchmen, § 202, 1.
Broglie, Duc de, § 203, 5, 6.
” Bishop, § 200, 1.
Brothers of the Common Life, § 112, 9.
” of Mercy, § 149, 7.
” of the Free Spirit, § 116, 5.
Brown, Archbishop, of Dublin, § 139, 7.
” Rob. (Brownist), § 143, 4.
” Thomas, § 164, 3.
Bruccioli, § 115, 4.
Brück, Dr., § 132, 7.
Brucker, Jac., § 167, 8.
Bruggeler, Sectaries, § 170, 4.
Brunehilde [Brunehilda], § 77, 7; 46, 10.
Bruneleschi, § 115, 13.
Bruno of Cologne, § 97, 2.
” the Missionary, § 93, 13.
” of Rheims, § 98, 2.
” of Toul, § 96, 5.
” Giordano, § 146, 3.
Brunswick, § 127, 4; 135, 6; 194, 5.
Bucer, § 122, 2; 124, 3; 131, 1; 133, 8; 135, 1, 3, 7; 139, 5.
Buchel, Anna v., § 170, 4.
Buchführer, § 128, 1.
Büchner, § 174, 3.
Budæus [Buddæus], § 120, 8.
Buddeus, § 167, 1, 4.
Buffalo Synod, § 208, 4.
Bugenhagen, § 125, 1; 127, 4; 133, 4; 139, 2; 142, 2.
Bülau, § 139, 3.
Bulgaria, § 67, 1; 73, 3; 175, 4; 207, 3.
_Bulgari_, § 108, 1.
Bulls, Papal, § 110, 16.
Bull, The Golden, § 97, 2; 110, 4.
Bullinger, § 133, 8; 138, 7; 161, 4.
Bunsen, § 181, 1, 4; 182, 17; 198, 1.
Bunyan, § 162, 3.
Büren, § 144, 2.
Burgundians, § 76, 5.
Burmann, § 161, 7.
Burnet, Bishop, § 161, 3.
Bursfeld, Congregation of, § 112, 1.
Busch, John, § 112, 1.
Busembaum, § 158, 1; 149, 10.
Buttlar Sectaries, § 170, 4.
Butter week, § 56, 7.
Buxhöwden, § 93, 12.
Buxtorf, § 161, 3, 6.
Byron, § 174, 7.
Byse, § 200, 8.
Caballero, § 174, 7.
Cabasilas, § 68, 5; 70, 4.
Cabet, § 212, 3.
Cabrera, § 205, 4.
Cadan, Peace of, § 133, 3.
Cæcilius, § 63, 1.
Cædmon, § 89, 3.
Cæsarius of Arles, § 47, 20; 53, 5; 61, 4.
” of Heisterbach, § 103, 9.
Cainites, § 27, 6.
Caius, § 31, 7; 33, 9.
Cajetan, Card., § 122, 3.
” of Thiene, § 149, 7.
Calas, § 165, 5.
Calatrava, Order of, § 98, 8.
Calderon, § 158, 3.
Calendar Reform, § 149, 3.
Calixt, Geo., § 153, 7; 159, 2, 4.
Calixtines, § 119, 7.
Calixtus II., § 96, 11.
” III., § 96, 15; 110, 10.
Callinice, § 71, 1.
Callistus, § 33, 5; 41, 1.
Calmet, § 165, 14.
Calov, § 153, 7; 159, 2, 4, 5; 160, 2.
Calvin, § 138; 143, 5.
Camaldulensian Order, § 98, 1.
_Camera Romana_, § 110, 16.
Camerarius, § 142, 6.
Camisards, § 153, 4.
Campanella, § 164, 1.
Campanus, § 148, 1.
Campbellites, § 170, 6.
Campe, § 171, 4.
Campegius, § 126, 2, 3; 132, 6.
Campello, § 190, 3.
Camp-Meeting, § 208, 1.
_Cancellaria Romana_, § 110, 16.
Canisius, § 149, 14; 151, 1.
” Society, § 186, 4.
Canon, Biblical, § 36, 8; 59, 1.
” of the Mass, § 59, 5.
” in Music, § 115, 8.
” Law, § 43, 2.
_Canones Apostt._, § 43, 4.
Canonesses, § 85, 3.
Canonical Age, § 45, 1.
” Life, § 84, 4; 97, 3.
_Canonici_, § 84, 4; 97, 3.
Canossa, § 96, 8.
Canova, § 174, 9.
Canstein, § 167, 8.
_Cantores_, § 34, 3.
_Cantus Ambros._, § 59, 5.
_Cantus_ figuratus, § 104, 11.
” firmus, § 59, 5.
Canute the Great, § 93, 2, 4.
Canus, § 149, 14.
Canz, § 167, 2.
Capistran, § 112, 3.
Capito, § 124, 3; 130, 3; 131, 1.
_Capitula Carisiaca_, § 91, 5.
” _Clausa_, § 111.
” _episcoporum_, § 87, 1.
Capitularies, § 87, 1.
Cappadocians, The Three, § 47, 5.
Cappadose, § 200, 2.
Cappel, Peace of, § 130, 9, 10.
Cappellus, § 161, 3, 6.
Capuchins, § 149, 6.
Caraccioli, § 139, 24.
Caraffa, § 149, 2, 7; 139, 22, 23.
Carantanians, § 79, 1.
Carbeas, § 71, 1.
Cardale, § 211, 10.
Cardinals, § 97, 1.
Carey, § 172, 5.
Carl, Dr., § 170, 1.
Carlomann, § 78, 5.
Carlstadt, § 122, 4; 124, 1, 3; 131, 1; 139, 2.
Carmelites, § 98, 6; 149, 6.
Carnesecchi, § 139, 22, 23.
Carnival, § 56, 4; 105, 2.
Carpentarius, § 128, 1.
Carpocrates, § 27, 8.
Carpov, § 167, 4.
Carpzov, J. B., § 117, 4, 158, 3; 167, 1.
Carpzov, J. G., § 167, 4.
Carranza, § 139, 21.
Carrasco, § 205, 4.
Carthusians, § 98, 2; 112.
las Casas, § 150, 3.
Casimir of Berleburg, § 170.
” ” Brunswick, § 126, 4.
Cassander, § 137, 8.
Cassel, Religious Conference of, § 154, 4.
Cassianus, § 44, 4; 47, 21; 53, 5.
Cassiodorus, § 47, 23.
Castellio, § 138, 4; 143, 5.
Castellus, § 161, 6.
Castelnau, Pet. v., § 109, 1.
Casuists, § 113, 4.
Casula, § 59, 7.
Catacombs, § 38, 1-3.
Cataphrygians, § 40, 1.
Catechetical School, § 31, 1.
Catechism, Heidelberg, § 144, 1.
” Luther’s, § 127, 1.
Catechisms, § 115, 5.
Catechismus Genevensis, § 138, 2.
” Romanus, § 149, 14.
Catechoumens, § 35, 1.
_Catenæ_, § 48, 1.
Cathari, § 108, 1.
Catharine of Aragon [Arragon], § 139, 4.
” Bora, § 129.
” de Medici, § 139, 13 ff.
” II. of Russia, § 165, 9.
” St., of Sweden, § 112, 8.
” of Siena, § 112, 4; 110, 5, 6.
Cathedral, § 84, 4.
” Schools, § 90, 8.
Catholicus, § 52, 7.
Catholicity, § 20, 2; 34, 7.
Cave, § 161, 7.
Celbes, § 28, 4.
Celibacy, § 39, 3; 45, 2; 84, 3; 96, 7; 111, 1; 187, 4.
Cellites, § 116, 3.
Celsus, § 23, 3.
Celtes, Conrad, § 120, 3.
Celtic Church, § 77.
Cemeteries, § 38; 60, 2.
Cencius, § 96, 7.
Centuries, The Magdeburg, § 5, 2.
Ceolfrid, § 77, 3, 8.
Cerdo, § 27, 11.
Cerinthus, § 17, 3; 27, 1.
Cesarini, § 110, 7.
Cesena, § 112, 2.
Cevennes, Prophets of the, § 153, 4; 170, 2, 7.
Chaila, du, § 153, 4.
Chalcedon, Council of, § 46, 1, 7; 52, 4.
Chaldean Christians, § 52, 3; 72, 1; 150, 4.
Chalmers, § 178, 2; 202, 7.
Chalybæus, § 174, 2.
_Chambre ardente_, § 139, 13.
Chamier, § 161, 7.
Chandler, § 171, 1.
Channing, § 208, 4.
Chantal, § 156, 7; 157, 1.
Chapels, § 84, 1, 2.
Chaplain, § 84, 1, 2.
Chapter of Cathedral, § 84, 4; 97, 2; 111.
Chapters, Controversy of the three, § 52, 6.
Charlemagne, § 78, 9; 79, 1; 81, 1; 82, 2, 3; 89, 2; 90, 1;
92, 1.
Charles of Anjou, § 96, 20-22.
” the Bald, § 82, 4, 5, 8; 90, 1.
” Martel, § 81; 82, 1.
” IV., Emperor, § 110, 4, 5; 117, 2.
” VII. of France, § 110, 9.
” V., Emperor, § 123, 5.
” I., II. of England, § 153, 6; 155, 1, 3.
” IX. of France, § 139, 14-16.
” IX. of Sweden, § 139, 1.
” XII. of Sweden, § 165, 4.
” Albert of Sardinia, § 204, 1.
” Felix of Sardinia, § 204, 1.
” Alexander of Württemberg, § 165, 5.
” Theodore of Bavaria, § 165, 10.
” of Lorraine, Cardinal, § 139, 13; 149, 2, 17.
Charisms, § 17, 1.
Chastel, § 5, 5.
Chateaubriand, § 174, 7.
Chatel, Abbé, § 187, 6.
Chatimar, § 79, 1.
Chazari, § 73, 2.
Chemnitz, § 141, 2, 12; 142, 2, 6.
Cherbury, § 164, 3.
Children, The Praying, § 167, 1.
” Baptism of, § 17, 7; 35, 4; 58, 1.
Children’s Communion, § 36, 3; 58, 4.
Children’s Crusade, § 94, 4.
Chili, § 209, 2.
Chiliasm, § 33, 9; 40, 4; 108, 5; 162, 1; 211, 7.
Chillingworth, § 161, 3.
China, § 93, 15; 150, 1; 156, 12; 165, 3; 184, 6; 186, 7.
Chinese Rites, § 156, 12.
Choir, § 60, 1.
Chorale, § 142, 5; 160, 5; 181, 2.
_Chorepiscopi_, § 34, 3; 45; 84; 97, 3.
Choristers, § 97, 3.
_Chorisantes_, § 116, 2.
Chosroes, § 11; 64, 2.
Chrism, § 35, 4.
Christ, Order of, § 112, 8.
Christian Association (German), § 172, 5.
Christian, Bishop, § 93, 13.
” II., III. of Denmark, § 139, 2.
Christian Baptists, § 170, 6; 208, 1.
Christina of Sweden, § 153, 1.
Christopher of Württemberg, § 133, 3.
_Christo sacrum_, § 172, 4.
Χριστὸς πάσχων, § 48, 5.
Chrodegang of Metz, § 48, 4.
_Chronicon paschale_, § 48, 2.
Chrysolaras, § 120, 1.
Chrysologus, § 47, 17.
Chrysostom, § 47, 8; 51, 3; 53, 1.
Chubb, § 171, 1.
Churches, § 38.
Church Army, § 211, 2.
” Discipline, § 39; 61; 89, 6; 106.
” History, Idea, Periods, Sources, etc., of, §§ 1-5.
” Law, Catholic, § 43, 3-5; 68, 5; 87; 99, 5.
” Law, Protestant, § 167, 5.
” Property, § 45, 4; 86, 1; 96, 15.
” States, § 82, 1; 185, 3.
” Year, § 56, 6.
Chytræus, § 141, 12; 142, 6.
_Ciborium_, § 60, 5.
Cilicium, § 106.
Cimabue, § 104, 14.
Circumcelliones, § 63, 1.
Cistercians, § 98, 1.
Ciudad, § 147, 7.
Clara of Assisi, § 98, 3.
” Nuns of St., § 98, 3.
Clarendon, Council at, § 96, 16.
Clarke, Sam., § 171, 1.
_Classes_, § 143, 1.
Classical Synods, § 143, 1.
Claude, § 161, 3, 7.
Claudius Apollinaris, § 30, 4.
” I., Emperor, § 22, 1.
” II., ” § 22, 5.
” of Savoy, § 148, 3.
” ” Turin, § 90, 4; 92, 2.
” Matthias, § 171, 11.
Clausen, § 201, 1.
Clemangis, § 110, 3; 118, 4.
Clemens, F. J., § 191, 3.
Clement of Alexandria, § 31, 4.
” of Rome, § 30, 3.
” II., § 96, 4, 5.
” III., § 96, 8, 16.
” IV., § 96, 20; 103, 8.
” V., § 110, 2; 112, 7.
” VI., § 110, 4, 5.
” VII., § 110, 6; 126, 2; 132, 2; 149, 1.
” VIII., § 110, 7; 149, 2, 13, 14.
” IX., X., § 156, 1.
” XI., § 165, 1, 7.
” XIII., XIV., § 165, 9.
” a Heretic of Britain, § 78, 6.
Clementine Homilies and Recognitions, § 28, 3, 4.
_Clementinæ_, § 99, 5.
Cleomenes, § 33, 5.
Clergy, § 34, 4.
_Clerici vagi_, § 84, 2.
_Clericis laicos_, § 110, 1.
Clericus, § 169, 6.
Clermont, Synod at, § 94; 96, 7.
Climacus, § 47, 12.
_Clinici_, § 34, 3; 45, 1.
Cloister Schools, § 90, 8.
Cloots, Anach., § 165, 12.
Clothilda, § 76, 5, 9.
Clovis, § 76, 9.
Clugny, § 98, 1; 165, 2.
Cluniacs, § 98, 1.
Cocceius, § 161, 4, 6; 162, 5.
Cochlæus, § 129, 1; 135, 10.
Cock, H. de, § 200, 2.
Codde, § 165, 8.
Codex Alexandrinus, § 152, 2.
” Sinaiticus, § 182, 11.
Cœlestine I., § 46, 1; 52, 3; 53, 4.
” II., § 96, 13.
” III., § 96, 16.
” IV., § 96, 19.
” V., § 96, 22.
Cœlestines, § 98, 2.
” Eremites, § 98, 4.
Cœlestius, § 53, 4.
Cœlicolæ, § 42, 6.
Cœnobites, § 44.
Coisi, § 77, 4.
Coke, § 169, 4.
Colani, § 203, 8.
Colenso, § 202, 4.
Coleridge, § 202, 1.
Colet, § 120, 6, 7.
_Colidei_, § 77, 8.
Coligny, § 139, 14, 16; 143, 6.
_Collatio cum Donatist._, § 63, 1.
_Collegia philobibl._, § 159, 3.
” _pietatis_, § 159, 3.
Collegial System, § 167, 5.
Collegiants, § 163, 1.
Collegiate Foundations, § 84, 4.
_Collegium caritativum_, § 169, 1.
” _Germanicum_, § 151, 1.
” _Helveticum_, § 151, 2.
Collenbusch, § 172, 3.
Collins, § 171, 1.
Collyridian Nuns, § 57, 2.
Colman, § 77, 6.
Cologne, Cathedral of, § 104, 13.
” Conflict of, § 190, 1.
” Reformation of, § 135, 7; 136, 2; 137, 7.
Colombière, § 156, 6.
Colonna, § 110, 1, 3.
” Vittoria, § 139, 22.
Columba, § 77, 2.
Columbanus, § 77, 7.
Columbus, § 116.
Comenius, § 163, 9; 168, 2.
_Comes Hieron._, § 59, 3.
Commendatory Abbots, § 85, 5; 111, 2.
Commodian, § 31, 12; 33, 9.
Commodus, § 22, 2.
Common Prayer, Book of, § 139, 5, 6.
_Communicatio idiomatum_, § 141, 9.
Communism, § 211, 6; 212, 1.
Compact, The Basel, § 119, 7.
Competentes, § 35, 1.
Compiegne, Diet of, § 82, 4.
Composition, § 89, 5, 6.
Compromise, Belgian, § 139, 12.
Comte, § 174, 2; 210, 1.
Concha, § 60, 1.
_Concilium Germanicum_, § 78, 5.
Conclave, § 96, 21.
Concomitantia, § 105, 1.
Concord of Wittenberg, § 133, 8.
” Formula of, § 141, 12.
Concordat of Austria, § 198, 2.
” ” Baden, § 196, 2.
” ” Bavaria, § 195, 1.
” ” France, § 203, 1.
” ” Holland, § 200, 1.
” ” Portugal, § 205, 5.
” ” Prussia, § 193, 1.
” ” Spain, § 205, 1.
” ” Upper Rhine, § 196, 1.
” ” Vienna, § 110, 7.
” ” Worms, § 96, 5.
” ” Württemberg, § 96, 5.
Condé, § 139, 14, 16, 17.
” Louise de, § 186, 2.
Conference, Evangelical, § 178, 4.
_Confessio_, § 57, 1.
Confession, § 36, 3; 61, 1; 89, 6; 104, 4.
_Confessio Augustana_, § 132, 7.
” ” _Variata_, § 141, 4, 7.
” _Belgica_, § 139, 12.
” _Bohemica_, § 139, 19.
” _Czengeriana_, § 139, 20.
” _Gallicana_, § 139, 14.
” _Hafnica_, § 139, 2.
” _Helvetica_ I., § 133, 8.
” ” II., § 138, 7.
” _Hungarica_, § 139, 20.
” _Marchica_, § 154, 3.
” _Saxonica_, § 136, 8.
” _Scotica_, § 139, 9.
” _Sigismundi_, § 154, 3.
” _Tetrapolit._, § 132, 7.
Confession, Westminster, § 155, 1.
” Württemberg, § 136, 8.
_Confessores_, § 22, 5; 39, 2, 5.
Confirmation, § 35, 4; 139, 19; 167, 2.
_Confutatio Conf. August._, § 132, 7.
Congregatio de auxiliis, § 149, 13.
” _de propag. fides_, § 156, 9.
Congregationalists, § 143, 4; 162, 1; 202, 5.
Congregations, § 98, 1; 186, 2.
Conon, Pope, § 46, 11.
Cononites, § 57, 2.
Conrad I., Emperor, § 96, 1.
” II., § 96, 4.
” III., § 96, 13; 94, 2.
” IV., § 96, 20.
” of Hochsteden, § 104, 13.
” ” Marburg, § 109, 3.
” ” Massovia, § 93, 13.
” ” Megenburg, § 118, 2.
Conradin, § 96, 20.
Consalvi, § 185, 1; 192, 3.
Conscientiarii, § 164, 4.
Consensus Dresdensis, § 141, 10.
” Genev., § 138, 7.
” Sendomir, § 139, 18.
” repetitus, § 159, 2.
” Tigurinus, § 138, 7.
Consilia evangelica, § 39.
Consistories, § 142, 1.
_Consolamentum_, § 108, 2.
Constance, Council of, § 110, 7; 119, 5, 7.
Constantia, § 50, 2.
Constantine the Great, § 22, 7; 42, 1, 2; 60, 1; 63, 1.
” I., Pope, § 46, 11.
” II., “ § 82, 2.
” Chrysomalus, § 70, 4.
” Copronymus, § 66, 2.
” of Mananalis, § 71, 1.
” Monomachus [Monómachus], § 67, 3.
” Pogonnatus, § 52, 8.
” Porphyrogenneta, § 68, 1.
Constantinople, Second Œcum. Council at, § 46, 1; 50, 4, 5; 52, 2.
” Fifth Œcum. Council at, § 52, 6.
” Sixth Œcum. Council at, § 52, 8.
” Seventh Œcum. Council at, § 66, 2, 3.
” Eighth Œcum. Council at, § 67, 1.
Constantius, § 42, 2; 50, 2.
” Chlorus, § 22, 6.
_Constitutio Rom._, § 82, 4.
Constitution of Early Church, § 17.
Constitutiones apost., § 43, 4.
Contarini, § 135, 2; 139, 22.
_Continentes_, § 39, 3.
Contraremonstrants, § 161, 2.
_Convenensa_, § 108, 2.
Conventuals, § 112, 3.
_Conversi_, § 98.
Converts, Romish, § 153, 1; 165, 6; 175, 7.
Convocation, English, § 202, 3.
Copts, § 52, 7; 72, 2.
Coquerel, § 203, 4, 8.
Coracion, § 33, 9.
Coran, § 65.
Corbinian, § 78, 2.
Cordeliers, § 149, 6.
Cornelius, Bishop, § 42, 3.
Coronation, Papal, § 96, 23; 110, 15.
_Corporale_, § 60, 5.
Corporations Act, § 155, 3; 202, 5.
_Corpus Cathol. et Evangel._, § 153, 1.
” _Christi_ Festival, § 104, 7.
” _doctr. Misnicum_, § 141, 10.
” _juris canon._, § 99, 5.
” _Pruthen._, § 141, 2.
_Correctores Rom._, § 99, 5.
Correggio, § 115, 13.
Cosmas of Jerusalem, § 70, 2.
” Indicopleustes, § 48, 2.
” Patr., § 70, 4.
” Usurpator, § 66, 1.
Cossa, Cardinal, § 110, 7.
Costa, Is. da, § 200, 2.
Coster, § 149, 14.
Cotta, Urs., § 122, 1.
Councils, Œcumenical, § 43, 2.
Counter-Reformation, § 151; 153; 165, 4.
Cour, Did. de la, § 156, 4.
Courland, § 93, 12; 139, 3.
Court, Ant., § 165, 5.
Covenant, § 139, 8; 155, 1.
Cowper, § 172, 4.
Cranach, § 142, 2.
Cranmer, § 139, 4, 5.
Cranz, § 115, 8.
Crasselius, § 167, 6.
Crato of Crafftheim, § 141, 10; 137, 8.
Creationism, § 53, 1.
Crell, J., § 148, 4.
” Nich., § 141, 13.
” Paul, § 141, 10.
Crescens, § 30, 9.
Crescentius, § 96, 2, 4.
Creuzer, § 174, 4.
Cromwell, § 153, 5, 6; 155, 1-3.
Crookes, § 211, 17.
Cross, § 38, 2; 60, 6.
” Discovery of the, § 57, 5.
” Ordeal of the, § 88, 5.
” Sign of the, § 39, 1; 59, 8; 73, 5.
Crotus, Rubianus, § 120, 2, 5.
Crucifix, § 60, 6.
Cruciger, § 136, 7.
Cruco, § 93, 9.
Crüger, § 160, 5.
Crusaders, § 98, 8.
Crusades, § 94; 105, 3.
Crusius, Mart., § 139, 26.
” Chr. Aug., § 167, 4.
Crypto-Calvinists, § 141, 10, 13.
Crypts, § 38, 1; 60, 1.
Cubricus, § 29, 1.
Cudworth, § 164, 3.
Culdees, § 77, 8.
_Cum ex apostolatus officio_, § 149, 2.
Cummins, § 208, 1.
Cunæus, § 161, 6.
Cupola, § 60, 3.
_Curati_, § 84, 2.
Curæus, § 141, 10.
Curci, § 187, 5.
Curia, The Papal, § 110, 15.
Curio, § 139, 24.
Cursores, § 60, 5.
Cusa, Nich. of, § 113, 6.
Cynewulf, § 89, 3.
Cyprian, St., § 22, 5; 31, 11; 34, 1, 7, 8; 35, 3; 39, 2;
41, 2, 3.
” of Antioch, § 48, 8.
” Sal., § 167, 4; 169, 1.
Cyran, St., § 157, 2.
Cyriacus, § 104, 9.
Cyril of Alexandria, § 47, 6; 52, 2, 3.
” of Jerusalem, § 47, 10; 52, 2, 3.
” Lucar, § 152, 2.
” and Methodius, § 73, 2, 3; 79, 2, 3.
Cyrillonas, § 48, 7.
Cyrus of Alexandria, § 52, 8.
Czersky, § 186, 6.
Dach, Sim., § 160, 3.
Dächsel, § 186, 4.
Dagobert I., § 78, 1.
Daillé, § 161, 3, 7.
Dalberg, J. v., § 120, 2, 3.
” K. Th. v., § 187, 3; 192, 2.
Dale, § 202, 3.
_Dalmatica_, § 59, 7.
Damascus I., § 46, 4; 59, 1, 4.
” II., § 96, 5.
_Dames du Cœur sacré_, § 186, 1.
Damiani, Petrus [Peter], § 97, 4; 104, 10; 106, 4.
Damiens, § 158, 1.
Dandalo [Dandolo], § 94, 4.
Daniel of Winchester, § 78, 4.
Danites, § 211, 14.
Dankbrand, § 93, 5.
Dannecker, § 174, 9.
Dannhauer, § 159, 5.
Dante, § 115, 10.
Danzig, § 139, 18.
Darboy, § 189, 3; 203.
Darbyites, § 211, 11.
Darnley, § 139, 10.
Darwin, § 174, 3.
_Dataria Rom._, § 110, 16.
Daub, § 182, 6.
Daumer, § 175, 7.
David of Augsburg, § 103, 10.
” ” Dinant, § 108, 4.
” Christian, § 167, 9.
Davidis, Fr., § 148, 3.
Davis, § 211, 17.
Deacon, § 17, 5; 34, 3.
Deaconess, § 34, 3.
Deaconess-institutes, § 183, 1.
Dean, § 84, 2.
Decius, Emperor, § 22, 5.
” Nich., § 142, 3.
Declaratio Thornuensis, § 153, 7.
Decretals, § 46, 3.
Decretists, § 99, 5.
Decretum Gelasianum, § 47, 22.
” Gratiani, § 99, 5.
_Defensores_, § 45, 3.
Deism, § 164, 3; 171, 1.
Delicieux, § 117, 2.
Delitzsch, § 182, 14.
Delrio, § 149, 11.
Demetrius of Alexandria, § 31, 5.
” Cydonius, § 68, 5.
” Mysos, § 139, 26.
Demiurge, § 26, 2.
Denek, § 148, 1.
Denecker, § 160, 1.
Denifle, § 191, 7.
Denison, § 202, 2.
Denmark, § 80; 93, 2; 139, 2; 201, 1.
Denzinger, § 191, 9.
Derezer, § 165, 11.
Dernbach, § 151, 1.
_De salute animarum_, § 193, 1.
Desanctis, § 204, 4.
Descant, § 104, 11.
Descartes, § 161, 3; 164, 1.
Deseret, § 211, 12.
Desiderius, § 82, 1.
Desprez, § 203, 3.
Dessau, Convention of, § 126, 5.
Dessler, § 167, 6.
Deutinger, § 191, 6.
“Deutsche Theologie,” § 114, 2.
De Valenti, § 174, 3.
Devay, § 139, 20.
Dhu Nowas, § 64, 4.
Diana of Poitiers, § 139, 13.
Diatessaron, § 30, 9; 36, 7.
Diaz, Juan, § 135, 10.
Didache, § 30, 7.
_Didascalia Apost._, § 43, 4.
Didenhofen, Synod of, § 82, 4.
Diderot, § 165, 12.
Didier de la Cour, § 156, 7.
Didymus of Alexandria, § 47, 5.
” Gabr, § 124, 1.
Dieckhoff, § 182, 21.
Diedrich, § 177, 3.
Diepenbrock, § 189, 1.
Dieringer, § 191, 6.
_Dies Stationum_, § 37; 56, 1.
Diestel, Past., § 176, 3.
Dietrich, Meister, § 103, 10.
” Veit, § 142, 2.
Dillmann, § 182, 11.
Dinant, David of, § 108, 4.
Dinder, Archbishop, § 197, 12.
Dinkel, Bishop, § 187, 3.
Dinter, § 174, 8.
Diocletian, Emperor, § 22, 6.
Diodorus of Tarsus, § 47, 8.
Diognetus, § 30, 6.
Dionysius of Alexandria, § 31, 6; 32, 8; 33, 7, 9; 35, 3.
” the Areopagite, § 47, 11; 90, 8.
” _Exiguus_, § 47, 23.
” of Paris, § 25.
” ” Rome, § 33, 7.
Dioscurus of Alexandria, § 52, 4.
” ” Rome, § 46, 8.
Dippel, § 170, 3.
Diptychs, § 59, 6.
_Disciplina arcani_, § 36, 4.
Disputation at Baden, § 130, 6.
” ” Basel, § 130, 3.
” ” Bern, § 130, 7.
” ” Leipzig, § 122, 4.
” ” Rome, § 175, 3.
” ” Zürich, § 130, 2.
Dissenters, § 143, 3, 4; 155, 1-3; 202, 5.
Dober, § 168, 3, 4, 11.
Docetism, § 26, 2.
_Doctor acutus_, § 113, 2.
” _angelicus_, § 103, 6.
” _audientium_, § 33, 1.
” _Christianiss._, § 113, 4.
” _ecstaticus_, § 114, 5.
” _invincibilis_, § 113, 3.
” _irrefragibilis_, § 103, 4.
” _melifluus_, § 102, 2.
” _mirabilis_, § 103, 8.
” _profundus_, § 103, 8; 116, 2.
” _resolutissimus_, § 113, 3.
” _seraphicus_, § 103, 4.
” _subtilis_, § 113, 1.
” _universalis_, § 103, 5.
_Doctores audientium_, § 34, 3.
” _ecclesiæ_, § 47, 22.
Döderlein, § 171, 8.
Dodwell, § 161, 7.
Dolcino, § 108, 8.
Döllinger, § 190, 1; 191, 5, 9; 175, 6; 5, 6.
Domenichino, § 149, 15.
Domenico da Pescia, § 119, 11.
Dominic, St., § 98, 4; 106, 3.
Dominicans, § 98, 5; 109, 2; 112, 4; 186, 2.
_Dominus ac redemt._, § 165, 9.
Domitian, Emperor, § 22, 1.
” Abbot, § 52, 6.
Domnus of Antioch, § 52, 4.
_Donatio Constantini_, § 87, 4.
Donatists, § 63, 1.
Donnet, Card., § 190, 3.
Doré, Gustav, § 174, 9.
Doring, Matt., § 113, 7.
_Dormitoria_, § 38, 2; 60, 4.
Dorner, § 182, 10.
Dorotheus, § 30, 6.
Dort, Synod of, § 161, 2.
Dositheus of Samaria, § 25, 2.
” ” Jerusalem, § 152, 3.
Drabricius, § 163, 9.
Dragonnades, § 153, 3.
Drake, § 174, 9.
Drey, § 191, 6.
Druids, § 77, 2.
Drummond, § 211, 10.
Drusius, § 161, 6.
Druthmar, Christ., § 90, 4, 9; 91, 3.
Dualism, § 26, 2.
Dualistic Heretics, § 71.
Dubois, Pet. v., § 118, 1.
” Card., § 165, 7.
Ducange, § 158, 2.
Duchoborzians, § 166, 2; 210, 3.
Dufay, § 115, 8.
Dufresne, § 158, 2.
Dulignon, § 163, 8.
Dumont, Bishop, § 200, 7.
Dumoulin, § 161, 3, 7.
Dungal, § 92, 2.
Dunin, § 193, 1.
Duns Scotus, § 113, 1.
Dunstan, § 97, 4; 100, 1.
Dupanloup, § 189, 3; 203, 3-5.
Duplessis-Mornay, § 139, 17.
Duræus, § 154, 4.
Durandus of Osca, § 108, 10.
” William, § 113, 3.
Dürer, Albert, § 115, 13; 142, 2.
Durousseaux, § 200, 7.
Düsselthal, § 183, 1.
Dutoit, § 171, 9.
Duvergier, § 157, 5.
Eadbald, § 77, 4.
Eanfled, § 77, 6.
Eardley, § 178, 2.
Easter-Festival, § 37, 1; 56, 3, 4.
” Reckoning of, § 56, 3; 77, 3.
East Friesland, § 170, 3.
East Indies, § 64, 4; 150, 1; 156, 11; 165, 3; 167, 9; 168, 6;
184, 5.
Ebed Jesu, § 72, 1.
Ebel, § 176, 3.
Eber, Paul, § 141, 10; 142, 3.
Eberhard of Bamberg, § 102, 6.
” J. A., § 171, 4-7.
” Bishop of Treves, § 197, 6.
Eberlin, § 125, 1.
Ebionites, § 28, 1.
Ebner, § 114, 6.
Ebo of Rheims, § 80; 87, 3.
Ebrard, § 182, 16; 195, 5; 5, 5.
Ecbert of Schönau, § 107, 1.
Eccart, John, § 142, 5.
_Ecclesia Christi_ Bull, § 203, 1.
Ecclesiastical Titles Bill, § 202, 11.
Ecetæ, § 70, 3.
Echter, Jul., § 151, 1.
Echternach Procession, § 188, 11.
Eck, § 122, 1, 4; 123, 1; 130, 6; 135, 2, 3; 149, 14.
Eckhart, Meister, § 114, 1.
Ecthesis, § 52, 8.
Edelmann, § 171, 3.
Edessa, School of, § 31, 1; 47, 1.
Edward VI. of England, § 139, 5.
Edwin, § 77, 4.
Egbert, § 77, 8; 78, 3.
Egede, § 167, 9.
Egli, § 199, 3.
Eichhorn, J. G., § 171, 7.
” Minister, § 196, 2.
” Nich., § 174, 5.
Eichsfeld, § 151, 1.
Einhard, § 88, 6.
εἰρήνη, § 39, 2.
Eisenach, Conference at, § 172, 2.
” Attentat, § 194, 2.
Eisenmenger, § 161, 7.
Eisleben, Magister, § 141, 1.
Elagabalus, § 22, 4.
Eleesban, § 64, 4.
Eleutherus, § 40, 2.
Elias of Cortona, § 98.
Eligius, § 78, 3.
Elipandus, § 91, 1.
Elisæus [Elisaeus], § 64, 3.
Elizabeth, St., § 105, 3.
” of Brandenburg, § 128, 1.
” ” Calenberg, § 134, 5.
” ” England, § 139, 6-8.
” ” Herford, § 163, 7, 8.
” ” Schönau, § 104, 9; 107, 1.
Elizabeth-Society, § 186, 4.
Elkesaites, § 28, 2.
Eller, § 170, 4.
Elliot, § 162, 7.
Eltz, Jac. v., § 151, 1.
Elvenich, § 191, 1.
Elvira, Syn. of, § 38, 3; 45, 2.
Elxai, § 27, 2.
Elzevir, § 161, 6.
Emanation, § 26, 2.
Emancipation Bill, § 202, 9.
Emmerau, § 78, 2.
Emmerich, § 188, 3.
Empaytaz, § 199, 5.
Emser, Jerome, § 123, 4; 149, 14.
Encratites, § 27, 10.
Encyclicon, § 52, 5.
Encyclopædists, § 165, 14.
Endemic Synods, § 43, 2.
Energumens, § 35, 3.
_Enfans sans souci_, § 115, 12.
Enfantin, § 212, 2.
England, § 139, 4; 143, 1; 154, 4; 155; 162, 1; 202.
Ennodius, § 46, 8; 59, 4.
Enoch, Book of, § 32, 2.
Enraght, § 202, 3.
Eoban, St., § 78, 7.
Epaon, Council of, § 76, 5.
Ephesus, Council of, § 52, 3; 53, 4.
Ephraem [Ephraim], § 47, 13; 48, 7; 59, 4.
Epigonus, § 33, 5.
Epiphanes, § 27, 8.
Epiphanius, § 47, 10; 51, 2, 3; 57, 4.
Episcopal System, § 167, 5.
_Episcopi in partibus_, § 97, 3.
Episcopius, § 161, 2.
_Epistolæ decretales_, § 46, 3.
” _formatæ_, § 34, 6.
” _obscur. vir._, § 120, 5.
” _paschales_, § 34, 6; 56, 3.
” _synodales_, § 34, 6.
_Epulæ Thyesteæ_, § 22.
Erasmus, § 120, 6; 123, 3; 125, 3.
Erastianism, § 202, 7.
Erastus, § 117, 4; 144, 1.
Erfurt, University of, § 120, 2.
Eric of Calenberg, § 136, 1.
” ” Sweden, § 80, 1; 93, 2.
” St., § 93, 3, 11.
” the Red, § 93, 5.
Erigena, § 90, 7; 91, 5.
Erimbert, § 81, 1.
Erlembald, § 97, 5.
Ernest the Pious, § 160, 6.
” of Lüneburg, § 126, 4; 127, 3.
Ernesti, § 171, 6.
Ernestine Bible, § 160, 6.
Esch, John, § 128, 1.
Eschenmayer, § 176, 2.
Escobar, § 149, 16; 158, 1.
Essenes, § 8, 4; 28, 2.
Essenius, § 161, 5.
Established Church, § 139, 6; 202, 1.
Esthonia, § 93, 2; 205, 3.
Estius, § 149, 14.
Ethelberga, § 77, 4.
Ethelbert, § 77, 4.
Ethelwold, Bishop, § 100, 1.
Etherius of Osma, § 91, 1.
Ethiopia, § 64, 1.
Etshmiadzin, § 72, 2.
Εὐχαριστία, § 17, 7; 36, 3.
Εὐχέλαιον, § 61, 3.
Eucherius, § 47, 21.
Euchites, § 44, 7; 71, 3.
Eudocia, § 48, 5; 52, 3, 4, 5.
Eudoxia, § 51, 3.
Eudoxius, § 50, 8.
Eugenius II., § 82, 4.
” III., § 96, 13.
” IV., § 67, 6; 110, 8, 9.
Eulalius, § 46, 6.
Euler, § 171, 8.
Eulogies, § 58, 4.
Eulogius of Cæsarea, § 53, 4.
” ” Cordova, § 81, 1; 90, 6.
Eunapius, § 42, 5.
Eunomius, § 50, 3.
Euphemites, § 42, 6.
Euphrates, § 28, 4.
Euric, § 76, 2.
Eusebians, § 50, 2.
Eusebius of Cæsarea, § 36, 8; 47, 2; 50, 1; 59, 1.
” ” Doryläum, § 52, 3.
” ” Emesa, § 47, 8.
” ” Nicomedia, § 50, 1.
” ” Vercelli, § 50, 2.
Eustasius of Luxeuil, § 78, 2.
Eustathians, § 44, 7.
Eustathius of Antioch, § 50, 8.
” ” Sebaste, § 44, 3, 7; 62, 1.
” ” Thessalonica, § 68, 5; 70, 4.
Euthalius, § 59, 1.
Euthymius Zigabenus, § 68, 5.
Eutyches, § 52, 4.
Euzoius, § 50, 8.
Evagrius, § 5, 1.
Evangelical-Party, § 202, 1, 4.
Evangelists, § 17, 5; 34, 1.
_Evangelium æternum_, § 108, 4.
Evolutionists, § 174, 2.
Ewald, The black and white, § 78, 9.
” H., § 182, 3.
Exarchate, § 46, 9; 76, 7; 82, 1.
Exarchs, Episcopal, § 46, 1.
_Execrabilis_, § 110, 10.
Exemption, § 98.
Exercises, Spiritual, § 149, 9; 188, 1.
Excommunication, § 35, 2; 88, 5; 106, 1.
Exodus-Churches, § 211, 6, 7.
ἐξομολόγησις, § 32, 2.
Exorcism, § 35, 4; 58, 1; 142, 2; 167, 2.
Exorcists, § 33, 3.
_Exsurge Domini_, § 123, 2.
_Extra_, § 99, 5.
_Extraneæ_, § 39, 3.
_Extravagantes_, § 99, 5.
Eyck, § 115, 13.
Eznik, § 64, 3.
Ezra, Fourth Book of, § 32, 2.
Faber, John, § 130, 2, 6.
” Stapulensis, § 120, 8.
Fabian, Bishop of Rome, § 22, 5.
Facundus of Hermiane, § 47, 19; 52, 6.
Fagius, § 139, 5.
Falk, Dr., § 174, 8; 193, 5, 6; 197, 2, 3, 5.
Familists, § 146, 5.
Farel, § 130, 3; 138, 1.
Fasts, Ascetic, § 44, 4; 107.
” Ecclesiastical, § 37, 3; 56, 4, 7; 115, 1, 12.
Fatak, § 29, 1.
Faustus of Mileve, § 54, 1.
” ” Rhegium, § 47, 21; 53, 5.
Favre, Pet., § 149, 8.
Fawkes, Guy, § 153, 6.
Fazy, § 199, 1.
Febronius, § 165, 10.
Fecht, § 167, 1.
Federal Theology, § 161, 4.
Felicissimus, § 41, 2.
Felicitas, § 22, 4.
Felix II., § 46, 4.
” III., § 46, 8; 52, 5.
” IV., § 46, 8.
” V., § 110, 8.
” of Aptunga, § 63, 1.
” the Manichæan, § 54, 1.
” Pratensis, § 120, 9.
” of Urgellis, § 91, 1.
Fell, Marg., § 163, 4.
Feneberg, § 187, 1.
Fénelon, § 157, 3; 158, 2.
Fenian-movement, § 202, 10.
Ferdinand I., § 137, 8; 126, 2, 3; 139, 19, 20.
” II., § 151, 1; 153, 2.
” VII. of Spain, § 205, 1.
” I. of Castile, § 95, 2.
” III. of Castile, § 95, 2.
” the Catholic, § 95, 2; 117, 2; 118, 7.
Ferguson, Fergus, § 202, 8.
Ferrara, Council of, § 67, 6; 110, 8.
Ferrer, Bonif., § 115, 4.
” Vincent, § 115, 2; 110, 6.
Ferry, Minister, § 203, 6.
_Ferula_, § 60, 1.
Fessler, Bishop, § 189, 3.
” Ign., § 165, 13.
Feudalism, § 86, 1.
Feuerbach, § 174, 1, 3; 182, 6.
Feuillants, § 149, 6.
Feyin, Synod of, § 64, 3.
Fichte, J. G., § 171, 10.
” J. H., § 174, 2; 211, 15.
Fiesole, § 115, 13.
Fifth Monarchy Men, § 162, 1.
_Filioque_, § 50, 7; 67, 1; 91, 2.
Finkenstein, § 176, 3.
Finland, § 93, 11; 139, 1; 206, 3.
Firmian, § 165, 4.
Firmcius Maternus, § 47, 14.
Firmilian, § 34, 3; 35, 3.
Fischart, § 142, 7.
Fisher, Bishop, § 139, 4.
Fisherman’s Ring, § 110, 16.
Fitzgerald, § 189, 3.
Five Mile Act, § 155, 3.
Flacius, § 141, 4-8; 142, 6; 5, 2.
Flagellants, § 106, 4; 116, 3; 149, 17.
Flagellation, § 106, 4; 116, 3; 149, 17.
Flavia Domitilla, § 22, 1.
Flavian of Antioch, § 50, 8.
” of Constantinople, § 52, 4.
Flechier, § 158, 2.
Flemming, § 160, 3.
Fletcher, § 169, 3.
Fleury, § 5, 2; 158, 2; 165, 7.
Fliedner, § 183, 1.
Flora, § 27, 5.
Florence, Council of, § 67, 6; 72; 110, 8.
Florentius Radewin, § 112, 9.
Florinus, § 31, 2.
Florus Magister, § 90, 5; 91, 5.
Folmar, § 102, 6.
Fontevraux, Order of, § 98, 2.
Fools, Festival of, § 105, 2.
Formosus, § 82, 8.
_Formula Concordiæ_, § 141, 9.
” Consensus Helvet., § 161, 3.
Förster, J., § 142, 6.
” prelate, § 118, 3; 197, 6.
Fortunatus, § 48, 6.
Fouque, de la M., § 174, 5.
Fourier, § 212, 1.
Fox, George, Quaker, § 163, 4, 5.
” American Spiritualist, § 211, 17.
France, § 139, 13-17; 153, 4; 165, 5; 203.
Francis, St., § 93, 16; 98, 3; 104, 10; 105, 4.
” de Paula, § 112, 8.
” ” Sales, § 156, 6; 157, 1.
” I., of France, § 110, 9, 14; 120, 8; 126, 5, 6; 139, 13.
” II., of France, § 139, 14.
Francisca Romana, § 112, 1.
Franciscans, § 98, 3; 112, 2; 149, 6.
Francis Xavier Society, § 186, 4.
Franck, Seb. § 146, 3.
” John, § 160, 4.
” Michael, § 160, 4.
” Sal., § 167, 6.
Francke, A. H., § 159, 3; 167, 2, 8, 9; 160, 7.
Franco of Cologne, § 104, 11.
Frank, J. H., § 182, 15.
Frankists, § 165, 17.
Franks, The, § 76, 9.
Frankfort, Synod of, § 91, 1; 92, 1.
” Concordat of, § 110, 9, 14.
” Parliament of, § 189, 4.
” Recess of, § 141, 11.
” Troubles of, § 134, 3.
_Fratres de communi vita_, § 112, 9.
” _minores_, § 98, 3.
” _pontifices_, § 98, 9.
” _praedicatores_, § 98, 5.
_Fraticelli_, § 112, 2.
Fredigis, § 90, 4.
Frederick I., Barbarossa, § 96, 14, 15; 94, 3.
” II., Emperor, § 94, 5; 96, 20; 97, 2; 99, 3; 109, 2.
” III., Emperor, § 110, 9.
” III., of Austin, § 110, 3.
” I., of Prussia, § 169, 1.
” II., “ § 165, 9; 171, 4.
” I., of Denmark, § 139, 2.
” IV., “ § 167, 9.
” of Palatinate, § 153, 3.
” Aug. the Strong, § 153, 1.
” the Wise, § 122, 3; 123, 9.
” William, the Great Elector, § 154, 4.
” William II., § 171, 5.
” ” III., § 171, 5; 172, 3; 177, 1; 193.
” ” IV., § 177, 2; 193.
Freemasons, § 171, 2; 104, 13.
Free-will Baptists, § 162, 3; 208, 1.
Free-thinkers, § 164, 2; 171, 2.
Freiligrath, § 174, 5.
Fresenius, § 167, 8.
Freylinghausen, § 167, 6-8.
Fricke, § 182, 21.
Fridolin, § 77, 7; 78, 1.
Friedewalt, Convention of, § 126, 6.
Friedrich, John, § 190, 1; 191, 7.
Fries, § 174, 1.
Frisians, § 78, 3.
Frith, § 139, 4.
Frithigern, § 76, 1.
Fritzlar, § 78, 4.
Fritzsche, § 183, 3.
Frobenius, § 120, 6.
Frohschammer, § 191, 6.
Froment, § 138, 1.
Fronto, § 23.
Frumentius, § 64, 1.
Fry, Elizabeth, § 183, 1.
Fugue, Musical, § 115, 8.
Fulbert of Chartres, § 101, 1.
Fulco, Canonist, § 102, 1.
” of Neuilly, § 104, 1.
Fulda, § 78, 5; 151, 2.
Fulgentius, Ferr., § 47, 20.
” of Ruspe, § 47, 20.
Gabler, Andr., § 182, 6.
” Th. A., § 171, 5.
Gabriel, Didymus, § 124, 1.
Galen, § 23.
Galerius, § 22, 6.
Galileo, § 156, 4.
Gall, St., § 130, 4, 8.
Galle, Peter, § 139, 1.
Gallienus, § 22, 5.
Gallican Church, § 156, 3; 203.
Gallizin, Am. v., § 172, 2.
Gallus, St., § 178.
” Emperor, § 22, 5.
Ganganelli, § 165, 8.
Gangra, Synod of, § 44, 7; 45, 2.
Gardiner, Allen, § 184, 2.
” Bishop, § 139, 4, 5.
Garibaldi, § 185, 3.
Garve, § 170, 4.
Gasparin, § 203, 4.
Gannilo, § 101, 3.
Gauzbert, § 81, 1.
Gavazzi, § 204, 4.
Gebhardt of Eichstedt [Eichstadt], § 96, 5.
” ” Cologne, § 137, 7.
” ” Salzburg, § 97, 2.
Gedike, § 154, 3.
Gedimin, § 93, 14.
Geibel, § 174, 6.
Geier, § 159, 4.
Geiler of Kaisersb., § 115, 2, 11.
Geisa, § 93, 8.
Geismar, § 78, 4.
Geissel, § 194, 1.
Gelasius, I., § 46, 8; 47, 22; 59, 6.
” II., § 96, 11.
Gelimar, § 76, 3.
Gellert, § 171, 11; 172, 1.
Genesis, The little, § 32, 2.
Genesius, § 71, 1.
Geneva, § 138; 199, 1, 2, 5.
Genghis-Khan, § 72, 1.
Gennadius, § 47, 16; 48, 3.
” Patr., § 68, 5; 67, 7.
Genseric, § 76, 3.
Gentile Christians, § 18.
Gentilis, § 148, 3.
Gentilly, Synod of, § 91, 2; 92, 1.
_Genuflectentes_, § 35, 1.
George Acyndynos [Acindynos], § 69, 1.
” of Brandenburg, § 127, 3; 132, 6.
” of Saxony, § 122, 4; 126, 5; 128; 134, 2.
” Bishop of the Arabs, § 72, 2.
” of Trebizond, § 68, 2.
Gerbert, § 96, 2; 100, 2.
Gereuth, § 188, 6.
Gerhard Groot, § 112, 9.
” John, § 159, 4; 160, 1.
” Segarelli, § 108, 8.
” Zerbolt, § 112, 9.
Gerhardt, Paul, § 154, 4; 160, 4.
Gerike, P., § 139, 18.
Gerlach, L. v., § 175, 1; 176, 1.
” Otto v., § 181, 4.
” Stephen, § 139, 26.
St. Germains, Peace of, § 139, 15.
German Empire, § 192; 197.
” Catholics, § 187, 6.
Germany, Young, § 174, 5.
Germanus, Patr., § 66, 1.
Gerson, § 110, 6, 7; 112, 6; 113, 3; 118, 4; 119, 5.
Gertrude the Great, § 107, 1.
” of Hackeborn, § 107, 1.
Gesenius, W., § 182, 3.
” Just., § 160, 3.
Gewilib of Mainz, § 78, 4.
Geysa, § 93, 2.
Gfrörer, § 5, 4; 175, 7.
Ghazali, § 103, 1.
Ghent, Pacific. of, § 139, 12.
Ghetto, § 95, 3; 185, 1.
Ghiberti, § 115, 13.
Gichtel, § 163, 9.
Gieseler, § 5, 4.
Giessen, University of, § 154, 1; 196, 1, 5.
Gil, Juan, § 139, 21.
Gilbertines, § 98, 2.
Gilbertus Porretanus, § 102, 3.
Gildas, § 90, 8.
Giotto, § 115, 13.
Gisela, § 93, 8.
Gladstone, § 202, 10.
Glass, Painting on, § 104, 14; 174, 9.
Glassius, § 159, 4.
γλωσσαῖς λαλεῖν, § 17, 1.
Gnesen, Archbishopric of, § 93, 2.
Gnosimachians, § 62, 3.
Gnosticism, § 18, 3; 26-28.
Goar, St., § 78, 3.
Gobat, Bishop, § 184, 8, 9.
Gobel, § 165, 15.
Goch, John of, § 119, 10.
God, Friends of, § 116, 4.
Godfrey of Bouillon, § 94, 1.
” ” Strassburg, § 105, 6.
Goethe, § 171, 11.
Goetze, § 171, 8.
Gomarus, § 161, 2.
Gonzago, Cardinal, § 149, 2.
Gonzalo of Berceo, § 105, 6.
Good Friday, § 56, 4.
Goodwin, § 161, 6.
Gordianus, § 22, 4.
Görg, Junker, § 123, 8.
Gorm the Old, § 93, 2.
Görres, Jos., § 174, 4; 181, 1; 5, 6.
Göschel, § 179, 1, 2; 182, 6, 15.
Gossler, § 193, 6; 197, 11.
Gossner, § 187, 2; 184, 1.
Gothic Architecture, § 104, 12.
Goths, § 76.
Gotter, § 167, 6.
Gottschalk, Prince of Wends, § 93, 9.
” Monk, § 91, 5, 6.
Goudimel, § 143, 2; 149, 15.
Grabau, § 208, 2.
Grabow, § 210, 10.
Graf, § 182, 18.
_Graffiti_, § 38, 1; 39, 5.
γράμματα τετυπωμένα, § 34, 6.
Grammont, Order of, § 98, 2.
Grant, § 184, 9.
Granvella, § 135, 1, 2, 3.
Gratian, Emperor, § 42, 4.
” Canonist, § 99, 5; 104, 4.
Gratius Ortuinus, § 120, 5.
Graumann, § 142, 3.
Grebel, § 130, 5.
Greece, § 207.
Greeks, United, § 151; 206, 2.
Green, § 202, 3.
Greenland, § 93, 1; 167, 9; 184, 2.
Gregentius, § 48, 3.
Gregoire, Bishop, § 165, 15.
Gregory I., § 46, 10; 47, 22; 57, 4; 58, 3; 59, 5, 6, 9; 61, 4;
76, 8; 77, 4.
Gregory II., III., § 66, 1; 78, 4; 82, 1.
” IV., § 82, 4.
” V., § 96, 2.
” VI., § 96, 4.
” VII., § 96, 7-9; 94; 101, 2.
” VIII., § 96, 16; 94, 3.
” IX., § 96, 19; 99, 4; 109, 2.
” X., § 96, 21; 67, 4.
” XI., § 110, 5; 114, 4; 117, 2.
” XII., § 110, 6, 7.
” XIII., § 139, 17; 149, 3, 4, 17.
” XIV., § 149, 3.
” XV., § 156, 1, 4, 5.
” XVI., § 185, 1.
” Abulfarajus, § 72, 2.
” Acindynos, § 69, 2.
” of Constantinople, § 207, 1.
” of Heimburg, § 118, 5.
” Illuminator, § 64, 3.
” Palamas, § 69, 2.
” Scholaris, § 68, 5.
” Thaumaturgus, § 31, 6.
” Nazianzen, § 47, 4; 48, 5, 8; 59, 4.
” of Nyssa, § 47, 4.
” of Tours, § 90, 2.
” of Utrecht, § 78, 3.
Gregorian Chant, § 59, 3.
Gretna-Green, § 202, 6.
Grévy, § 203, 5.
Grey, Lady Jane, § 139, 5.
Griesbach, § 171, 7.
Groot, Gerh., § 112, 9.
Gropper, § 135, 3, 7.
Grosseteste, § 97, 4.
Grotius, § 153, 7; 161, 2, 6, 7.
Gruber, § 170, 1, 2.
Gruet, Jac., § 138, 4.
Grundtvig, § 201, 1.
Grunthler, § 139, 24.
Grynäus, § 133, 8.
Gualbertus, § 98, 1.
Guardian, § 98, 5.
Guatemala, § 209, 2.
Guelphs, § 96, 7.
Guericke, § 5, 5; 176, 1; 177, 2; 182, 13.
Guerin, § 98, 2.
Guevara, § 209, 2.
Guiana, § 184, 2.
Guibert, Archbishop, § 203, 5.
” of Nogent, § 101, 1.
Guido of Arezzo, § 104, 11.
” de Castello, § 102, 2; 108, 7.
” of Siena, § 104, 9, 14.
Guigo, § 98, 2.
Guise, Dukes of, § 139, 13-17.
Guizot, § 185, 3; 203, 2, 8.
Gundiberge, § 76, 8.
Gundioch, § 75, 5.
Gundobald, § 76, 5.
Gundulf, § 108, 2.
Gunpowder Plot, § 153, 6.
Gunthamund, § 76, 3.
Gunther of Cologne, § 82, 7.
Günther, Ant., § 191, 3.
” Cyriacus, § 160, 4.
Günzburg, Eberlin of, § 125, 1.
Gury, § 191, 9.
Gustavus Adolphus, § 153, 2; 160, 7.
” ” Society, § 178, 1.
Gützlaf, § 184, 6.
Guyon, § 157, 3.
Gylas, § 93, 8.
Gyrovagi, § 44, 7.
Haag, Pastor, § 196, 3.
Haas, Jos., § 210, 2.
” Charles, § 175, 7.
Haco the Good, § 93, 4.
Hadrian, Emperor, § 28, 3; 25; 39, 6.
” I., § 66, 3; 82, 2; 91, 1.
” II., § 67, 1; 79, 2; 82, 7; 83, 2.
” III., § 82, 8.
” IV., § 96, 14.
” V., § 96, 22.
” VI., § 149, 1; 126, 1.
Hagenau, § 135, 2.
Hagenbach, § 182, 9; 5, 5.
Hahn, Aug., § 176, 1.
” Michael, § 172, 3.
” Missionary, § 184, 3.
Hahn-Hahn, Ida, § 175, 7.
Hakem, § 95, 2.
Haldane, § 199, 5.
Haldanites, § 170, 6.
Halle, University of, § 167, 1.
Haller, Alb., § 171, 8.
” Berth., § 130, 4.
” L. v., § 175, 7.
Hamann, § 171, 11.
Hamburg, Bishopric, § 80, 1.
Hamilton, Patrick, § 139, 8.
Hammerschmidt, § 160, 5.
Handel, § 167, 7.
Haneberg, § 189, 4; 197, 6.
Hanne, Dr., § 180, 3.
Hannington, Bishop, § 184, 4.
Hanover, § 193, 8; 194, 3.
Hans, Brother, § 115, 11.
Harald the Apostate, § 80.
” Blaatand, § 93, 2.
Hardenberg, § 144, 2.
Hard-Shell Baptists, § 170, 6.
Hardouin, § 165, 11.
Hare, § 211, 17.
Harless, § 182, 13; 195, 4.
Harmonites, § 211, 6.
Harmonius, § 27, 5.
Harms, Claus, § 176, 1.
” Louis, § 184, 1.
Harnack, Th., § 182, 13.
Hartmann, E. v., § 174, 2.
Hase, § 5, 4; 176, 1; 182, 5.
Hasse [Hase], § 5, 5.
Hassun, § 207, 4.
Hattemists, § 170, 8.
Hatto of Reichenau, § 90, 3.
” I. of Mainz, § 83, 3.
Hatty-Humayun, § 207.
Hätzer, § 130, 5; 148, 1.
Haug, § 170, 1.
Hauge, § 201, 3.
Hauser, § 188, 5.
Hausmann, Nich., § 133, 4.
Hausrath, § 182, 17.
Haydn, § 174, 10.
Haymo of Halberstadt, § 90, 5.
Hebel, § 171, 11.
Heber, Bishop, § 184, 5.
Hebræans, Sect of, § 170, 8.
Hebrews, Gospel of the, § 32, 4.
Heddo of Strassburg, § 84, 2.
Hedinger, § 170, 1.
Hedio, § 130, 3.
Hedwig of Poland, § 93, 14.
” St. of Silesia, § 105, 3.
Heermann, § 160, 3.
Hefele, § 189, 3, 4; 191, 7.
Hefter, § 184, 8.
Hegel, § 174, 1.
Hegesippus, § 31, 7.
Hegius, § 120, 3.
Heidanus, § 161, 5, 7.
Heidegger, § 161, 3.
Heidelberg Catechism, § 144, 1.
” University, § 120, 3.
Heine, § 174, 5.
Heinrichs, § 171, 5.
Hejira, § 65.
Held, H., § 159, 3.
” Imperial Orator, § 134, 2.
Helding, § 136, 5.
Helena, Empress, § 57, 5, 6.
” of Russia, § 73, 4.
Heliand, § 89, 3.
Hell, § 106, 3.
Hellenists, § 10, 1.
Helmstedt [Helmstadt], § 159, 2.
Heloise, § 102, 1.
Helvetius, § 165, 12.
Helvidius, § 62, 2.
Hemero-baptists, § 25, 1.
Hemmerlin, § 118, 5.
Hemming of Upsala, § 93, 11.
” Professor, § 141, 10.
Hengstenberg, § 176, 1; 182, 4.
Henke, § 5, 3; 171, 7.
Henoticon, § 52, 2.
Henricians, § 108, 7.
Henry I., Emperor, § 93, 2; 96, 1.
” II., § 96, 4.
” III., § 96, 4; 97, 1.
” IV., § 96, 6.
” V., § 96, 11 ff.
” VI., § 96, 16.
” VII., § 110, 2.
” I. of England, § 96, 12.
” II. ” ” § 96, 16; 94, 3.
” VIII. ” § 125, 3; 139, 4, 7, 8.
” II. of France, § 139, 13.
” III. ” ” § 139, 17, 18.
” IV. ” ” § 139, 17.
” of Brunswick, § 126, 5; 135, 6, 10.
” of Saxony, § 134, 4.
” _de Hessia_, § 118, 5.
” of Langenstein, § 118, 5.
” of Lausanne, § 108, 7.
” of Nördlingen, § 114, 6.
” of Upsala, § 93, 11.
” the Lion, § 93, 9.
” Wendish Prince, § 93, 9.
” of Zütphen, § 128, 1.
Hensel, Louise, § 174, 6.
Heppe, § 170, 3; 182, 16.
Heracleon, § 27, 5.
Heraclius, § 52, 8; 57, 5; 64, 2.
Herbart, § 174, 2.
Herder, § 171, 11.
Heretic’s Baptism, § 35, 5.
Hergenröther, § 5, 6; 191, 7.
Heriger, § 80, 1.
Hermann von Fritzlar, § 114.
” Premonstrat., § 95, 3.
” of Cologne, § 133, 5.
” von Wied, § 133, 5; 135, 7; 136, 2.
Hermannsburg, § 184, 1; 193, 8.
Hermas, § 30, 4.
Hermes, § 191, 1.
Hermias, § 30, 10.
Hermogenes, § 27, 13.
Herrero de Mora, § 205, 5.
Herrmann, § 182, 20.
Herrnhut, § 168; 169, 3.
Hervæus, § 102, 8.
Herzog, Old Catholic Bishop, § 190, 3; 199, 3.
” Prelate, § 197, 10, 11.
” J. J., § 5, 5.
Hess, J. Jac., § 171, 6.
Hesse, § 127, 2.
” Darmstadt, § 196, 4; 197, 15.
” Cassel, § 154, 1; 193, 9; 194, 4.
Hesshus, § 144, 1, 2.
Hesychasts, § 69, 2.
_Hetæræ_, § 22, 2.
Hettinger, § 191, 6.
Heubner, § 184, 5.
Heumann, § 167, 4.
Hexapla, § 31, 5.
Hibbert Trust, § 202, 4.
Hicks, § 211, 3.
Hieracas, § 39, 3.
Hierocles, § 23, 3.
Hieronomites, § 112, 8.
High-Churchmen, § 202, 1.
Hilarion, § 44, 3.
Hilary of Arles, § 46, 7.
” ” Poitiers, § 47, 14.
Hildebert of Tours, § 101, 1; 104, 4, 10.
Hildebrand, § 96, 4 ff.; 101, 2.
Hildegard, § 97; 107, 1; 109.
Hilderic, § 76, 9.
Hilduin, § 90, 8.
Hilgenfeld, § 182, 7.
Hilgers, § 191, 6.
Hiller, § 167, 6.
Hinemar of Laon, § 83, 2.
” ” Rheims, § 82, 7; 83, 2; 87, 3; 90, 5; 91, 5.
Hippolytus, § 31, 3; 33, 5; 40, 2; 41, 1.
Hirschberger Bible, § 167, 8.
Hirscher, § 187, 3; 191, 6.
Hitzig, § 182, 3.
Hobbes, § 164, 3.
Hoe v. Hoenegg, § 154, 4; 159, 1.
Hofacker, § 211, 4.
Hoffmann, Christ., § 211, 8.
” Fr., § 191, 2.
” G. W., § 196, 5.
” Melch., § 147, 1.
” Chr. K. v., § 182, 14.
” Dan., § 141, 15.
Hofmeister, Seb., § 130, 4.
Hofstede de Groot, § 200, 2.
Hohenlohe, § 188, 2.
” Card., § 189, 1; 197, 7.
Holbach, § 165, 12.
Holbein, § 115, 6, 13; 113, 5; 142, 2.
Holland, § 165, 7; 200, 2, 3.
Hollaz, § 167, 4, 8.
Holtzmann, § 182, 17.
Homberg, Synod of, § 127, 2.
Homoians, § 50, 3.
Homoiousians, § 50, 3.
Homologoumena, § 36, 8.
Homoousians, § 33, 1; 50, 1.
Hönigern, § 177, 2.
Honorius, Emperor, § 42, 4; 53, 4.
” I., § 46, 11; 52, 8, 9.
” II., § 96, 13.
” III., § 96, 19.
” IV., § 96, 22.
Honter, Jac., § 139, 20.
Hontheim, § 165, 10.
Hoogstraten, § 120, 4; 122, 3.
Hooper, § 139, 5.
Hormisdas of Rome, § 46, 8; 52, 5, 6.
Horsley, § 171, 1.
Hosius, Bishop, § 50, 1, 2, 3.
” Cardinal, § 139, 18.
Hospinian, § 161, 7.
Hospital Brothers, § 98, 8.
Hossbach, § 180, 4.
Host, § 104, 2.
Höting, § 197, 10.
Hottinger, § 5, 2; 161, 6.
Howard, Catherine, § 139, 4.
Huber, J., § 189, 1; 190, 1; 191, 7.
” Sam., § 141, 14.
Hubmeier, § 130, 5; 147, 3.
Huebald, § 104, 11.
Huetius, § 158, 1.
Hug, § 191, 8.
Hugh Capet, § 96, 2.
Huguenots, § 139, 14 ff.; 153, 4; 165, 5.
Hugo a St. Caro, § 103, 9.
” of St. Victor, § 102, 4; 104, 2, 4.
_Hugo de Payens_, § 98, 8.
Hülsemann, § 153, 7; 159, 2.
Humanists, § 120.
Humbert, § 67, 3; 101, 2.
Humboldt, Alex. v., § 174, 3.
Hume, § 171, 1.
Humiliates, § 98, 7; 101, 2.
Hundeshagen, § 196, 3.
Hungary, § 93, 8; 139, 20; 153, 3; 198, 6.
Hunneric, § 76, 3; 54, 1.
Hunnius, Ægid. [Ægidius], § 141, 13.
” Nich., § 159, 5.
Huntingdon, Lady, § 169, 3.
Hupfeld, § 182, 3; 194, 4.
Hurter, § 175, 1.
Husig, § 64, 3.
Huss, § 113, 7; 119, 3-6.
Hutten, Ulr. v., § 120, 2, 3; 122, 4.
Hy, § 77, 2.
Hyacinth, § 93, 13.
Hylists, Anc. Materialists, § 26, 2.
Hymn Music, § 142, 3; 171, 1; 180, 1.
Hymnology, § 17, 7; 36, 10; 59, 4; 89, 2; 104, 10; 115, 7.
Hymns, Catholic, § 149, 15.
” Protestant, § 142, 3; 143, 2; 160, 3; 162, 6; 167, 6;
175, 10.
Hypatia, § 42, 4.
Hyperius, § 143, 5; 154, 1.
Hypophonic singing, § 59, 5.
Hypostasianism, § 33, 1.
Hypsistarians, § 42, 6.
Hystaspes, § 32, 1.
Iamblichus, § 24, 2.
Ibas, § 47, 13; 52, 3.
Iberians, § 64, 4.
Icarians, § 212, 3.
Iceland, § 93, 5; 139, 2.
Idacius, § 54, 2.
Iglesia Española, § 205, 4.
Ignatius of Antioch, § 22, 2; 30, 5; 34, 1, 7.
” Patr. of Constant., § 67, 1.
Ignatius Loyola, § 149, 8.
_Ignorantins_, § 165, 2.
Ijejasu, § 150, 2; 156, 11.
Ildefonsus, § 90, 2, 9.
Illuminati, § 165, 11.
Illyria, § 46, 5, 9.
Images, § 38, 4.
” Controversy about, § 66; 92, 1.
Image-worship, § 57, 4; 89, 4.
Immaculate Conception, § 104, 7; 112, 4; 113, 2; 149, 13;
156, 6; 185, 2.
Immanuel Synod, § 177, 3.
Immunity, § 84, 1.
_Impostores tres_, § 148, 4.
Incense, § 59, 8.
_Inclusi_, § 85, 6.
_In Cœna Domini_, § 117, 3.
_In commendam_, § 85, 5; 110, 15.
Independents, § 143, 4; 155, 1; 162, 1.
_Index prohibitorius_, § 149, 14.
Indulgences, § 106, 2; 117, 1.
_Ineffabilis_, § 185, 2.
_In eminenti_, § 157, 5.
Infallibility, § 96, 23; 110, 14; 149, 4; 165, 8; 189, 3.
Infant Baptism, § 35, 3; 58, 1.
Infralapsarianism, § 161, 1.
_Infula_, § 84, 1.
Inge, § 93, 3.
Ingolstadt, § 120, 3.
_Innocentum festum_, § 57, 1; 105, 2.
Innocent I., § 46, 5; 51, 3; 53, 4; 61, 2, 3.
” II., § 96, 13.
” III., § 96, 17, 18; 94, 4; 102, 9; 108, 10; 109, 1.
” IV., § 96, 20; 73, 6.
” V., § 96, 22.
” VI., § 110, 4, 5.
” VII., § 110, 6.
” VIII., § 110, 11; 115, 4.
” IX., § 149, 3.
” X., § 156, 1; 153, 2; 157, 5.
” XI., § 156, 1, 3; 157, 2.
” XII., § 156, 1, 3; 157, 3.
” XIII., § 165, 1.
_In partibus infidelium_, § 97, 3.
Inquisition, § 109, 2; 117, 2; 139, 22; 149, 2; 151; 156, 3.
Inspiration, Doctrine of, § 36, 9.
_Insula sanctorum_, § 77, 1.
Intentionalism, § 149, 10.
Interdict, § 106, 1.
Interim, The Augsburg, § 136, 5, 6.
” ” Leipzig, § 136, 7.
” ” Regensburg, § 135, 3.
International, § 212, 4.
Interpreters, § 34, 3.
Investiture, § 45, 1; 84; 96, 7, 11, 12.
Iona, § 77, 2.
Ireland, § 77, 1; 139, 7; 153, 6; 202, 9.
Irenæus, § 31, 2; 33, 9; 34, 8; 40, 2.
Irene, § 66, 3.
Irish Massacre, § 153, 6.
Irvingites, § 211, 10.
Isaac, the Great, § 64, 3.
” of Antioch, § 48, 7.
Isabella of Castile, § 95, 2; 117, 2; 118, 7.
” II. of Spain, § 205, 2.
Isenberg, § 184, 9.
Isidore the Gnostic, § 28, 2.
” of Pelusium, § 47, 6; 44, 3.
” the Presbyter, § 51, 2, 3.
” Russ. Metropol., § 73.
” of Seville, § 90, 2.
Islam, § 65; 81; 95.
Issy, Conference of, § 157, 3.
_Itala_, § 36, 8.
Italy, § 139, 22; 187, 7; 204.
Ithacius, § 54, 2.
Ivo of Chartres, § 99, 5.
Jablonsky, § 168, 3.
Jacob el Baradai, § 52, 7.
” Basilicus, § 139, 26.
” a Benedictis, § 104, 10.
” of Brescia, § 112, 3.
” ben Chajim, § 120, 8.
” the Conqueror, § 95.
” of Edessa, § 47, 13.
” ” Harkh, § 71, 2.
” ” Jüterbegk [Jüterbock], § 118, 5.
” ” Maerlant, § 105, 5.
” ” Marchia, § 112, 4.
” ” Misa, § 119, 7.
” ” Nisibis, § 47, 13.
” ” Sarug, § 48, 7.
Jacobi, § 171, 10.
Jacobini, § 197, 9, 12.
Jacobites, § 52, 7; 72, 2.
Jacopone da Todi, § 104, 10.
Jaldabaoth, § 27, 7.
James the Just, § 16, 3.
” V. of Scotland, § 139, 8.
” I. of England, § 117, 4; 139, 11; 153, 6; 155, 1.
” II. of England, § 153, 6; 155, 3.
” III. of Baden, § 153, 1.
” Molay, § 112, 7.
” a Voragine, § 104, 8.
Jansen, Cornel., § 157, 5.
Jansenists, § 157, 5; 165, 6.
Januarius, St., § 188, 10.
Janus, § 189, 1.
Japan, § 150, 2; 156, 11; 184, 6; 186, 7.
Jaroslaw I., § 72, 4.
” II., § 73, 6.
Jason and Papiscus, § 30, 8.
Java, § 184, 5.
Jay, le, § 158, 1.
Jazelich, § 52, 3.
Jena, Univ. of, § 141, 1, 6.
Jeremias II., § 73, 4; 139, 26.
Jerome, § 17, 6; 33, 9; 47, 16; 48, 1; 51, 2; 53, 4; 59, 3.
” of Prague, § 119, 4, 5.
Jerusalem, Bishopric, § 184, 8.
” Church of the New, § 170, 4.
Jesuates, § 112, 8.
Jesuits, § 149, 8-12; 150; 151; 156, 2-9; 157, 2, 5; 165, 7-9;
186, 1; 197, 4; 199, 1.
Jewish Christians, § 18; 28; 211, 9.
” Missions, § 167, 9; 184, 8.
Jews in Middle Ages, § 90, 9; 95, 3.
Joachim of Floris, § 108, 5.
” ” Brandenburg, § 128, 1; 134, 5.
” II. of Brandenburg, § 134, 5; 136, 5.
Joan of Arc, § 116, 2.
Joanna, Popess, § 82, 6.
” of Valois, § 112, 8.
John I., Pope, § 46, 8.
” VIII. and IX., § 82, 8; 79, 2; 67, 1.
” X., XII., XIII., § 96, 1.
” XIV., XV., XVI., § 96, 2.
” XVII., XVIII., § 96, 4.
” XIX., § 96, 4; 57, 1.
” XXI., § 96, 22; 82, 6.
” XXII., § 110, 3; 112, 2; 113, 1; 114, 1.
” XXIII., § 110, 7; 119, 4.
” the Constant, § 124, 5.
” Frederick, the Magnanimous, § 133, 2; 136, 3; 137, 3.
” Lackland, § 96, 18.
” VII. of Portugal, § 205, 4.
” Sigismund, § 154, 3.
” the Apostle, § 16, 2.
” of Antioch, § 52, 3.
” Beccos [Beccus], § 67, 3.
” of Capistrano, § 112, 3.
” ” Climacus, § 47, 12.
” ” the Cross, § 149, 6, 16.
” ” Damascus, § 66, 1; 68, 2-5.
” ” Ephesus, § 5, 1.
” ” God, § 149, 7.
” ” Hagen, § 112, 1.
” ” Jandun, § 118, 1.
” Jejunator, § 46, 10; 61, 1.
” of Leyden, § 133, 6.
” de Monte Corvino, § 93, 15.
” Moschus, § 47, 12.
” of Nepomuc, § 116, 1.
” Ozniensis, § 72, 2.
” V., Paläologus, § 67, 5.
” VII., ” § 67, 6.
” of Paris, § 118, 1.
” ” Parma, § 108, 5.
” Philoponus, § 47, 11.
” the Presbyter, § 16, 3; 30, 6.
” Prester, § 72, 4.
” of Ravenna, § 83, 3.
” ” Salisbury, § 102, 9.
” Scholasticus, § 43, 3.
” Scotus Erigena, § 90, 7; 91, 5.
” Talaja, § 52, 5.
” of Trani, § 67, 3.
” ” Turrecremata, § 110, 15.
” Tzimiskes [Tzimisces], § 71, 1.
” of Wesel, § 119, 10.
John, St., Festival of, § 57, 1.
” Disciples of, § 25, 1.
” Knights of, § 98, 8.
Jonas of Bobbio, § 77, 3.
” ” Orleans, § 90, 4; 92, 2.
” Justus, § 123, 7; 134, 5; 142, 2.
Jones, § 182, 3.
Jordanes, § 90, 8.
Joris, David, § 148, 1.
Joseph, Patr., § 67, 4; 70, 1.
” I., Emperor, § 165, 1.
” II., § 165, 10; 186, 2.
Josephus, § 10, 2; 13, 2.
Jovi, § 80, 1.
Jovinian, § 62, 2.
Juarez, § 209, 1.
Jubilee Year, § 117, 1.
Jubilees, Book of, § 32, 2.
_Jubili_, § 85, 2.
Judä, Leo, § 130, 2; 143, 5.
Judson, § 184, 5.
Julia Mammæa, § 22, 4; 31, 5.
Juliana, § 104, 7.
Julianists, § 52, 7.
Julian, Emperor, § 42, 3, 5; 63, 1.
” of Eclanum, § 47, 21; 53, 4.
” ” Toledo, § 90, 2, 9.
” St., § 188, 8.
July Law, Pruss., § 197, 10, 11.
Julius I., § 46, 3; 50, 2.
” II., § 110, 13.
” III., § 149, 2.
” Africanus, § 31, 8.
Jumpers, § 170, 7.
Jung-Stillung, § 171, 11.
Junilius, § 48, 1.
Junius, Fr., § 143, 5.
Jurieu, § 161, 7.
_Jus circa sacra_, § 43, 1; 167, 3.
” _primarum prec._, § 165, 1.
” _regaliæ_, § 156, 1.
” _spoliorum_, § 110, 15.
Justin I., § 52, 5.
” Martyr, § 30, 9; 33, 9; 36, 3, 7.
” the Gnostic, § 27, 6.
Justina, St., § 48, 8.
” Empress, § 50, 4.
Justinian I., § 42, 4; 45, 2; 46, 9; 52, 6.
” II., § 46, 11.
Juvenal of Jerusalem, § 53, 3.
Juvencus, § 48, 6.
Kähler, § 176, 3.
Kahnis, § 182, 15.
Kaiser, § 128, 1.
Kaiserwerth, § 183, 1.
Kamehameha, § 184, 7.
Kamel, Sultan, § 94, 4, 5.
Kanitz, § 176, 3.
Kant, § 171, 10.
Karaites, § 72, 1.
Kardec, § 211, 17.
Karg, Controversy of, § 141, 3.
Katerkamp, § 5, 6.
Kaulen, § 191, 8.
Keil, § 182, 13.
Keim, § 182, 17.
Keller, Bishop, § 196, 6.
Kellner, § 177, 2.
Kempen, Stephen, § 125, 1.
Kempis, Thomas à, § 112, 9; 114, 7.
Kenrick, § 189, 3.
Kerner, Just., § 176, 2.
Kessler, § 124, 1; 130, 4.
Ketteler, § 175, 2; 187, 3; 189, 3; 196, 1-4; 197, 1, 4, 15.
Kettler, § 139, 3.
Kierkegaard, § 201, 1.
Kiev, § 73, 4.
Kilian, § 78, 2.
Kings, § 160, 4.
” the Three Holy, § 56, 5.
Klebitz, § 144, 1.
Klee, § 191, 6.
Kleuker, § 171, 8.
Kleutzen, § 191, 9.
Kliefoth, § 181, 3; 182, 14; 194, 6.
Klopstock, § 171, 11.
Knapp, A., § 181, 1.
” G. Ch., § 171, 8.
Knights, Teutonic, § 98, 8; 93, 13.
” of St. John, § 98, 8.
Knox, § 139, 9, 11.
Knutzen, § 164, 4.
Kohlbrügge, § 179, 3.
Kohler, § 170, 4.
Köllner, § 5, 5.
Königsberg, Relig. Process., § 176, 3.
Köppen, § 171, 8.
Körner, § 141, 12.
Kornthal, § 196, 5.
Krafft, § 195, 2.
Kraus, Xav., § 5, 6.
Krüdener, § 176, 2; 199, 5.
Krummacher, G. D., § 179, 3.
” F. W., § 178, 2.
Kübel, § 196, 2.
Kublai-Khan, § 93, 15.
Kuenen, § 182, 20.
Kuhn, § 191, 6.
“Kulturkampf,” German, § 197.
” Belgian, § 200, 5.
” French, § 203, 6.
Kuyper, § 200, 2.
Labadie, § 163, 7, 8.
Labarum, § 22, 7.
Labrador, § 184, 2.
Labyrinth, The Little, § 31, 3.
Lachat, § 199, 3.
Lacordaire, § 187, 4; 188, 1.
Lactantius, § 31, 12; 33, 9.
Ladislaus, St., § 93, 2.
” of Naples, § 110, 7.
Laforce, § 183, 1.
Lainez, § 149, 8.
Laity, § 34, 4.
Lamartine, § 174, 7.
Lambert le Begue [Bèghe], § 98, 7.
” of Avignon, § 127, 2; 130, 2.
Lambeth Articles, § 143, 5.
Lamennais, § 187, 4; 188, 1.
Lämmer, § 175, 2.
Lammists, § 163, 1.
Lampe, § 169, 2, 6.
Lancelot, § 159, 5.
Landulf, § 97, 5.
Lanfranc, § 96, 8; 101, 1, 2.
Lang, H., § 199, 4.
Lange, Joach., § 167, 1, 4.
” J. Pet., § 182, 9.
Langen, Rud. v., § 120, 3.
Laplace, § 161, 2.
Lapland, § 93, 11; 163, 4; 184, 2.
Lapsi, § 22, 5.
Lardner, § 171, 1.
Lasalle, § 165, 2; 212, 5.
Lasaulx, Am. v., § 188, 4.
Las Casas, § 150, 3.
Lasco, J. a, § 139, 18.
Lateran, § 110, 15.
” Synods I., § 52, 8; 96, 11.
” ” II., § 96, 13.
” ” III., § 96, 15.
” ” IV., § 96, 18; 101, 2; 104, 3-5; 106, 1; 109, 2.
Latimer, § 139, 5.
Latitudinarians, § 161, 3.
Latter-day Saints, § 211, 10, 12-14.
Laud, § 155, 1.
Laurence, Martyr, § 22, 5.
” Bishop, § 46, 8.
” Archbishop, § 77, 4.
Laurentius Valla, § 120, 1.
Lausanne, § 196, 5.
Lauterbach, § 129, 1.
Lavater, § 171, 11.
Lay Abbots, § 85, 5.
” Brethren, § 98.
Lazarists, § 156, 8.
Leade, Jane, § 163, 9.
Leander of Seville, § 76, 2; 90, 2.
Lectionaries, § 33; 59, 3.
Ledochowski, § 197, 3, 6, 7, 12.
Lee, Anna, § 170, 7.
” Bishop, § 211, 14.
Lefebvre, § 188, 4.
Legates, § 96, 23.
_Legenda aurea_, § 104, 8.
Legends, § 57, 1.
_Legio fulminatrix_, § 22, 3.
” _Thebaica_, § 22, 6.
Lehnin, Prophecy of, § 153, 8.
Leibnitz, § 153, 7; 160, 7; 164, 2.
Leidecker, § 161, 5.
Leidrad of Lyons, § 90, 3; 91, 1.
Leipzig Disputation, § 123, 4.
” Relig. Conference, § 154, 4.
Leland, § 169, 6; 171, 1.
Lenau, Nich. v., § 174, 6.
Lentulus, § 13, 2.
Leo I., the Great, § 45, 2; 46, 7; 47, 22; 52, 4; 54, 1, 2;
61, 1.
Leo II., § 46, 11.
” III., § 82, 3; 91, 2.
” IV., § 82, 5.
” VIII., § 96, 1.
” IX. § 67, 6; 96, 5.
” X., § 110, 14; 121, 1; 122, 2, 3; 194, 4.
” XI., § 149, 3.
” XII., § 185, 1.
” XIII., § 175, 2; 185, 5; 188, 8, 9; 191, 12; 197, 9;
200, 5; 203, 6.
Leo of Achrida, § 67, 3.
” the Armenian, § 66, 4.
” Chazarus, § 66, 3.
” the Isaurian, § 66, 1; 71, 1.
” the Philosopher, § 67, 2; 68, 1.
” the Thracian, § 52, 5.
” Henry, § 175, 1.
Leonardo da Vinci, § 115, 13.
Leonidas, § 22, 4.
_Leonistæ_, § 108, 10.
Leontius of Byzant., § 47, 12.
Leopardi, § 174, 7.
Leopold I., Emperor, § 153, 3, 7.
” of Tuscany, § 165, 9.
Leovigild, § 76, 2.
Leporius, § 52, 2.
Lessing, § 171, 6, 8, 11.
Lestines, Synod of, § 78, 5; 86, 2.
Lestrange, § 186, 2.
Leucius, § 32, 4, 5.
Levellers, § 162, 2.
Leyser, § 141, 14; 142, 6.
Libanius, § 42, 4.
_Libellatici_, § 22, 5.
_Libelli pacis_, § 39, 2.
_Liber confirmitat._, § 98, 3.
” _diurnus_, § 46, 11; 52, 9.
” _paschalis_, § 56, 3.
” _pontificalis_, § 90, 6.
Liberal Arts, § 90, 8.
Liberation Society, § 202.
Liberatus of Carthage, § 52, 6.
Liberius of Rome, § 46, 4; 50, 2, 3.
Libertins, § 146, 4.
_Libri Carolini_, § 92, 1.
_Licet ab initio_, § 139, 23.
Licinius, § 22, 7.
Lightfoot, § 161, 6.
Light, Friends of, § 176, 1.
Liguorians, § 165, 2; 186, 1.
Limborch, § 161, 7.
Limbus infantium, § 106, 3.
” patrum, § 106, 3.
_Limina apostt._, § 57, 6.
Linus, § 17, 1.
Linz, Peace of, § 153, 3.
Lippe, Princes’ Diet of, § 154, 2; 194, 5.
Lipsius, § 182, 19.
Liptinä, Synod of, § 78, 5; 86, 2.
Lisco, § 181, 4.
Litany, § 59, 9.
Lithuanians, § 93, 14.
_Litteræ formatæ_, § 34, 6.
Liturgical dress, etc., § 59, 7; 60, 3.
Liturgy, § 36, 1; 59, 6; 89, 1; 104, 1.
Liudger, § 78, 3.
Liutprand, § 82, 1.
Livingstone, § 184, 4.
Livinus, § 78, 3.
Livonia, § 93, 12; 139, 3; 153, 3; 168, 5; 206, 3.
Locke, § 164, 2.
Lodges, Free Masons’, § 104, 3.
Löhe, § 175, 1; 183, 1; 208, 2.
Lola Montez, § 195, 2.
Lollards, § 116, 3; 119, 1.
Lombardus [Lombard], § 102, 7.
Longobards, § 76, 8.
Lope de Vega, § 158, 3.
Loretto, § 115, 9.
Löscher, § 167, 1, 2, 4.
Louis the Bavarian, § 110, 3, 4.
” ” German, § 82, 5, 7.
” ” Pious, § 82, 4; 90, 1.
” II., Emperor, § 82, 5.
” VII. of France, § 94, 2.
” IX., the Saint, § 93, 15; 94, 6; 96, 21.
” XI., § 110, 13.
” XII., § 110, 13, 14.
” XIII., § 153, 4.
” XIV., § 153, 4; 156, 3; 157, 2, 3, 5.
” I. of Bavaria, § 195, 2.
” II. “ § 195, 3.
” V. of Hesse, § 154, 1.
” VI. of Palatinate, § 143, 6.
Lourdes, § 188, 14; 203, 5.
Lothair I., Emperor, § 82, 5.
” II., of Lothringia, § 82, 5, 7.
” III., the Saxon, § 96, 13.
Lotze, § 174, 2.
Low Churchmen, § 202, 1.
Loyola, § 149, 8.
Loyson, § 187, 8.
Lübeck, § 127, 4.
Lübker, § 174, 4.
Lucar, Cyr., § 152, 2.
Lucerne, § 199, 1.
Lucian, Martyr, § 31, 9.
” of Samosata, § 23, 1.
Lucidus, § 53, 5.
Lucifer of Calaris, § 47, 14; 50, 2, 8.
Luciferians, § 50, 8.
Lucilla, § 63, 1.
Lucius II., Pope, § 96, 13.
” III., § 96, 16.
Lucrezia Borzia, § 110, 10.
Ludmilla, § 79, 3; 93, 6.
Luis de Leon, § 149, 14, 15.
Luke of Prague, § 115, 7; 119, 8; 139, 19.
Lullus of Mainz, § 78, 7.
Lullus Raimund, § 93, 16; 103, 7.
Lüneburg, § 127, 3.
Luthardt, § 182, 14, 21; 194, 1.
Luther, § 122-135.
Lutherans, Separatists, Pruss., § 177, 2, 3.
Luther-Memorial, § 178, 1.
” Jubilee, § 175, 10.
Lütkemann Controversy, § 159, 1.
Lutz, Minister, § 195, 3; 197, 4.
Luxeuil, § 78, 1.
Lyons, Council of, § 67, 4; 96, 20, 21.
Lyra, Nich. v., § 113, 7.
Mabillon, § 158, 2.
Macarius the Elder, § 47, 7.
” Magnes, § 47, 6.
Maccabees, Fest. of, § 57, 1.
Macedonius, § 50, 5.
Macchiavelli, § 120, 1.
Maccovius, § 161, 7.
MacConochie, § 202, 3.
Macmahon, § 203, 5, 6.
Macrae, § 202, 8.
Macrianus, § 22, 5.
Macrina, § 47, 5.
Madagascar, § 184, 3.
Madiai, § 204, 3.
Maerlant, § 105, 5.
Magdeburg, § 127, 4; 137, 1.
_Magister historiarum_, § 105, 3.
” _sententiarum_, § 102, 4.
_Magna Charta_, § 96, 18.
Magnoald, § 78, 1.
Magnus the Good, § 93, 4.
” of Mecklenburg, § 134, 5.
” ” Upsala, § 139, 1.
Mai, Cardinal, § 191, 7.
Maid of Orleans, § 116, 2.
Maimbourg, § 158, 2.
Maimonides, § 103, 1.
Mainau Law, § 197, 11.
Maintenon, § 157, 3.
Mainz Cath. Union, § 186, 4; 197, 1.
Majorist Controversy, § 141, 6, 10.
Maistre, § 187, 9.
Malachi, Proph. of, § 149, 5.
Malakanians, § 166, 2.
Malan, § 199, 5.
Malchion, § 33, 8.
Maldonatus, § 149, 14.
Maltese, § 98, 8.
Mamertus, § 59, 9.
Mandæans, § 25, 1; 28, 2.
Mandeville, § 171, 1.
Manfred, § 96, 20.
Manichæans, § 29; 54, 1.
Manning, § 189, 3; 202, 2, 11.
Mansi, § 165, 15.
Mantua, Council of, § 96, 6.
” Congress of, § 110, 10.
Manuel Comnenus, § 69, 1.
Manzoni, § 174, 7.
Maphrian, § 52, 7.
Mara, § 13, 2.
Marburg Bible, § 170, 1.
” Church Order, § 127, 2.
” Colloquy, § 132, 4.
Marcellus of Ancyra, § 50, 2.
” II., § 149, 2.
Marcia, § 22, 3; 41, 1.
Marcian, § 52, 4.
Marcion, § 27, 11.
Marcionites, § 27, 12; 54, 1; 64, 3.
Marco Polo, § 93, 15.
Marcosians, § 27, 5.
Marcus Aurelius, § 22, 3.
” Eremita, § 47, 7.
” Eugenicus, § 67, 6; 68, 5.
Maresius, § 161, 3, 7.
Margaret of Navarre, § 120, 6; 146, 4.
Marheincke, § 182, 6.
Maria Theresa, § 165, 9.
Mariana, § 149, 10, 14.
Marinus, § 63, 1.
Mariolatry, § 57, 2; 104, 8.
Marius Mercator, § 47, 20.
” Victorinus, § 47, 14.
Marloratus, § 143, 3.
Marnix, Ph. v., § 139, 12.
Maronites, § 52, 8; 72, 3.
Marot, § 143, 2.
Marozia, § 96, 1.
Marriage, Christian, § 39, 1; 61, 2; 70, 2; 88, 3; 89, 4;
104, 6.
Marsden, § 184, 7.
Marsilius of Inghem, § 113, 3.
” ” Padua, § 118, 1.
Martensen, § 182, 10.
Martin I., § 46, 11; 52, 8.
” IV., § 96, 22.
” V., § 110, 6.
” of Braga, § 76, 4; 90, 2.
” ” Mainz, § 114, 4.
” ” Paderborn, § 175, 2; 189, 3; 197, 6.
” ” Tours, § 47, 14; 54, 2.
” St., § 165, 14.
Martyrs, § 22, 5.
” Acts of, § 32, 8.
” Veneration of, § 39, 5.
Martyrologies, § 57, 1; 90, 9.
Marx, § 212, 4.
Mary of England, § 139, 5.
” ” Guise, § 139, 8.
” ” Jesus, § 156, 5.
” ” Scotland, § 139, 6, 8, 10.
Maryland, § 208, 5.
Mass, Canon of, § 59, 6.
” Sacrifice of, § 36, 6; 58, 3; 88, 3.
Massacre, Irish, § 153, 6.
” of St. Bartholomew, § 139, 16.
” ” Stockholm, § 139, 1.
” ” Thorn, § 165, 4.
Massilians, § 53, 5.
Massillon, § 158, 2.
Mastricht, § 161, 7.
Matamoros, § 205, 4.
Maternus, Jul. Firm., § 47, 14.
” Pistorius, § 120, 2.
Mathesius, § 142, 2, 3.
Matilda, Margravine, § 96, 8, 10.
Matthias, Emperor, § 153, 2.
Matthys, Jan., § 147, 8, 9.
Maulbronn, Formula, § 141, 12.
” Conference, § 144, 1.
Maur, Monks of St., § 156, 7.
” St., § 85.
Maurice of Hesse, § 154, 1.
” ” Orange, § 139, 12; 161, 2.
” ” Saxony, § 136; 137.
Mauritius, St., § 22, 6.
” Emperor, § 46, 10.
Maxentius, § 22, 7.
Maximianus [Maximian] Herculius, § 22, 6.
Maximilian I., § 110, 13.
” II, § 137, 8; 139, 9.
” I., Duke of Bavaria, § 151, 1.
” III., Elector of Bavaria, § 165, 10.
” I., King of Bavaria, § 195, 1.
” II., King of Bavaria,
” Francis of Cologne, § 165, 13.
” Emperor of Mexico, § 209, 1.
Maximilla, § 40, 1.
Maximinus Daza, § 22, 6, 7.
” Thrax, § 22, 4.
Maximus, Emperor, § 54, 2.
” Confessor, § 47, 12; 52, 8.
Mayer, Seb., § 130, 4.
May Laws, Prussian, § 197, 5, 6.
” ” Austrian, § 198, 6.
Maynooth Bill, § 202, 9.
Mayhew, § 162, 7.
Mechitarists, § 165, 2.
Mechthild, § 107, 2.
Mecklenburg, § 134, 5; 194, 6.
Medici, § 110, 11.
Meinhart, § 93, 12.
Meinrad, § 85, 6.
Mel, Conrad, § 169, 1.
Melanchthon, § 122, 5; 139, 13; 141, 7, 9.
Melchers, § 188, 12; 189, 3; 197, 6, 12.
Melchiades, § 46, 3; 63, 1.
Melchionites, § 147, 1.
Melchisedecians, § 33, 3.
Melchites, § 52, 7.
Meletius of Antioch, § 50, 8.
” ” Lycopolis, § 41, 4.
Melissander, § 142, 3.
Melito, § 30, 8; 36, 8; 40, 1.
Memnon of Ephesus, § 52, 5.
Menander, § 25, 2.
Mendelssohn, § 171, 3.
” Bartholdy, § 174, 10.
Mendez, § 152, 1.
Mendicant Friars, § 98, 3.
Menius, § 141, 6.
Menken, § 172, 3.
Mennas, § 52, 6.
Mennonites, § 147, 2; 163, 1.
Menologies, § 57, 1.
Menot, § 115, 2.
Mensurius, § 63, 1.
Mercedarians, § 98, 9.
Mercerus, § 143, 5.
Merlan, § 170, 1.
Merle d’Aubigné, § 178, 2.
Mermillod, § 189, 3; 199, 2.
Mersen, Treaty of, § 82, 5.
Merswin, § 114, 2, 4.
Mesmer, § 174, 2.
Mesrop, § 64, 3.
Messalians, Christian, § 44, 7.
” Pagan, § 42, 6.
Meth, § 163, 9.
Methodists, § 169, 4, 5; 208, 1; 211, 1.
Methodius, § 73, 3; 79, 2.
” of Olympus, § 31, 9; 33, 9.
Metraphanes, § 67, 6.
” Critop., § 152, 2.
Metropolitans, § 34, 3; 83, 3.
Mettrie, la, § 165, 12.
Mexico, § 209, 1; 190, 3.
Meyer, H. A. W., § 182, 11.
Meyffart, § 160, 3.
Michael, Archangel, § 88, 4.
” Acominatus, § 68, 5.
” Balbus, § 66, 4.
” of Bradacz, § 119, 8.
” Cærularius, § 119, 8.
” of Cesnea, § 112, 2.
” the Drunkard, § 67, 1.
” Palæologus, § 67, 6.
Michael Angelo, § 149, 15.
Michaelis, Chr. Ben., § 167, 3.
” J. D., § 171, 6.
” J. H., § 167, 3.
Michaelmas, § 57, 3.
Michaud, § 190, 3.
Michelians, § 171, 3.
Michelis, § 190, 1; 191, 6.
Micislas, § 93, 7.
Milicz, § 119, 2.
_Militia Christi_, § 37.
Mill, Walter, § 139, 8.
Millennium, § 33, 9.
Milman, § 182, 4.
Miltiades of Athens, § 30, 8; 37, 3.
” ” Rome, § 46, 3.
Miltiz, § 122, 3.
Milton, § 172, 3.
Minimi, § 112, 8.
Minnesingers, § 105, 6.
Minorites, § 98, 3.
Minster, § 84, 4.
Minucius Felix, § 31, 12.
” Fundanus, § 22, 2.
_Missa Catechum. et fidelium_, § 36, 2, 3; 58, 4.
_Missa Solitaria_, § 58, 3.
” _Sponsorum_, § 61, 2; 88, 3; 104, 6.
Missa Marcelli, § 149, 15.
_Missale Rom._, § 149, 14.
Missionary Societies, § 172, 5; 5; 184, 1; 186, 6.
Missions, Foreign, § 75-78; 93.
” ” Catholic, § 150; 156, 10, 12; 165, 3; 186, 7.
Missions, Foreign, Protest., § 142, 8; 143, 7; 160, 7; 162, 7;
167, 9; 168, 11: 184.
Missions, Home, Catholic, § 149, 7; 156, 4; 186, 4, 5.
” ” Protest., § 183.
Missions, Priests of the, § 156, 8.
Missouri Synod, § 208, 2, 3.
Mistewoi, § 93, 9.
Mitre, § 84, 1.
Mizetius, § 91, 1.
Modalists, § 33.
Moderates, § 202, 7.
Mogilas, § 152, 3.
Mogtasilah, § 28, 2.
Mohammed, § 65.
” II., § 67, 7; 110, 10.
Mohammedans, § 184, 9.
Möhler, § 191, 4, 5, 6.
Molanus, § 153, 7.
Molay, § 112, 7.
Moleschott, § 174, 3.
Molina, § 149, 13.
Molinæus, § 161, 3.
Molinos, § 157, 2.
Momiers, § 199, 5.
Mommers, § 169, 2.
Mömpelgard, Relig. Confer., § 138, 8.
_Monarcha theologor._, § 103, 3.
Monarchians, § 33.
_Monasterium Clericor._, § 45, 1.
Monasticism, § 44; 70; 85; 98; 112; 149; 156; 165; 186.
Mongols, § 93, 15.
Monica, § 47, 13.
_Monita Secreta_, § 149, 9.
Monod, § 203, 4.
Monogram, § 38, 4.
Monophysites, § 52, 5, 7; 72, 2.
Monothelites, § 52, 8.
Montalembert, § 188, 1; 189, 1.
Montalte, § 157, 5.
Montalto, § 149, 3.
Montanists, § 40.
Montanus, Arias, § 149, 14.
Monte, del, § 149, 2.
Monte Cassino, § 85.
” Corvino, § 93, 15.
Montesquieu, § 165, 14.
Montfaucon, § 165, 11.
Montfort, Sim. de, § 109, 1.
Montmorency, § 139, 13, 14.
Moody, § 211, 1.
Moors, § 81; 95.
Moralities, § 105, 5.
Morata, § 139, 24.
Moravia, § 79, 2.
Moravian Brethren, § 119, 5.
Moray, The Regent, § 139, 11.
More, Sir Thomas, § 120, 7; 139, 4.
Morel, § 139, 25.
Moreno, § 209, 2.
Morgan, § 171, 1.
Morinus, § 158, 1.
Moriscoes, § 95, 2.
Morland, § 153, 5.
Mormons, § 211, 12-14.
Morone, § 135, 2; 137, 5; 139, 22.
Morison, § 184, 6.
Mortara, § 175, 8.
Morton, § 139, 11.
Morus, § 171, 8.
Mosaics, § 60, 6; 104, 14.
Moser, J. F. v., § 167, 6, 8.
” K. F. v., § 171, 10; 172, 2.
Moses of Chorene, § 64, 3.
Mosheim, § 5, 3; 167, 4; 169, 1.
Moslems, § 65.
Moulin, du, § 161, 3.
Mouls, § 190, 3.
Movers, § 191, 8.
Mozarabians, § 81, 1.
Mozarabic Liturgy, § 88, 1; 104, 1.
Mozart, § 174, 10.
Mtesa, § 184, 4.
“_Mucker_,” § 176, 3.
Mühlenberg, § 208, 2.
Mühler, v., § 193, 4; 197, 2.
Müller, Ad., § 175, 7.
” Bem., § 211, 6.
” G., § 183, 1.
” H., § 160, 1.
” J. v., § 171, 11.
” J. G., § 171, 8.
” Jul., § 182, 10.
Münster, City, § 133, 6.
” Seb., § 143, 5.
Münzer, Thos., § 124, 4, 5.
Muratori, § 165, 12.
Muratorian Canon, § 36, 8.
Murillo, § 158, 3.
Murner, Thos., § 125, 4; 130, 6.
Murrone, § 112, 4.
Musæus, § 141, 7; 144, 2.
Musculus, Andr., § 141, 12.
” Wolfg., § 141, 14.
Music, § 59, 3; 104, 11; 115, 8; 149, 15; 158, 3; 172, 1;
174, 10.
Muspilli, § 89, 3.
Mutianus, § 120, 2, 3.
Mwanga, § 184, 4.
Myconius, § 125, 1.
” Oswald, § 133, 8.
Mysos, § 139, 26.
Mysteries, § 105, 5; 115, 12.
Mystics, Eastern, § 92; 102; 103; 107; 114.
Mystics, Grecian, § 47, 7, 11; 68, 3.
Mystics, Catholic, § 149, 16; 156, 1-4.
Mystics, Protest., § 146; 160, 2; 169, 3.
Naassenes, § 27, 6.
Nägelsbach, § 174, 4.
Namszanowski, § 197, 2.
Nantes, Edict of, § 139, 17; 153, 4.
Napoleon I., § 165, 5; 185, 1; 203, 1.
Napoleon III., § 185, 3; 203, 3, 4; 209, 1.
Narthex, § 60, 1.
Nassau, § 193, 6; 196, 4.
_Natales episc._, § 45, 1.
” _Martyrum_, § 39, 5.
Natalis, Alexander, § 5, 2; 157, 2.
Natalius, § 33, 3.
National Assembly, French, § 165, 15.
National Convention, § 165, 15.
Natorp, § 181, 2.
Naumburg, Bishopric of, § 135, 5.
” Princes’ Diet, § 141, 11.
Nauplia, Syn., § 207, 1.
Nauvoo, § 211, 10.
Naylor, § 163, 4.
Nazareans, § 28, 1.
Neander, § 5, 5; 182, 4.
” Joach., § 162, 6.
Nectarius, § 61, 1.
Nemesius, § 47, 6.
Nennius, § 90, 8.
Neophytes, § 34, 3.
Neo-Platonists, § 24, 2; 42.
Nepomuk, § 116, 1.
Nepos of Arsinoë [Arsinoe], § 33, 9.
Nepotism, § 110.
Neri, Philip, § 149, 7; 158, 3.
Nero, § 22, 1.
Nerses I., § 64, 3.
” IV., Clajensis, § 72, 2.
” of Lampron, § 72, 2.
Nerva, § 22, 1.
Nestor, § 73, 4.
Nestorians, § 52, 3; 64, 2; 72, 1; 150, 4; 184, 9.
Nestorius, § 52, 3.
Netherlands, § 139, 12; 162, 4; 169, 2; 184, 5; 200.
Neuendettelsau, § 183, 1.
Neumann, § 160, 4.
Neumark, § 160, 4.
Newman, § 202, 2.
New Year, § 56, 5.
Nicæa, Council of, § 40, 1; 41, 4; 46, 3; 50, 1; 56, 3.
Nicephorus Gregoras, § 69, 2.
” Callisti, § 5, 1.
Nicetas Acominatus, § 68, 5.
” of Nicomedia, § 67, 4.
” Pectoratus, § 67, 3.
Nicholas I., § 67, 1; 73, 3; 82, 7; 83, 3; 91, 5.
Nicholas II., § 96, 6.
” III., IV., § 96, 22.
” V., § 110, 9, 10.
” of Basel, § 114, 4.
” Cabasilas, § 68, 5; 70, 4.
” of Clemanges, § 118, 4.
” ” Cusa, § 113, 6.
” v. d. Flüe, § 116, 1.
” of Lyra, § 113, 7.
” ” Methone, § 68, 5.
” Mysticus, § 67, 2.
” of Pisa, § 110, 12.
” I., Czar, § 206, 1, 2; 210, 2.
Nicolai, Publisher. § 171, 4.
” Henry, § 146, 5.
” Philip, § 142, 4.
Nicolaitanism, § 96, 5.
Nicolaitans, § 18, 3; 27, 8.
Nicole, § 158, 1.
Niebuhr, § 193, 1.
Niedner, § 5, 4.
Niemeyer, § 171, 7.
Nightingale, § 183, 1.
Nihilism, § 102, 8.
Nihilists, § 212, 6.
Nikon, § 163, 10.
Nilus Sinaiticus, § 44, 3; 47, 10.
” the Younger, § 100.
Nimbus, § 60, 6.
Ninian, § 77, 2.
Niphon, Monk, § 70, 4.
” Patriarch, § 70, 1.
Nismes, Edict of, § 154, 4.
Nitschmann, § 168, 3, 11.
Nitzsch, § 182, 10; 193, 3, 4.
Noailles, § 165, 7.
Nobili, § 156, 11.
Nobla leiczon, § 108, 14 (vol. ii., p. 471).
Nobreja, § 150, 3.
Nobunaja [Nobunaga], § 150, 2.
Noetus, § 33, 5.
Nogaret, § 110, 1.
Nolasque, § 98, 9.
Nominalists, § 99, 2; 113, 3.
Nomo-Canon, § 43, 3.
_Nonæ_, § 86, 2.
Non-Intrusionists, § 202, 7.
Nonconformists, § 143, 2, 3; 155, 1, 2.
Nonna, § 47, 4.
Nonnus of Panopolis, § 48, 5.
Norbert, § 98, 2; 96, 13.
Normans, § 93, 1; 95, 1.
North African School, § 31, 1.
North America, § 208.
Norwegians, § 93, 4; 139, 2; 201, 3.
Nösselt, § 171, 8.
Noting of Verona, § 91, 5.
Notker Balbulus, § 88, 2.
” Labeo, § 100, 1.
Novalis, § 174, 5.
Novatian, § 31, 12; 41, 3.
Novatus, § 38, 2, 3.
Noviciate, § 44, 2; 86, 1.
Noyes, § 211, 6.
Nuñez de Arca, § 175, 2.
Nunia, § 64, 4.
Nuns, § 44, 5.
Nuntio, § 151, 1.
Nuremberg, Relig. Peace of, § 133, 2.
” Diet of, § 126, 1, 2.
Oak, Synod of the, § 51, 3.
Oates, Titus, § 153, 6.
_Oberammergau_, § 174, 10.
Oberlin, § 172.
_Oblati_, § 85, 1.
Oblations, § 36; 39, 5; 61, 4.
Obotrites, § 93, 9.
Observants, § 112, 2; 149, 6.
Occam, § 112, 2; 113, 3; 118, 2.
Occultists, § 211, 18.
Ochino, § 139, 24; 147, 6; 149, 6.
O’Connell, § 202, 9.
Octaves, § 56, 4.
October Assembly, § 178, 3.
Odensee, Diet of, § 139, 2.
Odilo of Bavaria, § 78, 5.
Odo of Clugny, § 98, 1; 100, 2; 104, 10, 11.
Odoacer, § 46, 8.
Œcolampadius, § 130, 3, 6; 131, 1.
Œcumenius, § 68, 4.
Oersted, § 174, 3.
Oetingen, § 182, 15.
Oetinger, § 170, 5; 171, 9.
Oehler, § 182, 14.
_Œuvres_, § 186, 4.
_Officium S. Mariæ_, § 104, 8.
Οἰκόνομοι, § 45, 3.
Oischinger, § 191, 6.
Oktai-Khan, § 93, 15.
Olaf, § 80, 1.
” Haraldson, § 93, 4, 5.
” Schosskönig, § 93, 3.
” Trygvason, § 93, 4, 5.
” St., § 93, 4.
Olcott, § 211, 18.
Oldcastle, § 119, 1.
Oldenbarneveldt, § 161, 2.
Oldenburg, § 194, 5.
Olevian, § 144, 1; 161, 4.
Olga, § 73, 4.
Olgerd, § 93, 14.
Oliva, § 108, 6.
Olivet, Monks of Mount, § 112, 1.
Olivetan, § 138, 1; 143, 5.
Olshausen, § 176, 3.
Ommaiades, § 81; 95, 2.
Oncken, § 211, 3.
Oneida-sect, § 211, 6.
_Onochoetes Deus_, § 23, 2.
Oosterzee, § 200, 2.
Ophites, § 27, 6, 7.
Opitz, § 160, 3.
Optatus of Mileve, § 63, 1.
Opzoomer, § 200, 3.
Orange, Synod of, § 53, 5.
Oratories, § 84, 2.
Oratory of Divine Love, § 139, 22.
” Fathers of the, § 156, 7.
” Priests of the, § 149, 7.
Ordeals, § 89, 5.
Ordericus Vitalis, § 5, 1.
Ordination, § 45, 1.
_Ordines majores et minores_, § 34, 3.
_Ordo Romanus_, § 59, 6.
Organs, § 88, 2; 104, 11; 115, 8; 154, 3.
Origen, § 31, 5; 33, 6-9; 36, 9; 61, 4.
Origenist Controversy, § 51.
Original Sin, Controversy about, § 141, 8.
Orosius, § 47, 19.
Ortlibarians, § 103, 4.
Ortuinus Gratus, § 120, 5.
_Osculum pacis_, § 35.
Osiander, Andr., § 126, 4; 135, 6; 141, 2.
Osiander, Luc., § 159, 1.
Osiandrian Controversy, § 141, 2.
_Ostiarii_, § 34, 3.
Ostrogoths, § 76, 7.
Oswald, § 77, 5.
Oswy, § 77, 5, 6.
Ota, § 78, 2.
Otfried, § 89, 3.
Otgar of Mainz, § 87, 3.
Otternbein, § 208, 4.
Ottheinrich, § 135, 6.
Otto I., § 93, 2, 8; 96, 1.
” II., III., § 96, 2, 3.
” IV., § 96, 17.
” of Bamberg, § 93, 10.
” ” Passau, § 114, 6.
Overbeek, Painter, § 174, 9.
” Dr., § 175, 5.
Overberg, § 172, 2.
Owen, Rob., § 212, 3.
Oxford, § 202, 2.
” Movement, § 211, 1.
Pabst, § 191, 3.
_Pabulatores_, § 44, 7.
Paccanari, § 186, 1.
Pachomius, § 44, 1, 3, 5.
Pacianus, § 47, 15.
Pacifico, Fra, § 104, 10.
Pack, O. v., § 132, 1.
Paderborn, § 133, 5.
Paez, § 152, 1.
_Pagani_, § 42, 4.
Pagi, § 158, 2; 5, 2.
Pagninus, § 149, 14.
Pajon, § 161, 3.
Palamas, § 69, 2.
Palatinate, § 135, 6; 144, 1; 153, 1, 3; 196, 4.
Paleario, § 139, 22, 23.
Palestrina, § 149, 15.
Paley, § 171, 8.
Palladius, § 47, 10.
Pallium, § 46, 1; 59, 7; 97, 3.
Palm Sunday, § 56, 4.
Pamphilus, § 31, 6.
Pan-Anglicanism, § 202, 1.
Pandulf, § 96, 18.
Pan-Presbyterianism, § 179, 3.
Pantänus, § 31, 4.
Pantheon, § 46, 10.
_Papa_, § 46, 1.
Papacy, § 34, 8; 46, 2; 82; 96; 110; 149; 156; 165; 185.
Papal Elections, § 46, 8, 11; 82, 4; 96, 6, 15, 21.
Papebroch, § 155, 2.
Paphnutius, § 45, 2.
Papias, § 30, 6; 33, 9.
_Parabolani_, § 45, 3.
Paracelsus, § 146, 2.
Paraguay, § 156, 10; 165, 3.
Pareus, § 159, 5.
Parker, Matt., § 139, 6.
” Theodore, § 211, 4.
Parnell, § 202, 10.
_Parochia_, § 84, 2.
_Parochus_, § 84, 2.
Parsimonius, § 141, 8.
Pasagians, § 108, 3.
Pascal, § 157, 5; 158, 1.
Pascale, § 139, 25.
Πάσχα σταυρώσιμων and ἀναστάσιμον, § 56, 4.
Paschal Controversy, § 37, 2.
Paschalis I., § 82, 4.
” II., § 96, 11.
” III., § 96, 15.
Paschasius, § 99, 5; 91, 3.
Paschkow, § 206, 1.
Pasquino, § 149, 1.
Passaglia, § 187, 5.
Passau, Treaty of, § 137, 3.
Passion Play, § 105, 5; 115, 12; 174, 10.
Pastor, § 84, 2.
_Pastor æternus_, § 189, 3.
_Patareni_, § 108, 1.
Pataria, § 97, 5.
Patent, Austrian, § 198, 3.
” Hungarian, § 198, 6.
_Pater Orthodoxiæ_, § 47, 4.
Patriarchs, § 46.
Patriciate, Roman, § 82, 1.
Patrick, St., § 77, 1.
_Patrimonium pauperum_, § 45, 4.
” _Petri_, § 46, 10; 82, 1.
Patripassians, § 33, 4.
Patronage, § 84.
Patronus, § 57, 1.
Paul, the Apostle, § 15.
” Burgensis, § 113, 7.
” Diaconus [Warnefrid], § 90, 3.
” Orosius, § 47, 20.
” the Persian, § 48, 1.
” of Samosata, § 33, 8; 39, 3.
” Silentiarius, § 48, 5.
” of Thebes, § 39, 4.
” Warnefried, § 90, 3.
” I., § 82, 1.
” II., § 110, 11, 15; 119, 4.
” III., § 149, 2; 134, 1; 139, 23.
” IV, § 149, 2.
” V., § 156, 1, 2, 4; 149, 13.
” I. of Russia, § 186, 2.
Paula, St., § 44, 5.
” Francis de, § 112, 8.
” Vinc. de, § 156, 8.
Pauli, Greg., § 148, 3.
Paulicians, § 71, 1.
Paulinus of Antioch, § 50, 8.
” ” Aquileia, § 90, 3.
” ” Milan, § 47, 20; 53, 4.
” Missionary, § 77, 4.
” of Nola, § 48, 6; 60, 5.
Paulus, Dr., § 182, 2.
_Pauperes de Lugduno_, § 108, 10.
” _Catholici_, § 108, 10.
Payens, § 98, 7.
_Pax dissid._, § 139, 18.
Pearson, § 161, 6, 7.
Peasants’ War, § 124, 5.
Pectorale, § 59, 7.
Pelagius, § 47, 21; 53, 3, 4.
” I., Pope, § 46, 9; 52, 6.
” II., ” § 46, 9.
Pelayo, § 81, 1.
Pellicanus, § 120, 4, note.
Pellico, Silvio, § 174, 7.
Penance, § 104, 4.
Penda, § 77, 4.
Penitential Books, § 61, 1; 89, 6; 103, 6.
Penn, § 163, 5.
Pentecost, § 37, 1; 56, 4.
Pepin, § 78, 5; 82, 1.
Pepucians, § 40, 1.
Peraldus, § 103, 9.
Perates, § 27, 6.
Peregrinus Proteus, § 23, 1.
_Pères de la foi_, § 186, 1.
Perfectionists, § 211, 6.
Perfectus, § 81, 1.
Pericopes, § 59, 2; 167, 2.
Peristerium, § 60, 5.
Perkins, § 143, 5.
Peroz, § 64, 2.
Perpetua, § 22, 5.
Perrone, § 175, 2; 191, 9.
Persecution of Christians, § 23; 64.
Persia, § 64, 2; 93, 15.
Perthes, § 183, 1.
Peschito, § 36, 8.
Pestalozzi, § 171, 12.
Petavius, § 158, 1.
Peter the Apostle, § 16, 1.
” d’Ailly, § 118, 4.
” of Alcantara, § 149, 5, 16.
” ” Alexandria, § 41, 4.
” ” Amiens, § 94, 1.
” ” Aragon [Arragon], § 96, 18.
” ” Bruys, § 108, 7.
” Cantor, § 103, 3.
” of Castelnau, § 109, 1.
” ” Chelczic, § 119, 7.
” ” Clugny, § 96, 13.
” Chrysolanus, § 67, 4.
” Chrysologus, § 47, 16.
” Comestor, § 105, 5.
” Damiani, § 97, 4; 104, 10; 106, 4.
” Dresdensis, § 115, 7.
” of Dubois, § 118, 1.
” Fullo, § 52, 5.
” Hispanus, § 96, 22.
” the Lombard, § 102, 5; 104, 2, 4.
” Mongus, § 52, 5.
” of Murrone, § 98, 2.
” ” Pisa, § 90.
” ” Poitiers, § 102, 5.
” Siculus, § 71, 1.
” the Venerable, § 98, 1; 102, 2; 109.
” I. of Russia, § 166.
” and Paul, Festival of, § 57, 1.
” Fest. of Chair of St., § 57, 1.
” Church of St., § 115, 13.
Peter’s Pence, § 82.
Petersen, § 170, 1.
Peterson, § 139, 1.
Petilian, § 63, 1.
Petrarch, § 115, 10.
Petrejus, § 120, 2.
Petrikan, Synod, § 139, 18; 148, 3.
Petrobrusians, § 108, 7.
Petrow, § 163, 10.
Petrucci, § 157, 2.
Peucer, § 141, 10; 144, 3.
Peyrerius, § 161, 7.
Peysellians, § 170, 6.
Pfaff, § 167, 4, 5, 8.
Pfefferkorn, § 120, 4.
Pfeffinger, § 141, 7.
Pfeiffer, Aug., § 159, 4.
Pfenninger, § 171, 8.
Pfleiderer, § 182, 19.
Pflugk, § 135, 3, 5; 136, 5; 137, 6.
_Pharensis Syn._, § 77, 6.
Pharisees, § 8, 4.
Philadelphia, § 60, 4.
Philadelphian Churches, § 170, 1.
” Period, § 168, 4.
” Sect, § 163, 8.
Philaster, § 47, 14.
Philip, § 14; 17, 2.
” the Arabian, § 22, 4.
” I. of France, § 96, 8, 10.
” II., Aug., § 94, 3; 96, 18.
” the Fair, § 110, 1, 2; 112, 7.
” II. of Spain, § 139, 12, 21.
” of Swabia, § 96, 17.
” the Magnanimous, § 126, 4, 5; 135, 1, 3; 137, 3.
Philippi, § 182, 13.
Philippists, § 141, 4 ff.
Philippones, § 163, 10.
Philippopolis, Synod of, § 50, 2.
Philipps, § 175, 7; 191, 7.
Phillpotts, § 202, 2.
Philo, § 10, 1.
Philopatris, § 42, 5.
Philoponus, § 47, 11.
Philosophical Sin, § 149, 10.
Philosophoumena, § 31, 3.
Philostorgius, § 4, 1.
Philoxenus, § 59, 1.
Philumena, § 27, 12.
Phocas, § 46, 10.
Phœbe, § 17, 4.
Photinus, § 50, 2.
Photius, § 67, 1; 68, 5.
Phyletism, § 207, 3.
Φωτιζόμενοι, § 35, 1.
Φθαρτολάτραι, § 52, 7.
Piacenza, Council, § 94.
Piarists, § 156, 7.
Picards, § 116, 5; 119, 8.
Pichler, § 191, 7.
Pick, § 211, 8.
Picts, § 77, 2.
Picus of Mirandola, § 120, 1.
Pideritz, § 133, 5.
Piedmont, § 204, 3.
Pietism, Lutheran, § 159, 3; 167, 1.
” Reformed, § 162, 3, 4.
” in 19th Century, § 176, 2.
Pilate, Acts of, § 13, 2; 31, 2.
Pilgrim of Passau, § 93, 8.
” Fathers, § 143, 4; 208, 1.
Pilgrimages, § 57, 6; 89, 4; 104, 8; 115, 9; 188, 5, 6.
Pin, du, § 158, 2.
Pionius, § 30, 5.
Pirkheimer, § 120, 3.
Pirminius, § 78, 1, 5.
Pirstinger, § 125, 5; 149, 14.
Pisa, Council of, § 110, 6.
Piscator, § 143, 5.
Pistis, Sophia, § 27, 7.
Pistoja, Synod of, § 165, 10.
Pistorius, § 135, 3.
” Maternus, § 120, 2.
Pius II., § 110, 10; 118, 6; 119, 4.
” III., § 110, 13.
” IV., § 149, 2.
” V., § 149, 3; 139, 23.
” VI., § 165, 9, 10, 15.
” VII., § 185, 1; 203, 1.
” VIII., § 184, 1; 193, 1.
” IX., § 185, 2 ff.; 175, 2; 188, 8; 189, 3; 197, 7; 202, 11.
Placæus, § 161, 3.
Planck, § 171, 8.
_Planeta_, § 59, 7.
Plastic Arts, § 60, 6; 89, 6; 104, 14; 115, 13.
Plato, § 7, 4; 47, 5; 68, 3; 99, 2.
Platon, § 166, 1.
Platter, § 130, 4.
_Plebani_, _Plebs_, § 84, 2.
Plenaries, § 115, 4.
Pleroma, § 26, 2.
Pletho, § 68, 2; 120, 1.
Pliny the Younger, § 22, 2.
Plotinus, § 24, 2.
Plotizin, § 210, 4.
Plutschau, § 167, 9.
Plymouth Brethren, § 211, 11.
Pneumatomachians, § 50, 5.
Pobedonoszew, § 206, 1.
Poblenz, § 184, 5.
Pocquet, § 146, 4.
Pococke, § 161, 6.
Podiebrad, § 119, 7, 8.
Poetry, Christian, § 48, 5, 6; 105, 4; 174, 6.
Poggio, § 120, 1; 119, 5.
Poiret, § 163, 9.
Poissy, Relig. Confer., § 139, 14.
Poland, § 93, 7; 139, 18; 165, 4; 206, 2, 3.
Pole, § 139, 5, 22.
Polemon, § 47, 6.
Polenz of Samland, § 125, 1.
Poliander, § 142, 3.
Polo, Marco, § 93, 15.
Polozk, Synod of, § 206, 2.
Polycarp, § 22, 3; 30, 6; 37, 2.
Polychronius, § 47, 9.
Polycrates, § 37, 2.
Polyglott, Antwerp, § 149, 14.
” Complutensian, § 120, 8.
” London, § 161, 6.
” Paris, § 158, 1.
Pomare, § 184, 7.
Pombal, § 165, 9.
Pommerania, § 93, 10; 134, 4.
Pomponazzo, § 120, 1.
Ponce de la Fuente, § 139, 21.
_Pœnitentiaria Rom._, § 110, 16.
Pontianus, § 38, 1.
Ponticus, § 22, 3.
Pontius, § 98, 1.
Popiel, § 206, 1.
Popular Philosophy, § 171, 4.
Pordage, § 163, 9.
Porphyry, § 23, 3; 24, 2.
Portig, § 180, 3.
Portiuncula, § 98, 3.
Port Royal, § 157, 5.
Portugal, § 165, 9; 205, 5.
Positivism, § 174, 2; 210, 1.
Possessor of Carthage, § 53, 5.
Possevin, § 139, 1; 151, 2, 3.
Possidius, § 47, 18.
Post-Apostolic Age, § 20, 1.
_Postilla_, § 103, 9; 108, 6.
Potamiæna, § 22, 4.
Pothinus, § 22, 3.
_Præceptor Germaniæ_, § 122, 5.
_Præpositi_, § 84, 2.
Prætorius, § 160, 1.
Praxeas, § 33, 4.
Prayer, § 37; 39, 1.
Preaching, § 36, 2; 59, 3; 89, 1; 104, 1; 115, 2; 142, 2.
Preaching Orders, § 98, 5; 112, 4.
Pre-Adamites, § 161, 4.
Prebends, § 84, 4.
Precaria, § 86, 1.
Precists, § 96, 23.
Predestination, § 53; 91, 4; 125, 3; 141, 12; 161, 2, 3; 168, 1;
208, 3.
Prepon, § 27, 12.
Presburg, Peace of, § 192.
Presbyter, § 17, 2, 5; 34, 3; 45.
Presbyterians, § 143, 3; 162, 1; 202, 4; 208, 1.
Prierias, § 122, 3.
Priestley, § 211, 4.
Primacy, Papal, § 34, 8; 46, 2, 3.
Primasius, § 48, 1.
Primian, § 63, 1.
Prisca, § 40, 1.
Priscillianists, § 54, 2.
Probabilism, § 149, 10; 113, 4.
Procession of Holy Spirit, § 50, 6; 67, 1; 91, 2.
Processions, § 59, 9.
Prochorus, § 32, 6.
Procidians, § 27, 8.
Proclus, Montanist, § 31, 7; 40, 2.
” Neoplaton., § 24, 2; 42, 5.
Procopius of Gaza, § 48, 1.
” the Great, § 119, 7.
Procopowicz, § 166.
_Professio fid. Trid._, § 149, 14.
Proles, § 112, 5.
Proli, § 211, 16.
Propaganda, § 156, 9; 204, 2.
Prophecy, § 143, 3, 5.
_Propositt. Cleri Gallicani_, § 156, 3; 203, 1.
Proselytes of Gate and Righteousness, § 10, 2.
Πρόσκλαυσις, § 39, 2.
Προσφοραί, § 36.
Prosper Aquit., § 47, 20; 48, 6; 53, 5.
Proterius, § 52, 5.
Protestants, § 132, 3.
“_Protestantenverein_,” § 180.
Proudhon, § 212, 1.
_Provida sollersque_, § 196, 1.
Prudentius, Poet, § 48, 6.
” of Troyes, § 91, 5.
Psellus, § 68, 5; 71, 3.
Pseudepigraphs, § 32.
Pseudo-Basilideans, § 27, 3.
” Clement, § 28, 3; 43, 4.
” Cyril, § 96, 23.
” Dionysius, § 47, 11.
” Ignatius, § 43, 5.
” Isidore, § 87, 2.
” Tertullian, § 31, 3.
Psychians, § 26, 2; 40, 5.
_Publicani_, § 108, 1.
Pufendorf, § 167, 5.
Pulcheria, § 52, 4.
Pullus, Rob., § 102, 5.
Punctation of Ems, § 165, 10.
Purcell, § 186, 5.
Purgatory, § 61, 4; 67, 6; 104, 4; 106, 2, 3.
Purists, § 159, 4.
Puritans; § 143, 3, 4; 155.
Puseyites, § 202, 2.
Puttkamer, v., § 174, 8; 193, 6; 197, 10.
Quadragesima, § 37, 1; 56, 4, 5, 7.
Quadratus, § 30, 8.
_Quadrivium_, § 90, 8.
Quakers, § 163, 4, 5, 6; 211, 3.
_Quanta cura_, § 185, 2.
Quartodecimans, § 37, 2; 56, 3.
Quenstedt, § 159, 5.
_Quercum_, _Synod ad_, § 51, 3.
Quesnel, § 165, 7.
_Quicunque_, § 50, 7.
Quietists, § 157.
_Quinisextum_, § 63, 2.
_Quinquagesima_, § 37, 1; 56, 4.
Quintin, § 146, 4.
_Quod numquam_, § 197, 7.
Rabanus, § 90, 4; 91, 3, 5.
Rabaut, § 165, 5.
Rabinowitz, § 211, 9.
Rabulas, § 52, 3; 48, 7.
Racovian Catechism, § 148, 4.
Radama I., II., § 184, 3.
Radbertus, § 90, 5; 91, 3, 4.
Radbod, § 78, 3.
Radewins, Flor., § 112, 9.
Radstock, § 206, 1.
Raimund Lullus, § 93, 16; 103, 7.
” Martini, § 103, 9.
” of Pennaforte, § 93, 16; 99, 5; 113, 4.
” du Puy, § 93, 8.
” of Sabunde, § 113, 5.
Rakoczy, § 153, 3.
Rambach, § 167, 6, 8.
Ramus, § 143, 6.
Ranavalona, § 184, 3.
Rancé, de, § 156, 8.
Raphael, § 115, 13.
” Union, § 186, 4.
Rapp, § 211, 6.
Raskolniks, § 163, 10; 210, 3.
Rasoherina, § 184, 3.
Raspe, § 105, 3.
Räss, Bishop, § 196, 7.
Rastislaw, § 79, 2.
Ratherius, § 100, 2.
Rationalism, § 171; 176, 1; 182, 2, 3.
Ratramnus, § 67, 1; 90, 5; 91, 3, 4, 5.
“_Rauhes Haus_,” § 183, 1.
Rauscher, Card., § 189, 3; 198, 2.
Ravaillac, § 139, 17.
Raymond IV., Count of Toulouse, § 109, 1.
Raynaldi, Oderic, § 5, 2.
Realism and Nominalism, § 99, 2; 113, 2.
Recafrid, § 81, 1.
Reccared, § 76, 2.
Rechiar, § 76, 4.
_Reclusi_, § 85, 6.
_Recognit. Clem._, § 27, 4.
_Reconciliatio_, § 39, 2.
_Recursus ab abusu_, § 185, 4; 192, 4; 194, 9; 197, 9.
Redemptions, § 88, 5.
Redemptorists, § 165, 2; 186, 1.
Reformation in head and members, § 118, 3.
Refugees, French Huguenot, § 153, 4.
Regensburg Colloquy, § 130, 3, 10.
” Convention, § 126, 3.
” Declaration, § 135, 4.
” Diet, § 133, 2; 135, 3.
” Reformation, § 135, 6.
” Synod, § 91, 1.
Regino of Prüm, § 90, 5.
Reginus, § 104, 11.
Regionary Bishops, § 84.
_Regula fidei_, § 35, 2.
Reichenau, § 78, 1.
Reimarus, § 171, 6.
Reinerius Sachoni, § 108, 1.
Reinhard, Mart., § 139, 2.
Reinhard, Fr. Volk., § 171, 8.
Reinkens, § 190, 1.
Reiser, Fred., § 119, 9; 118, 5.
Reland, § 169, 6.
Relics, Worship of, § 39, 5; 57, 5; 88, 4; 104, 8; 115, 9.
_Religiosi_, § 44.
Remigius of Auxerre, § 90, 5.
” ” Lyons, § 91, 5.
” ” Rheims, § 76, 9.
Remismund, § 76, 4.
Remoboth, § 44, 7.
Remonstrants, § 161, 2.
Renaissance, § 115, 13; 149, 15.
Renan, § 182, 8.
Renata of Ferrara, § 138, 2; 139, 22.
Renaudot, § 165, 11.
Reni, Guido, § 149, 15.
Reparatus of Carthage, § 52, 6.
Repeal Association, § 202, 9.
_Reservatio mentalis_, § 149, 10.
Reservations, § 110, 15.
_Reservatum ecclest._, § 137, 5.
Restitution Edict, § 153, 2.
Reuchlin, § 120, 3, 4.
Reuss, § 182, 18.
Revenues of the Church, § 45, 6; 86, 1.
_Reversurus_, § 207, 4.
Revivals, § 208, 1.
Revolution, French, § 165, 14.
” English, § 155.
_Rex Christianiss._, § 110, 13.
Rhaw, § 142, 5.
Rhegius Urbanus, § 120, 3; 127, 3; 125, 1.
Rheinwald, § 83, 2.
Rhenius, § 184, 5.
Rhense, Elector. Union of, § 110, 4.
Rhetorians, § 62, 3.
Rhine League, § 192.
Rhodoald, § 67, 1; 82, 7.
Rhodon, § 27, 12.
Rhyming Bible, § 105, 5.
” Legends, § 105, 5.
Riccabona, § 175, 2.
Ricci, Laur., § 165, 9.
” Matt., § 150, 1.
” Scipio, § 165, 10.
Richard Cœur de Leon, § 94, 3.
” of Cornwallis, § 94, 5.
” ” St. Victor, § 102, 4; 104, 4.
Richelieu, § 153, 4.
Richter, C. F., § 167, 6.
” Emil, § 182, 22.
” Greg., § 160, 2.
” Jean Paul, § 171, 11.
” Louis, § 174, 9.
Ridley, § 139, 5.
Rieger, § 167, 8.
Rienzi, § 110, 5.
Rietschel, § 174, 9.
Riga, § 93, 12; 139, 3.
Rigdon, Sidney, § 211, 12, 13.
Riley, § 209, 1.
Rimbert, § 80, 2.
Rimini, Syn., § 50, 3.
Rinck, Melch., § 147, 1.
Ring and Staff, § 96, 6, 7.
Ringold, § 93, 14.
Rinkart, § 160, 3.
Rist, § 160, 3.
_Risus Paschales_, § 105, 2.
Ritschl, § 182, 7, 20.
Ritter, Erasm., § 130, 4, 8.
” J. J., § 5, 6.
” Carl, § 174, 4.
Ritualists, § 199, 2.
Rizzio, § 139, 10.
Robber Synod, § 52, 4.
Robert of Arbrissel, § 98, 2.
” ” Citeaux, § 98, 1.
” Grosseteste, § 103, 1.
” Guiscard, § 95, 1; 98, 6, 8.
” Pullus, § 102, 5.
” of the Sorbonne, § 103, 9.
Robert of France, § 104, 10.
Robespierre, § 165, 15.
Robinson, § 143, 4.
Rodigast, § 160, 4.
Rodriguez, § 149, 8; 150, 4.
Roëll, § 161, 5.
Roger of Sicily, § 95, 1; 96, 13.
Röhr, § 176, 1; 182, 2.
Rokycana, § 119, 7.
Rollo, § 93, 1.
Romanz, § 174, 2.
Roman Architecture, § 104, 12.
Romanus, Pope, § 96, 1.
Romuald, § 98, 1.
Ronge, § 187, 6.
Roos, § 171, 8.
Rosary, § 104, 8; 115, 1.
Roscelinus [Roscelin], § 101, 3.
Rose, The Consecrat. Golden, § 96, 23.
Rosenkranz, § 182, 6.
Rosicrucians, § 160, 1.
Rossi de, § 191, 7; 38, 1.
Röstar, § 211, 5.
Roswitha, § 100, 1.
_Rota Romana_, § 110, 16.
Rothad of Soissons, § 83, 2.
Rothe, A., § 167, 6; 168, 2.
” Rich., § 5, 4; 180, 1; 182, 10.
Rothmann, § 147, 9.
Röublin, § 130, 5; 147, 3.
Roundheads, § 155, 1.
Rousseau, § 165, 14.
Rubianus Crotus, § 120, 2, 5.
Rückert, § 174, 6.
Rudelbach, § 182, 13; 194, 1.
Rudolph of Hapsburg, § 96, 21, 22.
Rudolph II., § 139, 19; 137, 8.
” of Swabia, § 96, 8.
Ruet, § 205, 4.
Rufinus, § 5, 1; 47, 17; 48, 2; 51, 2.
Ruge, § 174, 1.
Rügen, § 93, 10.
Rugians, § 76, 6.
Ruinart, § 158, 2.
Rulman Merswin, § 114, 2, 4.
Rupert, § 78, 2.
” of Deutz, § 102, 8.
Rupp, § 176, 1; 178, 1.
Russel, Lord, § 202, 1, 5.
Russia, § 73, 5-6; 151, 3; 163, 8; 166; 206; 210, 3, 4; 212, 6.
Rust, § 195, 5.
Ruysbroek, John of, § 114, 7.
” William of, § 93, 15.
_Sabatati_, § 108, 10.
Sabbath, § 56, 1.
Sabbatarians, § 163, 3; 211, 5.
Sabeans, § 22, 1.
Sabellius, § 33, 5, 7.
Sabinianus, § 60, 5.
_Sacco di Roma_, § 132, 2.
Sachs, Hans, § 142, 3, 7.
Sack, K. H., § 182, 9.
Sacramentalia, § 58; 104, 2.
Sacraments, § 58; 70, 2; 104, 2-5.
_Sacramentarium_, § 59, 6.
_Sacrificati_, § 22, 5.
_Sacrum rescript._, § 53, 3.
Sacy, de, § 158, 1.
Sadducees, § 8, 4.
Sadolet, § 138, 3; 139, 22.
Sagittarius, § 159, 4.
Sailer, § 165, 12; 187, 1.
Saints, Worship of, § 57, 1; 88, 4; 104, 8.
Saladin, § 94, 3.
Sales, Francis de, § 156, 7; 157, 1.
” Nuns of, § 156, 7.
Salisbury, John of, § 102, 9.
Salmeron, § 149, 8.
Salt Lake, § 211, 10.
Salvation Army, § 211, 2.
Salvianus, § 47, 21.
Salzburg, § 78, 2; 79.
” Emigrants of, § 164, 4.
Samaritans, § 10; 22.
Sampseans, § 28, 2.
Sanbenito, § 117, 2.
Sanchez, § 149, 10.
Sanction, Pragmatic, § 96, 21; 110, 9, 14.
_Sanctissimum_, § 104, 3.
Sandwich Islands, § 182, 7.
Sankey, § 211, 1.
Sapor I., § 29, 1.
Sapores [Sapor], § 64, 2.
Sarabaites, § 44, 7.
Saracens, § 81; 95.
Sardica, Council of, § 46, 3; 50, 2.
Sardinia, § 204, 1, 3.
Sarmatio, § 62, 2.
Sarpi, § 156, 2; 158, 2.
Sartorius, § 182, 13.
Saturnalia, § 56, 5.
Saturninus, § 27, 9.
Saunier, § 138, 1; 139, 25.
Saurin, § 169, 6.
Savonarola, § 119, 11.
Savonières [Savonnières], Syn. of, § 91, 5.
Sbynko, § 119, 3, 4.
_Scala santa_, § 115, 9.
Schaffhausen, § 130, 8.
Schelling, § 171, 10; 174, 1.
Schenkel, § 182, 17; 196, 3, 4; 180, 1.
Schiller, § 171, 11.
Schirmer, § 160, 4.
Schism, Papal, § 110, 6.
” between East and West, § 67.
Schisms in the Ancient Church, § 41; 50, 8; 52, 5; 63.
Schlegel, Fr., § 174, 5; 175, 7.
” J. Ad., § 172, 1.
Schleiermacher, § 5, 4; 182, 1; 174, 3.
Schleswig-Holstein, § 127, 3; 156, 2; 201, 1; 193, 7.
Schlichting, § 148, 4.
Schmalcald Articles, § 134, 1.
” League, § 133, 1, 7.
” War, § 136.
Schmerling, § 198, 3, 4.
Schmid, Leop., § 187, 3; 191, 2; 196, 4.
Schmidt, Erasm., § 159, 4.
” Lor., § 171, 3.
” Seb., § 159, 4.
Schmolck, § 167, 6, 8.
Schnepf, § 122, 2; 131, 1; 133, 3.
Schnorr, § 174, 9.
Schöberlein, § 181, 3.
_Schola palatina_, § 90, 1.
” _Saxonica_, § 82.
Scholastica, St., § 85, 3.
Scholasticism, Greek, § 47, 6; 68, 3.
” Latin, § 99 ff.; 113.
Scholasticus, John, § 43, 3.
Scholten, § 200, 2.
Schools.
Schopenhauer, § 174, 2.
Schortinghuis, § 169, 3.
Schroeckh [Schröckh], § 5, 3; 171, 8.
Schubert, § 174, 3, 8.
Schultens, § 169, 6.
Schultz, Herm., § 182, 20.
Schulz, Dav., § 183, 3.
Schwartz, § 167, 9.
Schwarzenberg, § 189, 3.
Schweizer, § 182, 9.
Schwenkfeld, § 146, 1.
Scotists, § 113, 2.
Scotland, § 77, 2; 139, 8; 202, 7, 8, 11.
Scots, § 77, 2.
Scottish Cloister, § 98, 1; 112.
Scotus, John Duns, § 113.
” Erigena, § 90, 7; 91, 5.
Scriver, § 160, 1.
Scythianus, § 29, 1.
_Seculum obscurum_, § 100.
Secundus, § 50, 1.
_Sedes Apostolicæ_, § 34.
Sedulius, § 48, 6.
Segarelli, § 108, 8.
Segneri, § 157, 2.
Seiler, § 171, 8.
Selden, § 161, 6.
Selnecker, § 141, 12; 142, 4.
Sembat, § 71, 2.
Semi-arians, § 50, 3.
Semi-jejunia, § 37, 2.
Semi-pelagians, § 53, 5.
Semler, § 171, 6; 5, 3.
Sendomir Compact, § 139, 18.
Seneca’s Correspondence, § 32, 7.
Sententiarists, § 102, 5.
Sepp, § 191, 8; 174, 4.
Septimius Severus, § 22, 4.
Septuagint, § 10, 2; 36, 8; 48, 1.
Sequences, § 88, 2.
Serapeion, § 42, 4.
Seraphic Order, § 98, 3.
Serenius Granian., § 22, 2.
Serenus of Marsilia, § 57, 4.
Sergius of Constantinople, § 52, 8.
” ” Ravenna, § 83, 2.
” I. of Rome, § 46, 11; 63, 2.
” II., § 82, 5.
” III., § 96, 1.
” IV., § 96, 4.
Serrarius, § 149, 14.
Servatus Lupus, § 90, 5; 91, 5.
Servetus, § 148, 2.
Servites, § 98, 6.
_Servus servorum Dei_, § 46, 10.
Sethians, § 27, 6.
Seventh-Day Adventists, § 211, 1.
” ” Baptists, § 163, 3.
Severa, § 22, 4; 26.
Severians, § 52, 7.
Severina, § 28, 4.
Severinus, Missionary, § 76, 6.
” Pope, § 46, 11.
Severus, Emperor, § 22, 6.
” Wolfg., § 137, 8.
Shaftesbury, § 171, 1.
Shakers, § 170, 7.
Sherlock, § 171, 1.
Shiites, § 65, 1.
Ship of the Church, § 60, 1.
Sibylline Books, § 32, 1.
Sicily, § 81; 95.
Sickingen, § 120, 4; 122, 4; 123, 7; 124, 2.
Siena, Syn., § 110, 7.
Sieveking, § 183, 1.
Sigfrid, § 93, 1.
Sigillaria, § 56, 5.
Sigismund of Burgundy, § 76, 5.
” Emperor, § 110, 7, 8; 119, 5.
Sigismund I. of Poland, § 139, 18.
” Aug. ” § 139, 18.
” III. ” § 139, 18.
Sigurd, § 93, 3.
Silesia, § 127, 3; 153, 2; 165, 4.
Silesius, Angelus, § 157, 4; 160, 4.
Silverius, § 46, 9.
Simeon of Jerusalem, § 22, 2.
” Stylites, § 44, 6.
” called Titus, § 71, 1.
” Czar, § 73, 3.
” Metaphrastes, § 68, 4.
” of Thessalonica, § 68, 5.
” ” Tournay, § 103, 2.
” VI., VII.; Counts of Lippe, § 154, 2.
Simeoni, § 205, 4.
Simon Magus, § 25, 2.
” Rich., § 158, 2.
” St., § 212, 2.
Simonians, § 27, 8.
Simons, Menno, § 147, 2.
Simony, § 96, 5.
Simplicius, § 42, 5.
Siricius, § 45, 2; 46, 4.
Sirmium, Syn., § 50, 2, 3.
Sirmond, § 158, 2.
Sisters of Mercy, § 156, 8; 186, 2.
Sixtus II., § 22, 5.
” III., § 46, 6.
” IV., § 110, 11; 112, 3; 115, 1.
” V., § 149, 3, 4, 14.
” of Siena, § 149, 14.
Skeleton Army, § 211, 2.
Smith, Jos., § 211, 10.
” Pearsall, § 211, 1.
” Robertson, § 202, 8.
Socialism, § 212.
Socinians, § 148, 4; 202, 5.
Soissons, Syn., § 78, 4; 102, 8.
_Sollicitudo omnium_, § 185, 1.
Somerset, § 139, 5.
Sophia, Church of, § 60, 3.
Sophronius, § 52, 8.
Sorbonne, § 103, 9.
Soter, § 36, 8.
Southcote, Joanna, § 211, 5.
Spain, § 76, 2, 3; 95, 2; 139, 21; 205.
Spalatin, § 122, 6.
Spalding, Bishop, § 189, 3.
Spangenberg, John, § 142, 6.
” Bishop, § 168, 7.
Spanheim, § 5, 2; 161, 3, 7.
Speaker’s Bible, § 202, 1.
Spencer, John, § 161, 6.
” Herbert, § 174, 2.
Spener, § 158, 3; 167, 5.
Spiera, Fr., § 139, 2, 4.
Spinoza, § 164, 1.
Spires, Diet, § 126, 6; 132, 3; 135, 9; 147, 4.
Spirit, Sect of the New, § 108, 2.
_Spiritales_, § 40, 5.
Spirituals, § 164, 1.
_Spirituels_, § 146, 4.
Sponsors, § 35, 5; 58, 1.
Sufis, § 61, 1.
Stackhouse, § 168, 6.
Stahl, § 182, 15; 193, 6.
Stancarns, § 141, 2.
Stanislaus, St., § 93, 2.
” Znaim, § 119, 4.
Stanley, § 184, 4.
Stapfer, § 169, 6.
Stapulensis, § 120, 7, 8.
Starck, § 175, 7.
Starowerzi, § 163, 10; 210, 3.
Staudenmaier, § 191, 6.
Stäudlin, § 171, 8.
Staupitz, § 112, 6; 122, 1.
Stedingers, § 109, 3.
Steffens, § 174, 3; 177, 2.
Stein, Baron v., § 176, 1.
Steinbart, § 171, 4, 6.
Steinmetz, § 167, 8.
Stephan I., § 35, 3.
” II., § 66, 2; 78, 7; 82, 1.
” III., § 60, 2; 82, 1.
” IV., § 82, 4.
” V., VI., § 82, 8.
” IX., § 96, 6.
” St., § 93, 8; 96, 3.
” of Palecz, § 119, 4, 5.
” ” Sunik [Sünik], § 72, 2.
” ” Tigerno, § 98, 2.
” Mart., § 194, 1.
Stephanas, § 17, 4.
Stephen Langton, § 96, 18.
Stier, § 181, 1; 183, 4.
Stigmatization, § 105, 4; 188, 3.
Stirner, Max., § 212, 1.
Stolberg, § 5, 6; 165, 6.
Storch, Nich., § 124, 1.
Storr, § 171, 8.
Strassburg, § 125, 1.
” Minster, § 104, 13.
Strauss, Dav. Fr., § 174, 1; 182, 6, 8; 199, 4.
Streoneshalch, Syn., § 77, 6.
Strossmayer, § 189, 3, 4.
Stuart, Mary, § 139, 5.
Studites, § 44, 4.
Sturm of Fulda, § 78, 4, 5.
Stylites, § 44, 6; 78, 3; 85, 6.
Suarez, § 149, 14.
_Subintroductæ_, § 39, 3.
Subordinationists, § 33, 1.
Suevi, § 76, 4.
Suffragan Bishops, § 84.
Sully, § 139, 17.
Sulpicius Severus, § 47, 17.
_Summa_ of Holy Scripture, § 125, 2.
Summaries, Württemb., § 160, 6.
_Summis desiderantes_, § 117, 4.
Summists, § 102, 4.
_Summus Episcopus_, § 167, 3.
Sun, Children of, § 71, 2.
Sunday, Fest. of, § 17, 7; 37; 56, 1.
Sunnites, § 65, 1.
_Supplicationes_, § 59, 9.
Supralapsarians, § 161, 1.
Supernaturalists, § 171, 8; 182, 4, 5.
Suso, H., § 114, 5.
Sutri, Syn., § 96, 4.
Swabian Articles, § 132, 5.
” Halle, Sect in, § 108, 6.
Sweden, § 80; 93, 3; 139, 1; 201, 2.
Swedenborgians, § 170, 5; 211, 4.
Sweyn, § 93, 2.
Switzerland, § 78, 1; 130; 138; 162, 6; 169, 2; 190, 3; 199.
Sydow, § 180, 4.
Syllabus, § 185, 2.
Sylvester I., § 42, 1; 46, 3; 59, 5; 82, 2.
Sylvester II., § 94; 96, 3.
” III., § 96, 4.
” Bern., § 102, 9.
_Symbolum Apost._, § 35, 2; 59, 2.
” _Athan._, § 59, 2.
” _Nic. Constant._, § 59, 2.
” _Nicænum_, § 50, 1.
Symmachus, Pope, § 46, 8.
” Prefect, § 42, 4.
Sympherosa, § 32, 8.
Synagogues, § 8, 3.
Syncretist Controv., § 159, 3.
Synergists, § 53, 1.
Synesius, § 47, 7; 59, 4.
_Syngramma Suevic._, § 131, 1.
Synod, Holy Russian, § 166.
” The Holy Athens, § 207, 1.
Synods, § 34, 5; 43, 2.
_Synodus palmaris_, § 46, 8.
Syrians, § 184, 9; 207, 2.
Syzigies, § 27, 3; 28, 3.
Tabernaculum, § 104, 3.
Taborites, § 119, 7.
Taepings, § 211, 15.
Tafel, Imm., § 211, 4.
Tahiti, § 184, 6.
Talmud, § 25.
Tamerlane, § 72, 1; 93, 15.
Tamuls, § 184, 5.
Tanchelm, § 108, 9.
Tartars, § 73, 1.
Tasso, § 149, 15.
Tatian, § 27, 10; 30, 10.
Tauler, § 114, 2.
Teellinck, § 161, 4.
Teetotallers, § 202, 9.
Telesphorus, § 22, 2.
Teller, § 171, 4, 7.
Templars, § 98, 8; 112, 7.
Terminants, § 98, 3.
Terminism, § 167, 2.
Territorial System, § 167, 5.
Tersteegen, § 169, 1.
Tertiaries, § 93, 3, 5.
Tertullian, § 31, 10; 33, 4, 9; 34, 8; 40, 3.
Tertullianists, § 40, 3.
_Tessareskaidecatites_, § 37, 2.
Test Act, § 153, 6; 155, 3; 202, 5.
Testam. of XII. Patri., § 32, 3.
Tetzel, § 122, 2.
Teutonic Knights, § 98, 8; 93, 13.
Theatines, § 149, 7.
Thecla, § 32, 6.
Theiner, § 186, 1; 187, 4; 191, 7.
Theodelinde, § 76, 8.
Theodemir, § 92, 2.
Theodo I., II., § 78, 2.
Theodora, § 46, 9; 52, 6; 71, 1.
Theodore of Abyssinia, § 182, 9.
Theodoret, § 47, 9; 52, 3, 4.
Theodoric, § 46, 8; 76, 7.
” of Freiburg, § 103, 10.
” of Niem, § 118, 5.
Theodorus, Pope, § 52, 1.
” Ascidas, § 52, 8.
” Balsamon, § 43, 3.
” Lector, § 5, 1.
” of Mopsuestia, § 47, 9; 48, 1; 52, 3; 53, 4.
” Studita, § 66, 4.
” of Tarsus, § 90, 8.
Theodosius the Great, § 42, 4; 47, 15; 50, 4.
Theodosius II., § 42, 4.
Theodotians, § 33, 3.
Theodulf of Orleans, § 89, 2; 90, 2.
Theognis of Nicæa, § 50, 1.
Theonas, § 50, 1.
Theopaschites, § 52, 6.
Theophanies, § 96, 2.
Theophilus, Emperor, § 66, 4.
” of Alexandria, § 42, 4; 51, 2, 3.
” ” Antioch, § 30, 10.
” ” Din, § 64, 4.
” ” Moscow, § 166, 1.
Theophylact, § 68, 5.
Θεοτόκος, § 52, 2, 3.
Therapeutæ, § 10, 1.
Theresa, St., § 149, 6, 15, 16.
_Thesaurus supererogat._, § 106, 2.
Thiers, § 203, 5.
Thiersch, § 211, 10.
Thietberga, § 82, 7.
Thietgaut of Treves, § 82, 7.
Thilo, § 160, 3.
Tholuck, § 182, 4.
Thomas Aquinas, § 103, 6; 96, 23; 104, 4, 10.
Thomas Becket, § 96, 16.
” Bradwardine, § 113, 2.
” of Celano, § 104, 10.
” à Kempis, § 112, 9; 114, 7.
Thomas Christians, § 52, 3.
Thomasius, Chr., § 117, 4; 159, 3; 167, 4, 5.
Thomasius, Gottfr., § 182, 13.
Thomassinus, § 158, 1.
Thomists, § 113, 3.
Thontracians, § 71, 2.
Thorn, Declarat., § 153, 7.
” Massacre, § 165, 4.
” Relig. Confer., § 153, 7; 154, 4.
Thorwaldsen, § 174, 9.
Thrasimund, § 76, 3.
_Thuribulum_, § 60, 5.
_Thurificati_, § 22, 5.
Tiara, Papal, § 96, 23.
Tiberius, § 22, 1.
Tieck, § 174, 5.
Tieftrunk, § 171, 7.
Tillemont, § 158, 2; 5, 2.
Tillotson, § 161, 3.
Timotheus Älurus [Aëlurus], § 52, 5.
Tindal, Matt., § 171, 1.
” William, § 139, 4.
Tiridates III., § 64, 3.
Tischendorf, § 182, 11.
Titian, § 115, 13; 149, 11.
_Tituli_, § 84, 2.
Titus of Bostra, § 54, 1.
Toland, § 171, 1.
Toledo, Syn., § 76, 2.
Toleration Acts, English, § 155, 3; 202, 5.
” Edict, Austr., § 165, 10.
” Patent, Pruss., § 193, 3.
Tolomeo of Lucca, § 5, 1.
Tolstoi, § 206, 1.
Tonsure, § 45, 1; 77, 3.
Tooth, Arth., § 202, 3.
Torgau, Articles of, § 132, 7.
” Book of, § 141, 12.
” League of, § 126, 5.
Torquemada, John, § 110, 15; 112, 4.
” Thomas, § 117, 2.
Toulouse, Syn., § 105, 5; 108, 2; 109, 2.
Tours, Syn., § 101, 2; 110, 13.
Tractarianism, § 202, 2.
Tradition, § 33, 4.
Traditors, § 22, 6.
Traducianism, § 53, 1.
Trajan, § 22, 2.
Tranquebar, § 167, 9.
Translations, § 57, 1.
Transept, § 60, 1.
Transubstantiation, § 58, 2; 104, 3.
Transylvania, § 139, 20.
Trappists, § 156, 8.
Tremellius, § 143, 5.
Trent, Council of, § 149, 2; 136, 4.
_Treuga Dei_, § 105, 1.
Tribur, Princes’ Diet, § 96, 7.
” Syn., § 83, 3.
Trinitarian Controversy, § 32; 50.
” Order, § 98, 2.
Trinity, Festival of the, § 104, 7.
” Order of the Holy, § 149, 4.
Trishagion, § 52, 5, 6.
Trithemius, § 113, 7.
_Trivium_, § 90, 8.
Troparies, § 59, 4.
Troubadours, § 105, 6.
_Trullanum, I. Conc._, § 52, 8.
” _II. ” _, § 63, 2; 45, 2.
Tübingen, § 120, 3.
Turkey, § 207.
Turrecremata [Torquemada], John, § 110, 15; 112, 4.
Turrecremata [Torquemada], Thos., § 117, 2.
Turretin, J. A., § 169, 2, 6.
Turribius, § 54, 2.
Tutilo, § 88, 6.
Twesten, § 182, 10.
Tychonius, § 48, 1.
Typus, § 52, 8.
Tyrol, § 193, 4.
Tyre, Syn., § 50, 2.
Ubertino de Casale, § 108, 6.
_Ubiquitas Corp. Chr._, § 141, 9.
Udo, § 62, 1.
Ugolino, § 165, 12.
Uhlhorn, § 193, 8.
Uhlich, § 176, 1.
Ulenberg, § 149, 15.
Ulfilas, § 76, 1.
Ullmann, § 182, 10; 196, 3.
Ulrich of Augsb., § 84, 3.
” ” Württemb., § 133, 3.
Ulrici, § 174, 2; 211, 17.
Ultramontanism, § 188; 197.
Umbreit, § 182, 11.
_Unam Sanctam_, § 110, 1.
_Unctio extrema_, § 61, 3; 70, 2; 104, 5.
Uniformity, Act of, § 139, 6; 155, 3.
Unigenitus, § 165, 7.
Union Attempts in the Eastern Church, § 67, 4, 5; 152, 2;
175, 4-6.
Union, Catholic Protestant, § 137, 8; 153, 7.
Union, Lutheran Reformed, § 154, 4; 167, 4; 169, 1, 2.
Union, Prussian, § 177, 1.
Unitarians, § 148; 163, 1; 211, 4.
United Brethren, § 119, 8.
” Greeks, § 72, 4; 151, 3; 206, 2.
Universities, § 99, 3.
” Bill, § 199, 5.
Urban II., § 96, 10; 94.
” III., § 96, 16.
” IV., § 96, 20.
” V., § 110, 5; 117, 2.
” VI., § 110, 6.
” VII., § 149, 3.
” VIII., § 156, 1, 4, 9; 157, 5.
Urbanus Rhegius, § 127, 3.
Ursacius, § 50, 3.
Ursinus of Rome, § 46, 4.
” Zach., § 144, 1; 169, 1.
Ursula, St., § 104, 9.
Ursuline Nuns, § 149, 7.
Ussher, § 161, 6, 7.
Utah, § 211, 10.
Utraquists, § 119, 6.
Utrecht, Church of, § 165, 7.
” Union of, § 139, 12.
Vadian, § 130, 4.
Valdez, § 108, 10.
Valence, Syn., § 91, 5.
Valens, Emperor, § 50, 4; 42, 4.
Valentinian I., § 42, 4.
” II., § 42, 4.
” III., § 46, 3; 46, 7.
Valentinus, § 27, 4.
Valerian, § 22, 5.
Valla, § 120, 1.
Vallombrosians, § 98, 1.
Valsainte, § 186, 2.
Valteline Massacre, § 153, 3.
Vandals, § 76, 3.
Vanne, Congreg. of, § 156, 7.
Varanes I., § 29, 1.
” III., § 64, 2.
_Variata_, § 141, 4.
Vasa, Gustavus, § 139, 1; 142, 8.
Vasquez, § 149, 10.
Vatican, § 110, 15.
” Council, § 189.
Vatke, § 182, 18.
Vaud, Canton, § 199, 5.
Vega, Lope de, § 158, 3.
Velasquez, § 98, 8.
Venantius Fortunatus, § 48, 6.
Venema, § 169, 6.
Venezuela, § 209, 2.
Vercelli, Syn., § 101, 2.
Verdun, Treaty of, § 82, 5.
Vergerius, § 134, 1; 139, 24.
Vermilius, Pet. Mart., § 139, 5, 24.
Veronica, § 18, 2.
Versailles, Edict of, § 165, 5.
Vespers, Sicilian, § 96, 22.
_Vestibulum_, § 60, 1.
Vestments, Ecclest., § 59, 7.
Veuillot, § 188, 1; 203, 3.
_Viaticum_, § 104, 5.
Vicelinus, § 93, 9.
Victor I., § 33, 3, 4; 37, 2; 40, 2; 41, 1.
Victor II., § 96, 5.
” III., § 96, 10.
” IV., § 96, 15.
” of Vita, § 48, 2.
” Emmanuel I., § 204, 1.
” ” II., § 185, 3; 204, 1, 2.
Victor, St., Monastery of, § 102, 4, 8.
Victorinus, Marius, § 47, 14.
” of Pettau, § 31, 12; 33, 9.
Victorius, § 56, 3.
Vienna, Congress of, § 192, 3.
” Peace of, § 139, 20.
Vienne, Council of, § 110, 2; 112, 1, 2, 7.
Vigilantius, § 62, 2.
Vigilius, § 46, 9; 52, 6.
Vigils, § 35; 56, 4.
Vikings, § 93, 1.
Villegagnon, § 143, 7.
Vilmar, § 182, 14; 194, 4.
Vincent of Beauvais, § 99, 6.
Vincent Ferrari, § 115, 2; 110, 6.
” of Lerins, § 47, 21; 53, 5.
” de Paula, § 156, 8.
Vinci, Leon. da, § 115, 13.
Vinet, § 199, 5.
Viret, § 138, 1.
Virgilius of Salzburg, § 78, 6.
Virgins, The 11,000, § 104, 9.
Visigoths, § 76, 2.
Visitation, Articles of, § 141, 13.
_Vita quadragesimalis_, § 112, 8.
Vitalis Ordenicus, § 5, 1.
Vitus, § 46, 3.
Vitringa, § 161, 6.
Vladimir, § 73, 4.
Vladislaw, § 119, 7.
” IV., § 153, 7.
Voetius, § 161, 4, 5, 7; 162, 4; 163, 7.
Volkmann, § 169, 1.
Voltaire, § 165, 5, 14, 15.
Vorstius, § 161, 2.
Vossius, § 171, 11.
Vulgate, § 59, 1; 136, 4; 149, 14.
Waddington, § 203, 5, 8.
Wafers, § 104, 3.
Wagner, Rich., § 174, 10.
Wala, § 82, 5.
Walafrid Strabo, § 90, 4; 91, 3.
Walch, J. G., § 167, 4.
” Fr., § 171, 8.
Waldemar I., § 93, 10.
” II., § 93, 12.
Waldensians, § 108, 10-12; 119, 9, 10; 139, 25; 153, 5; 204, 4.
Waldrade, § 82, 8.
Wallace, § 211, 17.
Walter of Habenichts, § 94, 1.
” ” St. Victor, § 102, 9.
” v. d. Vogelweide, § 105, 6.
Walther, Hans, § 142, 5.
” Mich., § 159, 4.
” Dr., § 208, 2, 3.
Walton, Brian, § 161, 6.
Warburton, § 171, 1.
Ward, § 156, 8.
Warnefried, § 90, 3.
Wartburg, § 123, 8.
Watts, Isaac, § 169, 6.
Wazo of Liege, § 109.
Wearmouth, § 85, 4.
Weber, F. W., § 174, 6.
Wecelinus, § 95, 3.
Wechabites, § 65, 1.
Wegelin, § 160, 3.
Wegscheider, § 182, 2.
Weigel, Val., § 146, 2.
Weingarten, § 5, 5.
Weiss, Bern., § 182, 11.
Weissel, § 160, 3.
Wellhausen, § 182, 18.
Wends, § 93, 9.
Wendelin, § 161, 7.
Wenilo, § 91, 5.
Wenzel, § 119, 3.
Wenzeslaw, § 93, 6.
Wertheimer Bible, § 171, 2.
Wesel, John of, § 119, 10.
Wesley, § 169, 3, 4.
Wessel, § 119, 10.
Westeräs, Diet of, § 139, 1.
Westminster Assembly, § 155, 1.
Westphal, § 141, 10.
Westphalia, Peace of, § 153, 2.
” Reform, § 133, 5.
Wette, de, § 182, 3.
Wetterau, § 170.
Wettstein, § 169, 6.
Whitaker, § 143, 5.
Whitefield, § 169, 3, 4.
Whitgift, § 143, 5.
Wibert, § 96, 6, 8.
Wichern, § 183, 1.
Wiclif, § 119, 1.
Wido of Milan, § 97, 5.
Wied, H. v., § 133, 5; 135, 7.
Wieland, § 171, 11.
Wigand, § 141, 10.
Wilberforce, § 184.
Wilfrid, § 77, 6; 78, 3; 83, 3.
Wilgard, § 100.
Wilibrord, § 78, 3.
Willehad, § 78, 3.
William of St. Amour, § 103, 3.
” ” Aquitaine, § 98, 1.
” ” Champeaux, § 101, 1.
” ” Conches, § 102, 9.
” the Conqueror, § 96, 8, 12.
” Durandus, § 113, 3.
” of Modena, § 93, 13.
” ” Nogaret, § 110, 1.
” ” Occam, § 112, 2; 113, 3; 118, 2.
” Rufus, § 96, 12.
” Ruysbroek, § 93, 15.
” of Thierry, § 102, 2, 9.
” ” Tyre, § 94, 3.
” ” Bavaria, § 135, 8; 136, 2, 6; 151, 1.
” IV., V., of Hesse, § 154, 1.
” I. of Orange, § 139, 12.
” III. of Orange, § 153, 6; 155, 3.
” I., German Emperor, § 193; 197.
Williams, John, § 184, 7.
” Roger, § 162, 2; 163, 3.
Willigis, § 96, 2; 97, 2.
Wilsnack, Mirac, host of, § 119, 3.
Wilson, § 172, 5.
Winckelmann, § 165, 6; 174, 9.
Windesheim, § 112, 9.
Windthorst, § 197, 1, 6; 188, 3.
Winer, § 182, 4.
Winfrid, § 78, 4-8.
Wion, § 149, 3.
Wiseman, § 202, 11.
Wishart, § 139, 8.
Wislicenus, § 176, 1.
Witch Hammer, § 117, 4.
” Process, § 117, 4.
Witsius, § 161, 7; 169, 4.
Wittenberg, § 120, 3.
” Catech., § 141, 10.
” Concord., § 133, 8.
” Sketch of Reform, § 135, 9.
Witzel, § 137, 8; 149, 15.
Wolf, J. Chr., § 167, 4.
Wolfenbüttel Fragments, § 171, 6.
Wolff, Chr. v., § 167, 4; 171, 10.
Wolfgang, William, of Palatine Neuburg, § 153, 1.
Wolfram of Eschenb., § 105, 6.
Wöllner, § 171, 5.
Wolmar, Melch., § 138, 2, 8.
Wolsey, § 120, 7.
Woltersdorf [Woltersdorff], § 167, 6, 8.
Woolston, § 171, 1.
Worms Edict, § 123, 7.
” Concordat, § 96, 11.
” Consultation, § 137, 6.
” Relig. Confer., § 135, 2.
Wratislaw, § 79, 3.
Wulflaich, § 78, 3.
Wulfram, § 78, 3.
Württemberg, § 133, 3; 193, 5, 6; 197, 14.
Würzburg, Bish. Congress, § 192, 4.
Wyttenbach, Dan., § 169, 6.
” Thomas, § 130, 1.
Xavier, § 119, 8; 150, 1.
Xenaias, § 59, 1.
Ximenes, § 117, 2; 118, 7; 120, 8, 9.
Young, Brigham, § 211, 12.
Yvon, § 163, 8.
Zacharias, Pope, § 78, 5, 6; 82, 1.
” of Anagni, § 67, 1.
Zapolya, § 139, 20.
_Zelatores_, § 98, 4.
Zell, Matt., § 125, 1.
Zeller, Ed., § 182, 9; 199, 4.
_Zelus domus Dei_, § 153, 2.
Zeno, Philos., § 8, 4.
” Emp., § 52, 5.
” of Verona, § 47, 14.
Zenobia, § 32, 8.
Zephyrinus, § 33, 3, 5; 41, 1.
Zeschwitz, § 182, 14.
Ziegenbalg, § 167, 9.
Zillerthal, § 198.
Zimmermann, § 178, 1; 182, 2.
Zinzendorf, § 168; 170, 2, 3; 171, 3.
Zionites, § 170, 4.
Ziska, § 119, 7.
Zollikofer, § 171, 7.
Zosimus, § 46, 5; 53, 4.
Zschokke, § 176, 1.
Zulu Kaffres, § 184, 3.
Zürich, § 130, 2; 199, 4.
Zwick, § 143, 2.
Zwickau, Prophets of, § 124, 1.
Zwingli, § 130; 131, 1; 132, 4.
FOOTNOTES.
[445] Merimée, “The Russian Impostors: the False Demetrius.”
London, 1852.
[446] Neale, “History of the Holy Eastern Church.” Vol. ii.,
p. 356 ff.
Cyrillus Lucaris, “_Confessio Christianæ Fidei_.”
Geneva, 1633.
Smith, “_Collectanea de Cyrillo Lucario_.” London, 1707.
[447] Stevens, “Life and Times of Gustavus Adolphus.”
New York, 1884.
Trench, “Gustavus Adolphus in Germany, and other Lectures
on the Thirty Years’ War.” London.
Gardiner, “The Thirty Years’ War” in “Epochs of Modern
History.” London, 1881.
[448] Bray, “Revolt of the Protestants of the Cevennes.”
London, 1870.
Poole, “History of the Huguenots of the Dispersion.”
London, 1880.
Agnew, “Protestant Exiles from France in the Reign of
Louis XIV.” 3 vols., London, 1871.
Weiss, “History of French Protestant Refugees.”
London, 1854.
[449] Macaulay, “History of England from the Accession of
James II.” London, 1846.
Hassencamp, “History of Ireland from the Reformation to
the Union.” London, 1888.
Adair, “Rise and Progress of the Presbyterian Church of
Ireland from 1623 to 1670.” Belfast, 1866.
Hamilton, “History of Presbyterian Church in Ireland.”
Edin., 1887.
[450] Butler, “Life of Hugo Grotius.” London, 1826.
Motley, “John of Barneveld.” Vol. ii., New York, 1874.
[451] “An Exposition of the Doctrine of the Catholic Church in
Matters of Controversy.” London, 1685.
“Variations of Protestantism.” 2 vols., Dublin, 1836.
Butler, “Some Account of the Life and Writings of Bishop
Bossuet.” London, 1812.
[452] “The Work of John Durie in behalf of Christian Union in
the Seventeenth Century.” By Dr. Briggs in _Presbyterian
Review_, vol. viii., 1887, pp. 297-300. To which is
attached an account by Durie himself, never before
published, of his own union efforts from July, 1631, till
September, 1633. See pp. 301-309.
[453] Clarendon, “History of the Rebellion in England,
1649-1666.” 3 vols., Oxford, 1667.
Burnet, “History of his Own Time, 1660-1713.” 2 vols.,
London, 1724.
Guizot, “History of English Revolution of 1640.”
London, 1856.
Gardiner, “History of England, 1603-1642.” 10 vols.,
London, 1885.
Marsden, “History of Early and Later Puritans, down to
the Ejection of the Nonconformists in 1662.” 2 vols.,
London, 1853.
Masson, “Life of Milton.” 4 vols., London, 1859 ff.
[454] Mitchell, “The Westminster Assembly.” London, 1882.
Mitchell and Struthers, “Minutes of Westminster Assembly.”
Edinburgh, 1874.
Macpherson, “Handbook to Westminster Confession.” 2nd ed.,
Edinburgh, 1882.
Hetherington, “History of Westminster Assembly.” 4th ed.,
Edinburgh, 1878.
[455] Carlyle, “Cromwell’s Letters and Speeches.” 2 vols.,
London, 1845.
Guizot, “Life of Cromwell.” London, 1877.
Paxton Hood, “Oliver Cromwell.” London, 1882.
Picton, “Oliver Cromwell.” London, 1878.
Harrison, “Oliver Cromwell.” London, 1888.
Barclay, “The Inner Life of the Religious Societies of the
Commonwealth.” London, 1877.
[456] Guizot, “Richard Cromwell and the Restoration of
Charles II.” 2 vols., London, 1856.
Macpherson, “History of Great Britain from the
Restoration.” London, 1875.
[457] Bargraves, “Alexander VII. and His Cardinals.” Ed. by
Robertson, London, 1866.
[458] Cunningham, “Discussions on Church Principles.”
Edin., 1863, chap. v.: “The Liberties of the Gallican
Church.” Pp. 133-163.
[459] Von Gebler, “Galileo Galilei and the Roman Curia.” Transl.
by Sturge, London, 1879.
Madden, “Galileo and the Inquisition.” London, 1863.
Brewster, “Martyrs of Science.” Edin., 1841.
Von Gebler denies that any condemnation _ex cathedra_
was given.
[460] Wilson, “Life of Vincent de Paul.” London, 1874.
[461] Marsolier, “Life of Francis de Sales.” Translated by
Coombes, London, 1812.
[462] “Golden Thoughts from the ‘Spiritual Guide’ of Molinos.”
With preface by J. H. Shorthouse, London, 1883.
[463] Upham, “Life, Religious Opinions, and Experience of
Madame de la Mothe Guyon, with an account of Fénelon.”
London, 1854.
Brooke, “Exemplary Life of the Pious Lady Guion.”
Bristol, 1806.
Butler, “Life of Fénelon.” London, 1810.
[464] Beard, “Port Royal.” 2 vols., London, 1861.
St. Amour, “Journal in France and Rome, containing Account
of Five Points of Controversy between Jansenists and
Molinists.” London, 1664.
Schimmelpenninck, “Select Memoirs of Port Royal.” Fourth
edition, 2 vols., London, 1835.
[465] Dorner, “History of Protestant Theology.” Vol. ii.,
pp. 98-251.
[466] Bruce, “Humiliation of Christ.” P. 131, Edin., 1876.
[467] Dowding, “German Theology during the Thirty Years’ War:
Life and Correspondence of G. Calixt.” 2 vols.,
Oxford, 1863.
[468] Wildenhahn, “Life of Spener.” Translated by Wenzel,
Philadelphia, 1881.
Guericke, “Life of A. H. Francke.” London, 1847.
[469] Jennings, “The Rosicrucians: their Rites and Mysteries.”
London, 1887.
[470] Martensen, “Life and Works of Jacob Boehme.” London, 1886.
[471] All the translations of hymns referred to in this and the
preceding section are from Miss Winkworth’s “_Lyra
Germanica_.” London, 1885.
[472] The “Works of Arminius.” Transl. by Nicholls, to which
are added Brandt’s “Life of Arminius.” Etc., 3 vols.,
London, 1825.
Scott, “Translation of Articles of Synod of Dort.”
London, 1818.
Hales, “Letters from the Synod of Dort.” Glasgow, 1765.
Calder, “Life of Simon Episcopius.” New York, 1837.
Cunningham, “Reformation and Theology of Reformation.”
Essay VIII., “Calvinism and Arminianism.” Pp. 412-470.
Motley, “John of Barneveldt.” 2 vols., London, 1874.
[473] Barclay, “The Inner Life of the Religious Societies of the
Commonwealth.” Second ed., London, 1877.
Dr. Stoughton’s “History of Religion in England from
Opening of Long Parliament to End of Eighteenth Century.”
London.
[474] See Macpherson, “Presbyterianism.” (Edin., 1883), pp. 8-10,
where charges of intolerance such as those made against
Presbyterianism in the text are repudiated.
[475] Masson, “Life of John Milton.” 4 vols., London, 1859.
Pattison, “Milton.” In “English Men of Letters” series,
London, 1880.
[476] “_Relquiæ Baxterianæ_: Baxter’s Narrative of most Memorable
Passages in his own Life.” London, 1696.
Orme, “Life and Times of Richard Baxter, with Critical
Examination of his Writings.” London, 1830.
Stalker, “Baxter” in “Evangelical Succession Lectures.”
Second series, Edinburgh, 1883.
[477] Froude disputes this, and says, p. 12, that probably he
was on the side of the Royalists. Brown has shown it to
be almost certain that in 1644, not 1642, Bunyan, then
in his sixteenth year, joined the Parliamentary forces.
See Brown’s “Life.” Pp. 42-52.
[478] Brown, “Life of Bunyan.” London, 1885.
Autobiography in “Grace Abounding.” 1622.
Southey, “Life of John Bunyan.” London, 1830.
Macaulay, “Essay on Bunyan.” In _Edinburgh Review_, 1830.
Froude, “Bunyan,” in “English Men of Letters.” London, 1880.
Nicoll, “Bunyan,” in “Evangelical Succession Lectures.”
Third series, Edinburgh, 1883.
[479] “Life of John Eliot, Apostle of the Indians.” By John
Wilson, afterwards of Bombay, Edin., 1828.
[480] Crosby, “History of the English Baptists.” 4 vols.,
London, 1728.
Ivimey, “History of the English Baptists from 1688-1760.”
2 vols., London, 1830.
Cramp, “History of the Baptists to end of 18th Century.”
3 vols., London, 1872.
[481] Backus, “History of the English-American Baptists.”
2 vols., Boston, 1777.
Cox and Hoby, “The Baptists in America.” New York, 1836.
Hague, “The Baptists Transplanted.” Etc., New York, 1846.
[482] Of special importance for the early history of the
Quakers are,
“Letters of Early Friends.” Edited by Robert Barclay,
a descendant of the Quaker apostle, London, 1841.
“Fox’s Journal; or, Historical Accounts of his Life,
Travels, and Sufferings.” London, 1694.
Penn, “Summary of History, Doctrines, and Discipline of
Friends.” London, 1692.
Tallack, “George Fox; the Quakers and the Early Baptists.”
London, 1868.
Bickley, “George Fox and the Early Quakers.” London, 1884.
Stoughton, “W. Penn, Founder of Pennsylvania.” London, 1883.
[483] Sewel, “History of the Quakers.” 2 vols., London, 1834.
Cunningham, “The Quakers, from their Origin in 1624 to the
Present Time.” London, 1868.
Barclay, “Apology for the True Christian Divinity: a
Vindication of Quakerism.” 4th ed., London, 1701.
Clarkson, “A Portraiture of Quakerism.” 3 vols.,
London, 1806.
Rowntree, “Quakerism, Past and Present.” London, 1839.
[484] Heard, “The Russian Church and Russian Dissent.”
London, 1887.
Mackenzie Wallace, “Russia.” Chaps. xiv., xx., 2 vols.,
London, 1877.
Palmer, “The Patriarch and the Tsar.” 6 vols., London,
1871-1876.
[485] Ueberweg, “History of Philosophy.” Vol. ii., pp. 31-135.
Pünjer, “History of the Christian Philosophy of Religion
from the Reformation to Kant.” Edin., 1887.
Pfleiderer, “Philosophy of Religion.” Vol. i., London, 1887.
Erdmann’s “History of Philosophy.” 3 vols., London, 1889.
[486] “Bacon’s Works.” Ed. by Spedding, Ellis, and Heath,
14 vols., London, 1870.
Spedding, “Letters and Life of Lord Bacon.” 2 vols.,
London, 1862.
Macaulay on Bacon in _Edinburgh Review_ for 1837.
Church, “Bacon,” in vol. v. of “Collected Works.”
London, 1888.
Nichol, “Bacon: Life and Philosophy.” 2 vols., Edin., 1888.
[487] “Descartes’ Method, Meditations, and Principles of
Philosophy.” Transl. by Prof. Veitch, Edin., 1850 ff.
Fischer, “Descartes and his School.” London, 1887.
[488] Willis, “Spinoza: his Ethics, Life, and Influence on Modern
Thought.” London, 1870.
Pollock, “Spinoza: his Life and Philosophy.” London, 1880.
Martineau, “Spinoza.” London, 1882.
“Spinoza, Four Essays by Land, Von Floten, Fischer, and
Renan.” Edited by Prof. Knight, London, 1884.
[489] “Locke’s Complete Works.” 9 vols., London, 1853.
Cousin, “Elements of Psychology: a Critical Examination of
Locke’s Essay.” Edin., 1856.
Webb, “Intellectualism of Locke.” London, 1858.
[490] Guhrauer, “Leibnitz: a Biography.” Transl. by Mackie,
Boston, 1845.
[491] Leland, “View of Principal Deistical Writers in England.”
2nd ed., 2 vols., London, 1755.
Halyburton, “Natural Religion Insufficient; or, A Rational
Inquiry into the Principles of the Modern Deists.”
Edin., 1714.
Tulloch, “Rational Theology and Christian Philosophy in
England in the 17th Century.” 2 vols., Edin., 1872.
Cairns, “Unbelief in the 18th Century.” Chap. ii.,
“Unbelief in the 17th Century.” Edin., 1881.
[492] Lecky, “History of the Rise and Influence of the Spirit of
Rationalism in Europe.” 2 vols., London, 1873.
Hagenbach, “German Rationalism.” Edin., 1865.
Hagenbach, “History of Church in 18th and 19th Centuries.”
2 vols., London, 1870.
Leslie Stephen, “History of English Thought in the
18th Century.” 2 vols., London, 1876.
Cairns, “Unbelief in the 18th Century.” Edin., 1881.
[493] Wilson, “The Christian Brothers, their Origin and Work.
With a Sketch of the Life of their Founder, the Venerable
Jean Baptiste de la Salle.” London, 1883.
[494] Neale, “History of the so called Jansenist Church of
Holland.” Oxford, 1858.
[495] Cairns, “Unbelief in the Eighteenth Century.” Chap. iv.,
“Unbelief in France.” Edinburgh, 1881.
Morley, “Diderot and the Encyclopedists.” 2 vols.,
London, 1878.
Morley, “Voltaire.” London, 1872.
Lange, “History of Materialism.” 3 vols., London, 1877.
[496] This saying is usually attributed to Voltaire. He used the
expression in attacking Pierre Bayle.
Erdmann’s “Hist. of Phil.” Vol. ii., p. 158.
Ueberweg, “Hist. of Phil.” Vol. ii., p. 125.
[497] Pressensé, “The Church and the Revolution.” London, 1869.
Jervis, “The Gallican Church and the Revolution.”
London, 1882.
[498] Hagenbach, “History of Church in the 18th and
19th Centuries.” Vol. i., pp. 109, 116; 2 vols.,
New York, 1869.
Dorner, “History of Protestant Theology.” Vol. ii., p. 208.
[499] Dorner, “History of Protestant Theology.” Vol. ii.,
pp. 208-227.
[500] Dorner, “History of Protestant Theology.” Vol. ii.,
pp. 266-279.
Hagenbach, “History of Church in 18th and 19th Centuries.”
Vol. i., pp. 117-127.
[501] Dorner, “History of Protestant Theology.” Vol. ii.,
pp. 259-261.
Geffcken, “Church and State.” 2 vols., Lon., 1887; vol. i.,
pp. 456-503.
[502] Burney, “Life of Handel.” London, 1784.
[503] Kelly, “Life and Work of Von Bogatsky: a Chapter from the
Religious Life of the Eighteenth Century.” London, 1889.
[504] Hough, “The History of Christianity in India.” 5 vols.,
London, 1839.
Sherring, “History of Missions in India.” Edited by Storrow.
London, 1888.
Pearson, “Memoirs, Life, and Correspondence of Chr. Fr.
Schwartz.” Etc., 2 vols., London, 1834.
[505] Hagenbach, “History of the Christian Church in the 18th
and 19th Centuries.” New York, 1869; Lectures XVIII.
and XIX., pp. 398-445.
[506] Spangenberg, “Life of Count Zinzendorf.” London, 1838.
[507] Spangenberg, “Account of Manner in which the _Unitas
Fratrum_ Propagate the Gospel, and Carry on their
Missions among the Heathen.” London, 1788.
Holmes, “Historical Sketch of the Missions of the United
Brethren for the Propagation of the Gospel among the
Heathen from their Commencement down to 1817.”
London, 1827.
[508] “Tersteegen: Life and Character, with Extracts from His
Letters and Writings.” London, 1832.
Winkworth, “Christian Singers of Germany.” London, 1869.
[509] For a slightly different account see Tyerman, vol. i.,
p. 66.
[510] Wesley himself continued to preach in the open air till
nearly the end of the year 1790.
[511] Further details as to the organization of the societies
are given in Tyerman, 1st ed., vol. i., pp. 444, 445.
[512] Southey, “Life of John Wesley.” London, 1820.
Isaac Taylor, “Wesley and Wesleyanism.” London, 1851.
Tyerman, “Wesley’s Life and Times.” 2 vols., 4th ed.,
London, 1877.
Urlin, “Churchman’s Life of Wesley.” London, 1880.
Abbey and Overton, “English Church in 18th Century.”
2 vols., London, 1879.
Lecky, “History of England in the 18th Century.” 2 vols.,
London, 1878.
Stoughton, “History of Religion in England to End of
18th Century.” 6 vols., London, 1882.
Jackson, “Life of Charles Wesley.” 2 vols., London, 1841.
Tyerman, “Life of Whitefield.” 2 vols., London, 1877.
Macdonald, “Fletcher of Madeley.” London.
Smith, “History of Methodism.” 3 vols., London, 1857.
Stevens, “History of Methodism.” 3 vols., New York, 1858.
Stevens, “History of the Methodist Episcopal Church in the
United States.” 4 vols., New York, 1864.
Bangs, “History of the Methodist Episcopal Church.” 4 vols.,
New York, 1839.
[513] Hagenbach, “History of Church in 18th and 19th Centuries.”
Vol. i., pp. 159-164.
[514] Hagenbach, “History of the Church in the 18th and
19th Centuries.” Vol. i., pp. 168-175.
[515] Tafel, “Documents concerning the Life and Character of
Swedenborg.” 3 vols., London, 1875.
White, “Emanuel Swedenborg, his Life and Writings.”
2 vols., London, 1867.
[516] Evans, “Shakers: Compendium of Origin, History, Principles,
and Doctrines of the United Society of Believers in
Christ’s Second Coming.” New York, 1859.
Dixon, “New America.” 2 vols., 8th ed., London, 1869.
Nordhoff, “The Communistic Societies of the United States.”
London, 1874.
[517] Pusey, “Historical Inquiry into the Causes of the Prevalence
of Rationalism in Germany.” London, 1828.
Rose, “The State of Protestantism in Germany.” Oxford, 1829.
Saintes, “A Critical History of Rationalism in Germany, from
its Origin till the Present Time.” London, 1849.
Lecky, “History of the Rise and Influence of the Spirit of
Rationalism in Europe.” 2 vols., London, 1873.
Farrar, “Critical History of Free Thought in Reference to
the Christian Religion.” London, 1863.
Hagenbach, “German Rationalism.” Edinburgh, 1865.
Hurst, “History of Rationalism.” New York, 1865.
Gostwick, “German Culture and Christianity, their
Controversy, 1770-1880.” New York, 1882.
[518] Stephen, “History of English Thought in the 18th Century.”
2 vols., London, 1876.
Cairns, “Unbelief in the 18th Century.” Edinburgh, 1881.
Pünjer, “History of Christian Philosophy of Religion from
Reformation to Kant.” § 5, “The English Deists.”
Edinburgh, 1887.
[519] Halliwell, “The Early History of English Freemasonry.”
London, 1840.
[520] Ritschl, “History of Christian Doctr. of Justification and
Reconciliation.” Pp. 347-426.
Dorner, “History of Protestant Theology.” Vol. ii.,
pp. 277-292.
Hagenbach, “History of The Church in The 18th and
19th Centuries.” Vol. i., pp. 251-321.
[521] Chalybæus, “Historical Development of Speculative
Philosophy, from Kant to Hegel.” Edin., 1854.
Räbiger, “Theological Encyclopædia.” Vol. i., pp. 73-76.
[522] Stahr, “Lessing: his Life and Works.” Translated by
G. Evans, 2 vols., Boston, 1866.
Sime, “Lessing, his Life and Writings.” 2 vols.,
London, 1877.
Zimmern, “G. E. Lessing: his Life and Works.” London, 1878.
Smith, “Lessing as a Theologian.” In the _Theological
Review_, July, 1868.
[523] Russell, “A Short Account of the Life and History of
Pestalozzi.” Based on De Guemp’s “_L’Histoire de
Pestalozzi_.” London, 1888. To be followed by a complete
English translation of De Guemp’s work.
[524] Marshman, “Life and Times of Marshman, Carey, and Ward.”
2 vols., London, 1859.
Smith, “Life of William Carey.” London, 1886.
Wilson, “Missionary Voyage of the Ship _Duff_.”
London, 1799.
Morison, “Fathers and Founders of the London Missionary
Society.” London, 1844.
[525] Baur, “Religious Life in Germany.” London, 1872,
pp. 177-196.
[526] Kahnis, “Internal History of German Protestantism since
the Middle of Last Century.” Edin., 1856.
[527] Hagenbach, “History of Church in Eighteenth and Nineteenth
Centuries.” Vol. ii., pp. 413-416.
[528] Mombert, “Faith Victorious, being an Account of the Life,
Labour, and Times of Dr. J. W. Ebel, 1714-1861, compiled
from authentic sources.” London, 1882.
Dixon, “Spiritual Wives.” London, 1868.
[529] Strack, “The Work of Bible Revision in Germany.” In
_Expositor_, third series, vol. ii., pp. 178-187.
[530] See papers by Driver, Cheyne, Davidson, Kirkpatrick, in
_Expositor_ for 1886-1888, on various books in Revised
Old Testament.
Westcott, “Some Lessons of Revised Version of New
Testament.” In _Expositor_, third series, vol. v.,
pp. 81, 241, 453.
Jennings and Lowe, “Revised Version of Old Testament:
a Critical Estimate.” In _Expositor_, third Series,
vol. ii., pp. 57, etc.
[531] “Schleiermacher’s Life in Letters.” Translated by Rowan,
London, 1860.
Baur, “Religious Life in Germany.” London, 1872, pp. 197 ff.
Dorner, “History of Protestant Theology.” Vol. ii.,
pp. 374-395.
[532] Cheyne, “Life and Works of Heinrich Ewald.” In _Expositor_,
third series, vol. iv., pp. 241 ff., 361 ff.
[533] There are English translations of his “Life of Christ.”
“First Planting of Christianity.” “Antignostikus.”
“History of Christian Dogmas.” “Christian Life in the
Early and Middle Ages.” All published by Bohn.
[534] Zeller, “David Frederick Strauss, in his Life and
Writings.” London, 1874. Translations: “Life of Jesus
Critically Treated.” 1846; “Life of Jesus for the German
People.” 1865; “The Old Faith and the New.” 1874; “Ulrich
von Hutten.” 1874.
[535] Simon, “Isaac August Dorner.” In _Presbyterian Review_ for
October, 1887, pp. 569-616.
[536] Rothe, “Still Hours.” Translated by Miss Stoddart, with
Introductory Essay on Rothe by Rev. J. Macpherson.
London, 1886.
[537] Galloway, “The Theology of Ritschl.” In _Presbyterian
Review_ for April, 1889, pp. 192-209.
[538] Series of papers in _Good Words_ for 1860, pp. 377 ff.
[539] Fleming Stevenson, “The Blue Flag of Kaiserswerth.” In
_Good Words_ for 1861, pp. 121 ff., 143 ff.
[540] Owen, “History of the First Ten Years of the Bible
Society.” 3 vols., London, 1816.
[541] Wiseman, “Recollections of the Last Four Popes.” 3 vols.,
London, 1853.
Mendham, “Index of Prohibited Books by order of
Gregory XVI.” London, 1840.
[542] Legge, “Pius IX. to the Restoration of 1850.” 2 vols.,
London, 1872.
Trollope, “Life of Pius IX.” 2 vols., London, 1877.
Shea, “Life and Pontificate of Pius IX.” New York, 1877.
[543] Geffcken, “Church and State.” Vol. ii., pp. 269-293: “The
Italian Question and the Papal States.”
[544] Geffcken, “Church and State.” Vol. ii., pp. 236-238.
[545] Bridges, “Life of Martin Boos.” London, 1836.
[546] Hamberger, “Sketch of the Character of the Theosophy
of Baader.” Translated in _American Presbyterian and
Theological Review_, 1869.
[547] Laing, “Notes on the Rise, Progress, etc., of the German
Catholic Church of Ronge and Czerski.” London, 1845.
[548] Manning, “The True History of the Vatican Council.”
London, 1877.
Pomponio Leto, “The Vatican Council, being the impressions
of a contemporary (Card. Vitelleschi), translated from
the Italian with the original documents.” London, 1876.
Quirinus, “Letters from Rome on the Council.” London, 1870.
Janus, “The Pope and the Council.” London, 1869.
Bungener, “Rome and the Council in the Nineteenth Century.”
Edinburgh, 1870.
Arthur, “The Pope, the Kings, and the People, a History
of the Movement to make the Pope Governor of the World,
1864-1871.” 2 vols., London, 1877.
Acton, “History of the Vatican Council.” London, 1871.
Friedrich, “_Documenta ad illum. Conc. Vat._” Nördling, 1871.
Martin (Bishop of Paderborn), “_Omnium Conc. Vat. quæ ad
doctr. et discipl. pertin. docum. Collectio_.” 1873.
[549] Geffcken, “Church and State.” Vol. ii., pp. 501-531.
Smith, “The Falk Legislation from the Political Point of
View.” In the _Theological Review_ for October, 1875.
[550] Geffcken, “Church and State.” 2 vols., London, 1877;
vol. ii., pp. 488-531.
[551] The Austrian May Laws were in some respects more sweeping
than the Prussian (§ 197, 5); but the former were framed
with reference to the police, the latter with reference to
the law. In Prussia the decision, judgment, and sentence in
all cases of contravention and collision were assigned to
the court of law; in Austria they were assigned to the court
of administration, in the last instance to the minister. The
Austrian laws could thus be urged and ignored at pleasure.
[552] Geffeken, “Church and State.” Vol. ii., pp. 469-488.
[553] R. J. Sandeman, “Alexander Vinet.” In “Evangelical
Succession Lectures.” Third Series, Edinburgh, 1884.
Dorner, “History of Protestant Theology.” ii., 470, 478.
[554] Cairns, “The Present Struggle in the National Church of
Holland.” In _Presbyterian Review_ for January, 1888,
pp. 87-108.
Wicksteed, “The Ecclesiastical Institutions of Holland.”
London.
[555] Lumsden, “Sweden, its Religious State and Prospects.”
London, 1855.
[556] Stoughton, “Religion in England during the First Half of
the Present Century, with a Postscript on Subsequent
Events.” 2 vols., London, 1876.
Molesworth, “History of England from 1830 to 1874.”
3 vols., London.
[557] Littledale, “Church Parties.” Art. in the _Contemporary
Review_ for July, 1874, pp. 287-320.
Mozley, “Reminiscences of Oriel College.” London, 1882.
[558] Newman, “_Apologia pro Vita Sua_.” London, 1864.
Weaver, “Puseyism, a Refutation and Exposure.” London, 1843.
[559] The very confused, wholly inadequate, and in some points
positively incorrect statements in the above paragraph
may be supplemented and amended by reference to the
following literature:
Buchanan, “Ten Years’ Conflict.” 2 vols., Edin., 1852.
Moncrieff, “Vindication of the Claim of Right.” Edin., 1877.
Moncrieff, “The Free Church Principle: its Character and
History.” Edin., 1883.
Mackerrow, “History of the Secession Church.” Glasgow, 1841.
[560] Smith’s appointment was to the Lord Almoner’s Professorship,
with a merely nominal salary; but he was afterwards elected
to the more remunerative office of University librarian, and
more recently has succeeded Prof. Wright in the Chair of
Arabic in the University.
[561] Jarvis, “The Gallican Church and the Revolution.”
Pp. 324-395, London, 1882.
[562] Borrow, “The Bible in Spain.” 2 vols., London, 1843.
[563] Lendrum, “_Ecclesia Pressa_: or, the Lutheran Church in the
Baltic Provinces.” In _The Theological Review and Free
Church College Quarterly_, vol. ii., 310-330.
C. H. H. Wright, “The Persecution of the Lutheran Church
in the Baltic Provinces of Russia.” In the _British and
Foreign Evangelical Review_, January, 1887.
[564] Baird, “Religion in the United States.” Glasgow, 1844.
“Progress and Prospects of Christianity in the United
States.” London, 1851.
Gorrie, “Churches and Sects in the United States.”
New York, 1850.
[565] Stevens, “History of the Episcopal Methodist Church in
North America.” Philadelphia, 1868.
Gorrie, “History of the Episcopal Methodist Church in the
United States.” New York, 1881.
[566] A full account of the recent development of Protestantism
in Brazil is given in an article in the _Presbyterian
Review_ for January, 1889, pp. 101-106: “The Organization
of the Synod of Brazil,” by Dr. J. Aspinwall Hodge.--On
15th November, 1889, the emperor was expelled and a
republic proclaimed.
[567] Hepworth Dixon, “Free Russia.” 2 vols., London, 1870.
Heard, “The Russian Church and Russian Dissent.” 2 vols.,
London, 1887.
[568] Rowntree, “Quakerism Past and Present.” London, 1859.
[569] Dixon, “New America.” 2 vols., 8th edition, London, 1869.
Nordhoff, “The Communistic Societies of the United States.”
London, 1874.
[570] Oliphant, “Life of Ed. Irving.” 3rd edition, London, 1865.
Carlyle, in “Miscellaneous Essays.”
Brown, “Personal Reminiscences of Ed. Irving.” in
_Expositor_, 3 ser., vol. vi., pp. 216, 257.
Miller, “History and Doctrine of Irvingism.” 2 vols.,
London, 1878.
[571] Darby, “Personal Recollections.” London, 1881.
[572] Stenhouse, “An Englishwoman in Utah, the story of a Life’s
Experience in Mormonism.” 2nd ed., London, 1880.
Gunnison, “The Mormons.” New York, 1884.
Burton, “The City of the Saints.” London, 1861.
[573] Wilson, “The ‘Ever-Victorious Army:’ a History of the
Chinese Campaign under Lieut.-Col. C. G. Gordon, and of
the Suppression of the Taeping Rebellion.” Edinburgh.
[574] Edmonds, “American Spiritualism.” 2 vols., New York, 1858.
Cox, “Spiritualism answered by Science.” London, 1872.
Crookes, “Spiritualism and Science.” London, 1874.
Wallace, “A Defence of Spiritualism.” London, 1874.
Owen, “The Debatable Land.” New York, 1872.
Carpenter, “Mesmerism, Spiritualism, etc., Historically and
Scientifically Considered.” London, 1877.
Mahan, “The Phenomena of Spiritualism Scientifically
Explained and Exposed.” London, 1875.
Horne, “Incidents in His Life.” London, 1863.
“Lights and Shadows of Spiritualism.” London, 1877.
[575] Sinnett, “Esoteric Buddhism.” London, 1883.
[576] Sargent, “Rob. Owen and his Social Philosophy.”
London, 1860.
Nordhoff, “Communistic Societies in the United States.”
London, 1875.
[577] Onslow-Yorke, “The Secret History of the International
Working-Men’s Association.” London, 1872.
Lissagaray, “History of the Commune of 1871.” Translated
by Aveling, London, 1886.
[578] From the fifteenth century the numbering of the General
Councils is so variable and uncertain that even Catholic
historians are not agreed upon this point. They are at
one only about this, that the anti-papal councils claiming
to be œcumenical, of Pisa A.D. 1409, Basel A.D. 1438,
and Pisa A.D. 1511, should be designated schismatical
“_Conciliabula_.” Hefele, in his “History of the Councils,”
counts eighteen down to the Reformation. He makes the
Constance Council in its first and last sessions the
sixteenth, but does not count the middle session held
without the pope. He makes that of Basel the seventeenth
down to A.D. 1438 with its papal continuation at Ferrara
and Florence. Finally, as eighteenth he gives the fifth
Lateran Council of A.D. 1512-1517. But others strike
Basel and Constance out of the list altogether; and many,
especially the Gallicans, reject also the fifth Lateran
Council, because occupied with matters of slight or merely
local interest.
TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES.
The following corrections have been made in the text:
§ 153, 1.
Sentence starting: He went over in....
- ‘superfluous reference - destination uncertain.
(in A.D. 1590 (§ 144, 4))
§ 154, 1.
Sentence starting: Landgrave =William IV.= of Hesse-Cassel....
- ‘§ 142, 9’ replaced with ‘§ 141, 9’
(_ubiquitous_ Christology (§ 141, 9))
- ‘§ 142, 10’ replaced with ‘§ 141, 10’
(_Corpus Doctrinæ Philippicum_ (§ 141, 10))
§ 154, 3.
Sentence starting: In A.D. 1614, owing to....
- ‘§ 158, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 159, 5’
(treatise of Hutter (§ 159, 5))
§ 155.
Sentence starting: They powerfully strengthened....
- ‘§ 131, 6’ replaced with ‘§ 139, 6’
(of the State church (§ 139, 6))
§ 156, 3.
Sentence starting: Although =Louis XIV.= of France,...
- ‘164, 7’ replaced with ‘165, 7’
(against the Jansenists (§§ 156, 5; 165, 7))
§ 160, 4.
Sentence starting: In Denmark, where previously....
- ‘§ 166, 6’ replaced with ‘§ 167, 6’
(Danish national hymnology.[471]--Continuation, § 167, 6)
§ 164, 2.
Sentence starting: =John Locke=, died A.D. 1704,...
- Subsection caption added to text.
(§ 164.2. =John Locke=, died)
§ 165, 1.
Sentence starting: He had a special dislike....
- ‘§ 155, 12’ replaced with ‘§ 156, 12’
(dislike of the Jesuits (§ 156, 12))
§ 165, 8.
Sentence starting: Its beginning was traced back....
- ‘§ 188, 20’ replaced with ‘§ 186, 2’
(rosaries and scapularies (§ 186, 2))
§ 168, 2.
Sentence starting: The settlers were therefore....
- ‘§ 166, 6’ replaced with ‘§ 167, 6’
(pastor of Berthelsdorf (§ 167, 6))
§ 170, 1.
Sentence starting: He founded several Philadelphian....
- ‘§ 162, 9’ replaced with ‘§ 163, 9’
(Philadelphian societies (§ 163, 9))
§ 171, 7.
Sentence starting: Of far greater value....
- ‘J. E. Eichhorn’ replaced with ‘J. G. Eichhorn’
(=J. G. Eichhorn= of Göttingen)
§ 174, 1.
Sentence starting: =The German Philosophy=....
- ‘§ 170, 10’ replaced with ‘§ 171, 10’
(=The German Philosophy= (§ 171, 10))
§ 186, 2.
Sentence starting: Finally the third French Republic....
- ‘§ 206, 6’ replaced with ‘§ 203, 6’
(authorized by the State (§ 203, 6))
§ 203, 1.
Sentence starting: In 1801 Napoleon as Consul....
- ‘§ 111, 14’ replaced with ‘§ 110, 14’
(concordat of Francis I. (§ 110, 14))
Chronological Table
Sentence starting: 692. Concilium Quinisextum....
- ‘§ 63, 3’ replaced with ‘§ 63, 2’
((Trullanum II.), § 63, 2.)
Sentence starting: 960. Atto of Vercelli
- ‘§ 100, 3’ replaced with ‘§ 100, 2’
(Vercelli dies, § 100, 2.)
Sentence starting: 974. Ratherius of Verona....
- ‘§ 100, 3’ replaced with ‘§ 100, 2’
(Verona dies, § 100, 2.)
Sentence starting: 1176. Battle of Legnano,...
- ‘§ 6, 15’ replaced with ‘§ 96, 15’
(Battle of Legnano, § 96, 15.)
Sentence starting: 1248. Foundation stone of Cathedral....
- ‘§ 101, 11’ replaced with ‘§ 104, 13’
(Cologne laid, § 104, 13.)
Sentence starting: 1315. Raimund Lullus dies,...
- ‘§ 93, 17’ replaced with ‘§ 93, 16’
(Lullus dies, § 93, 16; 103, 5.)
Sentence starting: 1321. Dante dies,...
- ‘§ 116, 6’ replaced with ‘§ 115, 10’
(Dante dies, § 115, 10.)
Sentence starting: 1521. Melanchthon’s _Loci_,...
- ‘§ 121, 1’ replaced with ‘§ 124, 1’
(Melanchthon’s _Loci_, § 124, 1.)
Sentence starting: 1609. The Royal Letter,...
- ‘§ 193, 19’ replaced with ‘§ 139, 19’
(The Royal Letter, § 139, 19.)
Sentence starting: 1631. Religious Conference....
- ‘§ 155, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 154, 4’
(Conference at Leipzig, § 154, 4.)
Sentence starting: 1863. Congress of Catholic Scholars....
- ‘§ 190, 10’ replaced with ‘§ 191, 10’
(Scholars at Munich, § 191, 10.)
Index
Sentence starting: Abyssinian Church,...
- ‘187, 19’ replaced with ‘184, 9’
(152, 1; 160, 7; 166, 3; 184, 9.)
Sentence starting: Accommodation Controversy,...
- ‘§ 155, 12’ replaced with ‘§ 156, 12’
(Accommodation Controversy, § 156, 12.)
Sentence starting: Acosta, Uriel,...
- ‘§ 155, 14’ replaced with ‘§ 156, 14’
(Acosta, Uriel, § 156, 14.)
Sentence starting: Albert of Suerbeer,...
- ‘92, 12’ replaced with ‘93, 12’
(Suerbeer, § 73, 6; 93, 12.)
Sentence starting: Alpers,...
- ‘§ 208, 10’ replaced with ‘§ 211, 10’
(Alpers, § 211, 10.)
Sentence starting: Amort,...
- ‘§ 164, 15’ replaced with ‘§ 165, 12’
(Amort, § 165, 12.)
Sentence starting: Apocrisiarians,...
- ‘Apocrisarians’ replaced with ‘Apocrisiarians’
(Apocrisiarians, § 46, 1.)
Sentence starting: Asinarii,...
- ‘§ 23, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 23, 2’
(Asinarii, § 23, 2.)
Sentence starting: Avitus,...
- ‘§ 53, 6’ replaced with ‘§ 53, 5’
(Avitus, § 53, 5; 76, 5.)
Sentence starting: Baptism,...
- ‘58, 1, 5’ replaced with ‘58, 1, 4’
(Baptism, § 35, 2-4; 58, 1, 4; 141, 13.)
Sentence starting: Bernard Sylvester,...
- ‘§ 102, 10’ replaced with ‘§ 102, 9’
(Bernard Sylvester, § 102, 9.)
Sentence starting: Bonald,...
- ‘§ 186, 9’ replaced with ‘§ 188, 1’
(Bonald, § 188, 1.)
Sentence starting: Calas,...
- ‘§ 164, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 165, 5’
(Calas, § 165, 5.)
Sentence starting: Calixt, Geo.,...
- ‘158, 2, 8’ replaced with ‘159, 2, 4’
(Calixt, Geo., § 153, 7; 159, 2, 4.)
Sentence starting: Charlemagne,...
- ‘79, 5’ replaced with ‘79, 1’
(Charlemagne, § 78, 9; 79, 1;)
Sentence starting: Claudius of Turin,...
- ‘92, 3’ replaced with ‘92, 2’
(Claudius of Turin, § 90, 4; 92, 2.)
Sentence starting: Constantine the Great,...
- ‘§ 28, 7’ replaced with ‘§ 22, 7’
(Constantine the Great, § 22, 7;)
Sentence starting: Cross, Sign of....
- ‘72, 5’ replaced with ‘73, 5’
(Sign of the, § 39, 1; 59, 8; 73, 5.)
Sentence starting: _Defensores_,...
- ‘§ 45, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 45, 3’
(_Defensores_, § 45, 3.)
Sentence starting: Demetrius Mysos,...
- ‘§ 139, 36’ replaced with ‘§ 139, 26’
(Demetrius Mysos, § 139, 26.)
Sentence starting: _De salute animarum_,...
- ‘§ 193, 11’ replaced with ‘§ 193, 1’
(_De salute animarum_, § 193, 1.)
Sentence starting: Dinter,...
- ‘§ 173, 3; 180, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 174, 8’
(Dinter, § 174, 8.)
Sentence starting: Dionysius of Alexandria,...
- ‘§ 31, 6, 14’ replaced with ‘§ 31, 6; 32, 8;’
(Dionysius of Alexandria, § 31, 6; 32 8;)
Sentence starting: Döllinger,...
- ‘§ 190, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 190, 1’
(Döllinger, § 190, 1;)
Sentence starting: East Indies,...
- ‘155, 11’ replaced with ‘156, 11’
(East Indies, § 64, 4; 150, 1; 156, 11;)
Sentence starting: Estius,...
- ‘§ 150, 14’ replaced with ‘§ 149, 14’
(Estius, § 149, 14.)
Sentence starting: Euler,...
- ‘§ 150, 14’ replaced with ‘§ 171, 8’
(Euler, § 171, 8.)
Sentence starting: Fichte, J. G.,...
- ‘§ 170, 13’ replaced with ‘§ 171, 10’
(Fichte, J. G., § 171, 10.)
Sentence starting: Francis, St.,...
- ‘106, 5’ replaced with ‘105, 4’
(§ 93, 16; 98, 3; 104, 10; 105, 4.)
Sentence starting: Franco of Cologne,...
- ‘§ 144, 11’ replaced with ‘§ 104, 11’
(Franco of Cologne, § 104, 11.)
Sentence starting: Gellert,...
- ‘§ 176, 11’ replaced with ‘§ 171, 11’
(Gellert, § 171, 11; 172, 1.)
Sentence starting: Gerbert,...
- ‘100, 3’ replaced with ‘100, 2’
(Gerbert, § 96, 2; 100, 2.)
Sentence starting: Gil, Juan,...
- ‘§ 129, 21’ replaced with ‘§ 139, 21’
(Gil, Juan, § 139, 21.)
Sentence starting: Grabow,...
- Name not found--Invalid reference.
(Grabow, § 210, 10.)
Sentence starting: Gundioch,...
- Name not found--Invalid reference.
(Gundioch, § 75, 5.)
Sentence starting: Hebrews, Gospel of the,...
- ‘§ 31, 16’ replaced with ‘§ 32, 4’
(Hebrews, Gospel of the, § 32, 4.)
Sentence starting: Huguenots,...
- ‘166, 5’ replaced with ‘165, 5’
(Huguenots, § 139, 14, ff.; 153, 4; 165, 5.)
Sentence starting: _In commendam_,...
- ‘§ 86, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 85, 5’
(_In commendam_, § 85, 5; 110, 15.)
Sentence starting: Innocent IV.,...
- ‘72, 6’ replaced with ‘73, 6’
(Innocent IV., § 96, 20; 73, 6.)
Sentence starting: Irene,...
- ‘§ 66, 9’ replaced with ‘§ 66, 3’
(Irene, § 66, 3.)
Sentence starting: Italy,...
- ‘189, 7’ replaced with ‘187, 7’
(Italy, § 139, 22; 187, 7; 204.)
Sentence starting: Jansenists,...
- ‘§ 157, 15’ replaced with ‘§ 157, 5’
(Jansenists, § 157, 5; 165, 6.)
Sentence starting: John of the Cross,...
- ‘§ 49, 6, 16.’ replaced with ‘§ 149, 6, 16.’
(John of the Cross, § 149, 6, 16.)
Sentence starting: Lambeth Articles,...
- ‘§ 144, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 143, 5’
(Lambeth Articles, § 143, 5.)
Sentence starting: Lee, Bishop,...
- ‘§ 211, 74’ replaced with ‘§ 211, 14’
(Lee, Bishop, § 211, 14.)
Sentence starting: Leyser,...
- ‘§ 155, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 141, 14; 142, 6’
(Leyser, § 141, 14; 142, 6.)
Sentence starting: Liptinä, Synod of,...
- ‘§ 75, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 78, 5’
(Liptinä, Synod of, § 78, 5; 86, 2.)
Sentence starting: Loyson,...
- ‘§ 189, 8’ replaced with ‘§ 187, 8’
(Loyson, § 187, 8.)
Sentence starting: Maistre,...
- ‘§ 187, 9’ replaced with ‘§ 188, 1’
(Maistre, § 188, 1.)
Sentence starting: Marcionites,...
- ‘64, 5’ replaced with ‘64, 3’
(Marcionites, § 27, 12; 54, 1; 64, 3.)
Sentence starting: Martyrs, Acts of,...
- ‘§ 32, 9’ replaced with ‘§ 32, 8’
(Martyrs, Acts of, § 32, 8.)
Sentence starting: Montalembert,...
- ‘§ 189, 9; 190, 1’ replaced with ‘§ 188, 1; 189, 1’
(Montalembert, § 188, 1; 189, 1.)
Sentence starting: Mouls,...
- ‘§ 190, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 190, 3’
(Mouls, § 190, 3.)
Sentence starting: Nägelsbach,...
- ‘§ 173, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 174, 4’
(Nägelsbach, § 174, 4.)
Sentence starting: Nectarius,...
- ‘§ 61, 6’ replaced with ‘§ 61, 1’
(Nectarius, § 61, 1.)
Sentence starting: Norwegians,...
- ‘201, 13’ replaced with ‘201, 3’
(Norwegians, § 93, 4; 139, 2; 201, 3.)
Sentence starting: Noyes,...
- ‘§ 208, 6’ replaced with ‘§ 211, 6’
(Noyes, § 211, 6.)
Sentence starting: O’Connell,...
- ‘§ 199, 9’ replaced with ‘§ 202, 9’
(O’Connell, § 202, 9.)
Sentence starting: Οἰκόνομοι,...
- ‘§ 45, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 45, 3’
(Οἰκόνομοι, § 45, 3.)
Sentence starting: Orange,...
- ‘§ 53, 6’ replaced with ‘§ 53, 5’
(Orange, Synod of, § 53, 5.)
Sentence starting: Oratory, Fathers of the,...
- ‘§ 155, 7’ replaced with ‘§ 156, 7’
(Oratory, Fathers of the, § 156, 7.)
Sentence starting: Paul V.,...
- ‘§ 155, 1, 2, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 156, 1, 2, 4’
(Paul V., § 154, 1, 2, 4; 149, 13.)
Sentence starting: Pellico, Silvio,...
- ‘§ 173, 7’ replaced with ‘§ 174, 7’
- ‘Pellico-Silvio’ replaced with ‘Pellico, Silvio’
(Pellico, Silvio, § 174, 7.)
Sentence starting: Perfectus,...
- ‘§ 21, 1’ replaced with ‘§ 81, 1’
(Perfectus, § 81, 1.)
Sentence starting: Phœbe,...
- ‘§ 18, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 17, 4’
(Phœbe, § 17, 4.)
Sentence starting: Pilate, Acts of,...
- ‘§ 14, 2’ replaced with ‘§ 13, 2’
(Pilate, Acts of, § 13, 2; 31, 2.)
Sentence starting: Poetry, Christian,...
- ‘173, 6’ replaced with ‘174, 6’
(Poetry, Christian, § 48, 5, 6; 105, 4; 174, 6.)
Sentence starting: _Postilla_,...
- ‘116, 6’ replaced with ‘108, 6’
(_Postilla_, § 103, 9; 108, 6.)
Sentence starting: Prochorus,...
- ‘§ 31, 18’ replaced with ‘§ 32, 6’
(Prochorus, § 32, 6.)
Sentence starting: Prosper Aquit.,...
- ‘53, 8’ replaced with ‘53, 5’
(Prosper Aquit., § 47, 20; 48, 6; 53, 5.)
Sentence starting: Raymond IV., Count of Toulouse,...
- ‘Raimund of Toulouse, § 109, 4.’ replaced with
‘Raymond IV., Count of Toulouse, § 109, 1.’
(Raymond IV., Count of Toulouse, § 109, 1.)
Sentence starting: _Recursus ab abusu_,...
- ‘194, 9’--Invalid reference.
(_abusu_, § 185, 4; 192, 4; 194, 9; 197, 9.)
Sentence starting: Revenues of the Church,...
- ‘45, 6’--Invalid reference.
(Revenues of the Church, § 45, 6; 86, 1.)
Sentence starting: Rudolph II.,...
- ‘§ 129, 19’ replaced with ‘§ 139, 19’
(Rudolph II., § 139, 19; 137, 8.)
Sentence starting: Russia,...
- ‘219, 3, 4’ replaced with ‘210, 3, 4’
(163, 8; 166; 206; 210, 3, 4; 212, 6.)
Sentence starting: Sergius I. of Rome,...
- ‘63, 3’ replaced with ‘63, 2’
(Sergius I. of Rome, § 46, 11; 63, 2.)
Sentence starting: Severa,...
- ‘§ 23, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 22, 4’
(Severa, § 22, 4; 26.)
Sentence starting: Stephanas,...
- ‘§ 18, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 17, 4’
(Stephanas, § 17, 4.)
Sentence starting: Switzerland,...
- ‘189, 7’ replaced with ‘169, 2’
(§ 78, 1; 130; 138; 162, 6; 169, 2;)
Sentence starting: Sylvester, Bern.,...
- ‘§ 102, 10’ replaced with ‘§ 102, 9’
(Sylvester, Bern., § 102, 9.)
Sentence starting: Sympherosa,...
- ‘§ 32, 9’ replaced with ‘§ 32, 8’
(Sympherosa, § 32, 8.)
Sentence starting: Thorwaldsen,...
- ‘§ 173, 9’ replaced with ‘§ 174, 9’
(Thorwaldsen, § 174, 9.)
Sentence starting: Turrecremata [Torquemada], John,...
- ‘112, 14’ replaced with ‘112, 4’
(John, § 110, 15; 112, 4.)
Sentence starting: Turretin, J. A.,...
- ‘§ 164, 1, 6.’ replaced with ‘§ 169, 2, 6.’
(Turretin, J. A., § 169, 2, 6.)
Sentence starting: Union, Lutheran Reformed,...
- ‘§ 155, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 154, 4’
(Reformed, § 154, 4; 167, 4; 169, 1, 2.)
Sentence starting: Vienna, Peace of,...
- ‘§ 139, 40’ replaced with ‘§ 139, 20’
(Vienna, Peace of, § 139, 20.)
Sentence starting: Vinet,...
- ‘§ 129, 5’ replaced with ‘§ 199, 5’
(Vinet, § 199, 5.)
Sentence starting: Voltaire,...
- ‘§ 105, 5, 14, 15’ replaced with ‘§ 165, 5, 14, 15’
(Voltaire, § 165, 5, 14, 15.)
Sentence starting: Wechabites,...
- ‘§ 65, 4’ replaced with ‘§ 65, 1’
(Wechabites, § 65, 1.)
Sentence starting: William of Conches,...
- ‘§ 102, 10’ replaced with ‘§ 102, 9’
(William of Conches, § 102, 9.)
Sentence starting: William of Thierry,...
- ‘§ 102, 2, 10’ replaced with ‘§ 102, 2, 9’
(William of Thierry, § 102, 2, 9.)
Sentence starting: William I. of Orange,...
- ‘§ 129, 12’ replaced with ‘§ 139, 12’
(William I. of Orange, § 139, 12.)
Sentence starting: Wittenberg, Sketch of Reform,...
- ‘§ 135, 13’ replaced with ‘§ 135, 9’
(Wittenberg, Sketch of Reform, § 135, 9.)
Sentence starting: Zwickau, Prophets of,...
- ‘§ 121, 1’ replaced with ‘§ 124, 1’
(Zwickau, Prophets of, § 124, 1.)
Footnote 536.
- ‘Stoddard’ replaced with ‘Stoddart’
(Translated by Miss Stoddart,)
End of Project Gutenberg's Church History, Volume 3 (of 3), by J. H. Kurtz
*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHURCH HISTORY, VOLUME 3 (OF 3) ***
***** This file should be named 37404-0.txt or 37404-0.zip *****
This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
http://www.gutenberg.org/3/7/4/0/37404/
Produced by Jon Ingram, Richard Hulse and the Online
Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
be renamed.
Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
START: FULL LICENSE
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
1.E.8.
1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
you share it without charge with others.
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country outside the United States.
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
are located before using this ebook.
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg-tm License.
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
provided that
* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation."
* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
works.
* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
receipt of the work.
* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
1.F.
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
www.gutenberg.org
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
For additional contact information:
Dr. Gregory B. Newby
Chief Executive and Director
[email protected]
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation
Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.
Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org
This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
Church History, Volume 3 (of 3)
Subjects:
Download Formats:
Excerpt
Project Gutenberg's Church History, Volume 3 (of 3), by J. H. Kurtz
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
to check the laws of the country where you are located before...
Read the Full Text
— End of Church History, Volume 3 (of 3) —
Book Information
- Title
- Church History, Volume 3 (of 3)
- Author(s)
- Kurtz, J. H. (Johann Heinrich)
- Language
- English
- Type
- Text
- Release Date
- September 11, 2011
- Word Count
- 221,225 words
- Library of Congress Classification
- BR
- Bookshelves
- Browsing: History - Religious, Browsing: Religion/Spirituality/Paranormal
- Rights
- Public domain in the USA.
Related Books
Bible history and brief outline of church history
by Vogt, Volrath
English
644h 8m read
An Historical Sketch of Sacerdotal Celibacy in the Christian Church
by Lea, Henry Charles
English
4871h 44m read
The History of Christianity - Consisting of the Life and Teachings of Jesus of Nazareth; the Adventures of Paul and the Apostles; and the Most Interesting Events in the Progress of Christianity, from the Earliest Period to the Present Time.
by Abbott, John S. C. (John Stevens Cabot)
English
2943h 37m read
A Short History of Christianity - Second Edition, Revised, With Additions
by Robertson, J. M. (John Mackinnon)
English
2085h 15m read
Outlines of Ecclesiastical History
by Roberts, B. H. (Brigham Henry)
English
2460h 48m read
Church History (Volumes 1-3)
by Kurtz, J. H. (Johann Heinrich)
English
11570h 29m read